Skip to main content

Full text of "The Gospel according to St. Luke : with maps, notes and introduction"

See other formats


,.  JilDLE. 


co{.if:w,s 


•a^tSssamt 


RRAR.D.n 


11 


,if' 


Oiitrda-  F  R.G.S 


iM(^mmtit  Mhlt  for  ^t|)ooIfi 

General  Editor:— J.  J.  S.  PEROWNE,  D.D., 
Dean  of  Peterborough. 


THE    GOSPEL   ACCORDING 

TO 

ST    LUKE, 

WITH  MAPS,    NOTES   AND   INTRODUCl'ION 


r.Y 
THE   VEN.    F.    W.    FARRAR,    D.D. 

ARCHDEACON    OF    WESTMINSTER. 


EDITED   FOR    THE  SYNDICS  OF   THE    UNIVERSITY  FKESS. 


AT   THE    UNIVERSITY    PRESS. 


aonHon:    C.    J.    CLAY   and    SONS, 

CAMBRIDGE   UNIVERSITY   PRESS   WAREHOUSE, 

AVE  MARIA   LANE. 

1890 

\AiL   Ris^his  reserved^. 


(JTambriticjc 

PRINTED    IIY  C.    J.    CLAY   M.A.    AND   SONS 
AT   THE    UNIVERSITY   PRESS 


PREFACE 
BY    THE    GENERAL    EDITOR. 


The  General  Editor  of  The  Cambridge  Bible  for 
Schools  thinks  it  right  to  say  that  he  does  not  hold 
himself  responsible   either   for  the  interpretation   of 
particular  passages  which  the  Editors  of  the  several 
Books  have  adopted,  or  for  any  opinion  on  points  of 
doctrine  thai  they  may  have  expressed.     In  the  New 
Testament   more   especially   questions   arise   of  the 
deepest  theological  import,  on  which  the  ablest  and 
most    conscientious    interpreters    have    differed    and 
always  will  differ.      His  aim  has  been  in  all  such 
cases   to  leave  each   Contributor   to    the    unfettered 
exercise  of  his  own  judgment,  only  taking  care  that 
mere  controversy  should  as  far  as  possible  be  avoided. 
He   has    contented    himself    chiefly   with   a   careful 
revision  of  the  notes,  with  pointing  out  omissions,  with 


4.  PREFACE. 

suggesting  occasionally  a  reconsideration  of  some 
question,  or  a  fuller  treatment  of  ditificult  passages, 
and  the  like. 

Beyond  this  he  has  not  attempted  to  interfere, 
feeling  it  better  that  each  Commentary  should  have 
its  own  individual  character,  and  being  convinced 
that  freshness  and  variety  of  treatment  are  more 
than  a  compensation  for  any  lack  of  uniformity  in 
the  Series. 

Deanery,  Peterborough, 
£4^/4  Feb.  1880. 


CONTENTS. 


PAGES 

I.     Introduction. 

Chapter  I.     The  Gospels     7 — 17 

Chapter  II.     Life  of  St  Luke t8— 22 

'     Chapter  III.     Authenticity  of  the  Gospel 22 — 23 

Chapter  IV.     Characteristics  of  the  Gospel  23 — 30 

Chapter  V.     Analysis  of  the  Gospel 30 — 36 

Chief  Uncial  MSS.  of  the  Gospels 37—38 

The  Herods  39 

II.    Text  and  Notes 41 — 367 

III.  Excursus  I— VII 368—385 

IV.  Index 386 

Map     I.  Environs  of  Jerusalem  Frontispiece 

„       II.  Palestine to  face  p.    65 

„     III.  Galilee    »         loi 

„     IV.  Sea  of  Galilee    »         "2 


,*  The  Text  adopted  in  this  Edition  is  that  of  Dr  Scrivener|s 
Cambridge  Paragraph  Bible.  A  few  variations  from  the_  ordi- 
nary Text,  chiefly  in  the  spelling  of  certain  words,  and  in  the 
use  of  italics,  will  be  noticed.  For  the  principles  adopted  by 
Dr  Scrivener  as  regards  the  printing  of  the  Text  see  his  Intro- 
duction to  the  Paragraph  Bible,  published  by  tht  Cambridge 
University  Press. 


"Luke  the  beloved,  the  sick  soul's  guide." 

Keble. 

Almighty  God  who  calledst  Luke  the  Physician,  whose  praise  is 
in  the  Gospel,  to  be  an  Evangelist  and  Physician  of  the  soul:  May 
it  please  Thee  that  by  the  wholesome  medicines  of  the  doctrine  delivered 
by  him,  all  the  diseases  of  our  souls  may  be  healed ;  through  the  merits 
of  Thy  Son  Jesus  Christ  our  Lord.     Amen. 

Collect  for  St  Luke's  Day, 


INTRODUCTION. 


CHAPTER  I. 


THE   GOSPELS. 


The  word  Gospel  1  is  the  Saxon  translation  of  the  Greek 
Euangelion.  In  early  Greek  (e.g.  in  Homer)  this  word  meant 
the  reward  given  to  one  who  brought  good  tidings.  In  Attic 
Greek  it  also  meant  a  sacrifice  for  good  tidings  but  was  always 
used  in  the  plural  euangelia.  In  later  Greek,  as  in  Plutarch  and 
Lucian,  euangelion  meant  the  good  news  actually  delivered. 
Among  all  Greek-speaking  Christians  the  word  was  naturally 
adopted  to  describe  the  best  and  gladdest  tidings  ever  delivered 
to  the  human  race,  the  good  news  of  the  Kingdom  of  God.  In 
the  address  of  the  Angel  to  the  shepherds  we  find  the  words  "/ 
bring  you  good  tidings  of  great  joy,"  where  the  verb  used  is 
euangelisomai.  From  this  Greek  word  are  derived  the  French 
Evangile,  the  Italian  Evangelio,  the  Portuguese  Evangelho,  &c. 
Naturally  the  word  which  signified  "good  news"  soon  came  to 
be  used  as  the  title  of  the  books  which  contained  the  history  of 

that  good  news. 

The  existence  of  four  separate,  and  mainly  if  not  absolutely, 
independent  Gospels,  is  a  great  blessing  to  the  Church  of  Christ. 
It  furnishes  us  with  such  a  weight  of  contemporaneous  testimony 
as  is  wanting  to  the  vast  majority  of  events  in  Ancient  History. 
A  fourfold  cord  is  not  easily  broken. 

1  By  euphony  for  ^odspd,  as  gossip  for  godsib,  and  gossamer  for  god- 
summer.  The  word  seems  to  have  acquired  its  currency  from  Wychi  s 
translation.     On  the  title  "New  Testament"  see  note  on  xxii.  10. 


8  INTRODUCTION. 


Of  these  four  Gospels  the  first  three  are  often  called  the 
Synoptic  Gospels.  The  Greek  word  Synopsis  has  the  same 
meaning  as  the  Latin  Conspectus,  and  the  first  three  Evangelists 
are  called  "Synoptists"  because  their  Gospels  can  be  arranged 
and  harmonised,  section  by  section,  in  a  tabular  form,  since 
they  are  mainly  based  on  a  common  outline.  The  term  appears 
to  be  quite  modern,  but  has  been  rapidly  brought  into  general 
use,  probably  by  Griesbach.  It  is  intended  to  indicate  the  dif- 
ference of  plan  which  marks  these  Gospels  as  compared  with 
that  of  St  John  ^ 

In  the  Synoptic  Gospels  we  find  much  that  is  common  to 
all,  and  something  which  is  peculiar  to  each.  It  has  been  ascer- 
tained by  Stroud  that  "if  the  total  contents  of  the  several 
Gospels  be  represented  by  loo,  the  following  table  is  obtained^: 

St  Mark        has    7  peculiarities,  and  93  coincidences. 

St  Matthew   ,,    42  ,,         ,,         58         ,, 

St  Luke         ,,    59  ,,         ,,         41         ,, 

St  John  „    92  „         „  8         „         " 

Reuss  has  further  calculated  that  the  total  number  of  verses 
Commo7i  to  all  the  Synoptists  is  about  350;  that  St  Matthew 
has  350  verses  peculiar  to  himself,  St  Mark  68,  and  St  Luke 
541.  The  coincidences  are  usually  in  the  record  of  sayings:  the 
peculiarities  in  the  narrative  portion.  In  St  Matthew,  the  nar- 
rative occupies  about  one  fourth;  in  St  Mark  one  half;  and  in 
St  Luke  one  third. 

Another  important  fact  is  that  when  St  Matthew  and  St 
Luke  verbally  agree,  St  Mark  always  agrees  with  them;  that 
the  resemblances  between  St  Luke  and  St  Mark  are  much  closer 
than  those  between  St  Luke  and  St  Matthew  3;  that  where  St 
Mark  has  additional  touches  St  Luke  usually  has  them  also, 

^  See  Holtzmann  in  '&c\\^x^eS.,  Bibel-Lexicon,  s.  v.  Evangelien;  and 
Ebrard  in  Herzog,  s.  v.  Harmonie.  I  am  not  aware  of  any  earlier  use 
of  the  -word  "  Synopsis,"  as  applied  to  a  tabular  view  of  the  first  three 
Gospels,  than  Georgii  Sigelii  Synopsis  historiae  Jes.  Christi  quetnad- 
modum  Malthaeus,  Marcus,  Lucas  descripsere  in  forma  tabulae proposita. 
Noiibergae.      1585.     Folio. 

"  VVestcott,  Introd.  to  the  Study  of  the  Gospels,  p.  179. 

"  Bp.  Marsh,  On  Mic/iaelis,  v.  317. 


INTRODUCTION. 


but  not  when  these  additions  are  found  only  in  St  Matthew;  and 
that  where  St  Mark  is  silent,  St  Luke  often  differs  from  St 
Matthew  1. 

The  dates  at  which  the  four  Gospels  were  published  cannot 
be  ascertained  with  certainty ;  but  there  are  some  reasons  to 
believe  that  St  Matthew's  was  written  first,  possibly  in  Aramaic, 
and  about  A.D.  64;  that  St  Mark's  and  St  Luke's  were  published 
within  a  few  years  of  this  date 2,  and  certainly  before  the  de- 
struction of  Jerusalem  in  A.D.  70;  and  that  St  John's  was 
written  in  old  age  at  Ephesus  before  the  year  A.D.  85.  It  is 
probable  that  most,  if  not  all,  of  St  Paul's  Epistles  had  been 
written  before  the  earliest  Gospel  was  published  in  its  present 
form.  To  what  extent  the  Synoptists  were  influenced  by  written 
records  of  previous  oral  teaching  is  a  difficult  and  complicated 
question  about  which  there  have  been  multitudes  of  theories,  as 
also  respecting  the  question  whether  any  of  the  three  used  the 
Gospel  of  either  of  the  others.  That  previous  attempts  to  nar- 
rate the  Life  of  Christ  were  in  existence  when  St  Luke  wrote 
we  know  from  his  own  testimony ;  but  it  may  be  regarded  as 
certain  that  among  these  "attempts"  he  did  7iot  class  the  Gos- 
pels of  St  Matthew  and  St  Mark.  The  inference  that  he 
was  either  unaware  of  the  existence  of  those  Gospels,  or  made 
no  direct  use  of  them,  suggests  itself  with  the  utmost  force  when 
we  place  side  by  side  any  of  the  events  which  they  narrate  in 
common,  and  mark  the  minute  and  inexplicable  differences 
which  incessantly  occur  even  amid  general  similarity. 

The  language  employed  by  the  Evangelists  is  that  dialect 

1  Reuss  To  give  the  passages  and  details  would  occupy  too 
much  space.  They  are  adduced  in  several  critical  editions,  and 
are  sometimes  noticed  in  the  notes.  St  Luke  and  St  Matthew  both 
eive  but  few  passages  omitted  by  St  Mark  (e.g.  the  Lost  Slieep, 
Matt,  xviii.  12-14;  Lk.  XV.  4-7.  and  compare  Matt.  vni.  5  sq.,  xxii. 
I  sq.  with  Lk.  vii.  i  sq.,  xiv.  15  sq.)-  ,  ^    t    , 

i'  Some  writers  think  that  the  Gospel  of  St  Luke  was  written  as 
early  as  A.D.  60,  during  St  Paul's  imprisonment  at  Caesarea.  Ihe 
subject  is  not  one  on  which  positive  certainty  can  be  attained;  but  he 
absence  of  any  direct  reference  to  this  Gospel  in  the   Lpistles  of  the 


Captivity  and  the  Pastoral  Epistles,  and  the  comparatively  late  date  at 
which  it  is  authoritatively  recognised  by  name  as  canonical  make  it  more 
Drobable  that  it  was  not  published  till  after  the  death  of  bt  laul. 


lo  INTRODUCTION. 


of  Greek  which  was  in  their  day  generally  current — the  Mace- 
donian or  Hellenistic  Greek.  It  was  a  stage  of  the  Greek 
language  less  perfect  than  that  of  the  classical  period,  but  ad- 
mirably plastic  and  forcible. 

St  Matthew  and  St  John  were  Apostles  and  eyewitnesses 
of  the  ministry  of  our  Lord  from  the  baptism  of  John  until  the 
Ascension.  The  other  two  Evangelists  were  as  St  Jerome  says 
not  Apostles  but "  Apostolic  men."  St  Mark  may  have  been  a 
partial  eyewitness  of  some  of  the  later  scenes  of  the  life  of  Christ, 
and  it  is  the  unanimous  tradition  of  the  Early  Church  that  his 
Gospel  reflects  for  us  the  direct  testimony  of  St  Peter.  St 
Luke  expressly  implies  that  he  was  not  an  eyewitness,  but  he 
made  diligent  use  of  all  the  records  which  he  found  in  existence, 
and  he  derived  his  testimony  from  the  most  authentic  sources. 
It  may  be  regarded  as  certain  that  he  sets  before  us  that  con- 
ception of  the  Life  and  Work  of  Christ  which  was  the  basis  of 
the  teaching  of  St  Paul^  Thus  we  have  the  Gospel  "according 
to"  the  view  and  teaching  of  four  great  Apostles,  St  Matthew,  St 
Peter,  St  Paul,  and  St  John. 

The  differences  between  the  Synoptists  and  St  John  have 
been  noticed  from  the  earliest  ages  of  the  Church.  They  are 
mainly  these.  The  Synoptists  dwell  almost  exclusively  on 
Christ's  Ministry  in  Galilee;  St  John  on  His  Ministry  in  Judaea. 
The  Synoptists  dwell  chiefly  on  the  Miracles,   Parables,  and 

^  Irenaeus,  adv.  Haer.  in.  i  and  iii.  14.  TertuUian,  adv.  Marc.  iv. 
1,  5.  Origen  apud  Euseb.  H.  E.  vi.  25,  and  id.  iii.  4.  Jerome,  De 
Vh-r.  Illustr.  7.  A  long  list  of  words  and  phrases  are  common  to 
St  Luke  and  St  Paul,  which  may  be  seen  in  Davidson's  Introd.  to  the 


New  Test.  n.  12— i^.     The  student 

may  compare  the  following 

St  Luke,  iv.  11. 

St  Paul, 

Col.  iv.  6. 

iv.  32. 

I  Cor.  ii.  4. 

vi.  36. 

2  Cor.  i.  3. 

vi.  39. 

Rom.  ii.  19, 

ix.  56. 

2  Cor.  x.  8. 

X.  8. 

I  Cor.  x.  27. 

xi.  41. 

Tit.  i.  15. 

xviii.  I. 

2  Thess.  i.  11. 

xxi.  36. 

Eph.  vi.  18. 

xxii.  19, 

20. 

I  Cor.  xi.  23 — 29, 

xxiv.  46. 

Acts  xvii,  3. 

xxiv.  34. 

I  Cor,  XV.  5. 

INTRODUCTION.  ii 

external  incidents  of  His  work ;  in  St  John  the  prominent  feature 
is  the  high  discourse  and  inmost  spiritual  meaning  of  His  life. 
The  Synoptists  portrayed  Him  to  the  world;  St  John  more 
specially  for  the  Church.  To  use  a  common  term  they  present 
a  more  objective,  and  St  John  a  more  subjective  view  of  the 
Work  of  Christ.  The  complete  portraiture  of  the  Saviour  "com- 
prised the  fulness  of  an  outward  presence,  as  well  as  the  depth 
of  a  secret  life.  In  this  respect  the  records  correspond  to  the 
subjects.  The  first  record  [that  of  the  Synoptists]  is  manifold ; 
the  second  is  one :  the  first  is  based  on  the  experience  of  a 
society,  the  second  on  the  intuition  of  a  loved  disciple."  "The 
Synoptic  Gospels  contain  the  Gospel  of  the  infant  Church;  that 
of  St  John  the  Gospel  of  its  maturity.  The  first  combine  to  give 
the  wide  experience  of  the  many,  the  last  embraces  the  deep 
mysteries  treasured  up  by  the  one."  "The  threefold  portrait  of 
Charles  I.  which  Vandyke  prepared  for  the  sculptor  is  an 
emblem  of  the  work  of  the  first  three  Evangelists :  the  complete 
outward  shape  is  fashioned,  and  then  at  last  another  kindles  the 
figure  with  a  spiritual  life^"  But  the  object  of  each  and  all  of 
the  Gospels  is  that  expressed  by  St  John  "that  ye  might  believe 
that  Jesus  is  the  Christ  the  Son  of  God,  and  that  believing  ye 
might  have  life  through  His  name''^." 

Elaborate  and  repeated  attempts  have  been  made  to  settle 
the  interrelation  of  the  Synoptists  with  each  other.  All  such 
attempts  have  hitherto  failed.  Each  Gospel  in  turn  has  been 
assumed  to  be  the  earliest  of  the  three;  and  the  supposition 
that  the  other  two  worked  on  tlie  existing  narrative  of  a  third 
has  required  for  its  support  as  many  subordinate  hypotheses 
of  fresh  recension,  translation,  &c.,  as  the  Ptolemaic  system  of 
Astronomy  required  epicycles  to  account  for  its  theory  of  the 
motions  of  the  heavenly  bodies.  The  general  conclusion  to 
which  all  these  enquiries  seem  to  point  is  (i)  That  there  existed 
in  the  Early  Church  a  cycle  of  authoritative  oral  teaching, 
which  being  committed  to  memory^  tended  to  assume  a  fixed 

^  Westcott,  Introd.  pp.  197,  234,  231.  '  Jf'^in  xx.  31. 

"  The  Mishna  was  similarly  transmitted  by  numory  for  at  least  two 
centuries,  and  the  Jewish  scribes  of  this  age  were   on  that   account 


12  INTRODUCTION. 


peculiarity  of  diction  ;  (2)  That  this  authoritative  tradition  would 
gradually  be  committed  to  writing  by  some  of  the  disciples; 
(3)  That  these  written  memorials  would  naturally  be  utilized 
by  those  who  "  attempted"  to  set  forth  a  continuous  sketch  of  the 
ministry  of  Christ ;  and  (4)  that  the  most  authentic  and  valuable 
of  them  would  be  to  a  considerable  extent  incorporated  into  the 
narratives  of  the  Evangelists  themselves.  If  some  such  theory 
as  this  be  not  adequate  to  account  (a)  for  resemblances  which 
extend  even  to  the  use  of  peculiar  verbal  forms  {a^iavrai, 
Lk.  V.  20),  diminutives  {driov,  Matt.  xxvi.  51),  and  the  use  of  a 
double  augment  (Matt.  xii.  13); — and  O)  for  differences  which 
extend  to  the  transposition  of  whole  sections,  and  the  omission 
of  entire  discourses, — at  least  no  more  reasonable  theory  has 
yet  been  proposed^ 

Early  Christian  writers  compared  the  four  Gospels  to  that 
river,  which,  flowing  out  of  Eden  to  water  the  garden  of  God, 
was  parted  into  four  heads  compassing  lands  like  that  of 
Havilah  of  which  "the  gold  is  good"  and  where  is  "bdellium 
and  the  onyx  stone." 

"Paradisi  hie  fluenta 
Nova  fluunt  sacramenta 

Quae  descendunt  coelitus  : 
His  quadrigis  deportatur 
Mundo  Deus,   sublimatur 
Istis  area  vectibus." 

Adam  de  S.  Victore. 

A  still  more  common  symbol  of  the  four  Evangelists  was 
derived  from  "the  Chariot"  as  the  chapter  was  called  which 
describes  the  vision  of  Ezekiel  by  the  river  Chebar-.  Each  one  of 


called  Tauaim  or  "repeaters"  (from  tanah  the  Chaldee  form  of  the 
Hebrew  skaiiak).  They  were  succeeded  about  A.D.  220,  by  the  Amo- 
raim,  or  Recorders. 

^  The  force  of  these  particular  resemblances  (which  are  noted  by 
Archbishop  Thomson  in  the  Speaker's  Commentary,  i.  p.  ix),  is  a  little 
weakened  by  the  fact  that  in  Mk.  ii.  9;  Matt.  ix.  2,  K,  B,  &c.,  read 
dcpievTai.  It  may  be  doubted  whether  the  other  forms  were  not  those 
generally  current  in  the  Hellenistic  Greek  of  Palestine. 

*  Ezek.  i.  5 — 26. 


INTRODUCTION.  13 


the  living  creatures  combined  in  "the  fourfold-visaged  four"  was 
taken  as  the  emblem  of  one  of  the  Evangelists.  The  applica- 
tions differed,  but  the  one  which  has  been  almost  universally 
adopted,  and  of  which  there  are  traces  in  Christian  Art  as  far 
back  as  the  fifth  century,  assigns  the  Man  or  Angel  to  St 
Matthew,  the  Lion  to  St  Mark,  the  Ox  to  St  Luke,  and  the 
Eagle  to  St  John^.  The  reasons  offered  for  the  adoption  of  these 
emblems  also  differed  ;  but  it  was  usually  said  that  the  Man  is 
assigned  to  St  Matthew  because  he  brings  out  Christ's  human 
and  Messianic  character ;  the  Lion  to  St  Mark  because  he  sets 
forth  the  awfulness  (x.  24,  32),  energy,  power  and  royal  dignity 
(i.  22,  27,  ii.  10,  V.  30,  vi.  2,  5,  &c.)  of  Christ ;  the  Ox,  the  sacri- 
ficial victim,  to  St  Luke,  because  he  illustrates  the  Priestly  office 
of  Christ;  and  the  Eagle  to  St  John,  because,  as  St  Augustine 
says,  "he  soars  to  heaven  as  an  eagle  above  the  clouds  of 
human  infirmity,  and  reveals  to  us  the  mysteries  of  Christ's 
Godhead,  and  of  the  Trinity  in  Unity,  and  the  felicities  of  Life 
Eternal  ;  and  gazes  on  the  light  of  Immutable  Truth  with  a 
keen  and  steady  ken 2."  Thus,  to  quote  the  eloquent  language 
of  Bishop  Wordsworth,  "The  Christian  Church,  looking  at  the 
origin  of  the  Four  Gospels,  and  the  attributes  which  God  has 
in  rich  measure  been  pleased  to  bestow  upon  them  by  His 
Holy  Spirit,  found  a  Prophetic  picture  of  them  in  the  Four 
living  Cherubim,  named  from  heavenly  knowledge,  seen  by  the 
Prophet  Ezekiel  at  the  river  of  Chebar.  Like  them  the  Gospels 
are  Four  in  number ;  like  them  they  are  the  Chariot  of  God 
Who  sitteth  between  the  Cherubim  ;  like  them,  they  bear  Him 
on  a  winged  throne  into  all  lands  ;  like  them  they  move  wher- 
ever the  Spirit  guides  them  :  like  them  they  are  marvellously 
joined  together,  intertwined  with  coincidences  and  differences  ; 
wing  interwoven  with  wing,  and  wheel  interwoven  with  wheel : 
like  them  they  are  full  of  eyes,  and  sparkle  with  heavenly  light : 
like  them  they  sweep  from  heaven  to  earth,  and  from  earth  to 
heaven,  and  fly  with  lightning  speed  and   with   the   noise  of 


1  See  Mrs  Jameson's  Sacred  and  Legendary  Art,  I.  132 — r?!. 
'  Aug.  De  Consens.  Evang.  i. 


14  INTRODUCTION. 


many  waters.  Thrir  •^onnd  is  gone  out  into  all  lands,  and  their 
words  to  the  end  of  the  ivorld'^P 

But  whatever  may  be  the  archaeological  and  artistic  interest 
of  these  universal  symbols,  it  must  be  admitted  that  they  are 
fanciful  and  arbitrary  ;  and  this  is  rendered  more  obvious 
from  the  varying  manner  in  which  they  used  to  be  employed 
and  justified.  It  is  much  more  important  to  get  some  clear  and 
unimaginative  conception  of  the  distinctive  peculiarities  of  each 
Evangelist.     And  at  this  it  is  not  difficult  to  arrive. 

Combining  the  data  furnished  by  early  and  unanimous  tra- 
dition with  the  data  furnished  by  the  Gospels  themselves  we 
see  generally  that, 

i.  St  Matthew  wrote  in  Judaea,  and  wrote  for  Jews,  possi- 
bly even  in  Aramaic,  as  was  the  general  belief  of  the  early 
Church.  If  so,  however,  the  Aramaic  original  is  hopelessly  lost, 
and  there  is  at  least  a  possibility  that  there  may  have  been  a 
confusion  between  a  supposed  Hebrew  Gospel  of  St  Matthew 
and  the  "  Gospel  of  the  Hebrews,"  which  may  have  been  chiefly 
based  on  it  and  which  was  in  use  among  the  Nazarenes 
and  Ebionites.  However  that  may  be,  the  object  which  St 
Matthew  had  in  view  goes  far  to  illustrate  the  specialities 
of  his  Gospel.  It  is  the  Gospel  of  the  Hebrew  nation  ;  the 
Gospel  of  the  Past,  the  Gospel  oi  Jesus  as  the  Messiah"^.  Thus 
it  opens  with  the  words  "  The  book  of  the  generation  of  Jesus 
Christ  the  son  of  David,  the  son  of  Abraham :" — the  son  of 
David  and  therefore  the  heir  of  the  Je\vish  kingdom :  the  son  of 
Abraham  and  therefore  the  heir  of  the  Jewish  promise.  That  it 
is  the  Gospel  which  connects  Christianity  with  Judaism  and  with 

^   Grrek  Test.,  The  Four  Gospels,  p.  xli. 

'  Tt  should  be  carefully  borne  in  mind  that  these  characteristics  are 
merely  general  and  relative.  It  is  not  meant  that  the  Evangelists 
represent  our  Blessed  Lord  exelu.nvely,  but  orAj  predominajitly,  under 
the  aspects  here  mentioned.  It  must  not  be  supposed  that  any  one  of 
the  Evangelists  wrote  with  a  deliberate  subjective  bias.  They  dealt 
with  facts  not  theories,  and  in  no  way  modified  those  facts  in  the 
interests  of  any  sjiecial  view.  It  is  only  from  the  grouping  of  those 
facts,  and  from  the  prominence  given  to  particular  incidents  or  ex- 
pressions throughout  the  several  Gospels,  that  we  deduce  the  predomi- 
nant conceptions  of  the  inspired  writers. 


INTRODUCTION.  15 


the  Past  appears  in  the  constantly  recurrent  formula  '■'that  it 
might  be  fulfilled.''  So  completely  is  the  work  of  Christ  re- 
o-arded  as  the  accomplishment  of  Prophecy  that  in  no  less  than 
five  incidents  narrated  in  the  first  two  chapters,  the  Evangelist 
points  to  the  verification  of  ancient  predictions.  Another  marked 
peculiarity  of  the  Gospel  is  its  didactic  character.  It  re- 
cords with  fulness  five  great  discourses— rThe  sermon  on  the 
Mount^;  the  address  to  the  Apostles";  the  parables  on  the 
Kingdom  of  Heaven^ ;  the  discourse  on  Offences  and  on  For- 
giveness'*; and  the  discourses  and  parables  of  Judgment  ^ 
These  discourses, — which  all  bear  on  the  triple  offices  of  our 
Lord  as  Lawgiver,  King,  and  Judge  of  the  New  Kingdom, — 
make  the  Gospel  of  St  Matthew  "as  it  were  the  ultimatum 
of  Jehovah  to  His  ancient  people; — Recognise  Jesus  as  your 
Messiah,  or  accept  Him  as  your  Judge"." 

ii.  St  Mark  wrote  in  Rome  for  the  Roman  world,  during 
the  imprisonment  and  before  the  death  of  his  teacher  and 
spiritual  father,  St  Peter  (i  Pet.  v.  13).  His  Gospel  is  emphati- 
cally the  Gospel  of  the  Present;  the  Gospel  of  Jesus  apart  from 
retrospect  or  prophecy  ;  of  Jesus  as  the  Lord  of  the  World. 
The  speech  of  St  Peter  to  Cornelius  has  been  called  "the 
Gospel  of  St  Mark  in  brief"  St  Mark's  Gospel  consists  of 
"  Apostolic  Memoirs  "  marked  by  the  graphic  vividness  which 
is  due  to  the  reminiscences  of  an  eyewitness ;  it  is  the  Gospel 
of  which  it  was  the  one  aim  to  describe  our  Lord  as  He  lived 
and  moved  among  men.  The  notion  that  St  Mark  was  a  mere 
compiler  of  St  Matthew  {tatiiquam  pedissequus  et  breviator  ejus, 
Aug.)  has  long  been  exploded.  He  abounds  in  independent 
notices  which  have  led  many  Germans  to  regard  his  Gospel,  or 


3 


XUl. 


XXV.  This  predominance  of  discourses  has  however  no 
bearing  on  the  term  logia  ('oracles')  applied  by  Papias  to  the  Gospel 
of  St  Matthew. 

®  Godet,  Bibl.  Studies,  E.  Tr.  p.  23.  But  it  must  be  remembered 
that  St  Matthew's  point  of  view  is  so  "little  exclusive  that  he  can  admit 
passages  which  point  to  the  evanescence  of  the  Law  (Matt.  ix.  16,  xii.  7,  8, 
&c.)  and  the  spread  of  the  Gospel  (xiii.  31  sq.,  xxvii.  19);  and  he  alone 
narrates  the  recognition  of  Christ  by  the  heathen  Magi  (ii.  i  sq.). 


i6  INTRODUCTION. 


some  form  of  it,  as  the  original  Gospel  {Proto- Marcus,  Ur- 
Marcus);  but  this  theory  is  now  more  or  less  abandoned. 

iii.  St  Luke  wrote  in  Greece  for  the  Hellenic  worlds  In 
style  this  Gospel  is  the  purest;  in  order  the  most  artistic  and 
historical.  It  forms  the  first  half  of  a  great  narrative  which 
traced  the  advance  of  Christianity  from  Jerusalem  to  Antioch, 
to  Macedonia,  to  Achaia,  to  Ephesus,  to  Rome.  Hence  it 
neither  leans  to  the  yearnings  of  the  past*,  nor  is  absorbed  in 
the  glories  of  the  present,  but  is  written  with  special  reference 
to  the  aspirations  of  the  future.  It  sets  forth  Jesus  to  us  neither 
as  the  Messiah  of  the  Jews  only,  nor  as  the  Universal  Ruler, 
but  as  the  Saviour  of  sinners.  It  is  a  Gospel  not  national,  but 
cosmopolitan  ;  not  regal,  but  human.  It  is  the  Gospel  for  the 
world ;  it  connects  Christianity  with  man.  Hence  the  genealogy 
of  Jesus  is  traced  not  only  to  David  and  to  Abraham,  but  to 
Adam  and  to  God  I 

iv.  One  more  great  sphere  of  existence  remained — Eternity. 
Beyond  these  records  of  dawning  and  expanding  Christianity, 
there  was  needed  some  record  of  Christianity  in  its  inmost  life ; 
something  which  should  meet  the  wants  of  the  spirit  and  of  the 
reason  :  and  St  John  dropped  the  great  keystone  into  the  soar- 
ing arch  of  Christian  revelation,  when,  inspired  by  the  Holy 
Ghost,  he  drew  the  picture  of  Christ,  neither  as  Messiah  only 
nor  as  King  only,  nor  even  only  as  the  Saviour  of  mankind,  but 
as  tJie  Incarnate  Word; — not  only  as  the  Son  of  Man  who 
ascended  into  heaven,  but  as  the  Son  of  God  who  came  down 

^  Hence  he  omits  particulars  (e.g.  in  the  Sermon  on  the  Mount) 
which  would  have  been  less  intelligible  to  Greek  readers,  and  substitutes 
Epi states  or  Didaskalos  ('Master'  or  'Teacher')  for  Rabbi;  'lawyer' 
for  'scribe;'  'yea'  or  'verily'  for  Amen;  the  Greek  phoros  for  the  Latin 
census;  the  Lake  for  the  Sea  of  Galilee,  &c. 

^  Thus  St  Luke  has  only  -24  Old  Test,  quotations  as  against  65  of 
St  Matthew,  and  (except  iv.  18,  19)  none  which  are  peculiar  to  himself, 
except  in  the  first  two  (i.  [7 — 25,  ii,  23,  24)  and  the  22nd  and  23rd 
chapters  (xxii.  37,  xxiii.  31,  46). 

^  Yet  St  Luke  never  excludes  passages  which  speak  of  the  spiritual 
perpetuity  of  the  Law  (xvi.  17)  and  obedience  to  it  (ii.  22  sq.,  v.  14,  &c.). 
Sec  too  i.  32,  ii.  49,  xix.  46,  xxii.  30.  This  is  of  course  due  to  the  fact 
that  the  Evangelists  were  primarily  faithful  recorders,  and  were  in  no 
way  actuated  by  party  bias. 


INTRODUCTION.  17 


from  heaven;  not  only  as  the  Divine  Man  but  as  the  Incarnate 
God.  The  circle  of  Gospel  revelation  was,  as  it  were,  finally 
rounded  into  a  perfect  symbol  of  eternity  when  St  John  was 
inspired  to  write  that  "In  the  beginning  was  the  Word,  and 
the  Word  was  with  God,  and  the  Word  was  God.. ..And  the 
Word  was  made  flesh,  and  dwelt  among  us,  and  we  beheld  His 
glory,  the  glory  as  of  the  only  begotten  of  the  Father,  full 
of  grace  and  truth." 

To  sum  up  these  large  generalizations  in  a  form  which  has 
been  recognised  by  all  thoughtful  students  as  giving  us  a  true 
though  not  an  exclusive  or  exhaustive  aspect  of  the  differences  of 
the  Four  Gospels,  we  may  say  that 

St  Matthew's  is  the  Gospel  for  the  Jews  ;  the  Gospel  of  the 
Past ;  the  Gospel  which  sees  in  Christianity  a  fulfilment  of 
Judaism;  the  Gospel  of  Discourses;  the  Didactic  Gospel;  the 
Gospel  which  represents  Christ  as  the  Messiah  of  the  Jew. 

St  Mark's  is  the  Gospel  for  the  Romans ;  the  Gospel  of  the 
Present ;  the  Gospel  of  incident ;  the  anecdotical  Gospel ;  the 
Gospel  which  represents  Christ  as  the  Son  of  God  and  Lord  of 
the  world. 

St  Luke's  is  the  Gospel  for  the  Greeks  ;  the  Gospel  of  the 
Future ;  the  Gospel  of  Progressive  Christianity,  of  the  Univer- 
sality and  Gratuitousness  of  the  Gospel ;  the  Historic  Gospel ; 
the  Gospel  of  Jesus  as  the  Good  Physician  and  the  Saviour  of 
Mankind. 

St  John's  is  pre-eminently  the  Gospel  for  the  Church ;  the 
Gospel  of  Eternity;  the  Spiritual  Gospel;  the  Gospel  of  Christ 
as  the  Eternal  Son,  and  the  Incarnate  Word. 

If  we  were  to  choose  special  mottoes  as  expressive  of  main 
characteristics  of  the  Gospels,  they  might  be  as  follows  : — 

St  Matthew:  ''  I  am  not  come  to  destroy  but  to  fulfil^'  v.  17. 

St   Mark :    "  Jesus   came preaching  the   Gospel  of  the 

Kingdom  of  God"  i.  14. 

St  Luke  :  "WJlo  went  about  doing  good,  and  healing  all  that 
were  oppressed  of  the  devil ^'  Acts  x.  38  (comp.  Lk.  iv.  18). 

St  John  :  "  The  Word  was  made  flesh,''  i.  H- 

ST    LUKE  2 


i8  INTRODUCTION. 


CHAPTER  II. 

LIFE     OF    ST     LUKE. 

"  Utilis  ille  labor,   per  quern  vixere  tot  aegri ; 
Utilior,  per  quem  tot  didicere  mori." 

"He  was  a  physician:  and  so  too  all  his  words  are  medicines  of  the 
drooping  soul."     S.  Jer.  Ep.  ad  Paulin. 

If  we  sift  what  we  know  about  St  Luke  from  mere  guesses 
and  tradition,  we  shall  find  that  our  information  respecting  him 
is  exceedingly  scanty. 

He  does  not  once  mention  himself  by  name  in  the  Gospel  or 
in  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles,  though  the  absolutely  unanimous 
voice  of  ancient  tradition,  coinciding  as  it  does  with  many  con- 
spiring probabilities  derived  from  other  sources,  can  leave 
no  shadow  of  doubt  that  he  was  the  author  of  those  books. 

There  are  but  three  places  in  Scripture  in  which  his  name  is 
mentioned.  These  are  Col.  iv.  14,  "Luke,  the  beloved  physician, 
and  Demas,  greet  you;"  2  Tim.  iv.  11,  "  Only  Luke  is  with  me;" 
and  Philem.  24,  where  he  is  mentioned  as  one  of  Paul's  "fellow- 
labourers."  From  these  we  see  that  St  Luke  was  the  faithful 
companion  of  St  Paul,  both  in  his  first  Roman  imprisonment, 
when  he  still  had  friends  about  him,  and  in  his  second  Roman 
imprisonment,  when  friend  after  friend  deserted  him,  and  was 
'ashamed  of  his  chain.'  From  the  context  of  the  first  allusion 
we  also  learn  that  he  was  not  "of  the  circumcision,"  and  indeed 
tradition  has  always  declared  that  he  was  a  Gentile,  and  a 
'proselyte  of  the  gate^' 

The  attempt  to  identify  him  with  "Lucius  of  Cyrene"  in  Acts 
xiii.  I  is  a  mere  error,  since  his  name  Lucas  is  an  abbreviation 
not  of  Lucius  but  of  Luc.mus,  as  Annas  for  Ananus,  Zenas  for 
Zenodorus,  ApoUos  for  Apollonius,  &c.  The  guess  that  he  was 
one  of  the  Seventy  disciples  is  refuted  by  his  own  words,  nor  is 

^  This  also  appears  from  Acts  i.  19.  (See  my  Life  of  St  Paul,  i.  480.) 


INTRODUCTION.  19 


there  any  probability  that  he  was  one  of  the  Greeks  who  desired 
to   see   Jesus    (John  xii.    20)   or   one   of  the   two   disciples   at 
Emmaus  (Luke  xxiv.  13).  Eusebius  and  Jerome  say  that  he  was  a 
Syrian  of  Antioch,  and  this  agrees  with  the  intimate  knowledge 
which  he  shews  about  the  condition  and  the  teachers  of  that 
Church.     If  in  Acts  xi.  28  we  could  accept  the  isolated  reading 
of  the  Codex  Bezae  (a  reading  known  also  to  St  Augustine), 
which  there  adds  a-wea-rpaiinevcov  Se  i]ijlwv,  'but  while  TOt^  were 
assembled  together,'  it  would  prove  that  St  Luke  had  been  ac- 
quainted with  the  Apostle  shortly  after  his  arrival  from  Tarsus 
to  assist  the  work  of  Barnabas.     In  that  case  he  may  well  have 
been  one  of  the  earliest  Gentile  converts  whom  St  Paul  admitted 
into  the  full  rights  of  Christian  brotherhood,  and  with  whom 
St  Peter  was  afterwards,  for  one  weak  moment,  ashamed  to  eat. 
We  cannot  however  trace  his  connexion  with  St  Paul  with  any 
certainty  till  the  sudden  appearance  of  the  first  personal  pronoun 
in  the  plural  in  Acts  xvi.  10,  from  which  we  infer  that  he  joined 
the    Apostle   at   Troas,   and  accompanied   him   to  Macedonia, 
becoming  thereby  one  of  the  earliest  Evangelists  in  Europe.     It 
is  no  unreasonable  conjecture  that  his  companionship  was  the 
more  necessary  because  St  Paul  had  been    recently  suffering 
from  an  acute  visitation    of   the  malady  which  he   calls  "the 
stake,  or  cross,  in  the  flesh."     Since  the  "we"  is  replaced  by 
"  //ley"   after   the    departure   of  Paul   and  Silas  from  Philippi 
(Acts  xvii.   i),  we  infer  that   St   Luke  was  left  at  that  town  in 
charge  of  the  infant   Macedonian  Church.     A  physician  could 
find  means  of  livelihood  anywhere,  and  he  seems  to  have  stayed 
at  Philippi  for  some  seven  years,  for  we  find  him  in  that  Roman 
colony   when  the  Apostle  spent   an   Easter  there    on  his  last 
visit  to  Jerusalem  (Acts  xx.  5).     There  is  however  every  reason 
to  believe  that  during  this  period  he  was  not  idle,  for  if  he  were 
"the  brother,  whose  praise  is  in  the  Gospel"  (i.e.  in  preaching  the 
good  tidings)  "throughout  all  the  churches"  (2  Cor.  viii.  18),  we 
find  him  acting  with  Titus  as  one  of  the  delegates  for  the  collec- 
tion and  custody  of  the  contributions  for  the   poor  saints  at 
Jerusalem.     The  identification  of  St  Luke  with  this  brother  no 
doubt  originated  in  a  mistaken  notion  that  "the  Gospel"  here 

2 — 2 


20  INTRODUCTION. 


means  the  written  GospeU ;  but  it  is  probable  on  other  grounds, 
and  is  supported  by  the  tradition  embodied  in  the  superscrip- 
tion, which  tells  us  that  the  Second  Epistle  to  the  Corinthians 
was  conveyed  from  Philippi  by  Titus  and  Luke, 

From  PhiHppi  St  Luke  accompanied  his  friend  and  teacher  to 
Jerusalem  (Acts  xxi.  i8),  and  there  we  again  lose  all  record  of 
his  movements.  Since,  however,  he  was  with  St  Paul  at 
Caesarea  when  he  was  sent  as  a  prisoner  to  Rome,  it  is  proba- 
ble that  he  was  the  constant  companion  of  his  imprisonment  in 
that  town.  If  the  great  design  of  writing  the  Gospel  was  already 
in  his  mind,  the  long  and  otherwise  unoccupied  stay  of  two  years 
in  Caesarea  would  not  only  give  him  ample  leisure,  but  would 
also  furnish  him  with  easy  access  to  those  sources  of  information 
which  he  tells  us  he  so  diligently  used.  It  would  also  enable  him 
to  glean  some  particulars  of  the  ministry  of  Jesus  from  survivors 
amid  the  actual  scenes  where  He  had  lived.  From  Caesarea  he 
accompanied  St  Paul  in  the  disastrous  voyage  which  ended  in 
shipwreck  at  Malta,  and  proceeding  with  him  to  Rome  he  re- 
mained by  his  side  until  his  liberation,  and  probably  never  left 
him  until  the  great  Apostle  received  his  martyr's  crown.  To 
him — to  his  allegiance,  his  ability,  and  his  accurate  preservation 
of  facts — we  are  alone  indebted  for  the  greater  part  of  what  we 
know  of  the  Apostle  of  the  Gentiles. 

We  finally  lose  sight  of  St  Luke  at  the  abrupt  close  of  the  Acts 
of  the  Apostles.  Although  we  know  from  the  Pastoral  Epistles ^ 
that  he  must  have  lived  with  St  Paul  for  some  two  years  beyond 
the  point  which  his  narrative  has  there  reached,  he  may  not 
have  arranged  his  book  until  after  Paul  was  dead,  and  the  course 
of  the  narrative  may  have  been  suddenly  cut  short  either  by 
accident  or  even  by  his  own  death.  Irenaeus  {adv.  Haer.  in.  i) 
expressly  tells  us  that  even  his  Gospel  was  written  after  the 
death  of  Peter  and  Paul.  The  most  trustworthy  tradition  says 
that  he  died  in  Greece;  and  it  was  believed  that  Constantine 
transferred  his  remains  to  the  Church  of  the  Apostles  in  Con- 
stantinople from  Patrae  in  Achaia.  Gregory  of  Nazianzus  tells 
us  in  a  vague  way  that  he  was  martyred,  but  it  is  idle  to  repeat 

'  Jer.  De  Virr.  III.  7.  2  2  Tim.  iv.  11. 


INTRODUCTION.  21 

such  worthless  legends  as  that  he  was  crucified  on  an  olive-tree 
at  Elaea  in  the  Peloponnesus,  &c.,  which  rest  on  the  sole  authority 
of  Nicephorus,  a  writer  who  died  after  the  middle  of  the  15th 
century.  The  fancy  that  he  was  a  painter,  often  as  it  has  been 
embodied  in  art,  owes  its  origin  to  the  same  source,  and  seems 
only  to  have  arisen  from  the  discovery  of  a  rude  painting  of  the 
Virgin  in  the  Catacombs  with  an  inscription  stating  that  it 
was  "one  of  seven  painted  by  Luca."  It  is  not  impossible  that 
there  may  have  been  a  confusion  between  the  name  of  the 
Evangelist  and  that  of  a  Greek  painter  in  one  of  the  monasteries 
of  Mount  Athos. 

But  leaving  'the  shifting  quagmire  of  baseless  traditions'  we 
see  from  St  Luke's  own  writings,  and  from  authentic  notices  of 
him,  that  he  was  master  of  a  good  Greek  style; — an  accom- 
plished writer,  a  close  observer,  an  unassuming  historian,  a 
well-instructed  physician,  and  a  most  faithful  friend^.  If  the 
Theophilus  to  whom  he  dedicates  both  his  works  was  the 
Theophilus  mentioned  in  the  Clementines  as  a  wealthy  Antio- 
chene,  who  gave  up  his  house  to  the  preaching  of  St  Peter,  then 
St  Luke  may  have  been  his  freedman.  Physicians  frequently 
held  no  higher  rank  than  that  of  slaves,  and  Lobeck,  one  of  the 
most  erudite  of  modern  Greek  scholars,  has  noticed  that  con- 
tractions in  as  like  Lucas  from  Lucanus,  were  peculiarly  com- 
mon in  the  names  of  slaves.  One  more  conjecture  may  be  men- 
tioned. St  Luke's  allusions  to  nautical  matters,  especially  in 
Acts  xxvii.,  are  at  once  remarkably  accurate  and  yet  tmprofes- 
sionalva.  tone.  Now  the  ships  of  the  ancients  were  huge  con- 
structions, holding  sometimes  upwards  of  300  people,  and  in  the 
uncertain  length  of  the  voyages  of  those  days,  we  may  assume 
that  the  presence  of  a  physician  amid  such  multitudes  was  a 
matter  of  necessity.  Mr  Smith  of  Jordanhill,  in  his  admirable 
monograph  on  the  voyage  of  St  Paul,  has  hence  been  led  to 
the  inference  that  St  Luke  must  have  sometimes  exercised  his 

1  Dr  Plumptre,  in  the  Expositor  (No.  XX.  1876),  has  collected  many 
traces  of  St  Luke's  medical  knowledge  (cf.  Acts  ill.  7,  ix.  18,  x.  9,  10, 
xii.  23,  XX.  31,  xxvi.  7,  xxviii.  8;  Lk.  iv.  ■23,  xxii.  44,  &c.),  and  even 
of  its  possible  influence  on  the  language  of  St  Paul. 


22  INTRODUCTION. 


art  in  the  crowded  merchantmen  which  were  incessantly  coast- 
ing from  point  to  point  of  the  Mediterranean.  However  this 
may  be,  the  naval  experience  of  St  Luke  as  well  as  his  medical 
knowledge  would  have  rendered  him  a  most  valuable  com- 
panion to  the  suffering  Apostle  in  his  constant  voyages. 


CHAPTER  III. 

AUTHENTICITY   OF   THE  GOSPEL. 

Supposed  allusions  to  St  Luke's  Gospel  may  be  adduced 
from  Polycarp  (f  A.D.  167),  Papias,  and  Clement  of  Rome  (a.D. 
95) ;  but  passing  over  these  as  not  absolutely  decisive,  it  is 
certain  that  the  Gospel  was  known  to  Justin  Martyr  (f  A.D.  168), 
who,  though  he  does  not  name  the  authors  of  the  Gospels, 
makes  distinct  reference  to  them,  and  has  frequent  allusions  to, 
and  citations  from,  the  Gospel  of  St  Luke.  Thus  he  refers  to 
the  Annunciation  and  the  Enrolment  in  the  days  of  Quirinius ; 
the  sending  of  Jesus  bound  to  Herod,  the  last  words  on  the 
cross,  &c. ;  and  uses  in  various  instances  language  only  found 
in  this  Gospel. 

Hegesippus  has  at  least  two  passages  which  appear  to  be 
verbal  quotations  from  Luke  xx.  21,  xxiii.  24. 

The  Gospel  is  mentioned  as  the  work  of  St  Luke  in  the 
Muratorian  Fragment  on  the  Canon,  of  which  the  date  is  not 
later  than  A.D.  170. 

Among  heretics  it  was  known  to,  and  used  by,  the  Ophites; 
by  the  Gnostics,  Basilides  and  Valentinus  ;  by  Heracleon  (about 
A.D.  180),  who  wrote  a  comment  on  it;  by  the  author  of  the 
Pis  (is  Sophia;  and  by  Marcion  (about  A.D.  140),  who  not  only 
knew  the  Gospel,  but  adopted  it  as  the  basis  of  his  own  Gospel 
with  such  mutilations  as  suited  his  peculiar  heresies.  This  fact 
is  not  only  asserted  by  Irenaeus,  TertuUian,  Epiphanius,  &c.,  but 
may  now  be  regarded  as  conclusively  proved  by  Volkmar,  and 
accepted  by  modern  criticism.  Marcion  omitted  chapters  i.  ii. 
and  joined  iii.  i  with  iv.  31. 


INTRODUCTION.  23 


It  is  alluded  to  in  the  Clementine  Homilies  (about  A.D.  175) 
and  Recognitions  ;  and  in  the  Epistle  of  the  Churches  of  Vienna 
and  Lyons,  A.D.  177. 

Celsus  refers  to  the  genealogy  of  Christ  as  traced  upwards 
to  Adam. 

Theophilus  of  Antioch  (a.d.  170)  makes  direct  allusions  to  it. 

Irenaeus  (about  A.D.  180)  expressly  attributes  it  to  St  Luke; 
Tertullian  (f  A.D.  220)  and  Clemens  of  Alexandria  (f  about  A.D. 
216)  also  quoted  it  as  St  Luke's.  Origen  (f  A.D.  254)  speaks  of 
the  'Four  Gospels  admitted  by  all  the  Churches  under  heaven  ;' 
and  Eusebius  ranks  it  among  the  homologoiimena,  i.e.  those  works 
of  whose  genuineness  and  authenticity  there  was  no  doubt  in 
the  Church. 

It  is  found  in  the  Peshito  Syriac  (3rd  or  4th  century),  and 
the  Vetus  Itala. 


CHAPTER  IV. 

CHARACTERISTICS  OF  THE  GOSPEL. 

"  God  sending  His  own  Son  in  the  likeness  of  sinful  flesh." 

Rom.  viii.  3. 

"  The  Son  of  Man  is  come  to  seek  and  to  save  that  which  was  lost." 

Luke  xix.  10. 

"Whose  joy  is,  to  the  wandering  sheep 

To  tell  of  the  great  shepherd's  love; 

To  learn  of  mourners  while  they  weep 

The  music  that  makes  mirth  above; 

"Who  makes  the  Gospel  all  his  theme, 

The  Gospel  all  his  pride  and  praise." 

KE13LE,  St  laike's  Day. 

This  rich  and  precious  Gospel  is  marked,  as  are  the  others, 
by  special  characteristics. 

Thus  : 

(i)  St  Luke  must  be  ranked  as  the  first  Christian  liym- 
noloHst.    It  is  to  his  inspired  care  that  we  owe  the  preservation 


24  INTRODUCTION. 


of  three  sacred  hymns,  besides  the  Ave  Maria  (i.  28—33) 
and  the  Gloria  in  Excelsis  (ii.  14),  which  have  been  used 
for  ages  in  the  worship  of  the  Church  :— the  Benedictus,  or 
Song  of  Zacharias  (i.  68—79),  used  in  our  Morning  Service  ; 
the  Magnificat,  or  Song  of  the  Blessed  Virgin  (i.  46— 5S) ; 
and  the  Nunc  Dimittis,  or  Song  of  Symeon  (ii.  29—32), 
used  in  our  Evening  Serviced  In  these  Canticles  the  New 
Aeon  is  represented  not  merely  as  the  fulfilment  of  the  Old, 
but  also  as  a  kingdom  of  the  Spirit ;  as  a  spring  of  life  and 
joy  opened  to  the  world  ;  as  a  mystery,  prophesied  of  indeed 
because  it  is  eternal,  but  now  in  the  appointed  time  revealed 
to  men''^. 

(ii)  In  this  Gospel  thanksgiving  is  also  prominent.  "  The 
Gospel  of  the  Saviour  begins  with  hymns,  and  ends  with 
praises ;  and  as  the  thanksgivings  of  the  meek  are  recorded  in 
the  first  chapter,  so  in  the  last  we  listen  to  the  gratitude  of 
the  faithful^."  Mention  is  made  no  less  than  seven  times  of 
'glorifying  God'  by  the  utterance  of  gratitude  and  praise  (ii.  20, 
V.  25,  vii.  16,  xiii.  13,  xvii.  15,  xviii.  43,  xxiii.  47). 

(iii)  It  also  gives  special  prominence  to  Prayer.  It  not  only 
records  (as  Matt,  vi.)  the  Lord's  Prayer,  but  alone  preserves  to 
us  the  fact  that  our  Lord  prayed  on  six  distinct  and  memorable 
occasions,  (i)  At  His  baptism.  (2)  After  cleansing  the  leper. 
(3)  Before  calling  the  Twelve  Apostles.  (4)  At  His  Trans- 
figuration. (5)  On  the  Cross  for  His  murderers,  and  (6)  with 
His  last  breath ^  St  Luke  too,  like  St  Paul,  insists  on  the  duty 
of  unceasing  Prayer  as  taught  by  Christ  (xviii.  i,  xi,  8,  xxi.  36, 
Rom.  xii.  12,  &c.)  ;  and  emphasizes  this  instruction  by  alone 
recording  the  two  Parables  which  encourage  us  to  a  per-' 
sistent  energy,  a  holy  importunity,  a  storming  of  the  kingdom  of 
Heaven  by  violence  in  our  prayers — the  parables  of  the  Friend 
at  Midnight  (xi.  5 — 13)  and  of  the  Unjust  Judge  (xviii.  i — 8). 

^  "Thou  hast  an  ear  for  angel  songs, 

A  breath  the  Gospel  trump  to  fill, 
And  taught  by  thee  the  Church  prolongs 

Her  hymns  of  high  thanksgiving  still." — Keble. 
*  See  Maurice,  Unity  of  the  New  Testament,  p.  236. 
'  Westcott,  Introd.  to  Gospels,  p.  354.  *  See  p.  92. 


INTRODUCTION.  25 


(iv)  But  the  Gospel  is  marked  mainly  by  its  presentation  of 
the  Good  Tidings  in  their  universality  and  gratuitousness.  It  is 
pre-eminently  the  Gospel  of  pardon  and  of  pity.  "  By  grace  ye 
are  saved  through  faith  1,"  and  "the  second  man  is  the  Lord 
from  heaven"  (i  Cor.  xv.  47)2,  might  stand  as  the  motto  of 
St  Luke  as  of  St  Paul,  Thus  the  word  'grace'  {charis,  eight 
times),  '  saviour '  and  '  salvation '  (only  once  each  in  St  John), 
and  'tell  glad  tidings  of  (ten  times),  occur  in  it  far  more  fre- 
quently than  in  the  other  Gospels ;  and  these  are  apphed  neither 
to  Jews  mainly,  nor  to  Gentiles  mainly,  but  universally^.  It 
is  the  Gospel  of  "a  Saviour"  and  of  "good  will  towards 
men;"  the  Gospel  of  Jesus,  not  only  as  the  heir  of  David's 
throne,  and  of  Abraham's  promise,  but  as  the  Federal  Head 
and  Representative  of  Humanity — "  the  son  of  Adam,  which  was 
the  Son  of  God."  And  what  a  picture  does  this  great  ideal 
painter  set  forth  to  us  of  Christ!  He  comes  with  angel  carols  ; 
He  departs  with  priestly  benediction.  We  catch  our  first 
glimpse  of  Him  in  the  manger-cradle  at  Bethlehem,  our  last 
as  from  the  slopes  of  Olivet  He  vanishes  "into  the  cloud" 
with  pierced  hands  upraised  to  bless !  The  Jewish  religion  of 
that  day  had  degenerated  into  a  religion  of  hatreds.  The  then 
'religious  world,'  clothing  its  own  egotism  under  the  guise  of 
zeal  for  God,  had  for  the  most  part  lost  itself  in  a  frenzy  of  de- 
testations. The  typical  Pharisee  hated  the  Gentiles;  hated  the 
Samaritans  ;  hated  the  tax-gatherers.  He  despised  poverty  and 
despised  womanhood.  In  St  Luke,  towards  every  age,  towards 
either  sex,  towards  all  nations,  towards  all  professions,  towards 
men  of  every  opinion  and  every  shade  of  character,  our  Blessed 
Lord  appears  as  Christus  Consolator  ;  the  good  Physician 
of  bodies  and  of  souls  ;   the  Gospeller  of  the  poor  ;  the  Brother 

^  XV.  II,  xvii.  10,  xviii.  11,  &c. 

^  Ku'pws, '  Lord,'  as  a  substitute  for  'Jesus,'  occurs  14  times  in  St  Luke, 
and  elsewhere  only  in  Mk.  xvi.  19,  ■20  of  the  Synoptists.  The  combina- 
tion "the  Lord  Jesus"  (if  genuine)  occurs  only  in  Lk.  xxiv.  3,  though 
common  in  the  Epistles.     See  note  on  that  verse. 

^  Sections  of  St  Luke  which  are  in  peculiar  accordance  with  those 
views  which  marked  the  Gospel  of  Si  Paul  (Rom.  ii.  16)  are  iv.  16 — 30, 
vii.  36 — 50,  xviii.  14,  xix.  i — 10,  xxiii.  39 — 43.  See  Van  Oosterzcein 
Lange's  Commentary,  Introd.  p.  3,  and  above,  p.  10. 


26  INTRODUCTION. 


who  loves  all  His  brethren  in  the  great  family  of  man  ;  the 
unwearied  healer  and  ennobler  of  sick  and  suffering  humanity; 
the  Desire  of  all  nations  ;  the  Saviour  of  the  world,  who  "  went 
about  doing  good  "  (Acts  x.  38).  In  accordance  with  this  con- 
ception, 

(v)  St  Luke  reveals  especially  the  sacredness  of  infancy. 
He  alone  tells  us  of  the  birth  and  infancy  of  the  Baptist  ;  the 
Annunciation;  the  meeting  of  Mary  and  Elizabeth;  the  songs 
of  the  herald  Angels  ;  the  Circumcision  ;  the  Presentation  in 
the  Temple  ;  the  growth  in  universal  favour  and  sweet  sub- 
mission. And  he  alone  preserves  the  one  anecdote  of  the  Con- 
firmation of  Jesus  at  twelve  years  old  which  is  the  solitary 
flower  gathered  from  the  silence  of  thirty  years.  Hence  this 
Gospel  is  preeminently  anti-docetic^.  St  Luke  alludes  to  the 
human  existence  of  our  Lord  before  birth  (i.  42)  ;  as  a  babe 
(ii.  16)  ;  as  a  little  child  (ii.  27)  ;  as  a  boy  (ii.  40)  ;  and  as  a 
man  (iii.  22). 

(vi)  He  dwells  especially  on  Christ's  ministry  to  the  world; 
that  He  was  to  be  a  Light  to  lighten  the  Gentiles,  as  well  as 
the  glory  of  His  people  Israel.  He  alone  adds  to  the  quotation 
from  Isaiah  respecting  the  mission  of  the  Baptist  the  words 
"And  ALL  FLESH  shall  see  the  salvation  of  God."  He  alone 
introduces  the  parallels  of  Elijah  sent  to  the  heathen  Sarepta, 
and  Elisha  healing  the  heathen  Naaman ;  as  well  as  full 
details  of  that  mission  of  the  Seventy  who  by  their  number 
typified  a  mission  to  the  supposed  number  of  the  nations  of 
the  world.  St  Luke's  Gospel  might  stand  as  a  comment  on  the 
words  of  St  Paul  at  Athens,  that  God  "  hath  made  of  one 
blood  all  nations  of  men... that  they  should  seek  the  Lord,  if 
haply  they  might  feel  after  Him,  and  find  Him,  though  He  be 
not  far  from  every  one  of  us  "  (Acts  xvii.  27). 

(vii)  St  Luke's  is  specially  the  Gospel  of  Wotnanhood,  and  he 
prominently  records  the  graciousness  and  tenderness  of  Christ 
towards  many  women.  He  tells  us  how  Jesus  raised  the  dead 
boy  at  Nain,  being  touched  with  compassion  because  "he  was 

^  See  Van  Oosterzee,  Introd.  p.  4.  The  Docetae  were  an  ancient 
heretical  sect  who  denied  the  true  humanity  of  Christ. 


INTRODUCTION.  27 

the  only  son  of  his  mother,  and  she  was  a  widow."  He  alone 
tells  us  the  remarkable  fact  that  Jesus  in  his  earlier  mission 
journeys  was  accompanied  not  by  warriors  like  David,  not  by 
elders  like  Moses,  not  by  nobles  and  kings  like  the  Herods,  but 
by  a  most  humble  band  of  ministering  women  (viii.  i — 3).  His 
narrative  in  the  first  two  chapters  must  have  been  derived  from 
the  Virgin  Mary,  and  has  been  thought  to  shew  in  every  line 
the  pure  and  tender  colouring  of  a  woman's  thoughts.  He  alone 
mentions  the  widow  Anna  (ii.  36),  and  tells  us  about  eager 
Martha  cumbered  with  serving,  and  Mary  choosing  the  better 
part  (x.  38 — 42)  ;  he  alone  how  our  Lord  once  addressed  to  a 
poor,  crushed,  trembling,  humiliated  woman  the  tender  name  of 
"  daughter"  (viii.  48),  and  how  He  spoke  of  another  as  a  daughter 
of  Abraham  (xiii.  16);  he  alone  how  He  at  once  consoled  and 
warned  the  "daughters  of  Jerusalem"  who  followed  Him  weep- 
ing to  Calvary  (xxiii.  28).  The  Scribes  and  Pharisees  gathered 
up  their  robes  in  the  streets  and  synagogues  lest  they  should 
touch  a  woman,  and  held  it  a  crime  to  look  on  an  unveiled 
woman  in  public  ;  our  Lord  suffered  a  woman  to  minister  to 
Him  out  of  whom  He  had  cast  seven  devils 

(viii)  He  seems  to  delight  in  all  the  records  which  told  of  the 
mercy  of  the  Saviour  towards  the  poor,  the  humble,  the  de- 
spised i^\.n\,  vi.  20 — 25,30,  viii.  2,3,  xii.  16 — 21,  33,  xvi.  13, 19 — 25, 
xiv.  12 — 15,  &c.).  Hence  his  Gospel  has  even  been  called  (though 
very  erroneously)  the  Gospel  of  the  Ebionites.  He  narrates  the 
Angel  Visit  to  the  humble  maiden  of  Nazareth  ;  the  Angel 
Vision  to  the  humble  shepherds  ;  the  recognition  of  Jesus  in  the 
Temple  by  the  unknown  worshipper,  and  the  aged  widow.  He 
records  the  beatitudes  to  the  poor  and  the  hungry,  the  parables 
of  Dives  and  Lazarus  and  of  the  Rich  Fool ;  the  invitation  of 
"the  poor,  the  maimed,  the  halt,  the  blind"  to  the  Great  Supper; 
the  exaltation  of  the  humble  who  choose  the  lowest  seats ;  the 
counsel  to  the  disciples  to  "sell  what  they  have,"  and  to  the 
Pharisees  to  "give  alms."  He  does  not  denounce  riches,  but 
only  the  wealth  that  is  not  "  rich  towards  God ;"  nor  does  he 
pronounce  a  beatitude  upon  poverty  in  the  abstract,  but  only  on 
the  poverty  which  is  patient  and  submissive.  He  had  learnt  from 


28  INTRODUCTION. 


his  Lord  to  'measure  wisdom  by  simplicity,  strength  by  suffer- 
ing, dignity  by  lowliness.' 

(ix)  Further,  it  is  specially  the  Gospel  of  the  outcast, — of  the 
Samaritan  (ix.  52 — 56,  xvii.  11— 19),  the  Pubhcan,  the  harlot, 
and  the  Prodigal.  Jesus  came  to  seek  and  to  save  that  which 
was  lost  (xix.  10).  See  instances  in  Zacchjeus  (xix.  i — 10) ;  the 
Prodigal  Son  ;  Mary  of  Magdala  (vii,  36 — 50) ;  the  woman  with 
the  issue  of  blood  (viii.  43 — 48) ;  the  dying  robber  (xxiii.  39 — 43). 
This  peculiarity  is  doubtless  due  to  that  intense  spirit  of  sym- 
pathy which  led  St  Luke  alone  of  the  Evangelists  to  record  that 
the  boy  of  Nain  was  the  only  son  of  his  mother  (vii.  12);  and 
the  'little  maid'  of  Jairus  his  only  daughter  (viii.  42);  and  the 
lunatic  boy  his  father's  only  son  (ix.  38). 

(x)  Lastly,  it  is  the  Gospel  of  tolerance.  There  was  a  deadly 
blood-feud  between  the  Jews  and  the  Samaritans,  and  St  Luke 
is  careful  to  record  how  Jesus  praised  the  one  grateful  Samari- 
tan leper,  and  chose  the  good  Samaritan  rather  than  the  indif- 
ferent Priest  and  icy-hearted  Levite  as  the  type  of  love  to  our 
neighbour.  He  also  records  two  special  and  pointed  rebukes  of 
the  Saviour  against  the  spirit  of  intolerance : — one  when  the 
Sons  of  Thunder  wanted  to  call  down  fire  from  heaven  on  the 
churlish  Samaritan  village — Ye  know  not  what  ma7i7ter  of 
spirit  ye  are  of.  For  the  Son  of  Man  is  not  come  to  destroy  nien^s 
lives,  but  to  save  the^n:  the  other  when  he  rebuked  the  narrow- 
ness which  said  "  We  forbad  him,  because  he  followeth  not  us," 
with  the  words  Forbid  him  not;  for  he  that  is  not  against  us  is 
for  us  ^. 

We  may  notice  lastly  that  St  Luke's  Gospel  is  characterised  by 

(xi)      Its  careful  chronological  order  (i.  3) ; 

(xii)     Its  very  important  preface ;  and 

(xiii)    Its  command  of  the  Greek  language^. 

1  Lk.  ix.  49 — 56. 

*  "  Lucani  tradunt  veteres...inagis  Graecas  literas  scisse  quam  He- 
braeas.  Unde  et  sermo  ejus...comptior  est,  et  saecularem  redolet  elo- 
quentiam."  Jer.  ad  Damas.  Ep.  10.  Where  the  style  is  less  pure,  and 
abounds  in  Hebraisms,  we  find  internal  evidence  that  St  Luke  is 
closely  following  some  Aramaic  document  in  which  the  oral  tradition 
had  been  reduced  to  writing. 


INTRODUCTION.  29 


Although  there  is  an  Hebraic  tinge  in  the  hymns  and  speeches 
which  St  Luke  merely  records,  his  own  style  abounds  in  isolated 
phrases  and  words  chiefly  classical,  and  his  style  is  more  flowing 
than  that  of  St  Matthew  and  St  Mark.  His  pecuHar  skill  as  a 
writer  lies  rather  in  'psychologic  comments  S'  and  the  reproduc- 
tion of  conversations  with  their  incidents,  than  in  such  graphic 
and  vivid  touches  as  those  of  St  Mark.  He  is  also  a  great  master 
of  light  and  shade,  i.e.  he  shews  remarkable  skill  in  the  presen- 
tation of  profoundly  instructive  contrasts — e.g.  Zacharias  and 
Mary;  Simon  and  the  Sinful  Woman;  Martha  and  Mary;  the 
Pharisee  and  the  Pubhcan;  the  Good  Samaritan,  Priest,  and 
Levite ;  Dives  and  Lazarus ;  beatitudes  and  woes ;  tears  and 
Hosannas ;  and  the  penitent  and  impenitent  robber. 

It  is  the  presence  of  these  characteristics  that  has  earned  for 
this  Gospel  the  praise  of  being  "  the  most  beautiful  book  that 
has  ever  been  written  ^." 

The  Miracles  peculiar  to  St  Luke  are 

1.  The  miraculous  draught  of  fishes,     v.  4 — 11. 

2.  The  raising  of  the  widow's  son  at  Nain.     vii.  11 — 18. 

3.  The  woman  with  the  spirit  of  infirmity,     xiii.  11— 17. 

4.  The  man  with  the  dropsy,     xiv.  i — 6. 

5.  The  ten  lepers,     xvii.  1 1 — 19. 

6.  The  healing  of  Malchus.     xxii.  50,  51. 

The  Parables  peculiar  to  St  Luke  are 

1.  The  two  debtors,     vii.  41 — 43. 

2.  The  good  Samaritan,     x.  25 — 37. 

3.  The  importunate  friend,     xi.  5 — 8. 

4.  The  rich  fool.     xii.  16 — 21. 

5.  The  barren  fig-tree.     xiii.  6 — 9. 

1  iii.  15,  vi.  II,  vii.  29,  30,  39,  xvi.  14,  &c.  Bp  Ellicott,  Hist.  Led. 
p.  28.  ... 

2  This  praise  is  the  more  striking  because  of  the  source  from  which 
it  comes.  The  writer  adds  that  it  shews  "  un  admirable  sentiment 
populaire,  une  fine  et  touchante  poesie,  le  son  clair  et  pur  d  une  ame 
tout  argentine."  "  C'est  surtout  dans  les  recits  de  1  Knfance  et  de  la 
Passion  que  I'on  trouve  un  art  divin. . .  .Le  parti  qu  il  a  tire  de  Marthe 
et  de  Marie  sa  soeur  est  chose  merveilleuse ;  aucune  phime  n  a  laisse  torn- 
ber  dix  lignes  plus  charmantes.  L'episode  des  disciples  d  P.mmaus  est  un 
des  recits  les  plus  fins,  les  plus  nuances  qu'il  y  ait  dans  aucune  languc. 


30  INTRODUCTION. 


6.  The  lost  piece  of  silver,     xv.  8 — lo. 

7.  The  prodigal  son.     xv.  11 — 32. 

8.  The  unjust  steward,     xvi.  i — 13. 

9.  Dives  and  Lazarus,     xvi.  19 — 31. 
fo.  The  unjust  judge,     xviii.  i — 8. 

II.  The  Pharisee  and  the  publican,     xviii.  10 — 14. 

The  two  first  chapters  and  the  great  section,  ix.  51— xviii.  14, 
are  mainly  peculiar  to  St  Luke. 

And  in  addition  to  those  already  noted  above,  other  remark- 
able incidents  or  utterances  peculiar  to  him  are  John  the  Bap- 
tist's answers  to  the  people  (iii.  10 — 14)  ;  the  weeping  over 
Jerusalem  (xix.  41 — 44);  the  conversation  with  Moses  and 
Elias  (ix.  28—36) ;  the  bloody  sweat  (xxii.  44) ;  the  sending  of 
Jesus  to  Herod  (xxiii.  7—12);  the  address  to  the  Daughters  of 
Jerusalem  (27— 31) ;  the  prayer, "  Father,  forgive  them"  (xxiii.  34) ; 
the  penitent  robber  (40—43) ;  the  disciples  at  Emmaus  (xxiv.  13 — 
31);  particulars  of  the  Ascension  (xxiv.  50—53).  Additional 
touches  which  are  sometimes  of  great  importance  may  be  found 
in  iii.  22  ("  in  a  bodily  shape"),  iv.  13  ("for  a  season"),  iv.  1—6, 
V.  17,  29,  39,  vi.  II,  vii.  21,  &c. 


CHAPTER  V. 

ANALYSIS   OF  THE   GOSPEL. 

Many  writers  have  endeavoured  to  arrange  the  contents  of 
this  and  the  other  Gospels  in  schemes  illustrative  of  the  dog- 
matic connexions  in  accordance  with  which  the  various  sections 
are  supposed  to  be  woven  together  and  subordinated  to  each 
other.  Without  here  giving  any  opinion  about  the  other  Gospels, 
I  must  state  my  conviction  that,  as  far  as  St  Luke  is  concerned, 
such  hypothetic  arrangements  have  not  been  successful.  No 
two  writers  have  agreed  in  their  special  schemes,  and  the  fact 
that  each  writer  who  has  attempted  such  an  analysis  has  seized 
on  very  different  points  of  connexion,  shews  that  all  such  at- 


INTRODUCTION.  31 


tempts  have  been  more  or  less  arbitrary,  however  ingenious. 
It  seems  to  me  that  if  the  Gospels  had  been  arranged  on  these 
purely  subjective  methods  the  clue  to  such  arrangement  would 
have  been  more  obvious,  and  also  that  we  should,  in  that  case,  lose 
something  of  that  transparent  and  childlike  simplicity  of  motive 
which  adds  such  immense  weight  to  the  testimony  of  the  Evan- 
gelists as  the  narrators  of  simple  facts.  Nor  is  it  probable  that 
the  existence  of  this  subjective  symmetry  of  composition  would 
have  escaped  the  notice  of  so  many  centuries  of  Christian  stu- 
dents and  Fathers.  When  St  Luke  tells  Theophilus  that  he 
had  decided  to  set  forth  in  order  the  accepted  facts  of  the 
Christian  faith,  I  believe  that  the  order  he  had  in  view  was 
mainly  chronological,  and  that  the  actual  sequence  of  events, 
so  far  as  it  was  recoverable  from  the  narratives  (Stj/yrjo-fu)  or 
the  oral  sources  which  he  consulted,  was  his  chief  guide  in 
the  arrangement  of  his  GospeP.  Various  lessons  may  be 
observed  or  imagined  in  the  order  in  which  one  event  is 
placed  after  another,  but  these  lessons  lie  deep  in  the  chronolo- 
gical facts  themselves,  not  in  the  method  of  the  writer.  The 
sort  of  analysis  attempted  by  modern  writers  has  hitherto  only 
furnished  each  subsequent  analyst  with  an  opportunity  for  com- 
menting on  the  supposed  failures  of  his  predecessors.  For  those 
however  who  disagree  with  these  views,  able  and  thoughtful 
endeavours  to  set  forth  the  narrative  in  accordance  with  such  a 
predetermined  plan  may  be  found  in  Van  Oosterzee's  Introduc- 
tion, §  5,  in  Westcott's  Introductio7i  to  the  Gospels,  pp.  364—366, 
and  M'^Clellan's  New  Testament,  427 — 438. 

The  Gospel  falls  quite  simply  and  naturally  into  the  following 
sections  :— 

I.     Introduction,     i.  i — 4. 

II.     The  Preparation  for  the  Nativity,     i.  5—80. 

i.  Announcement  of  the  Forerunner,     i.  5 — 25. 

ii.  Announcement  of  the  Saviour.     26 — 38. 

iii.  Hymns  of  thanksgiving  of  Mary  and  Elizabeth.     39 — 56. 

^  The  subordinate  notes  of  time  in  the  great  section,  ix.  51— xviii.  14, 
are  vague. 


32  INTRODUCTION. 


iv.     Birth  and  Circumcision  of  the  Forerunner.    57 — 66. 

The  Benedictus.     67 — 79. 
V.     Growth  of  the  Forerunner.     80. 

III.  Nativity  of  the  Saviour,    ii,  i — 20. 

i.    The  Birth  in  the  Manger,     ii.  i — 7. 

Songs  and  thanksgivings  of  the  Angels  and  the  Shep- 
herds.    8 —  20. 

IV.  The  Infancy  of  the  Saviour,    ii.  21 — 38. 

i.    The  Circumcision,     ii.  21. 
ii.    The  Presentation  in  the  Temple.     22 — 24. 

Songs  and  thanksgivings  of  Simeon  and  Anna.     25 — 38. 

V.    The  Boyhood  of  the  Saviour,    ii.  39 — 52. 

i.  His  growth.     39,  40. 

ii.  His  first  visit  to  Jerusalem.     41 — 48. 

iii.  His  first  recorded  words.     49,  50. 

iv.  His  development  from  boyhood  to  manhood.     51,  52. 

VI.     The  Manifestation  of  the  Saviour  (iii.  i — iv.  13),  by 
L    The  preaching  of  John  the  Baptist,    iii.  i — 14,  and 
His  prophecy  of  the  coming  Messiah.     16 — 18. 
(Parenthetic  anticipation  of  John's  imprisonment.   19,  20.) 
ii.    By  the  descent  of  the  Spirit  and  the  Voice  at  the  Baptism. 
21,  22. 
The  Son  of  Adam  and  the  Son  of  God.      23 — 38. 
iii.    By  victory  over  the  Tempter,     iv.  i — 13. 

VII.     Life  and  Early  Ministry  of  the  Saviour,  iv.  14 — vii.  50. 
i.    His  teaching  in  Galilee,     iv.  14,  15. 
ii.    His  first  recorded  Sermon,  and  rejection  by  the  Nazarenes. 

16—30. 
iii.    His  Work  in  Capernaum  and  the  Plain  of  Gennesareth. 

iv.  31— vii.  50. 
iv.    A  great  Sabbath  at  Capernaum,     iv.  31 — 44. 
a.   Healing  of  a  Demoniac.     33 — 37. 
)3.    Healing  of  Peter's  wife's  mother.     38,  39. 
7.    Healing  of  a  multitude  of  the  sick.     40 — 44. 
V.    The  miraculous  draught  of  fishes,     v.  i — xi. 


INTRODUCTION. 


33 


vi.    Work  amid  the  sick,  suffering,  and  sinful,     v.  12 — 32. 

o.    Healing   of  a  leper  and    other  works  of  mercy. 

12 — 17. 
/3.   Healing  the  paralytic      18 — 76. 
y.   The  Call  and  feast  of  Matthew.     27 — 32. 

vii.    The  Saviour  teaching  and  doing  good.     v.  33 — vii.  50. 
a.   The  new  and  the  old.     v.  33 — 39. 
;8.    The  Sabbath,     vi.  i — 12. 
7.   Choosing  of  the  Apostles.     13 — 16. 

5.  The  Sermon  on  the  Mount.     17 — 49. 

e.  The  centurion's  servant,     vii.  r — 10. 

f.  The  widow's  son  raised  from  the  dead.     11 — 17. 
ri-  His  witness  to  John  the  Baptist.     18 — 30. 

6.  His  complaint  against  that  generation.     31 — 35. 
t.  The  woman  that  was  a  sinner.     36 — 50. 

[I.  Later  Ministry  in  Galilee  and  its  neighbourhood,  viii. 
i.    The  first  Christian  sisterhood,     viii.  i — 3. 
ii.    Incidents  of  two  great  days.     4 — 56. 
a.   The  first  Parable.     4 — 15. 
^.    The  similitude  of  the  lamp.     16 — 18. 

7.  Who  are  His  mother  and  His  brethren.     19 — 21. 
S.    Stilling  the  storm.     22 — 25. 

e.  The  Gadarene  demoniac.     26 — 40. 

f.  The  daughter  of  Jairus  and  the  woman  with  the 

issue  of  blood.     41 — 56. 

X.     Latest  Phases  of  the  Galilean  Ministry,  and  journey 
Northwards,    ix.  i — 50. 
L    Mission  of  the  Twelve,     ix.  r — 6. 
ii.    Alarm  of  Herod.     7 — 9. 

iii.    Feeding  the  five  thousand  at  Bethsaida  Julias.      10 — 17. 
iv.    Culmination  of  the  training  of  the  Apostles.     18 — 50. 
a.    The  Confession  of  St  Peter.     18 — 22. 
/3.    Warning  of  the  coming  end.     23 — 27. 
7.    The  Transfig[uration  on  Mount  Hermon.     28 — 36. 
5.    The  Lunatic  Boy.     37 — 42. 

e.  Nearer  warnings  of  the  coming  end.     43 — 45. 

f.  Lesson  of  Humility.     46 — 48. 
17.    Lesson  of  Tolerance.     49,  50. 

ST  LUKE  3 


34  INTRODUCTION. 


X.    Incidents  of  the  great  final  phase  of  the  Saviour's 
Ministry  after  leaving  Galilee,    ix.  5J — xix.  27^ 

L    Tolerance  to  the  Samaritans.     The  spirit  of  Elijah  and 

the  spirit  of  the  Saviour.      51 — 56. 
ii.    The  sacrifices  of  true  discipleship.     57 — 62. 
iii.    The  Mission  of  the  Seventy,     x.  i — 20. 
iv.     The  Saviour's  joy  at  its  success  and  blessedness.    21 — 24. 
V.    Love  to  our  neighbour.     The  Good  Samaritan.     25 — 37. 
vi.    The  one  thing  needful.     Martha  and  Mary.     38 — 42. 
vii.    Lessons  of  Prayer,     xi.  i — 13. 
viii.    Open  rupture  with  the  Pharisees,  and  connected  incidents 

and  warnings,     xi.  14 — xii.  59. 
ix.    Teachings,   Warnings,    Parables,    and    Miracles,   of    the 

Journey  in  preparation  for  the  coming  end.     xiii.  i  — 

xviii.  30. 

a.    Parables : 

The  Great  Supper,     xiv.  15 — 24. 

Shorter  similitudes: 

The  Unfinished  Tower.     25 — 30. 
The  Prudent  King.     31 — 33. 
Savourless  Salt.     34,  35. 

The  Lost  Sheep,     xv.  i — 7. 

The  Lost  piece  of  Silver.     8 — 10. 

The  Prodigal  Son.     1 1 — 32. 

The  Unjust  Steward,     xvi.  i  — 12. 

Warnings  against  avarice ;  Rich  Man  and  Laza- 
rus.    13—31. 

j8.   Shorter  sayings : 

Offences,  xvii.  i,  2.  Forgiveness,  3,  4.  Faith, 
5,  6.  Service,  7 — 10.  Gratitude  (the  Ten 
Lepers),  11 — 19.  Coming  of  the  kingdom 
of  God,  20—37.  Prayer  (the  Importunate 
Widow),  xviii.  i — 8.  The  Pharisee  and  the 
Publican,  9 — 14.  Children,  15 — 17.  Sacrifice 
for  Christ's  sake.    The  Great  Refusal,  18 — 30. 

^  The  whole  section  is  sometimes,  but  inadequately,  called  the  Gno- 
molcg}',  QT  "collection  of  moral  teaching." 


INTRODUCTION. 


35 


XI,     Last   stage  of  the  Journey   from  Jericho   to  Jeru- 
salem,    xviii.  31 — xix.  46. 
i.    Prediction  of  the  approaching  end.     xviii.  31 — 34. 
ii.    The  healing  of  BUnd  Bartimaeus.     xviii.  35- — 43. 
iii.    The  Repentant  Publican,  Zacchaeus.     xix.  i— 10. 
iv.    The  Parable  of  the  Pounds.     10 — 27. 
V.    The  Triumphal  Entry  into  Jerusalem.     28—40, 
vi.    The  Saviour  weeping  over  Jerusalem.     41 — 44, 
vii.   The  Cleansing  of  the  Temple.     45,  46, 
XII.    The  Last  Days  of  the  Saviour's  Life.     xix.  47— xxi.  38. 
i    The  day  of  Questions,     xx. 

o.    Question  of  the  Priests  and  Elders,     i — 8. 

Parable  of  the  Vineyard.     9 — 18. 
/3.    Question  about  the  tribute-money.     19 — 26. 
7.    Question  of  the  Sadducees,     27—39. 
S,    Question  of  Christ.     39 — 44. 

Last  denunciation  of  the  Scribes.     45 — 47. 
ii.    Farewell  to  the  Temple,  and  last  warnings,     xxi. 
a.   The  vddow's  mite,     i — 4. 
j8.    Prophecy  against  the  Temple.     5,  6, 
7,    Signs  and  warnings  of  the  last  times.     7 — 38. 
XIII.    Last  Hours  of  the  Saviour  on  Earth,  xxii,  i— xxiii.49. 
i.    The  plots  of  enemies,     xxii.  i — 6. 
ii.    The  Last  Supper.     Warnings  and  farewells.     7 — 38. 
iii.    The  Agony  in  the  Garden.     39 — 46. 
iv.    The  Betrayal.     47 — 49. 
V.    The  Arrest.     50 — 53. 
vi.    Trial  before  the  Priests,  and  Peter's  denials,     54 — 62. 

First  derision.     63 — 65. 
vii.    Trial  before  the  Sanhedrim.     66 — 71. 
viii.    Trial  before  Pilate,  and  first  acquittal,     xxiii.  i — 4. 
ix.    Trial    before    Herod.     Second   derision,   and    acquittal. 

5—12. 
x.    Pilate's   endeavours   to   release  Him.     The  Jews  choose 

Barabbas.     Condemnation  to  Death.     13 — 26. 
xi.    The  Daughters  of  Jenisalem.     27 — 31. 
xii.    The  Crucifixion.     32 — 38. 
xiii.    The  Penitent  Robber.     39 — 45. 
xiv.    The  Saviour's  Death.     46 — 49. 

3—2 


30  INTRODUCTION. 


XIV.    The  Burial,  Resurrection,  and  Ascension,    xxiii.  50— 
xxiv.  53. 

i.    The  Entombment,     xxiii.  50 — 56. 

ii.    The  Resurrection,     xxiv.  i — 12. 
iii.    The  Disciples  at  Emmaus.     13 — 32. 

iv.     Appearance  to  the  Twelve,  and  last  teachings  of  the  Risen 
Saviour.     33—49- 

XV.    The  Ascension.     50 — 53. 


INTRODUCTION. 


37 


CHIEF   UNCIAL   MANUSCRIPTS   OF   THE   GOSPELS. 


Sign. 

Name.     Codex 

Date. 

Remarks. 

N 

Sinaiticus. 

4th  century. 

Found    by   Tischendorf    at 
the     monastery     of     St 
Catharine,    1859.     Now 
at  St  Petersburg. 

A 

Alexandrinus. 

5th  century. 

Now    in    British   Museum. 
Presented  to  Charles  I. 
by    Cyril    Lucar,    Patri- 
arch  of   Constantinople 
in  1628. 

B 

Vaticanus. 

4th  century. 

Now  in  the  Vatican  Library 
at  Rome. 

C 

Ephraemi. 

5th  century. 

Now   in    Paris.     A    palim- 
psest    traceable     under 
copy    of   the    works    of 
Ephraem  the  Syrian. 

D 

Bezae. 

6th  century. 

Greek  and  Latin.    Contain? 
remarkable       interpola- 
tions.   Given  by  Beza  to 
the    University    Library 
at  Cambridge  in  15S1. 

E 

Basiliensis. 

8th  century. 

An  Evangel istarium  or  Ser- 
vice    book.      Now     at 
Basle. 

F 

Boreeli. 

9th  century.  1   Now  at  Utrecht. 

G 

Wolfii  A. 

loth  century. 

At    British    Museum,    and 
fragment  at  Trinity  Coll., 
Cambridge. 

L 

Regius. 

8th  or  9th. 

Now  at  Tours. 

M 

Campianus. 

9th  century. 

At  Paris. 

38  INTRODUCTION. 


The  most  important  Ancient  Versions  are — 
The  Peshito  Syriac  (made  in  the  3rd  century). 
The  Curetonian  Syriac,  possibly  representing  an  older  form  of  the 

Peshito  (2nd  century).     A  5th  century  MS.  of  this  version  was 

found  by  Canon  Cureton  in  the  British  Museum. 
The  Philoxenian  Syriac  (made  in  the  6th  century). 
The  Jerusalem  Syriac  (5th  or  6th  century). 
The  Vetus  Itala  is  the  oldest  existing  form  of  a  Latin  Version  made 

in  the  2nd  century. 
The  Vulgate  is  mainly  St  Jerome's   revision   of  the   Vetus   Itala, 

A.D.  383—5. 
The  Sahidic  or  Thebaic  and  the  Memphitic  (2nd  or  3rd  century). 
The  Gothic  Version  of  Bp  Ulfilas  (4th  century). 


INTRODUCTION. 


39 


^ 


t 


•^ 

« 


Q 
O 
Pi! 


< 

3 
w 

Q 
O 

',^ 


o 


.-    U    !> 

Oh   ■*-•  ' — " 

-■a  f-H  CO 

2     D     II 


K 

< 


-  a 

^1 


d 


§  W 


O 

J'  ^Q 

t/^  -ir;  o 

<:  J^  oj 

^  II 


11 

rt    o 


o 

ffi. 


Oh 
O 


1) 

g 


p 
,  c 

ffi 

i    >, 

cK 

o   ^ 

H 

<<  1— > 

r/l 

01  >*- 

3 

^  o 

1 

-^     !-,_ 

-r^ 

o 

<: 


en 

-5 
o 


u 


< 

Pi 

o 
< 


< 

a. 

'2 

c 


•s 

£1 


t3 
o 

■q. 

V 

"O 

CLh 

§ 

S 

.§ 

S 

T3 

s 

c1 

w 

•s 

h 

V 

■rt 

X 

m 

M 

71 

rt 

•o 

■u 

JS 

H 

en 

>; 

«o 

CO 

"k 

M 

3* 

(A 

<: 

►J 

s 

hJ 

w 

o 

^^ 

< 

en 

g 

P 

p» 

Q 

(/) 

M 

H 

0) 

1 

(/I 

ro 

a 

oi 

o 

o 

M 

« 

.> 

4) 

> 

U 

'S 

.£ 

X 

z 

^ 

^ 

< 

F 


THE  GOSPEL  ACCORDING  TO 

ST    LUKE. 


Ch    I.   I — 4.     Introduction. 

ORASMUCH  as  many  have  taken  in  hand  to  set   forth  1 
in  order  a  declaration  of  those  things  which  are  most 


Ch.  I.     1 — 4.    Introduction. 

Forasmuch  as\  This  brief  preface  is  in  several  respects  most  inter- 
esting and  important. 

i.  It  is  the  only  personal  introduction  to  any  historic  book  in  the 
Bible  except  the  Acts.  It  is  specially  valuable  here  as  authenticating  the 
first  two  chapters  and  shewing  that  Marcion's  excision  of  them  was  only 
due  to  his  desire  to  suppress  the  true  humanity  of  Christ,  as  his  other 
mutilations  of  the  Gospel — (which  made  it  "  like  a  garment  eaten  by 
moths,"  Epiphan.) — were  due  to  hostility  to  the  Old  Testament.  See 
Mill's  Mythical  Interpretation,  p.  103. 

ii.  The  style  in  which  it  is  written  is  purer  and  more  polished  than 
that  of  the  rest  of  the  Gospel,  though  it  is  "the  most  literary  of  the 
Gospels."  It  was  the  custom  of  antiquity  to  give  special  elaboration 
to  the  opening  clauses  of  a  great  work,  as  we  see  in  the  Histories  of 
Thucydides,  Livy,  &c.  In  the  rest  of  the  Gospel  the  style  of  the 
Evangelist  is  often  largely  modified  by  the  documents  of  which  he 
made  such  diligent  use. 

iii.  It  shews  us  in  the  simplest  and  most  striking  manner  that  the 
Divine  Inspiration  was  in  no  way  intended  to  supersede  the  exercise  of 
human  diligence  and  judgment. 

iv.  It  proves  how  "wa«j"  early  attempts  to  narrate  the  Life  of 
Christ  have  perished.  We  may  well  suppose  that  they  have  only 
perished  because  the  Four  Evangelists  were  guided  by  "a  grace  of 
superintendency"  to  select  and  to  record  all  that  was  most  needful  for 
us  to  know,  and  to  preserve  everything  which  was  accurate  and  essen- 
tial in  the  narratives  (5t7;7T7<Tets)  which  had  previously  been  published. 

V.  It  furnishes  us  on  the  very  threshold  with  a  key  to  the  aims  of 
the  EvangeHst  in  the  more  systematic  and  comprehensive  history  which 
he  is  now  led  to  write.  With  a  modesty,  which  is  also  evinced  liy  his 
self  suppression  in  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles,  he  here  lays  claim  to  nothing 
beyond  methodical  order  and  diligent  research. 


42  ST   LUKE,  I.  [v.  2. 

2  surely  believed  among  us,  even  as  they  delivered  them  unto 
us,  which  from  the  beginning  were  eyewitnesses,  and  minis- 

vi.  We  see  at  once  from  this  preface  the  association  of  thought  and 
expression  between  St  Luke  and  his  great  Teacher.  Several  of  the 
most  marked  words,  'attempted,'  'most  surely  believed,'  'orally  in- 
structed,' 'certainty,'  are  only  found  elsewhere  in  the  letters  and 
speeches  of  St  Paul. 

1.  many\  Whether  the  Gospels  of  St  Matthew  and  St  Mark  had 
been  written  when  St  Luke's  appeared  is  a  question  which  cannot  be 
answered  with  certainty;  but  it  is  certain  that  he  does  not  here  allude 
to  those  Gospels,  and  that  he  did  not  make  any  use  of  them  (see  Introd. 
p.  9). 

These  many  attempts  to  narrate  the  earthly  life  of  the  Saviour  were 
probably  those  collections  of  traditional  memorials,  parables  and 
miracles  {logia,  diegeseis),  of  which  all  that  was  most  valuable  was  in- 
corporated in  our  four  Gospels.  Setting  aside  the  Apocryphal  Gospels, 
which  are  for  the  most  part  worthless  and  even  pernicious  forgeries. 
Christian  tradition  has  not  preserved  for  us  one  trustworthy  event  of 
the  Life  of  Christ,  and  barely  a  dozen  sayings  [agrapha  dogmata  like 
that  preserved  by  St  Paul  in  Acts  xx.  35)  which  are  not  found  in  the 
Gospels. 

have  taken  in  hand  to  set  forth  in  07-der  a  declaration^  Literally, 
attempted  to  draw  up  a  narrative.  A  remarkable  parallel  to  this 
passage  is  found  in  Josephus  [Contra  Ap.  i.  10) ;  but  no  ceitsure  is  here 
expressed.  The  word  'attempted'  shews  indeed  that  these  endeavours 
were  not  wholly  successful,  and  the  use  of  the  aorist  implies  that  they 
had  already  failed.  (Acts  xix.  13.)  "■'  Conati  sunt  qui  implere  nequi- 
yerunt,"  Aug.  The  works  to  which  St  Luke  alludes  were  fragmentary  and 
ill-arranged  but  not  necessarily  misleading.  Origen  {Horn,  in  Luc.)  is 
hardly  justified  in  supposing  that  the  authors  are  rebuked  for  temerity, 
and  Dr  M^CIellan  goes  much  too  far  in  calling  them  "false  Evan- 
gelists. " 

of  those  things  which  are  most  surely  believed  among  us'\  Others  ren- 
der it  '■■which  have  been  fulfilled'  ' have  found  their  accomplishment; 
but  the  analogous  uses  of  the  same  Greek  verb  in  Rom.  iv.  21,  xiv.  5, 
and  2  Tim.  iv.  17,  and  especially  of  the  substantive //<?;-(7//^o;'za  in  i  Thess! 
i.  5,  Heb.  vi.  1 1,  support  the  English  version.  The  expression  is  most  im- 
portant as  shewing  that  whatever  might  be  the  defects  of  the  narratives 
there  was  no  hesitation  about  X^tvo.  facts.  (Bp  Marsh,  p.  364.)  "The 
work  of  these  unknown  first  Evangelists  was  new  only  in  form  and  not 
in  substance."     Westcott,  Introd.  p.  174. 

2.  eve7i  as  they  delivered  them  u7ito  us,  which"]  The  English  version 
is  here  ambiguous ;  and  the  way  in  which  it  is  often  read  shews  how 
completely  it  is  misunderstood.  It  does  not  mean  'that  the  writers  of 
these  narratives  delivered  them  to  St  Luke  and  others  who  were  eye- 
witnesses, &c.,'  but  that  'since  many  undertook  to  rearrange  the  facts 
which  have  been  delivered  (i  Cor.  xi.  23,  xv.  3;  2  Tliess.  ii.  15)  as  a 
sacred  treasure  or  tradition  (i  Tim.vi.  20;  2  Tim.i.  i^)  to  us  Christians 


w.  3,  4-J  ST    LUKE,   I.  43 

ters  of  the  word;  it  seemed  good  to  me  also,  having  had  3 
perfect  understanding  of  all  things  from   the  very  first,  to 
write  unto  thee  in  order,  most  excellent  Theophilus,  that  4 
thou  mightest  know  the  certainty  of  those  things,  wherein 
thou  hast  been  instructed. 

by  those  who  became  eyewitnesses'  (which  St  Luke  does  not  claim  to  be) 
'and  ministers  of  the  word,  I  too  determined,  &c.'  The  words  imply 
that  the  narratives  to  which  St  Luke  alludes  were  seco7idhand — that 
they  were  rearrajtgements  of  an  oral  tradition  received  from  apostles 
and  original  disciples.  Clearly  therefore  there  can  be  no  allusion  to  the 
Gospel  of  St  Matthew,  who  wrote  his  own  narrative  and  would  have 
had  no  need  to  use  one  which  had  been  'delivered'  and  'handed 
down'  to  him. 

eyewitnesses,  and  ministers']  Those  who  delivered  to  the  Church  the 
facts  of  the  Saviour's  life  had  'personal  knowledge  and  practical  experi- 
ence,' which  these  narrators  had  not.     (See  Acts  i.  ■21,  22.) 

3.  havitig  had  perfect  understanding]  Rather,  having  accurately 
traced  out  or  followed  up.  See  the  same  word  in  i  Tim.  iv.  6 ;  2  Tim. 
iii.  10.  St  Luke  modestly  puts  himself  exactly  on  the  same  footing  as 
these  narrators  in  not  having  the  primary  apostolic  qualification,  but 
claims  continuous  and  complete  knowledge  and  careful  research. 

from  the  very  first]  St  Luke's  Gospel  differed  from  these  narratives 
in  beginning  from  the  birth  of  John  the  Baptist,  and  the  Annunciation, 
whereas  they  began  at  the  manhood  and  Public  Ministry  of  Christ,  as 
do  St  Mark  and  St  John.  See  Acts  i.  12;  Lk.  xvi.  16,  "the  Law 
and  the  Prophets  were  until  John :  since  that  time  the  Kingdom  of  God 
is  preached." 

in  order]  A  favourite  word  of  St  Luke  only,  viii.  i ;  Acts  xi.  4,  iii. 
24,  xviii.  23.  St  Luke's  order  is  mainly  objective,  i.e.  chronological; 
St  Matthew's,  on  the  other  band,  is  much  guided  by  subjective  consi- 
derations, i.e.  by  moral  sequence  and  unity  of  topics. 

most  excellent]  This  is  the  title  of  official  personages  of  high  position, 
e.g.  Felix,  Acts  xxiii.  26,  and  Festus,  xxvi.  25.  Whether  it  is  here  used 
in  this  technical,  or  in  a  more  general  sense,  like  the  Latin  'optime,' 
it  is  impossible  to  say. 

Theophilus]  A  very  common  name.  It  means  'Dear  to  God,'  but 
it  is  unlikely  that  it  is  here  an  ideal  name.  Absolutely  nothing  is 
known  of  him.  Some  from  the  title  "most  excellent"  have  conjectured 
that  Sergius  Paulus  (Acts  xiii.  7—12)  is  meant,  to  whom  they  think 
that  the  Acts  might  have  naturally  been  dedicated.  But  the  name 
seems  to  shew  that  a  Greek  is  intended,  and  St  Luke  is  writing  mainly 
for  Greeks  (see  Introduction,  p.  16).  A  Theophilus,  who  held  some 
high  distinction  at  Antioch,  is  mentioned  in  the  Clementine  Recognitions; 
and  as  St  Luke  was,  not  improbably,  a  proselyte  of  Antioch,  this  may 
be  the  person  for  whom  he  wrote.  Others  make  him  a  Bishop  of  Cae- 
sarea  Philippi. 

4.  mightest  know]     Rather,  may  est  fully  know. 


44  ST    LUKE,    I.  [v.  5. 

5 — 25.    The  Announcement  of  the  Birth  of  the  Forerunner. 

5      There  was  in  the  days  of  Herod,  the  king  of  Judea,  a 
certain  priest  named  Zacharias,  of  the  course  of  Abia :  and 

of  those  things,  wherein  thou  hast  been  instructeif]  Rather,  of  those 
accounts  in  wMch  thou  wast  orally  instructed.  Gal.  vi.  6.  From 
the  word  Karrixe'tv  'to  teach  orally'  comes  our  'catechise,'  &c.  Oral 
instruction  (katechesis)  flourished  especially  at  Alexandria,  which  was 
famous  for  its  catechetical  school.  This  may  possibly  have  favoured 
the  notion  that  Theophilus  was  an  Alexandrian. 

5 — 25.     The  Announcement  of  the  Birth  of  the   Fore- 
runner. 

5.  There  was  in  the  days]  The  elaborate  style  of  the  Preface 
is  at  once  replaced  by  one  of  extreme  directness  and  simplicity,  full 
of  Hebraic  expressions ;  shewing  that  here  St  Luke  begins  to  use, 
and  probably  to  translate,  some  Aramaic  document  which  had  come 
into  his  hands.  The  remainder  of  this  chapter  is  known  as  the  /^ro- 
tevangelium — the  Gospel  History  before  the  Birth  of  Christ.  The 
sweetness  and  delicate  reserve  of  the  narrative,  together  with  the  inci- 
dents on  which  it  dwells,  have  led  to  the  not  unreasonable  conjecture 
that  the  Virgin  Mary  had  written  down  some  of  those  things  which  she 
long  'kept  in  her  heart.' 

of  Herod,  the  king]  Towards  the  close  of  the  reign  of  Herod  the 
Great.  The  true  sceptre  had  departed  from  Judah.  Herod  was  a  mere 
Idumaean  usurper  imposed  on  the  nation  by  the  Romans.  "  Regnum 
ab  Antonio  Herodi  datum,  victor  Augustus  auxit."     Tac.  Hist.  v.  9. 

of  y  tided]  Besides  Judaea,  Samaria,  and  Galilee,  his  kingdom  in- 
cluded the  most  important  regions  of  Peraea  (Jos.  Anit.  xv.  5,  §  6,  7 ; 

B.  y.  1. 20,  §  3, 4). 

Zacharias]  The  common  Jewish  name  Zachariah  (2  Kings  xiv.  29; 
Ezra  viii.  3,  1 1 ;  Zech.  i.  i;  i  Mace.  v.  18,  &c.)  means  'remembered  by 
Jehovah.'  The  Jews  highly  valued  the  distinction  of  priestly  birth 
(Jos.  Vit.  i).  The  notion  that  Zacharias  was  a  High  Priest  and  that 
his  vision  occurred  on  the  great  Day  of  Atonement  is  refuted  by  the 
single  word  ^axe  "his  lot  was,"  vs.  9. 

of  the  course]  The  word  ephemeria  means  first '  a  daily  ministry'  (Heb. 
Mishmereth)  and  then  a  class  of  the  priesthood  which  exercised  its  func- 
tions for  a  week.  Aaron  had  four  sons,  but  the  two  elder  Nadab  and 
Abihu  were  struck  dead  for  using  strange  fire  in  the  sanctuary  (Lev.  x. ). 
From  the  two  remaining  sons  Eleazar  and  Ithamar  had  sprang  in 
the  days  of  David  twenty-four  families,  sixteen  from  the  descendants  of 
Eleazar,  and  eight  from  those  of  Ithamar.  To  these  David  distributes 
by  lot  the  order  of  their  service  from  week  to  week,  each  for  eight  days 
inclusively  from  sabbath  to  sabbath  (i  Chr.  xxiv.  i — 19  ;  1  Chr.  xxxi.  2). 
After  the  Babylonish  exile  only  four  of  the  twenty-four  courses  returned 
— a  striking  indication  of  the  trath  of  the  Jewish  saying  that  those  who 
returned  from  the  exile  were  but  hke  the  chaff  in  comparison  of  the 


w.  6,  7.]  ST   LUKE,    I.  45 

his  wife  was  of  the  daughters  of  Aaron,  and  her  name  was 
EHsabeth.    And  they  were  both  righteous  before  God,  walk-  6 
ing  in  all  the  commandments  and  ordinances  of  the  Lord 
blameless.     And  they  had  no  child,  because  that  Elisabeth  7 

wheat.  The  four  families  of  which  the  representatives  returned  were 
those  of  Jedaiah,  Immer,  Pashur,  and  Harim  (Ezra  ii.  36 — 39).  But 
the  Jews  concealed  the  heavy  loss  by  subdividing  these  four  families 
into  twenty-four  courses  to  which  they  gave  the  original  names,  and 
this  is  alluded  to  in  Nehem.  xiii.  30  ("I. ..appointed  i\\Qwards  of  the 
priests  and  the  Levites,  every  one  in  his  business").  This  arrangement 
continued  till  the  fall  of  Jerusalem  a.D.  70  at  which  time,  on  the  ninth 
of  the  month  Ab  (Aug.  5),  we  are  told  that  the  course  in  waiting  was 
that  of  Jehoiarib  (Jos.  Bell.  Jud.  vi.  5),  Taanith,  IV.  6 :  Derenbourg, 
Palest,  p.  291.  Reckoning  back  from  this  we  find  that  the  course  of 
Abijah  went  out  of  ofhce  on  Oct.  9,  B.C.  6,  A.u.c.  748  (but  see  Lewin, 
Fasti  Sacri,  p.  191).  The  reader  should  bear  in  mind  that  our  received 
era  for  the  Birth  of  Christ  (A.U.C.  753)  was  only  fixed  by  the  Abbot 
Dionysius  Exiguus  in  the  6th  century,  and  is  probably  four  years  wrong. 

of  Abid\  I  Chr.  xxiv.  10,  "the  eighth  [lot  came  forth]  to  Abijah." 
This  was  not  one  of  the  four  families  which  had  returned,  but  the  name 
was  soon  revived  (Neh.  xii.  4).  Josephus  tells  us  that  he  enjoyed  the 
high  distinction  of  belonging  by  t)irth  to  the  first  of  the  twenty-four 
courses  {Vit.  i). 

ElisabetliX  The  same  name  as  Elisheba  ('one  whose  oath  is  by  God,' 
comp.  Jehoshebah,  2  Kings  xi.  2),  the  wife  of  Aaron,  Ex.  vi.  23;  men- 
tioned by  name  according  to  Ibn  Ezra  as  'the  mother  of  the  priesthood.' 

6.  righteous^  One  of  the  oldest  terms  of  high  praise  among  the 
Jews  (Gen.  vi.  9,  vii.  i,  xviii.  23 — 28.  See  Ps.  xxxvii.  37;  Ezek.  xviii. 
5 — 19,  &c.).  It  is  used  also  of  Joseph,  Matt.  i.  19;  and  is  defined  in 
the  following  words  in  the  almost  technical  sense  of  strict  legal  obser- 
vance which  it  had  acquired  since  the  days  of  the  Maccabees.  The  true 
Jashar  (upright  man)  was  the  ideal  Jew.  Thus  Rashi  calls  the  Book  of 
Genesis  'the  book  of  the  upright,  Abraham,  Isaac,  and  Jacob.' 

itt  all  the  commandments  and  ordinances']  The  two  words  occur  in 
the  LXX.  version  of  Gen.  xxvi.  5  (of  Abraham)  and  2  Chron.  xvii.  4 
(of  Jehoshaphat).  '  Commandments'"  means  the  moral  precepts  of  natural 
and  revealed  religion  (Rom.  vii.  8—13).  'Ordinances'  had  come  to  be 
technically  used  of  the  ceremonial  \.z.\w  {Y\.€o.\y..  i).  The  distinctions 
were  not  accurately  kept,  but  the  two  words  together  would,  to  a  pious 
Jew  of  that  day,  have  included  all  the  positive  and  negative  precepts 
which  later  Rabbis  said  were  613  in  number,  namely  248  positive,  and 
365  negative. 

7.  And  they  had  no  child]  This  was  regarded  as  a  heavy  mis- 
fortune because  it  cut  off  all  hope  of  the  birth  of  the  Messiah  in  that 
family.  It  was  also  regarded  as  often  involving  a  moral  reproach,  and 
as  being  a  punishment  for  sin.  See  Gen.  xi.  30,  xviii.  11,  xxx.  1—23; 
Ex.  xxiii.  26;  Deut.  vii.  14;  Judg.  xiii.  2,  3;  i  Sam.  i.  6,  27;  Is. 
xlvii.  q. 


46.  ST   LUKE,   I.  [w.  8— ii. 

was  barren,  and  they  both  were  now  well  stricken  in  years. 

8  And  it  came  to  pass,  that  while  he  executed  the  priest's 

9  office  before  God  in  the  order  of  his  course,  according  to 
the  custom  of  the  priest's  office,  his  lot  was  to  burn  mcense 

10  when  he  went  into  the  temple  of  the  Lord.    And  the  whole 
multitude  of  the  people  were  praying  without  at  the  time  of 

11  incense.     And   there   appeared  unto  him  an  angel  of  the 

well  strickeft  in  years]  A  priest  apparently  might  minister  until  any 
age,  but  Levites  were  partially  superannuated  at  50  (Num.  iii.  1 — 39, 
iv.,  viii.  25). 

8.  executed  the  priesfs  office]  The  priest  who  had  the  highest  func- 
tions allotted  to  him  was  called  'the  chief  of  the  course.'  There  are 
said  to  have  been  some  20,000  priests  in  the  days  of  Christ,  and  it 
could  therefore  never  fall  to  the  lot  of  the  same  priest  twice  to  offer 
incense.  Hence  this  would  have  been,  apart  from  the  vision,  the  most 
memorable  day  in  the  life  of  Zacharias. 

9.  his  lot  was  to  burn  incense]  Rather,  he  Obtained  by  lot  the  duty 
of  entering  and  burning  incense.  This  was  the  loftiest  and  most 
coveted  of  priestly  functions,  Ex.  xxx.  i — 10;  Num.  xvi.  i — 40.  King 
Uzziah  was  smitten  \vith  leprosy  for  trying  to  usurp  it  (2  Chr.  xxvi. 
18).  Incense  was  a  symbol  of  prayer  (Ps.  cxli.  2 ;  Heb.  ix.  4;  Rev.  viii. 
3,  4),  and  Philo  tells  us  that  it  was  offered  twice  a  day, — before  the 
morning  and  after  the  evening  sacrifice  of  a  lamb. 

into  the  temple]  Rather,  shrine  or  Holy  Place.  The  golden  altar  of 
incense  stood  before  the  veil  which  separated  the  Holy  Place  from  the 
Holy  of  Holies  (Ex.  xxx.  6).  The  priest  entered  in  white  robes  and 
with  unsandalled  feet  with  two  attendants  who  retired  when  they  had 
made  everything  ready.  The  people  waited  outside  in  the  Court  of  Israel 
praying  in  deep  silence  till  the  priest  who  was  sacrificing  the  evening 
iamb  at  the  great  altar  of  Burnt  Offering  in  the  Court  gave  a  signal  to 
his  colleague  in  the  shrine,  perhaps  by  the  tinkling  of  a  bell  (Ex.  xxx. 
f — 10;  Ps.  cxli.  2;  Mai.  i.  11).  He  then  threw  the  incense  on  the 
fire  of  the  golden  altar,  and  its  fragrant  smoke  rose  with  the  prayers  of 
the  people.  It  was  while  performing  this  solemn  function  that  John 
Hyrcaniis  also  had  received  a  divine  intimation  (Jos.  Antt.  Xiii.  103). 

10.  the  whole  multitude]  This  seems  to  shew  that  the  vision  took 
place  either  on  a  sabbath,  or  some  great  feast-day. 

p)-aying]  The  Temple  was  mainly  used  for  sacrifice.  Prayer  in  the 
Tabernacle  is  only  once  mentioned  in  the  Pentateuch  (Deut.  xxvi. 
12 — 15).  But  the  Temple  had  naturally  become  a  'House  of  Prayer' 
(Is.  Ivi.  7  ;  Neh.  xi.  17;  Matt.  xxi.  13).  One  of  the  Rabbis  went  so  far 
as  to  argue  that  prayer  was  a  Rabbinic  not  a  Mosaic  institution !  See 
Cohen,  yud.  Gottesdienst,  p.  186. 

11.  an  angel]  St  Luke  dwells  more  than  any  of  the  Evangelists  on 
the  ministry  of  angels,  i.  26,  ii.  9,  13,  21,  xii.  8,  xv.  10,  xvi.  22,  xxii. 
43,  xxiv.  4,  23,  and  frequently  in  the  Acts.  Compare  the  births  of 
Isaac,  Samson,  and  Samuel. 


vv.  12—15.1  ST   LUKE,   I.  47 

Lord  standing  on  the  right  side  of  the  altar  of  incense.   And  " 
when  Zacharias  saw  Jmn,  he  was  troubled,  and  fear  fell  upon 
him.     But   the  angel  said  unto  him,  Fear  not,  Zacharias:  13 
for  thy  prayer  is  heard;  and  thy  wife  Elisabeth  shall  bear 
thee  a  son,  and  thou  shalt  call  his  name  John.     And  thou  m 
shalt  have  joy  and  gladness;  and  many  shall  rejoice  at  his 
birth.     For  he  shall  be  great  in  the  sight  of  the  Lord,  and  15 
shall  drink  neither  wine  nor  strong  drink;  and  he  shall 

the  right  side]  i.e.  the  South.  It  was  the  propitious  side  so  to  speak, 
Mk.  xvi.  5 ;  Matt.  xxv.  33 ;  and  ib.  Schottgen,  Hor.  Hebr. 

the  altar  of  incense]  A  small  movable  table  of  acacia  wood  overlaid 
with  gold.  See  Ex.  xxx.  i — 38,  xxxvii.  25;  i  Kings  vii.  48.  In  Heb. 
ix.  4  the  word  may  possibly  mean  'censer.' 

12.  he  was  troubled]  Such  is  the  effect  always  recorded  of  these 
supernatural  appearances.  See  Judg.  xiii.  22;  Dan.  x.  7—9;  Ezek.  i. 
28  ;  Mark  xvi.  8;  Rev.  i.  17. 

13.  Fear  not]  The  first  utterance  of  the  Dawn  of  the  Gospel.  St 
Luke  begins  with  this  angelic  encouragement,  and  ends  with  the  Apo- 
stles 'blessing  and  praising  God;'  see  the  beautiful  remarks  of  Bengel 
ad  loc. 

thy  prayer  is  heard]  Rather,  thy  supplication  was  heard.  A^rjo-ts 
implies  a  special  prayer,  and  with  the  aorist  verb  shews  that  Zacharias 
had  been  just  praying  either  to  have  a  son,  or  at  least  that  the  days 
of  the  Messiah  might  come. 

John]  Jehochanan,  'the  favour  of  Jehovah'  (comp.  Gen.  xvii.  19). 
It  is  interchanged  with  Jona  in  Matt.  xvi.  17  (comp.  John  i.  42),  and  in 
various  forms  was  not  uncommon,  i  Chron.  iii.  24,  xxviii.  12,  &c.  ^ 

14.  gladness]     Rather,  exultation,  vs.  44;  Acts  ii.  46;  Heb.  i.  9.^ 
many]     The    Pharisees   and   leading  Jews   did    not    accept    John's 

baptism  (vii.  30;  Matt.  xxi.  27),  and  his  influence,  except  among  a 
few,  seems  to  have  been  shortlived. 

"There  burst  he  forth:  'AH  ye  whose  hopes  rely 
On  God,  with  me  amid  these  deserts  mourn, 
Repent,  repent,   and  from  old  errors  turn  ! ' 
Who  listened  to  his  voice,   obeyed  his  cry? — 
Only  the  echoes  which  he  made  relent 
Rang  from  their  flinty  caves  Repent  !  repent  !" 

Drummond. 

15.  great  in  the  sight  of  the  Lord]     See  vii.  24—30  ;  Matt.  xi.  ii._ 
shall  drink  neither  wine  nor  strong  drink]     He  shall  be  a   Nazarite 

(vii.  33;  Num.  vi.  1—4);  like  Samson  (Judg.  xiii.  2—7);  and  the 
Rechabites  (Jer.  xxxv.  6).  'Strong  drink'  {Sikera  from  Heb.  Shakar 
'  he  is  intoxicated  ')  was  also  forbidden  to  ministering  priests,  Lev.  x.  8. 
The  term  seems  to  have  been  specially  applied  to  palm  wine  (Plin. 
Hist.  Nat.  XIV.  19),  and  all  intoxicants  (e.g.  beer,  &c.)  which  are 
not  made  of  the  juice  of  the  grape.     '  Ne  Syder, '  Wyclif. 


48  ST   LUKE,    I.  [w.  16—19. 

be  filled  with  the  Holy  Ghost,  even  fi"om  his  mother's  womb. 

16  And  many  of  the   children  of  Israel  shall  he  turn  to  the 

17  Lord  their  God.  And  he  shall  go  before  him  in  the  spirit 
and  power  of  Elias,  to  turn  the  hearts  of  the  fathers  to 
the  children,  and  the  disobedient  to  the  wisdom  of  the 

18  just;  to  make  ready  a  people  prepared  for  the  Lord.  And 
Zacharias  said  unto  the  angel,  Whereby  shall  I  know  this  ? 
for  I  am  an  old  man,  and  my  wife  well  stricken  in  years. 

19  And  the  angel  answering  said  unto  him,  I  am  Gabriel,  that 

shall  be  filled  with  the  Holy  Ghost']  The  contrast  between  the 
false  and  hateful  excitement  of  drunkenness  and  the  divine  exaltation 
of  spiritual  fervour  is  also  found  in  Eph.  v.  18,  "Be  not  drunk  with 
wine... but  be  filled  with  the  Spirit."     Comp.  Acts  ii.  13. 

even  from  his  tnother's  womb']     Compare  i  Sam.  i.  ri  ;  Jer.  i.  5. 

16.  t?ia7iy... shall  he  ttirn]  Ezek.  iii.  19;  Is.  xl.  3;  Matt.  iii.  3 — 6. 
The  word  for  'turn'  is  sometimes  rendered  'convert'  as  in  xxii.  32, 
'when  thou  art  converted.'  These  words  resume  the  thread  of  pro- 
phecy which  had  been  broken  for  three  centuries  (Mai.  iv.  6). 

17.  ^ ml  he  shall  go  be/ore  him]  Shall  go  before  the  Messiah.  The 
English  version  should  have  added,  "in  His  (God's)  presence"  (ivwTnov 
avTov). 

in  the  spirit  and  power  of  Elias]  From  the  last  words  of 
Malachi  (iv.  4 — 6,  iii.  i),  the  Jews  universally  believed  (as  they  do  to 
this  day)  that  Elijah  would  visibly  return  to  earth  as  a  herald  of  the 
Messiah.  It  required  the  explanation  of  our  Lord  to  open  the  eyes 
of  the  Apostles  on  this  subject.  "  This  is  Elias  which  was  for  to 
come,"  Matt.  xi.  14.  "Elias  truly  shall  first  come  and  restore  all 
things... Then  the  disciples  understood  that  He  spake  unto  them  of 
John  the  Baptist,"  Matt.  xvii.  10 — 14.  The  resemblance  was  partly 
in  external  aspect  (2  Kings  i.  8 ;  Matt.  iii.  4) ;  and  partly  in  his  mission 
of  stern  rebuke  and  invitation  to  repentance  (i  Kings  xviii.  21,  xxi.  ^6). 

to  turn  the  hearts  of  the  fathers  to  the  children]  Rather,  of  fathers 
to  children;  i.e.  as  in  the  original  meaning  of  Malachi,  to  remedy 
disunion  and  restore  family  life. 

to  the  wisdom]     Rather,  in  or  by  the  wisdom. 

18.  for  I  am  an  old  man]  So  "Abraham  fell  upon  his  face,  and 
laughed,  and  said  in  his  heart.  Shall  a  child  be  born  unto  him  that 
is  a  hundred  years  old?"  Gen.  xvii.  17.  But  he  had  believed  the 
original  promise  (Gen.  xv.  6)  though  he  asked  for  a  confirmation  of 
it  (vs.  8).  "He  believed... God  who  quickeneth  the  dead,"  Rom. 
iv.  17. 

19.  Gabriel]  The  name  means  '  Hero  of  God.'  He  is  also  men- 
tioned in  vs.  26,  and  in  Dan.  viii.  16,  ix.  21 — 23  (' idem  Angelus,  idem 
negotium,'  Bengel).  The  only  other  Angel  or  Archangel  (i  Thess. 
iv.  16;  Jude  9)  named  in  Scripture  is  Michael  ('Who  is  like  God?' 
Dan.  X.   21).     In  the  Book   of  Enoch  we  read  of  'the  four  great 


w.  20—22.]  ST   LUKE,  I.  49 

stand  in  the  presence  of  God;  and  am  sent  to  speak  unto 
thee,  and  to  shew  thee  these  glad  tidings.  And  behold,  20 
thou  shalt  be  dumb,  and  not  able  to  speak,  until  the  day 
that  these  things  shall  be  performed,  because  thou  believest 
not  my  words,  which  shall  be  fulfilled  in  their  season.  And  21 
the  people  waited  for  Zacharias,  and  marvelled  that  he 
tarried  so  long  in  the  temple.     And  when  he  came  out,  he  22 

Archangels  Michael,  Uriel,  Raphael,  Gabriel,'  and  so  too  in  Pirke 
Rabbi  Eliezer,  iv.  In  Tobit  xii.  15,  "I  am  Raphael  (Healer  of 
God),  one  of  the  seven  holy  Angels  which  present  the  prayers  of  the 
saints,  and  which  go  in  and  out  before  the  glory  of  the  Holy  One." 
Since  Michael  was  despatched  on  messages  of  wrath  and  Gabriel  on 
messages  of  mercy,  the  Jews  had  the  beautiful  saying  that  "Gabriel 
flew  with  two  wings,  but  Michael  with  only  one." 

that  stand  in  the  presence  of  God ;  and  am  sent  to  speak  unto  thee'] 
He  was  thus  one  of  the  "Angels  of  the  Presence"  (Is.  Ixiii.  9;  cf. 
Matt,  xviii.  lo), 

"One  of  the  Seven 

Who  in  God's  presence,  nearest  to  His  throne, 

Stand  ready  at  command,  and  are  His  eyes 

That  run  through  all  the  heavens,  and  down  to  the  earth 

Bear  His  swift  errands  over  moist  and  dry, 

O'er  sea  and  land." 

Milton,  Pai-adise  Lost,  in.  650. 

See  Rev.  viii.  1 ;  Dan.  vii.  10 ;  i  Kings  xxii.  19.  The  supposed  re- 
semblance to  the  Amshaspands  in  the  Zendavesta  is  shewn  by  Dr  Mill 
to  be  purely  superficial.     Mythical  Interpretation,  p.  127. 

to  shew  thee  these  glad  tidings]  The  word  euafigelisasthai  'to  preach 
the  Gospel '  is  common  in  St  Luke  and  St  Paul,  but  elsewhere  is 
only  found  in  i  Pet.  i.  12  ;  Matt.  xi.  5.  It  comes  from  the  LXX. 
(Is.  xl.  9,  Ixi.  i). 

20.  thou  shalt  be  dtimb,  and  not  able  to  speak]  He  receives  the 
sign  for  which  he  had  unfaithfully  asked  (Matt.  xii.  38),  but  it  comes 
in  the  form  of  a  punishment.  This  positive  and  negative  way  of 
expressing  the  same  thing  is  common,  especially  in  Hebrew  literature, 
2  Sam.  xiv.  5;  Exod.  xxi.  11;  Is.  xxxviii.  i ;  Lam.  iii.  2,  &c. 

in  their  seasoft]  "  I  will  certainly  return  unto  thee  according  to 
the  time  of  life,"  Gen.  xviii.  10,  i.  e.  after  the  usual  nine  months. 

21.  he  tarried  so  long]  Priests  never  tarried  in  the  awful  precincts 
of  the  shrine  longer  than  was  absolutely  necessary  for  the  fulfilment 
of  their  duties,  from  feelings  of  holy  fear,  Lev.  xvi.  13,  "that  he  die 
not."     (T.  B.    Yoma  f.  52.  2.)     See  Excursus  VII. 

22.  And  when  he  came  out]  The  moment  of  the  priest's  re- 
appearance from  before  the  ever-burning  golden  candlestick,  and  the 
veil  which  hid  the  Holiest  Place,  was  one  which  powerfully  affected 
the  Jewish  imagination,  Ecclus.  1.  5 — 21. 

ST  LUKE  4 


50  ST   LUKE,   I.  [w.  23—26. 

could  not  speak  unto  them :  and  they  perceived  that  he  had 
seen  a  vision  in  the  temple:  for  he  beckoned  unto  them, 

23  and  remained  speechless.    And  it  came  to  pass  that,  as  soon 
as  the  days  of  his  ministration  were  accomplished,  he  de- 

24  parted  to  his  own  house.     And  after  those  days  his  wife 
Elisabeth  conceived,  and  hid  herself  five  months,  saying, 

25  Thus  hath  the  Lord  dealt  with  me  in  the  days  wherein  he 
looked  on  me,  to  take  away  my  reproach  among  men. 

26 — 38.      TTie  Annunciation. 

26  And  in  the  sixth  month  the  angel  Gabriel  was  sent  from 

he  could  not  speak  unto  t/iem]  They  were  waiting  in  the  Court 
to  be  dismissed  with  the  usual  blessing,  which  is  said  to  have  been 
usually  pronounced  by  the  ot/ier  priest.  Numb.  vi.  23 — 26.  "Then 
he"  (the  High  Priest  Simon)  "went  down  and  lifted  up  his  hands 
over  the  whole  congregation  of  the  children  of  Israel,  to  give  the 
blessing  of  the  Lord  with  his  lips,  and  to  rejoice  in  His  name.  And 
they  bowed  themselves  down  to  worship  the  second  time,  that  they 
might  receive  a  blessing  from  the  Most  High."     Ecclus.  1.  20. 

a  visiott]  Optasian.  Used  especially  of  the  most  vivid  and  'ob- 
jective' appearances,  xxiv.  23;  Acts  xxvi.  19;  2  Cor.  xii.  i;  Dan. 
ix.  23. 

he  beckoned  unto  them\  Rather,  he  was  himself  making  signs 
to  them. 

remauied  speechless\  "  Credat  Judaeus  ut  loqui  possit"  (let  the 
Jew  believe  that  he  may  be  able  to  speak)  says  St  Augustine.  Origen, 
Ambrose,  and  Isidore,  see  in  the  speechless  priest  vainly  endeavouring 
to  bless  the  people,  a  fine  image  of  the  Law  reduced  to  silence  before 
the  first  announcement  of  the  Gospel.  The  scene  might  stand  for  an 
allegorical  representation  of  the  thesis  so  powerfully  worked  out  in 
the  Epistle  to  the  Hebrews  (see  Heb.  viii.  13).  Zacharias  became 
dumb,  and  Saul  of  Tarsus  blind,  for  a  time.  "  Praeludium  legis 
ceremonialis  finiendae  Christo  veniente."     Bengel. 

23.  the  days  of  his  ministration^  They  lasted  from  the  evening 
of  one  Sabbath  to  the  morning  of  the  next.     2  Kings  xi.  5. 

24.  hid  herself]  We  can  only  conjecture  her  motive.  It  may 
have  been  devotional ;  or  precautionary ;  or  she  may  merely  have 
wished  out  of  deep  modesty  to  avoid  as  long  as  possible  the  idle  com- 
ments and  surmises  of  her  neighbours. 

25.  to  take  away  my  reproach]  So  Rachel,  when  she  bare  a  son, 
said,  "  God  hath  taken  away  my  reproach,"  Gen.  xxx.  23.  See  Is. 
iv.  I ;  Hos.  ix.  II ;  i  Sam.  i.  6 — 10.  Yet  the  days  were  coming  when 
to  be  childless  would  be  regarded  by  Jewish  mothers  as  a  blessing. 
See  xxiii.  29. 

26 — 38.    The  Annunciation. 

26.  in  the  sixth  month]  i.  e.  after  the  vision  of  Zachariah.     This  is 


vv.  27—29.]  ST   LUKE,   I.  51 

God  unto  a  city  of  Galilee,  n.iined  Nazareth,  to  a  virgin  2- 
espoused  to  a  man  whose  name  was  Joseph,  of  the  house 
of  David;  and  the  virgin's  name  was  Mary.     And  the  angel  2^= 
came  in  unto  her,  and  said,  Hail,  thou  thai  art  highly  favour- 
ed, the  Lord  is  with  thee:  blessed  a)'t  thou  among  women. 
And  when  she  saw  hi?n,  she  was  troubled  at  his  saying,  and  29 
cast  in  her  mind  what  manner  of  salutation  this  should  be. 

the  only  passage  which  indicates  the  age  of  John  the  Baptist,  as  half 
a  year  older  than  our  Lord. 

Galilee]  Thus  began  to  be  fulfilled  the  prophecy  of  Is.  ix.  i,  2. 
Galilee  of  the  Gentiles  {Gelil  haggoyhn),  one  of  the  four  great  Roman 
divisions  of  Palestine,  was  north  of  Judaea  and  Samaria,  west  of 
Peraea,  and  comprised  the  territories  of  Zebulun,  Naphthali,  Issachar 
and  Asher  (Matt.  iv.  13).  Josephus  describes  it  as  rich  in  trees  and 
pastures,  strong,  populous,  containing  204  towns,  of  which  the  least 
had  15000  inhabitants,  and  occupied  by  a  hardy  and  warlike  race. 
Bell.  yud.  III.  3;    Vit.  45,  52.     See  Map,  and  note  on  iii.  2. 

named  Nazaretli\  The  expression  shews  that  St  Luke  is  writing 
for  those  who  were  unfamiliar  with  Palestine.      See  on  ii.  51. 

a  virgin]  Is.  vii.  14  ;  Jer.  xxxi.  22.  The  many  miraculous  and 
glorifying  legends  which  soon  began  to  gather  round  her  name  in  the 
Apocryphal  Gospels  are  utterly  unknown  to  Scripture. 

27.  espousett]  Rather,  betrothed.  The  betrothal,  which  is  in  the 
East  a  ceremony  of  the  deepest  importance,  usually  took  place  a  year 
before  the  marriage. 

yoseph,  of  the  house  of  David]  We  are  nowhere  told  that  Mary 
was  of  the  house  of  David,  for  both  the  genealogies  of  the  Gospels 
are  genealogies  of  Joseph.  See  Excursus  II.  The  fact  that  it  seems 
always  to  be  assumed  that  Mary  also  was  of  the  lineage  of  David 
(vs.  32),  makes  it  probable  that  the  genealogy  of  Mary  is  involved 
in  that  of  Joseph,  and  that  they  were  first  cousins. 

Mary]  The  same  name  as  Miriam  and  Marah,  Exod.  xv.  20;  Ruth 
i.  20.  Her  early  residence  at  Nazareth,  before  the  birth  of  Christ 
at  Bethlehem,  is  narrated  by  St  Luke  alone.  It  does  not  however 
follow  that  St  Matthew  was  unaware  of  it  (Matt.  xiii.  55,  56).  After 
the  narrative  of  the  Nativity  she  is  very  rarely  mentioned.  The  Ave 
Maria  of  the  Roman  Catholics  did  not  assume  its  present  form  till  the 
16th  century. 

28.  highly  favoured]  marg.  "graciously  accepted"  or  "much 
graced."  Literally,  having  been  graced  (by  God).  Eph.  i.  6, 
"  accepted."  Not  as  in  the  Vulgate  "  Gratia  plena"  but  "gratia  cumu- 
lata."     "  Not  a  mother  of  grace,  but  a  daughter."     Bengel. 

blessed  art  thou  among  women]  These  words  are  of  dubious  authen- 
ticity, being  omitted  by  B  and  various  versions.  They  may  have  been 
added  from  vs.  42.     With  this  address  comp.  Judg.  vi.  12. 

29.  And  when  she  saw  him,  she  wa%  troubled]  Rather,  But  she 
was  greatly  troubled 

4—2 


ST   LUKE,  I.  [vv.  30—35. 


JO  And  the  angel  said  unto  her,  Fear  not,  Mary:  for  thou  hast 

31  found  favour  with  God.  And  behold,  thou  shalt  conceive 
in  thy  womb,  and  bring  forth  a  son,  and  shalt  call  his  name 

32  JESUS.  He  shall  be  great,  and  shall  be  called  the  Son  of 
the  Highest:  and  the  Lord  God  shall  give  unto  him  the 

33  throne  of  his  father  David :  and  he  shall  reign  over  the 
house  of  Jacob  for  ever;   and  of  his  kingdom  there  shall  be 

34  no  end.     Then  said  Mary  unto  the  angel,  How  shall  this 

35  be,  seeing  I  know  not  a  man?  And  the  angel  answered  and 
said  unto  her.  The  Holy  Ghost  shall  come  upon  thee,  and 
the  power  of  the  Highest  shall  overshadow  thee:  therefore 
also  that  holy  thing  which  shall  be  born  of  thee  shall  be 

31.  yesus'\  The  Greek  form  of  the  Hebrew  name  Jehoshua  (Num. 
xiii.  8),  Joshua,  Jeshua  {Zech.  iii.  i),  which  means  'The  salvation  of 
Jehovah'  (Philo,  i.  597).  It  was  one  of  the  commonest  Jewish  names. 
Jesus  is  used  for  Joshua  (to  the  great  confusion  of  English  readers)  in 
Acts  vii.  45;  Heb.  iv.  8.  St  Matthew  (i.  21)  explains  the  reason  of  the 
name — "for  He  Himself  shall  save  His  people  froin  their  sins."  On 
Joshua  as  a  tj^e  of  Christ  see  Pearson  On  the  Creed,  Art.  ii. 

He  shall  save  His  people  from  their  sifts,  "  Summa  Evangelii."  Bengel. 

32.  shall  be  called^  i.  e.  shall  be.  The  best  comment  on  this  verse 
is  furnished  by  the  passages  of  Scripture  in  which  we  find  the  same 
prophecy  (Mic.  v.  4;  2  Sam.  vii.  12;  Is.  ix.  6,  7,  xi.  i,  10,  xvi.  5;  Jer. 
xxiii.  5,  XXX.  9;  Ezek.  xxxiv.  24;  Hos.  iii.  5;  Ps.  cxxxii.  11)  and  its  ful- 
filment (Phil.  ii.  9 — 11;   Rev.  xxii.  16). 

the  throne  of  his  father  David\  according  to  Ps.  cxxxii.  11. 

33.  reign ..  .for  everl  Dan.  ii.  44,  "a  kingdom  which  shall  never  be 
destroyed... it  shall  stand  for  ever."  (Comp.  Dan.  vii.  13,  14,  27;  Mic. 
iv.  7.)  "Thy  throne,  O  God,  is  for  ever  and  ever"  (Ps.  xlv.  6;  Heb. 
i,  8).  "He  shall  reign  for  ever  and  ever,"  Rev.  xi.  15.  In  1  Cor,  xv. 
24 — 28  the  allusion  is  only  to  Christ's  mediatorial  kingdom, — His 
earthly  kingdom  till  the  end  of  conflict. 

34.  How  shall  this  de  ?]  Mary  does  not  doubt  the  fact  as  Zacharias 
had  done ;  she  only  enquires  as  to  the  mode  of  accomplishment.  The 
village  maiden  amid  her  humble  daily  duties  shews  a  more  ready  faith 
in  a  far  more  startling  message  than  the  aged  priest  in  the  Holy  Place 
amid  the  Incense. 

35.  shall  overshadow  thee]  as  wdth  the  Shechinah  and  Cloud  of  Glory 
(see  on  ii.  9,  ix.  34).  See  the  treatise  on  the  Shechinah  in  Meuschen, 
pp.  701 — 739.  On  the  high  theological  mystery  see  Pearson  On  the 
Creed,  Art.  iii.     See  on  ii.  9. 

that  holy  thing]  "Holy,  harmless,  undefiled,  separate  from  sinners," 
Heb.  vii.  26.     "Who  did  no  sin,"  i  Pet.  ii.  22. 

which  shall  he  born  of  thee]  Rather,  whicli  is  In  thy  womb.  Gal.  iv. 
4,  "born  of  a  woman." 


53 


w.  36—39]  ST   LUKE,  I. 

called  the  Son  of  God.     And  behold,  thy  cousin  Elisabeth,  36 
she  hath  also  conceived  a  son  in  her  old  age:  and  this  is 
the  sixth  month  with  her,  who  was  called  barren.     For  with  37 
God  nothing  shall  be  unpossible.     And  Mary  said,  Behold  38 
the  handmaid  of  the  Lord;  be  it  unto  me  according  to  thy 
word.     And  the  angel  departed  from  her. 

39—45.     The  Visit  of  Mary  to  Elizabeth. 
And  Mary  arose  in  those  days,  and  went  into  the  hill  39 

the  Son  of  God'\  This  title  is  given  to  our  Lord  by  almost  every  one 
of  the  sacred  writers  in  the  N.T.  and  in  a  multitude  of  passages. 

36.  thy  cousitt]  Rather,  '' thy  khtsivoman."  What  the  actual  rela- 
tionship was  we  do  not  know.  It  is  a  mistake  to  infer  from  this,  as 
Ewald  does,  that  Mary  too  was  of  the  tribe  of  Levi,  for  except  in  the 
case  of  heiresses  there  was  free  intermarriage  between  the  tribes  (Ex, 
vi.  23;  Judg.  xvii.  7;  Philo  De  Monach.  Ii.  11;  Jos.   Vit.  i). 

37.  nothingl  Rather,  no  word.  For  the  thought  see  Gen.  xviii.  14; 
Matth.  xix.  26.      "There  is  nothing  too  hard  for  thee,"  Jer.  xxxii.  17. 

38.  be  it  tinto  me  according  to  thy  word]  The  thoughts  of  the  Virgin 
Mary  seem  to  have  found  their  most  natural  utterance  in  the  phrases  of 
Scripture.  1  Sam.  iii.  18,  "  If  it  be  the  Lord  let  Him  do  what  seemeth 
Him  good."  For  Mary  too  was  aware  that  her  high  destiny  must  be 
mingled  with  anguish. 

And  the  angel  departed  from  her]  We  can  best  appreciate  the  noble 
simplicity  of  truthfulness  by  comparing  this  narrative  of  the  Annuncia- 
tion with  the  diffuse  inflation  of  the  Apocryphal  Gospels.  Take  for 
instance  such  passages  as  these  from  one  of  the  least  extravagant  of 
them,  'The  Gospel  of  the  Nativity  of  Mary.'  "The  Angel  Gabriel 
was  sent  to  her. ..to  explain  to  her  the  method  or  order  of  the  Con- 
ception. At  length  having  entered  unto  her,  he  filled  the  chamber 
where  she  abode  with  an  immense  light,  and  saluting  her  most  cour- 
teously said,  'Hail  Mary!  most  acceptable  Virgin  of  the  Lord!  Virgin 
full  of  grace... blessed  art  thou  before  all  women  ;  blessed  art  thou 
before  all  men  hitherto  born.'  But  the  Virgin  who  already  knew  the 
countenance  of  angels,  and  was  not  unused  to  heavenly  light,  was 
neither  terrified  by  the  angelic  vision  nor  stupefied  by  the  greatness 
of  the  light,  but  was  troubled  at  his  word  alone;  and  began  to  think 
what  that  salutation  so  unwonted  could  be,  or  what  it  portended,  or 
what  end  it  could  have.  But  the  Angel,  divinely  inspired  and  counter- 
acting this  thought,  said.  Fear  not,  Mary,  as  though  I  meant  something 
contrary  to  thy  chastity  by  this  salutation  ;  for  &c.,  &'c."  The  reader 
will  observe  at  once  the  artificiality,  the  tasteless  amplifications,  the 
want  of  reticence; — all  the  marks  which  separate  truthful  narrative  from 
elaborate  fiction.    (See  B.  H.  Cowper,   The  Apocryphal  Gospels,  p.  93.) 

39 — 45.     The  Visit  of  Mary  to  Elizarkth. 

39.  in  those  days]  Rather,  tliese.  Probably  within  a  month  of  the 
Annunciation. 


54  ST    LUKE,   I.  [vv.  40—42. 

40  country  with  haste,  into  a  city  of  Juda;  and  entered  into 

41  the  house  of  Zacharias,  and  saluted  EUsabeth.  And  it  came 
to  pass  that,  when  Ehsabeth  heard  the  salutation  of  Mary, 
the  babe  leaped  in  her  womb;  and  Ehsabeth  was  filled  with 

42  the  Holy  Ghost :  and  she  spake  out  with  a  loud  voice,  and 


went  into  the  hill  country]  Palestine  west  of  the  Jordan  lies  in  four 
parallel  lines  of  very  different  formation,  i.  The  coast.  2.  The  She- 
phelah,  or  maritime  plain,  broken  only  by  the  spur  of  Carmel.  3.  The 
Har  or  Hill  country, — the  mass  of  low  rounded  hills  which  formed  the 
main  part  of  the  Roman  provinces  of  Judaea  and  Samaria  south  of  the 
intervening  plain  of  Esdraelon,  and  of  Galilee  north  of  it ;  and  4.  The 
GhSr  or  deep  dint  of  the  Jordan  Valley.  See  Deut.  i.  7,  "  in  the  plain 
{Arabah),  in  the  hills  [Har],  in  the  vale  [Shepkelah),  and  in  the  south 
{IVegeb),  and  by  the  sea  side  {Chooph  hayydm)."  (Josh.  ix.  i;  Judg. 
V.  17.)  The  specific  meaning  of  'hill  country'  is  the  elevated  district 
of  Judah,  Benjamin  and  Ephraim.  (Gen.  xiv.  10;  Num.  xiii.  29; 
Josh.  ix.  I,  X.  40,  xi.  16.) 

with  haste]  The  same  notion  of  haste  is  involved  in  the  aorist  par- 
ticiple ^anastasa'  rising  up.  As  a  betrothed  virgin  she  would  live 
without  seeing  her  future  husband.  When  however  a  few  weeks 
sufficed  to  shew  her  condition,  the  female  friends  about  her  would  be 
sure  to  make  it  known  to  Joseph.  Then  would  occur  the  enquiries  and 
suspicions,  so  agonising  to  a  pure  maiden,  which  are  alluded  to  by  St 
Matthew  (i.  18 — 25).  After  the  dream  which  vindicated  her  innocence 
we  can  understand  the  "haste"  with  which  she  would  fly  to  the  sym- 
pathy of  her  holy  and  aged  kinswoman  and  seek  for  peace  in  the 
seclusion  of  the  priestly  home.  Nothing  but  the  peculiarity  of  her  con- 
dition could  have  permitted  the  violation  of  Jewish  custom  involved  in 
the  journey  of  a  betrothed  virgin.  But  for  the  incidents  recorded  by  St 
Matthew  we  should  be  wholly  unable  to  account  for  this  expression. 
Its  naturalness  under  the  circumstances  is  an  undesigned  coincidence. 

into  a  city  of  Juda]  Similarly,  Nazareth  is  described  as  "a  city  of 
Galilee."  The  name  of  the  city  is  not  given.  Had  the  home  of 
Zacharias  been  at  Hebron  it  would  probably  have  been  mentioned. 
Reland  (Palest,  p.  870)  ingeniously  conjectures  that  we  should  read 
Jutta,  which  was  in  the  hill  countiy  (Josh.  xv.  55)  and  was  one  of  the 
cities  of  Judah  which  were  assigned  to  the  priests  (ib.  xxi.  9,  16). 
We  can  hardly  venture  to  alter  the  reading,  but  as  Juttah  was  only  a 
large  village  (Euseb.  Onomast.  s.  v.)  and  is  not  mentioned  in  i  Chr.  vi. 
57 — 59  it  may  have  been  the  home  of  Zacharias,  and  the  actual  name 
may  easily  have  been  omitted  as  obscure.  Tradition  names  Ain  Karim. 
'Judah'  is  here  used  for  Judaea  (Matt.  ii.  6). 

41.  leaped]  The  same  word  is  applied  to  unborn  babes  in  Gen.  xxv. 
11,  LXX. 

42.  with  a  loud  ■voice]  For  'phone^  voice,  B  has  the  stronger  word 
'kratige,^  cry. 


w.  43-46.]  ST   LUKE,   I.  55 

said,  Blessed  art  thou  among  women,  and  blessed   is  the 
fruit  of  thy  womb.      And  whence  is  this  to  me,  that   the  43 
mother  of  my  Lord  should  come  to  me  ?   For  lo,  as  soon  as  44 
the  voice  of  thy  salutation  sounded  in  mine  ears,  the  babe 
leaped  in  my  womb  for  joy.     And  blessed  is  she  that  be-  4s 
lieved:   for  there  shall  be  a  performance  of  those    things 
which  were  told  her  from  the  Lord. 

46 — 56.      The  Magnificat. 

And  Mary  said,  46 

My  soul  doth  magnify  the  Lord, 

Blessed  art  thoii  among  wometil  i.e.  preeminently  blessed,  as  "fairest 
among  women,"  Cant.  i.  8.  Similar  expressions  are  used  of  Ruth  (Ruth 
iii.  10),  and,  on  a  far  lower  level  of  meaning,  of  Jael  (Judg.  v.  24),  and 
of  Judith.  "All  the  women  of  Israel  blessed  her,"  Jud.  xv.  12.  In  the 
latter  instances  the  blessing  '\%  pronotmced  by  women,  but  here  the  word 
means  'blessed  by  God.' 

43.  the  mother  of  my  Lord]  The  words  shew  a  remarkable  degree 
of  divine  illumination  in  the  mind  of  Elizabeth.  See  John  xx.  1% 
xiii.  13.  Yet  she  does  not  address  Mary  as  Domina,  but  as  'mater 
Domini'  (Bengel);  and  such  expressions  as  Theotokos  and  'Mother  of 
God  '  are  unknown  to  Scripture. 

44.  for  joy]     Rather,  in  exultation. 

45.  blessed  is  she  that  believed]  Perhaps  Elizabeth  had  in  mind  the 
affliction  which  had  followed  her  husband's  doubt.  Comp.  John  xx. 
•29. 

for  there  shall  be  a  performance]  The  words  may  also  mean  'she 
that  beHeved  that  there  shall  be,'  &c, 

46—56.    The  Magnificat. 

46.  And  Mary  said]  This  chapter  is  remarkable  for  preserving  a 
record  of  two  inspired  hymns— the  Magnificat  and  the  Benedtctus— 
which  have  been  used  for  more  than  a  thousand  years  in  the  public 
services  of  Christendom.  The  Magnificat  first  appears  m  the  ofhce  of 
Lauds  in  the  rule  of  St  Caesarius  of  Aries,  A.D.  507.  {^xxxA,  Annotated 
Prayer  Book,  p.  33.)  It  is  so  full  of  Hebraisms  as  almost  to  form  a 
mosaic  of  quotations  from  the  Old  Testament,  and  it  is  closely  analogous 
to  the  Song  of  Hannah  (i  Sam.  ii.  i— 10).  It  may  also  be  compared 
with  the  Hymn  of  Judith  (Jud.  xvi.  1-17).  But  it  is  anmiated  by  a 
new  and  more  exalted  spirit,  and  is  specially  precious  as  forming  a  link 
of  continuity  between  the  eucharistic  poetry  of  the  Old  and  JNew  Dis- 
pensation.    (See  Bp  Wordsworth,  ad  loc.)  _ 

My  soul  doth  magnify  the  Lord]  x  Sam.  ii.  i ;  Ps.  xxxiv.  2,  3-  The 
som\  (xpvxv)  is  the  natural  life  with  all  its  affections  and  emotions;  the 
spirit  {-n-feOfxa)  is  the  diviner  and  loftier  region  of  our  being,  i  1  hess.  v. 
23;  I  Cor.  ii.  10. 


49 


5° 


5' 


52 


56  ST   LUKE,   I.  [vv.  47— 52. 

47  And  my  spirit  hatii  rejoiced  in  God  my  Saviour. 

48  For  he  hath  regarded  the  low  estate  of  his  handmaiden: 
For  behold,  from  henceforth  all  generations  shall  call  me 

blessed. 
For  he  that  is  mighty  hath  done  to  me  great  things; 
And  holy  is  his  name. 
And  his  mercy  is  on  them  that  fear  him 
From  generation  to  generation. 
He  hath  shewed  strength  with  his  arm  ; 
He  hath  scattered  the  proud  in  the  imagination  of  their 

hearts. 
He  hath  put  down  tlie  mighty  from  their  seats, 
And  exalted  them  of  low  degree. 


47.  hath  rejoiced^  Rather,  exults.  In  the  original  it  is  the  general, 
or  gnomic  aorist. 

in  God  7?iy  Saviour']  Is.  xlv.  21,  "a  just  God  and  a  Saviour."  Comp. 
Is.  xii.  2,  XXV.  9.  The  expression  is  also  found  in  the  later  Epistles  of 
St  Paul,  "God  our  Saviour,"  i  Tim.  i.  i ;  Tit.  iii.  4. 

48.  he  hath  regarded]     Rather,  He  looked  upon. 

the  lo7v  estate]  So  Hagar  (Gen.  xvi.  11)  and  Hannah  (i  Sam.  i.  11; 
cf.  Ps.  cxxxviii.  6,  cii.  17).  The  word  may  be  rendered  humiliation, 
Acts  viii.  33;  Is.  i.  9,  10.  The  reader  will  notice  in  this  hymn  more 
than  one  anticipation  of  the  Beatitudes. 

all  generations  shall  call  me  blessed]  "Blessed  is  the  womb  that  bare 
Thee,"  Lk.  xi.  27.  "Leah  said,  The  daughters  will  call  me  blessed," 
Gen.  XXX.  13;  Ps.  Ixxii.  17.  We  cannot  but  wonder  at  the  vast  faith  of 
the  despised  and  persecuted  Virgin  of  Nazareth,  whose  inspired  antici- 
pations have  been  so  amply  fulfilled. 

49.  he  that  is  viighty]  El  Shaddai,  Job  viii.  3 ;  also  Gibbor,  Ps. 
xxiv.  8.     See  Pearson  On  the  Creed,  Art.  i. 

great  things]     Gedol&th,  Ps.  Ixxi.  2 1 ,  cxxvi.  3. 

holy  is  his  name]     Ps.  cxi.  9;   "Thou   only  art  holy,"  Rev.  xv.  4. 
Shem,    'name,'  is  often   a   reverent    periphrasis   in    Hebrew   for    God- 
Himself.     Ps.  xci.   i^;  1  Chr.  vi.  20,  &c. 

60.     his  mercy]    Ps.  Ixxxix.  2,  3  and  passim. 

From  generation  to  generation]  Rather,  Unto  generations  and  gene- 
rations; ledor  vaddr.  Gen.  xvii.  9,  &c.     See  Deut.  vii.  9. 

51.  with  his  arm]  "Thou  hast  a  mighty  arm,"  Ps.  Ixxxix.  13.  The 
nearest  parallel  to  the  remainder  of  the  verse  is  Job  v.  12. 

52.  He  hath  put  down  the  ?nighty  fro?n  their  seats]  Rather,  He  puts 
down  potentates  from  thrones.  The  aorists  throughout  are  gnomic, 
i.e.  they  do  not  express  single  but  normal  acts.  The  thought  is  common 
throughout  the  Bible,  e.g.  Lk.  xviii.  14;  Dan.  iv.  30;  i  Sam.  ii.  6 — 10; 
Ps.  cxiii.  6 — 8 ;  i  Cor.  i.  26 — 29.     The  ancients  noticed  the  fact  (ku/cXoj 


w.  53— 59-]  ST  LUKE,  I.  57 

He  hath  filled  the  hungry  with  good  things;  S3 

And  the  rich  he  hath  sent  empty  away. 

He  hath  holpen  his  servant  Israel,  S4 

In  remembrance  of  his  mercy, 

(As  he  spake  to  our  fathers),  ss 

To  Abraham,  and  to  his  seed  for  ever. 
And  Mary  abode  with  her  about  three  months,  and  returned  56 
to  her  own  house. 


57 — 80.      The  Birth  of  John  the  Baptist. 

Now  Elisabeth's  full  time  came  that  she  should  be  de-  57 
livered;  and  she  brought  forth  a  son.     And  her  neighbours  58 
and  her  cousins  heard  how  the  Lord  had  shewed  great  mercy 
upon  her;  and  they  rejoiced  with  her.    And  it  came  to  pass,  59 
that  on  the  eighth  day  they  came  to  circumcise  the  child; 


TcSc  dvOpuirri'tuv  icrl  irprjyfMTWv,  Hdt.  I.  207;  "Irus  et  est  subito  qui 
modo  Croesus  erat,"  Ov.  Trist.  iir.  vii.  41)  but  did  not  draw  the  tnie 
lessons  from  it. 

53.  filled  the  hungry  with  good  things]  "  My  servants  shall  eat  but 
ye  shall  be  hungry,  &c.,"  Is.  Ixv.  13,  xxv.  6;  Ps.  xxxiv.  10,  and  the 
Beatitude  Matt.  v.  6.   (See  Lk.  xviii.  14,  the  Publican  and  the  Pharisee.) 

54.  hath  holpen]  Literally,  "took  by  the  hand."  Is.  xli.  8,  9, 
LXX.  The  proper  punctuation  of  the  following  words  is  to  remember 
His  mercy — (even  as  He  spake  to  (Trpos)  our  fathers) — to  (ry)  Abra- 
ham and  his  seed  for  ever.  Mic.  vii.  20,  "Thou  wilt  perform. ..the 
mercy  to  Abraham,  which  thou  hast  sworn  unto  our  fathers  from  the 
days  of  old."  Gal.  iii.  16,  "Now  to  Abraham  and  his  seed  were  the 
promises  made." 

56.  about  three  7)ionths\  As  this  would  complete  the  nine  months  of 
Elizabeth's  '  full  time,'  it  might  seem  probable  that  the  Virgin  Mary  at 
least  remained  until  the  birth  of  the  Baptist. 

returned]  The  word  used — hupestrepsen—\%  a  favourite  word  of  St 
Luke,  and  almost  (Gal.  i.  17  ;  Heb.  vii.  i)  peculiar  to  him.  It  occurs 
twenty-one  times  in  this  Gospel. 

67—80.     The  Birth  of  John  the  Baptist. 

68.  her  cousijis]  Rather,  her  kinsfolk,  which  was  the  original 
n\ZM\\Xi%oii\v&\iotA  cousins  {con-sohrini).     See  vs.  36. 

59.  on  the  eighth  day]  According  to  the  ordinance  of  Gen.  xvii. 
12 ;  Lev.  xii.  3 ;— Phil.  iii.  5.    The  name  was  then  given,  because  at  the 


S8  ST   LUKE,   I.  [w.  60—67. 

and  they  called  him  Zacharias,  after  the  name  of  his  father. 

60  And  his  mother  answered  and  said,  Not  so;  but  he  shall  be 

61  called  John.     And  they  said  unto  her,  There  is  none  of  thy 

62  kindred  that  is  called  by  this  name.     And  they  made  signs 

63  to  his  father,  how  he  would  have  him  called.    And  he  asked 
for  a  writing  table,  and  wrote,  saying,  His  name  is  John. 

64  And  they  marvelled  all.     And  his  mouth  was  opened  im- 
mediately, and  his  tongue  loosed,  and  he  spake,  and  praised 

65  God.     And  fear  came  on  all  that  dwelt  round  about  them : 
and  all  these  sayings  were  noised  abroad  throughout  all  the 

66  hill  country  of  Judea.     And  all  they  that  heard  thefn  laid 
them  up  in  their  hearts,  saying.  What  manner  of  child  shall 

67  this  be  1  And  the  hand  of  the  Lord  was  with  him.     And  his 

institution  of  circumcision  the  names  of  Abram  and  Sarai  had  been 
changed,  Gen.  xvii.  15.  The  rite  was  invested  with  extreme  solem- 
nity, and  in  later  times  a  chair  was  always  put  for  the  prophet  Elijah. 

they  called'\  Rather,  they  wished  to  call.  Literally,  'they  were 
calling,'  but  the  imperfect  by  an  idiomatic  use  often  expresses  an  un- 
fulfilled attempt.  So  in  Matt.  iii.  14,  'he  tried  to  prevent  Him' 
{diekolue^i). 

61.  none  of  thy  kindred'\  We  find  a  John  among  hierarchs  in 
Acts  iv.  6,  V.  17.  Those  priests  however  who  passed  the  High 
Priesthood  from  one  to  another — a  clique  of  Herodian  Sadducees — the 
Boethusim,  Kamhiths,  Bern  Hanan,  &c. — were  partly  of  Babylonian 
and  Egyptian  origin,  and  had  been  introduced  by  Herod  to  support  his 
purposes.     They  would  not  be  of  the  kin  of  Zacharias. 

62.  made  signs']  The  discussion  whether  Zacharias  was  deaf  as 
well  as  mute  is  a  very  unimportant  one,  but  the  narrative  certainly 
seems  to  imply  that  he  was. 

63.  table]  Rather,  tablet.  A  small  wooden  tablet  [abacus)  either 
smeared  with  wax,  or  with  sand  sprinkled  over  it,  on  which  words 
were  written  with  an  'won  stylus.  Thus  'John,'  '  the  grace  of  Jehovah,' 
is  the  first  word  zuritten  under  the  Gospel ;  the  aeon  of  the  written  Law 
had  ended  with  Cheretn,  'curse,'  in  Mai.  iii.  24  (Bengel). 

64.  he  spake]  Rather,  he  began  to  speak  (imperfect),  the  previous 
verb  '  was  opened  '  being  an  aorist. 

65.  fear]  The  minds  of  men  at  this  period  were  full  of  dread  and 
agitated  expectancy,  which  had  spread  even  to  the  heathen.  Virg.  Eel. 
IV.;  Orac.  Sibyl.  III.;  Suet.  Vesp.  4;  Tac.  Hist.  V,  13;  Jos.  Bell.  Jud. 

VI.  5,  §  4- 

66.  What  matiner  of  child]     Rather,  What  then  will  this  child  be? 
And]    Rather,  For  indeed,  with  S,  B,  C,  D,  L,  which  read  koX  yap. 
the  hand  of  the  Lord  tuas  with  him]      The   turn  of  expression  is 

Hebraistic,  as  throughout  the  chapter.  Comp.  xiii.  11;  Acts  xi.  21. 
"  Lcl  lliy  hand  be  upon  the  man  of  thy  right  hand,"  Ps.  Ixxx.  17. 


vv.  68—71.]  ST   LUKE,   I. 


59 


father  Zacharias  was  filled  with  ilie  Holy  Ghost,  and  pro- 
phesied, saying. 

Blessed  be  the  Lord  God  of  Israel;  68 

For  he  hath  visited  and  redeemed  his  people, 

And  hath  raised  up  a  horn  of  salvation  for  us  69 

In  the  house  of  his  servant  David; 

(As  he  spake  by  the  mouth  of  his  holy  prophets, 

Which  have  been  since  the  world  began :) 

That  we  should  be  saved  from  our  enemies, 


70 


71 


68.  Blessed]  This  hymn  of  praise  is  hence  called  the  Benedictus. 
It  has  been  in  use  in  Christian  worship  perhaps  as  far  back  as  the  days  of 
St  Benedict  in  the  sixth  century,  and  it  was  early  recognised  that  it  is 
the  last  Prophecy  of  the  Old  Dispensation,  and  the  first  of  the  New, 
and  furnishes  a.  kind  of  key  to  the  evangelical  interpretation  of  all 
prophecies.  It  is  also  a  continual  acknowledgment  of  the  Communion 
of  Saints  under  the  two  dispensations  ;  for  it  praises  God  for  the  salva- 
tion which  has  been  raised  up  for  all  ages  out  of  the  house  of  His  ser- 
vant David,  and  according  to  the  ancient  coveiiant  which  He  made 
with  Abraham  (see  Rom.  iv.  11;  Gal.  iii.  29).  Blunt,  Annotated 
Prayer  Book,  p.  16. 

the  Lord  God]    Rather,  the  Lord,  the  God. 

redeemed]     Literally,  "  made  a  ransom  for."     Tit.  ii.  14. 

69.  a  horn  of  salvation']  A  natural  and  frequent  metaphor.  Ezek. 
xxix.  21,  "In  that  day  will  I  cause  the  horn  of  the  house  of  Israel  to 
bud  forth."  Lam.  ii.  3,  "He  hath  cut  off.. .all  the  horn  of  Israel." 
Ps.  cxxxii.  17;  I  Sam.  ii.  10,  "  He  shall  exalt  the  horn  of  His  anointed." 
A  Rabbinic  writer  says  that  there  are  ten  horns — those  of  Abraham, 
Isaac,  Joseph,  Moses,  the  horn  of  the  Law,  of  the  Priesthood,  of  the 
Temple,  and  of  Israel ;  and  some  add  of  the  Messiah.  They  were  all 
placed  on  the  heads  of  the  Israelites  till  they  sinned,  and  then  they 
were  cut  off  and  given  to  the  Gentiles.  Schottgen,  Nor.  Hebr.  ad  loc. 
We  find  the  same  metaphor  in  classic  writers.  "Tunc  pauper  cornua 
sumit,"  Ov.  Art.  Am.  i.  239;  "addis  cormia  pauperi,"  Hon  Od.  III. 
xxi.  18. 

his  servant]  The  word  does  not  here  mean  '  son '  in  the  original, 
being  the  rendering  of  the  Hebrew  ebed,  Ps.  cxxxii.  10. 

70.  by  the  month  of  his  holy  prophets]  namely  "  in  the  Law  of 
Moses,  and  in  the  Prophets,  and  in  the  Psalms,"  see  on  xxiv.  44. 

since  the  world  began]  Rather,  of  old  (ciTr'  alCjvos).  "  At  sundry  times 
and  in  divers  manners"  (Heb.  i.  i)  but  even  "in  old  time"  (-2  I'et. 
i.  21)  and  dating  back  even  to  the  promises  to  Eve  and  to  Abraham 
(Gen.  iii.  15,  xxii.  18,  xlix.  10)  and  the  sceptre  and  the  star  of  Balaam 
(Numb.  xxiv.  17). 

71.  That  we  should  be  saved]  Rather,  Salvation — referring  back  to 
"a  horn  of  salvation, "  to  which  it  is  in  apposition.  The  previous  verse 
is  a  parenthesis. 


6o  ST   LUKE,  I.  [vv.  72—77- 

And  from  the  hand  of  all  that  hate  us ; 

72  To  perform  the  mercy  promised  to  our  fathers, 
And  to  remember  his  holy  covenant; 

73  The  oath  which  he  sware  to  our  father  Abraham, 

74  That  he  would  grant  unto  us,  that  we  being  delivered  out 

of  the  hand  of  our  enemies 
Might  serve  him  without  fear, 

75  In  holiness  and  righteousness  before  him, 
All  the  days  of  our  life. 

76  And  thou,  child,  shalt  be  called  the  prophet  of  the  Highest : 
For  thou  shalt  go  before  the  face  of  the  Lord 

To  prepare  his  ways; 

77  To  give  knowledge  of  salvation  unto  his  people 
By  the  remission  of  their  sins, 

from  our  enemies^  No  doubt  in  the  first  instance  the  "enemies" 
from  which  the  prophets  had  promised  deliverance  were  literal  enemies 
(Deut.  xxxiii.  29 ;  Is.  xiv.  1,  li.  •zi,  23,  &c.),  but  every  pious  Jew  would 
understand  these  words  as  applying  also  to  spiritual  enemies. 

72,  73.  mercy... remember... oat h\  These  three  words  have  been 
thought  by  some  to  be  an  allusion  to  the  three  names  John  ('Jehovah's 
mercy');  Zacharias  (' re}ne?nbered  by  Jehovah'),  and  Elizabeth  (see  p. 
45).  Such  paronomasiae,  or  plays  on  words,  are  exceedingly  common 
in  the  Bible.  For  similar  possible  instances  of  latent  paronomasiae 
see  the  author's  Life  of  Christ,  i.  65  ;  11.  200,  240. 

72.  To  perform  the  mercy  promised  to  ottr  fathers^  It  is  simply  to 
do  mercy  towards  our  fathers.  The  "  promised  "  is  a  needless  addition 
of  the  E.V. 

73.  The  oath  which  he  sware']  Gen.  xii.  3,  xvii.  4,  xxii.  16,  17; 
comp.  Heb.  vii.  13,  14,  17. 

75.  In  holiness]  towards  God, 

and  righteousness]  towards  men.  We  have  the  same  words  con- 
trasted in  I  Thess.  ii.  10,  "how  holily  and  righteously;"  Eph.  iv.  24, 
"in  righteousness  and  holiness  of  the  truth."  "Ocnos,  'holy,'  is  the 
Hebrew  Chdsid,  whence  the  'Chasidim'  (Pharisees);  and  61/caios  the 
Hebrew  Tsaddik,  whence  'Sadducees.' 

76.  child]  Rather,  little  child  [paidion) — "  quantillus  nunc  es," 
Bengel. 

To  prepare  his  ways]  An  allusion  to  the  prophecies  of  the  Fore- 
runner in  Is.  xl.  3;  Mai.  iii.  i. 

77.  knowledge  of  salvation]  A  clear  proof  that  these  prophecies 
had  not  the  local  and  limited  sense  of  national  prosperity  which  some 
have  supposed. 

By  the  remission]  Rather,  In  remission.  Comp.  Acts  v.  31,  "  to  be 
a  Prince  and  a  Saviour,  for  to  give  repentance  to  Israel,  and  forgive- 
ness of  sins." 


w.  78— 8o.]  ST  LUKE,   I.  6i 


Through  the  tender  mercy  of  our  God;  78 

Whereby  the  dayspring  from  on  high  hath  visited  us, 

To  give  Hght  to  them  that  sit  in  darkness   and   in  the  79 

shadow  of  death, 
To  guide  our  feet  into  the  way  of  peace. 
And  the  child  grew,  and  waxed  strong  in  spirit,  and  was  in  80 
the  deserts  till  the  day  of  his  shewing  unto  Israel. 

78.  Through  the  tender  mercy  of  our  God'\    Literally,   "  Because  of 
the  heart  of  mercy."     liirXdyx^"-  (literally  '  bowels')  is  a  favourite  word 
with   St   Paul  to  express  emotion   (2   Cor.   vii.   15;    Phil.   i.    8,  ii.   i; 
Philem.  7,  12,  10,  &c.).     The  expression  is  common  to  Jewish  (Prov. 
xii.  10,  &c.)  and  classical  writers. 

the  dayspring]  The  word  Anatole  is  used  by  the  LXX.  to  translate 
both  Motsah  'the  Dawn'  Qer.  xxxi.  40)  and  Tseniach  'branch'  (Zech. 
iii.  8,  vi.  12.  See  on  Matt.  ii.  23).  Here  the  context  shews  that  the 
Dawn  is  intended.  Mai.  iv.  2,  "Unto  you  that  fear  my  name  shall  the 
Sun  of  Righteousness  arise  with  healing  in  His  wings."  See  Is.  ix.  2 ; 
Matt.  iv.  16;  John  i.  4,  5. 

hath  visited]  or  shall  visit,  in  some  MSS. 

79.  in  the  shadoio  of  death]  The  Hebrew  Tsalmaveth.  Job  x.  21. 
xxxviii.  17;  Ps.  xxiii.  4,  cvii.  10;  Is.  ix.  2;  Matt.  iv.  16,  &c. 

80.  the  child  grew,  and  waxed  strong  in  spirit]  The  description 
resembles  that  of  the  childhood  of  Samuel  (i  Sam.  ii.  26)  and  of  our 
Lord  (Lk.  ii.  40 — 52).  Nothing  however  is  said  of  '  favour  with  men.' 
In  the  case  of  the  Baptist,  as  of  others,  'the  boy  was  father  to  the 
man,'  and  he  probably  shewed  from  the  first  that  nigged  sternness 
which  is  wholly  unlike  the  winning  grace  of  the  child  Christ.  "The 
Baptist  was  no  Lamb  of  God.  He  was  a  wrestler  with  life,  one  to 
whom  peace  does  not  come  easily,  but  only  after  a  long  struggle.  His 
restlessness  had  driven  him  into  the  desert,  where  he  had  coiitended  for 
years  with  thoughts  he  could  not  master,  and  from  whence  he  uttered 
his  startling  alarms  to  the  nation.  He  was  among  the  dogs  rather  than 
among  the  lambs  of  the  Shepherd."     {Ecce  Hono.) 

was  in  the  deserts]  Not  in  sandy  deserts  like  those  of  Arabia,  but  in 
the  wild  waste  region  south  of  Jericho  and  the  fords  of  Jordan  to  the 
shores  of  the  Dead  Sea.  This  was  known  as  Araboth  or  ha-Aralmh, 
2  Kings  xxv.  4,  5  (Heb.);  Jer.  xxxix.  5,  Iii.  8.  See  on  vs.  39.  This 
region,  especially  where  it  approached  the  Ghor  and  the  Dead  Sea,  was 
lonely  and  forbidding  in  its  physical  features,  and  would  suit  the  stern 
spirit  on  which  it  also  reacted.  In  i  Sam.  xxiii.  19  it  is  called  Jcshi- 
mon  or  'the  Horror.'  John  was  by  no  means  the  only  hermit.  The 
political  unsettlement,  the  shamelessness  of  crime,  the  sense  of  secular 
exhaustion,  the  wide-spread  Messianic  expectation,  marked  'the  fulness 
of  time.'  Banus  the  Pharisee  also  lived  a  life  of  ascetic  hardness  in 
the  Arabah,  and  Josephus  tells  us  that  he  lived  with  him  for  three 
years  in  his  mountain-cave  on  fruits  and  water.  (Jos.  Vil.  2.)  But 
there  is  not  in  the  Gospels  the  faintest  trace  of  any  intercourse  be- 


62  ST    LUKE,    II.  [v.  I. 

Ch.  II.  I — 7.     The  Birth  of  Jesus  Christ. 

2      And  it  came  to  pass  in  those  days,  that  there  went  out  a 
decree  from  Cesar  Augustus,  that  all  the  world  should  be 

tween  John,  or  our  Lord  and  His  disciples,  with  the  Essenes.  The 
great  Italian  painters  follow  a  right  conception  when  they  paint  even 
the  boy  John  as  emaciated  with  early  asceticism.  In  2  Esdras  ix.  24 
the  seer  is  directed  to  go  into  a  field  where  no  house  is  and  to  "taste 
no  flesh,  drink  no  wine,  and  eat  only  the  flowers  of  the  field,"  as  a  pre- 
paration for  'talking  with  the  Most  High.'  It  is  doubtful  whetlier 
Christian  Art  is  historically  correct  in  representing  the  infant  Jesus  and 
John  as  constant  friends  and  playmates.  Zacharias  and  Elizabeth,  being 
aged,  must  have  early  left  John  an  orphan,  and  his  desert  life  began 
with  his  boyish  years.  Further,  the  habits  of  Orientals  are  exceedingly 
stationary,  and  when  once  settled  it  is  only  on  the  rarest  occasions  that 
they  leave  their  homes.  The  training  of  the  priestly  boy  and  the  '  Son 
of  the  Carpenter'  (Matt.  xiii.  55)  of  Nazareth  had  been  widely  different, 
nor  is  it  certain  that  they  had  ever  met  each  other  until  the  Baptism  of 
Jesus  (John  i.  31). 

his  skewing]  his  public  ministry,  literally,  "appointment"  or  mani- 
festatio7t.  The  verb  {anedeixen)  occurs  in  x.  i ;  Acts  i.  24.  Thus  St 
John's  life,  like  that  of  our  Lord,  was  spent  first  in  hallowed  seclusion, 
then  in  public  ministry. 

At  this  point  ends  the  first  very  interesting  document  of  which  St 
Luke  made  use.  The  second  chapter,  though  in  some  respects  analo- 
gous to  it,  is  less  imbued  with  the  Hebraic  spirit  and  phraseology. 

Ch.  II.    1 — 7.    The  Birth  of  Jesus  Christ. 

1.  fkere  went  out  a  decree  frotn  Cesar  Augustus,  that  all  the  world 
should  be  taxed]  Rather,  that  there  should  be  an  enrolment  of  the 
hahitable  ■world.  The  verb  apographesthai  is  here  probably  passive, 
though  we  have  the  aorist  middle  apograpsasthai  'to  enroll  himself  in 
vs.  5.  The  registration  (apograph?)  did  not  necessarily  involve  a  taxing 
(apotimesis),  though  it  was  frequently  the  first  step  in  that  direction. 
Two  objections  have  been  made  to  the  historic  credibility  of  the  decree, 
and  both  have  been  fully  met. 

I.  It  is  said  'that  there  is  no  trace  of  such  a  decree  in  secular  his- 
tory.' The  answer  is  that  (a)  the  ai'gumenttt/n  e  silentio  is  here  spe- 
cially invalid  because  there  happens  to  be  a  singular  deficiency  of  mi- 
nute records  respecting  this  epoch  in  the  'profane'  historians.  The 
history  of  Nicolaus  of  Damascus,  the  flatterer  of  Herod,  is  not  extant. 
Tacitus  barely  touches  on  this  period  [Ann.  I.  i,  '■^  pane  a  de  Augusto"). 
There  is  a  hiatus  in  Dion  Cassius  from  a.u.c.  748 — 752.  Josephus 
does  not  enter  upon  the  history  of  these  years.  (j8)  There  are  distinct 
traces  that  such  a  census  took  place.  Augustus  with  his  own  hand  drew 
up  a  Rationarium  of  the  Empire  (a  sort  of  Roman  Doomsday  Book, 
afterwards  epitomised  into  a  Breviarium),   which  included  the  allied 


V.  2.]  ST   LUKE,    II.  63 

taxed.     {And  this  taxing  was  first  made  when  Cyrenius  was  a 

kingdoms    (Tac.  Ann.  i.  r  i ;  Suet.  Aug.  28),   and   appointed  twenty 
Commissioners  to  draw  up  the  necessary  lists  (Suidas  s.v.  airoypacp-fi). 

2.  It  is  said  'that  in  any  case  Herod,  being  a  rex  sociiis  (for  Judaea 
was  not  annexed  to  the  Province  of  Syria  till  the  death  of  Archelaus, 
A.D.  6),  would  have  been  exempt  from  such  a  registration.'  The  answer 
is  that  (a)  the  Clitae  were  obliged  to  furnish  such  a  census  though  they 
were  under  an  independent  prince,  Archelaus  (Tac.  Ann.  vi.  41 ;  cf. 
I.  II,  regno).  (/3)  That  Herod,  a  mere  creature  of  the  Emperor,  would 
have  been  the  last  person  to  resist  his  wishes  (Jos.  A7itt.  xiv.  14.  4; 
XV,  6.  7;  XVI.  9.  3).  (7)  That  this  Census,  enforced  by  Herod,  was 
so  distasteful  to  the  Jews  that  it  probably  caused  the  unexplained 
tumults  which  occurred  at  this  very  period  (Jos.  Antt.  xvii.  2.  4;  B.  J. 
I-  33)  §  ■2)-  This  is  rendered  more  probable  by  the  Targum  of  Jona- 
than on  Hab.  iii.  17,  which  has,  "the  Romans  shall  be  rooted  out; 
they  shall  collect  no  more  tribute  {Kesooma  =  ctViSVi%)  from  Jerusalem" 
(Gfrorer,  yahrh.  d.  Heils,  I.  42).  That  the  Emperor  could  issue  such  a 
decree  for  Palestine  shews  that  the  fulfilment  of  the  old  Messianic  pro- 
mises was  near  at  hand.  The  sceptre  had  departed  from  Judah;  the 
Lawgiver  from  between  his  feet. 

As  regards  both  objections,  we  may  say  (i)  that  St  Luke,  a  writer  of 
proved  carefulness  and  accuracy,  writing  for  Gentiles  who  could  at  once 
have  detected  and  exposed  an  error  of  this  kind,  is  very  unlikely  (taking 
the  lowest  grounds)  to  have  been  guilty  of  such  carelessness,  (ii)  That 
Justin  Martyr,  a  native  of  Palestine,  writing  in  the  middle  of  the  second 
century,  three  times  appeals  to  the  census-lists  (diroypa(pal)  made  by 
Quirinus  when  he  was  first  Procurator,  bidding  the  Romans  search 
their  own  archives  as  to  the  fact  [Apol.  I.  34.  46;  Dial.  c.  Tryph.  78), 
as  also  does  Tertullian  {Adv.  Marc.  iv.  7.  19).  (iii)  If  St  Luke  had 
made  a  mistake  it  would  certainly  have  been  challenged  by  such  able 
critics  as  Celsus  and  Porphyry ; — but  they  never  impugn  his  statement. 
On  every  ground  therefore  we  have  reason  to  trust  the  statement  of 
St  Luke,  and  in  this  as  in  many  other  instances  (see  my  Life  of  St  Paul, 
I.  113)  what  have  been  treated  as  his  'manifest  errors'  have  turned 
out  to  be  interesting  historic  facts  which  he  alone  preserves  for  us. 

all  the  world]  Rather,  the  habitable  world,  i.e.  the  Roman  Em- 
pire, the  orbis  terrarum  (Acts  xi.  28,  &c.;  Polyb.  VI.  50). 

2.  this  taxing  was  first  made  when  Cyrenius  was  governor  of 
Syria]  Rather,  this  first  enrolment  took  place  (literally  'took 
place  as  the  first ')  when  Quirinus  was  governor  of  Ssrria.  We  are 
here  met  by  an  apparent  error  on  which  whole  volumes  have  been 
written.  Quirinus  (or  Quirinius,  for  the  form  of  his  name  is  not 
absolutely  certain)  was  governor  (Praeses,  Legatus)  of  Syria  in  A.D. 
6,  teti  years  after  this  time,  and  he  then  carried  out  a  census  which 
led  to  the  revolt  of  Judas  of  Galilee,  as  St  Luke  himself  was  aware 
(Acts  v.  37).  Hence  it  is  asserted  that  St  Luke  made  an  error  of  ten 
years  in  the  governorship  of  Quirinus,  and  the  date  of  the  census, 
which  vitiates  his  historic  authority.  Two  ways  of  obviating  this 
difficulty  may  finally  be  rejected. 


64  ST   LUKE,    II.  [w.  3, 4. 

3  governor  of  Syria.)     And  all  went  to  be  taxed,  every  one 

4  into  his  own  city.     And  Joseph  also  went  up  from  Galilee, 

(a)  One  is  to  render  the  words  'took  place  before  {prote)  Quirinus 
was  governor.'  The  translation  is  entirely  untenable,  and  is  not 
supported  by  proton  mou  '  before  me  '  in  John  i.  30.  And  if  this 
were  the  meaning  the  remark  would  be  most  unnecessary. 

(/3)  Others  would  render  the  verb  egeneto  by  '  took  effect : ' — this 
enrolment  was  begun  at  this  period  (b.c.  4  of  our  vulgar  era)  by  P. 
Sentius  Saturninus,  but  not  completed  till  the  Procuratorship  of 
Quirinus  A.  D.  6.  But  this  is  to  give  a  strained  meaning  to  the  verb, 
as  well  as  to  take  the  ordinal  (pro/e)  as  though  it  were  an  adverb 
{proton). 

(7)  A  third,  and  more  tenable,  view  is  to  extend  the  meaning 
of  hegei7ionciiontos  '  was  governor '  to  imply  that  Quirinus,  though  not 
actually  Governor  of  Syria,  yet  might  be  called  hegemon,  either  (i) 
as  one  of  the  twenty  taxers  or  commissioners  of  Augustus,  or  (ii) 
as  holding  some  procuratorial  office  (as  Epitropos  or  joitit  Epitropos 
with  Herod;  comp.  Jos.  Antt.  xv.  10.  y,  B.  y.  i.  20.  4).  It  is, 
however,  a  strong  objection  to  solution  (i)  that  the  commissioners 
were  apiaroi,  optimates  or  nobles,  whereas  Quirinus  Vizs,  a  7ioviis  homo: 
and  to  (ii)  that  St  Luke  is  remarkably  accurate  in  his  use  of  titles. 

(5)  A  fourth  view,  and  one  which  I  still  hold  to  be  the  right 
solution,  is  that  first  developed  by  A.  W.  Zumpt  {Das  Gebtirtsjahr 
Christi,  1870),  and  never  seriously  refuted  though  often  sneered  at. 
It  is  that  Quirinus  was  twice  Governor  of  Syria,  once  in  B.  C.  4  when 
he  began  the  census  (which  may  have  been  ordered,  as  Tertullian  says, 
by  Varus,  or  by  P.  Sentius  Saturninus) ;  and  once  in  A.  D.  6  when  he 
carried  it  to  completion.  It  is  certain  that  in  A.  U.C.  753  Quirinus  con- 
quered the  Homonadenses  in  Cilicia,  and  was  rector  to  Gains  Caesar. 
Now  it  is  highly  probable  that  these  Homonadenses  were  at  that  time 
under  the  jurisdiction  of  the  propraetor  of  the  Imperial  Province  of 
Syria,  an  office  which  must  in  that  case  have  been  held  by  Quirinus 
between  B.C.  4 — B.C.  i.  The  indolence  of  Varus  and  his  friendship 
with  Archelaus  may  have  furnished  strong  reasons  for  superseding 
;  him,  and  putting  the  diligent  and  trustworthy  Quirinus  in  his  place. 
i  Whichever  of  these  latter  views  be  accepted,  one  thing  is  certain, 
I  that  no  error  is  de?)iottstrahle,  and  that  on  independent  historical 
grounds,  as  well  as  by  his  own  proved  accuracy  in  other  instances, 
we  have  the  strongest  reason  to  admit  the  probability  of  St  Luke's 
reference. 

Cyrenius]  This  is  the  Greek  form  of  the  name  Quirinus,  Orelli 
ad  Tac.  Ann.  11.  30.  All  that  we  know  of  him  is  that  he  was  of 
obscure  and  provincial  origin,  and  rose  to  the  consulship  by  activity 
and  military  skill,  afterwards  earning  a  triumph  for  his  successes  in 
Cilicia.  He  was  harsh,  and  avaricious,  but  a  loyal  soldier;  and  he 
was  honoured  with  a  public  funeral  in  A.D.  ■21  (Tac.  Anfi.  II.  30,  III. 
22,  48;  Suet.  Tib.  49,  &c.). 

3.     every  one  into  his  own  city]     This  method  of  enrolment   was  a 


>'M 


-^       '5* 


R   T, 


J-  ]■■■.  i'^-"o*¥"c ./"  fr.  J 


^i^a 


lo.. 


> 


/J  ^ 


;«i< 


pit  ^-^ 


)  rr  ■  S      P   B    a    (T  - 


:<^ 


« 


i1 


I  ; 


-<     ■''• 


-1«1 


;-i? 


r 


.-^J'- 


S:  j- 


U' 


%!"i. 


.\i 


%>      PO 


•i 


•o    I 


vv.  5,  6.]  ST   LUKE,    II.  65 

out  of  the  city  of  Nazareth,  into  Judea,  unto  the   city  of 
David,  which  is  called  Bethlehem;   (because  he  was  of  the 
house  and  lineage  of  David :)    to  be  taxed  with  Mary  his  5 
espoused  wife,  being  great  with  child.     And  so  it  was  ihat^  6 
while  they  were  there,  the  days  were  accomplished  that  she 


concession  to  Jewish  prejudices.  The  Roman  method  was  to  enrol 
each  person  at  his  own  place  of  residence.  Incidentally  this  unexplained 
notice  proves  that  St  Lulce  is  dealing  with  an  historical  enrolment. 

4.  i/ie  city  of  David]  i  Sam.  xvii.  12,  "  David  was  the  son  of 
that  Ephrathite  of  Bethlehem-Judah  whose  name  was  Jesse." 

Bethleheni\  Thus  was  fulfilled  the  prophecy  of  Mic.  v.  2,  "Thou, 
Bethlehem-Ephratah...out  of  thee  shall  he  come  forth  unto  me  that  is 
to  be  ruler  in  Israel."  Cf.  iv.  8,  "And  thou,  O  tower  of  the  flock" 
{Migdol  Eder,  Gen.  xxxv.  21),  "unto  thee  shall  it  come,  even  the 
first  dominion." 

.Bethlehem  ('House  of  Bread,'  to  which  the  mystical  method  of 
Scriptural  interpretation  refers  such  passages  as  Is.  xxxiii.  16,  LXX.; 
John  vi.  51,  58)  is  the  very  ancient  Ephrath  ('fruitful')  of  Gen.  xxxv. 
16,  xlviii.  7;  Ps.  cxxxii.  6.  It  is  a  small  town  six  miles  from  Jerusalem. 
It  was  the  scene  of  the  death  of  Rachel  (Gen.  xxxv.  19);  of  the  story 
of  Ruth,  and  of  the  early  years  of  the  life  of  David  (i  Sam.  xvi.  i  ; 
2  Sam.  xxiii.  15).  The  name  is  now  corrupted  into  Beitlahtn,  'house 
of  flesh.' 

of  the  house  and  lineage  (rather,  family)  of  David\  The  humble 
condition  of  Joseph  as  a  provincial  carpenter  in  no  way  militates 
against  this.  Hillel,  the  great  contemporary  Rabbi,  who  also  claimed 
to  be  a  descendant  of  David,  began  life  as  a  half-starved  porter;  and 
numbers  of  beggars  in  the  East  wear  the  green  turban  which  shews 
them  to  be  undisputed  descendants  of  Mohammed. 

5.  to  be  taxed\     Rather,  to  enrol  himself. 

■with  Mary]  It  is  uncertain  whether  her  presence  was  obligatory 
(Dion.  Hal.  iv.  5;  Lact.  De  Mart.  Persec.  23)  or  voluntary;  but  it 
is  obvious  that  at  so  trying  a  time,  and  after  what  she  had  suffered 
(Matt.  i.  19),  she  would  cling  to  the  presence  and  protection  of  her 
husband.  Nor  is  it  wholly  impossible  that  she  saw  in  the  providential 
circumstances  a  fulfilment  of  prophecy. 

his  espoused  wife]  Or,  who  was  betrothed  to  him  ;  *  wife '  is  omitted  in 
B,  D,  L. 

6.  the  days  were  accomplished]  There  is  a  reasonable  certainty 
that  our  Lord  was  born  B.C.  4  of  our  era,  and  it  \% probable  that  He  was 
born  (according  to  the  unanimous  tradition  of  the  Christian  Church) 
in  winter.  There  is  nothing  to  guide  us  as  to  the  actual  day  of  His 
birth.  It  was  unknown  to  the  ancient  Christians  (Clem.  Alex.  Strom. 
I.  21).  Some  thought  that  it  took  place  on  May  20  or  April  20.  Therr 
is  no  trace  of  the  date  Dec.  25  earlier  than  the  fourth  century,  but  it 
is  accepted  by  Alhanasius,  Jerome,  Ambrose,  &c. 

ST  LUKE  C 


66  ST   LUKE,    II.  [v.  7. 

7  should  be  delivered.  And  she  brought  forth  her  firstborn 
son,  and  wrapped  him  in  swaddling  clothes,  and  laid  him  in 
a  manger;   because  there  was  no  room  for  them  in  the  inn. 


7.  firsthorn\  The  word  has  no  bearing  on  the  controversy  as 
to  the  '  brethren  of  Jesus, '  as  it  does  not  necessarily  imply  that  the 
Virgin  had  other  children.  See  Heb.  i.  6,  where  first-born  =  only- 
begotten. 

wrapped  him  in  swaddling  clothes]  Ezek.  xvi.  4.  In  her  poverty  she 
had  none  to  help  her,  but  (in  the  common  fashion  of  the  East)  wound 
the  babe  round  and  round  with  swathes  with  her  own  hands. 

itt  a  manger\  If  the  Received  Text  were  correct  it  would  be  'in  the 
manger,'  but  the  article  is  omitted  by  A,  B,  D,  L.  Phatne  is  some- 
times rendered  'stall'  (as  in  Luke  xiii.  15;  2  Chron.  xxxii.  28,  LXX.); 
but  'manger'  is  probably  right  here.  It  is  derived  irom pateomai,  'I  eat' 
(Curtius,  Gt'iech.  Et.  II.  84),  and  is  used  by  the  LXX.  for  the  Hebrew 
D-in.N,    'crib,'  in   Prov.  xiv.  4.      Mangers  are  very  ancient,  and  are 

to  this  day  sometimes  used  as  cradles  in  the  East  (Thomson,  Land  and 
Book,  II.  533).  The  ox  and  the  ass  which  are  traditionally  represented  in 
pictures  ai'e  only  mentioned  in  the  apocryphal  Gospel  of  Matthew,  xiv., 
and  were  suggested  by  Is.  i.  3,  and  Hab.  iii.  2,  which  in  the  LXX. 
and  the  ancient  Latin  Version  (Vetus  Itala)  was  mistranslated  "Be- 
tween two  animals  thou  shalt  be  made  known." 

there  was  no  room  for  them  in  the  inn]  Katahima  may  also  mean 
guest-chamber  as  in  xxii.  1 1 ,  but  inn  seems  to  be  here  the  right  render- 
ing. There  is  another  word  for  inn,  pandocheion  (x.  34),  which  implies 
an  inn  with  a  host.  Bethlehem  was  a  poor  place,  and  its  inn  was 
probably  a  mere  khan  or  caravanserai,  which  is  an  enclosed  space  sur- 
rounded by  open  recesses  of  which  the  paved  floor  {lecivan)  is  raised  a 
little  above  the  ground.  There  is  often  no  host,  and  the  use  of  any 
vacant  leewan  is  free,  but  the  traveller  pays  a  trifle  for  food,  water,  &c. 
If  the  khan  be  crowded  the  traveller  must  be  content  with  a  corner  of 
the  courtyard  or  enclosed  place  among  the  cattle,  or  else  in  the  stable. 
The  stable  is  often  a  limestone  cave  or  grotto,  and  there  is  a  very 
ancient  tradition  that  this  was  the  case  in  the  khan  of  Bethlehem. 
(Just.  Martyr,  Dial.  c.  Tryph.  c.  78,  and  the  Apocryphal  Gospels, 
Protev.  xix.,  Evang.  Infant,  iii.  &c.)  If,  as  is  most  probable,  the 
traditional  site  of  the  Nativity  is  the  real  one,  it  took  place  in  one  of 
the  caves  where  St  Jerome  spent  so  many  years  (Ep.  24,  ad  Marcell.) 
as  a  hermit,  and  translated  the  Bible  into  Latin  (the  Vulgate).  The 
khan  perhaps  dated  back  as  far  as  the  days  of  David  under  the 
name  of  the  House  or  Hotel  {Gerooth)  of  Chimham  (2  Sam.  xix.  37, 
38;  Jer.  xli.  17). 

The  tender  grace  and  perfect  simplicity  of  the  narrative  is  one  of  the 
marks  of  its  truthfulness,  and  is  again  in  striking  contrast  with  the  end- 
lessly multiplied  miracles  of  the  Apocryphal  Gospels.  "The  unfathom- 
able depths  of  the  divine  counsels  were  moved ;  the  fountains  of  the  great 
deep  were  broken  up ;  the  healing  of  the  nations  was  issuing  forth  j  but 


w.  8— II.]  ST   LUKE,   II.  67 

8 — 20.      The  Angels  to  the  Shepherds. 
And  there  were  in  the  same  country  shepherds  abiding  in  8 
the  field,  keeping  watch  over  their  flock  by  night.     And  lo,  9 
the  angel  of  the  Lord  came  upon  them,  and  the  glory  of  the 
Lord  shone  round  about  them:  and  they  were  sore  afraid. 
And  the  angel  said  unto  them,  Fear  not :  for  behold,  I  bring  10 
you  good  tidings  of  great  joy,  which  shall  be  to  all  people. 
For  unto  you  is  born  this  day  in  the  city  of  David  a  Saviour,  n 

nothing  was  seen  on  the  surface  of  human  society  but  this  slight  rippling 
of  the  water."     Isaac  Williams,  The  Nativity. 

8 — 20.    The  Angels  to  the  Shepherds. 

8.  in  the  same  country^  Tradition  says  that  they  were  natives  of 
the  little  village  Beth-zur  (Josh.  xv.  58 ;  Neh.  iii.  16).  They  were 
feeding  their  tiocks  in  the  same  fields  from  which  David  had  been 
summoned  to  feed  Jacob,  God's  people,  and  Israel  His  inheritance. 

shepherds^  Why  these  were  the  first  to  whom  was  revealed  the  birth 
of  Him  who  was  called  the  Lamb  of  God,  we  are  not  told.  The  sheep 
used  for  the  daily  sacrifice  were  pastured  in  the  fields  of  Bethlehem. 

abiding  in  the  field^  This  does  not  prove,  as  some  have  supposed,  that 
the  Nativity  took  place  in  spring,  for  in  some  pastures  of  Palestine  the 
shepherds  to  this  day  bivouac  with  their  flocks  in  winter. 

9.  And  16\  The  phrase  often  introduces  some  strange  or  memorable 
event. 

the  angell     Rather,  an  Angel. 

came  upon  thei)i\  Epeste — a  common  word  in  St  Luke,  who  uses  it 
eighteen  times,  xxiv.  4;  Acts  xii.  7,  &c.    It  may  mean  stood  by  them. 

the  glory  of  the  Lord]  The  Shechinah,  or  cloud  of  brightness  which 
symbolised  the  Divine  Presence,  as  in  Ex.  xxiv.  16;  i  Kings  viii.  10; 
Is.  vi.  I — 3;  Acts  vii.  55.  See  on  i.  35.  The  presence  of  the  She- 
chinah was  reckoned  as  one  of  the  most  precious  blessings  of  Israel, 
Rom.  ix.  4. 

10.  good  tidings]  the  rendering  of  the  verb  euangelizomai  (see  on 
i.  19). 

of  great  joy]  See  Is.  Iii.  7,  Ixi.  i;  Rom.  v.  11;  i  Pet.  i.  8.  The 
contrast  of  the  condition  of  despair  and  sorrow  into  which  the  heathen 
world  had  sunk  and  the  joy  of  Christians  even  in  the  deepest  adversity 
— as  when  we  find  "yi^y"  to  be  the  key-note  of  the  letter  written  to 
Philippi  by  the  suffering  prisoner  St  Paul— is  a  striking  comment  on 
this  promise.  Even  the  pictures  and  epitaphs  of  the  gloomy  catacombs 
are  full  of  joy  and  brightness. 

to  all  people]     Rather,  to  all  tlie  people,  i.  e.  of  Israel. 

11.  a  Saviour]  It  is  a  curious  fact  that  'Saviour'  and  'Salvation,' 
so  common  in  St  Luke  and  St  Paul  (in  whose  writings  they  occur  forty- 
four  times),  are  comparatively  rare  in  the  rest  of  the  New  Testament. 
'Saviour'  only  occurs  in  John  iv.  42;  i  John  iv.  14;  and  six  times  in 


68  ST   LUKE,    II.  [w.  12—14. 

12  which  is  Christ  the  Lord.     And   this  shall  be  a  sign  unto 
you;  Ye  shall  find  the  babe  wrapped  in  swaddling  clothes, 

13  lying  in  a  manger.     And  suddenly  there  was  with  the  angel 
a  multitude  of  the  heavenly  host  praising  God,  and  saying, 

14  Glory  to  God  in  the  highest, 
And  on  earth  peace, 

1  Pet.  and  Jude  ;  'salvation'  only  in  John  iv.  22,  and  thirteen  times  in 
the  rest  of  the  N.  T. 

Christ  the  Lordi  "God  hath  made  that  same  Jesus  whom  ye  cruci- 
fied both  Lord  and  Christ,"  Acts  ii.  36;  Phil.  ii.  11.  'Christ'  or 
'Anointed'  is  the  Greek  equivalent  of  Messiah.  In  the  Gospels  it  is 
almost  invariably  an  appellative,  'the  Christ.'  But  as  time  advanced  it 
was  more  and  more  used  without  the  article  as  a  proper  name.  Our 
Lord  was  'anointed'  with  the  Holy  Spirit  as  Prophet,  Priest  and 
King. 

the  Lord'\  In  the  lower  sense  the  word  is  used  as  a  mere  title  of 
distinction;  in  the  higher  sense  it  is  (as  in  the  LXX.)  the  equivalent  of 
the  Hebrew  'Jehovah' — the  ineffable  name.  "We  preach  Christ  Jesus 
the  Lord,"  2  Cor.  iv.  5  (see  Phil.  ii.  11  ;  Rom.  xiv.  9;  i  Cor.  viii.  6; 
"No  one  can  say  that  Jesus  is  the  Lord  but  by  the  Holy  Ghost,"  i  Cor. 
xii.  3). 

12.  a  sign]     Rather,  tlie  sign. 
the  babe]     Rather,  a  batoe. 

13.  a  multitude  of  the  heavenly  host]  The  Sabaoth ;  Rom.  ix.  29 ; 
Jas.  V.  4.  "Ten  thousand  times  ten  thousand  stood  before  Him,"  Dan. 
vii.  10;  Rev.  v.  11,  12.  The  word  is  also  used  of  the  stars  as  objects 
of  heathen  worship,  Acts  vii.  42. 

14.  in  the  highest]  i.e.,  in  highest  heaven,  Job  xvi.  19;  Ps.  cxlviii.  i ; 
comp.  "the  heavenlies"  in  Eph.  i.  3,  &c. ;  Ecclus.  xliii.  9. 

on  earth  peace] 

"No  war  or  battle's  sound 
Was  heard  the  world  around; 

The  idle  spear  and  shield  were  high  uphung: 
The  hooked  chariot  stood 
Unstained  with  hostile  blood. 

The  trumpet  spake  not  to  the  armed  throng; 
And  kings  sat  still  with  awful  eye 
As  if  they  surely  knew  their  sovran  Lord  was  by." 

Milton,  Ode  on  the  Nativity. 

This  however  is  only  an  ideal  aspect  of  affairs,  and  the  closing  at  this 
time  of  the  Temple  of  Janus  had  little  or  no  meaning.  It  was  not  in 
this  sense  that  the  birth  of  Christ  brought  Peace.  If  we  understood 
the  expression  thus  we  might  well  say  with  Coleridge : 

"Strange  Prophecy!  if  all  the  screams 
Of  all  the  men  that  since  have  died 


vv.  IS— 18.]  ST   LUKE,    II.  69 

Good  will  towards  men. 

And  it  came  to  pass,  as  the  angels  were  gone  away  from  15 
them  into  heaven,  the  shepherds  said  one  to  another,  Let 
us  now  go  even  unto  Bethlehem,  and  see  this  thing  which 
is  come  to  pass,  which  the  Lord  hath  made  known  unto  us. 
And  they  came  with  haste,  and  found  Mary,  and  Joseph,  16 
and  the  babe  lying  in  a  manger.     And  when  they  had  seen  17 
//,  they  made  known  abroad  the  saying  which  was  told  them 
concerning  this  child.     And  all  they  that  heard  it  wondered  18 
at  those  things  which  were  told    them   by  the   shepherds. 

To  realize  war's  kingly  dreams 

Had  risen  at  once  in  one  vast  tide, 
The  choral  song  of  that  vast  multitude 
Had  been  o'erpowered  and  lost  amid  the  uproar  rude." 

The  Angels  sang  indeed  of  such  an  ultimate  Peace;  but  also  of  "the 
peace  which  passeth  understanding;"  of  that  peace  whereof  Christ  said, 
"Peace  I  leave  with  you,  my  peace  I  give  unto  you;  not  as  the  world 
giveth  give  I  unto  you."  See  Prov.  iii.  17,  on  which  the  Book  of 
Zohar  remarks  that  it  means  peace  in  heaven  and  on  earth,  and  in  this 
world  and  the  next.  As  regards  earthly  peace  He  himself  said,  "Think 
not  that  I  am  come  to  send  peace  on  earth :  I  came  not  to  send  peace, 
but  a  sword,"  Matt.  x.  34;  Lk.  xii.  51.  See  this  contrast  magnificently 
shadowed  forth  in  Is.  ix.  5,  6. 

Good  will  tozvards  meti]  The  reading  eiidokia,  'goodwill,'  is  found 
in  B,  but  i<.  A,  D  read  eitdokias,  and  if  this  be  the  right  reading  the 
meaning  is  "on  earth  peace  among  men  of  good  will"  (hominibus  bonae 
voluntatis,  Vulg.),  i.e.  those  with  v/hom  God  is  well  pleased.  "The 
Lord  taketh  pleasure  in  them  that  hope  in  His  mercy,"  Ps.  cxlvii.  11; 
comp.  xii.  32,  "it  is  your  Yz.iyx&x'?,  good  pleasure  to  give  you  the  king- 
dom." The  construction  "men  of  good  will"  would  be  rare  in  this 
sense,  but  the  triple  parallelism  of  the  verse, 

Glory  to  God  in  the  highest 

Peace  to  men  whom  God  loves  on  earth 

seems  to  favour  it.   In  either  case  the  verse  implies  that  "being  justified 
by  faith  we  have  peace  with  God  through  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,"  Rom. 
V.  I.    In  any  case  the  "towards"  is  wrong,  and  must  be  altered  into 
"among"  (kv). 
"Glory  to  God  on  high,   on  earth  be  peace, 

And  love  towards  men  of  love— salvation  and  release." — Keble. 

15.  Let  us  now  go"]     Rather,  Come  now!  let  us  go. 

16.  foundl  The  word  is  not  merely  tvpov  but  dvevpov,  discovered 
after  search.  The  lamp  hung  from  the  centre  of  a  rope  would  guide 
them  to  the  khan,  but  among  a  crowd  it  would  not  be  easy  to  find  the 
new-born  babe  of  the  humble  travellers. 

17.  made  known  abroad^  Thus  they  were  the  first  Christian  preachers. 


yo  ST   LUKE,    II.  [vv.  19—22. 

■9  But  Mary  kept  all  these  things,  and  pondered  them  in  her 
20  heart.     And  the  shepherds  returned,  glorifying  and  praising 

God  for  all  the  things  that  they  had  heard  and  seen,  as  it 

was  told  unto  them. 

21.     The  Circumcision. 

^i  And  when  eight  days  were  accomplished  for  the  circum- 
cising of  the  child,  his  name  was  called  JESUS,  which  was 
so  named  of  the  angel  before  he  was  conceived  in  the  womb. 

22 — 24.      The  Presentatio7i  in  the  Temple. 
22      And  when  the  days  of  her  purification  according  to  the 

19.     all  these  things]  or  '  words.' 

pondered]  Literally,  ^^  casting  together"  i.e.  comparing  and  consider- 
ing ;  like  our  'casting  in  mind.'  Comp.  Gen.  xxxvii.  11,  "his  father 
obse)-ved  the  saying."  She  did  not  at  once  understand  the  full  significance 
of  all  these  events. 

21.    The  Circumcision. 

21.  for  the  circumcising  of  the  child]  Gen.  xvii.  12.  Doubtless  the 
rite  was  performed  by  Joseph.  "Jesus  Christ  was  a  minister  of  the  cir- 
cumcision "  (i.e.  went  to  the  Jew  first)  "  for  the  truth  of  God  to  confirm 
the  promises  made  unto  the  fathers,"  Rom.  xv.  8.  Thus  it  became 
him  'to  be  made  like  unto  His  brethren,  and  to  fulfil  all  righteousness,' 
Matt.  iii.  15.  Christ  suffered  pain  thus  early  for  our  sake  to  teach 
us  that,  though  He  ordained  for  us  the  painless  rite  of  baptism,  we 
must  practise  the  spiritual  circumcision — the  circumcision  of  the  heart. 
He  came  "not  to  destroy  the  Law  but  \.q fulfil,''''  Matt.  v.  17 — 

"  He,  who  with  all  heaven's  heraldry  whilere 
Entered  the  world,  now  bleeds  to  give  us  ease. 
Alas,  how  soon  our  sin 
,Sore  doth  begin 

His  infancy  to  seize  ! " 

Milton,  The  Circumcision. 
his  name  was  called  fESUS]  See  on  i.  31.  The  name  of  the  child 
was  bestowed  at  circumcision,  as  vnth  us  at  baptism.  Among  Greeks 
and  Romans  also  the  genethlia  and  no7ninalia  were  on  the  eighth  or 
ninth  day.  Observe  the  brief  notice  of  Christ's  circumcision  compared 
with  the  fuller  and  more  elaborate  account  of  John's.  "  In  the  person 
of  John  the  rite  of  circumcision  solemnised  its  last  glories." 

22 — 24.    The  Presentation  in  the  Temple. 

22.  her  purificatioti]  Rather,  their  purification.  The  reading 
ayr^s,  'her,'  of  the  Received  Text  is  almost  unsupported.  All  the  Uncials 
lead  aiiTuv,  'their,'  except  D,  which  probably  by  an  oversight  reads  avroO, 


w.  23— 25.]  ST   LUKE,   II.  71 

law   of  Moses   were   accomplished,   they  brought  him   to 
Jerusalem,  to  present  him  to  the  Lord ;  (as  it  is  -vvritten  in  jj 
the  law  of  the  Lord,  Every  male  that  openeth  the  womb 
shall  be  called  holy  to  the  Lord;)  and  to  offer  a  sacrifice  2^ 
according  to  that  which  is  said  in  the  law  of  the  Lord,  A 
pair  of  turtledoves,  or  two  young  pigeons. 

25 — 35.     Simeon  and  the  Nunc  Dimittis. 

And  behold,  there  was  a  man  in  Jerusalem,  whose  name  25 
was   Simeon ;   and   the  same  man  was  just  and  devout, 
waiting  for  the  consolation  of  Israel :  and  the  Holy  Ghost 

'His.'  Strictly  speaking,  the  child  was  never  purified,  but  only  the 
mother.  The  purification  took  place  on  the  fortieth  day  after  the 
Nativity,  and  till  then  a  mother  was  not  permitted  to  leave  her  house. 
The  feast  of  the  Presentation  was  known  in  the  Eastern  Church  as  the 
Hypapante. 

according  to  the  law  of  Moses]  See  this  Law  in  Lev.  xii.  2 — 4. 
Jesus  was  "made  of  a  woman,  made  under  the  Law,  to  redeem  those 
that  were  under  the  Law,  that  we  might  receive  the  adoption  of  sons," 
Gal.  iv.  4,  5. 

23.  as  it  is  written  in  the  law  of  tJie  Lord]  The  tribe  of  Levi  were 
sanctified  to  the  Lord  in  lieu  of  the  firstborn,  and  originally  all  the 
firstborn  in  excess  of  the  number  of  the  Levites  had  to  be  redeemed 
with  five  shekels  of  the  sanctuary  (about  15  shillings),  a  rule  afterwards 
extended  to  all  the  firstborn.  Ex.  xiii.  2,  xxii.  29,  xxxiv.  19;  Num. 
iii.  13,  xviii.  15,  16. 

24.  A  pair  of  turtledoves,  or  two  young  pigeons]  The  offering  ap- 
pointed was  a  yearling  lamb  for  a  burnt-offering,  and  a  young  pigeon 
or  turtledove  for  a  sin-offering,  which  were  to  be  brought  to  the  door  of 
the  tabernacle  and  with  which  "the  priest  made  an  atonement  for  her 
and  she  shall  be  clean."  But  the  Law  of  Moses,  with  that  thoughtful 
tenderness  which  characterises  many  of  its  provisions,  allowed  a  poor 
mother  to  bring  two  turtledoves  instead  ;  and  since  turtledoves  (being 
migratory)  are  not  always  procurable,  and  old  pigeons  are  not  easily 
caught,  offered  the  alternative  of  "two  young  pigeons."  Lev.  xii. 
6 — 8.    (Tristram.) 

25—35.    Simeon  and  the  Nunc  Dimittis. 

25.  a  man... whose  name  was  Simeon]  This  cannot  be  Rabban 
Shimeon  the  son  of  Hillel  (whom  the  Talmud  is  on  this  account  sup- 
posed to  pass  over  almost  unnoticed),  because  he  would  hardly  have 
been  spoken  of  so  slightly  as  "  anthropos,"  '  a  person.'  The  Apocryphal 
Gospels  call  him  "  the  great  teachei  "  [James  xxvi.,  Nicod.  xvi.). 

waiting  for  the  consolation  of  Israel]  See  Gen.  xlix.  i8.  "They 
shall  not  be  ashamed  that  wait  for  me,"  Is.  xlix.  23.  "Comfort  ye, 
comfort  ye  my  people,  saith  your  God,"  Is.  xl.  i.    Joseph  oi  Armia- 


72  ST    LUKE,   II.  [w.  26—32. 

26  was  upon  him.     And  it  was  revealed  unto  him  by  the  Holy 
Ghost,  that  he  should  not  see  death,  before  he  had  seen  the 

27  Lord's  Christ.     And  he  came  by  the  Spirit  into  the  temple  : 
and  when  the  parents  brought  in  the  child  Jesus,  to  do  for 

28  him  after  the  custom  of  the  law,  then  took  he  him  up  in  his 
arms,  and  blessed  God,  and  said, 

29  Lord,  now  lettest  thou  thy  servant  depart 
In  peace,  according  to  thy  word  : 

30  For  mine  eyes  have  seen  thy  salvation, 

31  Which  thou  hast  prepared  before  the  face  of  all  people ; 

32  A  light  to  lighten  the  Gentiles,  and  the  glory  of  thy  people 

Israel. 


tliea  is  also  described  as  one  who  "waited  for  the  Kingdom  of  God," 
Mk.  XV.  43.  "  May  I  see  the  consolation  of  Israel  !"  was  a  common 
Jewish  formula,  and  a  prayer  for  the  Advent  of  the  Messiah  was  daily 
used. 

26.  it  was  revealed  unto  him']  Christian  legend  says  that  he  had 
stumbled  at  Is.  vii.  14,  "Behold,  a  virgin  shall  conceive,"  and  had 
received  a  divine  intimation  that  he  should  not  die  till  he  had  seen  it 
fulfilled  (Nicephorus,  A.D.  1450).  The  notion  of  his  extreme  age  is 
not  derived  from  Scripture  but  from  the  '  Gospel  of  the  Nativity  of 
Mary,'  which  says  that  he  was  113. 

the  Lord^s  Christ]     The  Anointed  of  Jehovah. 

27.  by  the  Spirit]     Rather,  in  the  Spirit. 

broKght  in  the  child]  The  Arabic  Gospel  of  the  Infancy  (vi.)  says 
that  he  saw  Him  shining  like  a  pillar  of  light  in  His  mother's  arms, 
which  is  probably  derived  from  vs.  32. 

28.  in  his  arms]  Hence  he  is  sometimes  called  Theodohos,  '  the 
receiver  of  God,'  as  Ignatius  is  sometimes  called  Theopho7-os,  'borne  of 
God,'  from  the  fancy  that  he  was  one  of  the  children  whom  Christ  took 
in  His  arms  (see  on  ix.  47). 

29.  Lord,  now  lettest  thou  thy  servant  depart  in  peace]  Rather, 
Now  art  Thou  setting  free  Thy  slave,  0  Master,  according  to  Thy 
word,  in  peace.  This  rapturous  Psalm — the  Nunc  Dimittis — has 
formed  a  part  of  Christian  evening  worship  certainly  since  the  fifth 
century.     Despotes  is  not  often  used  of  God  (Acts  iv.  24;  Rev.  vi.  10). 

In  peace]  On  leaving  a  dying  person  the  Jews  said,  'Go  in  peace'' 
(i?^shal6m),  Gen.  xv.  15.  Otlierwise  they  said,  'Go  to  peace'  (Le 
shalom)  as  Jethro  did  to  Moses.     See  on  vii.  50. 

30.  thy  salvation]  Not  Ty)v  awT-qpiav  but  t6  ffwr^piov  which  seems 
to  have  a  wider  meaning. 

32.  to  lighten  the  Gentiles]  Rather,  for  revelation  to.  A  memorable 
prophecy,  considering  that  even  the  Apostles  found  it  hard  to  grasp  the 
full  admission  of  the  Gentiles,  clearly  as  it  had  been  indicated  in  older 
prophecy,  as  in  Ps.  xcviii.  2,  3.     "  All  the  ends  of  the  earth  have  seen 


w.  33-35-]  ST   LUKE,  II.  73 

And  Joseph  and  his  mother  marvelled  at  those  thtJigs  33 
which  were  spoken  of  him.     And  Simeon  blessed  them,  34 
and  said  unto  Mary  his  mother,  Behold,  this  child  is  set  for 
the  fall  and  rising  again  of  many  in  Israel ;  and  for  a  sign 
which  shall  be  spoken  against ;  (yea,  a  sword  shall  pierce  35 
through  thy  own  soul  also,)  that  the  thouglits  of  many  hearts 
may  be  revealed. 

the  salvation  of  our  God,"  Is.  Hi.  10.     "  I  will  give  thee  for  a  covenant 
of  the  people,  for  a  light  of  the  Gentiles,"  Is.  xlii.  6,  xlix.  6. 

33.  Joseph\  The  undoubted  reading  is  ^^  His  father"  N»  B,  D,  L, 
&c. 

of  hint]     Rather,  about  Him. 

34.  is  sef]  Literally,  "lies."  The  metaphor  is  taken  from  a  stone 
which  may  either  become  'a  stone  of  stumbling'  and  'a  rock  of  offence' 
(Is.  viii.  14;  Rom.  ix.  32,  33;  i  Cor.  i.  23),  or  'a  precious  corner- 
stone' (i  Pet.  ii.  7,  8;   Acts  iv.   11;   i  Cor.  iii.  11). 

for  the  fall  and  rising  again  of  many  itt  Israel^  Rather,  for  the 
falling  and  rising.  For  the  fall  of  many  Pharisees,  Herodians,  Sad- 
ducees,  Nazarenes,  Gadarenes  ;  and  for  the  rising — a  savour  of  life  unto 
life — of  all  that  believed  on  Him.  In  some  cases — as  that  of  Peter  and 
the  dying  robber — they  who  fell  afterwards  rose. 

which  shall  be  spoken  against]  Rather,  which  is  spoken  against. 
"As  concerning  this  sect  we  know  that  everywhere  \\.  is  spoken  against," 
Acts  xxviii.  22.  Jesus  was  called  "this  deceiver,"  "a  Samaritan," 
"a  demoniac,"  and  in  the  Talmud  he  is  only  alluded  to  as  'So  and  So' 
(Pelojii),  'that  man'  {Otho  haish),  'Absalom,'  'the  \\\\x\z'  {Thalooi),  'the 
son  of  Pandera,'  &c.  To  this  day  Niizrdni,  'Christian,'  is— after 
•Jew' — the  most  stinging  term  of  reproach  throughout  Palestine. 
Among  Pagans  the  Christians  were  charged  with  cannibalism,  incest, 
and  every  conceivable  atrocity,  and  Suetonius,  Pliny,  Tacitus  have  no 
gentler  words  for  Christianity  than  'an  execrable,  extravagant,  or  malefic 
superstition.'  To  holy  men  like  Zacharias  and  Simeon  God  had  revealed 
that  the  Glory  of  the  Messiah  was  to  be  perfected  by  suffering  (Heb. 
ii.  10).  They,  at  least,  did  not  expect  an  earthly  conqueror — 
"  Armed  in  flame,  all  glorious  from  afar. 

Of  hosts  the  captain,  ai]d  the  Lord  of  War." 

35.  a  s7vord]  The  word  rhomphaia,  probably  a  broad  Thracian 
sword,  only  occurs  elsewhere  in  the  New  Testament  in  Rev.,  i.  16,  &c., 
but  it  is  used  in  the  LXX.,  as  in  Zcch.  xiii.  7,  "Awake,  O  sword, 
against  my  shepherd."  Almost  from  the  very  birth  of  Clirist  the  sword 
began  to  pierce  the  soul  of  the  'Mater  Dolorosa;'  and  wliat  tongue 
can  describe  the  weight  of  mysterious  anguish  which  slie  felt  as  she 
watched  the  hatred  and  persecution  which  followed  Jesus  and  saw  Him 
die  in  anguish  on  the  cross  amid  the  execrations  of  all  classes  of  those 

whom  He  came  to  save  !  r>     u       ♦»,   f  +11 

that  the  thoughts  of  many  hearts  may  be  revealed]  Rather,  tnat  tne 
reasonings  out  of  many  hearts  may  be  revealed.     The  word  dialo- 


74  ST   LUKE,   II.  [vv.  36—38. 

36 — 40,    Anna  the  Prophetess.     The  Return  to  Nazareth. 

i6  And  there  was  one  Anna,  a  prophetess,  the  daughter  of 
Phanuel,  of  the  tribe  of  Aser :  she  was  of  a  great  age,  and 

17  had  Hved  with  a  husband  seven  years  from  her  virginity ;  and 
she  was  a  widow  of  about  fourscore  and  four  years,  which 
departed  not  from  the  temple,  but  served  God  with  fastings 

(8  and  prayers  night  and  day.  And  she  coming  in  that 
instant  gave  thanks  likewise  unto  the  Lord,  and  spake  of 

gismoi  generally  has  a  bad  sense  as  in  v.  11 ;  Matt.  xv.  19;  Rom.  i.  21. 
By  way  of  comment  see  the  reasonings  of  the  Jews  in  John  ix.  16: 
I  Cor.  xi.  19;  I  John  ii.  19. 

36 — 40.     Anna  the  Prophetess.     The  Return  to  Nazareth. 

36.  Annd\  The  same  name  as  Hannah  (i  Sam.  i.  20),  from  the 
root  Chdnan,  '  he  was  gracious.' 

a  prophetess]  like  Miriam,  Deborah,  Huldah  (2  Chron.  xxxiv.  22). 

Pkanuet]  'The  Face  of  God;'  the  same  word  as  Peniel,  Gen. 
xxxii.  30. 

Aser]  Though  the  Ten  Tribes  were  lost,  individual  Jews  who  be- 
longed to  them  had  preserved  their  genealogies.  Thus  Tobit  was  of  the 
tribe  of  Naphthali  (Tob.  i.  i).  Comp.  "our  twelve  tribes,"  Acts 
xxvi.  7;  James  i.  i. 

fro/n  her  virginity]  I.e.  she  had  been  married  only  seven  years,  and 
was  now  84  years  old.  N,  A,  B,  L  read  ?cos  (for  ws)  which  is  best  taken 
with  "of  great  age,"  the  intervening  words  being  parenthetic,  a  widow 
even  unto  fourscore  years. 

37.  departed  not]  She  was  present  (that  is)  at  all  the  stated  hours 
of  prayer;  unless  we  suppose  that  her  position  as  a  Prophetess  had 
secured  her  the  right  of  living  in  one  of  the  Temple  chambers,  and 
perhaps  of  doing  some  work  for  it  like  trimming  the  lamps  (as  is  the 
Rabbinic  notion  about  Deborah,  derived  from  the  word  Lapidoth 
'  splendours'). 

fastings]  The  Law  of  Moses  had  only  appointed  one  yearly  fast,  on 
the  Great  Day  of  Atonement.  But  the  Pharisees  had  adopted  the  prac- 
tice of  'fasting  twice  in  the  week,'  viz.  on  Monday  and  Thursday,  when 
Moses  is  supposed  to  have  ascended,  and  descended  from,  Sinai  (see  on 
xviii.  12),  and  had  otherwise  multiplied  and  extended  the  simple  origi- 
nal injunction  (v.  33). 

prayers]     Rather,  supplications  (a  more  special  word). 

night  and  day]  'Night'  is  put  first  by  the  ordinary  Hebrew  idiom 
(as  in  the  Greek  word  vvx&'hs-'-^pov)  which  arose  from  their  notion  that 
'  God  made  the  world  in  six  days  and  seven  nights. '  Comp.  Acts 
xxvi.  7,  "unto  which  promise  our  twelve  tribes,  instantly  serving  God 
night  and  day  (Greek),  hope  to  come."  1  Tim.  v.  5,  "she  that  is  a 
widow  indeed^  and  desolate,  trusteth  in  God,  and  continueth  in  sup- 
plications and  prayers  night  and  day." 


VV.39— 4I-]  ST   LUKE,   II.  75 

him  to  all  them  that  looked  for  redemption  in  Jerusalem. 
And  when  they  had  performed  all  things  according  to  the  39 
law  of  the  Lord,  they  returned  into  Galilee,  to  their  own  city 
Nazareth.     And  the  child  grew,  and  waxed  strong  in  spirit,  4° 
filled  with  wisdom  :  and  the  grace  of  God  was  upon  him. 
41 — 52.     The  Passover  Visit  to  the  Temple. 
Now  his  parents  went  to  Jerusalem  every  year  at  the  feast  41 

38.  that  looked  for  redemption^  See  xxiv.  21;  Mk.  xv.  43;  i  Cor. 
i.  7;  Tit.  ii.  13;  Heb.  ix.  28.     See  Excursus  VII. 

in  Jemsalem^  The  readings  vary.  Perhaps  it  should  be  for  the 
redemption  of  J erusalein. 

39.  Between  this  verse  and  the  last  come  the  events  narrated  by 
St  Matthew  only — namely  the  Visit  of  the  Magi ;  the  Flight  into  Egypt; 
and  the  massacre  of  the  Innocents.  It  is  difficult  to  believe  that  either 
of  the  Evangelists  had  seen  the  narrative  of  the  other,  because  the 
prima  facie  inference  from  either  singly  would  be  imperfectly  correct. 
They  stipplement  each  other,  because  they  each  narrate  the  truth,  though 
probably  neither  of  them  was  aware  of  all  that  has  been  delivered  to  us. 

40.  filled^  Rather,  being  filled.  The  growth  of  our  Lord  is  here 
described  as  a  natural  human  growth.  The  nature  of  the  '  Hypostatic 
Union'  of  His  Divine  and  Human  nature — what  is  called  the 
Perichoresis  or  Commtmicatio  idiomatum — is  one  of  the  subtlest  and 
least  practical  of  mysteries.  The  attempt  to  define  and  enter  into 
it  was  only  forced  upon  the  Church  by  the  speculations  of  Oriental 
heretics  who  vainly  tried  "to  soar  into  the  secrets  of  the  Deity  on  the 
waxen  wings  of  the  senses."  This  verse  (and  still  more  vs.  52)  is  a 
stronghold  against  the  Apollinarian  heresy  which  held  that  in  Jesus  the 
Divine  Logos  took  the  place  of  the  human  soul.  Against  the  four  con- 
flicting heresies  of  Arius,  Apollinarius,  Nestorius  and  Eutyches,  which 
respectively  denied  the  true  Godhead,  the  perfect  manhood,  the  indi- 
visible union,  and  the  entire  distinctness  of  the  Godhead  and  manhood 
in  Christ,  the  Church,  in  the  four  great  Councils  of  Nice  (a.d.  325), 
Constantinople  (a.  D.  381),  Ephesus  (a.d.  431),  and  Chalcedon  (A.D. 
451),  established  the  four  words  which  declare  her  view  of  the  nature  of 
QYiXXit—alethSs,  tcleos,  adiairetos,  asunchtitos — 'truly'  God;  'perfectly' 
Man; 'indivisibly' God-Man,  'distinctly' God  and  Man.  See  Hooker, 
Eccl.  Pol.  V.  Iv.  10. 

the  grace  of  God  was  upon  him']  Is.  xi.  2,  3.  "Full  of  grace  and 
truth,"  John  i.  14.  "Take  notice  here  that  His  doing  nothing  won- 
derful was  itself  a  kind  of  wonder. ..As  there  was  power  in  His  actions, 
so  is  there  power  in  His  silence,  in  His  inactivity,  in  His  retirement." 
Bonaventura.  The  worthless  legends  and  inventions  of  many  of  the  Apo- 
cryphal Gospels  deal  almost  exclusively  with  the  details  of  the  Virginity 
of  Mary,  and  the  Infancy  of  Christ,  which  are  passed  over  in  the 
Gospels  in  these  few  words. 

41—52.     The  Passover  Visit  to  the  Temple. 

41.  his  parents]  The  great  Rabbi  Hillel  had  recommended  yvomen  to 


76  ST   LUKE,   II.  [w.  42,  43. 

42  of  the  passover.     And  when  he  was  twelve  years  old,  they 

43  went  up  to  Jerusalem  after  the  custom  of  the  feast.     And 
when  they  had  fulfilled  the  days,  as  they  returned,  the  child 


attend  the  Passover.     It  was  not  enjoined  by  the  Law,  but  the  Jews 
admired  it  as  a  pious  practice.      [Meckilta,  f.  17.  2  in  Schottgen.) 

at  the  feast  of  the  passover]  Ex.  xxiii.  15 — 17;  Deut.  xvi.  i — 16. 
The  custom  of  going  up  three  times  a  year  seems  long  to  have  fallen 
into  abeyance  with  most  Jews,      i  Sam.  i.  7.1,  "the  yearly  sacrifice." 

42.  when  he  was  twelve  years  old]  No  single  word  breaks  the 
silence  of  the  Gospels  respecting  the  childhood  of  Jesus  from  the  return 
to  Nazareth  till  this  time.  We  infer  indeed  from  scattered  hints  in 
Scripture  that  He  "began  to  do"  His  work  before  He  ^^  began  to  teach," 
and  being  "tempted  in  all  points  like  as  we  are"  won  the  victory  from 
His  earliest  years,  alike  over  positive  and  negative  temptations.  (Heb. 
v.  8.  See  Ullmann,  Sinlessness  of  fesus,  E.  Tr.  p.  140.)  Up  to  this 
time  He  had  grown  as  other  children  grow,  only  in  a  childhood  of 
stainless  and  sinless  beauty — "as  the  flower  of  roses  in  the  spring  of  the 
year,  and  as  lilies  by  the  waters,"  Ecclus.  xxxix.  13,  14.  This  inci- 
dent of  His  'confirmation,'  as  in  modern  language  we  might  call  it, 
is  "the  solitary  flowret  out  of  the  wonderful  enclosed  garden  of  the 
thirty  years,  plucked  precisely  there  where  the  swollen  bud  at  a  dis- 
tinctive crisis  bursts  into  flower."     Stier,   Words  of  fesus,  i.  18. 

This  silence  of  the  Evangelists  is  a  proof  of  their  simple  faithfulness, 
and  is  in  striking  contrast  with  the  blaze  of  foolish  and  dishonouring 
miracles  with  which  the  Apocryphal  Gospels  degrade  the  Divine  Boy- 
hood. See  my  Life  of  Christ,  i.  58 — 66.  Meanwhile  we  are  permitted 
to  see  (i)  That  our  Lord  never  attended  the  schools  of  the  Rabbis 
(Mk.  vi.  1;  John  vi.  42,  vii.  15),  and  therefore  that  His  teaching  was 
absolutely  original,  and  that  He  would  therefore  be  regarded  by  the 
Rabbis  as  a  'man  of  the  people,'  or  'unlearned  person.'  (See  Acts 
iv.  13;  T.  B.  Berachoth,  f.  47.  2;  Ecclus.  xxxviii.  24  fg.)  (ii)  That 
He  had  learnt  to  write  (John  viii.  6).  (iii)  That  He  was  acquainted 
not  only  with  Aramaic,  but  with  Hebrew,  Greek,  and  perhaps  Latin 
{^Life  of  Christ,  i.  91);  and  (iv)  That  he  had  been  deeply  impressed 
by  the  lessons  of  nature  (id.  I.  93). 

twelve  years  old]  Up  to  this  age  a  Jewish  boy  was  called  'little,' 
afterwards  he  was  called  'grown  up,'  and  became  a  'Son  of  the  Law,' 
or  'Son  of  the  Precepts.'  At  this  age  he  was  presented  on  the  Sabbath 
called  the  '  Sabbath  of  Phylacteries '  in  the  Synagogue,  and  began  to 
wear  the  phylacteries  with  which  his  father  presented  him.  Ac- 
cording to  the  Jews  twelve  was  the  age  at  which  Moses  left  the 
house  of  Pharaoh's  daughter,  and  Samuel  was  called,  and  Solomon 
gave  his  judgment,  and  Josiah  carried  out  his  reform.  (Jos.  Antt. 
II.  9.  6,  V.  10.  4.) 

43.  fulfilled  the  days]     Ex.  xii.  15. 

the  child  Jesus]  Rather,  "the  hoy  Jesus"  (d  irals).  St  Luke  seems 
purposely  to  have  narrated  something  about  the  Saviour  at  every  stage 


vv.  44—47-]  ST    LUKE,    II.  ^^ 

Jesus  tarried  behind  in  Jerusalem;   and   Joseph   and   his 
mother  knew  not  of  it.     But  they,  supposing  him  to  have  44 
been  in  the  company,  went  a  day's  journey;  and  they  sought 
him  among  their  kinsfolk  and  acquaintance.     And  when  they  4s 
found  him  not,  they  turned  back  again  to  Jerusalem,  seeking 
him.     And  it  came  to  pass,  that  after  three  days  they  found  46 
him  in  the  temple,  sitting  in  the  midst  of  the  doctors,  both 
hearing  them,  and  asking  them  questions.    And  all  that  heard  47 


of  His  earthly  existence  as  babe  (ii.  16),  little  child  (ii.  40),  boy,  and 
man. 

tarried  behind'\  Among  the  countless  throngs  of  Jews  who  flocked 
to  the  Passover — nearly  three  millions  according  to  Josephus  (Afitt.  VI. 
9.  3)— nothing  would  be  easier  than  to  lose  sight  of  one  young  boy  in 
the  thronged  streets,  or  among  the  thousands  of  booths  outside  the 
city  walls.  Indeed  it  is  an  incident  which  to  this  day  often  occurs 
at  Jerusalem  in  similar  cases.  It  should  be  also  remembered  that  at 
the  age  of  12  an  Eastern  boy  is  far  more  mature  than  is  the  case 
with  Northern  nations,  and  that  at  that  age  a  far  wider  liberty  was 
allowed  him. 

Joseph  and  his  fnother\  The  true  reading  is  probably  His  paxents, 
K,  B,  D,  L. 

knew  not  of  it\  The  fact  is  very  interesting  as  shewing  the  natural- 
ness and  unconstraint  in  which  our  Lord  was  trained. 

44.  we^it  a  day^s journey]  Probably  to  Beeroth,  six  miles  north  of 
Jerusalem.  In  the  numerous  and  rejoicing  caravans  of  kinsmen  and 
fellow-countrymen  relations  are  often  separated  without  feeling  any 
anxiety. 

sought  hini\     The  word  implies  anxious  and  careful  search. 

46.  after  three  days]  This,  in  the  Jewish  idiom,  probably  means 
'on  the  third  day.'  One  day  was  occupied  by  the  journey  to  Beeroth; 
on  the  second,  they  sought  him  in  the  caravans  and  at  Jerusalem  ;  the 
next  day  they  found  him  in  the  Temple.  The  unsettled  state  of  the 
country  would  add  to  their  alarm. 

in  the  temple]  Probably  in  one  of  the  numerous  chambers  which 
ran  round  the  Court,  and  abutted  on  the  actual  building. 

sittittg]  Doubtless  at  the  feet  of  the  Rabbis,  as  was  the  custom  of 
Jewish  boys  when  sitting  began  to  be  permitted. 

in  the  midst  of  the  doctors]  Rather,  teachers.  The  most  eminent 
Rabbis  of  this  period — some  of  whom  may  have  been  present — were 
Hillel,  his  rival  Shammai,  and  his  son  Rabban  Shimeon,  Babha  ben 
Butah,  Nicodemus,  Jochanan  ben  Zakkai,  &c. 

hearing  them,  and  asking  them  questions]  Obviously  with  all  modest 
humility.  The  Apocryphal  Gospels  characteristically  degrade  this  scene, 
and  represent  the  boy  Christ  as  liehaving  with  a  forwardness  which  mobt 
flagrantly  contradicts  the  whole  tenor  of  the  narrative,  and  would  have 
been  specially  displeasing  to  Jewish  elders  (Pirhe  Abhdth,  v.  12.  15). 


78  ST   LUKE,   11.  [vv.  48—51. 

48  him  were  astonished  at  his  understanding  and  answers.  And 
when  they  saw  him,  they  were, amazed  :  and  his  mother  said 
unto  him,  Son,  why  hast  thou  thus  dealt  with  us?  behold, 

(9  thy  father  and  I  have  sought  thee  sorrowing.  And  he  said 
unto  them,  How  is  it  that  ye  sought  me  ?  wist  ye  not  that  I 

50  must  be  about  my  Father's  business  ?     And  they  understood 

51  not  the  saying  which  he  spake  unto  them.  And  he  went 
down  with  them,  and  came  to  Nazareth,  and  was  subject 

47.  were  astonished'\  Similar  incidents  are  narrated  of  Rabbi  Eliezer 
Ben  Azariah ;  of  Rabbi  Ashi,  the  compiler  of  the  Babylonian  Talmud ; 
and  (by  himself)  of  Josephus  {Vit.  1).     See  Excursus  VII. 

48.  they  were  amazed\  The  '■'■  people  of  the  land"  such  as  were  the 
simple  peasants  of  Galilee,  held  their  great  teachers  in  the  deepest  awe, 
and  hitherto  the  silent,  sweet,  obedient  childhood  of  Jesus  had  not  pre- 
pared them  for  such  a  scene. 

Son,  why  hast  thou  thus  dealt  with  us?]  Rather,  My  child,  why  didst 
thou  treat  us  thus? 

have  sought  thee  sorrotving\  Rather,  were  searching  for  thee  with 
aching  hearts. 

49.  about  my  Father's  business]  Rather,  in  my  Father's  house. 
See  Excursus  I.  These  words  are  very  memorable  as  being  the  first 
recorded  words  of  Jesus.  They  bear  with  them  the  stamp  of  authenticity 
in  their  half-vexed  astonishment,  and  perfect  mixture  of  dignity  and 
humility.  It  is  remarkable  too,  that  He  does  not  accept  the  phrase  "Thy 
father"  which  Mary  had  employed.  "Did  ye  not  know?"  recalls  their 
fading  memory  of  Who  He  was;  and  the  "I  must"  lays  down  the  law 
of  devotion  to  His  Father  by  which  He  was  to  walk  even  to  the  Cross. 
Ps.  xl.  7 — 9.  "  My  meat  is  to  do  the  will  of  Him  that  sent  Me  and  to 
finish  His  work,"  John  iv.  34.  For  His  last  recorded  words,  see  Acts 
i.  7,  8. 

my  Father's]  It  is  remarkable  that  Christ  always  says  d  irarrip  fxov 
(with  the  article)  but  teaches  us  to  say  Trariip  rifxCiv  (without  the  article) : 
e.g.  in  John  xx.  17  it  is,  "I  ascend  unto  the  Father  of  me  and  Father 
of  you."  God  is  His  Father  in  a  difierent  way  from  that  in  which  He 
is  ours.  He  is  our  Father  only  because  He  is  His  Father.  See  Pearson 
On  the  Creed,  Art.  i. 

60.  they  undejstood  not]  Words  which  might  stand  as  the  epitome 
of  much  of  His  ministry,  ix.  45,  xviii.  34;  Mk.  ix.  32;  John  x.  6,  i.  10, 
II.  The  meaning  however  is  not  that  they  had  any  doubt  as  to  what 
the  grammatical  construction  of  His  words  implied ;  but  only  as  to  their 
bearing  and  appropriateness  to  the  circumstances  of  so  young  a  child. 

51.  with  them]  We  may  infer  from  the  subsequent  omission  of 
Joseph's  name,  and  from  the  traditional  belief  of  his  age,  that  he  died 
shortly  after  this  event,  as  the  Apocryphal  Gospels  assert. 

to  Nazareth]  In  many  respects  there  was  a  divine  fitness  in  this  spot 
for  the  human  growth  of  Jesus — "as  a  tender  plant  and  a  root  out  of  the 
dry  ground."     Apart  from  the  obscurity  and  evil  fame  of  Nazareth 


V.  52;  I.]  ST   LUKE,   II.  III.  79 


unto  them  :    but  his  mother  kept  all  these  sayings  in  her 
heart.     And  Jesus  increased  in  wisdom  and  stature,  and  in  sj 
favour  with  God  and  man. 

Ch.  III.  I — 9.     Baptism  and  Preaching  of  John  the  Baptist. 
Now  in  the  fifteenth  year  of  the  reign  of  Tiberius  Cesar,  3 

which  were  meant  to  teach  lessons  similar  to  those  of  which  we  have 
just  spoken,  we  may  notice  (i)  its  sechision.  It  lies  in  a  narrow  cleft  in 
the  limestone  hills  which  form  the  boundary  of  Zabulon  entirely  out  of 
the  ordinary  roads  of  commerce,  so  that  none  could  say  that  our  Lord 
had  learnt  either  from  Gentiles  or  from  Rabbis,  (ii)  Its  beauty  and 
peacefulness.  The  flowers  of  Nazareth  are  famous,  and  the  appearance 
of  its  inhabitants  shews  its  healthiness.  It  was  a  home  of  humble  peace 
and  plenty.  The  fields  of  its  green  valley  are  fruitful,  and  the  view 
from  the  hill  which  overshadows  it  is  one  of  the  loveliest  and  most 
historically  striking  in  all  Palestine. 

■was  subject  unto  them]  "He  made  Himself  of  no  reputation,  and 
took  upon  Him  the  form  of  a  servant,"  Phil.  ii.  7;  Is.  liii.  2.  With 
the  exception  of  these  two  verses,  the  Gospels  preserve  but  one  single 
word  to  throw  light  on  the  Life  of  our  Lord,  between  His  infancy  and 
His  baptism.  That  word  is  ''the  carpeiiter'''  in  Mk.  vi.  3,  altered  in 
some  MSS.  out  of  irreverent  and  mistaken  reverence  into  "the  son  oj 
the  carpenter."  They  shew  that  (i)  our  Lord's  life  was  spent  in  poverty 
but  not  in  pauperism  ;  (ii)  that  He  sanctified  labour  as  a  pure  and 
noble  thing;  (iii)  that  God  looks  on  the  heart,  and  that  the  dignity 
or  humility,  the  fame  or  obscurity,  of  the  outer  lot  is  of  no  moment 
in  His  eyes.     Rom.  xiv.  17,  18. 

52.  increased]  Rather,  advanced.  The  word  is  derived  from 
pioneers  cutting  down  trees  in  the  path  of  an  advancing  army.  Comp. 
I  Sam.  ii.  -26,  and  the  description  of  an  ideal  youth  in  Prov.  iii.  3,  4. 

stature]  Rather,  age  (as  in  xii.  25),  though  the  word  sometimes  means 
stature  (xix.  3). 

favour  with  God  and  man]  Rather,  men.  Prov.  iii.  4,  "So  shall 
thou  find  favour  and  good  success  {marg.)  in  the  sight  of  God  and  man." 
Pirke  AhMth,  III.  10,  "In  whomsoever  the  mind  of  men  delights,  in 
him  also  the  Spirit  of  God  delights." 

Ch.  III.    1—9.     Baptism  and  Preaching  of  John  the 

Baptist. 
1.  in  the  fifteenth  year  of  the  reign  of  Tiberius  Cesar]  If  the  acces- 
sion of  Tiberius  be  dated  from  the  death  of  Augustus,  Aug.  19,  A.u.c. 
767,  this  would  make  our  Lord  thirty-two  at  His  baptism.  St  Luke, 
however,  follows  a  common  practice  in  dating  the  reign  of  Tiberius 
from  the  period  of  his  association  with  Augustus  as  joint  Emperor 
A.U.C.  765.  (Tac.  Ann.  I.  3;  Suet.  Atig.  97;  Veil.  Paterc.  103.) 
Our  Lord's  baptism  thus  took  place  in  A.u.c  780. 


8o  ST   LUKE,   III.  .  [v.  i. 

Pontius  Pilate  being  governor  of  Judea,  and  Herod  being 
tetrarch  of  Galilee,  and  his  brother  Philip  tetrarch  of  Iturea 

Tiberius  Cesar]  The  stepson  and  successor  of  Augustus.  At  this 
period  of  his  reign  he  retired  to  the  island  of  Capreae  (Tac.  Ann.  iv. 
74),  where  he  plunged  into  horrible  private  excesses,  while  his  public 
administration  was  most  oppressive  and  sanguinary.  The  recent  at- 
tempts to  defend  his  character  break  down  under  the  accumulated  and 
unanimous  weight  of  ancient  testimony. 

Pontius  Pilate]  He  was  Procurator  for  ten  years,  A.  D.  25 — 36.  His 
predecessors  had  been  Coponius  (a.d.  6 — 10),  M.  Ambivius,  Annius 
Rufus,  and  Valerius  Gratus  (a.d.  14 — 25).  He  was  succeeded  by 
Marcellus,  Fadus,  Tiberius  Alexander,  Cumanus,  Felix,  Festus,  Albi- 
nus  and  Floras.     For  an  account  of  him  see  on  xxiii.  i. 

governor]  His  strict  title  was  epitropos  or  Procurator  (Jos.  Antt.  xx. 
6,  §  2),  which  does  not  however  occur  in  the  N.T.  except  in  the  sense 
of  'steward'  (Lk.  viii.  3).  Hegeiiion  was  a  more  general  term.  (Matt. 
X.  18 ;  I  Pet.  ii.  14.)  His  relation  to  the  Herods  was  much  the  same 
as  that  of  the  Viceroy  of  India  to  the  subject  Maharajahs. 

Herod]  Herod  Antipas,  the  son  of  Herod  the  Great  and  the  Sama- 
ritan lady  Malthace.  He  retained  his  kingdom  for  more  than  40  years, 
at  the  end  of  which  he  was  banished  (a.d.  39)  to  Lugdunum  (probably 
St  Bertrand  de  Comminges),  chiefly  through  the  machinations  of  his 
nephew  Herod  Agrippa  I.  (the  Herod  of  Acts  xii.  i).  See  the  Steimna 
Herodiitn  on  p.  39,  and  for  further  particulars  of  his  character  see  on 
xiii.  32. 

tetrarch]  The  word  properly  means  a  ruler  of  a  fourth  part  of  a 
country,  but  afterwards  was  used  for  any  tril^utary  prince  or  ethnarch. 
At  this  time  Judaea,  Samaria  and  Galilee  were  the  provinces  of  Judaea. 
Antipas,  Philip  and  Lysanias  are  the  only  three  to  whom  the  term 
'  tetrarch  '  is  applied  in  the  N.  T.  Antipas  also  had  the  courtesy-title 
of 'king'  (Mk.  vi.  14,  &c.),  and  it  was  in  the  attempt  to  get  this  title 
officially  confirmed  to  him  that  he  paid  the  visit  to  Rome  which  ended 
in  his  banishment.  He  was  tetrarch  for  more  than  40  years,  from 
B.C.  4  to  A.D.  39. 

of  Galilee]  This  province  is  about  25  miles  from  North  to  South, 
and  27  from  East  to  West, — about  the  size  of  Bedfordsliire.  Lower 
Galilee  included  the  district  from  the  plain  of  Akka  to  the  shores ' 
of  the  Sea  of  Galilee,  and  was  mainly  composed  of  the  rich  plain  of 
Esdraelon  (or  Jezreel).  Upper  Galilee  included  the  mountain  range 
between  the  Upper  Jordan  and  Phoenicia.  Galilee  was  thus  the  main 
scene  of  our  Lord's  ministry.  It  was  surpassingly  rich  and  fertile  (Jos. 
B.  J.  1.  15.  5,  III.  10,  §§  7,  8).  See  on  i.  26.  Herod's  dominfons 
included  the  larger  though  less  populous  district  of  Peraea;  but  the 
flourishing  towns  of  Decapolis  (Gerasa,  Gadara,  Damascus,  Hippos, 
Pella,  &c.)  were  independent. 

his  brother  Philip]  Herod  Philip,  son  of  Herod  the  Great  and  Cleo- 
patra, who  afterwards  married  his  niece  Salome,  daughter  of  the  other 
Herod  Philip  (who  hved  in  a  private  capacity  at  Rome)  and  of  his  half- 


V.  2.]  ST   LUKE,    III.  8i 


and  of  the  region  of  Trachonitis,  and  Lysanias  the  tetrarch 
of  Abilene,  Annas  and  Caiaphas  being  the  high  priests,  the  2 

sister  and  sister-in-law  Herodias.  This  tetrarch  seems  to  have  been  the 
best  of  the  Herods  (Jos.  Antt.  xvii.  2.  §  4),  and  the  town  of  Caesarea 
Philippi  which  he  beautified  was  named  from  him. 

of  Ituraea  and  of  the  region  of  Trachonitis']  His  tetrarchate  also  in- 
cluded Batanaea  (Bashan),  Auranitis  (the  Hauran),  Gaulanitis  (Golan), 
and  some  parts  about  Jamnia  (Jos.  B.  J.  11.  6,  §  3).  Ituraea  (now  Jedur) 
was  at  the  foot  of  Mount  Hermon,  and  was  named  from  Jetur,  son  of 
Ishmael  (Gen.  xxv.  15,  16).  The  Ituraeans  were  marauders,  famous  for 
the  use  of  the  bow,  and  protected  by  their  mountain  fastnesses.  (Strabo, 
XVI.  2  ;  Lucan,  Phars.  VII.  230.)  Trachonitis,  also  a  country  of  robbers 
(Jos.  Antt.  XVI.  9  §§  I,  2),  is  the  Greek  rendering  of  the  Aramaic  Argob 
(a  region  about  22  miles  from  N.  to  S.  by  14  from  W.  to  E.),  and  means 
'  a  rough  or  stony  tract.'  It  is  the  modern  province  of  el-Lejah,  and 
the  ancient  kingdom  of  Og — "  an  ocean  of  basaltic  rocks  and  boulders, 
tossed  about  in  the  wildest  confusion,  and  intermingled  with  fissures 
and  crevices  in  every  direction."  Herod  Philip  received  this  tetrarchate 
by  bequest  from  his  father  (Jos.  ^.  y.  11.  6,  §  3). 

Lysanias  the  tetrarch  of  Abilene]  The  mention  of  this  minute  parti- 
cular is  somewhat  singular,  but  shews  St  Luke's  desire  for  at  least  one 
rigid  chronological  datntn.  It  used  to  be  asserted  that  St  Luke  had 
here  fallen  into  another  chronological  error,  but  his  probable  accuracy 
has,  in  this  point  also,  been  completely  vindicated.  There  was  a  Lysa- 
nias king  of  Chalcis  under  Mount  Lebanon,  and  therefore  in  all  proba- 
bility tetrarch  of  Abilene,  in  the  days  of  Antony  and  Cleopatra,  60 
years  before  this  period  (Jos.  B.  f.  I.  13,  §  r);  and  there  was  another 
Lysanias,  probably  a  grandson  of  the  former,  in  the  reigns  of  Caligula 
and  Claudius,  20  years  after  this  period  (Jos.  Antt.  XV.  4,  §  i).  No 
intermediate  Lysanias  is  recorded  in  history,  but  there  is  not  a  shadow  of 
proof  that  the  Lysanias  here  mentioned  may  not  be  the  second  of  these 
two,  or  more  probably  some  Lysanias  who  came  between  them,  perhaps 
the  son  of  the  first  and  the  father  of  the  second.  Even  M.  Renan 
admits  that  after  reading  at  Baalbek  the  inscription  of  Zenodorus 
(Boeckh,  Corp.  Inscr.  Grace,  no.  4521)  he  infers  the  correctness  of  the 
Evangelist  (  Vie  de  Jesus,  p.  xiii. ;  Les  ^vangiles,  p.  263).  It  is  indeed, 
on  the  lowest  grounds,  inconceivable  that  so  careful  a  writer  as  St  Luke 
should  have  deliberately  gone  out  of  his  way  to  introduce  so  apparently 
superfluous  an  allusion  at  the  risk  of  falling  into  a  needless  error.  Ly- 
sanias is  perhaps  mentioned  because  he  had  Jewish  connexions  (Jos. 
Antt.  XIV.  7,  §  4). 

of  Abilene]  Abila  was  a  town  18  miles  from  Damascus  and  38  from 
Baalbek.  The  district  of  which  it  was  the  capital  is  probably  here 
mentioned  because  it  subsequently  formed  part  of  the  Jewish  territory, 
having  been  assigned  by  Caligula  to  his  favourite  Herod  Agrippa  I.  in 
A.D.  36.    The  name  is  derived  from  Abel  'a  meadow.' 

Annas  and  Caiaphas  being  the  high  priests]  Rather,  in  the  hlgh- 
prlesthood  of  Annas  and  ofCaiaphas,  for  the  true  reading  is  undoubt- 

ST  LUKE  6 


82  ST    LUKE.    III.  [v.  2. 

word  of  God  came  unto  John  the  son  of  Zacharias  in  the 

edly  apx^epicos  (N,  A,  B,  C,  D,  E,  &c.),  and  a  similar  expression  occurs 
in  Acts  iv.  6.  But  here  St  Luke  is  charged  (on  grounds  as  untenable 
as  in  the  former  instances)  with  yet  another  mistake.  Annas  or  Hanan 
the  son  of  Seth  had  been  High  Priest  from  A.D.  7 — 14,  and  had  there- 
fore, by  this  time,  been  deposed  for  at  least  15  years;  and  his  son-in-law 
Joseph  Caiaphas,  'Cos.  fourth  High  Priest  since  his  deposition,  had  been 
appointed  in  A.D.  24.     The  order  had  been  as  follows: — 

Annas  or  Ananus  (Hanan),  A.D.  7. 

Ishmael  Ben  Phabi,  A.D.  15. 

Eleazar  son  of  Annas,  A.D.  15. 

Simon  son  of  Kamhith,  a.d.  16. 

Joseph  Caiaphas,  A.D.  17. 
How  then  can  Annas  be  called  High  Priest  in  A.D.  27?  The  answer  is 
(i.)  that  by  the  Mosaic  Law  the  High  priesthood  was  held  for  life 
(Numb.  XXXV.  25),  and  since  Annas  had  only  been  deposed  by  the 
arbitrary  caprice  of  the  Roman  Procurator  Valerius  Gratus  he  would 
still  be  legally  and  religiously  regarded  as  High  Priest  by  the  Jews 
(Numb.  XXXV.  25);  (ii.)  that  he  held  in  all  probability  the  high  office  of 
Sagan  haccohanifu  'deputy'  or  'chief  of  the  Priests  (2  K.  xxv.  18), 
or  of  Nasi  'President  of  the  Sanhedrin,'  and  at  least  of  the  Ab  Beth 
Dhi,  who  was  second  in  the  Sanhedrin;  (iii.)  that  the  nominal,  official, 
High  Priests  of  this  time  were  mere  puppets  of  the  civil  power,  which 
appointed  and  deposed  them  at  will  in  rapid  succession,  so  that  the 
title  was  used  in  a  looser  sense  than  in  earlier  days.  The  High  Priest- 
hood was  in  fact  at  this  time  in  the  hands  of  a  clique  of  some  half- 
dozen  Herodian,  Sadducaean  and  alien  families,  whose  ambition  it  was 
to  bear  the  title  for  a  time  without  facing  the  burden  of  the  necessary 
duties.  Hence  any  one  who  was  unusually  prominent  among  them  would 
naturally  bear  the  title  of  'High  Priest'  in  a  popular  way,  especially  in 
such  a  case  as  that  of  Hanan,  who,  besides  having  been  High  Priest,  was 
a  man  of  vast  wealth  and  influence,  so  that  five  also  of  his  sons,  as  well 
as  his  son-in-law,  became  High  Priests  after  him.  The  language  of  St 
Luke  and  the  Evangelists  (Joh.  xi.  49)  is  therefore  in  strict  accordance 
with  the  facts  of  the  case  in  attributing  the  High  Priesthood  at  this 
epoch  rather  to  a  caste  than  to  a  person.  Josephus  {B.  y.  Ii.  20,  §  4) 
who  talks  of  "one  of  \he  High  Priests"  and  the  Talmud  which  speaks' 
of  "the  sons  of  the  High  Priests"  use  the  same  sort  of  language. 
There  had  been  no  less  than  28  of  these  phantom  High  Priests  in  107 
years  (Jos.  Antt.  XX.  10,  §  l),  and  there  must  have  been  at  least  five 
living  High  Priests  and  ex-High  Priests  at  the  Council  that  condemned 
our  Lord.  The  Jews,  even  in  the  days  of  David,  had  been  familiar 
with  the  sort  of  co-ordinate  High  Priesthood  of  Zadok  and  Abiathar. 
For  the  greed,  rapacity  and  luxury  of  this  degenerate  hierarchy,  see 
my  Life  of  Christ,  ii.  329,  330,  342. 

in  the  wilderness']  Mainly,  as  appears  from  the  next  verse,  the  Ara- 
bah,  the  sunken  valley  north  of  the  Dead  Sea — el  Ghor — "  the  deepest 
and  hottest  chasm  in  the  world"  (Humboldt,  Cosmos,  I.  150),  where  the 


w.  3,4-]  ST   LUKE,   III.  83 

wilderness.    And  he  came  into  all  the  country  about  Jordan,  3 
preaching  the  baptism   of  repentance  for  the  remission  of 
sins ;  as  it  is  written  in  the  book  of  the  words  of  Esaias  the  4 
prophet,  saying,  The  voice  of  one  crying  in  the  wilder- 
ness, Prepare  ye  the  way  of  the  Lord,  make  his  paths 

sirocco  blows  almost  without  intermission.  "A  more  frightful  desert  it 
had  hardly  been  our  lot  to  behold"  (Robinson,  Researches,  II.  121).  See 
it  described  by  Mr  Grove  in  Smith's  Bibl.  Did.  s.  v.  Arabah.  The 
stern  aspect  and  terrible  associations  of  the  spot  had  doubtless  exercised 
their  influence  on  the  mind  of  John.     See  on  ii.  80. 

3.  he  earned  St  Luke  alone  mentions  the  mission  journeys  of 
John  the  Baptist;  the  other  Evangelists,  whose  narratives  (Matt.  iii. 
1—12;  Mark  i.  1  —  8;  John  i.  15,  28)  should  be  carefully  compared 
with  that  of  St  Luke,  describe  how  the  multitudes  "came  streaming 
forth  "  to  him. 

all  the  country  about  yordan'\  The  Arabah  is  some  150  miles  in 
extent ;  the  actual  river- valley,  specified  in  the  O.  T.  by  the  curious 
words  Kikkar  zxA  Geliloth  (see  Stanley,  Sin.  and  Fal.-p.  284),  is  not  so 
extensive. 

the  baptism  of  repentance  for  the  remission  of  sins]  Comp.  Acts  ii.  38, 
iii.  15,  V.  31,  xxii.  16;  where  the  two  expressions  are  also  united. 
The  baptism  of  John  was  "a  baptism  of  repentance,"  not  yet  "a 
laver  of  regeneration  "  (Tit.  iii.  5).  It  was  intended  first  as  a  symbol 
of  purification — "Then  will  I  sprinkle  clean  water  upon  you,  and 
ye  shall  be  clean,"  Ezek.  xxxvi.  25;  (comp.  Is.  i.  16;  Zech.  xiii.  i); 
and  then  as  an  initiation  into  the  kingdom  which  was  at  hand.  The 
Jews  had  been  familiar  with  the  symbolism  of  baptism  from  the 
earliest  days,  as  a  consecration  (Exod.  xxix.  4),  and  a  purification 
(Lev. ,  xiv.  8).  It  was  one  of  the  forms  by  which  proselytes  were 
admitted  into  Judaism.  John's  adoption  of  this  rite  proved  (i)  his 
authority  (John  i.  25);  and  (ii)  his  opinion  that  even  Jews  needed  to 
be  thus  washed  from  sins. 

4.  Esaias  the  prophet]     Is.  xl.  3. 

saying]     This  word  should  be  omitted  with  N,  B,  D,  L,  &c. 

The  voice]  Rather,  A  voice.  The  Hebrew  original  may  be  ren- 
dered "Hark  one  crieth." 

of  one   crying  in    the  wilderness]     Hence   comes  the  common  ex- 
pression  for   hopeless  warnings,  vox  clamant  is  in  deserto.     rrobahly, 
however,   the    "in  the  wilderness"    should   be  altaclied    to  the  words 
uttered  by  the  voice,  as  is  required  by  the  parallelism  of  Hebrew  poetry: 
"Prepare  ye  in  the  wilderness  a  way  for  Jehovah, 
Lay  even  in  the  desert  a  highway  for  our  God." 

The  wilderness  is  metaphorically  the  barren  waste  of  the  Jewish 
life  in  that  day  (Is.  xxxv.  i). 

the  way  of  the  Lord]  Comp.  Is.  xxxv.  8—10,  "And  a  highway 
shall  be  there,  and  a  way,  anil   it  shall  be  called  the  way  of  holiness : 

6—2 


84  ST   LUKE,   III.  [w.  5—7. 

s  straight.  Every  valley  shall  be  filled,  and  every 
mountain  and  hill  shall  be  brought  low;  and  the 
crooked  shall  be  made  straight,  and  the  rough  ways 

6  shall  ^^made  smooth;  and  all  flesh  shall  see  the  sal- 

7  vation  of  God.  Then  said  he  to  the  multitude  that  came 
forth  to  be  baptized  of  him,  O  generation  of  vipers,  who  hath 

the   unclean   shall  not  pass  over  it... And  the  ransomed  of  the  Lord 
shall  return,  and  come  to  Zion." 

5.  Every  valley,  &c.]  The  metaphor  is  derived  from  pioneers  who 
go  before  the  march  of  a  king.  There  is  a  remarkable  parallel  in 
Josephus  {B.  y.  III.  6,  §  2),  where  he  is  describing  the  march  of 
Vespasian,  and  says  that  among  his  vanguard  were  "such  as  were 
to  make  the  road  even  attd  straight,  a7id  if  it  ivere  anywhere  rough 
and  hard  to  be  passed  over,  to  plane  it,  and  to  cut  down  the  woods  that 
hindered  their  march  {com^.prokoptein—^to  advance'  in  ii.  52),  that 
the  army  might  not  be  tired."  The  Jews  fabled  that  the  Pillar  of 
Cloud  and  Fire  in  the  desert  smoothed  the  mountains  and  filled  the 
valleys  before  them.      Tanchiana,  f.  70,  3  on  Numb.  xx.  22. 

Every  valley  shall  be  filled,  &c.]  i.e.  the  humble  and  meek  shall 
be  exalted,  and  the  mighty  put  down.  Compare  Is.  ii.  12 — 15,  "The 
day  of  the  Lord  of  hosts  shall  be  tipon  every  one  that  is  proud  and 
lofty,  and  upon  every  one  that  is  lifted  up,   and  he  shall  be  brought 

low And  upon   all  the  high  mountains,  &c."     Zech.  iv.   7,   "Who 

art  thou,   O    great    mountain  ?     Before  Zerubbabel  thou  shalt  become  a 
plain." 

the  crooked  shall  be  made  straight^  The  words  in  the  original  recall 
the  names  Jacob  and  f  eshurun ;  as  though  it  were  "then  the  Supplanter 
shall  be  turned  into  Prince  with  God"  or  "the  beloved"  (Is.  xliv.  2, 
xi.  4).  The  general  meaning  of  the  prophecy  is  that  no  obstacles,  whether 
they  arose  from  depression,  or  power,  or  pride,  or  cunning  perversity, 
or  menacing  difficulties,  should  be  able  to  resist  the  labours  of  the  Pioneers 
and  Heralds  of  the  Kingdom  of  God.  The  feeble  instrumentality  of 
Galilaeans  should  be  strengthened;  the  power  of  the  Romans  and 
Herods  should  be  shattered ;  the  duplicity  and  plots  of  Pharisees  and 
worldlings  should  be  defeated;  the  apparently  insuperable  opposition  of, 
Judaism  and  Heathenism  be  swept  away. 

6.  all  flesh  shall  see  the  salvation  of  God\  St  Luke  alone  adds 
these  words  to  the  quotation,  and  his  doing  so  is  characteristic  of 
his  object,  which  was  to  bring  out  the  blessedness  and  universality  of 
the  Gospel.  See  ii.  10,  xxiv.  47,  and  Introd.  p.  25.  "  The  sal- 
vation "  is  rh  auTTjpLov,  as  in  ii.  30.  When  the  mountains  of  earthly 
tyranny  and  spiritual  pride  are  levelled,  the  view  of  God's  saving 
power  becomes  clear  to  all  flesh. 

7.  to  the  f?ittltitude'\  Rather,  multitudes.  Different  crowds  came 
from  different  directions.  Matt.  iii.  5 ;  Mark  i.  5. 

O  generation  of  vipers^  Rather,  broods  of  vipers.  They  were  like 
"serpents  bom  of  serpents."   The  comparison  was  familiar  to  Hebrew 


8.]  ST  LUKE,  III.  8s 


warned  you  to  flee  from  the  wrath  to  come  ?     Bring  forth  8 
therefore  fruits  worthy  of  repentance,  and  begin  not  to  say 
within  yourselves,  We  have  Abraham  to  our  father :  for  I 
say  unto  you,  That  God  is  able  of  these  stones  to  raise  up 

poetry  (Ps.  Ixviii.  4 ;  Is.  xiv.  9),  and  we  learn  from  Matt.  iii.  7  that 
it  was  specially  pointed  at  the  Pharisees  and  Sadducees,  to  whom 
it  was  addressed  no  less  sternly  by  our  Lord  (Matt,  xxiii.  33).  It 
described  the  venomous  hypocrisy  which  turned  religion  itself  into  a 
vice,  and  hid  a  deadly  malice  under  the  glittering  semblance  of  a  zeal 
for  orthodoxy.  But  let  it  be  borne  in  mind  that  only  teachers  of 
transcendent  holiness,  and  immediately  inspired  by  God  with  fervency 
and  insight,  may  dare  to  use  such  language.  The  metaphor  was  one 
of  those  desert  sym.bols  which  would  be  suggested  to  St  John  both 
by  the  scene  of  his  preaching  and  by  the  language  of  Isaiah  with  which 
he  shews  special  familiarity. 

fro7n  the  wrath  to  come]  The  Jews  had  been  taught  by  Prophecy 
that  the  Advent  of  their  Deliverer  should  be  preceded  by  a  time  of 
anguish  which  they  called  "the  Woes  of  the  Messiah;"  comp.  Mai. 
iii.  2,  "  Who  may  abide  the  day  of  His  commg?  and  who  shall  stand 
when  He  appeareth  ?  For  He  is  like  a  refiner's  fire,  and  like  fuller's 
soap."  Id.  iv.  I  "  Behold  I  send  you  Elijah  the  Prophet  l>e/bre  the 
cotni?tg  of  the  great  and  dreadful  day  of  the  Lord.'"  Such  prophecies 
received  their  primary  fulfilment  at  the  Destruction  of  Jerusalem 
(see  Matt.  xxiv.  28  ;"  Mark  xiii.  19,  20) ;  and  await  their  final  fulfil- 
ment hereafter.     Rev.  vi.  16. 

8.     Briiigfoi-th]  The  verb  implies  instant  effort.      "VioAncQ  at  once. 

begin  not  to  say']     He  cuts  off  even  all  attempt  at  self-excuse. 

We  have  Abraham  to  our  father]  Rather,  as  our  father.  The 
Jews  had  so  exalted  a  conception  of  this  privilege  (John  vni.  39) 
that  they  could  scarcely  believe  it  possible  that  any  son  of  Abraham 
should  ever  be  lost.  This  is  seen  in  many  passages  of  the  Talmud, 
which  maintain  that  a  "  single  Israelite  is  of  more  worth  in  God's  sight 
than  all  the  nations  of  the  world."  "  Thou  madest  the  world  for  our 
sakes.  As  for  the  other  people. ..Thou  hast  said. ..that  they  are  nothuig 
but  be  like  unto  spittle,  and  hast  likened  the  abundance  of  them  unto 
a  drop  that  falleth  from  a  vessel.. ..But  we  Thy  people  (whom  1  hou 
hast  called  Thy  firstborn.  Thy  only  begotten,  and  Thy  fervent  lover), 
&c."  2  Esdr.  vi.  56—58.  The  Prophets  had  long  ago  warned  them 
that  privileges  without  duties  were  no  protection  (Jer.  yn.  3,  4;  Mic. 
iii.  11;  Is.  xlviii.  2,  &c.).  Christ  taught  them  that  Abrahams  seed 
had  no  exclusive  offer  of  salvation  (Matt.  viii.  11,  12  ,  and  it  was  a 
special  part  of  the  mission  of  St  Paul  to  bring  home  to  them  that  they 
are  not  all  Israel  which  are  of  Israel"  Rom.  ix.  6,  7  ;  Gal.  m.  20,  vi^  15. 

of  these  stones]  He  pointed  to  the  rocky  bou  ders,  or  the  flmls 
on  the  strand  of  Jordan,  around  him.  He  who  had  made  Adam  fro.n 
the  clay  could  make  sons  of  Abraham  from  those  stones  (Bcngel  . 
St  John's  imagery  is  that  of  the  wUderness,-the  rock,  the  serpent, 
the  barren  tree. 


86  ST    LUKE,  III.  [vv.  9— ii. 

9  children  unto  Abraham.  And  now  also  the  axe  is  laid  unto 
the  root  of  the  trees :  every  tree  therefore  which  bringeth 
not  forth  good  fruit  is  hewn  down,  and  cast  into  the  fire. 

10 — 14.     Answer  of  the  Baptist  to  the  Multitude. 

10  And  the  people  asked  him,  saying,  What  shall  we  do  then? 

11  He  answereth  and  saith  unto  them,  He  that  hath  two  coats, 
let  him  impart  to  him  that  hath  none;  and  he  that  hath 

9.  is  taid]  Literally,  "lies."  The  notion  is  that  of  a  woodman 
touching  a  tree  with  the  edge  of  his  axe  to  measure  his  blow  before  he 
lifts  his  arm  for  the  sweep  which  fells  it. 

is  hezvn  down  and  cast  into  the  fire\  Literally,  "  is  being  hewn  down, 
and  being  cast.''^  It  is  almost  impossible  to  reproduce  in  English  the 
force  of  this  use  of  the  present.  It  is  called  the  ^ praesens  futiirascens,'' 
and  is  used  in  cases  when  the  doom  has  been  long  uttered,  and  is,  by 
the  evolution  of  the  natural  laws  of  God's  dealings,  in  course  of 
inevitable  accomplishment.  But  we  see  from  prophetic  imagery  that 
even  when  the  tree  has  been  felled  and  burned  "the  watchers  and  holy 
ones  "  may  still  have  charge  to  leave  the  stump  of  it  in  the  tender  grass 
of  the  field  that  it  may  grow  again,  Dan.  iv.  25  :  and  we  see  from  the 
express  language  of  St  Paul  that  the  olive  tree  of  Jewish  life  was  not  to 
be  cut  down  and  burned  for  ever  (Rom.  ix.  x.).  A  barren  fig  tree  was 
also  our  Lord's  symbol  of  the  Jewish  nation.     Lk.  xiii.  6. 

10 — 14.     Answer  of  the  Baptist  to  the  Multitude. 

10.  What  shall  we  do  then  ?]  Rather,  What  then  are  we  to  do  7 
Compare  the  question  of  the  multitude  to  Peter  on  the  day  of  Pentecost 
(Acts  ii.  37)  and  that  of  the  Philippian  jailor  (xvi.  30). 

11.  He  that  hath  two  coats']  St  Luke  alone  preserves  for  us  the 
details  in  this  interesting  section.  Beyond  the  single  upper  garment 
{chiton,  cetoneth),  and  garment  [himation)  and  girdle,  no  other  article  of 
dress  was  necessary.  A  second  '  tunic '  or  cetoneth  was  a  mere  luxury, 
so  long  as  thousands  were  too  poor  to  own  even  one. 

let  him  impart  to  him  that  hath  none\  St  Paul  gave  similar  advice 
(2  Cor.  viii.  13 — 15),  and  St  James  (ii.  15 — 17),  and  St  John  (i  John 
iii.  17),  because  they  had  learnt  this  spirit  from  Christ.  A  literal  fulfil- 
ment of  it  has  often  been  represented  by  Christian  Art  in  the  "Charity 
of  St  Martin." 

tneat]  Rather,  food.  The  word  has  now  acquired  the  specific 
sense  of  '  flesh,'  which  it  never  has  in  our  E.  V.  For  instance  the 
"meat-offering"  was  generally  an  offering  of  flour  and  oil. 

We  may  notice  the  following  particulars  respecting  the  preaching  of 
the  Baptist : 

(i)  It  was  stei-n,  as  was  natural  to  an  ascetic  whose  very  aspect  and 
mission  were  modelled  on  the  example  of  Elijah.  The  particulars  of 
his  life,  and  dress,  and  food  — the  leathern  girdle,  the  mantle  of  camel's 


V.  12.]  ST    LUKE,  III.  87 

meat,  let  him  do  likewise.     Then  came  also  publicans  to  12 

hair,  the  living  on  locusts  and  wild  honey — are  preserved  for  us  by  the 
other  Evangelists,  and  they  gave  him  that  power  of  mastery  over  others 
which  always  springs  from  perfect  self-control,  and  absolute  self-abne- 
gation. Hence  "in  his  manifestation  and  agency  he  was  like  a  burning 
torch ;  his  whole  life  was  a  very  earthquake ;  the  whole  man  was  a 
sermon." 

(2)  It  was  absolutely  dauntless.  The  unlettered  Prophet  of  the 
Desert  has  not  a  particle  of  respect  for  the  powerful  Sadducees  and 
long-robed  luxurious  Rabbis,  and  disdains  to  be  flattered  by  their 
coming  to  listen  to  his  teaching.  Having  nothing  to  hope  from  man's 
favour,  he  has  nothing  to  fear  from  man's  dislike. 

(3)  It  shews  remarkable  insight  ittfo  htiman  nature,  and  into  the 
needs  and  temptations  of  every  class  which  came  to  him, — shewing  that 
his  ascetic  seclusion  did  not  arise  from  any  contempt  of,  or  aversion  to, 
his  fellowmen. 

(4)  It  was  intensely  practical.  Not  only  does  it  exclude  all  abstract 
and  theological  terms  such  as  'justification,'  &c.,  but  it  says  nothing  di- 
rectly of  even  faith,  or  love.  In  this  respect  it  recalls  the  Old  Testament, 
and  might  be  summed  up  in  the  words  of  Balaam  preserved  in  the 
prophet  Micah,  "He  hath  shewed  thee,  O  man,  what  is  good  ;  and  what 
doth  the  Lord  require  of  thee,  but  to  do  justly,  and  to  love  mercy,  and 
to  walk  humbly  with  thy  God  ?"     Mic.  vi.  8. 

(5)  Yet  though  it  still  belongs  to  the  dispensation  of  the  shadow  it 
prophesies  of  the  dawn.  His  first  message  was  "Repent;"  his  second 
was  "The  kingdom  of  heaven  is  at  hand:"  and  this  message  culminated 
in  the  words  "  Behold  the  Lamb  of  God,"  which  shewed  that  the  Olam 
habba  or  'future  age'  had  already  begim.  These  two  great  utterances 
"  contain  the  two  capital  revelations  to  which  all  the  preparation  of  the 
Gospel  has  been  tending."  "  Law  and  Prophecy;  denunciation  of  sin 
and  promise  of  pardon  ;  the  flame  which  consumes  and  the  light  which 
consoles — is  not  this  the  whole  of  the  covenant?"     Lange. 

(6)  It  does  not  claim  the  credentials  of  a  single  miracle.  The  glory 
and  greatness  of  John  the  Baptist,  combined  with  the  fact  that  not  a 
single  wonder  is  attributed  to  him,  is  the  strongest  argument  for  the 
truth  of  the  Gospels  against  the  'mythical  theory'  of  Strauss,  who 
reduces  the  Gospel  miracles  to  a  circle  of  imaginative  legends  devised 
to  glorify  the  Founder  of  Christianity.  At  the  same  time  this  acknow- 
ledged absence  of  miraculous  powers  enhances  our  conception  of  the 
enormous  moral  force  which  sufficed,  without  a  sign,  to  stir  to  its  very 
depths  the  heart  of  a  sign-demanding  age. 

(7)  It  had  only  a  partial  and  temporary  popularity.  Rejected  by 
the  Pharisees  who  said  that  "he  had  a  devil,"  the  Baptist  failed  to 
produce  a  permanent  influence  on  more  than  a  chosen  few  (John  v.  35 ; 
Lk.  vii.  30;  Matt.  xi.  i8,  xxi.  23—27;  Acts  xviii.  25,  xix.  3,  4). 
After  his  imprisonment  he  seems  to  have  fallen  into  neglect,  and  he 
himself  felt  from  the  first  that  his  main  mission  was  to  prepare  the  way 
for  another,  and  to  decrease  before  him.     He  was  "the  lamp  kindled 


88  ST    LUKE,  III.  [vv.  13,  14. 

be  baptized,  and  said  unto  him,  Master,  what  shall  we  do? 

13  And  he  said  unto  them.  Exact  no  more  than  that  which  is 

14  appointed  you.    And  the  soldiers  likewise  demanded  of  him, 
saying,  And  what  shall  we  do?    And  he  said  unto  them, 

and  shining"  (John  v.  35)  which  becomes  needless  and  ceases  to  be 
noticed  when  the  sun  has  dawTied. 

12.  the  publicans]  Rather,  tax-gatherers  (without  the  article).  The 
word  is  a  corruption  of  the  Latin  publicani '  farmers  of  the  taxes. '  The 
Roman  government  did  not  collect  its  own  taxes,  but  leased  them  out 
to  speculators  of  the  equestrian  order,  who  were  called  publicani,  and 
who  made  their  own  profit  out  of  the  transaction.  These  knights 
appointed  subordinates,  who  from  the  unpleasant  character  of  the  task 
could  only  be  secured  from  the  lowest  of  the  people.  These  officials 
were  not  only  detested  as  the  agents  of  an  odious  system,  but  also  for 
their  notorious  malpractices.  A  strict  Jew  could  hardly  force  himself 
even  to  pay  taxes,  and  therefore  naturally  looked  with  scorn  and  hatred 
on  any  Jew  who  could  sink  so  low  as  to  collect  them.  Hence  in  our 
Lord's  time  the  word  "publican"  had  become  proverbial,  as  expres- 
sive of  the  worst  opprobrium  (Matt,  xviii.  17).  The  Jews  were  not 
however  peculiar  in  their  dislike  of  publicans.  The  Greeks  too  regarded 
the  word  as  a  synonym  of  'plunderer,'  and  an  'innocent  publican' 
was  regarded  as  a  marvellous  phenomenon  (Suet.  Vesp.  i).  Suidas 
defines  the  life  of  a  publican  as  "unrestrained  plunder,  unblushing 
greed,  unreasonable  pettifogging,  shameless  business."  The  relation  of 
the  publicans  to  John  is  referred  to  in  Matt.  xxi.  32. 

Master]  Rather,  Teacher.  The  word  is  not  Epistata  (as  in  viii.  24) 
but  Didaskale.     See  vii.  29. 

what  shall  we  do  f]  We  have  the  same  question,  but  with  the  answer 
which  was  only  possible  after  the  Resurrection,  in  Acts  ii.  37 ;  xvi.  30; 
xxii.  10. 

13.  Exact  no  more]  This  was  their  habitual  sin,  and  later  historians 
often  allude  to  the  immodestia  (i.e.  the  extravagant  greed)  of  the 
publicans  and  their  cruel  exactions  (Caes.  Bell.  Civ.  III.  32).  The 
cheating  and  meddling  for  which  Zacchaeus  promised  fourfold  restora- 
tion (xix.  8)  were  universal  among  them. 

14.  the  soldiers]  Rather,  soldiers  on  the  march.  On  what  expe- 
dition these  soldiers  were  engaged  it  is  impossible  to  say.  They  cannot 
have  been  Roman  soldiers,  and  were  certainly  not  any  detachment  of 
the  army  of  Antipas  marching  against  his  injured  father-in-law  Hareth 
(Aretas),  ethnarch  of  Arabia,  for  their  quarrel  was  long  subsequent  to 
this. 

demaiided  of  him]  Rather,  asked  him.  The  imperfect  tense  however 
(as  before  in  vs.  10)  implies  that  such  questions  were  put  to  him  by 
bodies  of  soldiers  in  succession. 

Do  violence  to  no  man]  Rather,  Extort  money  by  threats  from  no 
one.  Diaseio,  like  the  Latin  concutio,  is  a  technical  word.  It  implies 
robbery  and  violence. 


vv.  15,  1 6.]  ST   LUKE,  III.  89 

Do  violence  to  no  man,  neither  accuse  any  falsely ;  and  be 
content  with  your  wages. 

15 — 20.     The  Messianic  Anfiouncement.     Imprisonment  of 

John. 

And  as  the  people  were  in  expectation,  and  all  men  mused  15 
in  their  hearts  of  John,  whether  he  were  the  Christ,  or  not ; 
John  answered,  saying  unto  them  all,  I  indeed  baptize  you  16 
with  water ;  but  one  mightier  than  I  cometh,  the  latchet  of 

accuse  any  falsely]  Rather,  cheat  by  false  accusation.  The  Greek 
implies  pettifogging  charges  on  trivial  grounds,  and  is  the  word  from 
which  sycophant  is  derived.  The  temptation  of  soldiers,  strong  in 
their  solidarity,  was  to  terrify  the  poor  by  violence,  and  undermine  the 
rich  by  acting  as  informers.  The  best  comment  on  the  Baptist's  advice 
to  them  is  the  xvi"^  Satire  of  Juvenal,  which  is  aimed  at  their  brutality 
and  threats. 

be  content  with  your  wages]  Rather,  pay.  This  is  a  late  mean- 
ing of  the  word  opsonia  (Rom.  vi.  23),  which  means  in  the  first  instance 
'boiled  fish  eaten  as  a  relish  with  meat.'  It  is  remarkable  that  the 
Baptist  does  not  bid  even  soldiers  to  abandon  their  profession,  but  to 
serve  God  in  it.  This  is  important  as  shewing  that  he  did  not  hold  up 
the  life  of  the  hermit  or  the  ascetic  as  a  model  or  ideal  for  all.  He 
evidently  held,  like  the  good  St  Hugo  of  Avalon,  that  "God  meant  us 
to  be  good  men,  not  monks  and  hermits."  Josephus,  when  (Antt. 
XVIII.  V.  2)  he  sums  up  the  teaching  of  the  Baptist  by  saying  that  "he 
commanded  the  Jews  to  practise  virtue  both  in  righteousness  to  one 
another  and  piety  to  God,"  rightly  estimates  ihe  practical,  but  omits  the 
prophetic  side  of  his  teaching. 

15 — 20.     The  Messianic  Announcement.     Imprisonment  of 

John. 

15.  were  in  expectation]  The  Messianic  expectations  of  the  day  had 
even  reached  the  Gentiles,  many  of  whom  even  at  Rome  and  in  high 
society  were  proselytes,  or  half  proselytes,  to  Judaism. 

mused]     Rather,  reasoned. 

whether  he  were  the  Christ]  Rather,  whether  haply  he  were  himself 
the  Christ. 

16.  John  answered]  The  answer,  as  we  find  from  John  i.  19—28, 
was  given  in  its  most  definite  form  to  a  Pharisaic  deputation  of  Priests 
and  Levites,  who  were  despatched  by  the  Sanhedrin  expressly  to  ask 
him  to  define  his  claims. 

one  mightier]     Rather,  the  stronger  than  I. 

the  latchet]  i.e.  the  tliong.  The  word,  now  obsolete  in  this  sense,  is 
from  the  same  root  perhaps  as  the  Latin  laqueus  (Ital.  laccio,  Portug. 
lazzo,  old  French  lacs,  Fr.  lacet,  Engl.  lace). 

shoes]     Rather,  sandals. 


9°  •  ST   LUKE,  III.  [vv.  17—19. 

whose  shoes  I  am  not  worthy  to  unloose :  he  shall  baptize 

17  you  with  the  Holy  Ghost  and  with  fire  :  whose  fan  is  in  his 
hand,  and  he  will  throughly  purge  his  floor,  and  will  gather 
the  wheat  into  his  garner ;  but  the  chaff  he  will  burn  with 

18  fire  unquenchable.    And  many  other  things  in  his  exhortation 

19  preached  he  unto  the  people.    But  Herod  the  tetrarch,  being 

to  unloose]  In  Matt.  iii.  11  it  is  'to  carry  his  sandals;'  i.e.  I  am 
not  adequate  to  be  his  humblest  slave. 

baptize  you  with  the  Holy  Ghost  and  with  fire\  Rather,  in  the  Holy 
Ghost  and  fire.  The  preposition  en  distins^ushes  between  the  mere 
histrumentality  of  the  water,  and  the  spiritual  element  whereby  and 
wherein  the  child  of  the  kingdom  is  baptized.  This  baptism  by  the 
Spirit  had  been  foretold  in  Is.  xliv.  3;  Joel  ii.  28.  Its  first  obvious 
fulfilment  was  at  Pentecost  (Acts  i.  5,  ii.  3)  and  subsequent  outpourings 
after  baptism  (Acts  xi.  15,  16).  But  it  is  fulfilled  without  visible  super- 
natural signs  to  all  Christians  (i  Cor.  vi.  ii ;  "by  one  Spirit  are  we  all 
baptized  into  one  body,"  i  Cor.  xii.   13). 

and  with  fire\  In  its  first  and  most  literal  sense  the  allusion  is  to 
the  fiery  tongues  of  Pentecost  (Acts  ii.  3) ;  but  the  secondary  and  me- 
taphoric  allusion  is  to  the  burning  zeal  and  illuminating  light  of  the 
Spirit.  St  Jerome  sees  a  further  allusion  to  fiery  trials  (xii.  49;  Mark  ix. 
49;  I  Pet.  iv.  12)  and  to  the  fire  of  judgment  (i  Cor.  iii.  13);  but  these 
allusions  cannot  be  regarded  as  certain. 

17.  fan]  Rather,  winnowing-fan.  The  Latin  vannus,  a  great 
shovel  with  which  corn  was  thrown  up  against  the  wind  to  separate  it 
from  the  chaff. 

his  Jloor]  Rather,  threshing-floor.  The  word  is  the  same  as  that 
from  which  our  halo  is  derived,  since  the  threshing-floors  of  the  ancients 
were  circular. 

the  chaff]  The  word  includes  straw  and  stubble.  We  find  similar 
metaphors  in  Ps.  i.  4,  "the  ungodly. ..are  like  the  chaff;"  Mai.  iv.  i, 
"all  that  do  wickedly  shall  be  stubble;"  Jer.  xv.  7,  "I  will  fan  them 
with  a  fan  in  the  gates  of  the  kind."  So  far  as  the  allusion  is  to  the 
separation  of  good  from  evil  elements  in  the  Church  we  find  similar 
passages  in  Matt.  xiii.  30;  i  Joh.  ii.  19,  &c.  But  it  may  refer  also  to 
the  destruction  of  the  evil  elements  in  a  7nixed  character,  as  in  xxii.  31, 
"Simon... Satan  hath  desired  to  have  you,  that  he  may  sift  you  as 
wheat." 

into  his  garner]  Comp.  Matt.  xiii.  30,  "gather  the  wheat  into  my 
barn." 

htm]     Rather,  burn  up. 

18.  many  other  things]  Of  which  some  are  recorded  by  St  John 
alone  (i.  29,  34,  iii.  27 — 36). 

preached  he]  tvrjyyeXl^eTo,  literally,  "he  was  preaching  the  Good 
Tidings:'' 

19.  But  Herod  the  tetrarch]  The  incident  which  follows  is  here 
introduced  by  anticipation,  that  the  subsequent  narrative  may  not  be 


w.  20,  21.]  ST   LUKE,  in.  91 

reproved  by  him  for  Herodias  his  brother  Philip's  wife,  and 
for  all  the  evils  which  Herod  had  done,  added  yet  this  above  20 
all,  that  he  shut  up  John  in  prison. 

21 — 38.     The  Baptisin  of  Jesus.     The  Genealogy. 
Now  when  all  the  people  were  baptized,  it  came  to  pass,  21 

disturbed.  It  should  be  compared  with  the  fuller  notice  in  Mark  vi. 
17 — 20;  Matt.  xiv.  3 — 5.  From  these  passages  we  learn  that  John 
had  reproved  Antipas  for  many  crimes,  and  that  Antipas  was  so  con- 
vinced of  his  holiness  and  justice  as  habitually  to  listen  to  him  with 
pleasure  (^/S^ws  auroO  ■^Vovey),  and  after  paying  earnest  heed  to  him  was 
greatly  at  a  loss  about  him.  We  learn  further  that  he  resisted  the  con- 
stant urgency  of  Herodias  to  put  him  to  death. 

being  reproved\  The  reproof  was  of  course  based  on  Lev.  xviii.  16, 
XX.  21,  and  was  perfectly  uncompromising  (Matt.  xiv.  4).  In  this 
respect  the  dauntless  courage  of  John,  under  circumstances  of  far 
greater  peril,  contrasts  most  favourably  with  the  timid  and  disgraceful 
concessions  of  the  Reformers  in  the  matter  of  the  marriage  of  Philip 
of  Hesse. 

his  brother  Philip's]  The  two  first  words  are  omitted  by  some  of  the 
best  uncials,  and  "Philip's"  by  nearly  all  of  them.  On  this  Herod 
Philip — who  was  not  the  tetrarch  of  that  name^see  on  iii.  i. 

20.  added  yet  this  above  a/l]  The  Jews  as  well  as  St  Luke  regarded 
the  treatment  of  the  Baptist  by  Antipas  as  the  worst  of  his  crimes,  and 
the  cause  of  his  subsequent  defeat  and  disgrace  (Jos.  Antt.  xviil.  5. 

1-4). 

in  prison]  This  prison,  as  we  learn  from  Josephus  {Antt.  xvill.  5, 
§  2),  was  the  stern  and  gloomy  fortress  of  Makor  or  Machaerus,  on  the 
borders  of  Arabia  to  the  north  of  the  Dead  Sea.  It  is  situated  among 
black  basaltic  rocks  and  was  believed  to  be  haunted  by  evil  demons. 
Its  ruins  have  been  visited  in  recent  years  by  Canon  Tristram  (Land  of 
Moab,  p.  259)  and  other  travellers,  and  dungeons  are  still  visible  of 
which  one  may  have  witnessed  the  great  Prophet's  tragic  end. 

21—38.    The  Baptism  of  Jesus.    The  Genealogy. 

21.  N(nv  when  all  the  people  were  baptized]  The  expression  (which 
is  peculiar  to  St  Luke)  seems  to  imply  that  on  this  day  Jesus  was 
baptized  last;  and  from  the  absence  of  any  allusion  to  the  multitude  m 
this  and  the  other  narratives  we  are  almost  forced  to  conjecture  that  His 
baptism  was  in  a  measure  private.  St  Luke's  narrative  must  be  sujiplc- 
mented  by  particulars  derived  from  St  Matthew  (iii.  13—17).  who  alone 
narrates  the  unwillingness  of  the  Baptist,  and  the  memorable  conversa- 
tion between  him  and  Jesus;  and  St  Mark  (i.  9— 11)  mentions  that 
Jesus  went  into  the  river,  and  that  it  was  He  who  first  saw  tlie  cicavmg 
heavens,  and  the  Spirit  descending. 


92  ST   LUKE,    III,  [v.  22. 

that  Jesus  also  being  baptized,  and   praying,  the   heaven 

22  was  opened,  and  the  Holy  Ghost  descended  in  a  bodily 

shape  like  a  dove  upon  him,  and  a  voice  came  from  heaven, 

yesus  also  being  baptized^  Our  Lord  Himself,  in  reply  to  the  objec- 
tion of  the  Baptist,  stated  it  as  a  reason  for  His  Baptism  that  '\thus  it 
becometh  us  to  fulfil  all  righteousness;"  i.e.  that  it  was  His  will  to 
observe  all  the  requirements  of  the  Mosaic  law,  which  He  came  "not 
to  destroy  but  to  fulfil."  Other  reasons  have  also  been  suggested,  as  (i) 
that  He  baptized  (as  it  were)  the  water — "to  sanctify  water  to  the 
mystical  washing  away  of  sin"  (Ignat.  ad  Eph.  i8;  Maxim.  Serm.  7, 
de  Epiphan.;  Ps.-Aug.  Serm.  135.  4);  or  (ii)  that  He  was  baptized  as 
it  were  vicariously,  as  Head  of  His  body,  the  Church  (Just.  Mart. 
c.  Tryph.  88);  or  (iii)  as  a  consecration  of  Himself  \.q  His  work,  fol- 
lowed by  the  special  consecration  from  the  Father ;  or  (iv)  as  a  great 
act  of  humility  (St  Bernard,  Serm.  47,  in  Cant.).  See  my  Life  of 
Christ,  I.  1 1 7  n. 

and  praying']  This  deeply  interesting  touch  is  peculiar  to  St  Luke, 
who  similarly  on  eight  other  occasions  calls  attention  to  the  Prayers  of 
Jesus— after  severe  labours  (v.  16) ;  before  the  choosing  of  the  Apostles 
(vi.  i^);  before  Peter's  great  Confession  (ix.  18);  at  His  transfiguration 
(ix.  28,  29);  for  Peter  (xxii.  32);  in  Gethsemane  (xxii.  41);  for  His 
murderers  (xxiii.  34);  and  at  the  moment  of  death  (xxiii.  46).  He  also 
represents  the  duty  and  blessing  of  urgent  prayer  in  two  peculiar  para- 
bles— the  Importunate  Friend  (xi.  5 — 13)  and  the  Unjust  Judge  (xviii. 
2).     See  Introd.  p.  24. 

22.  in  a  bodily  shape\  This  addition  is  peculiar  to  St  Luke,  and  is 
probably  added  to  shew  the  distinctness  and  reality  of  what  Theodoret 
calls  the  'spiritual  vision'  {i:ve\ijxa.TLKi)  deuipla). 

like  a  dove]  The  expression  Cos  or  uiatl  used  by  each  of  the  Evangelists, 
and  St  John's  "and  it  abode  upon  Him"  (John  i.  32),  sufficiently  prove 
that  no  actual  dove  is  intended.  The  Holy  Spirit  is  symbolised  by  a 
dove  from  early  times.  The  Talmudic  comment  on  Gen.  i.  2  is  that 
' '  the  Spirit  of  God  moved  on  the  face  of  the  waters  like  a  dove'" — 

"And  with  mighty  wings  outspread 
Dovelike  sat'st  brooding  on  the  vast  abyss." 

Milton  [Par.  Lost,  i.  20). 

Comp.  2  Esdr.  v.  26,  "of  all  the  fowls  that  are  created  thou  hast  named 
thee  one  dove."  Matt.  x.  16.  A  mystical  reason  was  assigned  for 
this  in  some  fathers,  because  the  numerical  value  of  the  letters  of  the 
Greek  word  peristera,  *a  dove,'  amounts  to  801,  which  is  also  the  value  of 
Alpha  Omega.  We  are  probably  intended  to  understand  a  dovelike, 
hovering,  lambent  flame  descending  on  the  head  of  Jesus;  and  this  may 
account  for  the  unanimous  early  legend  that  a  fire  or  light  was  kindled 
in  Jordan  (Just.  Mart.  c.  Tryph.  88,  and  the  Apocryphal  Gospels). 

a  voice  camefrc7n  heaven,  which  said]  Rather,  out  of  heaven.  The 
last  words  should  be  omitted  with  the  best  MSS.  This  Bath  Kol  ox 
Voice  from  heaven  also  occurred  at  the  Transfiguration  (Matt  xvii.  5) 


vv.  23—30.]  ST   LUKE,   III.  93 

which  said,  Thou  art  my  beloved  Son ;  in  thee  I  am  well 
pleased. 

And  Jesus  himself  began  to  be  about  thirty  years  of  age,  23 
being  (as  was  supposed)  the  son  of  Joseph,  which  was  the 
son  of  Heli,  which  was  the  son  of  Matthat,  which  was  the  son  24 
of  Levi,  which  was  the  son  of  Melchi,  which  was  the  son  of 
Janna,  which  was  the  son  of  Joseph,  which  was  the  son  of  25 
Mattathias,  which  was  the  son  of  Amos,  which  was  the  son  of 
Naum,  which  was  the  son  of  Esli,  which  was  the  son  of  Nagge, 
which  was  the  son  of  Maath,  which  was  the  son  of  Mattathias,  26 
which  was  the  son  of  Semei,  which  was  the  son  of  Joseph, 
which  was  the  son  of  Juda,  which  was  the  son  of  Joanna,  27 
which  was  the  son  of  Rhesa,  which  was  the  son  of  Zorobabel, 
which  was  the  son  of  Salathiel,  which  was  the  soti  of  Neri, 
which  was  the  son  of  Melchi,  which  was  the  son  of  Addi,  28 
which  was  the  son  of  Cosam,  which  was  the  son  of  Elmodam, 
which  was  the  son  of  Er,  which  was  the  sott  of  Jose,  which  29 
was  the  son  of  Eliezer,  which  was  the  son  of  Jorim,  which 
was  the  son  of  Matthat,  which  was  the  son  of  Levi,  which  was  3° 
the  son  of  Simeon,  which  was  the  son  of  Juda,  which  was  the 

and  in  the  closing  week  of  Christ's  life  (John  xii.  28 — 30).  This  is 
one  of  the  passages  which  so  distinctly  imply  the  doctrine  of  the  Blessed 
Trinity. 

I  am  well plcased'\     Rather,  I  was -well  pleased. 

23.  began  to  be  about  thirty  years  of  age'\  Rather,  was  atoout  thirty 
years  of  age  on  toeginning  (His  work).  So  it  was  understood  by 
Tyndaie,  but  the  E.  V.  followed  Cranmer,  and  the  Geneva.  The 
translation  of  our  E.  V.  is,  however,  ungrammatical,  and  a  strange 
expression  to  which  no  parallel  can  be  adduced.  The  word  arc/wmenos, 
standing  absolutely  for  'when  he  began  his  ministry,'  is  explained  by 
the  extreme  prominency  of  this  beginning  in  the  thought  of  St  Luke 
(see  Acts  i.  i,  22),  and  his  desire  to  fix  it  with  accuracy.  The  age  of 
30  was  that  at  which  a  Levite  might  enter  on  his  full  services  (Numb, 
iv.  3,  47),  and  the  age  at  which  Joseph  had  stood  before  Pharaoh 
(Gen.  xli.  46),  and  at  which  David  had  begun  to  reign  (2  Sam.  v.  4), 
and  at  which  scribes  were  allowed  to  teach. 

as  was  supposed]  "  Is  not  this  the  carpenter's  son  ?"  Matt.  xiii.  55  ; 
John  vi.  42.  V       •      . 

On  the  genealogy  which  follows,  and  its  relations  to  that  in  the 
Gospel  of  St  Matthew,  many  volumes  have  been  written,  but  in  the 
Excursus  I  have  endeavoured  to  condense  all  that  is  most  important  on 
the  subject,  and  to  give  those  conclusions  which  are  now  being  accepted 
by  the  most  careful  scholars.  See  Excursus  IL,  The  genealogies  of 
Jesus  in  St  Matthew  and  St  Luke. 


94  ST   LUKE,   III.   IV.      [w.  31— 38;  1,2. 

son  of  Joseph,  which  was  the  son  of  Jonan,  which  was  the 

31  son  of  EHakim,  which  was  the  son  of  Melea,  which  was  the 
son  of  Menan,  which  was  the  son  of  Mattatha,  which  was  the 

32  soji  of  Nathan,  which  was  the  son  of  David,  which  was  the 
son  of  Jesse,  which  was  the  son  of  Obed,  which  was  the  son 
of  Booz,  which  was  the  son  of  Salmon,  which  was  the  son  of 

33  Naasson,  which  was  the  son  of  Aminadab,  which  was  the  son 
of  Aram,  which  was  the  son  of  Esrom,  which  was  the  son  of 

34  Phares,  which  was  the  son  of  Juda,  which  was  the  son  of 
Jacob,  which  was  the  son  of  Isaac,  which  was  the  son  of 
Abraham,  which  was  the  son  of  Thara,  which  was  the  son  of 

35  Nachor,  which  was  the  son  of  Saruch,  which  was  the  son  of 
Ragau,  which  was  the  son  of  Phalec,  which  was  the  son  of 

36  Heber,  which  was  the  son  of  Sala,  which  was  the  son  of 
Cainan,  which  was  the  son  of  Arphaxad,  which  was  the  son  of 
Sem,  which  was  the  son  of  Noe,  which  was  the  son  of  Lamech, 

37  which  was  the  son  of  Mathusala,  which  was  the  son  of  Enoch, 
which  was  the  son  of  Jared,  which  was  the  son  of  Maleleel, 

38  whicli  was  the  son  of  Cainan,  which  was  the  soti  of  Enos, 
which  was  the  son  of  Seth,  which  was  the  son  of  Adam,  which 
was  the  son  of  God. 

Ck.  IV.  I— 13.     The  Teniptation. 

4      And  Jesus  being  full  of  the  Holy  Ghost  returned  from 
2  Jordan,  and  was  led  by  the  Spirit  into  the  wilderness,  being 

Ch.  IV.    1—13.    The  Temptation. 

1.  being  full  of  the  Holy  Ghost]  Omit  ^being.''  St  Luke  often  calls 
special  attention  to  the  work  of  the  Spirit,  iii.  22,  iv.  14;  Acts  vi.  3, 
vii.  55,  xi.  24.  The  expression  alludes  to  the  outpouring  of  the  Spirit 
upon  Jesus  at  His  baptism,  John  iii.  34.  The  narrative  should  be 
compared  with  Matt.  iv.  i — 11;  Mk.  i.  12,  13.  St  John,  who  narrates 
mainly  what  he  had  himself  j-r^w,  omits  the  temptation. 

returned^     Rather,  went  away. 

■was  led]  A  divine  impulse  led  him  to  face  the  hour  of  peril  alone. 
St  Mark  uses  the  more  intense  expression,  "immediately  the  Spirit 
driveth  Him  forth.''''  He  only  devotes  two  verses  (Mk.  i.  12,  13)  to  the 
Temptation,  but  adds  the  graphic  touch  that  "He  was  with  the  wild 
beasts"  (comp.  Ps.  xci.  13),  and  implies  the  continuous  ministration  of 
angels  (diekonoun)  to  Him. 

by  the  Spirit]     Rather,  In  the  Spirit,   comp.  ii.  27.     The   ptirase 


V.  2.]  ST   LUKE,  IV.  95 

forty  days  tempted  of  the  devil.     And  in  those  days  he  did 

emphasizes  the  "full  of  the  Holy  Ghost,"  and  has  the  same  meaning  as 
"in  the  power  of  the  Spirit,"  vs.  14, 

"Thou  Spirit,  who  ledd'st  this  glorious  eremite 
Into  the  desert,  his  victorious  field 
Against  the  spiritual  foe,  and  brought'st  Him  tlience 
By  proof  the  undoubted  Son  of  God." 

Milton,  Par.  Reg.  \. 
into  the  wilderness]  Rather,  in.  He  was  'in  the  Spirit'  during  the 
whole  period.  The  scene  of  the  temptation  is  supposed  to  be  the 
mountain  near  Jericho,  thence  called  Quarantania.  The  tradition  is 
not  ancient,  but  the  site  is  very  probable,  being  rocky,  bleak,  and 
repellent — 

"A  pathless  desert,  dusk  with  horrid  shades." 

Milton. 
Scripture  everywhere  recognises  the  need  of  solitude  and  meditation  on 
the  eve  of  great  work  for  God  (Ex.  xxiv.  1;   i  K.  xix.  4;  Gal.  i.  17), 
and  this  would  be  necessary  to  the  human  nature  of  our  Lord  also. 

2.  forty  days']  The  number  was  connected  in  the  Jewish  mind  with 
notions  of  seclusion,  and  revelation,  and  peril; — Moses  on  Sinai,  Ex. 
xxxiv.  18;  Elijah,  i  K.  xix.  8;  the  wanderings  of  the  Israelites, 
Num.   xiv.  34;   Judg.   xiii.    i. 

tempted]  The  present  participle  implies  that  the  temptation  was 
continuous  throughout  the  forty  days,  though  it  reached  its  most  awful 
climax  at  their  close. 

of  the  devil]  The  Jews  placed  in  the  wilderness  one  of  the  mouths 
of  Gehenna,  and  there  evil  spirits  were  supposed  to  have  most  power 
(Num.  xvi.  33;  Matt.  xii.  43).  St  Mark  uses  the  Hebrew  form  of 
the  word — 'Satan.'  Both  words  mean  'the  Accuser,'  but  the  Greek 
Diabolos  is  far  more  definite  than  the  Hebrew  Satan,  which  is  loosely 
applied  to  any  opponent,  or  opposition,  or  evil  influence  in  which 
the  evil  spirit  may  be  supposed  to  work  (i  Chr.  xxi.  i ;  2  Cor.  xii.  7  ; 
I  Thess.  ii.  18).  This  usage  is  far  more  apparent  in  the  original,  where 
the  word  rendered  'adversary'  is  often  Satan,  Num.  xxii.  22;  i  Sam. 
xxix.  4;  I  Kings  xi.  14,  &c.  On  the  other  hand,  the  Greek  word  Diabolos 
is  comparatively  rare  in  the  N.T.  (The  word  rendered  'devils '  for  the 
'evil  spirits'  of  demoniac  possession  is  dairnouia.)  St  Matthew  also 
calls  Satan  "the  tempter."  Few  suppose  that  the  Devil  came  incarnate 
in  any  visible  hideous  guise.  The  narrative  of  the  Temptation  could 
only  have  been  communicated  to  the  Apostles  by  our  Lord  Himself. 
Of  its  intense  and  absolute  reality  we  cannot  doubt;  nor  yet  that  it 
was  so  narrated  as  to  bring  home  to  us  the  clearest  possible  conception 
of  its  significance.  The  best  and  wisest  commentators  in  all  ages  have 
accepted  it  as  the  symbolic  description  of  a  mysterious  inward  struggle. 
Further  speculation  into  the  special  modes  in  which  the  temptations 
were  effected  is  idle,  and  we  have  no  data  for  it.  Of  this  only  can  we 
be  sure,  that  our  Lord's  temptations  were  in  every  respect  akin  to  ours 


96  ST   LUKE,   IV.  [vv.  3, 4. 

eat  nothing  :  and  when  they  were  ended,  he  afterward  hun- 

3  gered.     And  the  devil  said  unto  him,  If  thou  be  the  Son  of 

4  God,  command  this  stone  that  it  be  made  bread.     And 

(Heb.  iv.  15,  ii.  ro,  18);  that  there  was  "a  direct  operation  of  the 
evil  spirit  upon  His  mind  and  sensibility;"  that,  as  St  Augustine 
says,  "Christ  conquered  the  tempter,  that  the  Christian  may  not  be 
conquered  by  the  tempter."  All  enquiries  as  to  whether  Christ's  sin- 
lessness  arose  from  a  ^possibility  of  not  sinning'  {posse  non  peccare) 
or  an  'impossibility  of  sinning'  (non  posse  peccare),  are  rash  intrusions 
into  the  unrevealed.  The  Christian  is  content  with  the  certainty  that 
He  "was  in  all  points  tempted  like  as  we  are,  yet  without  sin"  (see 
Heb.  V.  8). 

he  did  eat  fwthing\  St  Matthew  says  more  generally  that  '  He  fasted,' 
and  St  Luke's  phrase  probably  implies  no  more  than  this  (see  Matt. 
xi.  18).  The  Arabah  at  any  rate  supplied  enough  for  the  bare  main- 
tenance of  life  (Jos.  Vit.  2),  and  at  times  of  intense  spiritual  exaltation 
the  ordinary  needs  of  the  body  are  almost  suspended.  But  this  can 
only  be  for  a  time,  and  when  the  reaction  has  begun  hunger  asserts  its 
claims  with  a  force  so  terrible  that  (as  has  been  shewn  again  and  again 
in  human  experience)  such  moments  are  fraught  with  the  extremest 
peril  to  the  soul.  This  was  the  moment  which  the  Tempter  chose. 
We  rob  the  narrative  of  the  Temptation  of  all  its  spiritual  meaning 
unless  in  reading  it  we  are  on  our  guard  against  the  Apollinarian  heresy 
which  denied  the  perfect  Humanity  of  Christ.  The  Christian  must 
keep  in  view  two  thoughts :  i.  Intensely  real  temptation.  2.  Absolute 
sinlessness.  It  is  man's  trial  'to  feel  temptation'  [setitire  tetitationem)', 
Christ  has  put  it  into  our  power  to  resist  it  [noti  consentire  tetitatiuni). 
Temptation  only  merges  into  si7i  when  man  consents  to  it. 

'"Tis  one  thing  to  be  tempted,  Escalus, 
Another  thing  to  fall." — Shakespeare. 
The  temptation  must  be  felt  or  it  is  no  temptation ;  but  we  do  not  sin 
until  temptation  really  sways  the  bias  of  the  heart,  and  until  delight 
and  consent  follow  suggestion.  The  student  will  find  the  best  examina- 
tion of  this  subject  in  Ullmann's  treatise  On  the  Sinlessness  of  yesi^s 
(Engl.  Transl.). 

3.  If  thou  be  the  Son  of  God'\  Doubtless  an  allusion  to  the  divine 
Voice  at  His  baptism  (iii.  22).  The  same  words  were  tauntingly  ad- 
dressed to  our  Lord  on  the  Cross  (Matt,  xxvii.  40).  The  Greek  strictly 
means  ^' Assutiiing  that  Thou  art,^^  but  in  Hellenistic  Greek  words  and 
phrases  are  not  always  used  with  their  earlier  delicate  accuracy. 

command  this  sionc\  The  Greek  implies  that  the  suggestion  called 
direct  attention  to  a  particular  stone.  In  this  desert  there  are  loaf- 
shaped  fossils  known  to  early  travellers  as  lapides  judaici,  and  to  geo- 
logists as  septaria.  Some  of  these  siliceous  accretions  assume  the  shape 
of  fruit,  and  are  knovsm  as  'Elijah's  melons'  (Stanley,  Sin.  atid  Pal.  154). 
They  were  popularly  regarded  as  petrified  fruits  of  the  Cities  of  the 
Plain.     Such  deceptive  semblances  would  intensify  the  pangs  of  hunger, 


V.  5-]  ST   LUKE,  IV. 


97 


Jesus  answered  him,  saying.  It  is  written,  That  man  shall 
not  live  by  bread  alone,  but  by  every  word  of  God. 
And  the  devil,  taking  him  up  into  a  high  mountain,  shewed  s 

and  add  to  the  temptation  the  additional  torture  of  an  excited  imagina- 
tion. (See  a  sketch  of  such  a  septariiwt  in  the  Illustrated  Edition  of  my 
Life  of  Christ,  p.  99.) 

that  it  be  made  bread'\  Rather,  that  it  may  become  a  loaf.  The 
subtle  malignity  of  the  temptation  is  indescribable.  It  was  a  tempta- 
tion to  "the  lust"  (i.e.  the  desire)  "of  the  flesh ;"  a  temptation  to  gratify 
a  natural  and  blameless  appetite;  an  appeal  to  free-will  and  self-will, 
closely  analogous  to  the  devil's  first  temptation  of  the  race.  'You  may; 
you  can;  it  will  be  pleasant:  why  not?'  (Gen.  iii.  i — 15).  But  it  did 
not  come  in  an  undisguisedly  sensuous  form,  but  with  the  suggestive 
semblance  of  Scriptural  sanctions  (i  Kings  xix.  8;  Deut.  viii.  16;  Ps. 
Ixxviii.  19). 

4.  It  is  written]  The  perfect  gegraptai  means  '  it  has  been  written, ' 
it  standeth  written  as  an  eternal  lesson.     Jesus  foils  the  tempter  as  man 

for  man.  He  will  not  say  '  I  am  the  Son  of  God,'  and  'does  not  con- 
sider equality  with  God  a  prize  at  which  to  grasp'  (Phil.  ii.  6),  but 
seizes  "  the  sword  of  the  Spirit,  which  is  the  Word  of  God"  (Eph.  vi.  17). 

man  shall  not  live  by  bread  alone']  The  quotation  is  from  Deut.  viii. 
3,  where  Moses  tells  the  people  that  God  has  suffered  them  to  hunger, 
and  fed  them  with  manna,  to  shew  them  the  dependence  of  man  on 
God,  and  the  fact  that  life  is  something  more  than  the  mere  living, 
and  can  only  be  sustained  by  diviner  gifts  than  those  which  are  sufficient 
for  man's  lower  nature.  Bread  sustains  the  body;  but,  that  we  may 
live,  the  soul  also,  and  the  spirit  must  be  kept  alive.  Exod.  xvi.  4,  15. 
"They  did  all  eat  the  same  spiritual  meat."  i  Cor.  x.  3. 

but  by  every  -word  of  God]  These  words,  though  implied,  are  pro- 
bably added  in  this  place  from  Matt.  iv.  4,  since  they  are  omitted  by 
X,  B,  D,  L,  and  various  versions.  "  Word"  is  not  in  the  original 
Hebrew.  The  verse  conveys  a  most  deep  truth,  and  by  referring  to  it 
our  Lord  meant  to  say  '  God  will  support  my  needs  in  His  own  way, 
and  the  lower  life  is  as  nothing  in  comparison  with  the  higher.'  There 
are  many  most  valuable  and  instructive  parallels  ;  see  Jolm  iv.  32 — 34, 
"  I  have  meat  to  eat  that  ye  know  not  of... My  meat  is  to  do  the  will  of 
Him  that  sent  me,  and  to  finish  His  work."  Job  xxiii.  12,  "I  have 
esteemed  the  words  of  His  iiiouth  more  than  my  necessary  food."  Jer. 
XV.  16,  "  Th^  words  were  found,  and  I  did  eat  them;  and  thy  word  was 
unto  me  the  joy  and  rejoicing  of  my  heart."  Wisd.  xvi.  6,  "God's  word 
nourisheth  man."  The  Jewish  Rabbis  had  the  remarkable  expression, 
"The  just  eat  of  the  glory  of  the  Shechinah."     Comp.  John  vi.  27—63. 

5.  And  the  devil,  taking  him  up  into  a  high  viouiitain]  Probably 
"the  devil"  and  "into  a  high  mountain"  are  added  from  St  Matthew. 
How  the  devil  took  Him  up  we  are  not  told.  Scripture,  to  turn  away 
our  thoughts  from  the  secondary  to  the  essential,  knows  nothing  o! 
those  journeys  through  the  air  which  we  find  in  Apocrypha  and  in  the 
'Gospel  of  the  Hebrews.' 

ST  LUKE  7 


98  ST   LUKE,  IV.  [w.  6—8. 

unto  him  all  the  kingdoms  of  the  world  in  a  moment  of 

6  time.     And  the  devil  said  unto  him,  All  this  power  will  I 
give  thee,  and  the  glory  of  them  :  for  that  is  delivered  unto 

7  me;  and  to  whomsoever  I  will  I  give  it.     If  thou  therefore 

8  wilt  worship  me,  all  shall  be  thine.     And  Jesus  answered 

It  is  remarkable  that  St  Luke  (whom  Milton  follows  in  the  Par. 
Regained)  here  adopts  a  different  order  of  the  temptations  from  St 
Matthew,  perhaps  because  he  thought  that  the  temptation  to  spiritual 
pride  (which  he  places  third)  was  keener  and  subtler  than  that  to  tem- 
poral ambition  ;  perhaps,  too,  because  he  believed  that  the  ministering 
angels  only  appeared  to  save  Christ  from  the  pinnacle  of  the  Temple. 
That  the  actual  order  is  that  of  St  Matthew  is  probable,  because  (i)  he 
alone  uses  notes  of  sequence,  '■'■then"  ^' agahi ;"  (2)  Christ  closes  the 
temptation  by  "  Get  thee  behind  me,  Satan"  (see  on  vs.  8);  (3)  as  an 
actual  Apostle  he  is  more  likely  to  have  heard  the  narrative  from  the 
lips  of  Christ  Himself.  But  in  the  chronology  of  spiritual  crises  there 
is  little  room  for  the  accurate  sequence  of  '  before  '  and  'after.'  They 
crowd  eternity  into  an  hour,  and  stretch  an  hour  into  eternity. 

of  the  zvor/d]     See  above  on  ii.  i. 

in  a  mome?zt]  Rather,  In  a  second;  comp.  i  Cor.  xv.  52,  "in  the 
twinkling  of  an  eye" — in  the  sudden  flash  of  an  instantaneous  vision. 
The  splendour  of  the  temptation,  and  the  fact  that  it  appealed  to 

"  the  spur  which  the  clear  spirit  doth  raise, 
The  last  infirmity  of  noble  minds," 

might  seem  to  Satan  to  make  up  for  its  impudent,  undisguised  charac- 
ter. He  was  offering  to  One  who  had  lived  as  the  Village  Carpenter  the 
throne  of  the  world. 

6.  Alt  this  power  will  I  give  thee']  Rather,  in  the  emphatic  order  of 
the  original,  To  Tliee  will  I  give  this  power,  aU  of  it,  and  the  glory 
of  them. 

for  that  is  delivered  unto  me]  The  original  is  even  stronger,  has  been 
entrusted  to  me.  Hence  the  expressions,  "the  prince  of  this  world," 
John  xii.  31,  xiv.  30;  "the  prince  of  the  power  of  the  air,"  Eph.  ii.  2. 
Satan  is  in  one  sense  "a  world-ruler  {kosinokrator)  of  this  darkness" 
(Eph.  vi.  12).  The  Rabbis  went  even  further,  and  called  him  'Lord 
of  this  age'  {sar  hdoldm),  and  even  "another  God"  (el  acher),  which  is- 
Manicheeism ;  whereas  in  this  verse,  by  the  very  admission  of  Satan, 
all  Manicheeism  is  excluded. 

to  whomsoever  I  will  I  give  if\  Comp.  Rev.  xiii.  2,  "the  dragon 
gave  him  his  power,  and  his  seat,  and  great  authority."  Here  how- 
ever we  note  the  exaggeration  of  the  father  of  lies.  How  different 
was  the  language  of  our  Lord  to  His  ambitious  disciples  (Matt.  xx. 

23)- 

7.  wilt  worship  me\  Rather,  wilt  do  homage  before  me.  Comp. 
Ps.  xxii.  27. 

all  shall  be  thine]  Rather,  it  (the  habitable  world)  shall  all  be 
thine,  for  the  true  reading  is  pdsa  (all  the  uncials)  not  panta.     There 


vv.  9,  lo.]  ST   LUKE,  IV. 


99 


and  said  unto  him,  Get  thee  behind  me,  Satan :  for  it  is 
written,  Thou  shalt  worship  the  Lord  thy  God,  and 
him  only  shalt  thou  serve.  And  he  brought  him  to  9 
Jerusalem,  and  set  him  on  a  pinnacle  of  the  temple,  and 
said  unto  him,  If  thou  be  the  Son  of  God,  cast  thyself  down 
from  hence:  for  it  is  written.  He  shall  give  his  angels  lo 

was  then  living,  one  to  whom  in  as  high  an  ambitious  sense  as  has 
ever  been  realised,  it  did  all  belong — the  Emperor  Tiberius.  Rut  so 
far  from  enjoying  it  he  was  at  this  very  time  the  most  miserable  and 
most  degraded  of  men  (Tac.  Ann.  vi.  6,  IV.  6r,  62,  67  ;  Plin.  H.  N. 
XXVIII.  5). 

8.  Get  thee  behind  me,  Satan\  These  words  should  here  be  omitted 
with  &?,  B,  D,  L,  &c.,  as  having  been  added  from  Matt.  iv.  10.  Similar 
words  were  used  to  Peter  (Matt.  xvi.  23). 

Thou  shalt  worship... and  him  only\  The  quotation  is  slightly 
altered  from  Deut.  vi.  13,  "Thou  shalt  y^ar  the  Lord  thy  God,  and 
serve  Him."  St  Matthew  has  the  same  variation,  this  being  one 
of  his  cyclic  quotations  (i.  e.  those  common  to  him  with  other  Evan- 
gelists). Since  Satan  had  now  revealed  himself  in  his  true  character, 
there  was  no  need  for  Jesus  to  tell  him  of  another  and  a  divine  King- 
dom over  which  he  had  no  power.  It  was  sufficient  to  reprove  his 
impious  blasphemy. 

9.  a  pinnacW]  Rather,  the  pinnacle,  or  battlement.  Some  well- 
known  pinnacle  of  the  Temple,  either  that  of  the  Royal  Tortico,  which 
looked  down  from  a  dizzy  height  into  the  Valley  of  the  Kidron  (Jos. 
Antt.  XV.  II  §  5)  ;  or  the  Eastern  Portico,  from  which  tradition  says 
that  St  James  was  afterwards  hurled  (Euseb.  H.  E.  Ii.  23).  '  Battle- 
ment '  is  used  for  the  corresponding  Hebrew  word  Canaph  (lit.  'wing') 
in  Dan.  ix.  27. 

cast  thyself  down  from  hcncel  The  first  temptation  had  been  to 
natural  appetite  and  impulse:  the  second  was  to  unhallowed  ambition  ; 
the  third  is  to  rash  confidence  and  spiritual  pride.  It  was  based,  with 
profound  ingenuity,  on  the  expression  of  absolute  trust  with  which  the 
first  temptation  liad  been  rejected.  It  asked  as  it  were  for  a  splendid 
proof  of  that  trust,  and  appealed  to  perverted  spiritual  instincts.  It 
had  none  of  the  vulgar  and  sensuous  elements  of  the  other  temptations. 
It  was  at  the  same  time  a  confession  of  impotence.  "Cast  thyself 
down."  The  devil  may  place  the  soul  in  peril  and  temptation,  but 
can  never  make  it  sin.  "It  is,"  as  St  Augustine  says,  "the  devil's  part 
to  suggest,  it  is  ours  not  to  consent. " 

10.  For  it  is  writ  let  t] 

"The  devil  can  cite  Scripture  for  his  purpose. 
An  evil  soul  producing  holy  witness 
Is  like  a  villain  with  a  smiling  check, 
A  deadly  apple  rotten  at  the  heart." 

SlIAKESPF.ARK. 
7  —  2 


loo  ST   LUKE,  IV.  [vv.  ii— 13. 

11  charge  over  thee,  to  keep  thee:  and  in  their  hands 
they  shall  bear  thee  up,  lest  at  any  time  thou  dash 

12  thy  foot  against   a   stone.     And   Jesus  answering  said 
unto  him,  It  is  said.  Thou  shalt  not  tempt  the  Lord 

13  thy  God.     And  when  the  devil  had  ended  all  the  tempta- 
tion, he  departed  from  him  for  a  season. 

"  In  religion 
What  damned  error  but  some  sober  brow 
Will  bless  it  and  approve  it  with  a  text, 
Hiding  the  grossness  with  fair  ornament?" 

Id. 
to  keep  thee']  The  quotation  is  from  Ps.  xci.  11,  but  the  tempter 
omits  "in  all  thy  ways,"  which  would  have  defeated  his  object,  since 
the  "ways "  referred  to  are  only  the  ways  of  him  "  who  dwelleth  under 
the  defence  of  the  Most  High."  But,  as  the  n^xt  verse  prophesies, 
Christ  '  trod  upon  the  lion  and  adder '  of  Satanic  temptation. 

12.  Thou  shalt  not  tempt]  Rather,  Thou  shalt  not  utterly  tempt, 
or  tempt  to  the  extreme.  It  is  impious  folly  to  put  God  to  the  test 
by  thrusting  ourselves  into  uncalled-for  danger.  The  angels  will  only 
guard  our  perilous  footsteps  when  we  are  walking  in  the  path  of  duty. 
We  cannot  claim  miracles  when  we  court  temptations.  The  quotation 
is  from  Deut.  vi.  16,  and  it  is  remarkable  that  the  three  quotations 
with  which  our  Lord  met  the  tempter  are  all  taken  from  the  6th  and 
8th  chapters  of  this  book. 

13.  had  ended  all  the  temptation]  Rather,  every  temptation.  "He 
had,"  as  Bengel  says,  "shot  his  last  dart."  The  temptations  had  been 
addressed  (i)  to  the  desire  of  the  flesh — trying  to  make  the  test  of  Sonship 
to  God  consist  not  in  obedience  but  in  the  absence  of  pain;  (2)  to  the 
pride  of  life — as  though  earthly  greatness  were  a  sign  of  God's  approval, 
and  as  though  greatness  consisted  in  power  and  success;  (3)  to  spiritual 
pride — as  though  the  elect  of  God  might  do  as  they  will,  and  be  secure 
against  consequences. 

he  departed]     "Resist  the  devil,  and  hevdll  flee  from  you,"  James  iv.  7. 

for  a  season]  Rather,  imtil  an  opportunity,  though  the  meaning 
comes  to  be  the  same  (Acts  xiii.  11).  St  Matthew  adds  "And  lo  !. 
angels  came  and  began  to  minister  unto  Him."  We  do  not  again 
meet  with  angels  in  a  visible  form  till  the  Agony  in  Gethsemane.  It 
must  not  be  imagined  that  our  Lord  was  only  tempted  at  this  crisis. 
He  shared  temptation  with  us,  as  the  common  lot  of  our  humanity. 
"Many  other  were  the  occasions  on  which  he  endured  temptation," 
Bonaventura,  Vit.  Christi.  See  xxii.  28;  Heb.  iv.  15.  We  may 
however  infer  from  the  Gospels  that  henceforth  His  temptations  were 
rather  the  negative  ones  caused  by  suffering,  than  the  positive  ones 
caused  by  allurement.  Ullmann,  p.  30.  See  Matt,  xxvii.  40  (hke 
the  first  temptation) ;  John  vii.  3,  4  (analogous  to  the  second  in  St 
Matthew's  order) ;  John  vii.  15  (like  the  third) ;  Van  Oosterzee.  See 
too  xxii.  3,  t;:^;  Matt.  xvi.  ii\  John  xiv.  30,  viii.  44. 


vv.  14—16.]  ST   LUKE,  IV. 


lOI 


14—23-    Jesus  returns  to  Nazareth  atid preaches  there. 
And  Jesus  returned  in  the  power  of  the  Spirit  into  Gali-  .4 
lee:   and  there  went  out  a  fame  of  him  through  all  the 
region  round  about.     And  he  taught  in  their  synagogues,  15 
being  glorified  of  all.     And  he  came  to  Nazareth,  where  he  16 
had  been  brought  up  :  and,  as  his  custom  was,  he  went  into 
the  synagogue  on  the  sabbath  day,  and  stood  up  for  to  read. 

14—23.    Jesus  returns  to  Nazareth  and  preaches  there. 

14.  And  Jesus  rettirned\  St  Luke  here  omits  that  series  of  oc- 
currences which  is  mainly  preserved  for  us  by  the  Apostle  who  recorded 
the  Judaean  ministry— St  John;  namely  the  deputation  of  the  Sanhedrin 
to  the  Baptist  (1.  19—28),  and  his  testimony  about  the  baptism  of  Jesus 
(29—34);  the  call  of  Andrew  and  Simon  (35—43);  of  Philip  and 
Nathanael  (44—51);  the  First  Miracle,  at  Cana,  and  visit  to  Capernaum 
(ii.  I — 12) ;  the  Passover  at  Jerusalem  and  first  cleansing  of  the  Temple 
(ii.  13—25) ;  the  secret  visit  of  Nicodemus  (iii.  i— 21);  the  baptism  of 
the  disciples  of  Jesus,  and  the  Baptist's  remarks  to  his  disciples  (iii. 
22 — 36).  St  Luke  has  already  mentioned  by  anticipation  the  imprison- 
ment of  John  the  Baptist  (iii.  19,  20),  which  probably  hastened  the 
return  of  Jesus  to  Galilee;  but  St  John  alone  preserves  the  deeply 
interesting  revelation  to  the  Woman  of  Samaria,  and  the  preaching 
among  the  Samaritans  (John  iv.  4—42).  This  must  have  occurred 
during  the  journey  from  Judaea  to  Galilee  mentioned  in  this  verse. 

into  Galilee]  This  district  was  the  starting-point  and  main  centre  of 
our  Lord's  ministry,  Acts  x.  37,  "which  was  published  throughout  all 
Judaea,  and  began  from  Galilee."  Lk.  xxiii.  5,  "  He  stirreth  up  the 
people,  beginning  from  Galilee." 

15.  ^  he  taught  in  their  synagogues,  being  glorified  of  all]  The  word 
'He'  is  emphatic.  'He  Himself,'  in  contrast  with  the  rianotir  about 
Him.  The  word  autos  in  this  Gospel  comes  to  mean  "the  Master,"  as 
a  sort  of  title  of  honour,  as  in  the  "'Autos  epha" — "the  Master  said  it" 
of  the  Pythagoreans.  The  verse  shews  that  the  journey  from  Sychar  to 
Nazareth  Was  not  direct  but  leisurely;  and  it  is  remarkably  confirmed 
by  John  iv.  45,  who  accounts  for  the  favourable  reception  of  Jesus  by 
saying  that  they  had  seen  "all  the  things  that  He  did  at  Jerusalem  at 
the  feast." 

16.  And  he  came  to  Nazareth]  This  is  probably  the  visit  related  in 
unchronological  order  in  Matt.  xiii.  53 — 58;  Mk.  vi.  i — 6,  since  after 
so  violent  and  decisive  a  rejection  as  St  Luke  narrates,  it  is  unlikely 
that  He  should  have  preached  at  Nazareth  again.  If  so,  we  learn  from 
these  (i)  that  His  disciples  were  with  Him;  (2)  that  He  healed  a  few  of 
the  sick,  being  prevented  from  further  activity  by  their  unbelief. 

as  his  custom  was]  This  seems  to  refer  to  what  had  been  the  habit 
of  the  life  of  Jesus  while  he  had  lived  at  Nazareth.  Hitherto  however 
He  had  been,  in  all  probability,  a  silent  worshipper. 

into  the  synagogue]     The  article  shews  that   the   little   village  only 


I02 


ST    LUKE,  IV.  [vv.  17,  18. 


17  And  there  was  delivered  unto  him  the  book  of  the  prophet 
Esaias.     And  when  he  had  opened  the  book,  he  found  the 

18  place  where  it  was  written,  The  Spirit  of  the  Lord  is 

possessed  a  single  synagogue.  Synagogues  had  sprung  up  throughout 
Judaea  since  the  return  from  the  exile.  They  were  rooms  of  which  the 
end  pointed  towards  Jerusalem  (the  Kibleh,  or  consecrated  direction,  of 
Jewiih  worship  (Dan.  vi.  10),  as  Mecca  is  of  Mohammedan).  The  men 
sat  on  one  side;  the  veiled  women  behind  a  lattice  on  the  other. 
The  chief  furniture  was  the  Ark  (tebhah)  of  painted  wood,  generally 
shrouded  by  a  curtain,  and  containing  the  Thorah  (Pentateuch),  and 
rolls  (tnegilloth)  of  the  Prophets.  On  one  side  was  a  bema  for  the 
reader  arid  preacher,  and  there  were  "chief  seats"  (Mk.  xii.  39)  for  the 
Ruler  of  the  Synagogue,  and  the  elders  {zekanini).  The  servants  of  the 
synagogue  were  the  clerk  [chazzan),  verger  {sheliacK)  and  deacons 
(parnasifn,  '  shepherds ') . 

on  the  sabbath  day\  Observe  the  divine  sanction  thus  given  to  the 
ordinance  of  weekly  public  worship. 

stood  up  for  to  read\  The  custom  was  to  read  the  Scripture  standing. 
There  was  no  recognised  or  ordained  ministry  for  the  synagogues. 
The  functions  of  Priest  and  Levites  were  confined  to  the  Temple,  and 
the  various  officers  of  the  synagogue  were  more  like  our  churchwardens. 
Hence  it  was  the  custom  of  the  Ruler  or  Elders  to  invite  any  one  to 
read  or  preach  who  was  known  to  them  as  a  distinguished  or  com- 
petent person  (Acfc^  xiii.  15). 

17.  there  was  delivered  unto  him]  Literally,  "there  was  further 
handed  to  Him."  The  expression  means  that  after  He,  or  another, 
had  read  the  Parashah,  or  First  Lesson,  which  was  always  from  the 
Pentateuch,  the  clerk  handed  to  him  the  Roll  of  Isaiah,  which  con- 
tained the  Haphtarah,  or  Second  Lesson. 

■when  he  had  opened  the  booh]  If  anap/uxas  is  the  tnie  reading,  it 
means  'unrolling.'  The  Thorah,  or  Law,  was  written  on  a  parchment 
between  two  rollers,  and  was  always  left  unrolled  at  the  column  for  the 
day's  lesson;  but  the  Megilloth  of  the  Prophets,  &c.,  were  on  single 
rollers,  and  the  right  place  had  to  be  found  by  the  reader  (Jl/aphtir). 

he  found]  The  word  heure  leaves  it  uncertain  whether  the  'finding' 
was  what  man  calls  'accidental,'  or  whether  it  was  the  regular  hapJi- 
tarah  of  the  day.  It  is  now  the  Second  Lesson  for  the  great  day  of 
Atonement;  but  according  to  Zunz  (the  highest  Jewish  authority  on  the 
subject)  the  present  order  of  the  Lessons  in  the  Synagogue  worship 
belongs  to  a  later  period  than  this. 

the  place  where  it  was  wntteii]  Is.  Ixi.  i,  2.  Our  Lord,  according  to 
the  custom  of  the  Synagogue,  must  hav'e  read  the  passage  in  Hebrew, 
and  then — either  by  Himself,  or  by  an  interpreter  (M't'fhu7's^et?ian) — it 
must  have  been  translated  to  the  congregation  in  Aramaic  or  Greek, 
since  Hebrew  was  at  this  time  a  dead  and  learned  language.  The 
quotation  is  here  freely  taken  by  the  Evangelist  from  the  LXX., 
possibly  from  memory,  and  with  reminiscences,  intentional  or  other- 
wise, of  other  passages. 


vv.  19,  20.]  ST    LUKE,  IV.  103 

upon  me,  because  he  hath  anointed  me  to  preach 
the  gospel  to  the  poor;  he  hath  sent  me  to  heal 
the  broken-hearted,  to  preach  deliverance  to  the 
captives,  and  recovering  of  sight  to  the  blind,  to  set  at 
liberty  thetn  that  are  bruised,  to  preach  the  accept-  19 
able  year  of  the  Lord.  And  he  closed  the  book,  and  20 
he  gave  //  again  to  the  minister,  and  sat  down.  And  the 
eyes  of  all  them  that  were  in  the  synagogue  were  fastened  on 


18.  he  hath  anointed  me]  Rather,  He  anointed  (aorist) ;  the  following 
verb  is  in  the  perfect.  The  word  Mashach  in  the  Hebrew  would  recall 
to  the  hearers  the  notion  of  the  Messiah — "il  m'a  messianis^"  (Sal- 
vador). "God  anointed  Jesus  of  Nazareth  with  the  Holy  Ghost  and 
with  power,"  Acts  x.  38.  In  illustration  of  the  verse  generally,  as 
indicating  the  work  primarily  of  Isaiah,  but  in  its  fullest  sense,  of  Christ, 
see  Matt.  xi.  5,  v.  3,  &c. 

the  poot-]  i.e.  the  poor  in  spirit  (Matt.  xi.  28,  v.  3),  as  the  Hebrew 
implies. 

to  heal  the  broken-hearted]     Omitted  in  N,  B,  D,  L. 

recovering  of  sight  to  the  blind]  Here  the  LXX.  differs  from  the 
Hebrew,  which  has  '■^  opening  of  prison  to  the  bound."  Perhaps  this  is  a 
reminiscence  of  Is.  xlii.  7. 

to  set  at  liberty  them  that  are  bruised]  This  also  is  not  in  Is.  Ixi.  i, 
but  is  a  free  reminiscence  of  the  LXX.  in  Iviii.  6.  Either  the  text  of 
the  Hebrew  was  then  slightly  variant,  or  the  record  introduces  into  the 
text  a  reminiscence  of  the  discourse. 

19.  the  acceptable  year]  The  primary  allusion  is  to  the  year  of 
Jubilee,  Lev.  xxv.  8 — 10;  but  this  was  only  a  type  of  the  true  Jubilee 
of  Christ's  kingdom.  Many  of  the  Fathers,  with  most  mistaken  literal- 
ness,  inferred  from  this  verse  that  our  Lord's  ministry  only  lasted  a 
year,  and  the  notion  acquired  more  credence  from  the  extraordinary 
brightness  of  His  first,  or  Galilaean,  year  of  ministry.  This  view  has 
been  powerfully  supported  by  Mr  Browne  in  his  Ordo  Saeclorum,  but  is 
quite  untenable  (John  ii.  13,  vi.  4,  xi.  55). 

20.  he  closed  the  book]  Rather,  rolling  up.  Generally  the  Haphtarah 
consists  of  twenty-one  verses,  and  is  never  less  than  three ;  but  our 
Lord  stopped  short  in  the  second  verse,  because  this  furnished  sufficient 
text  for  His  discourse,  and  because  He  wished  these  gracious  words  to 
rest  last  on  their  ears,  rather  than  the  following  words,  ''the  day  of 
vengeance  of  our  God." 

the  minister]     The  Chazzan, 

sat  down]  The  ordinary  Jewish  attitude  for  the  sermon  (Matt,  xxiii.  2). 

fajtened  on  him]  A  favourite  word  of  St  Luke,  who  uses  it  eleven 
timeT;  elsewhere  it  is  only  found  in  2  Cor.  iii.  7,  13.  The  attitude  of 
Jesus  shewed  that  now  for  the  first  time  He  intended  not  only  to  read 
but  to  preach. 


I04  ST   LUKE,    IV.  [vv.  21—23. 

ii  him.  And  he  began  to  say  unto  them,  This  day  is  this  scrip- 

22  ture  fulfilled  in  your  ears.  And  all  bare  him  witness,  and 
wondered  at  the  gracious  words  which  proceeded  out  of  his 

23  mouth.  And  they  said,  Is  not  this  Joseph's  son  ?  And  he 
said  unto  them,  Ye  will  surely  say  unto  me  this  proverb, 
Physician,  heal  thyself:  whatsoever  we  have  heard  done  in 
Capernaum,  do  also  here  in  thy  country. 


21.  he  begmi  to  say  unto  theni\  i.  e.  these  were  the  first  words  of  the 
discourse.  It  began  with  the  announcement  that  He  was  the  Messiah 
in  whom  the  words  of  the  prophet  found  their  fulfilment. 

22.  gracious  -words]  Rather,  words  of  grace.  The  word  grace 
does  not  here  mean  mercy  or  favour  {Gttade),  but  beauty  and  attrac- 
tiveness (Attmut/i).  This  verse  and  John  vii.  46  are  the  chief  proofs 
that  there  was  in  our  Lord's  utterance  an  irresistible  majesty  and 
sweetness.     Comp.  Ps.  xlv.   2  ;  John  i.  14. 

And  Ihey  said.  Is  not  this  Joseph's  son .?]  This  points  to  a  gradual 
change  in  the  feeling  of  the  listening  Nazarenes.  The  Jews  in  their 
synagogues  did  not  sit  in  silence,  but  were  accustomed  to  give  full 
expression  to  their  feelings,  and  to  discuss  and  make  remarks  aloud. 
Jealousy  began  to  work  among  them,  Matt.  xiii.  54;  John  vi.  42. 
"The  village  beggarly  pride  of  the  Nazarenes  cannot  at  all  comprehend 
the  humility  of  the  Great  One."     Stier. 

23.  this  proverb]  The  Greek  word  is  '^arabole,'  which  is  here  used 
for  die  Hebrew  mashal,  and  had  a  wider  meaning  than  its  English 
equivalent.  Thus  it  is  also  used  for  z.  proverb  {Beispiel),  i  Sam.  x.  12, 
xxiv.  13;  Ezek.  xii.  22;  or  a  type,  Heb.  ix.  9,  xi.  19.  See  on 
viii.  5.      _ 

Physician,  heal  thyself]  The  same  taunt  was  addressed  to  our  Lord 
on  the  Cross.  Here  it  seems  to  have  more  than  one  application, — 
meaning,  '  If  you  are  the  Messiah  why  are  you  so  poor  and  humble  ?' 
or,  '  Why  do  you  not  do  something  for  us,  here  in  your  own  home  ?' 
(So  Theophylact,  Euthymius,  &c.)  It  implies  radical  distrust,  like  Hie 
Rhodos,  hie  salta.  There  seems  to  be  no  exact  Hebrew  equivalent  of 
the  proverb,  but  something  like  it  (a  physician  who  needs  healing)  is 
found  in  Plut.  De  Discern.  Aditl.  32. 

7vhatsoever  we  have  heard  done  in  Capernattm]  St  Luke  has  not 
before  mentioned  Capernaum,  and  this  is  one  of  the  many  indications 
found  in  his  writings  that  silence  respecting  any  event  is  no  proof  XkaX 
he  was  unaware  of  it.  Nor  has  any  other  Evangelist  mentioned  any 
previous  miracle  at  Capernaum,  unless  we  suppose  that  the  healing  of 
the  courtier's  son  (John  iv.  46—54)  liad  preceded  tYvxi  visit  to  Nazareth. 
Jesus  had,  however,  performed  the  first  miracle  at  Cana,  and  may  well 
have  wrought  others  during  the  stay  of  "not  many  days  "  mentioned  in 
John  ii.  12.  Capernaum  was  so  completely  the  head-quarters  of  His 
ministry  as  to  be  known  as  "His  own  city."  (Matt.  iv.  12 — t6 
xi.    23.)  ' 


vv.  24— 29.J  ST   LUKE,   IV. 


105 


24 — 30.     Rejection  by  the  Nazarenes. 

And  he  said,  Verily  I  say  unto  you,  No  prophet  is  accepted  24 
in  his  own  country.     But  I  tell  you  of  a  truth,  many  widows  25 
were  in  Israel  in  the  days  of  Elias,  when  the  heaven  was 
shut  up  three  years  and  six  months,  when  great  famine  was 
throughout  all  the  land ;  but  unto  none  of  them  was  Elias  26 
sent,  save  unto  Sarepta,  a  city  of  Sidon,  unto  a  woman  that 
was  a  widow.    And  many  lepers  were  in  Israel  in  the  time  of  27 
Eliseus  the  prophet ;  and  none  of  them  was  cleansed,  saving 
Naaman  the  Syrian.     And  all  they  in  the  synagogue,  when  28 
they  heard  these  things,  were  filled  with  wrath,  and  rose  up,  29 
and  thrust  him  out  of  the  city,  and  led  him  unto  the  brow 
of  the  hill  whereon  their  city  was  built,  that  they  might  cast 

24—30.    Rejection  by  the  Nazarenes. 

24.  is  accepted  in  his  own  country]  St  Matthew  adds  (xiii.  57)  "and 
in  his  own  house,"  implying  that  "  neither  did  His  brethren  believe  on 
Him."  This  curious  psychological  fact,  which  has  its  analogy  in  the 
worldly  proverb  that  '  No  man  is  a  hero  to  his  valet,'  or,  '  Familiarity 
breeds  contempt, '  was  more  than  once  referred  to  by  our  Lord  ;  John 
iv.  44.    ("  Vile  habetur  quod  domi  est."     Sen.  De  Benef.  ill.  2.) 

25.  many  widows  we?-e  in  Israel\  So  far  from  trying  to  flatter 
them,  He  tells  them  that  His  work  is  not  to  be  for  their  special  benefit 
or  glorification,  but  that  He  had  now  passed  far  beyond  the  limitations 
of  earthly  relationships. 

th^-ee  years  and  six  months']  Such  was  the  Jewish  tradition,  as  we 
see  also  in  James  v.  17  (comp.  Dan.  xii.  7  ;  Rev.  xi.  2,  _^,  xiii.  5). 
The  book  of  Kings  only  tnentio)is  three  years  (i  K.  xvii.  r,  8,  9,  xviii. 
I,  2),  but  in  the  "many  days"  it  seems  to  imply  more. 

26.  save  unto  Sarepta]  i.e.  "but  he7C/«jsent  to  Sarepta."  Zarephath 
(i  K.  xvii.  9)  was  a  Phoenician  town  near  the  coast  between  Tyre 
and  Sidon,  now  called  Surafcnd. 

11.  saving  Naaman  the  Syrian]  1  K.  v.  i — 14.  Thus  both  Elijah 
and  Elisha  had  carried  God's  mercies  to  Gentiles. 

28.  were  filled  with  lurath]  The  aorist  implies  a  sudden  outburst. 
Perhaps  they  were  already  offended  by  knowing  that  Jesus  had  s[icnt 
two  days  at  Sychar  among  the  hated  Samaritans;  and  now  He  whom 
they  wished  to  treat  as  "  the  carpenter  "  and  their  equal,  was  as  it  were 
asserting  the  superior  claims  of  Gentiles  and  lepers.  "  Truth  embitters 
those  whom  it  does  not  enlighten."  "The  word  of  God,"  said  Luther, 
"is  a  sword,  is  a  war,  is  a  poison,  is  a  scandal,  is  a  stumbling-block,  is 
a  ruin" — viz.  to  those  who  resist  it  (Matt.  x.  34;   i  Pet.  ii.  8). 

29.  the  brow  of  the  hill  whereon  their  city  was  built]  The  ^whereon ' 
refers  to  the  hill  not  to  the  brow.  Nazareth  nestles  under  the  southern 
slopes  of  the  hill.  The  cliff  down  which  they  wished  to  hurl  Him 
(because  this  was  regarded  as  a  form  of  'stoning,'  the  legal  pnnishmcnl 


lo6  ST    LUKE,    IV.  [vv.  30,  31. 

30  him  down  headlong.     But  he  passing  through  the  midst  of 
them  went  his  way, 

3 1 — 3  7 .     The  Healing  of  a  Demoniac. 

31  and  came  down  to  Capernaum,  a  city  of  GaHlee,  and  taught 

for  blasphemy)  was  certainly  not  the  so-called  '  Mount  of  Precipitation ' 
which  is  two  miles  distant,  and  therefore  more  than  a  sabbath  day's 
journey,  but  one  of  the  rocky  escarpments  of  the  hill,  and  possibly 
that  above  the  Maronite  Church,  which  is  about  40  feet  high.  This 
form  of  punishment  is  only  mentioned  in  1  Chr.  xxv.  12  ;  but  in  Phocis 
it  was  the  punishment  for  sacrilege.     (Philo.) 

30.  passing  throtigh  the  midst  of  tkem]  This  is  rather  a  mirahile 
than  a  miraaclum,  since  no  miracle  is  asserted  or  necessarily  implied. 
The  inherent  majesty  and  dignity  of  our  Lord's  calm  ascendency,  seem 
to  have  been  sufficient  on  several  occasions  to  overawe  and  cow  His 
enemies  ;  John  vii.  30,  46,  viii.  59,  x.  39,  40,  xviii.  6  (see  Ps.  xviii.  29, 
xxxvii,  33). 

went  his  ivay']  Probably  never  to  return  again.  Nazareth  lies  in  a 
secluded  valley  out  of  the  ordinary  route  between  Gennesareth  and 
Jerusalem.  If  after  thirty  sinless  years  among  them  they  could  reject 
Him,  clearly  they  had  not  known  the  day  of  their  visitation.  It  is  the 
most  striking  illustration  of  St  John's  sad  comment,  "  He  came  unto 
His  own  possessions  (to,  tdia)  and  His  own  people  {ol  i'Siot)  received 
Him  not"  (John  i.  11). 

31 — 37.    The  Healing  of  a  Demoniac. 

31.  came  dozun  to  Capernaum']  St  Matthew  (iv.  13 — 16)  sees  in 
this  the  fulfilment  of  Is.  ix.  i,  2,  omitting  the  first  part  which  should 
be  rendered  "At  the  former  time  he  brought  contempt  on  the  Land  of 
Zebulun  and  on  the  Land  of  Naphtali,  but  in  the  latter  time  he  brought 
honour."  It  was  perhaps  on  His  way  to  Capernaum  that  our  Lord 
healed  the  courtier's  son  (John  iv.  47 — 54).  Capernaum  is  in  all 
probability  Tell  Hum.  The  name  means  village  (now  Kefr)  of  Nahum, 
and  Tell  Hihn  is  '  the  ruined  mound  '  or  '  heap '  of  (Na)hum.  It  is 
now  a  heap  of  desolation  with  little  to  mark  it  except  the  ruins  of  one 
white  marble  synagogue — possibly  the  very  one  built  by  the  friendly 
centurion  (vii.  5) — and  the  widely-scattered  debris  of  what  perhaps  was 
another.  But  in  our  Lord's  time  it  was  a  bright  and  populous  little 
town,  at  the  very  centre  of  what  has  been  called  "the  manufacturing 
district  of  Palestine."  It  lay  at  the  nucleus  of  roads  to  Tyre  and  Sidon, 
to  Damascus,  to  Sepphoris  (the  capital  of  Galilee),  and  to  Jerusalem, 
and  was  within  easy  reach  of  Peraea  and  Ituraea.  It  was  in  fact  on  the 
"  way  of  the  sea  "  (Is.  ix.  i) — the  great  caravan  road  wliich  led  to  the 
Mediterranean.  It  was  hence  peculiarly  fitted  to  be  the  centre  of  a 
far-reaching  ministry  of  which  even  Gentiles  would  hear.  These 
things,  as  St  Paul  graphically  says,  were  "  not  done  in  a  corner,"  Act? 


w.  32—34.]  ST    LUKE,  IV. 


107 


them  on  the  sabbath  days.     And  they  were  astonished  at  32 
his  doctrine  :  for  his  word  was  with  power. 

And  in  the  synagogue  there  was  a  man,  which  had  a  spirit  33 
of  an  unclean  devil,  and  cried  out  with  a  loud  voice,  saying,  34 

xxvi.  26.  Besides  the  memorable  events  of  the  day  here  recorded,  it 
was  here  that  Christ  healed  the  paralytic  (v.  18)  and  the  centurion's 
servant  fvii.  2),  and  called  Levi  (Matt.  i.x.  9),  rebuked  the  disciples  for 
their  ambition  (Mk.  ix.  35),  and  delivered  the  memorable  discourse 
about  the  bread  of  life  (John  vi.). 

a  city  of  Galilee]  These  little  descriptions  and  explanations  shew 
that  St_  Luke  is  writing  for  Gentiles  who  did  not  know  Palestine. 
Comp.  i.  26,  xxi.  37,  xxii.  i. 

32.  (key  were  astonished]  The  word  expresses  more  sudden  and 
vehement  astonishment  than  the  more  deeply  seated  'amaze'  of  vs.  36. 

at  his  doctrine]  Rather,  at  His  teacMng,  referring  here  to  the 
manner  He  adopted. 

his  word  ivas  with  power]  St  Matthew  gives  one  main  secret  of 
their  astonishment  when  he  says  that  "He  taught  them  as  one  having 
authority,  a7id  not  as  the  scribes,'"  vii.  29.  The  religious  teaching  of  the 
Scribes  in  our  Lord's  day  had  already  begun  to  be  the  second-hand 
repetition  of  minute  precedents  supported  by  endless  authorities.  ("Ralibi 
Zeira  says  on  the  authority  of  Rabbi  Jose  bar  Rabbi  Chanina,  and  Rabbi 
Ba  or  Rabbi  Chija  on  the  authority  of  Rabbi  Jochanan,  &c. ,  &c." 
Schwab,  Jer.  Berachdth,  p.  159.)  We  see  the  final  outcome  of  this 
servile  secondhandness  in  the  dreary  minutiae  of  the  Talmud.  But  Christ 
referred  to  no  precedents;  quoted  no  'authorities;'  dealt  with  fresher 
and  nobler  topics  than  fantastic  hagadoth  ('legends')  and  weary  tra- 
ditional halachdth  ('rules').  He  spoke  straight  from  the  heart  to  the 
heart,  appealing  for  confirmation  solely  to  truth  and  conscience, — the 
inner  witness  of  the  Spirit. 

33.  a  spi?-it  of  an  unclean  devil]  The  word  'unclean'  is  peculiar  to 
St  Luke,  who  writes  for  Gentiles.  The  word  for  devil  is  not  dial'olos, 
which  is  confined  to  Satan,  or  human  beings  like  him  (John  vi.  70); 
but  daimonion,  which  in  Greek  was  also  capable  of  a  good  sense.  The 
Jews  believed  daiinonia  to  be  the  spirits  of  the  wicked  (Jos.  B.  J.  Vil. 
6,  §  3).  Here  begins  that  description  of  one  complete  Sabbath-day  in 
the  life  of  Jesus,  from  morning  till  night,  which  is  also  preserved  for  us 
in  Matt.  viii.  14—17;  Mark  i.  21—31.  It  is  the  best  illustration 
of  the  life  of  'the  Good  Physician'  of  which  the  rarest  originality 
was  that  "He  went  about  doing  good"  (Acts  x.  38).  Into  the  ques- 
tion of  the  reality  or  unreality  of  'demoniac  possession,'  about  which 
theologians  have  held  different  opinions,  we  cannot  enter.  On  the  one 
hand,  it  is  argued  that  the  Jews  attributed  nearly  all  diseases,  and  espe- 
cially all  mental  and  cerebral  diseases,  to  the  immediate  action  of  evil 
spirits,  and  that  these  'possessions'  are  ranged  with  cases  of  ordinary 
madness,  and  that  the  common  belief  would  lead  those  thus  afflicted  to 
speak  as  if  possessed;  on  the  other  hand,  the  literal  interpretation  of  the 


io8  ST    LUKE,  IV.  [vv.  35-37- 

Let  us  alone;  what  have  we  to  do  with  thee,  thou  Jesus  of 
Nazareth  ?  art  thou  come  to  destroy  us  ?     I  know  thee  who 

35  thou  art,  the  Holy  One  of  God.  And  Jesus  rebuked  him, 
saying,  Hold  thy  peace,  and  come  out  of  him.  And  when 
the  devil  had  thrown  him  in  the  midst,  he  came  out  of  him, 

36  and  hurt  him  not.  And  they  were  all  amazed,  and  spake 
among  themselves,  saying,  What  a  word  is  this  !  for  with 
authority  and  power  he  commandeth  the  unclean  spirits,  and 

37  they  come  out.  And  the  fame  of  him  went  out  into  every 
place  of  the  country  round  about. 

Gospels  points  the  other  way,  and  in  unenlightened  ages,  as  still  in  dark 
and  heathen  countries,  the  powers  of  evil  seem  to  have  an  exceptional 
range  of  influence  over  the  mind  of  man.  The  student  will  see  the 
whole  question  fully  and  reverently  discussed  in  Jahn,  Archaeologia 
Biblica,  E.  T.  pp.  200 — 216. 

34.  Saying,  Let  us  alone]  Omit  saying,  with  N,  B,  L.  The  word 
Ea!  may  be  not  the  imperative  oiead  ('  desist !')  but  a  wild  cry  of  horror 
'Ha!' 

what  have  we  to  do  with  thee]  The  demon  speaks  in  the  plural, 
merging  his  individuality  in  that  of  all  evil  powers.  (Matt.  viii.  29; 
Mark  v.  9.)  For  the  phrase  see  viii.  28;  2  Sam.  xvi.  10,  xix.  22;  1  K. 
xvii.  18;  John  ii.  4. 

to  destroy  us]     "  The  devils  also  believe  and  tremble,"  James  ii.  19. 

the  Holy  One]     i.  35;  Ps.  xvi.  10,   "thine  Holy  One."     Dan.  ix.  24. 

35.  Hold  thy  peace]  Literally,  "Be  tnuzzled,''''  as  in  i  Cor.  ix.  9. 
See  Matt.  xxii.  34 ;  Mark  i.  25,  &c. 

had  thrown  hitn]  St  Mark  uses  the  stronger  word  "tearing  him." 
It  was  the  convulsion  which  became  a  spasm  of  visible  deliverance. 
It  is  most  instructive  to  contrast  the  simple  sobriety  of  the  narratives  of 
the  Evangelists  with  the  credulous  absurdities  of  even  so  able,  polished 
and  cosmopolitan  a  historian  as  Josephus,  who  describes  an  exorcism 
wrought  in  the  presence  of  Vespasian  by  a  certain  Eleazar.  It  was 
achieved  by  means  of  a  ring  and  the  'root  of  Solomon,'  and  the  demon 
in  proof  of  his  exit  was  ordered  to  upset  a  bason  of  water !  (Jos.  B.  y. 
VII.  6,  §  3;  Anti.  VIII.  2,  §  5.)  As  this  is  the  earliest  of  our  Lord's 
miracles  recorded  by  St  Luke,  we  may  notice  that  the  terms  used  for 
miracles  in  the  Gospels  SiXQteras  'prodigy,' and //;az<wa.y/(?«  'wonderful' 
(Matt.  xxi.  15  only),  from  the  effect  on  men's  minds;  paradoxon  (v.  26 
only),  from  their  strangeness;  semeia  'signs,'  2,nd  dunameis  'powers,' 
from  their  being  indications  of  God's  power;  endoxa  'glorious  deeds' 
(xiii.  17  only),  as  shewing  His  glory;  and  in  St  John  erga  '  works,'  as 
the  natural  actions  of  One  who  was  divine.  See  Trench,  On  Miracles, 
I.  9.  "Miracles,  it  should  be  observed,  are  not  contrary  to  nature,  but 
beyond  and  above  it."     Mozley. 

37.  the  fame  of  him  went  out]  Rather,  a  rumour  about  Him  began 
to  spread. 


vv.  38—40.]  ST    LUKE,    IV. 


109 


38,39.      The  Healing  of  SimorH s  Wife's  Mother. 
_  And  he  arose  out  of  the  synagogue,  and  entered   into  38 
Simon's  house.   And  Simon's  wife's  mother  was  taken  with  a 
great  fever ;  and  they  besought  him  for  her.     And  he  stood  39 
over  her,  and  rebuked  the  fever;  and  it  left  her:  and  im- 
mediately she  arose  and  ministered  unto  them. 

40 — 44.     Healing  the  Sick  at  Evening. 
Now  when  the  sun  was  setting,  all  they  that  had  any  sick  40 

38,  39.    The  Healing  of  Simon's  Wife's  Mother. 

38.  into  Simon's  house]  St  Mark,  nearly  connected  with  St  Peter, 
says  more  accurately  "the  house  of  Simon  and  Andrew"  (i.  29).  This 
is  the  first  mention  of  Peter  in  St  Luke,  but  the  name  was  too  well 
known  in  the  Christian  Church  to  need  further  explanation.  Peter  and 
Andrew  were  of  Bethsaida  (House  of  Fish),  (John  i.  44,  xii.  21),  a  little 
fishing  village,  as  its  name  imports,  now  Ain  et  Talnjah  or  'the  Spring 
of  the  Figtree,'  where,  alone  on  the  Sea  of  Gahlee,  there  is  a  little  strip 
of  bright  hard  sand.  St  Luke  does  not  mention  this  Bethsaida,  though 
he  mentions  another  at  the  northern  end  of  the  Lake  (ix.  10).  It  was 
so  near  Capernaum  that  our  Lord  may  have  walked  thither,  or  possibly 
Simon's  mother-in-law  may  have  had  a  house  at  Capernaum.  It  is 
a  remarkable  indication  of  the  little  cloud  of  misunderstanding  that 
seems  to  have  risen  between  Jesus  and  those  of  His  own  house  (iVLitt. 
xiii-  57  j  John  iv.  44),  that  though  they  were  then  living  at  Capernaum 
(Matt.  ix.  I,  xvii.  24) — having  perhaps  been  driven  there  by  the  hostil- 
ity of  the  Nazarenes — their  home  was  not  His  home. 

Simon's  luife's  mother]  "St  Peter,  the  Apostle  of  Christ,  who  was 
himself  a  married  man."  Marriage  Service.  She  seems  afterwards  to 
have  travelled  with  him  (i  Cor.  ix.  5).  Her  (most  improbable)  traditional 
name  was  Concordia  or  Perpetua  (Grabe,  Spicil.  Patr.  i.  330). 

with  a  great  fever]  St  Luke,  being  a  physician,  uses  the  technical 
medical  distinction  of  the  ancients,  which  divided  fevers  into  'great' 
and  'little'  (Galen).  For  other  medical  and  psychological  touches  see 
V.  12,  vi.  6,  xxii.  50,  51 ;  Acts  iii.  6 — 8,  iv.  22,  ix.  33,  &c. 

they  besought  him]  not,  as  elsewhere,  the  imperfect  (John  iv.  47),  but 
the  aorist,  implying  that  they  only  had  to  ask  Him  once.  St  Mark 
confirms  this  when  he  says  (i.  30),  "immediately  they  speak  to  Him 
about  her." 

39.  he  stood  over  her]  A  graphic  touch,  found  here  only.  The 
other  Evangelists  say  that  He  took  her  by  the  hand. 

she  arose  and  ministered  unto  them]  Literally,  arising  at  once  Bbe 
began  to  wait  on  them. 

40— 44.     Healing  the  Sick  at  Evening. 

40.  when  the  sun  was  setting]  Sunset  ended  the  Sabbath,  and  thus 
enabled  Jews,  without  infringing  on  the    many  minute   '■abhoth'  and 


no  ST    LUKE,  IV.  [vv,  41— 43. 

with  divers  diseases  brought  them  unto  him ;  and  he  laid 

41  his  hands  on  every  one  of  them,  and  healed  them.  And 
devils  also  came  out  of  many,  crying  out,  and  saying,  Thou 
art  Christ  the  Son  of  God.  And  he  rebuking  them  suffered 
them  not  to  speak :  for  they  knew  that  he  was  Christ. 

42  And  when  it  was  day,  he  departed  and  went  into  a  desert 
place ;  and  the  people  sought  him,  and  came  unto  him,  and 

43  stayed  him,  that  he  should  not  depart  from  thent  And  he 
said  unto  them,  I  must  preach  the  kingdom  of  God  to  other 

'  toldoth^ — i.e.  primary  and  subordinate  rules  of  sabbatic  strictness — to 
carry  their  sick  on  beds  and  pallets.  (John  v.  ir,  12  ;  s&q  Life  of  Christ, 
I.  433.)  This  twilight  scene  of  Jesus  moving  about  with  word  and  touch 
of  healing  among  the  sick  and  suffering,  the  raving  and  tortured  crowd 
(Matt.  iv.  24),  is  one  of  the  most  striking  in  the  Gospels,  and  St  Mat- 
thew quotes  it  as  a  fulfilment  of  Is.  liii.  4. 

41.  crying  out]  The  word  implies  the  harsh  screams  of  the  demo- 
niacs. 

Thou  art  Christ  the  Son  of  God'\  The  words  "Thou  art  Christ" 
should  be  omitted  with  X,  B,  C,  D,  F,  L,  &c. 

suffered  them  not  to  speali\  "  His  hour  was  not  yet  come"  (John  vii. 
30),  nor  in  any  case  would  He  accept  such  testimony :  so  St  Paul  with 
the  Pythoness  at  Philippi  (Acts  xvi.  18). 

to  speak:  for  they  knezv  that  he  was  Christ]  Rather,  to  say  that  tbey 
knew  that  He  was  the  Christ,  i.e.  the  Messiah.  It  was  not  till  after 
the  Crucifixion  that  'Christ'  became  a  proper  name,  and  not  a  title. 

42.  when  it  was  day]  St  Mark  (i.  35)  uses  tlie  expression  "rising  up 
exceedingly  early  in  the  morning,  while  it  was  yet  dark."  It  was  His 
object  to  escape  into  silence,  and  solitude,  and  prayer,  without  being 
observed  by  the  multitudes. 

into  a  desert  place]  Densely  as  the  district  was  populated,  such  a 
place  might  be  found  in  such  hill  ravines  as  the  Vale  of  Doves  at  no 
great  distance. 

the  people  sought  him]  Rather,  were  earnestly  seeking  for  Him.  It 
is  characteristic  of  the  eager  impetuosity  of  St  Peter,  that  (as  St  Mark 
tells  us,  i.  36)  he.  with  his  friends,  on  this  occasion  (literally)  "hunted 
Him  down"  [katedioxan). 

stayed  him]  Rather,  tried  or  wished  to  detain  Him.  It  is  the  tenta- 
tive imperfect. 

43.  I  must]     "  It  behoves  me" — the 'must' of  moral  obligation. 
pi-each]     Rather,   tell  the  glad  tidings  of.     The  word   is   "evan- 
gelize, "  not  kerussd  the  word  of  the  next  verse. 

the  kingdom  of  God]  The  acceptance  of  the  Faith  of  Christ,  whether 
in  the  heart  or  in  the  world,  was  illustrated  by  Christ  in  its  small 
beginnings, — the  mustard  seed  (xiii.  19);  in  its  hidden  working  (xiii.  21); 
and  in  its  final  triumph. 

to  other  cities]  Rather,  to  the  rest  of  the  cities.  In  St  Mark  He 
says,  Let  us  go  elsewhere  to  the  adjoining  country  villages. 


Ill 


vv.  44;  I.]  ST    LUKE,    IV.  V. 

cities  also  :  for  therefore  am  I  sent.  And  he  preached  in  the  44 
synagogues  of  GaHlee. 

Ch.  V.   I — II.      The  Draught  of  Fishes.      The  Calling  of 

four  Disciples. 

And  it  came  to  pass  that,  as  the  people  pressed  upon  him  5 
to  hear  the  word  of  God,  he  stood  by  the  lake  of  Gennesa- 

44.  he preachedX  Rather,  He  was  preaching,  implying  a  continued 
ministry. 

of  Galilee]  Here  N,  B,  C,  L  and  other  uncials  have  the  important 
various  reading  "of  Judaea."  If  this  reading  be  correct,  it  is  another  of 
the  many  indications  that  the  Synoptists  assume  and  imply  that  Judaean 
ministry  which  St  John  alone  narrates. 

Ch.  V.    1 — 11.    The  Draught  of  Fishes.    The  Calling  of  FoaR 

Disciples. 

1.  pressed  upon  him\  St  Mark  (as  is  his  wont)  uses  a  stronger  word 
to  express  the  physical  inconvenience,  and  adds  that  sometimes  at  any 
rate,  it  was  with  a  view  to  touch  Him  and  be  healed  (iii.  9,  10). 

to  hear\  The  more  probable  reading  is  not  tou  but  kai,  ^and  listened 
to.' 

the  lake  of  Gennesaref]  "The  most  sacred  sheet  of  water  which  this 
earth  contains."  Stanley.  St  Luke  alone,  viriting  for  the  Greeks,  accu- 
rately calls  it  a  lake.  The  Galilaean  and  Jewish  Evangelists  uncon- 
sciously follow  the  Hebrew  idiom  which  applies  the  na.mQ yam  'sea,'  to 
every  piece  of  water.  Gennesareth  is  probably  a  corruption  of  the  old 
Hebrew  name  Kinnereth,  but  the  Rabbis  derive  it  from  ganne  sari/n 
^gardens  of  princes.'  This  same  inland  lake  is  generally  called  'the  Sea 
of  Galilee'  (Matt.  xv.  29,  &c.).  In  the  Old  Testament  it  is  called  "the  Sea 
of  Chinneroth  "  (Josh.  xii.  3)  from  its  harplike  shape.  St  John  calls  it  "the 
Sea  of  Tiberias;"  because  by  the  time  he  wrote  Tiberias,  which  in  our 
Lord's  time  had  only  just  been  founded  by  Herod  Antipas,  had  grown 
into  a  flourishing  town.  Gennesareth  is  a  clear  sweet  lake  about  live 
miles  long  and  twelve  broad,  with  the  Jordan  flowing  through  it.  Its  fish 
produced  a  valuable  revenue  to  those  who  lived  on  its  shores.  The  plain 
of  Gennesareth,  which  lies  500  feet  below  the  level  of  the  Mediterranean, 
is  now  known  as  El  Ghiiweir,  'the  little  hollow.'  It  is  so  completely  a 
desolation,  that  the  only  inhabited  places  on  the  western  shore  of  the 
Lake  are  the  crumbling,  dirty  earthquake-shaken  town  of  Tiberias  and 
the  mud  village  of  El  Mejdel  the  ancient  Magdala.  The  burning  and 
enervating  heat  is  no  longer  tempered  by  cultivation  and  by  trees.  It  is 
still  however  beautiful  in  spring,  with  flowering  oleanders,  and  the  soil 
is  fruitful  where  it  is  not  encumbered  with  ruins  as  at  Klian  Minyeh  (Tari- 
chaea)  and  717/  H^/n  (Capernaum).  In  our  Lord's  time  it  was,  as 
Josephus  calls  it,  "  the  best  part  of  Galilee "(Z?.  y.  in.  10,  §  7)  containing 
many  villages,  of  which  the  least  had  15000  inhabitants.  Josephus  be- 
comes quite  eloquent  over  the  descriptions  of  its  rich  fruits  nearly  all 


112  ST   LUKE,   V.  [vv.  2—5. 

»  ret,  and  saw  two  ships  standing  by  the  lake :  but  the  fisher- 
men were  gone  out  of  them,  and  were  washing  their  nets. 

3  And  he  entered  into  one  of  the  ships,  which  was  Simon's, 
and  prayed  him  that  he  would  thrust  out  a  little  from  the  land. 
And  he  sat  down,  and  taught  the  people  out  of  the  ship. 

4  Now  when  he  had  left  speaking,  he  said  unto  Simon, 
Launch  out  into  the  deep,  and  let  down  your  nets  for  a 

5  draught.     And  Simon  answering  said  unto  him,  Master,  we 

the  year,  its  grateful  temperature,  and  its  fertilising  stream  (Jos.  B.  J. 
III.  10,  §§  7,  8),  so  tliat,  he  says,  one  might  call  it  'the  ambition  of 
nature.'  It  belonged  to  the  tribe  of  Naphtali  (Deut.  xxxiii.  33)  and 
the  Rabbis  said  that  of  the  "seven  seas"  of  Canaan,  it  was  the  only  one 
which  God  had  reserved  for  Himself.  In  our  Lord's  time  it  was  covered 
with  a  gay  and  numerous  fleet  of  4000  vessels,  from  ships  of  war  down 
to  fishing  boats ;  now  it  is  often  difficult  to  find  a  single  crazy  boat  even 
at  Tiberias,  and  the  Arabs  fish  mainly  by  throwing  poisoned  bread- 
crumbs into  the  water  near  the  shore.  As  four  great  '■cads  communi- 
cated with  the  Lake  it  became  a  meeting-place  for  men  of  many  nations 
— ^Jews,  Galilaeans,  Syrians,  Phoenicians,  Arabs,  Greeks  and  Romans. 

2.  ships\     Rather,  boats  {ploiaria). 
standing]  i.e.  lying  at  anchor. 

were  tvashitig  their  nets]  If  we  combine  these  notices  with  those  in 
Mark  i.  16 — 20;  Matt.  iv.  18 — 22,  we  must  suppose  that  during  a  dis- 
course of  Jesus  the  four  disciples  were  fishing  with  a  dravsmet  {ainphi- 
blestroti)  not  far  from  the  shore,  and  within  hearing  of  His  voice :  and 
that  the  rest  of  the  incident  (here  narrated)  took  place  on  the  morning 
after.  The  disciples  had  spent  the  night  in  fruitless  labour,  and  now 
Peter  and  Andrew  were  washing,  and  James  and  John  mending,  their 
castingnets  [dikiua),  because  they  felt  that  it  was  useless  to  go  on,  since 
night  is  the  best  time  for  fishing. 

nets]  Here  diktiia  or  castingnets  (from  dikd  I  throw,  f undo,  jaculum) 
as  in  Matt.  iv.  20 ;  John  xxi.  6.  In  Matt.  iv.  18  we  have  the  atn/Jiiblestron 
or  drawnet  (from  a7nphi  and  ballo,  I  throw  around) ;  and  in  Matt.  xiii. 
47,  sagene,  seine  or  haulingnet  (from  sattS  '  I  load  '). 

3.  he  sat  down]  The  ordinary  attitude  (as  we  have  seen,  iv.  20)  for 
a  sermon. 

4.  when  he  had  left  speaking]  The  aorist  implies  that  no  sooner 
was  His  sermon  ended  than  He  at  once  thought,  not  of  His  own  fatigue, 
but  of  His  poor  disappointed  followers. 

5.  let  down]  Rather,  let  ye  down.  The  first  command  is  in  the 
singular,  and  is  addressed  to  Peter  only  as  "the pilot  of  the  Galilaean 
Lake." 

Master]  The  word  is  not  Rabbi  as  in  the  other  Evangelists, — a  word 
which  Gentiles  would  not  have  understood  but  Epistata  (in  its  occa- 
sional classic  sense  of  'teacher')  which  is  peculiar  to  St  Luke  v.  5,  viii. 
24,  45,  ix.  33,  49,  xvii.  13.     These  are  the  only  places  where  it  occurs. 


lUoill'llCr'    l.fi   .'    5 


w.  6— 8.]  ST   LUKE,   V.  113 

have  toiled  all  the  night,  and  have  taken  nothing :  neverthe- 
less at  thy  word  I  will  let  down  the  net.     And  when  they  e 
had  this  done,  they  inclosed  a  great  multitude  of  fishes:  and 
their  net  brake.     And  they  beckoned  unto  their  partners,  ^ 
which   were  in  the  other  ship,  that  they  should  come  and 
help  them.     And  they  came,  and  filled  both  the  ships,  so 
that  they  began  to  sink.     When  Simon  Peter  saw  it,  he  fell  % 
down  at  Jesus'  knees,  saying,  Depart  from  me ;  for  I  am  a 


6.  a  great  nmllitude  of  fishes]  Of  this— as  of  all  miracles — we  may 
say  with  St  Gregory  Diun  facit  miracuhun  prodit  mysteriiun — in  olher 
words  the  miracle  was  an  acted  parable,  of  which  the  significance  is 
explained  in  Matt.  xiii.  47. 

brake\  Rather,  were  beginning  to  break  [dierregnuto).  Contrast 
this  with  John  xxi.  ir,  ovk  icrxi-cdrj.  This  breaking  net  is  explained 
by  St  Augustine  as  the  symbol  of  the  Church  which  now  is:  he 
compares  the  unrent  net  to  the  Church  of  the  future  which  shall  know 
no  schisms. 

7.  they  beckotxed]  It  is  one  of  the  inimitable  touches  of  truthfulness 
in  the  narrative  that  the  instinct  of  work  prevails  at  first  over  the  sense 
that  a  miraculous  power  has  been  exerted. 

uttto  their  partners]  The  word  used  is  metochois,  meaning  fellow- 
workers. 

in  the  other  ship]  St  Luke  uses  the  Greek  word  heteros  for  'another 
of  two,'  much  more  frequently  and  with  stricter  accuracy  than  the 
other  Evangelists. 

8.  When  Simon  Peter  saw  it]  Apparently  it  was  only  when  he  saw 
the  boats  sinking  to  the  gunwale  with  their  load  of  fish  that  the  tender- 
ness and  majesty  of  the  miracle  flashed  upon  his  mind. 

Depart  frotn  f/ie]  The  words  imply  teave  my  boat  [exelthe)  and  go  from 
me.  Here  again  is  the  stamp  of  truthfulness.  Any  one  inventing  the 
scene  would  have  made  Peter  kneel  in  thankfulness  or  adoration,  but 
would  have  missed  the  strange  psychological  truthfulness  of  the  sense  of 
sin  painfully  educed  by  the  revealed  presence  of  divine  holiness.  We 
find  the  expression  of  analogous  feelings  in  the  case  of  Manoah  (Judg. 
xiii.  12);  the  Israelites  at  Sinai  (Ex.  xx.  19);  the  men  of  Beth-shemcsh 
(t  Sam.  vi.  20);  David  after  the  death  of  U/.zah  (2  Sam.  vi.  9);  the 
lady  of  Zarephath  (i  Kings  xvii.  18);  Job  (Job  xiii.  5,  6);  and  Isaiah 
(Is.  vi.  5).  The  exclamation  of  St  Peter  was  wrung  from  a  heart  touched 
with  a  sense  of  humility,  and  his  words  did  not  express  his  thoughts. 
They  were  the  cry  of  agonised  humility,  and  only  empliasized  his  own 
utter  unworthiness.  They  were  in  reality  the  reverse  of  the  deliberate 
and  calculated  request  of  the  swine-feeding  Gadarenes.  The  dead 
and  profane  soul  dislikes  and  tries  to  get  rid  of  the  presence  of  the 
Divine.  The  soul  awakened  only  to  conviction  of  sin  is  terrified.  The 
soul  that  has  found  God  is  conscious  of  utter  unworthiness,  but  fear  is 
lost  in  love  (1  John  iv.  18). 

ST  LUKE  8 


114  ST   LUKE,  V.  [vv.  9-II. 

9  sinful  man,  O  Lord.     For  he  was  astonished,  and  all  that 
were  with  him,  at  the  draught  of  the  fishes  which  they  had 

10  taken  :  and  so  was  also  James,  and  John,  the  sons  of  Zebe- 
dee,  which  were  partners  with  Simon.  And  Jesus  said  unto 
Simon,   Fear  not;  from  henceforth  thou  shalt  catch  men. 

11  And  when  they  had  brought  their  ships  to  land,  they  for- 
sook all,  and  followed  him. 

a  sinful  pian]  The  Greek  has  two  words  for  ma.n^anfhv/>os,  a 
general  term  for  'human  being'  {homo);  and  mier  for  'a  man'  {vir). 
The  use  of  the  latter  here  shews  that  Peter's  confession  is  individual, 
not  general. 

0  Lord]  It  must  be  remembered  that  this  was  the  second  call  of 
Peter  and  the  three  Apostles, — the  call  to  Apostleship;  they  had 
already  received  a  call  X.o  faith.  They  had  received  \h€v!:  first  call  on  the 
banks  of  Jordan,  and  had  heard  the  witness  of  John,  and  had  witnessed 
the  miracle  of  Cana.  They  had  only  returned  to  their  ordinary  avoca- 
tions until  the  time  came  for  Christ's  full  and  active  ministry. 

9.  he  was  astofiis/wd]     Rather,  astonisliment  seized  him. 

10.  partners]     Here  koinonoi,  'associates'  in  profits,  &c. 

Fear  not]  Accordingly,  on  another  occasion,  when  Peter  sees  Jesus 
walking  on  the  sea,  so  far  from  crying  Depart  from  me,  he  cries  "Lord, 
if  it  be  Thou,  bid  me  come  to  Thee  on  the  water"  (Matt.  xiv.  ^S);  and 
when  he  saw  the  Risen  Lord  standing  in  the  misty  morning  on  the 
shore  of  the  Lake  "he  cast  himself  into  the  sea"  to  come  to  Him  (John 
xxi.  7)- 

10.  thoii  shalt  catch]  Literally,  'thou  shalt  be  catching  alive.'  In 
Jer.  xvi.  i6  the  fishers  draw  out  men  to  death,  and  in  Amos  iv.  2, 
Hab.  i.  14,  men  are  "made  as  the  fishes  of  the  sea"  by  way  of  punishment. 
Here  the  word  seems  to  imply  the  contrast  between  the  fish  that  lay 
glittering  there  in  dead  heaps,  and  men  who  should  be  captured  not  for 
death  (Jas.  i.  14),  but  for  life.  But  Satan  too  captures  men  alive  (2  Tim. 
ii.  26,  the  only  other  passage  where  the  verb  occurs).  From  this  and 
the  parable  of  the  seine  or  haulingnet  (Matt.  xiii.  47)  came  the  favorite 
early  Christian  symbol  of  the  'Fish.'  "We  little  fishes,"  says  Tertullian, 
"  after  our  Fish  (IX0TS,  i,  e.  'Itjcfovs  'Kpiarbs  Qeov  Tibs  Swr-^p)  are  bom  in 
the  water  (of  baptism)."  The  prophecy  was  first  fulfilled  to  Peter,  when 
3000  were  converted  by  his  words  at  the  first  Pentecost.  In  a  hymn  of 
St  Clement  of  Alexandria  we  find  "O  fisher  of  mortals  who  are  being 
saved,  Enticing  pure  fish  for  sweet  life  from  the  hostile  wave."  Thus, 
He  who  "  spread  the  fisher's  net  over  the  palaces  of  Tyre  and  Sidon, 
gave  into  the  fisher's  hand  the  keys  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven."  "He 
caught  orators  by  fishermen,  and  made  out  of  fishermen  his  orators." 
We  find  a  similar  metaphor  used  by  Socrates,  Xen.  Mem.  11.  6,  "Try 
to  be  good  and  to  catch  the  good.  I  will  help  you,  for  I  know  the  art 
of  catching  men." 

11.  they  forsook  all]  The  sacrifice  was  a  willing  one,  but  they  were 
not  unconscious  of  its  magnitude ;  and  it  was  the  allusion  to  it  by  Peter 


vv.  12,  13.]  ST   LUKE,   V.  1,5 

12 — 16.      The  Healing  of  a  Leper. 

And  it  came  to  pass,  when  he  was  in  a  certain  city,  12 
behold  a  man  full  of  leprosy :  who  seeing  Jesus  fell  on  his 
face,  and  besought  him,  saying,  Lord,  if  thou  wilt,  thou  canst 
make  me  clean.     And  he  put  forth  his  hand,  and  touched  13 

which  called  forth  the  memorable  promise  of  the  hundredfold  (xviii. 
28—30;  Mk.  X.  29,  30).  We  gather  from  St  Mark  that  Zebedee 
(Zabdia)  and  his  two  sons  had  hired  servants  (i.  20),  and  therefore  they 
were  probably  richer  than  Simon  and  Andrew,  sons  of  Jona. 

12 — 16.     The  Healing  of  a  Leper. 

12.  a  certain  city]  Probably  the  village  of  Hattin,  for  we  learn  from 
St  Matthew's  definite  notice  that  this  incident  took  place  on  descending 
from  the  Mount  of  Beatitudes  {Knrn  Hattin),  see  Matt.  viii.  i — 4; 
Mk.  i.  40 — -45.  Hence  chronologically  the  call  of  Matthew,  the  choosing 
of  the  Twelve,  and  the  Sermon  on  the  Mount  probably  intervene  be- 
tween this  incident  and  the  last. 

a  man  full  of  leprosy]  The  hideous  and  hopeless  nature  of  this 
disease — which  is  nothing  short  of  a  foul  decay,  arising  from  the 
total  corruption  of  the  blood — has  been  too  often  described  to  need 
further  notice.  See  Lev.  xiii. ,  xiv.  It  was  a  Hving  death,  as  indicated 
by  bare  head,  rent  clothes,  and  covered  lip.  In  the  middle  ages,  a 
man  seized  with  leprosy  was  "clothed  in  a  shroud,  and  the  masses  of 
the  dead  sung  over  him. "  In  its  horrible  repulsiveness  it  is  the  Gospel 
type  of  Sin.  The  expression  "full  of"  implies  the  rapid  development 
and  horror  of  the  disease;  when  the  man's  whole  body  was  covered \\\\h 
the  whiteness,  he  was  allowed  to  mingle  with  others  as  clean  (Lev. 
xiii.  13). 

fell  on  his  face]  We  get  the  full  picture  by  combining  the  three 
Evangelists.  We  then  see  that  he  came  with  passionate  entreaties, 
flinging  himself  on  his  knees,  and  worshipping,  and  finally  in  his 
agony  prostrating  himself  on  his  face. 

thou  canst  make  me  clean]  The  faith  of  this  poor  leper  must  have 
been  intense,  for  hitherto  there  had  been  but  one  instance  of  a  leper 
cleansed  by  miracle  (iv.  27 ;  2  K.  v.). 

13.  and  touched  him]  This  was  a  distinct  violation  of  the  letter,  but 
not  of  course  of  the  spirit  of  the  Mosaic  law  (Lev.  xiii.  46 ;  Numb.  y.  2). 
In  order  to  prevent  the  accidental  violation  of  this  law,  lepers,  until  tlie 
final  stage  of  the  disease,  were  then  as  now  secluded  from  all  living 
contact  with  others,  "differing  in  nothing  from  a  dead  man"  (Jos.  Ant. 
III.  ir  §  3),  and  only  appeared  in  public  with  the  cry  Tame,  Tame— 
'Unclean!  Unclean!'  But  Jesus,  "because  He  is  the  Lord  of  the  Law, 
does  not  obey  the  Law,  but  makes  the  Law"  (St  Ambrose);  or  rather, 
he  obeys  that  divine  eternal  Law  of  Compassion,  in  its  sudden  imjiulse 
\cT?\a.-^Xv<-oOth,  Mk.  i.  40),  which  is  older  and  grander  than  the  written 
Law.  (So  Elijah  and  Elisha  had  not  scrupled  to  touch  the  dead, 
I  K.  xvii.  21;  1  K.  iv.   34.)     His  touching  the  leper,  yet  remaining 

8—2 


Ii6  ST   LUKE,  V.  [v.  14. 

him,  saying,  I  will :  be  thou  clean.     And  immediately  the 

14  leprosy  departed  from  him.     And  he  charged  him  to  tell  no 

man :  but  go,  and  shew  thyself  to  the  priest,  and  offer  for 

thy  cleansing,  according  as  Moses  commanded,  for  a  testi- 

clean,  is  a  type  of  His  taking  our  humanity  upon  Him,  remaining  un- 
defiled. 

I  will:  be  thou  clean]  Two  words  in  the  original — "a  prompt  echo 
to  the  ripe  faith  of  the  leper"— which  are  accurately  preserved  by  all 
three  Evangelists.  Our  Lord's  first  miracles  were  done  with  a  glad 
spontaneity  in  answer  to  faith.  But  when  men  had  ceased  to  believe 
in  Him,  tlien  lack  of  faith  rendered  His  later  miracles  more  sad  and 
more  delayed  (Mk.  vi.  5;  Matt.  xiii.  58).  We  never  however  hear  of 
a  moment's  delay  in  attending  to  the  cry  of  a  leper.  When  the  sinner 
cries  from  his  heart,  "I  have  sinned  against  the  Lord,"  the  answer 
comes  instantly,  "The  Lord  also  hath  put  away  thy  sin"  (2  Sam. 
xii.    13). 

t/ie  leprosy  departed]  Jesus  was  not  polluted  by  the  touch,  but  the 
leper  was  cleansed.  Even  so  he  touched  our  sinful  nature,  yet  without 
sin  (H.  de  St  Victore). 

14.  he  charged  him  to  tell  no  man]  These  injunctions  to  reticence 
marked  especially  the  early  part  of  the  ministry.  See  iv.  35,  v.  14, 
viii.  56.  The  reasons  were  probably  (i)  personal  to  the  healed  sufferer, 
lest  his  inward  thankfulness  should  be  dissipated  by  the  idle  and  boastful 
gossip  of  curiosity  (St  Chrys.),  but  far  more  (ii)  because,  as  St  Matthew 
expressly  tells  us.  He  did  not  wish  His  ministry  to  be  accompanied  by 
excitement  and  tumult,  in  accordance  with  the  prophecy  of  Is.  xlii.  1 
(Matt.  xii.  15 — 50,  comp.  Phil.  ii.  6,  7;  Heb.  v.  5;  John  xviii.  36); 
and  (iii)  because  He  came,  not  merely  and  not  mainly,  to  be  a  great 
Physician  and  Wonder-worker,  but  to  save  men's  souls  by  His  Revela- 
tion, His  Example,  and  His  Death. 

It  is  evident  however  that  there  was  something  very  special  in  this 
case,  for  St  Mark  says  (i.  43),  "violently  enjoining  him,  immediately  He 
thrust  him  forth,  and  said  to  him,  See  that  you  say  no  more  to  any  one" 
(according  to  the  right  reading  and  translation).  Clearly,  although  the 
multitudes  were  following  Christ  (Matt.  viii.  i),  He  was  walking  before 
them,  and  the  miracle  had  been  so  sudden  and  instantaneous  (/5oi)... 
i\)dku%)  that  they  had  not  observed  what  had  taken  place.  Probably  our 
Lord  desired  to  avoid  the  Levitical  rites  for  uncleanness  which  the 
unspiritual  ceremonialism  of  the  Pharisees  might  have  tried  to  force  upon 
Him. 

On  other  occasions,  when  these  reasons  did  not  exist.  He  even  en- 
joined the  publication  of  an  act  of  mercy,  viii.  39. 

but  go,  and  shew  thyself  to  the  priest]  We  find  similar  instances  of 
transition  from  indirect  to  direct  narration,  in  Acts  xxiii.  22;  Ps.  Ixxiv. 
16.  See  my  Brief  Greek  Syntax, -p.  1^6.  The  priest  alone  could  legally 
pronounce  him  clean. 

offer  for  thy  cleansing]  The  student  should  read  for  himself  the 
intensely  interesting  and  symbolic  rites  commanded  by  Moses  for  the 


w.  15—17.]  ST   LUKE,  V.  117 

mony  unto  them.     But  so  much  the  more  went  there  a  fame  '5 
abroad  of  him  :  and  great  multitudes  came  together  to  hear, 
and  to  be  healed  by  him  of  their  infirmities.     And  he  with-  '^ 
drew  himself  into  the  wilderness,  and  prayed. 

17 — 26.     The  Healing  of  the  Paralytic. 

And  it  came  to  pass  on  a  certain  day,  as  he  was  teaching,  17 
that  there  were  Pharisees  and  doctors  of  the  law  sitting  hy^ 
which  were  come  out  of  every  town  of  Galilee,  and  Judea, 
and  Jerusalem :  and  the  power  of  the  Lord  was  present  to 

legal  pronunciation  of  a  leper  clean  in  Lev.  xiv.     They  occupy  fourteen 
chapters  of  Negaini,  one  of  the  treatises  of  the  Mishnah. 

according  as  Moses  commanded^  A  reference  to  Lev.  xiv.  4 — 10  will 
shew  how  heavy  an  expense  the  offering  entailed. 

for  a  testimony  unto  theni\  i.e.  that  the  priests  may  assure  themselves 
that  the  miracle  is  real.  In  ix.  5;  Mk.  vi.  11  the  words  mean  'for  a 
witness  agai?ist  them.' 

15.  so  much  the  more  went  there  a  fame  abroad]  It  is  clear  therefore 
that  the  leper  disobeyed  his  strict  injunction.  Such  disobedience  was 
natural,  and  perhaps  venial ;  but  certainly  not  commendable. 

great  multitudes  came  together... to  be  healed'\  Thus  in  part  defeating 
our  Lord's  purpose. 

16.  he  withdrew  himself  into  the  wilderness,  and  prayed]  Rather, 
But  He  Himself  was  retiring  in  the  wilderness  and  praying.  St 
Mark  (i.  45)  gives  us  the  clearest  view  of  the  fact  by  telling  us  that  the 
leper  blazoned  abroad  his  cure  in  every  direction,  ''so  that  He  was  no 
longer  able  to  enter  openly  into  a  city,  but  was  without,  in  desert  spots ; 
and  they  began  to  come  to  Him  from  all  directions.''''  We  here  see  that 
this  retirement  was  a  sort  of  "Levitical  quarantine,"  which  however  the 
multitudes  disregarded  as  soon  as  they  discovered  where  He  was. 

a7id  prayed]  St  Luke's  is  eminently  the  Gospel  of  Prayer  and 
Thanksgiving.     See  on  iii.  21. 

17—26.     The  Healing  of  the  Paralytic. 

17.  on  a  certain  day]  The  vagueness  of  the  phrase  shews  that  no 
stress  is  here  laid  on  chronological  order.  In  Matt.  ix.  2 — 8;  Mk.  ii. 
3—12  the  scene  is  in  a  house  in  Capernaum,  and  the  time  (apparently) 
after  the  healing  of  the  Gadarene  demoniac  on  the  Eastern  side  of  the 
Lake,  and  on  the  day  of  Matthew's  feast.  ^ 

as  he  was  teaching]  not  in  a  synagogue,  but  probably  m  Peter  s  house. 
Notice  the  "He"  which  is  so  frequent  in  St  Luke,  and  marks  the  later 
epoch  when  the  title  "the  Christ"  had  passed  into  a  name,  and  when 
"He"  could  have  but  one  meaning.     See  on  iv.  15. 

Pharisees  and  doctors  of  the  law]     See  Excursus  on  the  Jewish  Sects. 

atid  Judea  and  Jerusalem]  These  had  probably  come  out  of  simple 
curiosity  to  hear  and  see  the  great  Prophet  of  Nazareth.     They  were 


ii8  ST   LUKE,  V.  [vv.  18—21. 

18  heal  them.  And  behold,  men  brought  in  a  bed  a  man  which 
was  taken  with  a  palsy:   and  they  sought  means  to  bring 

19  him  in,  and  to  lay  hivi  before  him.  And  when  they  could 
not  find  by  what  way  they  might  bring  him  in  because  oi 
the  multitude,  they  went  upon  the  housetop,  and  let  him 
down  through  the  tiling  with  his  couch  into  the  midst  before 

20  Jesus.  And  when  he  saw  their  faith,  he  said  unto  him.  Mail, 

21  thy  sins  are  forgiven  thee.     And  the  scribes  and  the  Phari- 

not  the  spies  malignantly  sent  at  the  later  and  sadder  epoch  of  His 
ministry  (Matt.  xv.  i;  Mk.  iii.  2,  vii.  i)  to  dog  his  footsteps,^  and 
lie  in  wait  to  catch  any  word  on  which  they  could  build  an  accusation. 

to  heal  theniX  Some  MSS.  (5<,  B,  L,)  read  "Am."  If  the  reading 
be  correct  the  verse  means  "the  Power  of  the  Lord  (i.e.  of  the 
Almighty  Jehovah)  was  with  Him  to  heal." 

18.  men^  four  bearers,  Mk.  ii.  3. 

taken  with  a  palsy']  The  word  used  by  Matthew  (ix.  1—8)  and 
Mark  (ii.  i — 12)  is  "paralytic,"  but  as  that  is  not  a  classic  word, 
St  Luke  uses  "having  been  paralysed"  [paraleliimenos). 

they  sought  means  to  bring  him  in]  St  Mark  explains  that  the 
crowd  was  so  great  that  they  could  not  even  get  to  the  door. 

19.  they  went  upon  the  hoiisetop]  A  very  easy  thing  to  do  because 
there  was  in  most  houses  an  outside  staircase  to  the  roof.  Matt.  xxiv. 
17.  Eastern  houses  are  often  only  one  storey  high,  and  when  they 
are  built  on  rising  ground,  the  roof  is  often  nearly  on  a  level  with  the 
street  above.  Our  Lord  may  have  been  teaching  in  the  "  upper  room  " 
of  the  house,  which  was  usually  the  largest  and  quietest.  1  Kings  iv. 
10;  Acts  i.  13,  ix.  37. 

let  him  down  throitgh  the  tiling]  St  Mark  says  they  uncovered 
the  roof  where  he  was,  and  digging  it  up,  let  down  'the  pallet.' 
Clearly  then  two  operations  seem  to  have  been  necessary:  (i)  to 
remove  the  tiles,  and  (ii)  to  dig  through  some  mud  partition.  But 
the  description  is  too  vague  to  enable  us  to  understand  the  details. 
Sceptical  writers  have  raised  difficulties  about  it  in  order  to  discredit 
the  whole  narrative  (comp.  Cic.  Phil.  Ii.  18,  "  per  tegulas  demittercre  "), 
but  the  making  of  an  aperture  in  the  roof  is  an  eveiyday  matter  in 
the  East  (Thomson,  The  Land  and  the  Book,  p.  358),  and  is  here 
alluded  to,  not  because  it  was  strange,  but  to  illustrate  the  active, 
and  as  it  were  nobly  impatient,  faith  of  the  man  and  the  bearers. 

with  his  couch]  klinidion,  'little  bed,'  probably  a  mere  mat  or 
mattress.  It  means  the  same  as  St  Mark's  krabbaton,  but  that  being 
a  semi-Latii  word  (grabatum)  w^ald  be  more  comprehensible  to  the 
Roman  readers  of  St  Mark  than  to  the  Greek  readers  of  St  Luke. 

20.  Man]  St  Mark  has  "  Son,"  and  St  Matthew  "  Cheer  up,  son," 
which  were  probably  the  exact  words  used  by  Christ. 

are  forgiven  thee]  Rather,  have  been  forgiven  thee,  i.e.  now  and 
henceforth.     In  this  instance  our  Lord's  power  of  reading  the  heart 


119 


22 


w.  22—24.]  ST   LUKE,  V. 

sees  began  to  reason,  saying.  Who  is  this  which  speaketh 
blasphemies?  Who  can  forgive  sins,  but  God  alone?  But 
when  Jesus  perceived  their  thoughts,  he  answering  said  unto 
them,  What  reason  ye  in  your  hearts  ?  Whether  is  easier,  to  23 
say.  Thy  sins  be  forgiven  thee ;  or  to  say,  Rise  up  and  walk? 
But  that  ye  may  know  that  the  Son  of  man  hath  power  upon  24 

must  have  shewn  Him  that  there  was  a  connexion  between  past  sin 
and  present  affliction.  The  Jews  held  it  as  an  universal  rule  thai 
suffering  was  always  the  immediate  consequence  of  sin.  The  Book 
of  Job  had  been  directed  against  that  hard,  crude,  Pharisaic  gene- 
ralisation. Since  that  time  it  had  been  modified  by  the  view  that 
a  man  might  suffer,  not  for  his  own  sins,  but  for  those  of  his  parents 
(John  ix.  3).  These  views  were  all  the  more  dangerous  because  they 
were  the  distortion  of  half-truths.  Our  Lord,  while  he  always  left 
the  individual  conscience  to  read  the  connexion  between  its  own  sins 
and  its  sorrows  (John  v.  14),  distinctly  repudiated  the  universal  in- 
ference (Luke  xiii.  5  ;  John  ix.  3). 

21.  Who  is  this']  The  word  used  for  'this  person'  is  contemptuous. 
St  Matthew  puts  it  still  more  barely,  '  This  fellow  blasphemes,'  and 
to  indulge  such  thoughts  and  feelings  was  distinctly  "to  think  evil 
thoughts." 

blasphemies']  In  classical  Greek  the  word  means  abuse  and  in- 
jurious talk,  but  the  Jews  used  it  specially  of  curses  against  God,  or 
claiming  His  attributes  (Matt.  xxvi.  65  ;  John  x.  36). 

Who  can  fori^ive  sins,  but  God  a/one]  The  remark  in  itself  was 
not  unnatural,  Ps.  xxxii.  5  ;  Is.  xliii.  25 ;  but  they  captiously  overlooked 
the  possibility  of  a  delegated  authority,  and  the  ordinary  declaratory 
idioms  of  language,  which  might  have  shewn  them  that  blasphemy 
was  a  thing  impossible  to  Christ,  even  if  they  were  not  yet  prepared 
to  admit  the  Divine  Power  which  He  had  already  exhibited. 

22.  when  Jesus  perceiveti]     Rather,  Jesus,  recognising. 
their  thoughts]     Rather,  their  reasonings. 

23.  Whether  is  easier,  to  say]  An  impostor  might  say  'thy  sins  have 
been  forgiven '  without  any  visible  sign  whether  his  words  had  any 
power  or  not ;  no  one  could  by  a  word  make  a  man  '  rise  and  walk ' 
who  had  not  received  power  from  God.  But  our  Lord  had  purposely 
used  words  which  while  they  brought  the  earthly  miracle  into  less 
prominence,  went  to  the  very  root  of  the  evil,  and  implied  a  yet  loftier 
prerogative. 

24.  the  Son  of  man]  Ben-Adajn  has  3.  general  sense  of  any  human 
being  (Job  xxv.  6,  &c.) ;  in  a  special  sense  in  the  O.  T.  it  is  nearly  90  times 
applied  to  Ezekiel,  though  never  used  by  himself  of  himself.  In  the 
N.  T.  it  is  80  times  used  by  Christ,  but  always  by  Himself,  except 
in  passages  which  imply  His  exaltation  (Acts  vii.  .sfi;  Rev.  i.  13 — 20). 
The  Title,  as  distinctively  Messianic,  is  derived  from  Dan.  vii.  13,  and 
is  there  Bar-Enosh,  a  word  descriptive  of  man  in  his  humiliation. 
The  inference   seems   to  be  that  Christ  used  it  to  indicate  the  truth 


I20  '  ST   LUKE,  V.  [vv.  25—28. 

earth  to  forgive  sins,  (he  said  unto  the  sick  of  the  palsy,)  I 
say  unto  thee,  Arise,  and  take  up  thy  couch,  and  go  into 

25  thine  house.  And  immediately  he  rose  up  before  them,  and 
took  up  that  whereon  he  lay,  and  departed  to  his  own  house, 

26  glorifying  God.  And  they  were  all  amazed,  and  they  glori- 
fied God,  and  were  filled  with  fear,  saying,  We  have  seen 
strange  t/migs  to  day. 

27 — 39.     The  Call  a?id  Feast  of  Levi.     On  Fasting.     The 
New  and  the  Old. 

27  And  after  these  things  he  went  forth,  and  saw  a  publican, 
named  Levi,   sitting  at  the  receipt  of  custom:  and  he  said 

28  unto  him.  Follow  me.    And  he  left  all,  rose  up,  and  followed 

that  •'  God  highly  exalted  Him "  because  of  his  self-humiliation 
in  taking  our  flesh  (Phil.  ii.  5 — 11). 

hath  power  upon  earth  to  forgive  sins\  and  therefore  of  course,  a 
fo7'tiori,  hath  power  in  heaven. 

/  say  unto  thee\     Rather,  to  keep  the  emphatic  order,  To  thee  I  say. 

25.  took  up  that  whereon  he  lay']  This  circumstance  is  em- 
phasized in  all  three  narratives  to  contrast  his  previous  helplessness, 
"borne  of  four,"  with  his  present  activity.  He  now  carried  the  bed 
which  had  carried  him,  and  "the  proof  of  his  sickness  became  the 
proof  of  his  cure."  The  labour  would  have  been  no  more  than  that 
of  carrying  a  rug  or  a  cloak,  yet  it  was  this  which  excited  the  fury  of 
the  Pharisees  in  Jerusalem  (John  v.  9).  It  was  not  specially  attacked 
by  the  simpler  and  less  Pharisaic  Pharisees  of  Galilee. 

26.  were  Jilted  wit  It  fear]    See  on  vs.  8. 

27 — 39.    The  Call  and  Feast  of  Levl     On  Fasting.    The 
New  and  the  Old. 

27.  and  saw]    Rather,  He  observed. 

named  Levi]  It  may  be  regarded  as  certain  that  Levi  is  the  same 
person  as  the  Evangelist  St  Matthew.  The  name  Matthew  (probably 
a  corruption  of  Mattihijah)  means,  like  Nathanael,  Theodore,  Doritheus, 
Adeodatus,  &c.,  'the  gift  of  God,'  and  it  seems  to  have  been  the  name 
which  he  himself  adopted  after  his  call  (see  Matt.  ix.  9,  x.  3;  Mk. 
ii.  14). 

at  the  receipt  of  custom]  Matthew  may  have  been  a  tax-gatherer  for 
Herod  Antipas — who  seems  to  have  been  allowed  to  manage  his  own 
taxes — and  not  for  the  Romans  ;  but  even  in  that  case  he  would  share 
almost  equally  with  a  man  like  Zacchaeus  the  odium  with  which  his  class 
was  regarded.  For  the  Herods  were  mere  creatures  of  the  Caesars  (Jos. 
Antt.  XVII.  II  §  6).  Probably  the  'custom'  was  connected  with  the 
traffic  of  the  Lake,  and  in  the  Hebrew  Gospel  of  St  Matthew  '  publican ' 
is  rendered  '  Baal  abarah '  '  lord  of  the  passage. ' 

28.  he  left  all]      It  is  most  probable  that  St  Matthew,  like  the  sons 


vv.  29—31.]  ST   LUKE,   V. 


121 


him.     And  Levi  made  him  a  great  feast  in  his  own  house :  ag 
and  there  was  a  great  company  of  publicans  and  of  others 
that  sat  down  with  them.     But  their  scribes  and  Pharisees  30 
murmured  against  his  disciples,  saying.  Why  do  ye  eat  and 
drink  with  publicans  and  sinners?     And   Jesus  answering  31 
said  unto  them,  They  that  are  whole  need  not  a  physician; 

of  Jona  and  of  Zebedee,  had  known  something  of  our  Lord  before  this 
call.  If  Alphaeus  (Matt.  x.  3  ;  Mk.  ii.  14)  be  the  same  as  the  father  of 
James  the  Less,  and  the  same  as  Clopas  (John  xix.  25)  the  husband  of 
Mary,  and  if  this  Mary  was  the  sister  of  the  Virgin,  then  James  and 
Matthew  were  cousins  of  Jesus.  The  inferences  are  uncertain,  but 
early  Christian  tradition  points  in  this  direction.  It  was  a  rare  but 
not  unknown  custom  to  call  two  sisters  by  the  same  names. 

29.  made  him  a  great  feast]  This  shews  that  Matthew  had  some- 
thing to  sacrifice  when  he  "left  all."  The  word  rendered  'feast' 
literally  means  '  reception.' 

a  great  company  of  publicans]  Comp.  xv.  i.  The  tax-gatherers  in 
their  deep,  and  not  wholly  undeserved  unpopularity,  would  be  naturally 
touched  by  the  countenance  and  kindness  of  the  Sinless  One. 

sat  down]     Rather,  were  reclining  (at  table). 

30.  their  scribes  and  Pharisees]  Some  MSS.  read  ^  the  Pharisees  and 
their  scribes,''  i.e.  those  who  were  the  authorised  teachers  of  the  company 
present.  The  scribes  [Sopheritn  from  Sepher  '  a  book ')  were  a  body 
which  had  sprung  up  after  the  exile,  whose  function  it  was  to  copy  and 
explain  the  Law.  The  '  words  of  the  scribes '  were  the  nucleus  of  the 
body  of  tradition  known  as  '  the  oral  law.'  The  word  was  a  general 
term,  for  technically  the  Sopherim  were  succeeded  by  the  Tanaim  or 
'repeaters'  from  B.C.  300  to  A.  D.  ^'2.o,  who  drew  up  the  Halachdth  or 
'precedents;'  and  they  by  the  Amoraitn.  The  tyranny  of  pseudo- 
orthodoxy  which  they  had  established,  and  the  insolent  terrorism  with 
which  it  was  enforced,  were  denounced  by  our  Lord  (xi.  37 — 54)  in 
terms  of  which  the  burning  force  can  best  be  understood  by  seeing  from 
the  Talmud  how  crushing  were  the  '  secular  chains '  in  which  they  had 
striven  to  bind  the  free  conscience  of  the  people — chains  which  it 
became  His  compassion  to  burst  (see  Gfrorer,  Jahrh.  d.  Neils,  I.  140). 

vmrniured  against  his  disciples]  They  had  not  yet  learnt  to  break 
the  spell  of  awe  which  surrounded  the  Master,  and  so  they  attacked 
the  '  unlearned  and  ignorant'  Apostles.  The  murmurs  must  have  reached 
the  ears  of  Jesus  after  the  feast,  unless  we  imagine  that  some  of  these 
dignified  teachers,  who  of  course  could  not  sit  down  at  the  meal,  came 
and  looked  on  out  of  curiosity.  The  house  of  an  Oriental  is  perfectly 
open,  and  any  one  who  likes  may  enter  it. 

■with  publicans  and  sinners]  Rather,  "with  the  publicans  and 
sinners."     The  article  is  found  in  nearly  all  the  uncials. 

31.  They  that  are  whole]  Our  Lord's  words  had  both  an  obvious 
and  a  deeper  meaning.  As  regards  the  ordinary  duties  and  respec- 
tability of  life  these  provincial  scribes  and  Pharisees  were  really  "whole" 


122  ST    LUKE,   V.  [vv.  32—34. 

32  but  they  that  are  sick.     I  came  not  to  call  the  righteous,  but 
sinners  to  repentance. 

33  And  they  said  unto  him,  Why  do  the  disciples  of  John 
fast  often,  and  make  prayers,  and  likewise  the  disciples  of 

34  the  Pharisees;  but  thine  eat  and  drink?     And  he  said  unto 

as  compared  with  the  flagrant  "sinfulness"  of  the  tax-gatherers  and 
"  sinners."  In  another  and  even  a  more  dangerous  sense  they  were 
themselves  "sinners"  v^Yio fancied oxAy  that  they  had  no  need  of  Jesus 
(Rev.  iii.  17,  18).  They  did  not  yet  feel  their  own  sickness,  and 
the  day  had  not  yet  come  when  they  were  to  be  told  of  it  both  in 
parables  (xviii.  11 — 13)  and  in  terms  of  terriljle  plainness  (Matt,  xxiii.), 
"Difficulter  ad  sanitatem  pervenimus,  quia  nos  aegrotare  nescimus." 
Sen.  Ep.  50.  4. 

32.  I  came  not  to  caU\     Rather,  I  have  not  come. 

the  righteous\  This  also  was  true  in  two  senses.  Our  Lord  came  to 
seek  and  save  the  lost.  He  came  not  to  the  elder  son  but  to  the 
prodigal ;  not  to  the  folded  flock  but  to  the  straying  sheep.  In  a  lower 
and  external  sense  these  Pharisees  were  really,  as  they  called  them- 
selves, 'the  righteous'  {chasidim).  In  another  sense  they  were  only 
self-righteous  and  self-deceived  (xviii.  9).  St  Matthew  tells  us  that  He 
further  rebuked  their  haughty  and  pitiless  exclusiveness  by  borrowing 
one  of  their  own  formulae,  and  bidding  them  '  ^ go  and  learn "  the 
meaning  of  Hos.  vi.  6,  "I  will  have  mercy  and  not  sacrifice,"  i.e.  love 
is  better  than  legal  scrupulosity  ;  Matt.  ix.  13,  xii.  7.  The  invariable 
tendency  of  an  easy  and  pride-stimulating  externalism  when  it  is  made 
a  substitute  for  heart-religion  is  the  most  callous  hypocrisy.  The 
Pharisees  were  condemned  not  by  Christ  only  but  by  their  own  Phari- 
saic Talmud,  and  after  B.C.  70  the  very  name  fell  into  such  discredit 
among  the  Jews  themselves  as  a  synonym  for  greed  and  hypocrisy  that 
it  became  a  reproach  and  was  dropped  as  a  title  (Jost,  Gesch.  d. 
ynden.  IV.  76  ;  Gfrorer,  Jahrh.  d.  Hcils,  I.  140  ;  Lightfoot,  Hor,  Hebr. 
on  Matt.  iii.  7). 

33.  A72d  they  said\  St  Luke  here  omits  the  remarkable  fact  that 
the  disciples  of  John,  who  still  formed  a  distinct  body,  joined  the 
Pharisees  in  asking  this  question.  It  is  clear  that  they  were  sometimes 
actuated  by  a  not  unnatural  human  jealousy,  from  which  their  great 
teacher  was  wholly  free  (John  iii.  26),  but  which  Jesus  always  treated 
with  the  utmost  tenderness  (vii.  24 — 28). 

the  disciples  of  John  fast  often']  They  would  naturally  adopt  the 
ascetic  habits  of  the  Baptist. 

and  make  prayers']  Rather,  supplications.  Of  course  the  disciples 
prayed,  but  perhaps  they  did  not  use  so  '  much  speaking '  and  connect 
their  prayers  with  fastings.  The  preservation  of  these  words  by  St 
Luke  alone,  in  spite  of  the  emphasis  which  he  lays  on  prayer,  shews 
his  perfect  iidelity. 

the  disciples  of  the  Pharisees]  Those  who  in  Jewish  writings  are  so 
often   spoken  of  as  the  'pupils  of  the  wise.'     See  on  xviii.    12,    "I 


w.  35,  36.]  ST   LUKE,  V.  123 

them,  Can  ye  make  the  children  of  the  bridechamber  fast, 
while  the  bridegroom  is  with  them?   But  the  days  will  come,  35 
when  the  bridegroom  shall  be  taken  away  from  them,  and 
then  shall  they  fast  in  those  days.     And  he  spake  also  a  36 

fast  twice  in  the  week."  Our  Lord  points  out  how  much  self-seeking 
and  hypocrisy  were  mingled  with  their  fasting,  Matt.  vi.  16,  and  the 
prophets  had  forcibly  taught  the  utter  uselessness  of  an  abstinence  dis- 
sociated from  goodness  and  charity  (Is.  Iviii.  3 — 6 ;  Mic.  vi.  6 — 8 ; 
Amos  V.  21 — 24). 

34.  the  children  of  the  bridechamber]  The  friends  of  the  bride- 
groom— the  paranymphs — who  accompanied  him  to  meet  the  bride  and 
her  maidens  ;  Judg.  xiv.  11.  The  question  would  be  specially  forcible 
to  John's  disciples  who  had  heard  him  speak  of  "the  joy  of  the  friend 
of  the  bridegroom"  (John  iii.  29). 

fast]  St  Matthew  (ix.  1 5)  uses  the  word  *  mourn '  which  makes  the 
antithesis  more  striking  (John  xvi.  20). 

35.  the  days  will  come]     Rather,  but  there  will  come  days. 

■when  the  bridegroom  shall  be  taken  away  from  thetii]  Rather,  and 
When  {koX  A,  B,  D).  Comp.  John  xvi.  16,  "  A  little  while  and  ye 
shall  not  see  me."  The  verb  used — aparthe — occurs  nowhere  else  in 
the  N.T.,  and  clearly  hints  at  a  violent  end.  This  is  memorable  as 
being  the  earliest  recorded  public  intimation  of  His  crucifixion,  of  which 
a  dim  hint  ("  even  so  shall  the  Son  of  man  be  lifted  up  ")  had  been 
given  privately  to  Nicodemus  (John  iii.  14). 

then  shall  they  fast]  As  we  are  told  that  they  did,  Acts  xiii.  2,  3. 
Observe  that  is  not  said,  '  then  shall  ye  be  able  to  insist  on  their  fasting.' 
The  Christian  fasts  would  be  voluntary,  not  compulsory  ;  the  result  of 
a  felt  need,  not  the  observance  of  a  rigid  command.  Our  Lord  never 
entered  fully  into  the  subject  of  fasting,  and  it  is  clear  that  throughout 
the  Bible  it  is  never  enjoined  as  a  frequent  duty,  though  it  is  sanctioned 
and  encouraged  as  an  occasional  means  of  grace.  In  the  Law  only  one 
day  in  the  year — the  Kippur,  or  Day  of  Atonement — was  appointed  as 
a  fast  (Lev.  xvi.  29  ;  Numb.  xxix.  7).  After  the  exile  four  annual  fasts 
hadarisen,but  the  prophets  do  not  enjoin  them  (Zech.  vii.  i — i2,viii.  19), 
nor  did  our  Lord  in  any  way  approve  (or  apparently  practise)  the  two 
weekly  fasts  of  the  Pharisees  ^xviii.  12).  Probably  the  reason  why 
fasting  has  never  been  commanded  as  a  universal  and  constant  duty  is 
that  it  acts  very  differently  on  different  temperaments,  and  according  to 
the  testimony  of  some  who  have  tried  it  most  seriously,  acts  in  some 
cases  as  a  powerful  stimulus  to  temptation.  It  is  remaikable  that  the 
words  '■'■a7id  fasting"  are  probably  the  interpolations  of  an  ascetic  bias 
in  Matt.  xvii.  21;  Mk.  ix.  29;  Acts  x.  30 ;  i  Cor.  vii.  5,  though 
fasting  is  implied  in  Matt.  vi.  16.  Fasting  is  not  commanded  and  is 
not  forbidden.  The  Christian  is  free  (Rom.  xiv.  5),  but  must,  while 
temperate  in  all  things,  do  exactly  that  which  he  finds  most  conducive 
to  his  spiritual  and  moral  welfare.  For  7unu  the  bridegroom  is  not 
taken  from  us  but  is  with  us  (Matt,  xxviii.  20  ;  Ileb.  xiii.  5,  6  ;  Jolin 
xiv.  16,  xvi.  7). 


124  ST  LUKE,  V.  [vv.  37—39. 

parable  unto  them;  No  man  putteth  a  piece  of  a  new  gar- 
ment upon  an  old;  if  otherwise,  then  both  the  new  maketh 
a  rent,  and  the  piece  that  was  taken  out  of  the  new  agreeth 

37  not  with  the  old.     And  no  man  putteth  new  wine  into  old 
bottles;  else  the  new  wine  will  burst  the  bottles,  and  be 

38  spilled,  and  the  bottles  shall  perish.     But  new  wine  must  be 

39  put  into  new  bottles;  and  both  are  preserved.    No  man  also 

36.  apiece  of  a  new  garment  upon  an  old^  Rather,  no  one  rending 
a  patch  from  a  new  garment  putteth  it  upon  an  old  garment.  The 
word  ayj-aas  'rending'  though  omitted  in  our  version  is  found  in 
t<,  A,  B,  D,  L.  Our  Lord  delighted  in  using  these  homely  metaphors 
which  brought  the  truth  within  the  comprehension  of  his  humblest 
hearers.     St  IVIatthew  (ix.  16)  has  'a  patch  of  unteazled  cloth.' 

both  the  new  maketh  a  rent]  Rather,  with  the  best  uncials,  lie  will 
both  rend  the  new.  The  inferior  readings  adopted  by  the  E.  V.  make 
us  lose  sight  of  the  fact  that  there  is  a  treble  mischief  implied,  namely, 
(i)  the  rending  of  the  new  to  patch  the  old  ;  (2)  the  incongruity  of  the 
mixture  ;  (3)  the  increase  of  the  rent  of  the  old.  The  latter  is  men- 
tioned only  by  St  Matthew,  but  is  implied  by  the  bursten  skins  of  the 
next  similitude.  Our  Lord  is  referring  to  the  proposal  to  enforce  the 
ascetic  leanings  of  the  forerunner,  and  the  Pharisaic  regulations  which 
had  become  a  parasitic  growth  on  the  old  dispensation,  upon  the  glad 
simplicity  of  the  new  dispensation.  To  act  thus,  was  much  the  same 
thing  as  using  the  Gospel  by  way  of  a  mere  adjunct  to — a  mere  purple 
patch  upon— the  old  garment  of  the  Law.  The  teaching  of  Christ  was 
a  new  and  seamless  robe  which  would  only  be  spoilt  by  being  rent.  It 
was  impossible  to  tear  a  few  doctrines  and  precepts  from  Christianity, 
and  use  them  as  ornaments  and  improvements  of  Mosaism.  If  this  were 
attempted  (i)  the  Gospel  would  be  maimed  by  the  rending  from  its 
entirety  ;  (2)  the  contrast  between  the  new  and  the  old  system  would 
be  made  more  glaring;  (3)  the  decay  of  the  evanescent  institutions 
would  only  be  violently  accelerated.  Notice  how  distinctly  these  com- 
parisons imply  the  ultimate  abrogation  of  the  Law. 

agreeth  not]     Rather,  will  not  agree  (sumphotiesei). 

37.  w«t7  wine  into  old  bottles]  Rather,  wine-skins.  The  skins  used 
for  holding  wine  were  apt  to  get  seamed  and  cracked,  and  old  wine- 
skins would  tend  to  set  up  the  process  of  fermentation.  They  could 
contain  the  motionless,  not  expand  with  the  fermenting.  To  explain 
this  passage,  see  Excursus  III. 

38.  tiew  wine... into  new  bottles]  Rather,  new  {vioi)  wine  into  fresh 
[Kaivoiis)  wine-skins.  The  new  spirit  requires  fresh  forms  for  its  ex- 
pression and  preservation  ;  the  vigour  of  youth  cannot  be  bound  in  the 
swaddling-bands  of  infancy.  It  is  impossible  to  be  both  'under  the 
Law'  and  'under  grace.'  The  Hebraising  Christians  against  whom  St 
Paul  had  to  wage  his  lifelong  battle — those  Judaisers  who  tried  to  ruin 
his  work  in  Galatia,  Corinth,  and  Rome — had  precisely  failed  to  grasp 
the  meaning  of  these  truths. 


V.  I.]  ST   LUKE,   VI.  125 

having  drunk  old  wme  straightway  desireth  new :   for  he 
saith,  The  old  is  better. 

Ch.  VI.     I — 5.     The  Disciples  pluck  the  ears  of  corn  on  the 
Sabbath.     (Matt.  xii.  1—8;  Mk.  ii.  23 — 28.) 

And  it  came  to  pass  on  the  second  sabbath  after  the  first,  6 

39.  having  drunk  old]  This  verse  is  peculiar  to  St  Luke,  and  is 
a  characteristic  of  his  fondness  for  all  that  is  most  tender  and  gracious. 
It  is  an  expression  of  considerateness  towards  the  inveterate  prejudices 
engendered  by  custom  and  system  :  a  kind  allowance  for  the  reluctance 
of  the  Pharisees  and  the  disciples  of  John  to  abandon  the  old  systems  to 
which  they  had  been  accustomed.  The  spirit  for  which  our  Lord  here 
(as  it  were)  offers  an  apology  is  the  deep-rooted  human  tendency  to  prefer 
old  habits  to  new  lights,  and  stereotyped  formulae  to  fresh  truths.  It  is 
the  unprogressive  spirit  which  relies  simply  on  authority,  precedent, 
and  tradition,  and  says,  '  It  was  good  enough  for  my  father,  it  is  good 
enough  for  me ;'  '  It  will  last  my  time,'  &c.  The  expression  itself 
seems  to  have  been  a  Jewish  proverb  (N'cdan'm,  f.  66.  i). 

TAe  old  is  better]  Rather,  The  old  is  excellent  {ckrestos  X,  B,  L,  &c.). 
The  reading  of  the  E.  V.,  chrestoteros,  is  inferior,  since  the  man,  havmg 
declined  to  taste  the  new,  can  institute  no  comparison  between  it  and 
the  old.  The  wine  which  at  the  beginning  has  been  set  forth  to  him  is 
good  (John  ii.  ro),  and  he  assumes  that  only  'that  which  is  worse'  can 
follow. 

Ch.  VI.  1 — 5.    The  Disciples  pluck  the  ears  of  corn  on  the 
Sabbath.     (Matt.  xii.  i — 8;  Mk.  ii.  23 — 28.) 

1.  on  the  second  sabbath  after  the  first]  Better,  on  the  second-first 
sabbath.  St  Luke  gives  this  unique  note  of  time  without  a  word  to 
explain  it,  and  scholars  have  not — and  probably  never  will — come  to  an 
agreement  as  to  its  exact  meaning.  The  only  analogy  to  the  word  is 
the  denterodekate  or  second  tenth  in  Jerome  on  Ezekiel  xlv.  Of  the 
ten  or  more  suggested  explanations,  omitting  those  which  are  wholly 
arbitrary  and  impossible,  we  may  mention  the  following. 

a.     The  first  Sabbath  of  the  second  month  (Wetstein). 

^.  The  first  Sabbath  after  the  second  day  of  the  Passover  (Scaliger, 
Ewald,  De  Wette,  Neander,  Keim,  &c.). 

7.  The  first  Sabbath  of  the  second  year  in  the  Sabbatic  cycle  of 
seven  years  (Wieseler). 

5.  The  first  Sabbath  of  the  Ecclesiastical  year.  The  Jewish  year  had 
two  beginnings,  the  civil  year  began  in  Tisri  (mid-September) ;  the  eccle- 
siastical year  in  Nisan  (mid-March). 

The  first-first  Sabbath  may  therefore  have  been  a  name  given  to  the 
first  Sabbath  of  the  civil  year  in  autumn;  and  second-fust  to  the  first 
Sabbath  of  the  ecclesiastical  year  in  spring  (Cappell,  Godet). 

e.  The  Pentecostal  Sabbath— the  Paschal  Sabbath  being  regarded 
as  the  protoproton  or  first  first  (Corn,  k  Lapidc). 


126  ST   LUKE,  VI.  [v.  2. 

that   he  went  through  the   corn  fields;   and  his   disciples 

plucked  the  ears  of  corn,  and  did  eat,  rubbing  them  in  their 

2  hands.     And  certain  of  the  Pharisees  said  unto  them,  Why 

These  and  similar  explanations  must  be  left  as  unsupported  conjec- 
tures in  the  absence  of  any  decisive  trace  of  such  Sabbatical  nomen- 
clature among  the  Jews.     But  we  may  remark  that 

(i)  The  reading  itself  cannot  be  regarded  as  absolutely  certain,  since 
it  is  omitted  in  K,  B,  L,  and  in  several  important  versions,  including  the 
Syriac  and  Coptic.  Hence  of  modern  editors  Tregelles  and  Meyer 
omit  it;  Lachmann  and  Alford  put  it  in  brackets.  [Its  insertion  may 
then  be  conceivably  accounted  for  by  marginal  annotations.  Thus  if  a 
copyist  put  'first'  in  the  margin  with  the  reference  to  the  ^^otker" 
Sabbath  of  v.  6  it  would  have  been  corrected  by  some  succeeding  copyist 
into  'second'  with  reference  to  iv.  31 ;  and  the  two  may  have  been 
combined  in  hopeless  perplexity.  If  it  be  said  that  this  is  unlikely,  it 
seems  at  least  equally  unlikely  that  it  should  either  wilfully  or  acciden- 
tally have  been  omitted  if  it  formed  part  of  the  original  text.  And  why 
should  St  Luke  writing  for  Gentiles  use  without  explanation  a  word  to 
them  perfectly  meaningless  and  so  highly  technical  that  in  all  the  folio 
volumes  of  Jewish  literature  there  is  not  a  single  trace  of  it?] 

(2)  The  exact  discovery  of  what  the  word  means  is  only  important 
as  a  matter  of  archaeology.  Happily  there  can  be  no  question  as  to  the 
time  of  year  at  which  the  incident  took  place.  The  narrative  seems  to 
imply  that  the  ears  which  the  disciples  plucked  and  rubbed  were  ears  of 
wheat  not  of  barley.  Now  the  first  ripe  sheaf  of  barley  was  offered  at 
the  Passover  (in  spring)  and  the  first  ripe  wheat  sheaf  at  Pentecost 
(fifty  days  later).  Wheat  vi'ould  ripen  earlier  in  the  rich  deep  hollow  of 
Gennesareth.  In  any  case  therefore  the  time  of  year  was  spring  or  early 
summer,  and  the  Sabbath  (whether  the  reading  be  correct  or  not)  was 
probably  some  Sabbath  in  the  month  Nisan. 

hewent  through  the  cornfields']  Comp.  Matt.  xii.  1—8;  Mk.  ii.  23 — 28. 
St  Mark  uses  the  curious  expression  that  ^  He  tvent  along  through  the 
corn  fields''  apparently  in  a  path  between  two  fields — "and  His  disciples 
began  to  make  a  way  by  plucking  the  corn  ears."  All  that  we  can  infer 
from  this  is  that  Jesus  was  walking  apart  from  His  Apostles,  and  that 
He  did  not  Himself  pluck  the  corn. 

plucked  the  ears  0/ corn]  This  shews  their  hunger  and  poverty,  espe- 
cially if  the  corn  was  barley.  They  were  permitted  by  the  Law  to  do 
this — "When  thou  comest  into  the  standing-corn  of  thy  neighbour,  then 
thou  mayest  pluck  the  ears  with  thine  hand,"  Deut.  xxiii.  25.  St 
Matthew  in  his  '^begaft  to  pluck"  shews  how  eagerly  and  instantly  the 
Pharisees  clutched  at  the  chance  of  finding  fault. 

2.  certain  of  the  Fhariseesi  On  the  Jewish  sects  see  Excursus  VI.  As 
the  chronological  sequence  of  the  incident  is  uncertain,  these  may  be 
some  of  the  spy- Pharisees  who  as  His  ministry  advanced  dogged  His 
steps  (Matt.  xv.  i ;  Mk.  iii.  22,  vii.  i),  in  the  base  and  demorahsing 
desire  to  convict  Him  of  heresy  or  violation  of  the  Law.  Perhaps  they 
wished  to  see  whether  he  would  exceed  the  regulated  Sabbath  day's 


w.  3, 4-]  ST   LUKE,   VI.  127 

do  ye  that  which  is  not  lawful  to  do  on  the  sabbath  days? 
And  Jesus  answering  them  said,  Have  ye  not  read  so  much  3 
as  this,  what  David  did,  when  himself  was  a  hungred,  and 
they  which  were  with  him ;  how  he  went  into  the  house  of  4 
God,  and  did  take  and  eat  the  shewbread,  and  gave  also  to 

journey  of  2000  cubits  (Ex.  xvi.  29).     We  have  already  met  with  some 
of  the  carping  criticisms  dictated  by  their  secret  hate,  v.  14,  21,  30. 

Why  do  yc\  In  St  Mark  the  question  is  scornfully  addressed  to 
Tesus.  "See  wiry  do  they  Ao  on  the  sabbath  day  that  which  is  not 
lawful?" 

that  which  is  not  lawftil  to  do'\  The  point  was  this.  Since  the  Law 
had  said  that  the  Jews  were  "to  do  no  manner  of  work"  on  the  Sabbath, 
the  Oral  Law  had  laid  down  thirty-nine  principal  prohibitions  which  were 
assigned  to  the  authority  of  the  Great  Synagogue  and  which  were  called 
abhoth  'fathers'  or  chief  rules.  From  these  were  deduced  a  vast 
multitude  of  ioldoth  'descendants'  or  derivative  rules.  Now  'reaping' 
and  'threshing'  on  the  sabbath  day  were  forbidden  by  the  abhoth  ;  and 
by  the  toldoth  it  was  asserted  that  plucking  corn-ears  was  a  kind  of 
reaping,  and  nibbing  them  a  kind  of  threshing.  But  while  they  paid 
servile  attention  to  these  trivialities  the  Pharisees  "omitted  the  weightier 
matters  of  the  law,  judgment,  mercy,  and  faith,"  Matt.  xxii.  23).  The 
vitality  of  these  artificial  notions  among  the  Jews  is  extraordinary. 
Abarbanel  relates  that  when  in  1492  the  Jews  were  expelled  from  Spain, 
and  were  forbidden  to  enter  the  city  of  Fez  lest  they  should  cause  a 
famine,  they  lived  on  grass ;  yet  even  in  this  state  '  religiously  avoided 
the  violation  of  their  sabbath  by  plucking  the  grass  with  their  hands'  To 
avoid  this  they  took  the  much  more  laborious  method  of  grovelling  on 
their  knees,  and  cropping  it  with  their  teeth ! 

3.  Have  ye  not  read  so  much  as  tJiis'X  Rather,  Did  ye  not  even  read 
this?  He  answers  them  in  one  of  their  own  formulae,  but  with  a  touch 
of  irony  at  their  ignorance,  which  we  trace  also  in  the  "Did  ye  never 
read?"  of  St  Mark;— ww^r  though  ye  are  Scribes  and  devote  all 
your  time  to  the  Scriptures?  Perhaps  the  reproving  question  may  have 
derived  an  additional  sting  from  the  fact  that  the  very  passage  which 
our  Lord  quoted  (i  Sam.  xxi.  i — 6)  had  been  read  on  that  Sabbath  as 
the  Haphtarah  of  the  day.  The  service  for  the  day  must  have  been  over, 
because  no  meal  was  eaten  till  then.  This  fact  does  not  however  help 
us  to  determine  which  was  the  second-first  Sabbath,  because  the  present 
Jewish  lectionary  is  of  later  date. 

and  they  which  were  with  him]  That  the  day  on  which  this  occurred 
was  a  Sabbath  results  from  the  fact  that  it  was  only  on  the  Sabbath  that 
the  new  shewbread  was  placed  on  the  table.  Lev.  xxiv.  8,  9. 

4.  did  take  and  eaf]  St  Mark  says  that  this  was  "in  the  days  of 
Abiathar  the  high  priest."  The  priest  who  actually  gave  the  bread  to 
David  was  Ahimelech,  the  father  of  Abiathar. 

the  she%vbread'\  Literally,  'loaves  of  setting  forth;'  "continual 
bread,"  Numb.  iv.  7.    "Bread  of  the  Face,"  i.e.  set  before  the  Presence 


128  ST   LUKE,   VI.  [v.  5. 

them  that  were  with  him;  which  it  is  not  lawful  to  eat  but 
5  for  the  priests  alone?     And  he  said  unto  them,  That  the 
Son  of  man  is  Lord  also  of  the  sabbath. 

of  God,  Lev.  xxiv.  6,  7.  Comp.  "Angel  of  the  Face"  Lev.  xxiv.  6 — 8; 
Ex.  XXV.  30,  xxix.  33.  They  were  twelve  unleavened  loaves  sprinkled 
with  frankincense  set  on  a  little  golden  table. 

•which  it  is  not  lawful  to  eat  but  for  the  priests  alone]  "It  shall  be 
Aaron's  and  his  sons :  and  they  shall  eat  it  in  the  holy  place :  for  it  is 
most  holy  unto  him,"  Lev.  xxiv.  9.  Thus  David,  their  favourite  saint 
and  hero,  had  openly  and  fearlessly  violated  the  letter  of  the  Law  with 
the  full  sanction  of  the  High  Priest,  on  the  plea  of  necessity, — in  other 
words  because  mercy  is  better  than  sacrifice;  and  because  the  higher 
law  of  moral  obligation  must  always  supersede  the  lower  law  of  ceremo- 
nial. This  was  a  proof  by  way  of  fact  from  the  Kethiibim  or  sacred 
books  {Hagiographa) ;  in  St  Matthew  our  Lord  adds  a  still  more  striking 
argument  by  way  of  principle  from  the  Law  itself.  By  its  own  provi- 
sions the  Priests  in  the  laborious  work  of  offering  sacrifices  violated 
the  Sabbath  and  yet  were  blameless.  Hence  the  later  Jews  deduced 
the  remarkable  rule  that  "there  is  no  sabbatism  in  the  Temple," 
(Numb,  xxviii.  9).  And  Jesus  added  "  But  I  say  to  you  there  is  some- 
thing greater  [nel^ov)  than  the  Temple  here."  The  appeal  to  their  own 
practice  is  given  in  xiv.  5. 

5.  The  Son  of  tnan  is  Lord  also  of  the  sabbath]  Rather,  '  Lord 
even  of  the  Sabbath,'  though  you  regard  the  Sabbath  as  the  most  im- 
portant command  of  the  whole  Law.  In  St  Mark  we  have  further,  "  the 
Sabbath  was  made  for  man,  and  not  man  for  the  Sabbath." 

This  was  one  of  no  less  than  six  great  occasions  on  which  the  fury 
of  the  Pharisees  had  been  excited  by  the  open  manner  in  which  our 
Lord  set  aside  as  frivolous  and  unauthoritative  the  burdens  which  the 
Oral  Law  had  attached  to  the  Sabbath.  The  other  instances  are  the 
healing  of  the  cripple  at  Bethesda  (John  v.  i  — 16);  the  healing  of  the 
withered  hand  (Lk.  vi.  i — 11);  of  the  blind  man  at  Siloam  (John  ix. 
I — 41);  of  the  paralytic  woman  (Lk.  xiii.  14 — 17);  and  of  the  man 
with  the  dropsy  (Lk.  xiv.  i — 6).  In  laying  His  axe  at  the  root  of  a 
proud  and  ignorant  Sabbatarianism,  He  was  laying  His  axe  at  the 
root  of  all  that  "miserable  micrology"  which  they  had  been  ac- 
customed to  take  for  religious  life.  They  had  turned  the  Sabbath 
from  a  holy  delight  into  a  revolting  bondage.  The  Apocryphal  Gospels 
are  following  a  true  tradition  in  the  prominence  which  they  give  to 
Sabbath  healing,  as  a  charge  against  Plim  on  His  trial  before  the 
Sanhedrin. 

In  the  famous  Cambridge  Manuscript  (D),  the  Codex  Bezae,  there 
is  here  added  the  following  passage  :  "  On  the  same  day,  seeing 
one  working  on  the  Sabbath,  He  said  to  him,  O  man,  if  indeed  thou 
knowest  what  thou  doest,  thou  art  blessed:  but  if  thou  knotvest  not,  thou 
art  accursed,  atid  a  transgressor  of  the  Law."  This  very  remarkable 
addition  cannot  be  accepted  as  genuine  on  the  authority  of  a  single  MS., 
and  can  only  be  regarded  as  one  of  the  agrapha  dogmata,  or  'unrecorded 


w.  6—9.]  ST    LUKE,  VI.  129 

6 — II.      The  Healing  of  the  Man  with  the  Withered  Hand. 

And  it  came  to  pass  also  on  another  sabbath,  that  he  en-  g 
tered  into  the  synagogue  and  taught:  and  there  was  a  man 
whose  right  hand  was  withered.     And  the  scribes  and  Pha-  7 
risees  watched  him,  whether  he  would  heal  on  the  sabbath 
day;  that  they  might  find  an  accusation  against  him.     But  8 
he  knew  their  thoughts,  and  said  to  the  man  which  had  the 
withered  hand,  Rise  up,  and  stand  y^rM  in  the  midst.     And 
he  arose  and  stood  forth.     Then  said  Jesus  unto  them,  I  9 
will  ask  you  one  thing;  Is  it  lawful  on  the  sabbath  days  to 

traditional  sayings'  of  our  Lord.  The  meaning  of  the  story  is  that  'if 
thy  work  is  of  faith, — if  thou  art  thoroughly  persuaded  in  thy  own 
mind — thou  art  acting  with  true  insight;  but  if  thy  work  is  tiot  of  faith, 
it  is  sin.'  See  Rom.  xiv.  22,  23;  i  Cor.  viii.  i.  What  renders  the 
incident  improbable  is  that  no  Jew  would  dare  openly  to  violate  the 
Law  by  luoj-kiiig  on  the  Sabbath,  an  act  which  rendered  him  legally 
liable  to  be  stoned.  The  anecdote,  as  Grotius  thought,  may  have  been 
written  in  the  margin  by  some  follower  of  Marcion,  who  rejected  the 
inspiration  of  the  Old  Testament. 

6—11.     The  Healing  of  the  Man  with  the  Withered  Hand. 

6.  into  the  synagogue]  Matt.  xii.  9 — 14;  Mk.  iii.  i — 6.  None  of 
the  Evangelists  enable  us  to  decide  on  the  time  or  place  when  the 
healing  occurred. 

there  was  a  man  whose  right  hand  was  withered]  Obviously  he  had 
come  in  the  hope  of  being  healed ;  and  even  this  the  Pharisees  regarded 
as  reprehensible,  xiii.  14.  The  Gospel  of  the  Ebionites  adds  that  he 
was  a  stonemason,  maimed  by  an  accident,  and  that  he  implored  Jesus 
to  heal  him,  that  he  might  not  have  to  beg  his  bread  (Jerome  on  Matt. 

xii-  lo)-  „, 

7.  the  scribes  and  Phai-isees  watched  him]  xx.  20.  The  followers 
of  Shammai,  at  that  epoch  the  most  powerful  of  the  Pharisaic  Schools, 
were  so  strict  about  the  Sabbath,  that  they  held  it  a  violation  of  the 
Law  to  tend  the  sick,  or  even  to  console  them  on  that  day.  Hence 
what  the  Pharisees  were  waiting  to  see  was  whether  He  was  going  to 
side  with  them  in  their  Sabbatic  views,  or  with  the  more  lax  Sadducees, 
whom  the  people  detested.  If  he  did  the  latter,  they  thought  that  they 
could  ruin  the  popularity  of  the  Great  Prophet.  But  m  this,  as  in  every 
other  instance,  (i)  our  Lord  absolutely  refuses  to  be  guided  by  the 
popular  orthodoxy  of  the  hour,  however  tyrannous  and  ostensibly  de- 
duced from  Scripture;  and  (2)  ignores  every  consideration  of  party  in 
order  to  appeal  to  principles. 

8.  their  thons:hts]     Rather,  their  reasonings.  . 

9.  I  will  ask  you  one  thimr]  Rather,  I  further  ask  you.  Implying 
that  He  had  already  addressed  some  questions  to  Iheir  consciences  011 
this  subject,  or  perhaps  because  they  had  asked  Hun,  'Is  U  lawUil  to 
heal  on  the  Sabbath?'     Matt.  xii.  10. 

ST  LUKE  9 


I30  ST   LUKE,  VI.  [vv.  10—12. 

10  do  good,  or  to  do  evil?  to  save  life,  or  to  destroy  itl  And 
looking  round  about  upon  them  all,  he  said  unto  the  man, 
Stretch  forth  thy  hand.     And  he  did  so :  and  his  hand  was 

11  restored  whole  as  the  other.  And  they  were  filled  with 
madness;  and  communed  one  with  another  what  they  might 
do  to  Jesus. 

12 — 19.     The  Selection  of  the  Twelve  Apostles. 

12  And  it  came  to  pass  in  those  days,  that  he  went  out  into 
a  mountain  to  pray,  and  continued  all  night  in  prayer  to 

to  do  good,  or  to  do  evWl  He  was  intending  to  work  a  miracle  for 
good ;  they  were  secretly  plotting  to  do  harm, — their  object  being,  if 
possible,  to  put  Him  to  death.  They  received  this  question  in  stolid 
silence.     Mk.  iii.  4. 

to  save  life']     Rather,  a  life. 

10.  looking  round  about  upon  them  all]  St  Mark  adds  '  with  anger, 
hemg grieved  a.t  the  callousness  {porosift,  Rom.  xi.  25)  of  their  hearts.' 

Stretch  forth  thy  hand]     Compare  i  K.  xiii.  4. 

11.  they  were  filled  with  madness]  Rather,  unreasonableness.  The 
word  implies  senselessness,  the  frenzy  of  obstinate  prejudice.  It  ad- 
mirably characterises  the  state  of  ignorant  hatred  which  is  disturbed  in 
the  fixed  conviction  of  its  own  infallibility.  (2  Tim.  iii.  9.)  The  two 
first  Sabbath  miracles  (iv.  35,  39)  had  excited  no  opposition,  because 
none  of  these  religious  spies  and  heresy-hunters  (xx.  20)  were  present. 

communed]  Rather,  began  to  commune.  This  public  miracle  and 
public  refutation  clinched  their  hatred  against  Him  (Matt.  xii.  14. 
Comp.  John  xi.  53). 

one  with  another]  And,  St  Mark  adds,  with  the  Herodians.  This 
shews  the  extremity  of  their  hate,  for  hitherto  the  Pharisees  had  re- 
garded the  Herodians  as  a  half-apostate  political  party,  more  nearly 
allied  to  the  Sadducees,  and  ready  with  them  to  sacrifice  the  true 
interests  of  their  country  and  faith.  St  Matthew  (xii.  14)  says  that  they 
actually  "held  a  council  against  Him." 

what  they  tnight  do]  The  form  used — what  is  called  the  Aeolic 
aorist — implies  extreme  perplexity. 

12—19.     The  Selection  of  the  Twelve  Apostles. 

12.  in  those  days]  wearied  with  their  incessant  espionage  and  opposi- 
tion. Probably  these  two  last  incidents  belong  to  a  later  period  in  the 
ministry,  following  the  Sermon  on  the  Mount  (as  in  St  Matthew)  and 
the  bright  acceptable  Galilaean  year  of  our  Lord's  work.  In  any  case 
we  have  here,  from  vi.  12 — viii.  56,  a  splendid  cycle  of  Messianic 
work  in  Galilee  in  the  gladdest  epoch  of  Christ's  ministry. 

into  a  mountain]  Rather,  "into  tbe  mountain,"  with  special  refer- 
ence to  the  Kurn  Hattin,  or  Horns  of  Hattin,  the  traditional  and 
almost  certainly  the  actual  scene  of  the  Sermon  on  the  Mount. 


vv.  13,  1 4-] 


ST   LUKE,  VI. 


131 


God.     And  when  it  was  day,  he  called  unto  hiin  his  disci-  13 
pies :  and  of  them  he  chose  twelve,  whom  also  he  named 
apostles;  Simon,  (whom  he  also  named  Peter,)  and  Andrew  m 

in  prayer  to  God\  The  expression  used  is  peculiar.  It  is  literally 
"in  the  prayer  of  God."  Hence  some  have  supposed  that  it  should  be 
rendered  "in  the  Prayer-House  of  God."  The  vioxdi proseiuh? n\&zxi\.  in 
Greek  not  only  'prayer,'  but  also  sprayer-house,^  as  in  the  question  to 
a  poor  person  in  Juvenal,  "In  what  p7-oseucha  am  I  to  look  for  you?" 
The  proseuchae  vi^ere  merely  walled  spaces  without  roof,  set  apart  for 
purposes  of  worship  where  there  was  no  synagogue,  as  at  Philippi  (Acts 
xvi.  13).  There  is  however  here  an  insuperable  difficulty  in  thus 
understanding  the  words ;  for  proseuchae  were  generally,  if  not  in- 
variably, in  close  vicinity  to  running  water  (Jos.  Antt.  Xiv.  10,  §  23), 
for  purposes  of  ritual  ablution,  nor  do  we  ever  hear  of  their  being  built 
on  hills.  On  the  other  hand,  if  rh  6pos  mean  only  '  the  mountainous 
district,'  this  objection  is  not  fatal.  For  another  instance  of  a  night 
spent  on  a  mountain  in  prayer,  see  Matt.  xiv.  23. 

13.  he  chose  twelve]  doubtless  with  a  reference  to  the  twelve  tribes 
of  Israel. 

7v/iom  also  he  named  apostles']  The  word  means  primarily  'mes- 
sengers,' as  in  Phil.  ii.  25.  It  is  a  translation  of  the  Hebrew  Sheloochirn, 
who  often  acted  as  emissaries  of  the  Synagogue  (comp.  Mk.  iii.  14,  Iva. 
dTToa-T^Wri  avTovs).  In  the  other  Gospels  it  only  occurs  in  this  sense  in 
Mk.  vi.  30;  Matt.  x.  2;  and  only  once  in  the  LXX.,  i  K.  xiv.  6.  It 
has  two  usages  in  the  N.  T,  one  general  (John  xiii.  16;  Rom.  xvi.  7; 
Heb.  iii.  i)>and  one  special  (i  Cor.  ix.  i  and  passim).  The  call  of  the 
Apostles  was  now  necessitated  both  by  the  widespread  fame  of  our 
Lord,  and  the  deadly  animosity  already  kindled  agamst  Him.  Their 
training  soon  became  the  most  important  part  of  His  work  on  earth. 

14.  Simon]  Lists  of  the  twelve  Apostles  are  given  in  four  passages 
of  Scripture  in  the  following  order : 


Matt.  X.  2- 
Simon 
Andrew 
James 
John 


Mk.  ni. 
Simon 
James 
John 
Andrew 


16 — 19. 


Lk.  vi. 
Simon 
Andrew 
James 
John 


14- 


-16. 


Acts  1. 
Peter 
James 
John 
Andrew 


t3- 


Philip 

Bartholomew 
Thomas 
Matthew 


Philip 

Bartholomew 
Matthew 
Thomas 


James  of  Al- 

phaeus 
Lebbaeus 
Simon  the  Ka- 

nanite 
Judas  Iscariot 


James  of  Al- 

phaeus 
Thaddaeus 
Simon  the  Ka- 

nanite 
Judas  Iscariot 


Philip 

Bartholomew 
Matthew 
Thomas 

James  of  Al- 

phaeus 
Simon  Zelotes 
Jude  of  James 

Judas  Iscariot 


Philip 
Thomas 
IJartliolonicw 
Matthew 

James  of  Al- 

phaeiis 
Simon  Zelotes 
Jude  of  James 

Judas  Iscariot 

9—2 


132  ST  LUKE,  VI.  [v.  15. 

IS- his  brother,  James  and  John,  Philip  and  Bartholomew,  Mat- 
In  reading  these  four  independent  lists  several  facts  are  remark- 
able. 

i.  Each  list  falls  into  three  tetrads,  and  the  last  two  tetrads 
are  arranged  in  slightly  varying  pairs.  "The  Apostolic  College  was 
formed  of  three  concentric  circles— each  less  closely  intimate  with  Jesus 
than  the  last."     Godet. 

ii.  In  each  tetrad  the  names  refer  to  the  same  persons  though  the 
order  is  different. 

iii.  In  each  list  the  first  of  each  tetrad  is  the  same — viz.  Simon, 
Philip,  and  James  son  of  Alphaeus;  not  as  'supreme  among  inferior,  but 
as  first  among  equals.' 

iv.  In  each  list  Simon  stands  first;  and  Judas  Iscariot  last,  as  the 
'son  of  perdition.' 

v.  Not  only  do  the  Apostles  seem  to  be  named  in  the  order  of  their 
eminence  and  nearness  to  Christ,  but  the  first  four  seem  to  stand  alone 
(in  the  Acts  the  first  four  are  separated  by  "and;"  the  rest  are  ranged  in 
pairs).  The  first  four  were  \\\g.  eklektoti  eklektoteroi — the  chosen  of  the 
chosen;  the  ecclesiola  in  ecclesia.  Andrew,  who  is  named  last  in  St  Mark 
and  the  Acts,  though  belonging  to  the  inmost  band  of  Apostles  (Mk. 
xiii.  3)  and  though  the  earliest  of  them  all  (John  i.  40),  was  yet  less  highly 
honoured  than  the  other  three  (who  are  the  OeoKoyiKuiTaToi  at  the  heahng 
of  Jairus's  daughter,  Mk.  v.  37  ;  at  the  Transfiguration,  Matt.  xvii.  i ;  and 
in  Gethsemane,  Matt.  xxvi.  37).  He  seems  to  have  been  a  link  of  com- 
munication between  the  first  and  second  tetrads  (John  xii.  22,  vi.  8). 

vi.  The  first  five  Apostles  were  of  Bethsaida;  and  all  the  others 
seem  to  have  been  Galilaeans  with  the  single  exception  of  Judas  Iscariot, 
who  belonged  to  a  Jewish  town  (see  vs.  16).  The  only  Greek  names 
are  those  of  Philip  and  Andrew  (see  John  xii.  21,  22).  At  this  time 
however  many  Jews  bore  Greek  names. 

vii.  In  the  second  tetrad  it  may  be  regarded  as  certain  that  Bartho- 
lomew (the  son  of  Tolmai)  is  the  disciple  whom  St  John  calls  Natha- 
nael.  He  may  possibly  have  been  Philip's  brother.  St  Matthew  puts 
his  own  name  last,  and  adds  the  title  of  reproach  the  tax-gatherer.  In 
the  two  other  Evangelists  he  precedes  St  Thomas.  The  name  Thomas 
merely  means  'a  twin'  (Didymus),  and  one  tradition  says  that  he  was 
a  twin-brother  of  Matthew,  and  that  his  name  too  was  Jude  (Euseb.  H. 
E.  I.  13). 

viii.  In  the  third  tetrad  we  find  one  Apostle  with  three  names.  His 
real  name  was  Jude,  but  as  there  was  already  one  Jude  among  the  Apo- 
stles, and  as  it  was  the  commonest  of  Jewish  names,  and  as  there  was  also 
a  Jude  who  was  one  of  the  '  brethren  of  the  Lord,'  he  seems  to  have  two 
surnames — Lebbaeus,  ixom  lebh,  'heart, 'and  Thaddaetis  (another  form  of 
Theudas,  Acts  v.  36),  from  Thad,  'bosom' — possibly,  as  some  have  con- 
jectured, from  the  warmth  and  tenderness  of  his  disposition.  (Very  few 
follow  Clemens  of  Alexandria  and  Evvald  in  trying  to  identify  Lebbaeus 
and  Levi.)  This  disciple  is  called  by  St  Luke  (viz.  here  and  in  Acts 
i-  13)  "Jude  of  James,"  or  "James's  Jude,"  and  the  English  Version 


V.  15-]  ST   LUKE,   VI. 


133 


thevv  and  Thomas,  James  the  son  of  Alpheus,  and  Simon 

supplies  the  word  "brother."  There  is  howover  no  more  decisive  reason 
to  supply  "brother"  (which  is  at  any  rate  a  very  unusual  ellipse)  than  in 
the  former  verse,  where  James  is  called  "James  of  Alphaeus"  {C/ialpai, 
Klopa,  John  xix.  25,  perhaps  also  Kleopas  (xxiv.  18),  since  Jews  often 
Graecised  the  form  of  their  names).  This  three-named  disciple  was  pro- 
bably a  son  of  James,  and  therefore  a  grandson  of  Alphaeus,  and  a 
nephew  of  Matthew  and  Thomas.  James  the  son  of  Alphaeus  is  some- 
times called  ^^tke  Less;''  hut  this  seems  to  be  a  mistaken  rendering  of 
6  fiiKpbs  (Mk.  XV.  40),  which  means  '  the  skori  of  stature.'  The  other 
James  is  never  called  'the  Great.' 

ix.  Simon  Zelotes  is  called  by  St  iVIatthew  'the  Kananite'  (6  Kai'a- 
viTT]s),  or  according  to  the  better  readings  '  the  Kananaean.'  The  word 
does  not  mean  "Canaanite,"  as  our  Version  incorrectly  gives  it,  nor  yet 
'inhabitant  of  Kana  in  Galilee,'  but  means  the  same  thing  as  'the 
Zealot,'  from  Kinetih,  'zeal.'  He  had  therefore  once  belonged  to  the 
sect  of  terrible  fanatics  who  thought  any  deed  of  violence  justifiable  for 
the  recovery  of  national  freedom,  and  had  been  one  of  the  wild  followers 
of  Judas  the  Gaulonite.  (Jos.  B.  y.  iv.  3,  §  9,  and  passim.)  Their 
name  was  derived  from  i  Mace.  ii.  50,  where  the  dying  Mattatliias,  father 
of  Judas  Maccabaeus,  says  to  the  Assidaeans  [Chasidim,  i.e.  'all  such  as 
were  voluntarily  devoted  to  the  law')  "Be  ye  zealous  for  the  Law,  and 
give  your  lives  for  the  covenant  of  your  fathers "  (comp.  1  Mace.  iv. 
2).  It  shews  our  Lord's  divine  wisdom  and  fearless  universality  of  love 
that  he  should  choose  for  Apostles  two  persons  who  had  once  been  at 
such  deadly  opposition  as  a  tax-gatherer  and  a  zealot. 

X.  For  "Judas  Iscariot  who  also  betrayed  him"  St  Luke  uses  the 
milder  description,  '■^ which  also  was  the  traitor,''''  or  rather  who  also 
became  a  traitor.  Iscariot  has  nothing  to  do  with  askara,  'strangula- 
tion,' or  sheker,  'lie,'  but  is  in  all  ^^xo\ya^:)\\\^.y  Eesh  Kerioth,  'man  of 
Kerioth,'  just  as  Istobos  stands  in  Josephus  [Antt.  vii.  6,  §  i)  for  '  man 
of  Tob.'  Kerioth  (Josh.  xv.  25)  is  perhajis  Kiiryetein,  ten  miles  from 
Hebron,  in  the  southern  border  of  Judah.  If  the  reading  "Iscariot"  is 
right  in  John  vi.  71,  xiii.  26  (X,  B,  C,  G,  L),  as  applied  also  to  Simon 
Zelotes,  then,  since  Judas  is  called  "son  of  Simon"  (John  vi.  71),  the 
last  pair  of  Apostles  were  father  and  son.  If  Judas  Iscariot  had  ever 
shared  the  wild  Messianic  patriotism  of  his  father  it  would  [lartly 
account  for  the  recoil  of  disgust  and  disappointment  which  helped  to 
ruin  his  earthly  mind  when  he  saw  that  he  had  staked  all  in  the  cause 
of  one  who  was  rejected  and  despised. 

xi.  It  is  a  deeply  interesting  fact,  if  it  be  a  fact  (and  although  it 
cannot  be  made  out  with  certainty  because  it  depends  on  data  which  arc 
conjectural,  and  on  tradition  which-  is  liable  to  error— it  is  still  far  from 
improbable)  that  so  many  of  the  Apostles  were  related  to  each  other. 
Simon  and  Andrew  were  brothers;  James  and  John  were  brothers,  and, 
if  Salome  was  a  sister  of  the  Virgin  (comp.  Mk.  xv.  40,  John  xix.  25), 
they  were  first  cousins  of  our  Lord;  Philip  and  Bartholomew  may  have 
been  brothers;   Thomas,   Matthew,  and  James  were  brothers  and  hrsl 


134  ST   LUKE,  VI.  [w.  i6,  17. 

16  called  Zelotes,  and  Judas  the  brother  of  James,  and  Judas 
Iscariot,  which  also  was  the  traitor. 

And  he  came  down  with  them,   and  stood  in  the  plain, 


17 


cousins  of  our  Lord;  Lebbaeus,  or  'Jude  of  James,'  was  His  second 
cousin;  Simon  Zelotes  and  Judas  Iscariot  were  father  and  son.  Thus 
no  less  than  half  of  the  Apostles  would  have  been  actually  related  to 
our  Lord,  although  His  brethren  did  not  believe  on  Him  (John  vii.  5). 
The  difficulty  however  of  being  sure  of  these  combinations  rises  in  part 
from  the  paucity  of  Jewish  names,  and  therefore  the  extreme  common- 
ness of  Simon,  Jude,  James,  &c. 

xii.  The  separate  incidents  in  which  individual  Apostles  are  men- 
tioned are  as  follows : 

Peter:  Prominent  throughout ;  xii.  41,  xxii.  31;  Matt.  xvi.  i6,xvii.24, 
xix.  27,  &c. 

James,)     Both  prominent  throughout.  Boanerges ;  calling  down  fire ; 

John  :  \         petition  for  precedence,  &c. 

James  was  the  first  Apostolic  martyr;  John  the  last  survivor  (Acts  xii. 
2;  John  xxi.  11). 

Andrew :  the  first  disciple,  John  i.  40 ;  with  Jesus  on  Olivet,  Mk. 
xiii.  3. 

Philip:  "Follow  me,"  John  i.  43;  his  frankness,  John  vi.  7;  the 
Greeks,  id.  xii.  22  ;  "shew  us  the  Father,"  id.  xiv.  8. 

Bartholomew :  "an  Israelite  indeed,"  John  i.  47 ;  of  Cana,  John  xxi.  2. 

Matthew:  his  call,  v.  27,  28. 

Thomas  •  despondent  yet  faithful,  John  xi.  16,  xiv.  5,  xx.  25,  xxi.  2. 

James  son  of  Alphaeus  :  no  incident. 

Jude  son  of  James :  his  perplexed  question,  John  xiv.  22. 

Simon  Zelotes  :  no  incident. 

Judas  Iscariot :  the  betrayal  and  ultimate  suicide. 

15.  called  Zelotes]    Rather,  wlio  was  called  the  Zealot. 

16.  which  also  was  the  traitor]  Rather,  who  also  became  a  traitor. 
"Have  not  I  chosen  you  twelve,  and  one  of  you  is  a  devil?"  John  vi.  70; 
I  John  ii.  17  ;  typified  by  Ahithophel,  Ps.  xii.  9.  If  it  be  asked  why 
our  Lord  chose  him,  the  answer  is  nowhere  given  to  us,  but  we  may 
reverently  conjecture  that  Judas  Iscariot,  like  all  human  beings,  had  in 
him  germs  of  good  which  might  have  ripened  into  holiness,  if  he  had 
resisted  his  besetting  sin,  and  not  flung  away  the  battle  of  his  life.  It  is 
clear  that  John  (at  least)  among  the  Apostles  had  early  found  him  out 
(John  xii.  6),  and  that  he  had  received  from  our  Lord  more  than  one 
solemn  warning  (xii.  15,  xviii.  25,  &c.). 

17.  And  he  came  down  with  them,  and  stood  in  the  plain]  Rather, 
And  descending  with  them.  He  stopped  on  a  level  place.  Topos 
pedinos  also  occurs  in  Is.  xiii.  2,  LXX.  If  it  be  thus  rendered  there  is 
no  discrepancy  between  St  Matthew,  who  says  that  "  He  went  up  into 
the  mountain,  and  when  He  sat  down  His  disciples  approached  Him  " 
(Matt.  V.  i).  I  believe  that  St  Luke  here  meant  to  give  such  portions 
of  the  Sermon  on  the  Mount  as  suited  his  design.  Combining  the  two 
narratives  with  what  we  know  of  the  scene  we  see  that  what  occurred 


135 


w.  18—20.]  ST   LUKE,  VI. 

and  the  company  of  his  disciples,  and  a  great  multitude  of 
people  out  of  all  Judea  and  Jerusalem,  and  froin  the  sea 
coast  of  Tyre  and  Sidon,  which  came  to  hear  him,  and  to  be 
healed  of  their  diseases;  and  they  that  were  vexed  with  un-  18 
clean  spirits :  and  they  were  healed.  And  the  whole  multi-  19 
tude  sought  to  touch  him:  for  there  went  virtue  out  of  him, 
and  healed  them  all. 

20 — 26.     Beatitudes  and  Woes. 

And  he  lifted  up  his  eyes  on  his  disciples,  and  said,  20 

Blessed  be  ye  poor:  for  yours  is  the  kingdom  of  God. 

was  as  follows.  The  previous  evening  Jesus  went  to  one  of  the  peaks 
of  Kurn  Hattin  (withdrawing  Himself  from  His  disciples,  who  doubtless 
bivouacked  at  no  great  distance),  and  spent  the  night  in  prayer.  In 
the  morning  He  called  His  disciples  and  chose  Twelve  Apostles.  Then 
going  with  them  to  some  level  spot,  either  the  flat  space  (called  in 
Greek  plax)  between  the  two  peaks  of  the  hill,  or  some  other  spot 
near  at  hand,  He  preached  His  sermon  primarily  to  His  disciples  who 
sat  immediately  around  Him,  but  also  to  the  multitudes.  There  is  no 
need  to  assume  two  discourses — one  esoteric  and  one  exoteric,  &c.  At 
the  same  time  there  is  of  course  no  difficulty  in  supposing  that  our 
Lord  may  have  uttered  the  same  discourse,  or  parts  of  the  same  dis- 
course, more  than  once,  varying  it  as  occasion  required. 

out  of  all  Juded\  St  Matthew  adds  Galilee  (which  was  to  a  great 
extent  Greek),  Decapolis,  and  Peraea  ;  St  Mark  also  mentions  Idumaea. 
Thus  there  were  Jews,  Greeks,  Phoenicians,  and  Arabs  among  our 
Lord's  hearers. 

19.  to  touch  hini\     Compare  viii.  44  ;  Matt.  xiv.  36 ;  Mk.  v.  30, 

20—26.    Beatitudes  and  Woes. 
This  section  of  St  Luke,  from  vi.  20  to  ix.  6,  resembles  in  style  the 
great  Journey  Section,  ix.  51 — xviii.  34. 

20.  Blessed  he  ye  poor]  Rather,  Blessed  are  the  poor.  The 
makarioi  is  a  Hebrew  expression  {ashri),  I's.  i.  i.  St  Matthew  adds 
"in  spirit"  (comp.  Is.  Ixvi.  2,  "To  this  man  will  I  look,  even  to  hmi 
that  is  poor  and  of  a  contrite  spirit,  and  trembleth  at  my  word  ").  But 
(i)  St  Luke  gives  the  address  of  Christ  to  the  poor  whose  very  presence 
shewed  that  they  were  His  poor  and  had  come  to  seek  Hnn  ;  and 
(2)  the  Evangelist  seems  to  have  been  imjuesscd  with  the  blessings  of 
a  faithful  and  humble  poverty  in  itself  (comp.  Jas.  u.  5  ;  i  Cor.  1. 
26—29),  and  loves  to  record  those  parts  of  our  Lord  s  teaclnng  which 
were  especially  'the  Gospel  to  the  poor'  (see  i.  53,  n-  7.  vi.  20,  xii. 
15—34,  xvi.  9 — 25).     See  Introd.  p.  27. 

"Come  ye  who  find  contentment's  very  core 
In  the  light  store 


136  ST   LUKE,  VI.  [v.  21. 

21      Blessed  are  ye  that  hunger  now:  for  ye  shall  be  filled. 

And  daisied  path 

Of  poverty, 

And  know  how  more 

A  small  thing  that  the  righteous  hath 

Availeth,  than  the  ungodly's  riches  great." 

Gov.  Patmore. 
"This  is  indeed  an  admirably  sweet  friendly  beginning... for  He  does  not 
begin  like  Moses... with  command  and  threatening,  but  in  the  friendliest 
possible   way   with    free,    enticing,    alluring  and    amiable    promises." 
Luther. 

for  yours  is  the  kingdom  of  God'\  St  Matthew  uses  the  expression  "  the 
kingdom  of  the  heavens."  The  main  differences  between  St  Matthew's 
and  St  Luke's  record  of  the  Sermon  on  the  Mount  are  explained  by  the 
different  objects  and  readers  of  these  Gospels ;  but  in  both  it  is  the 
Inaugural  Discourse  of  the  Kingdom  of  Heaven. 

(i)  St  Matthew  writes  for  the  Jeivs,  and  much  that  he  records  has 
special  bearing  on  the  Levitic  Law  (v.  17 — 38),  which  St  Luke  naturally 
omits  as  less  intelligible  to  Gentiles.  Other  parts  here  omitted  are  re- 
corded by  St  Luke  later  on  (xi.  9 — 13  ;  Matt.  vii.  7 — 11). 

(ii)  St  Matthew,  presenting  Christ  as  Lawgiver  and  King,  gives  the 
Sermon  more  in  the  form  of  a  Code.  Kurn  Hattin  is  for  him  the  new 
and  more  blessed  Sinai ;  St  Luke  gives  it  more  in  the  form  of  a  direct 
homily  ('yours,'  &c.,  not  'theirs,'  vi.  20;  Matt.  v.  3;  and  compare 
vi.  46,  47  with  Matt.  vii.  11,  24). 

(iii)  Much  of  the  Sermon  in  St  Matthew  is  occupied  with  the 
cojitrast  between  the  false  righteousness — the  pretentious  orthodoxy  and 
self-satisfied  ceremonialism — of  the  Pharisees,  and  the  true  righteousness 
of  the  Kingdom  which  is  mercy  and  love.  Hence  much  of  his  report  is 
occupied  with  Spij-ituality  as  the  stamp  of  true  religion,  in  opposition 
to  formalism,  while  St  Luke  deals  with  Love  in  the  abstract. 

(iv)  Thus  in  St  Matthew  we  see  mainly  the  Law  of  Love  as  the 
contrast  between  the  new  and  the  old  ;  in  St  Luke  the  Law  of  Love  as 
the  central  and  fundamental  idea  of  the  new. 

For  a  sketch  of  the  Sermon  on  the  Mount,  mainly  in  St  Matthew,  I 
may  refer  to  my  Life  of  Christ,  i.  259 — 264.  The  arrangement  of  the 
section  in  St  Luke  is  not  obvious.  Some  see  in  it  the  doctrine  of 
happiness ;  the  doctrine  of  justice  ;  the  doctrine  of  wisdom  ;  or  (i)  the 
salutation  of  love  (vi.  20 — 26)  ;  the  precepts  of  love  (27 — 38)  ;  the 
impulsion  of  love  (39 — 49).  These  divisions  are  arbitrary.  Godet 
more  successfully  arranges  it  thus  :  (i)  The  members  of  the  new  society 
(20 — 26;  Matt.  V.  I — 12);  (2)  The  fundamental  principle  of  the  new 
society  (27 — 45;  Matt.  v.  13 — vii.  12);  (3)  The  judgment  of  God  on 
which  it  rests  (46 — 49;  Matt.  vii.  13 — 27): — in  other  words  (i)  the 
appeal ;  (2)  the  principles  ;  (3)  the  sanction. 

21.  Blessed  are  ye  that  hunger  now]  Comp.  i.  53;  Ps.  cvii.  9.  St 
Matthew  here  also  brings  out  more  clearly  that  it  is  the  beatitude  of 
spiritual  hunger  "  after  righteousness." 


V.  22.]  ST   LUKE,  VI.  137 

Blessed  are  ye  that  weep  now :  for  ye  shall  laugh. 

Blessed  are  ye,  when  men  shall  hate  you,  and  when  they  22 
shall  separate  you  from  their  company^  and  shall  reproach 
yoii,  and  cast  out  your  name  as  evil,  for  the  Son  of  man's 

ye  shall  Iai/gJi\     See  ■2  Cor.  vi.  10  ;  Rev.  xxi.  4. 

22.  hate  you. .. separate  yoii... reproach. ..cast  out  yoter  name  as  ez'il] 
We  have  here  four  steps  of  persecution  increasing  in  virulence  : 
(i)  General  hatred,  (2)  Exclusion  from  the  synagogue,  a  lesser  ex- 
communication, viz.  the  Neztphah  or  exclusion  for  30  days,  or  Niddout 
for  90  days  (Gfrorer,  Jahrh.  d.  Heils,  I,  1S3  ;  John  ix.  34.  Hence 
aphorismos  means  ^excommunication^),  (3)  Violent  slander,  (4)  The 
Chere7n,  Shanimafa,  or  greater  excommunication, — permanent  expulsion 
from  the  Synagogue  and  Temple  (John  xvi.  2).  The  Jews  pretended 
that  our  Lord  was  thus  excommunicated  to  the  blast  of  400  ram's  horns 
by  Joshua  Ben  Perachiah  (Wagenseil,  Sola,  p.  1057),  and  was  only 
crucified  forty  days  after  because  no  witness  came  forward  in  His 
favour. 

as  evil]  'Malefic'  or  'execrable  superstition'  was  the  favourite 
description  of  Christianity  among  Pagans  (Tac.  Ann.  XV.  44;  Suet. 
AWo,  16),  and  Christians  were  charged  with  incendiarism,  cannibalism, 
and  every  infamy.  (The  student  will  find  such  heathen  views  of 
Christianity  collected  in  my  Life  of  St  Paul,  Exc.  XV.  Vol.  I.) 

for  the  Son  of  man's  sake]  The  hatred  of  men  is  not  in  itself  a 
beatitude,  because  there  is  a  general  conscience  which  condemns  certain 
forms  of  wickedness,  and  a  man  may  justly  incur  universal  execration. 
But  the  world  also  hates  those  who  run  counter  to  its  pleasures  and 
prejudices,  and  in  that  case  hatred  may  be  the  tribute  which  vice  pays  to 
holiness;  i  Pet.  ii.  19,  iii.  14.  "The  world  hath  hated  them,  because 
they  are  not  of  the  world,  even  as  I  am  not  of  the  world  ;"  John  xvii_.  14. 
Still  a  man  may  well  tremble  when  he  is  enjoying  throughout  life  a 
beatitude  of  benediction.  And  'the  world  '  by  no  means  excludes  the 
so-called  'religious  world,'  which  has  hated  with  a  still  fiercer  hatred, 
and  exposed  to  a  yet  deadlier  martyrdom,  some  of  its  greatest  prophets 
and  teachers.  Not  a  few  of  the  great  and  holy  men  enumerated  m  the 
next  note  fell  a  victim  to  the  fury  of  priests.  Our  Lord  was  handed 
over  to  crucifixion  by  the  unanimous  hatred  of  the  highest  religious 
authorities  of  His  day. 

On  the  title  Son  of  Man,  which  occurs  in  all  the  four  Gospels 
seep.  119.  In  using  it  Christ  "chooses  for  Himself  that  title  winch 
definitely  presents  His  work  in  relation  to  humanity  in  itself,  and 
not  primarily  in  relation  to  God  or  to  the  chosen  people,  or  even 
to  humanity  as  fallen."  Canon  Westcott  (on  John  1.  51)  considers 
that  it  was  not  distinctively  a  Messianic  title,  and  doubts  its  haying 
been  derived  from  Dan.  vii.  13.  "The  Son  of  God  was  made  a 
Son  of  Man  that  you  who  were  sons  of  men  might  be  made  sons 
of  God."  Aug.  Serm.  121.  As  the  "Second  Adam  Christ  is 
the  representative  of  the  race  (i  Cor.  xv.  4.O  in  its  highest  ideal : 


138  ST   LUKE,  VI.  [w.  23—26. 

23  sake.  Rejoice  ye  in  that  day,  and  leap/^r/ty;.'  for  behold, 
your  reward  is  great  in  heaven :  for  in  the  like  manner  did 
their  fathers  unto  the  prophets. 

?4  But  woe  unto  you  that  are  rich:  for  ye  have  received 
your  consolation. 

25  Woe  unto  you  that  are  full :  for  ye  shall  hunger. 

Woe  unto  you  that  laugh  now :  for  ye  shall  mourn  and 
weep. 

26  Woe  unto  you,  when  all  men  shall  speak  well  of  you :  for 
so  did  their  fathers  to  the  false  prophets. 

as  "the  Lord  from  Heaven"  He  is  the  Promise  of  its  future  exalt- 
ation. 

23.  Rejoice  ye  in  that  day']  See  Acts  v.  41.  "We  glory  in  tribu- 
lation ;"  Rom.  V.  3  ;  Jas.  i.  2,  3 ;  Col.  i.  24 ;  Heb.  xi.  26.  They 
accepted  with  joy  that  '  ignominy  of  Christ'  which  made  the  very  name 
of  '  Christian  •  a  term  of  execration  ;    i  Pet.  iv.  14,  16. 

in  the  like  manner  did  their  fathers  unto  the  prophets]  Elijah  and  his 
contemporaries,  i  K.  xix.  10.  Hanani  imprisoned  by  Asa,  2  Chron. 
xvi.  10.  Micaiah  imprisoned,  i  K.  xxii.  27.  Zechariah  stoned  by 
Joash,  2  Chr.  xxiv.  20,  21.  Urijah  slain  by  Jehoiakim,  Jer.  xxvi.  23. 
Jeremiah  imprisoned,  smitten  and  put  in  the  stocks,  Jer.  xxxii.,  xxxviii. 
Amos  slandered,  expelled,  and  perhaps  beaten  to  death  (Am.  vii.).  Isaiah 
(according  to  tradition)  sawn  asunder,  Heb.  xi.  37,  &c.  See  the  same 
reproach  against  the  Jews  in  Heb.  xi.  36—38  ;  Acts  vii.  52  ;  i  Thess. 
H-  14.  15- 

24.  But  woe]  While  sin  lasts,  there  must  still  be  woes  over  against 
Beatitudes,  as  Ebal  stands  for  ever  opposite  to  Gerizim.  In  St  Matthew 
also  we  find  (Matt,  xxni.)  eight  woes  as  well  as  eight  Beatitudes.  See 
too  Jer.  xvii.  5 — 8,  but  there  the  "  cursed"  precedes  the  "blessed." 

zaoe  imto  you  that  are  rich]  The  '  woe  !'  is  not  necessarily  or  wholly 
denunciatory  ;  it  is  also  the  cry  of  compassion,  and  of  course  it  only 
applies — not  toaChuzas  or  a  Nicodemus  or  a  Joseph  ofArimathaea, — but 
to  those  rich  who  are  not  poor  in  spirit,  but  trust  in  riches  (Mk.  x.  24), 
or  are  not  rich  towards  God  (xii.  21)  and  have  not  got  the  true  riches 
(xvi.  II  ;  Amos  vi.  i  ;  Jas.  v.  i).  Observe  the  many  parallels  between 
the  Epistle  of  St  James  and  the  Sermon  on  the  Mount,  Jas.  i.  2,  4,  5,  9, 
20,  ii.  13,  14,  17,  18,  iv.  4,  10,  II,  V.  2,  10,  12. 

ye  have  received  your  consolation]  Rather,  ye  have  to  the  full,  Phil, 
iv.  18;  comp.  xvi.  25,  "Son,  remember  that  thou  in  thy  lifetime  re- 
ceivedst  good  things." 

25.  you  that  are  full]  "  Behold,  this  was  the  iniquity  of  thy  sister 
Sodom,  ^x\A.Q.,  ftilness  of  bread,''''  Ezek.  xvi.  49. 

Woe  unto  you  that  laugh  now]  Compare  Eccles.  ii.  2,  vii.  6  ;  Prov. 
xiv.  13. 

26.  JVoe  tinto  yoti]     Omit  unto  you  with  X,  A,  B,  E,  &c. 

when   all  tncn   shall  speak  well  of  you]     "Know  ye  not  that  the 


vv.  27— 29.]  ST   LUKE,  VI.  139 

27 — 38.      The  Laws  of  Love  and  Mercy. 

But  I  say  unto  you  which  hear,  Love  your  enemies,  do  27 
good  to  them  which  hate  you,  bless  them  that  curse  you,  28 
and  pray  for  them  which  despitefuUy  use  you.  And  unto  29 
him  that  smite th  thee  on  the  one  cheek  offer  also  the  other; 

friendship  of  the  world  is  enmity  with  God?"  Jas.  iv.  4.     "If  ye  were 
of  the  world,  the  world  would  love  his  own,"  John  xv.  19. 

for  so  did  their  fathers  to  the  false  prophets'\  "The  prophets  prophesy 
falsely. ..and  my  people  love  to  have  it  so,"  Jer.  v.  31.  The  prophets 
of  Baal  and  of  Asherah,  honoured  by  Jezebel,  i  K.  xviii.  19,  22. 
Zedekiah,  son  of  Chenaanah,  supported  by  Ahab,  i  K.  xxii.  1 1.  "Speak 
unto  us  smooth  things,  prophesy  deceits,"  Is.  xxx.  10. 

27 — 38.    The  Laws  of  Love  and  Mercy. 

[27 — 30.  'Y'h^  manifestations  oil^ove..  31.  Its  formula.  32 — 35.  Its 
distinctiveness.  35—36.  Its  model.  37— 45-  Love  as  the  principle 
of  all  judgment.     Godet.] 

27.  Love  your  enemiesi  This  had  been  distinctly  the  spirit  of  the 
highest  part  of  the  Law  and  the  Old  Testament.  Ex.  xxiii.  4,  "If 
thou  meet  thine  enemy's  ox  or  ass  going  astray,  thou  shalt  surely  bring 
it  back  to  him  again."  Prov.  xxv.  21,  "If  thine  enemy  be  hungry, 
give  him  bread  to  eat."  Yet  in  many  passages  it  had  practically  been 
said  "to  men  of  old  time,"  at  any  rate  in  some  cases,  "thou  shalt  hate 
thine  enemy,"  Deut.  vii.  2,  xxiii.  6  ;  i  Chr.  xx.  3;  2  Sam.  xii.  31 ;  Ps. 
cxxxvii.  8,  9,  &c.  On  these  passages  the  fierce  fanaticism  of  the 
Pharisaic  Jews,  after  the  Exile,  had  so  exclusively  fed,  that  we  find  the 
Talmud  ringing  with  precepts  of  hatred  the  most  bitter  against  all 
Gentiles,  and  the  ancients  had,  not  unnaturally,  been  led  to  the  con- 
clusion that  detestation  of  all  but  Jews  was  a  part  of  the  Jewish 
religion  ("adversus  omnes  alios  hostile  odium,"  Tac.  Hist.  V.  5;  Juv. 
Sat.  XIV.  103). 

do  good  to  them  which  hate  you]  See  the  precept  beautifully  enforced 
in  Rom.  xii.  17,  19 — 21. 

28.  pray  for  them  tvhich  despitefuUy  use  you]  The  Greek  word 
implies  the  coarsest  insults,  and  is  found  in  i  Pet.  iii.  16.  St  Luke 
alone  records  our  Lord's  prayer  for  His  murderers,  xxui.  34,  from 
which  St  Stephen  learnt  his.  Acts  vii.  60.  _ 

29.  offer  ajso  the  other]  The  general  principle  "resist  not  evil 
(Matt.  v.  39;  I  Cor.  vi.  7;  i  Pet.  ii.  19—23)  impressed  for  ever  on  the 
memory  and  conscience  of  mankind  by  a  striking  paradox,  that  it  is 
only  meant  as  a  paradox  in  its  literal  sense  is  shewn  by  the  fact  that 
our  Lord  Himself,  while  most  divinely  true  to  its  spirit,  did  not  act  on 
the  letter  of  it  (John  xviii.  22,  23).  The  remark  of  a  good  man  ..n 
reading  the  Sermon  on  the  Mount,  "either  this  is  not  true,  or  we  ar-;  no 
Christians,"  need  not  be  correct  of  any  of  us.  The  precepts  are  meant, 
St  Augustine  said,  more  "ad  praeparationcm  cordis  quae  intus  est     tlian 


HO  ST   LUKE,  VI.  [w.  30—35. 

and  him  that  taketh  away  thy  cloke  forbid  not  fo  fake  thy 

30  coat  also.     Give  to  every  man  that  asketh  of  thee;  and  of 

31  him  that  taketh  away  thy  goods  ask  them  not  again.  And  as 
ye  would  that  men  should  do  to  you,  do  ye  also  to  them 

32  likewise.     For  if  ye  love  them  which  love  you,  what  thank 

33  have  ye  ?  for  sinners  also  love  those  that  love  them.  And 
if  ye  do  good  to  them  which  do  good  to  you,  what  thank 

34  have  ye?  for  sinners  also  do  even  the  same.  And  if  ye  lend 
to  them  of  whom  ye  hope  to  receive,  what  thank  have  ye? 
for  sinners  also  lend  to  sinners,  to  receive  as  much  again. 

35  But  love  ye  your  enemies,  and  do  good,  and  lend,  hoping 
for  nothing  again ;  and  your  reward  shall  be  great,  and  ye 

"  ad  opus  quod  in  aperto  fit i"  but  still,  the  fewer  exceptions  we  make 
the  better,  and  the  more  absolutely  we  apply  the  spirit  of  the  rules,  the 
fewer  difficulties  shall  we  find  about  the  letter. 

thy  cloke... thy  coat]  The  himation  was  the  upper  garment,  the 
shawl-like  abba  ;  the  chitdn  was  the  tunic.     See  on  iii.  ic. 

30.  Give  to  every  man  that  asketh  of  thee]  Literally,  " be  givino-,^^ 
implying  a  habit,  not  an  instant  act.  Here  again  we  have  a  broad, 
general  principle  of  unselfishness  and  liberality  safely  left  to  the  common 
sense  of  mankind,  Deut.  xv.  7,  8,  9.  The  spi7-it  of  our  Lord's  precept 
is  now  best  fulfilled  by  not  giving  to  every  man  that  asks,  because  in 
the  altered  circumstances  of  the  age  such  indiscriminate  almsgiving 
would  only  be  a  check  to  industry,  and  a  premium  on  imposture, 
degradation,  and  vice.  By  'giving,'  our  Lord  meant  'conferring  a 
boon  ;'  but  mere  careless  giving  now,  so  far  from  conferring  a  boon, 
perpetuates  a  curse  and  inflicts  an  injury.  The  spirit  of  the  precept  is 
large-handed  but  thought/id  charity.  Love  must  sometimes  violate  the 
letter  as  the  only  possible  way  of  observing  the  spirit  ■  (Matt.  xv.  26, 
XX.  -23). 

31.  as  ye  would  that  men  shotild  do  to  you]  The  golden  rule  of 
Christianity  of  which  our  Lord  said  that  it  was  "the  Law  and  the 
Prophets,"  Matt.  vii.  12.  The  modern  'Altruism'  and  '  vivre  pour 
aiitrui,'  though  pompously  enunciated  as  the  b.ases  of  a  new  religion, 
are  but  a  mutilated  reproduction  of  this. 

32.  for  sinners  also  love  i/iose  that  love  them]  Where  St  Matthew 
(v.  46,  47),  writing  for  Jews,  uses  the  term  "  tax-gatherers  "  or  '  Gentile 
persons'  {eth7iikoi),  St  Luke  naturally  substitutes  the  nearest  equivalents 
of  those  words  in  this  connexion,  because  he  is  writing  for  Gentiles.  Our 
Lord  meant  that  our  standard  must  rise  above  the  ordinary  dead  level 
of  law,  habit,  custom,  which  prevail  in  the  world. 

34.  to  receive  as  much  again]  From  this  we  see  that  'interest'  and 
'  usury'  are  not  here  contemplated  at  all. 

35.  hoping  for  nothing  again]  See  Ps.  xv.  5,  with  the  Rabbinic 
comment  that  God  counts  it  as  universal  obedience  if  any  one  lends 


vv.  36—38.]  ST   LUKE,  VI.  141 

shall  be  the  children  of  the  Highest :  for  he  is  kind  unto  the 
unthankful  and  to  the  evil.     Be  ye  therefore  merciful,    as  36 
your  Father  also  is  merciful.     Judge  not,  and  ye  shall  not  37 
be  judged:  condemn  not,  and  ye  shall  not  be  condemned: 
forgive,  and  ye  shall  be  forgiven :  give,  and  it  shall  be  given  38 
unto  you;  good  measure,  pressed  down,   and  shaken  toge- 
ther,  and  running  over,   shall  men  give  into  your  bosom. 
For  with  the  same  measure  that  ye  mete  withal  it  shall  be 
measured  to  you  again. 


without  interest.     The  words  may  also  mean  despairing  in  nothing, 
or  (if  ii.-i]Uv  be  read)  driving  no  one  to  despair. 

he  is  kind  unto  the  unthankful  and  to  the  evil]  See  the  exquisite 
addition  in  Matt.  v.  45. 

36.  Be  ye  therefore  merciful\  Rather,  Become,  or  Prove  yourselves 
merciful  (omit  o£c,  i<,  B,  D,  L). 

mercifuPi  St  Matthew  has  "■  perfect ^  v.  48;  but  that  there  is  no 
essential  difference  between  the  two  Evangelists  we  may  see  in  such 
expressions  as  "the  Father  of  Mercies,'"  2  Cor.  i.  3;  "The  Lord  is 
very  pitiful  and  of  tender  mercy,"  James  v.  11;  "Put  on  therefore  as 
the  elect  of  God. ..bowels  of  mercies,  kindness,"  Col.  iii.  12;  Is.  xxx. 
18.  "  God  can  only  be  our  ideal  in  His  moral  attributes,  of  which  Love 
is  the  centre."     Van  Oosterzee. 

"  It  is  an  attribute  to  God  Himself, 
And  earthly  power  doth  then  shew  likest  Gocfs 
When  mercy  seasons  justice." 

Shakespeare. 

37.  Judge  not]  For  comment  read  Rom.  ii.  1—3,  xiv.  10,  "Why 
dost  thou  judge  thy  brother?... for  we  shall  all  stand  before  the 
judgment-seat  of  Christ;"  i  Cor.  iv.  3—5,  xiii.,  and  the  Lords 
prayer;  James  ii.  13,  "he  shall  have  judgment  without  ^mercy  that 
hath  shewed  no  mercy."  Hence  a  "  r/^/z/cW^J  judgment"  of  others 
is  not  forbidden,  so  long  as  it  be  made  in  a  forbearing  and  tender  spirit, 

John  vii.  24.  i      n      1  1       f 

forgive,  and  ye  shall  be  forgiven]  For  comment  see  the  ^arable  ot 
the  Debtors,  Matt,  xviii.  23 — 35.  . 

38.  into  your  bosom]  Pockets  were  unknown  to  the  ancients.  All 
that  was  necessary  was  carried  in  the  fold  of  the  robe  (Heb.  Cheyk, 
Ps.  XXXV.  13,  &c.  ;  Lat.  sinus)  or  in  the  girdle. 

with  the  same  measure  that  ye  mete]  A  proverb  almost  verbally 
identical  with  this  is  found  in  the  Talmud  (Duke  s  Rabbin.  Blumeulcse, 
p.  162),  but  it  must  be  remembered  that  the  earliest  parts  ot  the 
Talmud  were  not  committed  to  writing  till  more  than  two  centuries 
after  Christ,  and  long  before  that  time  His  sayings  may  have  l)cen 
'in  the  air,'  i.e.  they  may  have  passed  unconsciously  into  the  store 
of  the  national  wisdom  even  among  His  enemies. 


142  ST   LUKE,  VI.  [vv.  39—44. 

39 — 45.     Sincerity.     Four  Comparisons. 

39  And  he  spake  a  parable  unto  them,  Can  the  blind  lead 

40  the  blind?  shall  they  not  both  fall  into  the  ditch?  The  dis- 
ciple is  not  above  his  master :  but  every  one  that  is  perfect 

41  shall  be  as  his  master.  And  why  beholdest  thou  the  mote 
that  is  in  thy  brother's  eye,  but  perceivest  not  the  beam  that 

42  is  in  thine  own  eye?  Either  how  canst  thou  say  to  thy  bro- 
ther, Brother,  let  me  pull  out  the  mote  that  is  in  thine  eye, 
when  thou  thyself  beholdest  not  the  beam  that  is  in  thine 
own  eye?  Thou  hypocrite,  cast  out  first  the  beam  out  of 
thine  own  eye,  and  then  shalt  thou  see  clearly  to  pull  out 

43  the  mote  that  is  in  thy  brother's  eye.  For  a  good  tree 
bringeth  not  forth  corrupt  fruit;  neither  doth  a  corrupt  tree 

44  bring  forth  good  fruit.  For  every  tree  is  known  by  his  own 
fruit.     For  of  thorns  men  do  not  gather  figs,  nor  of  a  bram- 

39 — 45.    Sincerity.    Four  Comparisons. 

39.  Can  the  blind  lead  the  blind?]  Matt.  xv.  14.  Prov.  xix.  27, 
"  Cease,  my  son,  to  hear  the  instruction  that  causeth  to  err."  St  Paul 
taunts  the  Jew  with  professing  to  be  "a  guide  of  the  bhnd,"  Rom. 
ii.  19.  St  Luke  calls  this  "a  parable"  in  the  broader  sense  (see  on 
iv.  23);  and  in  this  Gospel  the  Sermon  thus  ends  with  four  vivid 
'  parables '  or  similes  taken  from  the  sights  of  daily  life — blind  leaders 
of  blind;  the  mote  and  the  beam;  good  and  bad  fruit;  the  two  houses. 

40.  every  one  that  is  perfect  shall  be  as  his  master]  Rather,  who 
has  been  perfected,  2  Tim.  iii.  17.  A  favourite  quotation  of  St 
John's,  xiii.  16,  xv.  20.     See  Matt.  x.  25. 

41.  beholdest   thou    the   mote]     The   hypocrite   sees    {blepei)   at    the 
>     slightest  glance  the  mote  in  his  brother's  eye ;  but  not  the  most  careful 

inspection  enables  him  to  observe  {katanOein)  the  very  obvious  beam 
in  his  own  eye.  The  word  t?iote  is  in'  the  original  karphos,  a  stalk  or 
chip,  and  this  is  also  the  idea  of  mote.  Thus  in  Dutch  mot  is  dust  of 
wood ;  in  Spanish  viota  is  a  flue  on  cloth. 

the  beam]  The  entire  illustration  is  Jewish,  and  was  used  to  express 
impatience  of  just  reproof  [Babha  Bathra,  f.  15.  2)  so  that  'mote' 
and  'beam'  became  proverbial  for  little  and  great  faults.  The  proverb 
also  implies,  'How  can  you  see  others'  faults  properly  with  a  beam  in  the 
depth  of  your  eye  [iK^a\e...iK,  Matt.  vii.  5)?  how  dare  you  condemn 
when  you  are  so  much  worse?'  Comp.  Chaucer  [Reeve's  Prologue), 
*'  He  can  wel  in  myn  eye  see  a  stalke 
But  in  his  owne  he  can  nought  seen  a  balke." 

42.  Thou  hypocrite]  Rom.  ii.  i,  "  Wherein  thou  judgest  another, 
thou  condemnest  thyself."  "If  we  condemn  others  when  we  are  worse 
than  they,  we  are  like  bad  trees  pretending  to  bear  good  fruit."  Bengel. 


w.  45—49]  ST   LUKE,  VI.  143 

ble  bush  gather  they  grapes.     A  good  man  out  of  the  good  45 
treasure  of  his  heart  bringeth  forth  that  which  is  good;  and 
an  evil  man  out  of  the  evil  treasure  of  his  heart  bringeth 
forth  that  which  is  evil :  for  of  the  abundance  of  the  heart 
his  mouth  speaketh. 

46 — 49.     False  and  true  Foundations. 

And  why  call  ye  me,  Lord,  Lord,  and  do  not  the  things  46 
which  I  say?     Whosoever  cometh  to  me,  and  heareth  my  47 
sayings,  and  doeth  them,  I  will  shew  you  to  whom  he  is 
like :  he  is  like  a  man  which  built  a  house,  and  digged  deep,  48 
and  laid  the  foundation  on  a  rock  :   and  when  the   flood 
arose,  the  stream  beat  vehemently  upon  that  house,  and 
could  not  shake  it:  for  it  was  founded  upon  a  rock.     But  49 
he  that  heareth,  and  doeth  not,  is  like  a  man  that  without  a 
foundation  built  a  house  upon  the  earth;  against  which  the 

44.  do  not  gather  Jigs\  The  simile  might  have  been  illustrated  by 
pointing  to  one  of  the  common  Eastern  gardens  or  orchards  with  its 
festooning  vines  and  fig-trees  just  beyond  the  rough  hedges  of  prickly 
pear. 

45.  of  the  abundance  of  the  heart  his  mouth  speaketh"]  "  O  gene- 
ration of  vipers,  how  can  ye,  being  evil,  speak  good  things?"  Matt, 
xii.  34;  "the  vile  person  will  speak  villany,'   Is.  xxxii.  6. 

46—49.     False  and  true  Foundations. 

46.  why  call  ye  me,  Lord,  Lord]  "  If  I  be  a  master,  where  is  my 
fear,  saith  the  Lord  of  hosts?"  Mai.  i.  6.  Painful  comments  are  sup- 
plied by  the  language  of  two  parables,  Matt.  xxv.  11,  12  ;  Luke  xiii. 
25. 

47.  and  doeth  them]  John  xiii.  17.  "  Be  ye  doers  of  the  word,  and 
not  hearers  only,"  James  i.  22. 

48.  he  is  like  a  man  which  built  a  house,  and  digged  deep,  and 
laid  the  foundation  on  a  rock]  The  E.V.  here  loses  all  the  picturesque 
force  of  the  original.  Rather,  he  is  like  a  man  building  a  house, 
who  dug,  and  kept  deepening,  and  laid  a  foundation  on  the  rock. 
The  rock  is  Christ  and  the  teaching  of  Christ  (i  Cor.  x.  4).  Whether 
tested  by  flood,  or  by  fire  (i  Cor.  iii.  11— 15),  only  the  genuine  building 
stands.  In  another  sense,  too,  "the  wicked  are  overthrown,  and 
are  not  :  but  the  house  of  the  righteous  shall  stand,"  Prov.  xii.  7. 

the  flood]    Rather,  an  Inundation  ;  the  sudden  rush  of  a  spait. 

for  it  was  founded  upon  a  rock]  Rather,  for  it  had  been  founded 
upon  the  rock.  In  some  MSS.  (X,  L)  we  find,  instead  of  this  clause, 
'^because  it  was  well  built." 

49.  upon  the  earth]  In  St  Matthew,  more  graphically,  "upon  the 
sand ;"  e.g.  the  sand  of  superficial  intellectual  acceptance. 


144  ST   LUKE,   VII.  [vv.  1—5. 

stieam  did  beat  vehemently,  and  immediately  it  fell;  and 
the  ruin  of  that  house  was  great. 

Ch.  VII.    I — 10.     Healing  of  the  Centurioti' s  Servayit, 

7      Now  when  he  had  ended  all  his  sayings  in  the  audience 

2  of  the  people,  he  entered  into  Capernaum.     And  a  certain 
centurion's  servant,  who  was  dear  unto  him,  was  sick,  and 

3  ready  to  die.     And  when  he  heard  of  Jesus,  he  sent  unto 
him  the  elders  of  the  Jews,  beseeching  him  that  he  would 

4  come  and  heal  his  servant.     And  when  they  came  to  Jesus, 
they  besought  him  instantly,  saying,  That  he  was  worthy  for 

s  whom  he  should  do  this :  for  he  loveth  our  nation,  and  he 

it  fell\    Rather,  it  fell  in  a  heap,  reading  simepesen. 
the  ruiii\     Literally,  "  the  breach." 

Ch.  VII.    1 — 10.     Healing  of  the  Centurion's  Servant. 

1.  in  the  audience\  i.  e.  in  the  hearing. 

he  entered  into  Capernauin'\  See  Matt.  viii.  5 — 13.  This  was  now 
His  temporary  home.  The  incident  occurred  as  He  was  entering  the 
town. 

2.  a  certain  centurion^ s  servanf]  Literally,  "^/az/,'."  The  word  used 
by  St  Matthew  (pais)  might  mean  son,  but  is  clearly  also  used  for  ser- 
vant (like  the  'La.im  puer).  A  centurion  is  a  captain;  under  him  is  a 
sergeant  {dekadarch),  and  above  him  a  colonel  [chiliarch],  and  general 
{hegeinon).  Jos.  B.  J.  v.  12,  §  2.  All  the  centurions  in  the  N.T.  are 
favourably  mentioned  (xxiii.  47  ;  Acts  xxvii.  43). 

dear'\  Rather,  precious.  The  love  of  the  captain  for  his  servant 
was  a  good  example  for  the  Jews  themselves,  who  in  the  Talmud  for- 
bade mourning  for  slaves. 

sick'\  St  Matthew  says,  "stricken  with  paralysis,  and  in  terrible 
pain"  (viii,  6).  St  Luke,  as  a  physician,  may  have  omitted  this 
specification  because  the  description  applies  rather  to  tetanus  than  to 
the  strict  use  of  "paralysis." 

ready  to  die]     Rather,  was  on  the  point  of  death. 

3.  when  he  heard  0/ yeszts]     Rather,  having  heard  about  Jesus. 

he  sent  unto  him  the  elders]  Rather,  elders  {Zekdnim),  with  no 
article.  These  'elders'  were  doubtless  some  of  the  ten  functionaries, 
whom  the  Jews  also  called  Parnasim,  'shepherds.'  Their  functions 
were  not  in  any  respect  sacerdotal. 

4.  instantly]  i.e.  urgently,  as  in  the  phrase  "continuing  instant 
in  prayer." 

5.  he  loveth  our  nation]  This  shews  that  the  centurion  was  a 
Gentile, — probably  a  proselyte  of  the  gate  (though  the  term  was  in- 
vented later),  i.e.  one  of  those  who  embraced  Judaism  on  the  whole, 
but   M'ithout   becoming  a    'proselyte   of    righteousness'   by  accepting 


w.  6,  7.]  ST   LUKE,  VII. 


H5 


hath  built  us  a  synagogue.     Then  Jesus  went  with  them.  6 
And  when  he  was  now  not  far  from  the  house,  the  centurion 
sent  friends  to  him,  saying    unto    him,    Lord,   trouble  not 
thyself:    for  I  am    not    worthy  that   thou    shouldest    enter 
under  my  roof :  wherefore  neither  thought  I  myself  worthy  7 

circumcision.  It  is  not  impossible  that  he  may  have  been  a  Roman, 
though  there  is  no  direct  proof  that  Romans  ever  held  such  offices  under 
Herod  Antipas.  More  probably  he  was  some  Greek  or  Syrian,  holding 
a  commission  under  the  tetrarch. 

he  hath  built  us  a  synagogue]  Rather,  our  Synagogue  he  Wmself 
biiilt  for  us.  The  expression,  "the  synagogue,"  does  not  necessarily 
imply  that  there  was  only  one  synagogue  in  Capernaum,  but  only  that 
he  had  built  the  one  from  which  this  deputation  came,  which  was 
probably  the  chief  synagogue  of  Capernaum.  If  Capernaum  be  Tel 
Hum  (as  I  became  convinced  on  the  spot  itself),  then  the  ruins  of  it 
shew  that  it  probably  possessed  two  synagogues;  and  this  we  should 
have  conjectured  beforehand,  seeing  that  Jerusalem  is  said  to  have  had 
400.  The  walls  ofone  of  these,  built  of  white  marble,  are  of  the  age  of  the 
Herods,  and  stand  just  above  the  lake.  It  may  be  the  very  building 
here  referred  to.  This  liberality  on  the  part  of  the  Gentiles  was  by  no 
means  unfrequent.  Wealthy  Gentile  proselytes  not  seldom  sent  splendid 
gifts  to  the  Temple  itself.  The  Ptolemies,  Jos.  Antt.  xii.  2,  §5;  Sosius, 
id.  XIV.  16,  §  4;  Fulvia,  id.  xviii.  3,  §  5,  &c.     See  on  xxi.  5. 

6.  when  he  was  now  not  far  from  the  house,  the  centurion  sent 
friends  to  him]  Here  the  narrative  of  St  Luke  is  much  more  detailed, 
and  therefore  probably  more  exact,  than  that  of  St  Matthew,  who 
represents  the  conversation  as  taking  place  between  our  Lord  and  the 
centurion  himself.  We  see  from  St  Luke  that  he  had  been  prevented 
from  coming  in  person  by  deep  humility,  and  the  belief  that  the  elders 
would  be  more  likely  to  win  the  boon  for  him.  Meanwhile,  he  pro- 
bably stayed  by  the  bedside  of  his  dying  slave.  St  Matthew's  narrative 
is  framed  on  the  simple  and  common  principle,  qui  facit  per  aliurn 
facit  per  se. 

Lord]  The  word  in  itself  may  mean  no  more  than  "Sir,"  as  in 
John  iv.  19,  xii.  21;  Acts  xvi.  30,  &c.  It  was,  in  fact,  like  the  Latin 
dominus,  an  ordinary  mode  of  address  to  persons  whose  names  were 
unknown  (Sen.,  Ep.  3);  but  the  centurion's  entire  conduct  shews  that 
on  his  lips  the  word  would  have  a  more  exalted  significance.  In  a 
special  sense  Kupcos  is  a  name  for  God  {Adonai)  and  Jehovah  (i  Thess. 
V.  2,  &c.). 

trouble  not  thyself]  The  word  skullo  (Matt.  ix.  30)  would  in  classical 
Greek  be  a  slang  word.  'Bother  not,'  or  'worry  not  thyself.'  But  in 
Hellenistic  Greek,  both  slang  words  (fiupopiazo,  xviii.  5;  katanarkao, 
7.  Cor.  xii.  13)  and  purely  poetic  words  (see  ii.  35)  had  become  current 
in  ordinary  senses. 

tmder  my  roof]  The  emphasis  is  on  the  »y,  as  is  shewn  by  its 
position  in    the    Greek.     "I   am    not  worthy" — Dicendo  se  indignuni 

ST  LUKE  10 


146  ST   LUKE,    VII.  [vv.  8—10. 

to  come  unto  thee :  but  say  in  a  word,  and  my  servant  shall 

8  be  healed.  For  I  also  am  a  man  set  under  authority, 
having  under  me  soldiers,  and  I  say  unto  one,  Go,  and  he 
goeth;  and  to  another,  Come,  and  he  cometh;  and  to  my 

9  servant.  Do  this,  and  he  doeth  it.  When  Jesus  heard  these 
things,  he  marvelled  at  him,  and  turned  him  about,  and  said 
unto  the  people  that  followed  him,  I  say  unto  you,  I  have  not 

10  found  so  great  faith,  no,  not  in  Israel.  And  they  that  were 
sent,  returning  to  the  house,  found  the  servant  whole  that 
had  been  sick. 


praestitit  dii^num  non  in  cujtis  parietes  sed  in  cujus  cor  Christus  in- 
traret.     Aug. 

7.  say  in  a  word]  The  centurion  had  clearly  heard  how  Jesus,  by 
His  mere  ^ai,  had  healed  the  son  of  the  'courtier'  at  Capernaum  (John 
iv.  46 — 54).  The  attempt  to  make  these  two  miracles  identical  is  to 
the  last  degree  arbitrary  and  untenable. 

my  servant]  The  centurion  here  uses  the  more  tender  word,  pais, 
'son.' 

sAalt  be  healed]  Perhaps  the  better  reading  is  let  him  be  healed.  The 
faith  of  the  centurion  was  "an  invisible  highway  for  the  saving  eagles  of 
the  great  Imperator."     Lange. 

8.  For  I  also]  This  assigns  the  reason  why  he  made  the  request. 
He  was  but  a  subordinate  himself,  "under  authority"  of  his  chiliarch 
and  other  officers,  and  yet  he  had  soldiers  under  him  as  well  as  a 
servant,  who  at  a  word  executed  his  orders.  He  inferred  that  Jesus, 
who  had  the  power  of  healing  at  a  distance,  had  at  His  command 
thousands  of  the  "Heavenly  Army"  (ii.  13;  Matt.  xxvi.  53)  who  would 

"at  His  bidding  speed, 
And  post  o'er  land  and  ocean  without  rest." 

9.  he  marvelled  at  him]  The  only  other  place  where  the  astonish- 
ment of  Jesus  is  recorded  is  astonishment  at  unbelief.     Mk.  vi.  6. 

I  have  not  found  so  great  faith,  no,  not  in  Israel]  Rather,  Not  even 
in  Israel  found  I  so  great  faith.  These  words  are  preserved  with 
similar  exactness  in  St  Matthew.  "He  had  found,"  says  St  Augustine, 
"in  the  oleaster  what  He  had  not  found  in  the  olive."  Nothing  can  be 
more  clear  than  that  neither  Evangelist  had  seen  the  narrative  of  the 
other,  and,  since  St  Matthew  is  the  less  exact,  we  infer  that  both  Evan- 
gelists in  this  instance  drew  from  some  cycle  of  oral  or  written  apo- 
stolic teaching.  The  words  added  by  St  Matthew  (viii.  ri,  12)  are  given 
by  St  Luke  in  another  connexion  (xiii.  28  sq.). 

XO.  found  the  servant  whole]  Rather,  convalescent,  a  medical  word 
which  is  found  also  in  xv.  27  (and  in  a  metaphorical  sense  in  Tit.  i.  13; 
I  Tim.  i.  10,  vi.  3 ;  1  Tim.  i.  13,  iv.  3). 

that  had  been  sick]     These  words  should  probably  be  omitted. 


vv.  II— 14-]  ST    LUKE,    VII. 


147 


II — 17-      The  raising  of  the  Son  of  the  Widow  of  Nain. 

And  it  came  to  pass  the  day  after,  that  he  went  into  a  n 
city  called  Nain ;  and  many  of  his  disciples  went  with  him, 
and  much  people.     Now  when  he  came  nigh  to  the  gate  of  u 
the  city,  behold,  there  was  a  dead  man  carried  out,  the  only 
son  of  his  mother,  and  she  was  a  widow :  and  much  people 
of  the  city  was  with  her.     And  when  the  Lord  saw  her,  he  u 
had  compassion  on  her,  and  said  unto  her.  Weep  not.    And  m 

11 — 17.     The  raising  of  the  Son  of  the  Widow  of  Nain. 

11.  the  day  after]  If  the  reading  t^  be  right  we  must  understand 
rifiipg.,  'day.'  Some  MSS.  (A,  B,  L,  &c.)  read  rep,  which  would  give  a 
wider  limit  of  time.  St  Luke  alone,  with  his  characteristic  tenderness, 
preserves  for  us  this  narrative. 

into  a  city  called  Nain]  In  the  tribe  of  Issachar.  The  name  means 
'lovely,'  and  it  deserves  the  name  from  its  site  on  the  north-west  slope  of 
Jebel  el  Duhy,  or  Little  Hermon,  not  far  from  Endor,  and  full  in  view 
of  Tabor  and  the  hills  of  Zebulon.  It  is  twenty-five  miles  from  Caper- 
naum, and  our  Lord,  starting  in  the  cool  of  the  very  early  morning,  as 
Orientals  always  do,  would  reach  it  before  noon.  It  is  now  a  squalid 
and  wretched  village  still  bearing  the  name  of  Nein. 

many  of  his  disciples  went  with  him,  and  much  people]  More  literally, 
'there  were  accompanying  Him  His  disciples,  in  considerable  numbers, 
and  a  large  multitude.'  In  this  first  year  of  His  ministry,  before  the 
deadly  opposition  to  Him  had  gathered  head,  while  as  yet  the  Pharisees 
and  leaders  had  not  come  to  an  open  rupture  with  Him,  and  He  had  not 
sifted  His  followers  by  'hard  sayings,'  our  Lord  was  usually  accompanied 
by  adoring  crowds. 

12.  came  nigh  to  the  gate]  All  ordinary  Jewish  funerals  are  extra- 
mural. Nain  is  approached  by  a  narrow  rocky  path,  and  it  must  have 
been  at  this  spot  that  the  two  processions  met.  They  were  perhaps 
going  to  bury  the  dead  youth  in  one  of  the  rock-hewn  sepulchres  which 
are  still  visible  on  the  hill  side. 

the  only  son  of  his  mother]     See  on  viii.  42,  i.x.  38. 
■    much  people  of  the  city]     Compare  the  public  sympathy  for  the  family 
of  Bethany  (John  xi.    19):    and  on  the  bitterness  of  mourning  for  an 
only  child,  see  Jer.  vi.  ■26;  Zech.  xii.  10;  Amos  viii.  10. 

13.  when  the  Lord  saw  her]  "The  Lord"  is  far  more  frequent  as  a 
title  of  Jesus  in  St  Luke  (vii.  31,  x.  i,  xi.  i,  xii.  42,  xvii.  5,  6,  xix.  8, 
xxii.  61)  than  in  the  other  Evangelists  except  St  John.  The  fact  is  a 
sign  of  the  spread  of  Christian  faith.  Even  though  St  Luke's  Gospel 
may  not  have  been  published  more  than  a  year  or  two  after  St  Mat- 
thew's, yet  St  Luke  belongs  so  to  speak  to  a  later  generation  of 
disciples. 

he  had  compassion  on  her]  Jesus,  who  was  always  tt)uchc(l  by  the 
sight  of  human  agony  (Mk.  vii.  34,  viii.  12),  seems  to  have  felt  a  pecu- 
liar compassion  for  the  anguish  of  bereavement  (John  xi.  33 — 37)-    ^"^ 

10 — a 


148  ST   LUKE,   VII.  [w.  15—20. 

he  came  and  touched  the  bier :  and  they  that  bare  him  stood 
still.     And  he  said,   Young  man,  I  say  unto  thee,  Arise. 

15  And  he  that  was  dead  sat  up,  and  began  to  speak.     And  he 

16  delivered  him  to  his  mother.  And  there  came  a  fear  on  all : 
and  they  glorified  God,  saying.  That  a  great  prophet  is  risen 

17  up  among  us ;  and,  That  God  hath  visited  his  people.  And 
this  rumour  of  him  went  forth  throughout  all  Judea,  and 
throughout  all  the  region  round  about. 

18 — 35.     The  Message  from  the  Baptist. 

18  And  the  disciples  of  John  shewed  him  of  all  these  things. 

19  And  John  calling  unto  hitn  two  of  his  disciples  sent  theyn  to 
Jesus,  saying,  Art  thou  he  that  should  come?  or  look  we 

20 for  another?     When  the  men  were  come  unto  him,  they 

fact  that  this  youth  was  "the  only  son  of  his  mother  and  she  a  widow" 
would  convey  to  Jewish  notions  a  deeper  sorrow  than  it  even  does  to 
ours,  for  they  regarded  childlessness  as  a  special  calamity,  and  the  loss 
of  offspring  as  a  direct  punishment  for  sin  (Jer.  vi.  26;  Zech.  xii.  10; 
Amos  viii.  10). 

■weep  not\     Rather,  Be  not  weeping,  i.e.  'dry  thy  tears.' 
14.     touched  the  bierl     Rather,  'the  coffin.'     Here  again,  as  in  the 
case  of  the  leper  (v.  12),  our  Lord  sacrificed  the  mere  Levitical  cere- 
monialism, with  its  rules  about  uncleanness,  to  a  higher  law.    Jewish 
coffins  were  open,  so  that  the  form  of  the  dead  was  visible. 

Arisel  Probably  the  single  monosyllable  A'//w/  Compare  viii.  54 ; 
John  xi.  43 ;  Acts  ix.  40.  How  unlike  the  passionate  tentative  struggles 
of  Elijah  (i  Kings  xvii.  ^i)  and  Elisha  (2  Kings  iv.  35) ! 

16.  a  great  prophet'\  The  expectation  of  the  return  of  Elijah,  Jere- 
miah, or  "one  of  the  Prophets"  was  at  that  time  widely  spread.  See  on 
ix.  8,  19. 

God  hath  visited  his people\     Compare  i.  68  ;  John  iii.  2. 

17.  throughout  all  yttdaa]  The  notion  that  St  Luke  therefore  sup- 
posed Nain  to  be  in  Judaea  is  quite  groundless.  He  means  that  the 
story  of  the  incident  at  Nain  spread  even  into  Judsea. 

18 — 35.    The  Message  from  the  Baptist. 

19.  yohn  calling  unto  him  two  of  his  disciples']  The  Baptist  was 
now  in  prison  (Matt.  xi.  2 — 6),  but  was  not  precluded  from  intercourse 
with  his  friends. 

to  fesus']  The  reading  of  B  and  some  other  Uncials  is  "to  the  Lord." 
Art  thou  he  that  should  come?  or  look  we  for  a7totker?'\  Rather,  Art 
thou  the  coming  [Messiah] ,  or  are  we  to  expect  another  ?  ' '  The  Coming 
(One)"  is  a  technical  Hebrew  term  for  the  Messiah  (Habba).  This  brief 
remarkable  message  is  identical  with  that  in  St  Matthew,  except  that 
St  Luke  uses  allon  ('another')  and  St  Matthew  heteron  ('a  second,'  or 


149 


V.  21.]  ST    LUKE,   VII. 

said,  John  Baptist  hath  sent  us  unto  thee,  saying,  Art  thou 
he  that  should  come  ?   or  look  we  for  another  ?     And  in  21 
that  same  hour  he  cured  many  of  their  infirmities  and  plagues, 
and  of  evil  spirits ;  and  unto  many  that  were  blind  he  gave 

'different  one').  Probably  however  there  is  no  significance  in  this 
variation,  since  the  accurate  classical  meaning  of  heteros  was  partly  obli- 
terated. Probably  too  the  messengers  spoke  in  Aramaic.  "  The  coming" 
is  clearer  in  St  Matthew,  because  he  has  just  told  us  that  John  heard  in 
prison  the  works  of  ^'■the  Christ^  i.e.  of  the  Messiah.  Those  who  are 
shocked  with  the  notion  that  the  faith  of  the  Baptist  should  even  for  a 
moment  have  wavered,  suppose  that  (i)  St  John  merely  meant  to  sug- 
gest that  surely  the  time  had  now  come  for  the  Messiah  to  reveal  himself 
as  the  Messiah,  and  that  his  question  was  one  rather  of  'increasing 
impatience'  than  of  'secret  unbelief;'  or  (2)  that  the  message  was  sent 
solely  to  reassure  John's  own  disciples;  or  (3)  that,  as  St  Matthew  here 
uses  the  phrase  "the  works  of  the  Messiah"  and  not  "of  Jesus,"  the 
Baptist  only  meant  to  ask  'Art  thou  the  same  person  as  the  Jesus  to 
whom  I  bore  testimony?'  These  suppositions  are  excluded,  not  only  by 
the  tenor  of  the  narrative  but  directly  by  vs.  23;  (Matt.  xi.  6).  Scrip- 
ture never  presents  the  saints  as  ideally  faultless,  and  therefore  with 
holy  truthfulness  never  conceals  any  sign  of  their  imperfection  or  weak- 
ness. Nothing  is  more  natural  than  that  the  Great  Baptist — to  whom 
had  been  granted  but  a  partial  revelation — should  have  felt  deep  anguish 
at  the  calm  and  noiseless  advance  of  a  Kingdom  for  which,  in  his 
theocratic  and  Messianic  hopes,  he  had  imagined  a  very  different  pro- 
clamation. Doubtless  too  his  faith  like  that  of  Elijah  ( i  K.  xix.  4),  of  Job 
in  his  trials  (Job  iii.  i),  and  of  Jeremiah  in  prison  (Jer.  xx.  7),  might  be  for 
a  moment  drowned  by  the  tragic  briefness,  and  disastrous  eclii)se  of  his 
own  career;  and  he  might  hope  to  alleviate  by  this  message  the  anguish 
which  he  felt  when  he  contrasted  the  joyous  brightness  of  our  Lord's 
Galilean  ministry  with  the  unalleviated  gloom  of  his  own  fortress-prison 
among  the  black  rocks  at  Makor.  'If  Jesus  be  indeed  the  promised 
Messiah,'  he  may  have  thought,  'why am  I,  His  Forerunner,  suffered  to 
languish  undelivered,— the  victim  of  a  wicked  tyrant?'  The  Baptist 
was  but  one  of  those  many  glorious  saints  whose  careers  God,  in  His 
mysterious  Providence,  has  suffered  to  end  in  disaster  and  eclipse  that 
He  may  shew  us  how  small  is  the  importance  which  we  must  attach 
to  the  judgment  of  men,  or  the  rewards  of  earth.  "We  fools  accoimted 
his  life  madness,  and  his  end  to  be  without  honour:  how  is  he  mini- 
bered  among  the  children  of  God,  and  his  lot  is  among  the  saints  1' 
Wisd.  v.  20.  We  maybe  quite  sure  that  "in  the  fiery  furnace  (Jod 
walked  with  His  servant  so  that  his  spirit  was  not  harmed,  and  having 
thus  annealed  his  nature  to  the  utmost  that  this  earth  can  do.  He  took 
him  hastily  away  and  placed  him  among  the  glorified  in  Heaven.     Irvmg. 

20.  John  Baptist^     Rather,  The  Baptist. 

21.  in  that  same  hour\    Omit  'same,' which  has  no  eciuivalcnt   m 
the  Greek. 

plagues^    Literally,  "scourges." 


ISO  ST    LUKE,   VII.  [vv.  22— 26. 

22  sight.  Then  Jesus  answering  said  unto  them,  Go  your  way, 
and  tell  John  what  things  ye  have  seen  and  heard ;  how  that 
the  blind  see,  the  lame  walk,  the  lepers  are  cleansed,  the 
deaf  hear,  the  dead  are  raised,  to  the  poor  the  gospel  is 

23  preached.    And  blessed  is  he,  whosoever  shall  not  be  offended 

24  in  me.  And  when  the  messengers  of  John  were  departed, 
he  began  to  speak  unto  the  people  concerning  John,  What 
went  ye  out  into  the  wilderness  for  to  see  ?     A  reed  shaken 

25  with  the  wind?  But  what  went  ye  out  for  to  see?  A  man 
clothed  in  soft  raiment  ?    Behold,  they  which  are  gorgeously 

26  apparelled,  and  live  delicately,  are  in  kings'  courts.     But 

22.  xvhat  things  ye  have  seen]  Our  Lord  wished  His  answer  to  be 
the  announcement  of  facts  not  the  explanation  of  difficulties.  His 
enumeration  of  the  miracles  involves  an  obvious  reference  to  Is.  xxix. 
18,  XXXV.  4 — 6,  Ix.  I — 3  (see  iv.  17 — 19),  which  would  be  instantly 
caught  by  one  so  familiar  with  the  language  of  "the  Evangelical  Pro- 
phet "  as  the  Baptist  had  shewn  himself  to  be. 

to  the  poor  the  Gospel  is  preached]  Thus  the  spiritual  miracle  is  placed 
as  the  most  convincing  climax.  The  arrogant  ignorance  and  hard 
theology  of  the  Rabbis  treated  all  the  poor  as  mere  peasants  and  no- 
bodies. The  Talmud  is  full  of  the  two  contemptuous  names  applied 
to  them — 'people  of  the  earth'  and  'laics;'  and  one  of  the  charges 
brought  against  the  Pharisees  by  our  Lord  was  their  attempt  to  secure 
the  monopoly  of  knowledge,  xi.  52. 

23.  shall  not  be  offended]  i.e.  caused  to  stumble.  For  instances  of 
the  stumbling-block  which  some  made  for  themselves  of  incidents  in  our 
Lord's  career,  see  Matt.  xiii.  55 — 57,  xxii.  42;  John  vi.  60,  66;  and 
compare  Is.  viii.  14,  15;  1  Cor.  i.  23,  ii.  14;  i  Pet.  ii.  7,  8.  The  word 
skandalon  (Latin  offendiculum^  Hebr.  mokesh  'snare,'  and  mikshol 
'stumbling-block')  means  anything  over  which  a  person  falls  (e.g.  a 
stone  in  the  road)  or  on  which  he  treads  and  is  thrown. 

24.  7vhen  the  messengers  of  yohn  ivere  departed]  We  notice  here 
the  exquisite  tenderness  of  our  Lord.  He  woi^ld  not  suffer  the  multi- 
tudes who  had  heard  the  question  of  John  to  cherish  one  depreciatory 
thought  of  the  Baptist ;  and  yet  he  suffers  the  messengers  to  depart, 
lest,  while  hearing  the  grand  eulogy  of  their  Master,  they  should  be 
pained  by  its  concluding  words.  It  is  natural  to  suppose  that  the  two 
disciples  carried  back  to  John  some  private  message  of  peace  and 
consolation. 

A  reed]  John  was  not  like  the  reeds  which  they  had  seen  waving  in 
the  wind  on  the  banks  of  Jordan,  but  rather,  as  Lange  says,  '  a  cedar 
half  uprooted  by  the  storm.' 

25.  A  7nan  clothed  in  soft  raiment?]  A  contrast  to  the  camel's  hair 
mantle  and  leathern  girdle  of  the  Baptist ;  Matt.  iii.  4. 

they  ivkieh  are  gorgeously  apparelled  and  live  delicately]  Rather, 
they  wlio  axe  in  glorious  apparel  and  luxury.     The  Herods  were 


vv.  27— 29]  ST    LUKE,   VII. 


151 


what  went  ye  out  for  to  see  ?  A  prophet  ?  Yea,  I  say  unto 
you,  and  much  more  than  a  prophet.  This  is  he,  of  whom  27 
it  is  written.  Behold,  I  send  my  messenger  before  thy 
face,  which  shall  prepare  thy  way  before  thee.  For  28 
I  say  unto  you,  Among  those  that  are  born  of  women  there 
is  not  a  greater  prophet  than  John  the  Baptist :  but  he  that 
is  least  in  the  kingdom  of  God  is  greater  than  he.     And  all  29 

specially  given  both  to  ostentation  in  dress  (Acts  xiii.  21)  and  to  luxury, 
Mk.  vi.  21 ;  Jos.  B.  J.  I.  20,  §  2;  A72tt.  xix.  8,  §  2;   18,  §  7. 

in  ki7t^s  courts\  Rather,  in  palaces.  Such  as  the  palaces  of  the 
Herods  which  they  had  seen  at  Tiberias,  Caesarea  Philippi,  and 
Jerusalem.  We  might  almost  fancy  an  allusion  to  Manaen  the  Essene, 
who  is  said  in  the  Talmud  to  have  openly  adopted  gorgeous  robes  to 
shew  his  allegiance  to  Herod.  To  the  Herodians  generally,  and  to  all 
whose  Judaism  was  a  mere  matter  of  gain  and  court  favour,  might  have 
been  applied  the  sneering  nickname  of  the  Talmud  '  Proselytes  of  the 
royal  table'  [Gere  Shtclchan  Melachivi.  Kiddiishin,  f.  65.  2;  Gratz, 
III.  308).  John  had  been  in  palaces,  but  only  to  counsel  and  reprove. 
Our  Lord  on  the  only  two  occasions  on  which  He  entered  palaces — on 
the  last  day  of  His  life — was  mocked  by  '■'bright  appareV  (xxiii.  11), 
and  a  purple  or  scarlet  robe  (Matt,  xxvii.  28). 

26.  A  pnphct?]     "All  accounted  John  as  a  prophet,"  xxi.  26. 

more  than  a  prophet]  Namely,  an  actual  personal  herald  and  fore- 
runner; the  Angel  or  Messenger  of  Malachi,  iii.  i,  and  so  the  only 
Prophet  who  had  himself  been  announced  by  Prophecy. 

27.  Behold,  I  send  my  messenger]  Compare  i.  76  ;  Mk.  i.  2.  In 
the  parallel  passage  of  St  Matthew  our  Lord  adds  that  the  Baptist  is 
the  promised  Elias,  Matt.  xi.  11,  14,  xvii.  10—13;  Lk.  i.  17  (Mai. 
iv.  5).  The  quotation  is  froo  Mai.  iii.  i,  "  Behold,  I  will  send  My 
messenger,  and  he  shall  prepare  the  way  before  Me."  The  words  are 
varied  Ijecause,  in  the  original,  God  is  speaking  in  His  own  person,  and 
here  the  words  are  applieil  to  Christ. 

28.  there  is  not  a  greater  than  John  the  Baptist]  "  He  was  the 
lamp,  kindled  and  burning,"  John  v.  35.  'Major  Propheta  quia  fmis 
t  rophetarum,'  S.  Ambr.  He  closed  the  former  Aeon  and  announced 
the  new,  Matt.  xi.  11,  12. 

he  that  is  least  in  the  kingdom  of  God  is  greater  than  he]  See  by  way 
of  comment  Matt.  xiii.  16,  17;  Col.  1.  25— ^7>  ^"^1  compare  Heb. 
xi.  13.  The  simple  meaning  of  these  words  seems  to  be  that  in  bless- 
ings and  privileges,  in  knowledge,  in  revealed  hope,  in  conscious 
admission  into  fellowship  with  God,  the  hunil)lest  child  of  the  new 
kingdom  is  superior  to  the  greatest  pro]iliet  of  the  old;  seeing  that,  as 
the  old  legal  maxim  says,  "the  least  of  the  greatest  is  greater  than  the 
greatest  of  the  least."  The  smallest  diamond  is  made  of  more  precious 
substance  than  the  largest  flint.  In  the  old  dispensation  "the  Holjr 
Ghost  was  not  yet  given,  because  that  Jesus  was  not  yet  glorified, 
John  vii.  39.     Of  those  '  born  of  women '  there  was  no  greater  prophet 


152  ST   LUKE,  VII.  [w.  30—32. 

the  people  that  heard  him,  and  the  publicans,  justified  God, 

30  being  baptized  tvith  the  baptism  of  John.  But  the  Pharisees 
and  lawyers  rejected  the  counsel  of  God  against  themselves, 
being  not  baptized  of  him. 

31  And  the  Lord  said,  Whereunto  then  shall  I  liken  the  men 

32  of  this  generation  ?  and  to  what  are  they  like  ?  They  are 
like  unto  children  sitting  in  the  marketplace,  and  calling  one 
to  another,  and  saying,  We  have  piped  unto  you,  and  ye 

than  John  the  Baptist,  but  the  members  of  Christ's  Church  are  "  bom 
of  water  and  of  the  Spirit."  This  saying  of  our  Lord  respecting 
the  privileges  of  the  humblest  children  of  His  kingdom  has  seemed 
so  strange  that  attempts  have  been  made  to  give  another  tone  to  the 
meaning  by  interpreting  ^^he  that  is  least"  to  mean  "the  younger," 
and  explain  it  to  mean  our  Lord  Himself  as  "coming  after"  the 
Baptist. 

29.  justified  Godi  i.e.  they  bore  witness  that  God  was  just;  see 
ver.  35,  comp.  Ps.  li.  4,  "that  Thou  mightest  be  justified  when  Thou 
speakest,  and  be  clear  when  Thou  art  judged,"  and  Rom.  iii.  26.  St 
Luke  has  already  made  prominent  mention  of  the  publicans  at  the 
baptism  of  John,  iii.  12. 

30.  rejected  the  counsel  of  God  against  themselves"]  i.  e.  nullified  (Gal. 
ii.  21;  Prov.  i.  24)  the  purpose  of  God,  to  their  own  ruin,  or  better, 
'with  reference  to  themselves.'  The  "purpose  of  God"  (Acts  xx.  27) 
had  been  their  salvation  (i  Tim.  ii.  4). 

being  not  baptized  of  him]  They  seem  to  have  gone  to  the  ministry 
of  John  partly  out  of  curiosity,  partly  as  spies  (Matt.  iii.  7);  and  they 
consistently  refused  to  recognize  him  as  a  Prophet,  although  they  were 
prevented  from  shewing  open  hostility  by  fear  of  the  people  (Mk. 
xi.   32). 

31.  And  the  Lord  said]  These  words  are  almost  certainly  spurious, 
being  omitted  by  all  the  best  uncials. 

Whereunto  then  shall  I  liken]  Our  Lord  seems  more  than  once  to 
have  used  this  formula  to  arrest  attention  for  His  parables.    Mk.  iv.  30. 

32.  They  are  like  unto  children  sitting  in  the  marketplace]  Our 
Lord  constantly  drew  His  deepest  instruction  from  the  commonest 
phenomena  of  nature,  and  the  everyday  incidents  of  life.  Such  a 
method  gave  far  greater  force  to  the  delivery  of  His  Gospel  "to  the 
poor,"  and  it  was  wholly  unlike  the  arid,  scholastic,  technical,  and 
second-hand  methods  of  the  Rabbis. 

calling  one  to  another,  and  sayittg]  This  interesting  comparison  was 
doubtless  drawn  from  the  games  which  Jesus  had  witnessed,  and  in 
which  perhaps  He  as  a  child  had  taken  part,  in  Nazareth.  Eastern 
children  are  fond  of  playing  in  groups  at  games  of  a  very  simple  kind 
in  the  open  air.  Some  have  supposed  that  the  game  here  alluded  to 
was  a  sort  of  guessing  game  like  that  sometimes  played  by  English 
children,  and  called  '  IJumb  Show.'     This  is  not  very  probable.     The 


w.  33— 35-].  ST   LUKE,   VII.  153 

have  not  danced;  we  have  mourned  to  you,  and  ye  have 
not  wept.     For  John  the  Baptist  came  neither  eating  bread  33 
nor  drinking  wine  ;  and  ye  say,  He  hath  a  devil.     The  Son  34 
of  man  is  come  eating  and  drinking ;  and  ye  say.  Behold  a 
gluttonous  man,  and  a  winebibber,  a  friend  of  publicans  and 
sinners.     But  wisdom  is  justified  of  all  her  children.  3s 

point  of  the  comparison  is  the  peevish  sullenness  of  the  group  of 
children  who  refuse  to  take  part  in,  or  approve  of,  any  game  played  by 
their  fellows,  whether  it  be  the  merry  acting  of  a  marriage,  or  the 
imitated  sadness  of  a  funeral.  So  the  men  of  that  generation  con- 
demned the  Baptist  for  his  asceticism  which  they  attributed  to  de- 
moniacal possession  ;  and  condemned  Christ  for  His  genial  tenderness 
by  calling  Him  a  man  fond  of  good  living.  The  difficulties  and  differ- 
ences of  explanation  found  in  this  simple  parable  are  only  due  to  a 
needless  literalness.  If  indeed  we  take  the  language  quite  literally, 
'this generation^  is  compared  with  the  dancing  and  mourning  children 
who  co?nplain  of  the  sullenness  of  their  fellows;  and  if  this  be  insisted 
on,  the  meaning  must  be  that  the  Jews  complained  of  John  for  holding 
aloof  from  their  mirth,  and  of  Jesus  for  discountenancing  their  austeri- 
ties. But  it  is  the  children  who  are  looking  on  who  are  blamed,  not 
the  playing  children,  as  is  clearly  shewn  by  the  "and  ye  say"  of  vss. 
33,  34.  In  the  explanation  here  preferred  our  Lord  and  the  Baptist 
are  ijicluded  in  this  generation,  and  the  comparison  (just  as  in  the 
Homeric  similes)  is  taken  as  a  whole  to  illustrate  the  mutual  relations 
between  them  and  their  contemporaries.  So  in  Matt.  xiii.  24,  "The 
kingdom  of  heaven  is  like  unto  a  sower,  &c.,"  where  the  comparison 
is  more  to  the  reception  of  the  seed, 

33.  neither  eating  bread  nor  drinking  wine"]  "His  meat  was  locusts 
and  wild  honey,"  Matt.  iii.  4.  Being  a  Nazarite  he  drank  no  wine, 
i.  15  ;  see  2  Esdr.  ix.  24. 

He  hath  a  devil]  They  sneered  at  him  for  a  moody  or  melancholy 
temperament  which  they  attributed  to  an  evil  spirit.  This  in  fact  \yas 
their  coarse  way  of  describing  any  peculiarity  or  exaltation  which 
struck  them  as  strange.  At  a  later  period  they  said  the  same  of  Christ, 
John  vii.  20,  x.  20. 

34.  The  Son  0/ man  is  come  eatitig  and  drinking]  The  title  explains 
the  reason  of  our  Lord's  practice.  He  came  as  the  Son  of  man,  and 
therefore  He  came  to  shew  that  the  common  life  of  all  nien  could  be 
lived  with  perfect  holiness,  and  that  seclusion  and  asceticism  were  not 
necessary  as  universal  conditions. 

Behold  a  gluttonous  man,  and  a  wint'lnhbcr]  These  words  are  too 
strong.  Rather,  an  eater,  and  a  drinker  of  wine.  Phagos  does  not 
occur  in  the  LXX.  or  N.  T.  ;  oinopotcs  only  in  I'rov.  xxiii.  20. 

a  friend  of  publicans  and  sinners]  Thus  I  lis  divinest  mercy  was 
turned  into  His  worst  reproach. 

35.  But]  Literally,  "And,"  but  the  Greek  kai  often  has  the  force 
of  'and  yet.' 


154  ST   LUKE,   VII.  fv.  36. 

36 — 39-      'jFesus  in  the  House  of  Simon. 
36      And  one  of  the  Pharisees  desired  him  that  he  would  eat 
with  him.     And  he  went  into  the  Pharisee's  house,  and  sat 

wisdom]  The  personification  of  God's  wisdom  was  common  in  the 
later  Jewish  literature,  as  in  the  Book  of  Wisdom.  It  is  also  found 
in  the  Old  Testament  (Prov.  i.  ao,  ix.,  &c.). 

is  justified  of  all  her  children']  Rather,  was  Justified  by,  i.  e.  has 
from  the  first  been  acquitted  of  all  wrong  and  error,  receives  the 
witness  of  being  just,  at  the  hands  of  all  her  children.  The  "children 
of  wisdom  "  generally  (Prov.  ii.  i,  iii.  i,  &c.)  are  those  who  obey 
God,  and  here  are  those  of  that  generation  who  accepted  the  baptism 
of  John  and  the  ministry  of  Jesus,  without  making  a  stumbling-block 
of  their  different  methods.  The  Jews,  like  the  petulant  children, 
refused  to  sympathise  either  with  John  or  Jesus— the  one  they  con- 
demned for  exaggerated  strictness,  the  other  for  dangerous  laxity  :  yet 
the  Wise,— Wisdom's  true  children— once  for  all  declare  that  she  is 
righteous,  and  free  from  blame  :  for  they  know  that  wisdom  is  polu- 
poikilos,  'richly-variegated,'  'of  many  colours,'  Eph.  iii.  10.  The 
world's  wisdom  was  foolishness  ;  those  whom  the  world  called  fools 
were  divinely  wise,  John  iii.  33.  Wisdom  is  thus  justified  by  her 
children  both  actively  and  passively  ;  they  declare  her  to  be  just  and 
holy,  and  the  wor/(/ ultimately  sees  that  her  guidance  as  exemplified  by 
their  lives  is  the  best  guidance  (Wisd.  v.  5,  4  ;  Ps.  li.  4;  Rom.  iii.  4). 
The  reading  tj^-^wv  'works'  for  rUvi^v  'children'  in  N  may  be  derived 
from  the  variant  reading  in  Matt.  xi.  19. 

36—39.    Jesus  in  the  House  of  Simon. 

36.  one  of  the  Pharisees']  This  exquisite  narrative  is  peculiar  to  St 
Luke,  and  well  illustrates  that  conception  of  the  universality  and  free 
gift  of  grace  which  predominates  in  his  Gospel  as  in  St  Paul.  To 
identify  this  Simon  with  Simon  the  Leper  in  Mk.  xiv.  3  is  quite 
arbitrary.  It  was  one  of  the  commonest  Jewish  names.  There  were 
two  Simons  among  the  Twelve,  and  there  are  nine  Simons  mentioned 
in  the  New  Testament  alone,  and  twenty  in  Josephus.  There  must 
therefore  have  been  thousands  of  Simons  in  Palestine,  where  names 
were  few.  The  incident  itself  was  one  which  fuight  have  happened 
frequently,  being  in  close  accordance  with  the  customs  of  the  time  and 
country.  And  with  the  uncritical  attempt  to  identify  Simon  the  Pharisee 
with  Simon  the  Leper,  there  also  falls  to  the  ground  the  utterly  im- 
probable identification  of  the  woman  who  was' a  sinner  with  Mary  of 
Bethany.  The  time,  the  place,  the  circumstances,  the  character,  the 
words  uttered,  and  the  results  of  the  incident  recorded  in  Matt.  xxvi.  7  ; 
Mk.  xiv.  3  ;  John  xii.  3  are  all  entirely  different. 

that ^  he  would  eat  with  him]  The  invitation  was  clearly  due  to  a 
patronising  curiosity,  if  not  to  a  worse  and  hostile  motive.  The  whole 
manner  of  the  Pharisee  to  Jesus  was  like  his  invitation,  ungracious. 
But  it  was  part  of  our  Lord's  mission  freely  to  accept  the  proffered 
hospitality  of  all,  that  He  might  reach  every  class. 


w.  37,  381  ST   LUKE,   VII.  ,55 

down  to  meat.     And  behold,  a  woman  in  the  city,  which  37 
was  a  sinner,  when  she  knew  that  Jesus  sat  at  meat  in  the 
Pharisee's  house,  brought  an  alabaster  box  of  ointment,  and  38 
stood  at  his  feet  behind  him  weeping,  and  began  to  wash 

sat  dotvn  to  meat'\  Rather,  reclined  at  table.  The  old  method  of 
the  Jews  had  been  that  of  the  East  in  general,  to  sit  at  table  [anapiptein, 
XI.  37;  attakeistkai,  vii.  37;  anaklinesthai,  xii.  37)  generally  cross-legged 
on  the  floor,  or  on  divans  (Gen.  xxvii.  19;  i  Sam.  xx.  5,  18;  Ps. 
cxxviii.  3  ;  Cant.  i.  12,  &c.).  They  had  borrowed  the  custom  of 
reclining  on  couches  {triclinia,  comp.  apxcrplKXcvos,  John  ii.  8)  from 
the  Persians  (Esth.  i.  6,  vii.  8),  the  Greeks  and  Romans,  after  the  Exile 
(Tobit  ii.  I  ;  I  Esdr.  iv.  10;  Judith  xii.  15).  The  influence  of  the 
Greeks  had  been  felt  in  the  nation  for  three  hundred  years,  and  that  of 
the  Romans  for  nearly  a  hundred  years,  since  the  conquest  of  Jerusalem 
by  Pompey,  B.  c.  63. 

37.  a  woman  iti  the  city]  The  harsher  reading  of  A,  B,  L,  is 
"who  was  a  sinner  in  the  city."  No  city  is  named,  but  if  the  Christian 
church  is  right  in  identifying  this  woman  with  Mary  Magdalene,  we 
inay  assume  that  the  city  implied  is  Magdala,  which  appears  at  that 
time  to  have  been  a  flourishing  place,  though  now  it  is  only  a  mud 
village—El  Mejdel.  It  cannot  of  course  be  regarded  as  indisputable 
that  this  woman  was  the  Magdalene,  but  it  is,  to  say  the  least,  possible  ; 
and  there  is  no  sufficient  reason  to  disturb  the  current  Christian  belief 
which  has  been  consecrated  in  so  many  glorious  works  of  art.  See 
fiirther  on  viii.  2. 

which  was  a  sinner]  It  was  the  Jewish  term  for  a  harlot,  and  such 
had  come  even  to  John's  baptism,  Matt.  xxi.  32. 

when  she  knew  that  Jesus  sat  at  meat]  Literally,  getting  to  know. 
She  had  not  of  course  received  permission  to  enter,  but  the  prominence 
of  hospitality  as  the  chief  of  Eastern  virtues  led  to  all  houses  being  left 
open,  so  that  during  a  meal  any  one  who  wished  could  enter  and  look 
on.  "To  sit  down  to  eat  with  common  people"  was  one  of  the  six 
things  which  no  Rabbi  or  Pupil  of  the  Wise  might  do;  another  was  "to 
speak  with  a  woman."     Our  Lord  freely  did  both. 

an  alabaster  box]  The  word  alabastron  meant  originally  a  vase  or 
phial  of  alabaster,  such  as  were  used  for  perfumes  and  unguents  (//«- 
giienta  optime  sei~vantitr  in  alabast7-is,  Plin.  XIII.  3),  but  afterwards 
came  to  mean  any  phial  used  for  a  similar  purpose  (just  as  our  box 
originally  meant  a  receptacle  made  of  box-wood). 

of  ointment]  This  was  doubtless  one  of  the  implements  of  her  guilty 
condition  (Prov.  vii.  17,  Is.  iii.  24),  and  her  willingness  to  sacrifice  it 
was  a  sign  of  her  sincere  repentance  (comp.  Cant.  iv.  lo). 

38.  stood  at  his  feet  behind  him]  This  is  explained  by  the  arrange- 
ment of  the  triclinia,  by  which  the  guest  reposed  on  his  elbow  at  the 
table,  with  his  unsandalled  feet  outstretched  on  the  couch.  Each  guest 
left  his  sandals  beside  the  door  on  entering.  Literally  the  verse  is,  "And 
standing  behind  beside  His  feet  weeping,  with  her  tears  siie  began  to 
bedew  His  feet,  and  with  the  hairs  of  her  head  she  wiped  lliein  olf,  and 


iS6  ST   LUKE,  VII.  [vv.  39,  40. 

his  feet  with  tears,  and  did  wipe  them  with  the  hairs  of  her 
head,  and   kissed   his  feet,   and   anointed   them   with   the 

39  ointment.  Now  when  the  Pharisee  which  had  bidden  him 
saw  //,  he  spake  within  himself,  saying.  This  man,  if  he  were 
a  prophet,  would  have  known  who  and  what  manner  of 

40  woman  this  is  that  toucheth  him  :  for  she  is  a  sinner.     And 

was  eagerly  kissing  His  feet,  and  anointing  them  with  the  perfume." 
As  she  bent  over  His  feet  her  tears  began  to  fall  on  them,  perhaps 
accidentally  at  first,  and  she  wiped  them  off  with  the  long  dishevelled 
hair  ( I  Cor.  xi.  15)  which  shewed  her  shame  and  anguish,  and  then  in  her 
joy  and  gratitude  at  finding  herself  unrepulsed,  she  poured  the  unguent 
over  them.  The  scene  and  its  moral  are  beautifully  expressed  in  the 
sonnet  of  Hartley  Coleridge. 

*'  She  sat  and  wept  beside  His  feet.     The  weight 
Of  sin  oppressed  her  heart;   for  all  the  blame 
And  the  poor  malice,  of  the  worldly  shame 
To  her  were  past,  extinct,  and  out  of  date : 
Only  the  sin  remained — the  leprous  state. 
She  would  be  melted  by  the  heat  of  love, 
By  fires  far  fiercer  than  are  blown  to  prove 
And  purge  the  silver  ore  adulterate. 
She  sat  and  wept,   and  with  her  untressed  hair 
Still  wiped  the  feet  she  was  so  blest  to  touch; 
And  He  wiped  off  the  soiling  of  despair 
From  her  sweet  soul,  because  she  loved  so  much." 
No  one  but  a  woman  in  the  very  depths  of  anguish  would  have 
violated  all  custom  by  appearing  in  public  with  uncovered  head  (i  Cor. 
xi.  10). 

weeping]  Doubtless  at  the  contrast  of  His  sinlessness  and  her  own 
stained  life.  She  could  not  have  done  thus  to  the  Pharisee,  who  would 
have  repelled  her  with  execration  as  bringing  pollution  by  her  touch. 
The  deepest  sympathy  is  caused  by  the  most  perfect  sinlessness.  It  is 
not  impossible  that  on  that  very  day  she  may  have  heard  the  "Come 
unto  me"  of  Matt.  xi.  28. 

kissed]  The  word  means  'was  earnestly'  or  'tenderly  kissing,'  as  in 
Acts  XX.  37. 

39.  This  man]  The  word  in  the  original  expresses  the  supercilious 
scorn  which  is  discernible  throughout  in  the  bearing  of  the  speaker. 

who  and  what  manner  of  woman]  'Who,'  because  the  particular 
offender  was  notorious  for  her  beauty  and  her  shame.  This  rather 
strengthens  the  inference  that  the  woman  was  Mary  of  Magdala,  for 
the  legends  of  the  Jewish  Talmud  respecting  her  shew  that  she  was 
well  known. 

that  toucheth  hint]  Rather,  "who  is  clinging  to  him."  Simon  makes 
a  double  assumption — first  that  a  prophet  would  have  known  the  cha- 
racter of  the  woman,  and  next  that  he  would  certainly  have  repelled 
her.     The  bearing  and  tone   of  the  Rabbis  towards   women   closely 


%'v.  41— 44-]  ST   LUKE,   VII.  157 

Jesus  answering  said  unto  him,  Simon,  I  have  somewhat  to 
say  unto  thee.     And  he  saith,  Master,  say  on.     There  was  a  4' 
certain  creditor  which  had  two  debtors  :  the  one  ought  five 
hundred  pence,  and  the  other  fifty.     And  when  they  had  42 
nothing  to  pay,  he  fi"ankly  forgave  them  both.    Tell  me  there- 
fore, which  of  them  will  love  him  most  ?     Simon  answered  43 
and  said,  I  suppose  that  he,  to  whom  he  forgave  most.    And 
he  said  unto  him,  Thou  hast  rightly  judged.    And  he  turned  44 
to  the  woman,  and  said  unto  Simon,  Seest  thou  this  woman  ? 

resembled  that  of  some  mediaeval  monks.  They  said  that  no  one  should 
stand  nearer  them  than  four  cubits.  But  Jesus  knew  more  of  the  woman 
than  Simon  did,  and  was  glad  that  she  should  shed  on  His  feet  the  tears 
of  penitence.  A  great  prophet  had  declared  long  before  that  those 
which  say,  "  Stand  by  thyself,  come  not  near  to  me,  for  I  am  holier 
than  thou,"  were  "a  smoke  in  my  nose."     Is.  Ixv.  5. 

40.  answeringi     "He  heard  the  Pharisee  thinking."     S.Aug. 
unto  thee]     The  emphasis  is  on  these  words,  You  have  been  thinking 

evil  of  me:  I  have  something  to  say  to  thee. 
Master]     Rather,  Teacher,  or  Rabbi. 

41.  a  certain  creditor]     Rather,  money-lender. 

Jive  hundred  pence]  A  denarius  was  the  day's  wages  of  a  labourer 
and  is  usually  reckoned  at  ^ld.,  but  really  represents  much  more. 
Hence  500  denarii  would  certainly  represent  as  much  as  ^^'50  m  these 
days.  The  frequency  of  our  Lord's  illustrations  from  debtors  and  credi- 
tors shews  the  disturbed  and  unprosperous  condition  of  the  country 
under  Roman  and  Herodian  oppression. 

42.  he  frankly  forgave  them]  In  the  original,  the  one  word  ^x*- 
pl,jaTo,  'he  remitted,'  involving  the  idea  of  that  free  grace  and  favour 
(charis)  on  which  St  Luke,  like  St  Paul,  is  always  glad  to  dwell,  bee 
Rom.  iii.  24 ;  Eph.  ii.  8,  9,  iv.  32.  .     ^,         .  .     ,  ,1 

43.  I  suppose]  'I  imagine;'  'I  presume.'  The  original  word  has 
a  shade  of  supercilious  irony  (comp.  Acts  ii.  15),  as  though  .Simon 
thought  the  question  very  trivial,  and  never  dreamt  that  it  could  have 
any  bearing  on  himself.  .      ,  ,   .  .  , 

r?>/i//i/]  There  is  a  touch  of  gentle  sarcasm  m  the  use  of  this  word, 
which  involves  Simon's  self-condemnation.  It  is  the  word  so  often 
adopted  by  Socrates  as  one  of  his  implements  of  dialectic  "•ony- 

44.  Seest  thou  this  woman]  Rather,  Dost  thou  mark?  Hitherto 
the  Pharisee,  in  accordance  with  his  customs  and  traditions,  had 
hardly  deigned  to  throw  upon  her  one  disdainful  glance.  Now  Jesus 
bids  him  look  full  upon  her  to  shew  him  that  she  had  really  done  the 
honours  of  his  house.     Her  love  had  more  than  atoned  for  his  coldness 

We  notice  in  the  language  here  that  rhythnnc  parallelism,  which  is 
Often  traceable  in  the  words  of  our  Lord,  at  periods  of  special  emotion. 

Into  thine  house  I  entered  : 

Water  upon  my  feet  thou  gavest  not. 


158 ST   LUKE,  VII.  [w.  45-47. 

I  entered  into  thine  house,  thou  gavest  me  no  water  for  my 
feet:  but  she  hath  washed  my  feet  with  tears,  and  wiped 

45  them  with  the  hairs  of  her  head.     Thou  gavest  me  no  kiss  : 
but  this  woTnan  since  the  time  I  came  in  hath  not  ceased  to 

46  kiss  my  feet.     Mine  head  with  oil  thou  didst  not  anoint : 

47  but  this  woman  hath  anointed  my  feet  with  ointment.    Where- 
fore I  say  unto  thee,  Her  sins,  which  are  many,  are  forgiven; 

But  she  with  her  tears  bedewed  my  feet, 

And  with  her  tresses  wiped  them. 

A  kiss  thou  gavedst  me  not : 

But  she,  since  I  entered,  ceased  not  earnestly  kissing  my  feet. 

My  head  with  oil  thou  anointedst  not, 

But  she  anointed  my  feet  with  perfume. 

Wherefore  I  say  to  thee,  Her  sins,  her  many  sins,  have  been  for- 
given, because  she  loved  much. 

But  he  to  whom  little  is  being  forgiven  loveth  little. 

"As  oft  as  I  think  over  this  event,"  says  Gregory  the  Great,  "I  am 
more  disposed  to  weep  over  it  than  to  preach  upon  it." 

thou  gavest  me  no  water  for  my  feet]  Thus  Simon  had  treated  his 
guest  with  such  careless  indifference  as  to  have  neglected  the  commonest 
courtesies  and  comforts.  To  sandalled  travellers  on  those  burning, 
rocky,  dusty  paths,  water  for  the  feet  was  a  necessity;  John  xiii.  4,  5. 
'' Wash  your  feef,  and  rest  yourselves  under  the  tree,"  Gen.  xviii.  4. 
."Tarry  all  night,  and  wash  your  feet,"  Gen.  xix.  2.  "He  brought 
them  into  his  house,  and  they  washed  their  feet,"  Judg.  xix.  21.  "If 
she  have  washed  the  saints'  feet,"  i  Tim.  v.  10. 

hath  washed]     Rather,  bedewed  or  wetted. 

with  tears]  "The  most  priceless  of  waters."  Bengel.  "She  poured 
forth  tears,  the  blood  of  the  heart."     S.  Aug. 

45.  no  kiss]  The  ordinary  salutation  of  respect  in  the  East,  where 
the  first  thing  when  two  friends  meet  and  wish  to  do  each  other  honour 
is  to  try  to  kiss  each  other's  hands.  The  kiss  on  the  cheek  is  between 
equals  and  also  to  superiors.  Absalom,  to  gain  favour,  kissed  every 
man  who  came  near  him  to  do  him  obeisance;  2  Sam.  xv.  5.  "The 
king  kissed  Barzillai,"  id.  xix.  39.  Hence  this  was  a  natural  signal  of 
recognition  for  the  traitor  to  give ;  Matt.  xxvi.  49.  See  Acts  xx.  37. 
Hence  the  osculum  pads,  Rom.  xvi.  16,  &c. 

I  came  in]  There  is  another  reading,  elcrv\0ej>,  'she  came  in'  (L  and 
some  versions),  which  is  probable,  for  the  woman  only  ascertained  that 
Jesus  was  at  the  house  after  He  had  entered  it. 

46.  Afy  head  with  oil  thou  didst  not  anoint]  This  would  have  been 
an  exceptional  mark  of  honour,  though  not  uncommon.  "Let  thy 
head  lack  no  ointment,"  Eccles.  ix.  8 ;  Amos  vi.  6 ;  Ps,  xxiii.  5.  Here 
it  is  only  mentioned  to  contrast  it  with  the  still  higher  honour  of  which 
the  sinful  woman  had  thought  Him  worthy.  To  anoint  the  feet  was 
regarded  as  an  extreme  luxury  (Pliny,  H.  N.  Xlli.  4),  but  the  love  of  the 
sinner  thought  no  honour  too  great  for  her  Saviour. 


159 


vv.  48—50.]  ST   LUKE,  VTT. 

for  she  loved  much  :  but  to  whom  little  is  forgiven,  the  same 
loveth  little.     And  he  said  unto  her,  Thy  sins  are  forgiven.  48 
And  they  that  sat  at  meat  with  him  began  to  say  within  49 
themselves,  Who  is  this  that  forgiveth  sins  also  ?     And  he  50 
said  to  the  woman,  Thy  faith  hath  saved  thee ;  go  in  peace. 

47.  for  she  loved  mitcJi]  Rather,  because.  No  doubt,  theologically, 
faith,  not  love,  is  ihe  means  of  pardon  (vs.  50);  hence,  some  interpret 
the  ^because'  a  posteriori,  and  make  it  mean  'she  is  forgiven,'  as  you 
may  conclude  from  the  fact  that  she  loved  much.  It  is  more  than 
doubtful  whether  this  was  intended.  Her  love  and  her  forgiveness 
were  mingled  with  each  other  in  mutual  interchange.  She  loved  be- 
cause she  was  forgiven;  she  was  forgiven  because  she  loved.  Her 
faith  and  her  love  were  one;  it  was  "faith  working  by  love"  (Gal.  v.  6), 
and  the  love  proved  the  faith.  Spiritual  things  do  not  admit  of  the 
clear  sequences  of  earthly  things.  There  is  with  God  no  before  or 
after,  but  only  an  eternal  now. 

to  whom  little  is  forgivett]  The  life  of  conventional  respectability 
excludes  flagrant  and  open  transgressions;  cold  selfishness  does  not 
take  itself  to  be  sinful.  Simon  imagined  that  he  had  little  to  be 
forgiven,  and  therefore  loved  little.  Had  he  been  a  true  saint  he 
would  have  recognised  his  debt.  The  confessions  of  the  holiest  are 
also  the  most  heartrending,  because  they  most  fully  recognise  the 
true  nature  of  sin.  What  is  wanted  to  awaken  'much  love'  is  not 
'much  sin' — for  we  all  have  that  qualification — but  deep  sense  of  sin. 
"Ce  qui  manque  au  meilleur  pour  aimer  beaucoup,  ce  n'est  pas  le 
peche;  c^est  la  connaissance  du  pech^."     Godet. 

48.  are  forgiven']  Rather,  have  been  forgiven.  The  is  forgiven  of 
the  previous  verse  is  in  the  present,  "is  being  forgiven.'"  Both  in  the 
Old  and  New  Testaments  the  readiness  of  God  to  forgive  the  deepest 
and  most  numerous  sins  is  dwelt  upon  (Is.  i.  18,  Iv.  7),  and  also  the 
absoluteness  of  the  forgiveness  (Rom.  v.  20;  i  John  iv.  10,  19).  There 
is  an  obvious  analogy  between  the  little  parable  of  the  debtors  and  that 
of  the  uncompassionate  servant  (Matt,  xviii.  ■23 — if). 

49.  began  to  say  tvithin  themselves']  His  words  caused  a  shock  of 
surprised  silence  which  did  not  as  yet  dare  to  vent  itself  in  open 
murmurs. 

60.  he  said  to  the  woman']  Our  Lord  would  not  on  this,  as  on  the 
previous  occasion,  rebuke  them  for  their  thoughts,  because  tlie  mir.ncle 
which  He  had  worked  was  the  purely  spiritual  one  of  wmnmg  hack  a 
guilty  soul,— a  miracle  which  they  could  not  comprehend,  turtlicr, 
He  compassionately  desired  to  set  the  woman  free  frum  a  notice  which 
must  now  have  become  deeply  painful  to  lier  shrinking  penitence. 

Thy  faith  hath  saved  thee]  The  faith  of  the  recijncnt  was  tlie 
necessary  condition  of  a  miracle,  whether  physical  or  spiritual.  Mk.  v. 
34,  ix.  23;  Matt.  ix.  2,  xiii.   58.  "v.  28;  John  iv.  50;   Acts  111.   i«, 

Xiv.  8.  ■  r     1        1 1    1 

go  in  peace]     Rather,  to  or  into  peace— a  translation  of  the  Ilehrcw 


i6o  ST   LUKE,   VIII.  [w.  i,  2. 


Ch.  VIII.     I — 3.      The  Ministering  Women. 

8  And  it  came  to  pass  afterward,  that  he  went  throughout 
every  city  and  village,  preaching  and  shewing  the  glad  tidings 

2  of  the  kingdom  of  God  :  and  the  twelve  were  with  him,  and 
certain  women,  which  had  been  healed  of  evil  spirits  and 
infirmities,  Mary  called  Magdalene,  out  of  whom  went  seven 

leshalSm,  "for  peace,"  i  Sam.  i.  17.  "Peace"  {skalom)  was  the 
Hebrew,  as  ^grace'  (xaipeiv)  was  the  Hellenic  salutation.  See  on 
ii.  29,  and  Excursus  VII. 

Notice  that  St  Luke  omits  the  anointing  of  Jesus  by  Mary  of  Bethany 
from  a  deliberate  "economy  of  method,"  which  leads  him  to  exclude 
all  second  or  similar  incidents  to  those  which  he  has  already  related. 
Thus  he  omits  a  second  feeding  of  the  multitude,  and  healings  of  blind, 
dumb,  and  demoniac,  of  which  he  severally  gives  a  single  specimen. 
The  events  of  Mk.  vii.  24 — viii.  26  and  ix.  12 — 14  are  probably  ex- 
cluded by  St  Luke  on  this  principle — to  avoid  repetition.  It  is  a  sign 
of  what  German  writers  call  his  SpMsamkeit.  Nor  must  we  forget 
that  the  records  of  all  the  manifold  activity  which  at  times  left  the 
Lord  no  leisure  even  to  eat,  are  confined  to  a  few  incidents,  and  only 
dwell  on  the  details  of  a  few  special  days. 

Ch.  VIIL  1 — 3.    The  Ministering  Women. 

1.  A7id  it  came  to  pass  aftenuard]  The  expression  marks  a  new 
phase,  a  new  departure,  in  Christ's  mode  of  action.  Hitherto  He  had 
made  Capernaum  His  head-quarters;  regarded  it  as  "His  own  city," 
and  not  gone  to  any  great  distance  from  it.  At  this  period — the  exact 
beginning  of  which  is  only  vaguely  marked — He  began  a  wider  range 
of  missions. 

shewing  the  glad  tidings']  The  Baptist  had  preached  'repentance' 
as  the  preparation  for  the  Kingdom  :  our  Lord  preached  of  the  Kingdom 
itself,  and  this  was  'glad  tidings,'  because  the  Kingdom  of  God  is 
"righteousness  and  peace  and  joy  in  the  Holy  Ghost."     Rom.  xiv.  17. 

2.  certain  women]  This  most  remarkable  circumstance  is  pro- 
minently mentioned  by  St  Luke  alone,  though  alluded  to  in  Matt, 
xxvii.  55,  56  ;  Mark  xv.  41.  It  accords  alike  with  the  probability 
that  some  of  his  peculiar  sources  of  information  had  been  derived 
from  women;  and  with  the  certainty  that  he  is  fond  of  dwelling  on 
the  graciousness  and  tenderness  of  Jesus  even  to  a  class  so  much 
despised  and  neglected  as  Eastern  women.  See  Introd.  p.  26.  At 
an  earlier  period  (John  iv.  27)  the  disciples  had  been  amazed  to  see 
Jesus  even  talking  with  a  woman. 

Mary  called  Magdalene]  i.  e.  Mary,  who  to  distinguish  her  from 
numerous  others  who  bore  that  very  common  name  (Miriam),  was 
known  from  her  native  place  as  Mary  of  Magdala.  We  have  already 
seen  that,  as  far  as  tradition  is  concerned,  we  cannot  be  certain  that 
the   Christian  world  is  right  in  generally  identifying  her   with  'the 


3-]  ST   LUKE,  VIII.  i6i 


devils,  and  Joanna  the  wife  of  Chuza  Herod's  steward,  and  3 
Susanna,  and  many  others,  which   ministered  unto  him  of 
their  substance. 

sinner'  of  the  last  chapter.  Origen  rejects  the  identification;  St 
Ambrose,  St  Augustine,  and  St  Jerome  are  doubtful.  The  iden- 
tification is  first  confidently  accepted  by  Gregory  the  Great  (died 
A.  D.  604).  There  is  nothing  however  to  disprove  the  fact.  In  the 
earlier  scene  her  name  might  well  have  been  suppressed  from  the 
spirit  of  loving  and  delicate  reticence.  The  locality  of  the  scene, 
and  the  stage  of  the  ministry  at  which  she  is  introduced,  agree  with 
the  supposition,  as  well  as  the  intense  absorbing  affection  of  one  who 
"loved  much." 

out  of  whom  7vent  seven  detnls]  St  Mark  (xvi.  9)  uses  a  similar 
expression.  Some  have  thought  that  this  excludes  the  possibility  of 
the  life  indicated  by  the  words  "a  sinner  in  the  city."  On  the 
contrary  it  agrees  well  with  it.  Early  Christian  writers  see  in  the 
"many  sins"  (vii.  47)  a  reference  which  accords  with,  if  it  be  not 
the  same  as,  "seven  devils,"  and  that  this  may  be  the  meaning  is 
quite  certain  from  xi.  26.  Apart  from  the  general  question  as  to 
demoniac  possession  in  particular  cases,  it  is  quite  certain  that  Jewish 
colloquial  usage  adopted  the  expression  to  describe  many  forms  of 
disease  (as  for  instance  hydrophobia,  epilepsy,  &c.),  and  many  forms 
of  sin  (as  drunkenness,  &c.).  The  Talmudists  (as  we  have  seen) 
have  many  wild  stories  to  tell  of  Mary  of  Magdala,  but  they  agree  in 
describing  her  as  a  flagrant  sinner  rather  than  as  a  demoniac. 

3.  yoantta]  She  is  mentioned  only  in  xxiv.  10,  but  had  apparently 
been  healed  of  some  infirmity. 

the  wife  of  Chiiza  Herod's  steward\  The  court  of  Antipas  was  well 
aware  of  the  ministry  and  claims  of  Jesus.  Not  only  had  John  the 
Baptist  been  a  familiar  figure  there,  but  Manaen,  Herod's  foster- 
brother,  early  became  a  Christian  (Acts  xiii.  1),  and  whether  Chuzas 
be  the  courtier  (basilikos,  E.  V.  'nobleman')  of  John  iv.  46  or  not, 
that  courtier  could  only  have  been  in  the  retinue  of  Antipas,  and 
must  have  made  known  the  healing  of  his  son  by  Jesus.  The  word 
epitropos,  'administrator,'  conveys  the  impression  of  a  higher  rank  than 
steward  \oikonomos).  The  Rabbis  adopted  the  word  in  Hebrew  letters, 
and  said  that  Obadiah  was  Ahab's  epitropos.  Manaen  at  Antioch 
was  perhaps  the  source  of  St  Luke's  special  knowledge  about  the 
Herodian  family. 

Susanna]     The  name  means  '  Lily.' 

many  others]     See  Matt,  xxvii.  55. 

which  ministered  unto  him  of  I  heir  substance]  or  'to  them,^  B,  D. 
F,  G,  H,  &c.  This  notice  is  deeply  interesting  as  throwing  light 
on  the  otherwise  unsolved  problem  of  the  means  of  livelihood  possessed 
by  Jesus  and  His  Apostles.  They  had  a  common  purse  \vhich  sufficed 
not  only  for  their  own  needs  but  for  those  of  the  poor  (John  xiii.  29).  The 
Apostles  had  absolutely  forsaken  their  daily  callings,  but  wc  may 
suppose  that  some  of  them  (like  Matthew  and  the  sons  of  the  wealthier 

ST  LUKE  Tl 


1 62  ST   LUKE,  VIII.  [vv.  4,  5. 

4 — 15.      The  Parable  of  the  Sower. 

4  And  when  much  people  were  gathered  together,  and  were 

5  come  to  him  out  of  every  city,  he  spake  by  a  parable :  A 

fisherman  Zebedee)  had  some  small  resources  of  their  own,  and  here 
we  see  that  these  women,  some  of  whom  (as  tradition  says  of  Mary 
of  Magdala)  were  rich,  helped  to  maintain  them.  It  must  also  be 
borne  in  mind  (i)  that  the  needs  of  an  Oriental  are  very  small.  A  few 
dates,  a  little  parched  corn,  a  draught  of  water,  a  few  figs  or  grapes 
plucked  from  the  roadside  trees,  suffice  him  ;  and  in  that  climate  he  can 
sleep  during  most  of  the  year  in  the  open  air  wrapped  up  in  the  same 
outer  garment  which  serves  him  for  the  day.  Hence  the  maintenance  of 
a  poor  man  in  Palestine  is  wholly  different  from  the  standard  of  main- 
tenance required  in  such  countries  as  ours  with  their  many  artificial  needs. 
And  yet  (2)  in  spite  of  this  our  Lord  was  so  poor  as  to  be  homeless 
(ix.  58)  and  without  the  means  of  even  paying  the  small  Temple-tribute 
of  a  didrachm  (about  \s.  6d.),  which  was  demanded  from  every  adult 
Jew.     Matt.  xvii.  24;  2  Cor.  viii.  9. 

4 — 15,  The  Parable  of  the  Sower. 

4.  zvhen  much  people  were  gathered  together"]  Rather,  were  coming 
together.  Our  Lord,  though  ready  at  all  times  to  utter  the  most 
priceless  truths  even  to  one  lonely  and  despised  listener,  yet  wisely 
apportioned  ends  to  means,  and  chose  the  assembling  of  a  large  mul- 
titude for  the  occasion  of  a  new  departure  in  His  style  of  teaching. 

and  were  come  to  hwi  out  of  every  city]  Rather,  and  (a  multitude) 
of  those  throughout  every  city  resorting  to  Him.  A  comparison  of 
this  Parable  and  the  details  respecting  its  delivery,  as  preserved  in 
each  of  the  Synoptists  (Matt.  xiii.  2 — 13;  Mark  iv.  i — 20),  ought 
alone  to  be  decisive  as  to  the  fact  that  the  three  Evangelists  did  not 
use  each  other's  narratives,  and  did  not  draw  from  the  same  written 
source  such  as  the  supposed  Proto- Marcus  of  German  theorists.  The 
oral  or  written  sources  which  they  consulted  seem  to  have  been  most 
closely  faithful  in  all  essentials,  but  tliey  differed  in  minute  details  and 
expressions  as  all  narratives  do.  From  St  Matthew  (xiii.  i)  we  learn 
that  Jesus  had  just  left  "the  house,"  perhaps  that  of  Peter  at  Caper-  ' 
naum ;  and  therefore  the  place  which  He  chose  for  His  first  Parable 
was  probably  the  strip  of  bright  hard  sand  on  the  shore  of  the  Lake 
at  Bethsaida.  Both  St  Matthew  and  St  Mark  tell  us  that  (doubtless, 
as  on  other  occasions,  to  avoid  the  pressure  of  the  crowd)  He  got  on 
one  of  the  boats  by  the  lake-side  and  preached  from  thence. 

liy  a  parable]  St  Luke  here  only  reports  the  Parable  of  the  Sower 
and  its  interpretation.  St  Mark  adds  that  of  the  seed  growing  secretly 
(Mark  iv.  26 — 29),  and  that  of  the  grain  of  mustard  seed  (30 — 32 ; 
Luke  xiii.  18 — 21).  St  Matthew  (xiii.  24 — 53)  gives  his  memorable 
group  of  seven  Parables  :  the  Sower,  the  Tares,  the  Mustard  Seed, 
the  Leaven,  the  Hid  Treasure,  the  Pearl,  the  Drag-net.  This  is  no 
doubt  due  to  subjective  grouping.     Our  Lord  would  not  bewilder  and 


6]  ST   LUKE,   VIII. 


163 


sower  went  out  to  sow  his  seed  :  and  as  he  sowed,  some  fell 
by  the  way  side ;  and  it  was  trodden  down,  and  the  fowls  of 
the  air  devoured  it.     And  some  fell  upon  a  rock ;  and  as  6 

distract  by  mere  multiplicity  of  teachings,  but  taught  "as  they  were 
able  to  hear  it"  (Mark  iv.  33).  '  Parable'  is  derived  from  paraballo 
'I  place  beside   in  order  to  compare. 

A  Parable  is  a  pictorial  or  narrative  exhibition  of  some  spiritual  or 
moral  truth,  by  means  of  actual  and  not  fanciful  elements  of  comparison. 
It  differs  from  s.  fable  by  moving  solely  within  the  bounds  of  the  possi- 
ble and  by  aiming  at  the  illustration  of  deeper  truths;  from  a  simile 
m  Its  completer  and  often  dramatic  development,  as  also  in  its  object ; 
from  an  allegory  in  not  being  identical  wilh  the  truth  illustrated! 
The  moral  objects  which  our  Lord  had  in  view  are  explained  below 
(vs.  10),  but  we  may  notice  here  the  unapproachable  superiority  of  our 
Lord's  Parables  to  those  of  all  other  teachers.  Parables  are  found 
scattered  throughout  the  literature  of  the  world.  They  abound  in  the 
poems  and  sacred  books  of  later  religions  (Ecclus.  i.  25,  "Parables  of 
knowledge  are  in  the  treasures  of  wisdom,")  and  they  have  been  fre- 
quently adopted  in  later  days.  But  "never  man  spake  like  this  Man," 
and  no  Parables  have  ever  touched  the  heart  and  conscience  of  mankind 
in  all  ages  and  countries  like  those  of  Christ.  "He  taught  them  by 
Parables  under  which  were  hid  mysterious  senses,  which  shined  through 
their  veil,  like  a  bright  sun  through  an  eye  closed  with  a  thin  eyelid." 
Jer.  Taylor.  For  Old  Testament  parables  see  2  Sam.  xii.  1—7;  Eccl. 
ix.  14 — 16;  Is.  xxviii.  23 — 29.  St  Luke  is  especially  rich  in  Parables. 
The  word  'parable'  sometimes  stands  for  the  Hebrew  7iiashal  'a 
proverb'  (iv.  23;  i  Sam.  x.  12,  xxiv.  13);  sometimes  for  a  rhythmic 
prophecy  (Num.  xxiii.  7)  or  dark  saying  (Ps.  Ixxviii.  2  ;  Pr.  i.  6)  j  and 
sometimes  for  a  comparison  (Mk.  xiii.  28). 

5.  A  sower  went  out]  Rather,  Tlie  sower ;  as  also  the  rock,  the 
thorns.  St  Mark  (iv.  3)  preserves  for  us  the  graphic  detail  that  Jesus 
prefaced  this  new  method  of  teaching  by  the  one  emphatic  word 
^'I/earkefi!"  as  though  to  prepare  them  for  something  unusual  and 
memorable. 

some  fell  by  the  way  side]  The  nature  of  the  land  in  the  plain  of 
Gennesareth  would,  as  Dean  Stanley  noticed  (Sin.  and  Palest,  p.  49^)), 
and  as  many  have  subsequently  remarked,  furnish  an  immediate  illus- 
tration of  the  words.  In  the  fields  close  to  the  shore  may  be  seen  the 
hard  beaten  paths  into  which  no  seed  can  penetrate;  the  flights  of  innu- 
merable birds  ready  to  peck  it  up;  the  rocks  thinly  covered  with  soil, 
and  the  stony  ground;  the  dense  tangled  growth  of  weeds  and  thistles 
in  neglected  corners;  and  the  rich  deep  loam  on  which  the  harvests 
grew  with  unwonted  luxuriance. 

it  was  trodden  down]     This  touch  is  found  in  St  Luke  only. 

6.  upon  a  rock]  St  Matthew  and  St  Mark  say  "upon  stony  places," 
and  add  its  speedy  growth,  and  its  withering  after  sunrise  from  want  of 
root;  St  Luke  dwells  rather  on  the  lack  of  moisture  than  on  the  lack  of 
soil. 

1  I  —2 


i64  ST  LUKE,   VIII.  [w.  7- 


-10. 


soon  as  it  was  sprung  up,  it  withered  away,  because  it  lacked 

7  moisture.     And  some  fell  among  thorns ;  and  the  thorns 

8  sprang  up  with  it,  and  choked  it.  And  other  fell  on  good 
ground,  and  sprang  up,  and  bare  fruit  an  hundredfold.  And 
when  he  said  these  tlwigs,  he  cried,  He  that  hath  ears  to 
hear,  let  him  hear. 

9  And   his   disciples   asked  him,  saying,  What  might  this 
10  parable  be  ?    And  he  said,  Unto  you  it  is  given  to  know  the 

mysteries  of  the  kingdom  of  God :  but  to  others  in  parables ; 

7.  thorns]  In  rich  soils  and  hot  valleys  like  Gennesareth  the 
growth  of  weeds  and  thorns  is  as  rapid  and  luxuriant  as  that  of  good 
seed.  In  summer  and  autumn  there  are  parts  of  the  plain  which  are 
quite  impervious  from  the  forest  of  gigantic  thistles  which  covers 
them — "so  tall  and  so  dense  that  no  horse  can  break  through"  (Porter, 
Palestine,  II.  403).  It  was  natural  that  this  circumstance  should  suggest 
several  of  Christ's  illustrations. 

8.  bare  fruit  an  hundredfold]  St  Luke  passes  over  the  'growing  and 
increasing'  of  the  fruit  (Mk.  iv.  8)  and  its  various  degrees  of  productive- 
ness— thirty  and  sixty  as  well  as  an  hundredfold. 

he  cried]  This  word — spake  with  a  loud  voice— shews,  like  the 
"Hearken!"  in  St  Mark,  the  special  attention  which  our  Lord  called  to 
His  new  method. 

He  that  hath  ears  to  hear,  let  him  hear]  In  other  words,  'this  teachincr 
is  worthy  the  deepest  attention  of  those  who  have  the  moral  and 
spiritual  capacity  to  understand  it.' 

9.  his  disciples  asked  hi 771]  St  Mark  says  "those  about  Him,  with 
the  Twelve ; "  and  that  they  came  to  Him  afterwards  when  they 
found  Him  alone. 

10.  A7id  he  said]  This  verse  is  rather  an  answer  to  the  other  ques- 
tion, recorded  in  St  Matthew,  ^'■why  dost  thou  speak  to  them  in 
parables?" 

it  is  given]     Rather,  it  has  been  given. 

to  know  the  77iyste7ies]  i.e.  to  grasp  the  revealed  secrets,  the  'apples 
of  gold'  hid  in  tliese  'networks  of  silver.'  The  proper  use  of  the  word 
'mystery'  is  the  opposite  of  its  current  use.  It  is  now  generally  used  to 
imply  something  which  we  cannot  understand ;  in  the  '^&^  Testament 
it  always  means  something  once  hidden  now  revealed,  Col.  i.  26  ; 
I  Tim.  iii.  16;  Matt.  xi.  25,  26;  Rev,  xvii.  5,  &c.  It  is  derived  from 
^i■'u<J},  'I  initiate.'     "God  is  a  revealer  of  secrets,"  Dan.  ii.  47. 

"What  if  earth 
Be  but  the  shadow  of  heaven,  and  things  therein 
Each  to  the  other  like,  more  than  on  earth  is  thought?" 

Milton. 
to  othf7-s]     Rather,  to  the  rest;  "to  them  that  are  without,"  Mk.  iv. 
II.     It  has  been  grznieA you  to  grasp  these  mysteries  unveiled;  to  the 
rest  it  has  been  only  given  to  grasp  them  under  the  veil  of  parables. 


w-  II,  12.]  ST   LUKE,  VIII.  i6s 

that  seeing  they  might  not  see,  and  hearing  they  might  not 
understand.     Now  the   parable  is  this :   The  seed   is   the  n 
word  of  God.     Those  by  the  way  side  are  they  that  hear ;  ^2 

that  seeing  they  might  not  see,  and  hearing  they  might  not  understand^ 
These  words  are  difficult,  and  (without  dwelhng  on  the  fact  that  the 
particle  IVa  loses  in  later  Greek  some  of  its  fmal  force)  must  not  be 
pressed  with  unreasonable  and  extravagant  literalism  to  mean  that  the 
express  object  of  teaching  by  parables  was  to  conceal  the  message  of  the 
kingdom  from  all  but  the  disciples.  This  would  have  been  to  put  the 
kindled  lamp  under  a  couch  or  a  bushel.  On  the  contrary  they  were 
addressed  to  the  multitudes,  and  deeply  impressed  them,  as  they  have 
impressed  the  world  in  all  ages,  and  have  had  the  effect,  not  of  darken- 
ing truth  but  of  bringing  it  into  brighter  light.  The  varying  phrase  of 
St  Matthew,  ''■because  seeing  they  see  not,  &c.,"  will  help  us  to  under- 
stand it.  Our  Lord  wished  and  meant  the  multitudes  to  hearken  and 
understand,  and  this  method  awoke  their  interest  and  deepened  their 
attention;  but  the  resultant  profit  depended  solely  on  the  degree  of  their 
faithfulness.  The  Parables  resembled  the  Pillar  of  Fire,  which  was  to 
others  a  Pillar  of  Cloud.  If  they  listened  with  mere  intellectual  curiosity 
or  hardened  prejudice  they  would  only  carry  away  the  parable  itself,  or 
some  complete  misapplication  of  its  least  essential  details ;  to  get  at  its 
real  meaning  required  self-examination  and  earnest  thought.  Hence 
parables  had  a  blinding  and  hardening  effect  on  the  false  and  the 
proud  and  the  wilful,  just  as  prophecy  had  in  old  days  (Is.  vi.  g,  lo, 
quoted  in  this  connexion  in  Matthew  xiii.  14,  comp.  Acts  xxviii.  ■26, 
27  ;  Rom.  xi.  8).  But  the  Prophecy  and  the  Parable  did  not  create  the 
hardness  or  stolidity,  but  only  educed  it  when  it  existed — as  all  misused 
blessings  and  privileges  do.  It  was  only  unwillingness  to  see  which  was 
punished  by  incapacity  of  seeing.  The  natural  punishment  of  spiritual 
perversity  is  spiritual  blindness. 

Nothing  can  be  better  than  the  profound  remark  of  Lord  Bacon,  that 
"a  Parable  has  a  double  use;  it  tends  to  vail,  and  it  tends  to  illustrate 
a  truth ;  in  the  latter  case  it  seems  designed  to  teach,  in  the  former  to 
conceal." 

"Though  truths  in  manhood  darkly  join. 
Deep  seated  in  our  mystic  frame, 
We  yield  all  blessing  to  the  name 

Of  Him  who  made  them  current  coin. 

For  Wisdom  dealt  with  mortal  powers, 
Where  truth  in  closest  words  shall  fail, 
When  truth  embodied  in  a  tale 

Shall  enter  in  at  lowly  doors." 
11.  The  seed  is  the  word  of  God]  We  have  the  same  metaphor  in 
Col.  i.  5,  6;  I  Cor.  iii.  6;  and  a  similar  one  in  J  as.  i.  ^i,  "the  enpa/led 
word;"  2  Esdr.  ix.  31,  33,  "Behold,  I  sow  my  law  in  you,  and  it  shall 
bring  fruit  in  you... yet  they  that  received  it  perished,  because  they  kept 
not  the  thing  that  was  sown  in  them." 


i66  ST   LUKE,   VIII.  [w.  13,  14. 

then  Cometh  the  devil,  and  taketh  away  the  word  out  of 

13  their  hearts,  lest  they  should  believe  and  be  saved.  They 
on  the  rock  are  they,  which,  when  they  hear,  receive  the 
word  with  joy ;  and  these  have  no  root,  which  for  a  while 

14  believe,  and  in  time  of  temptation  fall  away.  And  that 
which  fell  among  thorns  are  they,  which,  when  they  have 
heard,  go  forth,  and  are  choked  with  cares  and  riches  and 


12.  Those  by  the  way  side']  These  are  hearers  who  are  hardened — 
either  beaten  (i)  flat  by  lifeless  familiarity — heartless  formalists,  Phari- 
saic theologians,  and  insincere  professors;  or  (ii)  by  perversity  and 
indifference,  the  habit  and  custom  of  a  worldly  and  dissolute  life. 
Notice  the  intensity  of  thought  which  identifies  the  scattered  seeds 
with  those  in  whose  hearts  they  are  sown.  "The  way  is  the  heart 
beaten  and  dried  by  the  passage  of  evil  thoughts."     H.  de  S.  Victore. 

the  devil]  The  Accuser  or  Slanderer.  St  Mark  has  "the  wicked 
one,"  St  Matthew  "Satan." 

taketh  away]  "Snatches,"  Matt.  xiii.  19. — It  is  done  in  a  moment; 
by  a  smile  at  the  end  of  the  sermon ;  by  a  silly  criticism  at  the  Church 
door;  by  foolish  gossip  on  the  way  home.  These  are  "the  fowls  of 
the  air"  whom  the  Evil  One  uses  in  this  task. 

lest  they  should  believe]  Rather,  that  they  may  not  believe.  "There- 
fore we  ought  to  give  the  more  earnest  heed  to  the  things  which  we 
have  heard,  lest  at  any  time  we  should  let  them  slip,"  or  rather  '■'■drift 
away  from  them,"  Heb.  ii.  i. 

13.  They  on  the  rock]  Shallow,  impulsive  listeners,  whose  enthu- 
siasm is  hot  and  transient  as  a  blaze  in  the  straw. 

with  joy]  "Yet  they  seek  me  daily,  and  a'^/?]f//^  to  know  my  ways, "  Is. 
Iviii.  2.  "Thou  art  unto  them  as  a  very  lovely  song  of  one  that  hath  a 
pleasant  voice... for  they  hear  thy  words,  but  they  do  them  not,"  Ezek. 
xxxiii.  32.     Herod  "heard  John  ^/a(//j/, "  Mk.  vi.  20. 

in  time  of  temptation]  Temptation  in  any  form  of  "affliction  or  per- 
secution" (Matt.,  Mk.)  which  tests  the  moral  nature. 

fall  away]  Literally  "stand  aloof "  ^^ apostatise  ;"  "immediately  they 
are  offended,"  Matt.,  Mk.  See  a  very  striking  instance  of  this  in  John 
vi.  66. 

14.  that  which  fell  among  thorns  are  they]  Here  the  grand  para- 
dox which  identifies  the  seed  with  its  recipient  is  very  marked.  See 
especially  Matt,  xiii.,  where  "he  that  received  the  seed  by  the  way  side, 
&c."  should  be  "  he  that  was  sown  by  the  way  side,  &c."  The  class  here 
described  are  worldly,  ambitious,  preoccupied,  luxurious  listeners  who 
feel  the  "expulsive  power"  of  earthly  careers  and  pleasures  crowding 
out  the  growth  of  the  good  seed.  The  former  class  was  more  superfi- 
cially touched;  this  class  have  not  "broken  up  their  fallow  ground," 
and  therefore  "sow  among  thorns." 

cares]    Catullus  talks  of  'sowing  thorny  cares  in  the  heart.' 
niches]  "the  deceit  fulness  of  riches"  (Matt..  Mk.). 


w.  15—17.]  ST   LUKE,  VIII. 


167 


pleasures  of  this  life,  and  bring  no  fruit  to  perfection.     But  .5 
that  on  the  good  ground  are  they,  which  in  an  honest  and 
good  heart,  having  heard  the  word,  keep  //,  and  bring  forth 
fruit  with  patience. 

16 — 18.     How  to  use  the  Light. 

No  man,  when  he  hath  Hghted  a  candle,  covereth  it  with  .6 
a  vessel,  or  putteth  it  under  a  bed;  but  setteth  //  on  a 
candlestick,  that  tliey  which  enter  in  may  see  the  light.    For  ,7 
nothing  is  secret,  that  shall  not  be  made  manifest ;  neither 
any  thing  hid,  that  shall  not  be  known  and  come  abroad. 

bri7ig  no  fruit  to  perfection\     Literally,  "  do  not  perfect'"'  (anything). 

15.  keep  it]  Comp.  xi.  28;  John  xiv.  21.  "Thy  word  have  //tut  in 
my  heart,  that  I  might  not  sin  against  Thee,"  Ps.  cxix.  11.  The  oppo- 
site of  the  "forgetful  hearers,"  Jas.  i.  25.  For  them  the  seed  does  not 
fall  'on  the  way.' 

bring  forth  fruit  with  patience]  not  as  in  thorns,  not  as  on  the  rocky 
ground.  The  hundredfold  harvest  does  not  come  at  once,  but  "first  the 
blade,  then  the  ear,  then  the  full  corn  in  the  ear."  These  words  are 
added  by  St  Luke  alone.  Patience  or  persevering  consistency  is  a 
favourite  word  with  St  Paul.  It  is  "strength  of  mind  sustained  by 
good  hope... The  sum  of  Christianity."     Bengel. 

16 — 18.      How  TO   USE  THE  LiGHT. 

16.  a  candle]     Rather,  a  lamp. 

7vith  a  vessel]  St  Luke  uses  this  word  as  more  intelligible  to  his  Gen- 
tile readers  than  "bushel." 

under  a  bed]  Rather,  under  a  couch.  The  ancient  Jews  had  nothing 
resembling  our  bed.  They  slept  on  divans,  or  on  mats  laid  upon  the 
floor,  as  is  still  the  case  in  the  East.  The  best  comment  on  this  verse 
is  Matt.  V.  14,  16,  "Ye  are  the  light  of  the  world. ...Let  your  light  so 
shine  before  men,  &c."  John  the  Baptist  is  compared  to  'a  lamp  kindled 
and  shining,'  and  here  the  disciples  are  compared  to  it.  Christ  lighted 
the  flame  in  their  souls  to  be  a  beacon  to  all  the  world. 

setteth  it  on  a  candlestick]     Rather,  places  It  on  a  lamp  stand. 

17.  P'or  notJiing  is  secret]  This  ver.se,  like  the  parallel  (which  occurs 
in  a  different  connexion  in  Matt.  x.  26),  is  usually  rjuotcd  of  the  dis- 
covery of  secret  crimes.  The  truth  which  would  in  that  ca.se  be  illus- 
trated is  often  mentioned  elsewhere  in  Scripture  (i  Cor.  iv.  5),  init 
here  in  both  instances  the  context  shews  that  the  first  meaning  of  Christ 
was  entirely  different  from  this.  He  is  not  thinking  of  the  discover)' 
of  crimes,  but  of  the  right  use  and  further  dissemination  of  divine  light. 
The  truths  now  revealed  privately  to  them,  and  only  dimly  shadowed 
forth  to  others,  should  soon  be  flashed  over  all  the  world.  Parables 
first  yielded  their  full  significance  to  the  disciples,  but  found  "a  spring 
ing  and  germinant  fulfilment  in  every  age." 


i68  ST   LUKE,   VIII.  [w.  18—21. 

18  Take  heed  therefore  how  ye  hear :  for  whosoever  hath,  to 
him  shall  be  given ;  and  whosoever  hath  not,  from  him  shall 
be  taken  even  that  which  he  seemeth  to  have. 

ig — 21.     Chrisfs  Mother  and  His  Brethren. 

19  Then  came  to  him  his  mother  and   his   brethren,   and 

20  could  not  come  at  him  for  the  press.  And  it  was  told  him 
by  certain  which  said.  Thy  mother  and  thy  brethren  stand 

21  without,  desiring  to  see  thee.  And  he  answered  and  said 
unto  them.  My  mother  and  my  brethren  are  these  which 
hear  the  word  of  God,  and  do  it. 

18.  Take  heed  therefore  how  ye  hear]  and  also  "what  ye  hear,"  Mk. 
iv.  24. 

io  him  shall  be  given]  Comp.  xix.  26.  It  was  evidently  a  thought  to 
which  our  Lord  recurred,  John  xv.  2. 

that  which  he  seetneth  to  have]  Rather,  tbat  whicli  lie  tMnketh  he 
bath.     This  fancied  possession  is  mere  self-deception. 

19—21.     Christ's  Mother  and  His  Brethren. 

19.  Then  came  to  him  his  mother  and  his  brethreti]  Our  text  has  the 
phiral;  the  reading  paregeneto  {sing.)  would  imply  that  the  Virgin  took 
a  specially  prominent  part  in  the  incident.  Joseph  is  never  mentioned 
after  the  scene  in  the  Temple.  This  incident  can  hardly  be  the  same 
as  those  in  Mk.  iii.  31 — 35;  Matt.  xii.  46 — 50,  because  in  both  of  those 
cases  the  context  is  wholly  different.  St  Luke  may  however  have  mis- 
placed this  incident,  since  here,  as  in  the  other  Evangelists,  relatives  of 
Jesus  are  represented  as  standing  outside  a  house  of  which  the  doors  were 
densely  thronged;  whereas  the  explanation  of  the  Parable  had  been 
given  in  private.  It  is  here  merely  said  that  they  wished  to  see  Him ; 
but  the  fact  that  they  came  in  a  body  seems  to  shew  that  they 
desired  in  some  way  to  direct  or  control  His  actions.  The  fullest 
account  of  their  motives  is  found  in  Mk.  iii  21,  where  we  are  told  that 
they  wished  "to  seize  Him"  or  "get  possession  of  His  person,"  because 
they  said  "He  is  beside  Himself," — perhaps  echoing  the  feelings  which 
had  been  encouraged  by  the  Pharisees.  We  must  remember  that  His 
brethren  "did  not  believe  in  Him"  (John  vii.  5),  i.e.  their  belief  in  Him 
was  only  the  belief  that  he  was  a  Prophet  who  did  not  realize  their 
Messianic  ideal.     It  needed  the  Resurrection  to  convert  them. 

his  brethren]  James,  Joses,  Simon,  Judas.  Possibly  (Matt.  xii.  50; 
Mk.  iii.  35)  His  sisters  also  came. 

21.  are  these]  The  word  implies  the  "looking  round  at  those  sitting 
in  a  circle  about  Him"  of  Mk.  iii.  34,  and  the  "stretching  forth  His 
hand  towards  His  disciples"  of  Matt.  xii.  49.  "Ye  are  my  friends,  if  ye 
do  whatsoever  I  command  you,"  John  xv.  14  (comp.  ii.  49;  John  ii.  4, 
xiv.  21 ;  Heb.  ii.  11).  His  earthly  relatives  needed  the  lesson  that  they 
must  recognise  in  Him  a  Being  who  stood  far  above  all  relationships 


vv.  22—24.]  ST   LUKE,   VIII.  169 

22 — 25.      Christ  stilling  the  Storm. 

Now  it  came  to  pass  on  a  certain  day,  that  he  went  into  22 
a  ship  with  his  disciples :  and  he  said  unto  them,  Let  us  go 
over  unto  the  other  side  of  the  lake.     And  they  launched 
forth.     But  as  they  sailed  he  fell  asleep :  and  there  came  23 
down  a  storm  of  wind  on  the  lake;   and  they  were  filled 
with  water,  and  were  in  jeopardy.     And  they  came  to  ///>;/,  24 

"after  the  flesh"  (2   Cor.  v.    16).     Even  disciples  must  "hate"  father 
and  mother  in  comparison  with  Christ  (comp.  Deut.  xxxiii.  9). 

22 — 25.     Christ  stilling  the  Storm. 

22.  Now  it  came  to  pass  on  a  certain  day]  Rather,  on  one  of  the 
days.  From  Mk.  iv.  35  ;  Matt.  viii.  i8,  we  should  infer  that  this  event  took 
place  in  the  evening  on  which  He  began  to  teach  the  crowd  in  parables, 
and  that — attracted  by  the  beauty  and  novelty  of  His  teaching  they 
lingered  round  Him  till,  in  utter  weariness,  He  longed  to  escape  to  the 
secluded  loneliness  of  the  Eastern  shore  of  the  lake.  Possibly  the 
interference  of  His  kinsmen  may  have  added  the  last  touch  to  the  fatigue 
and  emotion  which  imperatively  demanded  retirement  and  rest. 

into  a  skip']  St  Matthew  says  'M^  boat,' which  usually  waited  on 
His  movements ;  very  probably  the  one  which  had  1)elonged  to  Peter. 
Before  the  boat  pushed  off,  we  learn  that  three  aspirants  for  discipleship 
came  to  Him,  Matt.  viii.  19—22  (Lk.  ix.  57 — 62). 

unto  the  other  side]  The  Peraean  side  of  the  Lake  of  Galilee 
has  always  been  comparatively  uninhabited,  mainly  because  the 
escarpment  of  barren  hills  approaches  within  a  cjuarter  of  a  mile  of  the 
shore.  Its  solitude  contrasted  all  the  more  with  the  hum  of  crowdeil 
and  busy  life  on  the  plain  of  Gennesareth. 

of  the  lake]    See  on  v.  i. 

they  launched  forth]  Such  was  His  weariness  and  eagerness  to  get 
away  that  they  took  Him  '■'■as  He  waj'"— without  even  pausing  for  any 
food  or  refreshment — into  the  boat,  Mk.  iv.  36. 

23.  he  fell  asleep]  Rather,  He  feU  into  deep  sleep.  The  day  had 
been  one  of  incessant  toil;  and  He  was  resting  (as  St  Mark  tells  us, 
reflecting  the  vivid  reminiscence  of  St  Peter)  'in  the  stern  on  the  steers- 
man's leather  cushion,'  Mk.  iv.  38 :  contrast  with  this  Jonah  i.  5. 

there  came  down  a  storm  of  wind]  The  suddenness  and  violence  of  this 
'hurricane'  is  in  exact  accordance  with  what  we  know  of  the  Lake.  The 
winds  from  the  snowy  peaks  of  Hermon  rush  down  the  Peraean  iradtes 
into  the  burning  tropical  air  of  the  lake-basin  with  extraordinary  sud- 
denness and  impetuosity  (Thomson,  Land  and  Book,  il.  25).  1  he  ake 
may  look  like  a  sheet  of  silver,  when  in  one  moment  there  will  be  a 
darkening  ripple,  and  in  the  next  it  will  be  lashed  into  storm  and  fo-im 
The  outburst  of  this  storm  perhaps  frightened  back  the  boats  which 
started  with  Him,  Mk.  iv.  36. 

were  filled  with  water]    Rather,  were  Delng  flUed.    'The  waves  were 


I70  ST   LUKE,  VIII.  [vv.  25,  26. 

and  awoke  him,  saying,  Master,  master,  we  perish.  Then 
he  rose,  and  rebuked  the  wind  and  the  raging  of  the  water: 

25  and  they  ceased,  and  there  was  a  calm.  And  he  said  unto 
them.  Where  is  your  faith?  And  they  being  afraid  won- 
dered, saying  one  to  another,  What  manner  of  man  is  this? 
for  he  commandeth  even  the  winds  and  water,  and  they 
obey  him. 

26 — 39.     The  Gergesene  Demoniac. 

26  And  they  arrived  at  the  country  of  the  Gadarenes,  which 

dashing  into  the  boat,  so  that  it  was  getting  full,'  Mk.  iv.  37;  'the 
boat  was  being  hidden  under  the  waves,'  Matt.  viii.  24.  The  tossing 
ship  (Navicella)  has  been  accepted  in  all  ages  as  the  type  of  the  Church 
in  seasons  of  peril. 

24.  we peris/i]  Rather,  we  are  perishing!  "Lord!  save!  we  are 
perishing,'  Matt.  viii.  25.  "Rabbi,  carest  thou  not  that  we  are  perish- 
ing?" Mk.  iv.  38.     The  peril  was  evidently  most  imminent. 

Then  he  rose]    Rather,  But  He,  being  roused  from  sleep. 

rebuked  the  wind]  speaking  to  the  wind  and  the  billows  of  the  water 
as  though  they  were  living  powers  (Ps.  cvi.  9,  "He  rebuked  the  Red  Sea 
also  "),  or  to  the  evil  powers  which  may  be  conceived  to  wield  them  to 
the  danger  of  mankind.  St  Mark  alone  preserves  the  two  words  uttered 
"Hush!  be  stilled!"  the  first  to  silence  the  roar,  the  second  the  tumult. 
St  Matthew  tells  us  that  He  quietly  uttered  'Why  are  ye  cowards,  ye 
of  little  faith?'  and  then,  having  stilled  the  tumult  of  their  minds,  rose 
and  stilled  the  tempest. 

Where  is  your  faith?]  "They  had  so7ne  faith,  but  it  was  not  ready  at 
hand."     Bengel. 

25.  What  jnamter  of  man]  Rather,  Who,  then.  The  ar^  expresses 
the  same  surprise  and  emotion  conveyed  by  Xhe potapos,  'what  kind  of 
Being,'  of  St  Matthew.    Ps.  cvii.  23—30. 

26 — 39.    The  Gergesene  Demoniac. 

26.  at  the  country  of  the  Gadarenes]  In  all  three  narratives,  here, 
Matt.  viii.  28 — 34;  Mark  v.  i — 19,  the  MSS.  vary  between  Gergesenes, 
Gadarenes,  and  Gerasenes,  and  Tischendorf  follows  N  in  reading  Gada- 
renes (by  a  clerical  error  Gazarenes)  in  St  Matthew,  Gerasenes  in  St 
Mai'k,  and  Gergesenes  here. 

i.  Gadara,  of  which  the  large  ruins  are  now  seen  at  Um  Keis,  is 
three  hours'  distance  from  the  extreme  south  end  of  the  Lake,  and  is  sepa- 
rated from  the  scene  of  the  miracle  by  the  deep  precipitous  ravine  of  the 
Hieromax  (Jarmuk).  Gadarenes  may  be  the  right  reading  in  St  Matthew 
(X,  B,  C,  M,  A  and  MSS.  mentioned  by  Orlgcn)  but,  if  so,  it  only  gives 
the  name  of  the  entire  district.  Gadara  was  essentially  a  Greek  city, 
and  had  two  amphitheatres,  and  a  literary  Greek  society,  and  the  worst 
features  of  Hellenic  life. 


'71 


vv.  27,  28.]  ST   LUKE,  VIll. 

is  over  against  Galilee.     And  when  he  went  forth  to  land,  27 
there  met  him  out  of  the  city  a  certain  man,  which  had 
devils  long  time,  and  ware  no  clothes,  neither  abode  in  any 
house,  but  in  the  tombs.     When  he  saw  Jesus,  he  cried  out,  28 

ii.  Gerasenes  may  be  the  right  reading  in  St  Mark  (N,  B,  D,  &c.). 
Gerasa,  now  Djcrash,  is  fifty  miles  from  the  Lake,  and  almost  in 
Arabia,  but  it  was  an  important  town  (Jos.  B.  J.  iii.  3),  and  like 
Gadara  may  have  been  used  as  the  name  of  the  entire  district. 

iii.  Gergesenes  is  almost  certainly  the  right  reading  here  (X,  L,  X). 
It  was  the  reading  which,  because  of  the  distance  of  Gerasa  and 
Gadara,  Origen  wished  to  introduce  into  Matt.  viii.  ^S,  being  aware 
that  there  was  a  small  town  called  Gergesa  in  the  Wady  Semakh 
which  was  known  also  to  Eusebius  and  Jerome,  and  was  pointed  out 
as  the  scene  of  the  miracle.  Yet  the  reading,  "Gergesenes"  of  X,  in 
St  Luke,  could  hardly  have  been  due  to  the  mere  conjecture  of  Origen 
in  the  parallel  passage  of  St  Matthew,  for  it  is  found  in  other  uncials, 
in  most  cursives,  and  in  the  Coptic,  Ethiopic  and  other  versions. 
Gergesa  has  however  nothing  to  do  with  the  ancient  Girgashites  (Deut. 
vii.  i;  Josh.  xxiv.  ii),  who  were  probably  at  the  West  of  the  Jordan. 
The  question  as  to  the  place  intended  as  the  scene  of  the  miracle  (whatever 
reading  be  adopted)  may  be  considered  as  having  been  settled  by 
Dr  Thomson's  discovery  of  ruins  named  Kerzha  (the  natural  corruption 
of  Gergesa)  nearly  opposite  Capernaum.  The  name  of  this  little 
obscure  place  may  well  have  been  given  by  St  Matthew,  who  knew  the 
locality,  and  by  so  accurate  an  enquirer  as  St  Luke.  The  reading  may 
have  been  altered  by  later  copyists  who  knew  the  far  more  celebrated 
Gadara  and  Gerasa. 

27.  there  met  him  out  of  the  city  a  certain  man'\  This  rendering 
contradicts  what  follows.  Rather,  there  met  Mm  a  man  of  the  city. 
He  had  been  a  native  of  Gergesa  till  his  madness  began.  St  Matthew 
(as  in  the  case  of  Bartimaeus)  mentions  two  demoniacs,  but  the  nar- 
rative is  only  concerned  with  one.  There  may  of  course  have  been 
another  hovering  in  the  neighbourhood.  The  variation  in  St  Matthew 
is  at  least  a  valuable  proof  of  the  independence  of  the  Evangelists. 

which  had  devils]  Rather,  Having  demons.  The  daimonia  were 
supposed  by  the  Jews  to  be  not  devils  (i.e.  fallen  angels),  but  the 
spirits  of  wicked  men  who  were  dead  (Jos.  B.  J.  vii.  6,  §  3).  See  on 
iv.  33  ;  viii.  1. 

long  time,  attd  ware  no  clothes']  Rather  (with  S,  B),  and  for  a  lotig 
time  wore  no  cloke.  He  may  have  been  naked,  since  the  tendency  to 
strip  the  person  of  all  clothes  is  common  among  m;idmcn ;  here  how- 
ever it  only  says  that  he  wore  no  himation.  He  may  have  had  on  the 
chiton,  or  under-garment.  Naked,  homicidal  maniacs  who  live  m 
caves  and  tombs  are  still  to  be  seen  in  Palestine.  Warburton  s.iw  one 
in  a  cemetery  fighting,  amid  fierce  yells  and  howhngs,  with  wild  dogs 
for  a  bone.     Crescent  and  Cross,  li.  352. 

but  in  the  tombs]  This  was  partly  a  necessity,  for  in  ancient  times 
there  were  no  such  things  as  penitentiaries  or  asylums,  and  an  uncon- 


172  ST   LUKE,   VIII.  [vv.  29-31. 

and  fell  down  before  him,  and  with  a  loud  voice  said,  What 
have  I  to  do  with  thee,  Jesus,  thou  Son  of  God  most  high? 

29  I  beseech  thee,  torment  me  not.  (For  he  had  commanded 
the  unclean  spirit  to  come  out  of  the  man.  For  oftentimes 
it  had  caught  him :  and  he  was  kept  bound  with  chains  and 
in  fetters;  and  he  brake  the  bands,  and  was  driven  of  the 

30  devil  into  the  wilderness.)  And  Jesus  asked  him,  saying, 
What  is  thy  name?     And  he  said,  Legion:  because  many 

31  devils  were  entered  into  him.     And  they  besought  him  that 

trollable  maniac,  driven  from  the  abodes  of  men,  could  find  no  other 
shelter.  This  would  aggravate  his  frenzy,  for  the  loneliness  and  horror 
of  these  dark  rocky  tombs  (traces  of  wrhich  are  still  to  be  seen  near  the 
ruins  of  Kherza  or  the  sides  of  the  Wady  Semakh)  were  intensified  by  the 
prevalent  belief  that  they  were  haunted  by  shedim,  or  'evil  spirits,' — 
the  ghosts  of  the  wicked  dead  (Nidda,  f.  17  a,  &c.).  St  Mark  gives 
(v.  4)  a  still  more  graphic  picture  of  the  superhuman  strength  and 
violence  of  this  homicidal  and  ghastly  sufferer. 

28.  What  have  I  to  do  with  thee\  i.e.  Why  should'st  thou  interfere 
with  me?  2  Sam.  xvi.  10;  xix.  22.  See  iv.  24.  Baur  refers  to  obvious 
imitations  of  this  narrative  in  the  story  of  the  Lamia  expelled  by  Apol- 
lonius  of  Tyana  (Philostr.  IV.  25). 

Son  of  God  most  high']  Probably  the  epithet  was  customary  in  exorcisms 
or  attempted  exorcisms,  and  hence  we  find  it  used  by  another  de- 
moniac (Acts  xvi.  17).     Jesus  is  not  so  called  elsewhere,  except  in  i.  32. 

torment  me  not]  "The  demons... believe  and  tremble,"  Jas.  ii.  19. 
On  this  conception  of  torment  see  Mk.  i.  24 ;  Matt,  xviii.  34. 

29.  he  had  commanded]     Rather,  He  commanded. 
oftentimes]     Pollois  chronois  usually  means  '  ^for  a  long  time. " 

he  was  kept  bound  ivith  chains  and  in  fetters]  This  rendering  misses  a 
curious  point  in  the  narrative,  preserved  by  St  Luke  only, — namely, 
that  "  he  was  bound  in  chains  and  fetters,  being  under  guard." 

into  the  wilderness]  Rather,  into  the  deserts, — regarded  as  a  pe- 
culiar haunt  of  Azazel  and  other  demons.  Matt.  xii.  43;  Tobit  viii.  3; 
see  on  iv.  i.  (There  are  obvious  allusions  to  the  Gospel  narrative  of 
this  demoniac  and  the  demoniac  boy  in  Lucian,  Philopseudes,  16.) 

30.  What  is  thy  name?]  The  question  was  no  doubt  asked  in 
mercy.  Gently  to  ask  a  person's  name  is  often  an  effectual  way  to 
calm  the  agitations  and  fix  the  wavering  thoughts  of  these  sufferers. 

And  he  said,  Legion]  A  legion  consisted  of  6000  soldiers,  and  this 
man  (who  was  probably  a  Jew)  would  have  become  familiar  with  the 
name  since  the  Roman  conquest  of  Palestine.  The  ancient  Megiddo 
was  now  called  Legio,  still  Ledjtin.  The  answer  shewed  how  wildly 
perturbed  was  the  man's  spirit,  and  how  complete  was  the  duality  of  his 
consciousness.  He  could  not  distinguish  between  himself  and  the 
multitudes  of  demons  by  whom  he  believed  himself  to  be  possessed.  His 
individuality  was  lost  in  demoniac  hallucinations. 


w.  32,  33]  ST   LUKE,  VIII.  173 

he  would  not  command  them  to  go  out  into  the  deep.    And  32 
there  was  there  a  herd  of  many  swine  feeding  on  the  moun 
tain:  and  they  besought  him  that  he  would  suffer  them  to 
enter  into  them.     And  he  suffered  them.     Then  went  the  33 
devils  out  of  the  man,  and  entered  into  the  swine:  and  the 
herd  ran  violently  down  a  steep  place  into  the  lake,  and 

31.  they  besought]  If  parekalei  be  the  right  reading,  it  should  be 
rendered  '■^he  besought  Him,"  for  the  plural  is  used  in  the  next  verse. 

to  go  out  into  the  deep]  The  'abyss'  (Hebrew  tehdju)  intended  is 
perhaps  the  prison  of  wicked  spirits  (Rom.  x.  7;  Jude  6;  Rev.  xx.  3). 
St  Mark  says  "that  He  would  not  send  them  out  of  the  country." 

32.  a  herd  of  many  swine]  St  Mark  says  "about  2000."  Of  course, 
if  the  owners  of  these  swine  were  Jews,  they  were  living  in  flagrant 
violation  of  the  law ;  but  the  population  of  Peraea  was  largely  Greek 
and  Syrian. 

that  he  woidd  suffer  them  to  enter  into  them]  The  Jews,  as  we  have 
already  seen,  believed  that  physical  and  mental  evil  was  wrought  by  the 
direct  agency  of  demons,  and  attributed  to  demons  not  only  the  cases 
of  "possession,"  but  many  other  classes  of  illness  (melancholia,  brain- 
disease,  heart-disease,  &c.)  which  we  do  not  usually  regard  in  this 
light.  They  also  believed  that  demons  could  take  possession  even  of 
animals,  and  they  attributed  to  demons  the  hydrophobia  of  dogs  and 
the  rage  of  bulls.  "Perhaps,"  says  Archbishop  Trench  (On  the 
Miracles,  p.  185),  "we  make  to  ourselves  a  difficulty  here,  too  easily 
assuming  that  the  whole  animal  world  is  wholly  shut  up  in  itself,  and 
incapable  of  receiving  impressions  from  that  which  is  above  it.  The 
assumption  is  one  unwarranted  by  deeper  investigations,  which  lead 
rather  to  an  opposite  conclusion— not  to  the  breaking  down  of  the 
boundaries  between  the  two  worlds,  but  to  the  shewing  in  what  won- 
derful wavs  the  lower  is  receptive  of  impression  from  the  higher,  both 
for  good  and  for  evil."  Further  than  this  the  incident  leads  into  regions 
of  uncertain  speculation,  into  which  it  is  impossible  to  enter,  and  m  which 
none  will  dogmatize  but  those  who  are  least  wise.  Milton  seems  to 
find  no  difficulty  in  the  conception  that  evil  spirits  could  'incarnate 
and  imbrute'  their  essence  into  a  beast:  in  at  the  serpent  s  mouth 
"The  devil  entered;  and  his  brutal  sense 

The  heart  or  head  possessing,  soon  inspired 

"With  act  intelligential."     Far.  Lost. 

Comp.  Dante,  /•:/.  xxv.  136, 

"L'anima,  ch' era  fiera  divenuta 
Si  fugge,"  &c. 
33.  down  a  steep  place]  Rather,  down  the  precipice.  Near  Khcrf.-! 
is  the  only  spot  on  the  entire  lake  where  a  steep  sl.,pe  J^eeps  down  to 
within  a  few  yards  of  the  sea,  into  which  the  herd  would  "/  •;  '  X  J-^JJ 
plunged  if  hurried  by  any  violent  impulse  down  the  hill.  If  t  be  asked 
whether  this  was  not  a  destruction  of  property,  the  answer  ,s  thnt  he 
antedating  of   the    death  of  a   herd    of  unclean  ammals   was  nutl.mg 


174  ST   LUKE,  VIII.  [w.  34—37. 

34  were  choked.  When  they  that  fed  thcDi  saw  what  was  done, 
they  fled,  and  went  and  told  //  in  the  city  and  in  the  coun- 

35  try.  Then  they  went  out  to  see  what  was  done;  and  came 
to  Jesus,  and  found  the  man,  out  of  whom  the  devils  were 
departed,  sitting  at  the  feet  of  Jesus,  clothed,  and  in  his 

36  right  mind:  and  they  were  afraid.  They  also  which  saw  // 
told  them  by  what  means  he  that  was  possessed  of  the 

37  devils  was  healed.  Then  the  whole  n^ultitude  of  the  coun- 
try of  the  Gadarenes  round  about  besought  him  to  depart 


compared  with  the  deliverance  of  a  human  soul.  Our  Lord  would 
therefore  have  had  a  moral  right  to  act  thus  even  if  he  had  been 
a  mere  human  Prophet.  Besides,  to  put  it  on  the  lowest  ground, 
the  freeing  of  the  neighbourhood  from  the  peril  and  terror  of  this 
wild  maniac  was  a  greater  benefit  to  the  whole  city  than  the  loss 
of  this  herd.  Jesus  did  not  command  the  spirits  to  go  into  the 
swine ;  if  He  permitted  any  thing  which  resulted  in  their  destruction  it 
was  to  serve  higher  and  more  precious  ends.  "God  the  Word,"  says 
Lord  Bacon,  "wished  to  do  nothing  which  breathed  not  of  grace  and 
beneficence;"  and  after  mentioning  the  stern  miracles  of  Moses,  Elijah, 
Elisha,  St  Peter  and  St  Paul,  he  adds,  "but  Jesus  did  nothing  of  this 
kind... the  spirit  of  Jesus  is  the  spirit  of  the  Dove.  lie  wrought  no 
miracle  of  judgment,  all  of  beneficence. "  Meditt.  Sacr.  on  Mk.  xii.  37, 
The  miracles  of  Christ  were  all  redemptive  acts  and  spiritual  lessons. 

34.  what  was  done']     Rather,  what  had  happened. 

35.  clothed'X  Perhaps  one  of  the  disciples  had  thrown  a  cloke 
[khjiation)  over  his  nakedness  or  his  rags. 

37.  besought  him  to  depart']  The  opposite  to  the  request  of  the 
Samaritans  (John  iv.  40).  Unlike  Peter,  they  tneant  what  they  said. 
Preferring  their  swine  to  Christ,  they  felt  that  His  presence  was 
dangerous  to  their  greed.  And  our  Lord  acted  on  the  principle  of 
not  casting  that  which  was  holy  to  dogs,  nor  pearls  before  men 
whose  moral  character  tended  to  become  like  that  of  their  ovvm  swine. 
At  Gadara  the  worst  iniquities  were  prevalent.  It  may  be  that  if  they 
had  not  deliberately  begged  Christ  to  leave  them  they  might  have 
been  spared  the  fearful  massacre  and  ruin — fire,  and  sword,  and 
slavery — which  befel  them  at  the  hands  of  the  Romans  in  less  than 
40  years  after  this  time  (Jos.  B.  J.  in.  7,  §  i,  iv.  7,  §  4).     But 

"We,  ignorant  of  ourselves. 
Beg  often  our  own  harms,  which  the  wise  powers 
Deny  us  for  our  good." 

For  other  instances  of  prayers  fatally  granted  see  Ex.  x.  28,  29 ; 
Numb.  xxii.  20;  Ps.  Ixxviii.  29 — 31;  on  the  other  hand,  a  refused 
boon  is  sometimes  a  blessing.  2  Cor.  xii.  8,  9.  The  result  of  their 
wilful  sensuality  was  that  the  time  never  came  when 


vv.  38—41.]  ST   LUKE,  VIII.  175 

from  them;  for  they  were  taken  with  great  fear:  and  he 
went  up  into  the  ship,  and  returned  back  again.  Now  the  38 
man  out  of  whom  the  devils  were  departed  besought  him 
that  he  might  be  with  him :  but  Jesus  sent  him  away,  saying, 
Return  to  thine  own  house,  and  shew  how  great  things  God  39 
hath  done  unto  thee.  And  he  went  his  way,  and  pubhshed 
throughout  the  whole  city  how  great  things  Jesus  had  done 
unto  him. 

40.     The  waiting  Multitude. 

And  it  came  to  pass  that,  when  Jesus  was  returned,  the  40 
people  gladly  received  him:   for  they  were  all  waiting  for 
him. 

41 — 56.     The  Daughter  ofyairus  and  the  Woman  with  the 

issue  of  Blood. 

And  behold,  there   came  a  man  named  Jairus,  and   he  4> 

"  E'en  the  witless  Gadarene, 
Preferring  Christ  to  swine,  shall  learn 
That  life  is  sweetest,  when  'tis  clean." 
they  were  taken]     Rather,  they  were  oppressed. 

39.  skew  how  great  things  God  hath  done  unto  thee]  This  command 
valuably  illustrates  one  of  the  reasons  why  our  Lord  commanded 
reticence  in  other  instances.  To  the  region  of  Gadara  He  did  not 
intend  to  return,  and  therefore  the  proclamation  of  a  miracle  would 
not  cause  Him  to  be  surrounded  by  curious  crowds. 

40.    The  waiting  Multitude. 

40.  the  people  gladly  received  hini]  They  would  see  the  sail  of  His 
boat  as  it  started  bacic  from  Geigesa,  and  the  storm  had  probably 
driven  back  the  other  boats.  He  would  naturally  sail  to  Bethsaida  or 
Capernaum.  It  is  impossible  here  to  enter  into  the  uncertain  question 
as  to  the  exact  order  of  events.  For  all  details  on  that  subject  I  must 
refer  to  my  Life  of  Christ. 

41_56.     The  Daughter  of  Jairus  and  the  Woman  with  the 

ISSUE  OF  Blood. 

41.  behold]  St  Matthew  places  this  message  of  Jairus  after  the 
farewell  feast  which  he  gave  to  his  friends  before  abandonmg  for  ever 
his  office  of  tax-gatherer.  At  that  feast  arose  the  question  about  fastmg, 
and  St  Matthew  (ix.  18)  says  that  Jairus  came  "while  Jesus  was  ycl 
speaking  these  things,"  and  in  so  definite  a  note  of  time,  on  a  day  to  him 
so  memorable,  he  could  hardly  be  inexact.     On  the  oilier  liand.  St  M.irk 


176  ST   LUKE,   VIII.  [vv.  42—44. 

was  a  ruler  of  the  synagogue:  and  he  fell  down  at  Jesus' 
feet,  and  besought  him  that  he  would  come  into  his  house : 

42  for  he  had  one  only  daughter,  about  twelve  years  of  age, 
and  she  lay  a  dying.     (But  as  he  went  the  people  thronged 

43  him.     And  a  woman  having  an  issue  of  blood  twelve  years, 
which   had   spent   all   her  living  upon  physicians,   neither 

44  could  be  healed  of  any,  came  behind  hhn,  and  touched  the 
border  of  his  garment :  and  immediately  her  issue  of  blood 

says,  and  St  Luke  implies,  that  the  message  reached  Jesus  as  He  dis- 
embarked on  the  sea-shore.  Hence  it  has  been  supposed  that  Jesus 
heard  the  first  entreaty  from  Jairus  on  the  shore  when  his  daughter  was 
dying  (vs.  42 ;  Mark  v.  23),  but  instead  of  going  straight  to  the  house 
of  Jairus  went  first  to  Matthew's  feast;  and  that  Jairus  then  came  to 
the  feast  in  agony  to  say  that  she  was  just  dead  (Matt.  ix.  18).  The 
very  small  discrepancies  are  however  quite  easily  explicable  without 
this  conjecture,  and  it  was  wholly  unlike  the  method  of  Jesus  to  inter- 
pose a  feast  between  the  request  of  an  agonised  father  and  His  act  of 
mercy. 

yatrus]     Jair,  Judg.  x.  3. 

a  ruler  of  the  synagogiu\  The  synagogues  had  no  clergy,  but  were 
managed  by  laymen,  at  the  head  of  whom  was  the  "  ruler,"  whose 
title  of  Rosh  hakkeneseth  was  as  familiar  to  the  Jews  as  that  of  Rabbi. 
His  functions  resembled  those  of  a  leading  elder.  The  appeal  of  such 
a  functionary  shews  the  estimation  in  which  our  Lord  was  still  held 
among  the  Galileans. 

that  he  would  come  into  his  honse\  Jair  had  not  the  faith  of  the 
heathen  centurion. 

42.  one  only  daughter^  St  Luke,  whose  keen  sympathies  are  every- 
where observable  in  his  Gospel,  mentions  the  same  touching  fact  in 
the  case  of  the  son  of  the  widow  of  Nain  (vii.  12),  and  the  lunatic  boy 
(ix.  38). 

she  lay  a  dying'\  St  Matthew  says  "?j  even  now  dead."  Perhaps 
we  catch  in  these  variations  an  echo  of  the  father's  despairing  un- 
certainty. 

43.  which  had  spent  all  her  Hvittg\  Literally,    'having  in  addition- 
spent '  her  whole  means  of  livelihood. 

neither  could  be  healed  of  any]  St  Luke,  perhaps  with  a  fellow- 
feeling  for  physicians,  does  not  add  the  severer  comment  of  St  Mark, 
that  the  physicians  had  only  made  her  worse  (v.  ■26).  The  Talmudic 
receipts  for  the  cure  of  this  disease  were  specially  futile,  such  as  to  set  the 
sufferer  in  a  place  where  two  ways  meet,  with  a  cup  of  wine  in  her  hand, 
and  let  some  one  come  behind  and  frighten  her,  and  say.  Arise  from 
thy  flux;  or  "dig  seven  ditches,  burn  in  them  some  cuttings  of  vines 
not  four  years  old,  and  let  her  sit  in  them  in  succession,  with  a  cup 
of  wine  in  her  hand,  while  at  each  remove  some  one  says  to  her. 
Arise  from  thy  flux."     (Lightfoot,  //or.  //ebr.  ad  loc.) 

44.  came  behind  him,  and  touched  the  border  of  his  garment]  Rather, 


vv.  45—47.] ST   LUKE,    Vlll.  177 

stanched.     And  Jesus  said,  Who  touched  me?     When  all  45 
denied,  Peter  and  they  that  were  with  him  said,  Master  the 
multitude  throng  thee  and  press  thee,  and  sayest  thou,  Who 
touched  me?    And  Jesus  said,  Somebody  hath  touched  me-  46 
for  I  perceive  that  virtue  is  gone  out  of  me.     And  when  the  47 
woman  saw  that  she  was  not  hid,  she  came  trembling,  and 
falling  down  before  him,  she  declared  unto  him  before  all 
the  people  for  what  cause  she  had  touched  him,  and  how 

approacMng  from  behind  touclied  tlie  tassel  of  His  outer  robe 
This  IS  a  miracle  'by  the  way'  {obiter),  but,  as  Fuller  says,  "His 
obiter  is  more  to  the  purpose  than  our  iter."  She  sought  to  steal  (as 
It  were)  a  miracle  of  grace,  and  fancied  that  Christ's  miracles  were 
a  matter  of  nature,  not  of  will  and  purpose.  Probably  the  intense 
depression  produced  by  her  disease,  aggravated  by  the  manner  in 
which  for  twelve  years  every  one  had  kept  aloof  from  her  and  striven 
not  to  touch  her,  had  quite  crushed  her  spirits.  By  the  Levitic  law 
she  had  to  be  "put  apart,  and  whosoever  toucheth  her  shall  be 
unclean''  (Lev.  xv.  19,  25).  The  word  translated  "  border"  (kraspedon, 
Heb.  tsitsith)  is  a  tassel  at  each  "wing"  or  corner  of  the  tallitk 
or  mantle  (Matt.  xiv.  36).  The  Law  (Num.  xv.  38—40)  required 
that  it  should  be  bound  with  a  thread  (not  as  in  E.  V.  ribbatul)  of  blue, 
the  colour  of  heaven,  and  so  the  type  of  revelation.  The  strict  Jews 
to  this  day  wear  these  tassels,  though  they  are  usually  concealed.  The 
Pharisees,  to  proclaim  their  orthodoxy,  made  them  conspicuously  large, 
Matt,  xxiii.  5.  One  of  the  four  tassels  hung  over  the  shoulder  at  the 
back,  and  this  was  the  one  which  the  woman  touched.  (For  full 
particulars  of  the  Rabbinic  rules  about  these  tassels  see  an  article  by  the 
present  writer,  in  the  Expositor,  v.  219.)  The  quasi-sacredness  of  the 
tassels  may  have  fostered  her  impulse  to  touch  the  one  that  hung  in 
view. 

45.  Peter  and  they  that  were  with  him]  St  Mark  merely  says  His 
disciples,  but  the  question  is  in  exact  accordance  with  that  pre- 
sumptuous impetuosity  which  marked  the  as  yet  imperfect  stage  of 
Peter's  character. 

46.  Somebody  hath  touched  me]  Rather,  Some  one  touched  me. 
"  They  press ;  she  touches."  Aug.  "Flesh  presses;  faith  touches." 
Id.  Our  Lord's  question  was  meant  to  reach  the  woman's  heart,  comp. 
Gen.  iii.  9,  iv.  9;  2  Kings  v.  25. 

I  perceive  that  virtue  is  gone  out  of  me]  Literally,  ^*  I  recognised  power 
going  forth  from  i/ie ;"  or  perceived  that  power  had  gone  forth  from 
me,  if  we  read  exeleluthuian.     Comp.  vi.  19. 

47.  she  came  trembling]  Because  by  her  touch  she  had  communi- 
cated to  Him  Levitical  uncleanness  ;  and  this  by  one  of  the  RabbLs 
or  Pharisees  would  have  been  regarded  as  an  intolerable  presumption 
and  wrong.  To  this  day  the  Jewish  Rabbis  (or  Chakams)  in  the  East 
are  careful  not  even  to  be  touched  by  a  woman's  dress  (Frankl.,  Jnvs 
in  the  East,  li.  81). 

ST  LUKE  I  2 


178  ST   LUKE,   VIII.  [w.  48— 53. 

48  she  was  healed  immediately.  And  he  said  unto  her,  Daugh- 
ter, be  of  good  comfort :  thy  faith  hath  made  thee  whole ; 

49  go  in  peace.)  While  he  yet  spake,  there  cometh  one  from 
the  ruler  of  the  synagogue's  house,  saying  to  him.  Thy  daugh- 

so  ter  is  dead ;  trouble  not  the  Master.  But  when  Jesus  heard 
iti  he  answered  him,  saying,  Fear  not :  believe  only,  and  she 

s>  shall  be  made  whole.  And  when  he  came  into  the  house, 
he  suffered  no  man  to  go  in,  save  Peter,  and  James,  and 

52  John,  and  the  father  and  the  mother  of  the  maiden.  And 
all  wept,  and  bewailed  her:  but  he  said,  Weep  not;  she  is 

53  not  dead,  but  sleepeth.     And  they  laughed  him  to  scorn, 

48.  Daughter]  The  only  recorded  occasion  on  which  our  Lord  used 
that  tender  word  to  a  woman. 

thy  faith  hath  made  thee  whole"]  Literally,  "  hath  saved  thee."  Thy  faith 
— not  the  superstitious  and  surreptitious  touch  of  my  tallith^s  fringe. 
Jesus  thus  compelled  her  to  come  forth  from  her  timid  enjoyment  of 
a  stolen  blessing  that  He  might  confer  on  her  a  deeper  and  fuller 
blessing. 

go  in  peace]  Literally,  to,  or  for  peace.  Tradition  says  that  the 
name  of  this  woman  was  Veronica  {Evang.  Nicodem.  V.  6),  and  that 
it  was  she  who  gave  to  our  Lord  the  famous  legendary  handkerchief 
to  wipe  His  face  on  the  way  to  Calvary.  At  Paneas  (Caesarea 
Philippi)  there  was  a  bronze  statue  which  was  supposed  to  be  her 
votive  offering,  and  to  represent  this  scene  (Euseb.  H.  E.  VII.  18; 
Sozomen,  H.E.  V.  ■zi);  and  on  this  account  Julian  the  Apostate  or 
Maximin  is  said  to  have  destroyed  it.  All  this  is  very  improbable. 
Early  Christian  writers  were  too  credulous  about  these  statues.  Justin 
Martyr  took  a  statue  of  the  Sabine  god  Semo  Sancus  for  one  of  Simon 
Magus. 

49.  trouble  not  the  Master]  Literally,  "  ivorry  not  the  Rabbi." 
For  the  colloquial  verb  preserved  also  in  St  Mark  see  vii.  6. 

50.  when  yestis  heard  it]  The  remark  was  addressed  to  Jairus, 
and  St  Mark  says  that  Jesus  "  overheard  it." 

51.  save  Peter,  and  James,  and  John]  as  at  the  Transfiguration 
and  at  Gethsemane,  Mark  ix.  1,  xiv.  33. 

52.  betuailed  her]  The  word  means  that  they  were  beating  their 
breasts  for  her  (Nahum  ii.  7).  St  Mark  gives  a  graphic  picture  of 
the  tumult,  and  loud  cries,  and  wailings  [alalai,  the  Egyptian  wilweleh). 
Even  the  poorest  were  obliged  to  provide  for  a  funeral  two  flute- 
players  and  one  wailing  woman.  See  Eccles.  xii.  5 ;  Jer.  ix.  17; 
Amos  V.  16;  2  Chron.  xxxv.  25.  These  public  mourners  were  called 
sappedans. 

52.  she  is  not  dead,  but  sleepeth]  To  take  this  literally  is  to  contra- 
dict the  letter  and  spirit  of  the  whole  narrative.  It  is  true  that  in 
"our  friend  Lazarus  sleepeth"  the  verb  used  is  not  katheudein  but 
koimasthai ;  but  that  is  in  a  different  writer  (John  xi.    11),  and  the 


vv.  54— 56;  I.]  ST   LUKE,   VIII.  IX. 


179 

knowing  that  she  was  dead.     And  he  put  them  all  out,  and  c, 
took  her  by  the  hand,  and  called,  saying.  Maid,  arise.    And  .5' 
her  spirit  came  again,  and  she  arose  straightway:   and  he  " 
commanded  to  give  her  meat.     And  her  parents  were  asto-  56 
nished:  but  he  charged  them  that  they  should  tell  no  man 
what  was  done. 

Ch.  IX.     1—6.     The  Mission  of  the  Twelve. 
Then  he  called  his  twelve  disciples  together,  and  gave  9 
them  power  and  authority  over  all  devils,  and  to  cure  dis- 

word  better  suits  one  who   had  been   four   days   dead.     Our   Lord's 
object  was  to  silence  this  idle  uproar. 

53.  laughed  him  to  scorn]  Literallj',  "were  utterly  deriding  Him" 
'  To  laugh  to  scorn '  is  used  by  Shakespeare,  e.  g. 

"Our  castle's  strength 
Will  laugh  a  siege  to  scorn." 

Macbeth,  v.  5. 

54.  he  put  them  all  out]  These  words  being  omitted  by  K,  B,  D, 
L,  X,  are  probably  interpolated  here,  from  the  other  Synoptists.  Our 
Lord  could  not  feel  the  smallest  sympathy  for  these  simulated  agonies 
of  people,  who  (to  this  day)  "weep,  howl,  beat  their  breasts,  and  tear 
their  hair  according  to  contract"  (Thomson,  Land  and  Book,  I.  viii.). 
And  further  these  solemn  deeds  required  calm  and  faith,  Acts  ix.  40; 
1  Kings  iv.  33. 

took  her  by  the  hand]  St  Luke  preserves  this  gentle  detail,  as  well 
as  the  kind  order  to  give  her  food.  St  Mark  gives  the  two  Aramaic 
words  which  our  Lord  used,  Talitha  cumi !  On  these  occasions  He 
always  used  the  fewest  possible  words  (vii.  14;  John  xi.  43). 

56.  that  they  should  tell  no  man]  See  on  v.  14.  And  as  usual  the 
injunction  was  probably  unheeded.     Matt.  ix.  26. 

Ch.  IX.  1 — 6.    The  Mission  of  the  Twelve. 

1.  Then  he  called  his  twelve  disciples  together]  This  was  at  the  close 
of  the  missionary  journeys  alluded  to  in  Matt.  ix.  35;  Mk.  vi.  6.  St 
Matthew  gives  a  touching  reason  for  the  mission  of  the  Twelve.  It 
was  because  He  pitied  the  multitude,  who  were  like  harassed  and 
panting  sheep  without  a  shepherd,  and  like  a  harvest  left  unrcaped 
for  want  of  labourers  (Matt.  ix.  36 — 38).  The  Apostles  thus  became, 
as  their  name  implied,  emissaries  [sheloochtm),  and  this  was  an  important 
step  in  their  training. 

and  gave  them  power  and  authority]  Power  {dunamis)  is  the  capacity, 
and  authority  (exotisid),  the  right  to  act.     See  x.  19;  Rev.  xiii.  7. 

over  all  devils]     Rather,  over  all  the  demons. 

to  cure  diseases]  The  word  is  not  iasthai,  as  in  vs.  ■2,  but  thcrapeutin, 
'to  tend;'  but  there  seems  to  be  no  essential  difference  intended,  unless 

12       i 


i8o  ST   LUKE,    IX.  [vv.  2—5. 


2  eases.     And  he  sent  them  to  preach  the  kingdom  of  God, 

3  and  to  heal  the  sick.    And  he  said  unto  them,  Take  nothing 
for  your  journey,  neither  staves,  nor  scrip,  neither  bread, 

4  neither  money ;  neither  have  two  coats  apiece.     And  what- 
soever house  ye  enter  into,  there  abide,  and  thence  depart. 

s  And  whosoever  will  not  receive  you,  when  ye  go  out  of  that 
city,  shake  off  the  very  dust  from  your  feet  for  a  testimony 

it  points  to  the  curious  fact  mentioned  by  St  Mark  that  they  anointed 
the  sick  with  oil  (vi.  13  ;  comp.  James  v,  14). 

2.  And  he  sent  theni\    Two  and  two  for  their  mutual  comfort.    Mk. 

vi.  7- 

3.  And  he  said  unto  them\  For  a  much  fuller  account  of  the 
instructions  given  to  the  Twelve  see  Matt.  x.  5—15-  Some  of  these 
are  recorded  by  St  Luke  as  given  also  to  the  Seventy,  x.  r — 16. 

neither  staves]  Or  a  staj"  (as  N,  A,  B,  and  many  uncials).  The 
plural  may  have  been  frivolously  introduced  by  some  copyist  who 
wished  to  avoid  an  apparent  discrepancy  with  Mk.  vi.  8,  "save  a  staff 
only."  St  Matthew  also  says,  "not  even  a  staff."  Minute  and  wholly 
unimportant  as  the  variation  would  have  been,  it  may  turn  on  the  fact 
that  our  Lord  told  them  not  specially  to  procure  (fj-v  KTija-rja-ee,  Matt.) 
these  things  for  the  journey;  or  on  the  fact  that  speaking  in  Aramaic 
He  used  the  phrase  DX  "^2  {kee  i?n),  which  might  be  explained  "even  if 
you  have  a  staff  li  is  unnecessary." 

nor  scrip]  i.  e.  wallet,  a  bag  carried  over  the  shoulder  to  contain  a 
few  dates  or  other  common  necessaries,     i  Sam.  xvii.  40. 

neither  bread]  which  they  usually  took  with  them,  vs.  13 ;  Matt. 
xvi.  7. 

neither  money]  Literally,  ^'■silver."  St  Luke  uses  the  word  because  it 
was  the  common  metal  for  coinage  among  the  Greeks.  St  Mark  uses 
"copper,"  the  common  Roman  coinage. 

neither  have  two  coats  apiece]  i.e.  do  not  carry  with  you  a  second 
tunic  [ketoneth) — which  indeed  is  a  rare  luxury  among  poor  Orientals. 
(See  on  iii.  11.)  If  they  carried  a  second  tunic  at  all  they  could  only  do 
so  conveniently  by  putting  it  on  (Mk.  vi.  9).  St  Mark  adds  that  they 
were  to  wear  sandals,  and  St  Matthew  that  they  were  not  to  have 
travelling  shoes  {kupodh>iata).  The  general  spirit  of  the  instructions 
merely  is.  Go  forth  in  the  simplest,  humblest  manner,  with  no  hind- 
rances to  your  movements  and  in  perfect  faith;  and  this,  as  history 
shews,  has  always  been  the  method  of  the  most  successful  missions.  At 
the  same  time  we  must  remember  that  the  wants  of  the  Twelvewere 
very  small  (see  on  viii.  3)  and  were  secured  by  the  open  hospitality  of 
the  East  (Thomson,  Land  a?td  Book,  p.  346). 

4.  whatsoever  house  ye  enter]  After  enquiring  who  were  the  worthiest 
people  to  receive  them.  Matt.  x.  11,  com]),  infra  x.  5—8.  This  injunc- 
tion was  meant  to  exclude  fastidious  and  restless  changes. 

6.     sJuike  offtlie  very  dust  from  your  feet]     See  Acts  xiii.  51,  xviii.  6. 


vv.  6—9.]  ST   LUKE,  IX.  181 

against  them.     And  they  departed,  and  went  through  the  6 
towns,  preaching  the  gospel,  and  healing  every  wliere. 

7 — 9-     Herod''s  Alarm. 
^  Now  Herod  the  tetrarch  heard  of  all  that  was  done  by  7 
him:   and  he  was  perplexed,  because  that  it  was   said  of 
some,  that  John  was  risen  from  the  dead;  and  of  some,  that  s 
Ehas  had  appeared;  and  of  others,  that  one  of  the  old  pro- 
phets was  risen  again.     And  Herod  said,  John  have  I  be-  9 
headed:  but  who  is  this,  of  whom  I  hear  such  t/iings?    And 
he  desired  to  see  him. 

6.  preaching  the  gospel]  The  word  here  used  is  "evangehzine,"  in 
vs.  2  it  is  "to  herald."  ^         ^ 

healing]  In  the  other  Evangelists  exorcisms  are  prominent.  Mk. 
vi.  13.  The  special  object  of  the  mission  of  the  Twelve  is  plain  from 
St  Matthew.  Our  Lord  had  now  been  preaching  for  nearly  a  year  in 
Galilee,  and  multitudes  still  thronged  to  Him.  He  knew  that  He 
would  soon  be  compelled  to  retire,  and  He  sent  the  Twelve  to  give 
one  last  opportunity  to  those  who  had  heard  Him. 

7 — 9.     Herod's  Alarm. 

7.  Herod  the  tetrarch]     Antipas.     See  iii.  i. 

by  hitu]  These  words  are  omitted  by  X,  B,  C,  D,  L.  The  "all  the 
things  that  had  occtirred"  seems  to  be  a  special  reference  to  the  work 
of  the  Twelve  which  made  our  Lord's  name  more  widely  known. 

it  was  said  of  some]  i.  e.  by  some.  To  this  opinion  Herod's  guilty 
conscience  made  him  sometimes  incline,  Mk.  vi.  16.  His  alarm  may 
have  been  intensified  by  the  strong  condemnation  of  his  subjects,  who, 
long  afterwards,  looked  on  his  defeat  by  his  injured  father-in-law 
Aretas  (Hareth)  as  a  punishment  for  this  crime  (Jos.  Antt.  xviii.  5, 
§§  I,  2). 

8.  that  Elias  had  appeared]  In  accordance  with  the  prophecy  of  Mai. 
iv.  5.  The  verb  "appeared"  is  used  instead  of  'risen  again,  because 
of  Elijah's  translation  to  heaven.  The  Talnuid  is  full  of  the  expected 
appearance  of  Elijah,  and  of  instances  in  wliich  he  shewed  himself  to 
eminent  Rabbis. 

one  of  the  old  prophets]  Comp.  vii.  16;  Dcut.  xviii.  15;  Num. 
xxiv.  17,  The  Jews  thought  that  Jeremiah  or  one  of  the  other  great 
prophets  (see  vs.  19)  might  rise  to  herald  the  Messiah,  John  i.  21.  Sec 
2  Esdras  ii.  10,  18,  "Tell  my  people. ..For  thy  help  will  I  send  my 
servants  Isaiah  and  Jeremiah;"  i  Mace.  xiv.  41,  "6"m('« should  be  high 
priest... ««/?■/  there  arose  a  faithful  prophet."  In  2  Mace.  ii.  4—8,  xv. 
13 — 16,  Jeremiah  appears  in  a  vision.  It  was  believed  that  he  would 
reveal  the  hiding-place  of  the  Ark,  Urim,  and  S.acred  Fire. 

9.  he  desired]  Literally,  ''ims  seehittg:"  this  agrees  with  xxiii.  8, 
"he  was  desirous  to  see  him  of  a  long  season."     .St   Luke  may  hnv 


r82  ST   LUKE,   IX.  [v.  lo. 

lo — 17.     The  Feeding  of  the  Five  Thousand. 

10  And  the  apostles,  when  they  were  returned,  told  him  all 
that  they  had  done.  And  he  took  them,  and  went  aside 
privately  into  a  desert  place  belonging  to  the  city  called 

heard  particulars  about  Herod  from  Chuzas  (viii.  3)  when  he  was  with 
St  Paul  at  Caesarea  Stratonis,  or  from  Manaen  at  Antioch  (Acts  xiii.  i). 
The  curiosity  of  Herod  about  Jesus  does  not  seem  to  have  been  aroused 
before  this  period.  A  half-alien  tyrant  such  as  he  was,  belonging  to  a 
detested  house,  is  often  little  aware  of  what  is  going  on  among  the 
people ;  but  the  mission  of  the  Twelve  in  all  directions,  and  therefore 
possibly  to  Tiberias,  produced  effects  which  reached  his  ears.  His 
wish  to  see  Jesus  was  not  gratified  till  the  day  of  the  crucifixion; — partly 
because  our  Lord  purposely  kept  out  of  his  reach,  feeling  for  him  a 
pure  contempt  ("this  fox,"  xiii.  32),  and  for  this  among  other  reasons 
never  so  much  as  entered  the  polluted  and  half-heathen  streets  of 
Herod's  new  town  of  Tiberias  (which  partly  covered  the  site  of  an  old 
cemetery) ;  and  partly  because,  after  the  news  of  John's  murder.  He 
seems  at  once  to  have  withdrawn  from  all  permanent  work  in  Gen- 
nesareth.  During  the  mission  of  the  Twelve  we  infer  that  He  made  a 
journey  alone  to  Jerusalem  to  the  unnamed  feast  of  John  v.  i,  probably 
the  Feast  of  Purim.  During  this  visit  occurred  the  healing  of  the 
cripple  at  Bethesda. 

10 — 17.     The  Feeding  of  the  Five  Thousand. 

10.  told  Jmn  all  that  they  had  done]  This  brief  and  meagre  record, 
to  which  nothing  is  added  by  the  other  Evangelists,  contrasts  so  strongly 
with  the  joyous  exultation  of  the  Seventy  over  their  success,  that  we 
are  led  to  infer  that  the  training  of  the  Twelve  was  as  yet  imperfect, 
and  their  mission  less  successful  than  the  subsequent  one. 

went  aside  privately\  The  reasons — beside  the  natural  need  of  the 
Twelve  and  of  our  Lord  for  rest — were  (i)  the  incessant  interruptions 
from  the  multitude,  which  left  them  no  leisure  even  to  eat  (Mk.  vi.  31), 
and  (2)  (as  we  see  from  the  context)  the  news  of  the  murder  of  John 
the  Baptist  and  Herod's  enquiries  about  Jesus.  Perhaps  we  may  add 
(3)  the  desire  to  keep  in  retirement  the  Paschal  Feast  which  He  could 
not  now  keep  at  Jerusalem.  This  event  constitutes  another  new  depar- 
ture in  the  ministry  of  Christ. 

into  a  desert  place  belonging  to  the  city  called  Bethsaida]  There  are 
here  great  variations  in  the  MSS.  and  the  best  reading  is  to  a  city  called 
Bethsaida.  The  omission  may  be  due  to  the  fact  that  there  was 
nothing  approaching  to  "a  desert  place"  corresponding  to  this  descrip- 
tion near  the  only  Bethsaida  which  was  well  known  to  the  copyists, 
viz.  the  little  fishing  suburb  of  Capernaum  on  the  west  of  the  lake 
(Bethsaida  of  Galilee,  John  xii.  21),  Mk.  vi.  45.  This  may  also  explain 
the  variation  of 'village'  for  'city.'  It  is  only  in  recent  times  that  we 
have  been  made  famihar  with  the  existence  of  the  other  Bethsaida — 
Bethsaida  Julias    (Mk.   viii.   22),   at   the   north  of  the  lake,  another 


w.  II— 13.]  ST   LUKE,   IX.  183 

Bethsaida.     And  the  people,  when  they  knew  //,  followed  n 
him:  and  he  received  them,  and  spake  unto  them  of  the 
kingdom  of  God,  and  healed  them  that  had  need  of  healing. 
And  when  the  day  began  to  wear   away,  then  came  the  12 
twelve,  and  said  unto  him.  Send  the  multitude  away,  that 
they  may  go  into  the  towns  and  country  round  about,  and 
lodge,  and  get  victuals :  for  we  are  here  in  a  desert  place. 
But  he  said  unto  them,  Give  ye  them  to  eat.    And  they  said,  13 
We  have  no  more  but  five  loaves  and  two  fishes;  except  we 

'House  of  Fish'  which  had  been  recently  beautified  by  Herod  Philip 
(iii.  i)  and  named  by  him  after  the  beautiful  but  profligate  daughter  of 
Augustus,  Jos.  A7iit.  xviii.  1.,  %  \;  B.  y.  11.  §  r.  The  ruins  of  this 
town  still  exist  at  Telui  (a  corruption  of  Tel  Julias),  and  close  by  it  is 
the  green,  narrow,  secluded  plain  of  El  Batihah,  which  exactly  meets 
the  description  of  the  Evangelists.  This  important  discovery,  which 
explains  several  serious  difficulties  of  this  Gospel,  is  due  to  Reland 
{Palaest.  p.  504),  and  shews  us  how  easily  difficulties  would  be  removed 
if  we  knew  all  the  facts. 

11.  the  people,  when  they  knew  it,  follozved  him]  The  ensuing 
miracle  is  one  of  the  few  narrated  by  all  four  Evangelists,  Matt.  xiv. 
13 — 33;  Mk.  vi.  30 — 52;  John  vi.  i — 21,  and  is  most  important  from 
the  power  displayed,  the  doctrines  symbolized  (Christ  the  bread  of  life), 
and  the  results  to  which  it  led  (John  vi.).  Combining  the  narratives, 
we  see  that  the  embarkation  of  Jesus  to  sail  from  Capernaum  to  the 
northern  Bethsaida  had  been  noticed  by  the  people,  and  as  it  is  only  a 
sail  of  six  miles  they  went  on  foot  round  the  head  of  the  lake  to  find 
Him.  He  had  barely  time  to  retire  with  His  disciples  to  one  of 
the  hills  when  a  crowd  assembled  on  the  little  plain  which  was 
momentarily  swelled  by  the  throngs  of  pilgrims  who  paused  to  see  the 
Great  Prophet  on  their  way  to  the  approaching  Passover  at  Jerusalem 
(John  vi.  5),  which  Jesus  Himself  could  not  attend  without  danger, 
owing  to  the  outburst  caused  by  the  Sabbath  healing  of  the  cripple 
(John  V.  I — 16).  Towards  afternoon  He  came  down  the  hill  to  the 
multitude  to  teach  them  and  heal  their  sick. 

12.  to  wear  azvay]     Rather,  to  decline. 

then  came  the  twelve]  They  were  afraid  that  when  once  the  brief 
twilight  was  over,  the  famished  multitude  might  lose  their  way  or  come 
to  harm,  and  some  calamity  happen  which  would  give  a  fresh  handle 
against  Jesus.  John  alone  tells  us  that  He  had  compassionately  sug- 
gested the  difficulty  to  Philip,  watching  with  gentle  irony  the  tria  of 
his  faith;  and  that  Philip  despairingly  said  that  it  would  cost  more  th.in 
200  denarii  (as  we  might  say  ^10)  to  procure  tliem  even  a  minimum  ol 
food.  Philip  was  "of  Bethsaida,"  but  this  had  nothing  to  do  with 
our  Lord's  speaking  to  him,  for  he  belongeil  to  tlie  western  Bcth>,iula. 

13.  We  have  no  more  but  five  loaves  and  two  fishes]  Compare  i\  uin. 
xi.  22.     It  was  Andrew  who  first  mentioned  this  fact  in  a  tentative  sort 


i84  ST   LUKE,  IX.  [w.  14—17. 

14  should  go  and  buy  meat  for  all  this  people.  For  they  were 
about  five  thousand  men.     And  he  said  to  his  disciples, 

15  Make  them  sit  down  by  fifties  in  a  company.     And  they  did 

16  so,  and  made  them  all  sit  down.  Then  he  took  the  five 
loaves  and  the  two  fishes,  and  looking  up  to  heaven,  he 
blessed  them,  and  brake,  and  gave  to  the  disciples  to  set 

17  before  the  multitude.  And  they  did  eat,  and  were  all  filled : 
and  there  was  taken  up  of  fragments  that  remained  to  them 
twelve  baskets. 

of  way.  The  little  boy  {paidarion)  who  carried  them  seems  to  have 
been  in  attendance  on  the  Apostles  ;  evidently  this  was  the  food  which 
they  had  brought  for  their  own  supply,  and  it  proves  their  simplicity  of 
life,  for  barley  loaves  (John  vi.  9)  are  the  food  of  the  poor  (2  K.  iv.  42 ; 
Judg.  vii.  13;  Ezek.  xiii.  19,  iv.  9). 

14.  five  thousand  meii'\  "Besides  women  and  children,"  Matt, 
xiv.  21.  These  would  probably  not  be  numerous,  and  would  not  (in 
accordance  with  Eastern  usage)  sit  down  with  the  men,  but  would  stand 
apart. 

by  fifties  in  a  cotHpanyl  The  vivid  details  of  Mark  shew  the  eye- 
witness of  St  Peter.  He  compares  them  to  parterres  of  flowers  {prasiai 
prasiai,  'by  garden  beds')  as  they  sat  on  the  green  grass  in  their  bright 
Oriental  robes  of  red  and  blue  and  yellow.  St  Luke's  word,  klisiai, 
means  literally  z«  dining-parties,  from  klisia,  'a  couch.'  This  systematic 
arrangement  made  it  easy  to  tell  the  number  of  the  multitude. 

16.  brake,  and gave\  The  'brake'  is  in  the  aorist,  and  the  'gave' 
in  the  imperfect,  and  although  it  is  a  useless  presumption  to  enquire 
into  the  mode  of  this  most  remarkable  miracle,  these  two  words  give  us 
this  detail  only,  —  that  it  took  place  between  the  act  of  breaking  and  the 
continuous  distribution.  But  "Falleret  momento  visum. ..Est  quod  non 
erat ;  videtur  quod  non  intelligitur  "  (Hilary).  The  marvel  lay  in  the 
Doer,  not  in  the  deed.     Aug. 

17.  of fragynents^  Compare  2  K.  iv.  43,  44.  These  were  collected 
by  the  order  of  Jesus,  who  thus  strikingly  taught  that  wastefulness  even 
of  miraculous  plenty  is  entirely  alien  to  the  divine  administration. 

twelve  baskets']  Cophini,  probably  wicker-baskets  {salsilloth,  Jer. 
vi.  9).  Every  Jew  carried  such  a  basket  about  with  him  to  avoid  the 
chance  of  his  food  contracting  any  Levitical  pollution  in  heathen  places 
(Juv.  Sat.  III.  14,  VI.  542).  The  baskets  used  at  the  miracle  of  the 
four  thousand  were  large  rope-baskets,  'frails'  [spurides).  The  accuracy 
with  which  each  word  is  reserved  by  all  the  narrators  for  each  miracle  is 
remarkable. 


At  this  point  there  is  a  considerable  gap  in  the  continuity  of  St 
Luke's  narrative.  He  omits  the  amazement  of  the  multitude  which 
made  it  likely  that  they  would  seize  Jesus  to  make  Him  king ;  His 
compelling  His  reluctant  disciples  to  sail  back  towards  the  other — the 


w.  i8,  19.]  ST   LUKE,  IX.  185 

18 — 22.    St  Peter's  Confession.    Christ  prophesies  His  Death 

and  Resurrection. 

And  it  came  to  pass,  as  he  was  alone  praying,  his  disci-  18 
pies  were  with  him :  and  he  asked  them,  saying,  Whom  say 
the  people   that  I  am?     They  answering  said,   John   the  19 
Baptist;  but  some  say,  Elias;  and  others  say,  that  one  of 

western — Bethsaida  ;  the  gradual  dismissal  of  the  multitude;  His  flight, 
^eiryet,  John  vi.  15,  i<)  to  the  hill  top  to  escape  those  who  still  lingered, 
and  to  pray  alone  ;  the  gathering  of  the  storm  ;  the  walking  on  the  sea; 
the  failure  of  Peter's  faith;  the  very  memorable  discourse  at  Capernaum, 
intended  to  teach  what  was  the  true  bread  from  heaven,  and  to  dissipate 
the  material  expectations  of  the  popular  Messianism  ;  the  crisis  of 
ofifence  caused  by  these  hard  sayings  ;  the  dispute  with  the  Pharisees  on 
the  question  of  the  Oral  Law  or  Tradition  of  the  Elders;  the  deepening 
opposition  and  the  one  great  day  of  conflict  and  rupture  with  the 
Pharisees  (which  St  Luke  appears  to  relate  out  of  chronological  order 
in  xi.);  the  flight  among  the  heathen  as  far  as  Tyre  and  Sidon;  the 
incident  of  the  Syrophoenician  woman ;  the  feeding  of  the  four  thousand ; 
the  return  to  Galilee  and  demand  for  a  sign;  the  sailing  away,  and  the 
warning  against  the  leaven  of  the  Pharisees;  and  the  healing  of  a  blind 
man  at  Bethsaida  Julias  during  His  second  journey  northwards.  These 
must  be  sought  for  in  Matt.  xiv. — xvi.  12  ;  Mk.  vi.  45 — viii.  30;  John  vi. 
For  my  view  of  them,  and  their  sequence,  I  may  perhaps  be  allowed  to 
refer  the  reader  to  my  Life  of  Christ,  i.  403 — 11.  9. 

18 — 22.     St  Peter's  Confession.     Christ   prophesies   His 
Death  and  Resurrection. 

18.  alone\     Rather,  in  private,  as  the  context  shews. 

the  people\  Rather,  tlie  multitudes  ;  those  whom  Jesus  had  taught 
and  healed  and  fed,  or  those  who  seem  to  have  been  always  at  no  great 
distance.  The  two  other  Evangelists  place  this  memorable  scene  in 
the  neighbourhood  of  Caesarea  Philippi.  His  life  at  this  epoch  had 
come  to  resemble  a  continuous  flight.  He  did  not  enter  Caesarea 
Philippi.  He  always  avoided  towns  (with  the  single  exception  of 
Jerusalem),  probably  from  His  love  for  the  sights  and  sounds  of  nature, 
and  His  dislike  for  the  crowded  squalor  and  worldly  absorption  of 
town-communities;  and  He  specially  avoided  these  Hellenic  and  hybrid 
cities,  with  their  idolatrous  ornaments  and  corrupted  population.  This 
event  may  well  be  regarded  as  the  culminating  point  in  His  ministry. 
He  had  now  won  the  deliberate  faith  and  conviction  of  those  who  had 
lived  in  close  intercourse  with  Him,  and  who,  in  continuation  of  His 
ministry,  were  to  evangelize  the  world.  See  Matt.  xvi.  13 — 1\  ;  Mk. 
viii.  27 — 31. 

that  I  am'\     "That  I,  the  Son  of  man,  am?"     Matt.  xvi.  13. 

19.  John  the  Baptist]  See  on  vss.  7—9.  The  answer  of  the  Apostle 
shewed  the  sad  truth  that  Jesus  had  come  to  His  own  possessions  and 


1 86  ST   LUKE,   IX.  [vv.  20—22. 

ao  the  old  prophets  is  risen  again.  He  said  unto  them,  But 
whom  say  ye  that  I  am  ?     Peter  answering  said,  The  Christ 

21  of  God.     And  he  straitly  charged  them,  and  commanded 

22  them  to  tell  no  man  that  thing ;  saying,  The  Son  of  man 
must  suffer  many  things,  and  be  rejected  of  the  elders  and 
chief  priests  and  scribes,  and  be  slain,  and  be  raised  the 
third  day. 

His  own  people  received  Him  not ;  that  the  Light  had  shined  in  the 
darkness,  and  the  darkness  had  not  comprehended  it.  He  had  not 
come  to  force  belief,  but  to  win  conviction.  He  had  never  even  openly 
proclaimed  His  Messiahship,  but  left  His  works  to  speak  for  Him. 
God's  method  is  not  to  ensure  faith  by  violence;  as  the  Fathers  say 
"Force  is  alien  to  God  "  (jSia  ix^pbv  Gey). 

20.  The  Christ  of  God]  "Thou  art  the  Christ,  the  Son  of  the 
Living  God,"  Matt.  xvi.  16.  "The  Lord's  Christ,"  ii.  26.  After  the 
estranging  speech  at  Capernaum  our  Lord  had  asked,  "Will  ye  also  go 
away?"  and  then  St  Peter's  answer  had  been  "  we  have  believed  and 
recognised  that  thou  art  the  Holy  One  of  God,''  '^ohnVi.  69  (N,  B,  C,  D, 
L,  &c.).  Nathanaelhad  recognised  Him  as  "the  Son  of  God"  and  "the 
King  of  Israel."  Later,  Martha  confessed  Him  as  "the  Christ,  the  Son 
of  God,"  John  xi.  27.  But  now  for  the  first  time  the  revealed  mystery  was 
openly  recognised  and  confessed.  St  Luke  omits  the  blessing  of  St  Peter, 
which  whatever  may  be  its  exact  meaning  at  any  rate  can  have  conferred 
on  him  no  sort  of  primacy  or  superior  authority  among  the  Apostles. 
See  xxii.  24 — 26;  Matt,  xviii.  i ;  John  xxi.  .19 — 23;  Gal.  ii.  9,  11,  &c, 

21.  commanded  them  to  tell  no  man]  For  these  perhaps  among 
other  reasons : — 1 .  Because  His  work  was  not  yet  finished.  2.  Because 
as  yet  their  faith  was  very  weak  and  their  knowledge  very  partial. 
3.  Because  they  had  not  yet  received  the  Holy  Spirit  to  give  power  to 
their  testimony.  4.  Because  the  public  proclamation  of  the  truth  would 
have  precipitated  the  workings  of  God's  foreordained  plan  (prothesis, 
Eph.  i.  9,  iii.  11). 

22.  The  Son  of  man  must  suffer  many  things']  It  was  necessary  at 
once  to  dissipate  the  crude  Messianic  conceptions  of  earthly  splendour 
and  victory  in  which  they  had  been  brought  up,  and  to  substitute  the 
truth  of  a  suffering  for  that  of  a  triumphant  Messiah. 

be  rejected  of  the  elders  and  chief  priests  and  scribes]  i.e.  by  each 
of  the  three  great  sections  which  formed  the  Jewish  Sanhedrin;  by  all 
who  up  to  that  time  had  been  looked  upon  as  religious  authorities  in 
the  nation. 

and  be  slain]  The  ?node  of  death,  and  the  delivery  to  the  Gentiles, 
were  culminating  horrors  which  He  mercifully  kept  back  till  the  last 
journey  to  Jerusalem,  Matt.  xx.  19.  Hitherto  He  had  only  spoken  of 
His  death  in  dim  and  distant  intimations,  John  ii.  19,  iii.  14,  vi.  51.  His 
revelation  of  it  was  progressive,  as  they  were  able  to  bear  it.  _  Matt.  ix. 
15,  X.  38;  John  iii.  14;  Matt.  xvi.  ^,11;  xvii.  22,  xx.  18,  xxvi.  2. 

be  raised  the  third  day]  In  vs.  45  St  Luke  shews  us  (as  events  proved) 


w.  23—27.]  ST  LUKE,   IX.  187 

23 — 27.     The  Cross  and  the  Kingdom. 
And   he   said   to  them  all,  If  any  man  will  come  after  23 
me,   let   him  deny  himself,  and   take   up  his  cross  daily, 
and  follow  me.     For  whosoever  will  save  his  life  shall  lose  24 
it:  but  whosoever  will  lose  his  life  for  my  sake,  the  same 
shall  save  it.     For  what  is  a  man  advantaged,  if  he  gain  the  25 
whole  world,  and  lose  himself,  or  be  cast  away?     For  who-  26 
soever  shall  be  ashamed  of  me  and  of  my  words,  of  him 
shall  the  Son  of  man  be  ashamed,  when  he  shall  come  in 
his  own  glory,  and  in  /lis  Father's,  and  of  the  holy  angels. 
But  I   tell  you   of  a  truth,  there  be  some  standing  here,  27 
which  shall  not  taste  of  death,  till  they  see  the  kingdom  of 
God. 

how  entirely  they  failed  to  attach  any  distinct  meaning  to  these  words, 
Mark  ix.  lo. 

23—27.    The  Cross  and  the  Kingdom. 

_  23.  And  he  said  to  them  all^  The  word  "all"  implies  the  fact  men- 
tioned by  St  Mark  (viii.  34),  that  before  continuing  His  discourse  He 
called  up  to  Him  the  multitudes  who  were  at  a  little  distance.  St  Luke 
here  omits  the  presumption  and  rebuke  of  St  Peter,  which  is  alone 
sufficient  to  dispose  of  the  unworthy  theory  of  some  German  theolo- 
gians that  he  writes  with  an  anitnus  against  St  Peter,  or  with  some 
desire  to  disparage  his  position. 

take  up  his  cross]  A  dim  intimation  of  the  still  unrevealed  imminence 
of  His  crucifixion,  and  a  continuance  of  the  lesson  that  to  follow  Christ 
meant  not  earthly  gain  but  entire  self-sacrilice,  xiv.  26,  27;  Acts  xiv.  22. 

daily\  "For  thy  sake  we  are  killed  all  the  day  long,"  Rom.  viii.  36. 
"I  dif  daily,"  i  Cor.  xv.  31. 

24.  whosoever  will  save  his  life  shall  lose  ii\  The  words  imply  whoso- 
ever shall  make  it  his  tnain  will  to  save  his  life.  See  by  way  of  com- 
ment the  fine  fragment  (probably)  of  a  very  early  Christian  hymn  in  2 
Tim.  ii.  11,  12,  and  observe  that  ^vxh  means  the  natural,  animal  life  of 
which  the  main  interests  are  in  the  earth. 

25.  if  he  gain  the  whole  world]  It  was  by  the  constant  repetition  of 
this  verse  that  Ignatius  Loyola  won  the  life-long  devotion  of  St  Francis 
Xavier. 

lose  himself,  or  be  cast  away]  Rather,  destroy  himself,  and  sufTer  loss. 

26.  whosoever  shall  be  ashamed  of  me]  Compare  xii.  y;  2  Tim.  i.  .S, 
12,  ii.  12. 

27.  which  shall  not  taste  of  death]  In  the  Arabian  poem,  Antar, 
Death  is  represented  as  slaying  men  by  handing  them  a  cup  of  poison. 
This  was  a  common  Eastern  metaphor. 

till  they  see  the  kingdom  of  God]  St  Mark  (ix.  1)  adds  "coming  in 
power."   St  Matthew  (xvi.  28)  says  "till  they  see  the  Son  of  man  coming 


1 88  ST   LUKE,   IX.  [vv.  28,  29. 

28 — T)6.     The  Transfiguration. 

28  And  It  came  to  pass  about  an  eight  days  after  these  say- 
ings, he  took  Peter  and  John  and  James,  and  went  up  into 

29  a  mountain  to  pray.     And  as  he  prayed,  the  fashion  of  his 

in  His  Kingdom."  It  is  clear  that  'Ca^t  primary  reference  of  these  words 
was  to  the  three  Apostles  who,  within  a  week  of  that  time,  were  to 
witness  the  Transfiguration.  So  it  seems  to  be  understood  in  2  Pet.  L 
16,  and  by  our  Translators,  who  separate  this  verse  to  preface  the  nar- 
rative of  the  Transfiguration  in  Mark  ix.  i.  The  significance  of  the 
"kingdom"  was  therefore  mainly  spiritual,  and  the  verse  has  an  important 
bearing  on  the  prophecies  of  the  Second  Advent  (see  Matt.  xxiv.  14,  15, 
30).  It  was  again  fulfilled  at  the  Resurrection  and  Ascension ;  and  in 
the  person  of  one  disciple — St  John — it  was  fulfilled  when  he  lived  to 
witness  the  close  of  the  Old  Dispensation  in  the  destruction  of  Jeru- 
salem. 

28 — 36.    The  Transfiguration. 

28.  ahoiit  an  eight  days  after']  See  Matt.  xvii.  i — 13;  Mark  ix.  1 — 
13.  This  is  merely  the  inclusive  reckoning  which  St  Luke  saw  in  his 
written  sources,  and  means  exactly  the  same  thing  as  "after  six  days" 
in  Mark  ix.  1.      (This  explains  Matt,  xxvii.  63.) 

he  took]  The  solemnity  of  this  special  choice  is  marked  in  the  other 
Gospels  by  the  additional  word  anapherei,  "He  leads  them  up"  (cf. 
xxiv.  51).     Matt.  xxvi.  37. 

Peter  and  fohn  and  jfames]  See  vi.  14,  viii.  51.  The  object  of  this 
occasion  was  to  fill  their  souls  with  a  vision  which  should  support  their 
faith  amid  the  horrors  which  they  afterwards  witnessed. 

into  a  ?>unintaiti\  Rather,  into  the  mountain.  The  others  say  "into 
a  lofty  mountain."  There  can  be  little  doubt  that  Mount  Hermon 
(J ebelcsh Sheikh)  is  intended,  in  spite  of  the  persistent,  but  perfectly  base- 
less tradition  which  points  to  Tabor.  For  (i)  Mount  Hermon  is  easily 
within  six  days'  reach  of  Caesarea  Philippi,  and  (ii)  could  alone  be  called 
a  "lofty  mountain"  (being  10,000  feet  high)  or  "the  mountain,"  when 
the  last  scene  had  been  at  Caesarea.  Further,  (iii)  Tabor  at  that  time  in 
all  probability  was  (Jos.  B.  J.  I.  8,  §  7,  Vit.  37),  as  from  time  immemorial 
it  had  been  (Josh.  xix.  12),  an  inhabited  and  fortified  place,  wholly  un- 
suited  for  a  scene  so  solemn ;  and  (iv)  was  moreover  in  Galilee,  which  is 
excluded  by  Mark  ix.  30.  "The  mountain"  is  indeed  the  meaning  of 
the  name  "Hermon,"  which  being  already  consecrated  by  Hebrew 
poetry  (Ps.  cxxxiii.  3,  and  under  its  old  names  of  Sion  and  Sirion,  or 
'  breast-plate'  Deut.  iv.  48,  iii.  9 ;  Cant.  iv.  8),  was  well  suited  for  the 
Transfiguration  by  its  height,  seclusion,  and  snowy  splendour. 

to  pray]  The  characteristic  addition  of  St  Luke.  That  this  awful 
scene  took  place  at  night,  and  therefore  that  He  ascended  the  mountain 
in  the  evening,  is  clear  from  vss.  32,  33 :  comp.  vi.  12.  It  is  also  implied 
by  the  allusions  to  the  scene  in  2  Pet.  i.  18,  19. 

29.  as  he  prayed]     The  enquiry  whether  this  heavenly  brightness 


vv.  30-33]  ST   LUKE,   IX.  189 

countenance  was  altered,  and  his  raiment  was  white  atid 
glistering.     And  behold,  there  talked  with  him  two  men,  30 
which  were  Moses  and  Elias :  who  appeared  in  glory,  and  31 
spake  of  his  decease  which  he  should  accomplish  at  Jeru- 
salem.    But  Peter  and  they  that  were  with  him  were  heavy  32 
with  sleep :  and  when  they  were  awake,  they  saw  his  glory, 
and  the  two  men  that  stood  with  him.     And  it  came  to  33 
pass,   as  they  departed  from  him,    Peter  said  unto  Jesus, 
Master,  it  is  good  for  us  to  be  here :  and  let  us  make  three 

came  from  within,  or — as  when  the  face  of  Moses  shone — by  reflection 
from  communion  with  God,  seems  irreverent  and  idle;  but  we  may  say 
that  the  two  things  are  practically  one. 

the  fashion  of  his  countenance  ivas  altered'\  "His  face  did  shine  as 
the  sun,"  Matt.  xvii.  1.  It  is  interesting  to  see  how  St  Luke  avoids  the 
word  "  He  was  meta!?io7-phosed"  which  is  used  by  the  other  Synoptists. 
He  was  writing  for  Greeks,  in  whose  mythology  that  verb  was  vulgarised 
by  foolish  associations. 

white  and  glistering]  Literally,  "lightning  forth,"  3.%  though  from 
some  inward  radiance.  St  Matthew  compares  the  whiteness  of  His  robes 
to  the  light  (xvii.  2),  St  Mark  to  the  snow  (ix.  3),  and  St  Luke  in  this 
word  to  the  lightning.    See  John  i.  14;  Ps.  civ.  2 ;  Hab.  iii.  4. 

30.  two  men,  which  were  Moses  and  Elias]  The  great  Lawgiver  and 
the  great  Prophet,  of  whom  we  are  told  that  God  buried  the  one  (Deut. 
xxxiv.  6)  and  the  other  had  passed  to  heaven  in  a  chariot  of  fire  (2  Kings 
ii.  I,  11).  The  two  were  the  chief  representatives  of  the  Old  Dispensa- 
tion. The  former  had  prophesied  of  Christ  (Acts  iii.  22;  Deut.  xviii. 
18);  of  the  latter  it  had  been  prophesied  that  he  should  be  Ilis  fore- 
runner. "The  end  of  the  Law  is  Christ;  Law  and  Prophecy  are  from 
the  Word;  and  things  which  began  from  the  Word,  cease  in  the  Word." 
St  Ambrose. 

31.  spake  of  his  decease]  The  word  used  is  exodos,  'departure'— a 
very  unusual  word  for  death,  which  also  occurs  in  this  connexion  in 
2  Pet.  i.  15.  The  reading  doxan,  'glory,'  though  known  to  St  Chry- 
sostom,  is  only  supported  by  a  few  cursives.  Exodos  is,  as  Bengel  says, 
a  very  weighty  word,  involving  His  passion,  cross,  death,  resurrection, 
and  ascension. 

32.  were  heavy  with  sleep:  and  when  they  were  awahe]  Rather,  had 
been  heavy  with  sleep ;  tout  on  fuUy  awaking.  The  word  diagregore- 
santes  does  not  here  mean  'having  kept  awake,'  but  (to  give  the  full 
force  of  the  compound  and  aorist)  suddenly  starting  into  J u II  wakejid- 
ness.  They  started  up,  wide  awake  after  heavy  sleep,  in  the  middle  of 
the  vision. 

33.  as  they  departed^    Rather,  were  parting. 

it  is  good  for  us  to  be  here]     The  word  is  not  agathon,  but  kalon; 
it  is  an  excellent  thing,  or  'it  is  lest'  (cf.  Matt.  xvii.  4,  xxvi.  24). 
tabernacles]  like  the  little  wattled  booths  (succoth),  which  the  Israelites 


I90  ST   LUKE,    IX.  [vv.  34—38. 

tabernacles;  one  for  thee,  and  one  for  Moses,  and  one  for 

34  Elias:  not  knowing  what  he  said.  While  he  thus  spake, 
there   came  a  cloud,   and  overshadowed  them:    and   they 

35  feared  as  they  entered  into  the  cloud.  And  there  came  a 
voice  out  of  the  cloud,  saying.  This  is  my  beloved  Son: 

36  hear  him.  And  when  the  voice  was  past,  Jesus  was  found 
alone.  And  they  kept  //  close,  and  told  no  7nan  in  those 
days  any  of  those  things  which  they  had  seen. 

37 — 48.     The  Demoniac  Boy.     The  Lesson  of  Meekness. 

37  And  it  came  to  pass,  that  on  the  next  day,  when  they 

38  were  come  down  from  the  hill,  much  people  met  him.    And 

made  for  themselves  at  the  Feast  of  Tabernacles.  The  use  of  skenSma 
in  2  Pet.  i.  13  (Matt.  xvii.  4)  is  another  sign  that  the  mind  of  the  writer 
was  full  of  this  scene. 

not  knowing  tvhat  he  sai(r\  Not  knowing  that  the  spectacle  on 
Calvary  was  to  be  more  transcendent  and  divine  than  that  of  Harmon, 
not  knowing  that  the  old  was  passing  away  and  all  things  becoming 
new;  not  knowing  that  Jesus  was  not  to  die  with  Moses  and  Elijah  on 
either  side,  but  between  two  thieves. 

34.  there  came  a  cloud,  and  overshadowed  thentl  "A  bright  cloud," 
Matt.  xvii.  5.  Possibly  the  Sheckinah,  or  cloud  of  glory  (see  on  i.  35), 
which  was  the  symbol  of  the  Divine  Presence  (Ex.  xxxiii.  9;  r  Kings 
viii.  10).  If  a  mere  mountain  cloud  had  been  intended,  there  would 
have  been  no  reason  for  their  fear. 

35.  a  voice  out  of  the  cloud'\  2  Pet.  i.  17,  18.  As  in  two  other 
instances  in  our  Lord's  ministry,  iii.  22 ;  John  xii.  28.  The  other 
Synoptists  add  that  at  this  Voice  they  fell  prostrate,  and,  on  Jesus 
touching  them,  suddenly  raised  their  eyes  and  looked  all  around  them, 
to  find  no  one  there  but  Jesus. 

7ny  beloved  Son"]  Rather,  my  chosen  Son  (eklelegmenos,  N,  B,  L). 
Cf.  Is.  xlii.  I. 

36.  And  they  kept  it  close]  until  after  the  resurrection,  in  accordance 
with  the  express  command  of  Jesus  given  them  as  they  were  descend- 
ing the  hill.  Matt.  xvii.  9.  During  the  descent  there  also  occurred  the 
conversation  about  Elijah  and  John  the  Baptist.  (Matt.  xvii.  9 — 13; 
Mk.  ix.  9 — 13.) 

37 — 48.    The  Demoniac  Boy.    The  Lesson  of  Meekness. 

37.  on  the  next  day]  Proving  that  the  Transfiguration  took  place 
at  night :  see  on  vs.  28. 

much  people  met  him]  St  Mark  records  their  "amazement"  at  seeing 
Him — perhaps  due  to  some  lingering  radiance  and  majesty  which  clung 
to  Him  after  the  Transfiguration.  (Comp.  Ex.  xxxiv.  30.)  They  had 
been  surrounding  a  group  of  the  scribes,  who  were  taunting  the  disciples 
with  their  failure  to  cure  the  lunatic  boy. 


191 


w.  39—43-]  ST   LUKE,   IX. 

behold,  a  man  of  the  company  cried  out,  saying,  Master,  1 
beseech  thee,  look  upon  my  son :  for  he  is  mine  only  child. 
And  lo,  a  spirit  taketh  him,  and  he  suddenly  crieth  out ;  ?9 
and  it  teareth  him  that  he  foameth  again,  and  bruising  him 
hardly  departeth  from  him.     And  I  besought  thy  disciples  40 
to  cast  him  out;  and  they  could  not.    And  Jesus  answering  41 
said,  O  faithless  and  perverse  generation,  how  long  shall  I 
be  with  you,  and  suffer  you  ?     Bring  thy  son  hither.     And  4^ 
as  he  was  yet  a  coming,  the  devil  threw  him  down,  and  tare 
him.     And  Jesus  rebuked  the  unclean  spirit,  and  healed  the 
child,  and  delivered  him  again  to  his  father. 

And  they  were  all  amazed  at  the  mighty  power  of  God.  43 
But  while  they  wondered  every  one  at  all  things  which  Jesus 

38.  of  the  cotnpany]     Rather,  from  tlie  crowd. 
Master]     Rather,  Teacher  or  Rat)M. 

ke  is  mine  only  child]     See  on  viii.  42. 

39.  a  spirit  taketh  him]  This  was  the  supernatural  aspect  of  his 
deafness,  epilepsy,  and  madness.  St  Matthew  gives  the  natural  aspect 
when  he  says,  "he  is  a  lunatic,  and  sore  vexed,  &c.,"  xvii.  15. 

40.  and  they  could  not]  Jesus  afterwards,  at  their  request,  told 
them  the  reason  of  this,  which  was  their  deficient  faith.  Matt.  xvii. 
19 — 21. 

41.  0  faithless  and  pef~verse  generation]  Doubtless  the  Spirit  of 
Jesus  was  wrung  by  the  contrast — so  immortally  portrayed  in  the  great 
picture  of  Raphael^between  the  peace  and  glory  which  He  had  left  on 
the  mountain,  and  this  scene  of  weak  faith,  abject  misery,  and  bitter 
opposition — faltenng  disciples,  degraded  sufferers,  and  wrangling  scribes. 

how  long  shall  I  be  with  you?]  "He  was  hastening  to  His  Father, 
yet  could  not  go  till  He  had  led  His  disciples  to  faith.  Their  slowness 
troubled  Him."     Bengel. 

42.  rebtiked  the  tmclean  spirit]  See  the  fuller  details  and  the  me- 
morable cry  of  the  poor  father  in  Mk.  ix.  ii — 24.  The  child  had  been 
rendered  deaf  and  dumb  by  his  possession;  in  the  last  paroxysm  he 
wallowed  on  the  ground  foaming,  and  then  lay  as  dead  till  Jesus  raised 
him  by  the  hand.  Interesting  parallels  to  these  strange  and  horrible 
paroxysms  in  a  condition  which  may  well  be  ascribed  to  demoniac 
possession  may  be  found  in  a  paper  on  Demoniacs  by  Mr  Caldwell, 
Cofitenip.  Rev.,  Feb.,  1876.  The  boy's  'possession'  seems  on  its  natural 
side  to  have  been  the  deadliest  and  intensest  form  of  ei)ileptic  lunacy 
which  our  Lord  had  ever  healed,  and  one  far  beyond  the  power  of  the 
real  or  pretended  Jewish  exorcisms.  Hence  the  words  of  Jesus  were 
peculiarly  emphatic,  Mk.  ix.  25. 

43.  mighty  power]     Rather,  majesty.     2  Pet.  i.  16. 

while  they  wondered]  The  power  of  the  last  miracle  had  rekmdied 
some   of  their   Messianic   enthusiasm.      Jesus  had   now   reached   the 


192  ST   LUKE,  IX.  [vv.  44— 48. 

44  did,  he  said  unto  his  disciples,  Let  these  sayings  sink  down 
into  your  ears  :  for  the  Son  of  man  shall  be  delivered  into 

45  the  hands  of  men.  But  they  understood  not  this  saying,  and 
it  was  hid  from  them,  that  they  perceived  it  not :  and  they 
feared  to  ask  him  of  that  saying. 

46  Then  there  arose  a  reasoning  among  them,  which  of  them 

47  should  be  greatest.     And  Jesus,  perceiving  the  thought  of 

48  their  heart,  took  a  child,  and  set  him  by  him,  and  said  unto 
them.  Whosoever  shall  receive  this  child  in  my  name  re- 
ceiveth  me  :  and  whosoever  shall  receive  me  receiveth  him 
that  sent  me :  for  he  that  is  least  among  you  all,  the  same 
shall  be  great. 


northern  limits  of  Palestine,  and — apparently  through  bypaths,  and 
with  the  utmost  secresy — was  retracing  His  steps,  perhaps  along  the 
western  bank  of  the  Jordan,  to  Galilee,  Matt.  xvii.  22;  Mk.  ix.  30. 

ke  said  unto  his  disciples']  The  imperfects  in  Mk.  ix.  31  shew  that 
these  warnings  of  His  approaching  betrayal,  death,  and  resurrection 
now  formed  a  constant  topic  of  His  teaching. 

44.  shall  be  delivered]  Rather,  is  about  to  be  delivered  (i.e.  very 
soon). 

45.  they  understood  not]  This  ignorance  and  incapacity,  so  humbly 
avowed,  should  be  contrasted  with  the  boldness  and  fulness  of  their 
subsequent  knowledge  as  one  of  the  strongest  proofs  of  the  change 
wrought  in  them  by  the  Resurrection  and  the  Descent  of  the  Holy 
Spirit. 

46.  a  reasoning]     Rather,  a  dispute. 

which  of  them  should  be  greatest]  Their  jealous  ambition  had  been 
kindled  partly  by  false  Messianic  hopes,  partly  perhaps  by  the  recent 
distinction  bestowed  on  Peter,  James,  and  John.  Observe  how  little 
Christ's  words  to  Peter  had  been  understood  to  confer  on  him  any 
special  preeminence!  This  unseemly  dispute  was  again  stirred  up  at 
the  Last  Supper,  xxii.  24 — 26. 

47.  perceiving  the  thought  of  their  heart]  He  asked  the  subject  of 
their  dispute,  and  when  shame  kept  them  silent,  He  sat  down,  and 
calling  a  little  child,  made  the  Twelve  stand  around  while  He  taught 
this  solemn  lesson. 

took  a  child]  This  could  not  have  been  the  future  martyr  St  Ignatius, 
as  legend  says  (Niceph.  11.  3),  probably  by  an  erroneous  inference  from 
his  name  of  Christophoros  or  Theophoros,  which  was  derived  from  his 
telling  Trajan  that  he  carried  God  in  his  heart  (see  Ep.  ad  Smyrn.  in. 
which  is  of  very  doubtful  genuineness,  or  Eus.  H.  E.  iii.  38). 

48.  he  that  is  least  among  you]  Comp.  Matt,  xxiii.  11,  12.  He 
perhaps  added  the  memorable  words  about  offending  His  little  ones. 
Matt,  xviii.  6 — 10;  Lk.  xvii.  2. 

shall  be  great]     Rather,  is  great  (K,  B,  C,  L,  X). 


193 


w.  49,  5°-]  ST   LUKE,  IX. 

49,  50.     The  Tolerance  of  y^esus. 

And  John  answered  and  said,  Master,  we  saw  one  casting  49 
out  devils  in  thy  name  ;  and  we  forbad  him,  because  he  fol- 
loweth  not  with  us.     And  Jesus  said  unto  him,  Forbid  him  50 
not :  for  he  that  is  not  against  us  is  for  us. 

49,  50.     The  Tolerance  of  Jesus. 

49.  And  John  answered  and  said^  Mk.  ix.  38 — 41.  This  sudden 
question  seems  to  have  been  suggested  by  the  words  "in  my  name" 
which  Jesus  had  just  used. 

casting  out  devils  in  thy  name"]  It  was  common  among  the  Jews  to 
attempt  exorcism  by  many  different  methods;  see  on  iv.  35,  41; 
viii.  32.  This  unknown  person — like  the  sons  of  Sceva  in  Acts  xix. 
13,  14,  but  evidently  in  a  more  faithful  spirit — had  found  that  the 
name  of  Jesus  was  more  powerful.  Specimens  of  Jewish  exorcisms  are 
given  in  the  Jewish  Book  of  Jubilees,  and  in  Shabbath,  67 ;  Pesackim, 
f.  112  a,  b',  see  too  Tobit  vi.  16,  17;  Jos.  B.  J.  vii.  6,  §  3. 

we  forbad  him'\  Compare  the  jealous  zeal  of  Joshua  against  Eldad 
and  Medad,  and  the  truly  noble  answer  of  Moses,  Numb.  xi.  27 — 29. 

because  he  followeth  not  with  us]  This  touch  of  intolerant  zeal  is  quite 
in  accordance  with  the  natural  disposition  which  shews  itself  in  the 
incident  of  vs.  54,  and  with  the  story  that  St  John  rushed  out  of  a  bath 
in  which  he  saw  the  heretic  Cerinthus.  It  was  this  burning  tempera- 
ment that  made  him  a  "Son  of  Thunder." 

50.  he  that  is  not  against  us  is  for  us\  Cf.  Phil.  i.  18.  The  com- 
plementary but  not  contradictory  truth  to  this,  is  "He  who  is  not  with 
me  is  against  me,"  Matt.  xii.  30.  Both  are  true  in  different  circum- 
stances. Neutrality  is  sometimes  as  deadly  as  opposition  (Judg.  v.  23); 
it  is  sometimes  as  effectual  as  aid  (Sueton. ,  yul.  Caes.  75).  See  Vinet, 
La  tolerance  et  Vintolcrance  de  tEvangile  {Discours,  p.  268).  Renan 
calls  these  "two  irreconcilable  rules  of  proselytism,  and  a  contradiction 
evoked  by  a  passionate  struggle."  Guizot  expresses  his  astonishment  at 
so  frivolous  a  criticism,  and  calls  them  two  contrasted  facts  which  every 
one  must  have  noticed  in  the  course  of  an  active  life.  "Lcsdeux 
assertions,  loin  de  se  contredire,  peuvent  etre  (5galement  vraies,  et  Jcsus- 
Christ  en  les  exprimant  a  parle  en  observateur  sagace,  non  en  moraliste 
qui  donne  les  preceptes."    Meditations,  p.  229. 

It  is  a  great  pity  that  the  chapter  does  not  end  at  this  verse ;  since  it 
closes  another  great  section  in  our  Lord's  ministry—the  epoch  of  op- 
position and  flight.     A  new  phase  of  the  ministry  begins  at  vs.  51. 


chs.  IX.  51— xvni.  31. 

This  section  forms  a  great  episode  in  St  Luke,  which  may  be  called 
the  departure  for  the  final  conflict,  and  is  identical  with  the  journey 
(probably  to  the  Feast  of  the  Dedication,  John  x.  22)  which  is  partially 

ST  LUKE  ^3 


194  ST   LUKE,   IX.  [v.  51. 

Ch.  IX.     51 — 56.    Rejected  by  the  Sattiaritans.     A  lesson  of 

Tolerance. 

51      And  it  came  to  pass,  when  the  time  was  come  that  he 

touched  upon  in  Matt,  xvili. — xx.  16  and  Mk.  x.  i — 31.  It  contains 
many  incidents  recorded  by  this  Evangelist  alone,  and  though  the 
recorded  identifications  of  time  and  place  are  vague,  yet  they  all  point 
(ix.  51,  xiii.  22,  xvii.  ir,  x.  38)  to  a  slow,  solemn,  and  public  pro- 
gress from  Galilee  to  yerusalem,  of  which  the  events  themselves  are 
often  grouped  by  subjective  considerations.  So  little  certain  is  the 
order  of  the  separate  incidents,  that  one  writer  (Rev.  W.  Stewart)  has 
made  an  ingenious  attempt  to  shew  that  it  is  determined  by  the  alpha- 
betic arrangement  of  the  leading  Greek  verbs  {ayairav,  x.  25 — 28, 
29 — 37,  38—42;  alrelv,  xi.  I — 4,  5,  8,  9 — 13,  &c.).  Canon  Westcott 
arranges  the  order  thus  :  The  Rejection  of  the  Jewsforeshewn;  prepara- 
tion, ix.  43 — xi.  13;  Lessons  of  Warning,  xi.  14 — xiii.  9  ;  Lessons  of  Pro- 
gress, xiii.  10 — xiv.  24;  Lessons  of  Discipleship,  xiv,  25 — xvii.  10;  the 
Coming  End,  xvii.  10 — xviii.  30. 

The  order  of  events  after  '  the  Galilaean  spring '  of  our  Lord's 
ministry  on  the  plain  of  Gennesareth  seems  to  have  been  this:  After 
the  period  of  flight  among  the  heathen  or  in  countries  which  were 
only  semi-Jewish,  of  which  almost  the  sole  recorded  incident  is  the 
healing  of  the  daughter  of  the  Syrophoenician  woman  (Matt.  xv.  21 
—  28).  He  returned  to  Peraea  and  fed  the  four  thousand.  He  then 
sailed  back  to  Gennesareth,  but  left  it  in  deep  sorrow  on  being 
met  by  the  Pharisees  with  insolent  demands  for  a  sign  from  heaven. 
Turning  His  back  once  more  on  Galilee,  He  again  travelled  north- 
wards; healed  a  blind  man  at  Bethsaida  Julias;  received  St  Peter's 
great  confession  on  the  way  to  Caesarea  Philippi ;  was  transfigured ; 
healed  the  demoniac  boy ;  rebuked  the  ambition  of  the  disciples 
by  the  example  of  the  little  child;  returned  for  a  brief  rest  in  Caper- 
naum, during  which  occurred  the  incident  of  the  Temple  Tax;  then 
journeyed  to  the  Feast  of  Tabernacles,  during  which  occurred  the  inci- 
dents so  fully  narrated  by  St  John  (John  vii.  i — x.  21).  The  events  and 
teachings  in  this  great  section  of  St  Luke  seem  to  belong  mainly,  if  not 
entirely,  to  the  two  months  between  the  hasty  return  of  Jesus  to  Galilee 
and  His  arrival  in  Jerusalem,  two  months  afterwards,  at  the  Feast  of 
Dedication ; — a  period  respecting  which  St  Luke  must  have  had  access 
to  special  sources  of  information. 

For  fuller  discussion  of  the  question  I  must  refer  to  my  Life  of  Christ, 
II.  89—150. 

Ch.  IX.  51 — 56.     Rejected  by  the  Samaritans.     A  lesson  of 

Tolerance, 

51.  when  the  time  was  come  that  he  should  be  received  up\  Rather, 
when  the  days  of  His  Assumption  were  drawing  to  a  close  (literally, 
were  being  fulfilled).  St  Luke  thus  clearly  marks  the  arrival  of  a  final 
stage  of  our  Lord's  ministry.  "  His  passion,  cross,  death,  and  grave  were 
coming  on,  but  through  them  all  Jesus  looked  to  the  goal,  and  the  style 


w.  52—54.]  ST   LUKE,   IX. 


195 


should  be  received  up,  he  stedfastly  set  his  face  to  go  to 
Jerusalem,  and  sent  messengers  before  his  face :  and  they  s^ 
went,  and  entered  into  a  village  of  the  Samaritans,  to  make 
ready  for  him.     And  they  did  not  receive  him,  because  his  53 
face  was  as  though  he  would  go  to  Jerusalem.     And  when  54 

of  the  Evangelist  imitates  His  feelings,"  Bengel.  The  word  analysis 
means  the  Ascension  (in  Eccl.  Latin  Assumptio).  So  d.veK-q(pe7i  of 
Elijah,  2  K.  ii.  11;  Mk.  xvi.  19. 

he]     Rather,  He  Himself  also. 

set  his  face]  Jer.  xxi.  10;  2  K.  xii.  17  (LXX.),  and  especially  Is. 
1.  7. 

52.  sent  messeiigersl  Some  think  that  they  were  two  of  the  Seventy 
disciples ;  others  that  they  were  James  and  John. 

into  a  village  of  the  Samaritansi  On  the  way  to  Judaea  from  Galilee 
He  would  doubtless  avoid  Nazareth,  and  therefore  His  road  probably  lay 
over  Mount  Tabor,  past  Little  Hermon  (see  vii.  11),  past  Nain,  Endor, 
and  Shunem.  The  first  Samaritan  village  at  which  He  would  arrive 
would  be  En  Gannim  (Fountain  of  Gardens),  now  Jenin  (2  K.  ix.  27),  a 
pleasant  village  at  the  first  pass  into  the  Samaritan  hills.  The  inhabi- 
tants are  still  described  as  "fanatical,  rude,  and  rebellious"  (Thomson, 
Land  and  Book,  11.  xxx.).  The  Samaritans  are  not  mentioned  in  St 
Mark,  and  only  once  in  St  Matthew  (x.  5). 

to  make  ready  for  hint]  As  He  was  now  accompanied  not  only  by 
the  Twelve,  but  by  a  numerous  multitude  of  followers.  His  unannounced 
arrival  would  have  caused  embarrassment.  But,  further  than  this,  He 
now  openly  avowed  Himself  as  the  Christ. 

53.  they  did  not  receive  hint]  The  aorist  implies  that  they  at  once 
rejected  Him.  The  Samaritans  had  shewn  themselves  heretofore  not 
ill-disposed  (John  iv.  39),  and  St  Luke  himself  delights  to  record 
favourable  notices  of  them  (x.  33,  xvii.  18).  But  (i)  there  was  always  a 
recrudescence  of  hatred  between  the  Jews  and  the  Samaritans  at  the 
recurrence  of  the  annual  feasts,  (ii)  Their  national  jealousy  would  not 
allow  them  to  receive  a  Messiah  whose  goal  was  not  Gerizim,  but 
Jerusalem,  (iii)  They  would  not  sanction  the  passage  of  a  multitude  of 
Jews  through  their  territory,  since  the  Jews  frequently  (though  not 
always,  Jos.  Antt.  xx.  6,  §  i)  chose  the  other  xoyiie  on  the  East  of  the 
Jordan. 

as  though  he  would  go  to  Jenisaletn]  This  national  hatred  between 
Jews  and  Samaritans  (John  iv.  9)  still  continues,  and  at  the  present  day 
it  is  mainly  due  to  the  fanaticism  of  the  Jews.  In  our  Lord's  day  the 
Jews  called  the  Samaritans  'Cuthites'  (2  K.  xvii.  24),  aliens  (xvii. 
18),  'that  foolish  people  that  dwell  in  Sichem'  (Ecclus.  1.  25,  26),  and 
other  opprobrious  names.  They  accused  them  ofconliniiotis  idolatry  ( 2  K. 
xvii.),  and  charged  them  with  false  fire-signals,  and  with  having  polluted 
the  Temple  by  scattering  it  with  dead  men's  bones  (Jos.  Antt.  XX.  6,  §  i, 
XVIII.  2,  §  2;  B.  y.  II.  12,  §  3).  No  doubt  originally  their  Monnthcisni 
was  very  hybrid, being  mixed  up  with  five  heathen  rcliy;ions  (2  K.  xvii.  a, 


196  ST  LUKE,   TX.  [v.  55. 

his  disciples  James  and  John  saw  this,  they  said,  Lord,  wilt 

thou  that  we  command  fire  to  come  down  from  heaven,  and 

55  consume  them,  even  as  Elias  did  ?     But  he  turned,  and 

rebuked  them,  and  said,  Ye  know  not  what  manner  of  spirit 

xix.  37) ;  but  they  had  gradually  laid  aside  idolatry,  and  it  was  as  much 
a  calumny  of  the  ancient  Jews  to  charge  them  with  the  worship  of 
Rachel's  amulets  (Gen.  xxxv.  4)  as  for  modern  Jews  to  call  them 
'wors/iippei's  of  the  pigeon'  (Frankl.  Jews  in  the  East,  ii.  334).  But  the 
deadly  exacerbation  between  the  two  nations,  which  began  after  the  Exile 
(Ezr.  iv.  I — 10;  Nehem.  iv.  i — 16,  vi.),  had  gone  on  increasing  by 
perpetual  collision  since  the  building  of  the  Temple  on  Gerizim  by  the 
renegade  priest  Manasseh  and  Sanballat  (Neh.  xiii.  28;  Jos.  Aiitt.  XI. 
7,  XII.  5,  §  5),  which  was  destroyed  by  John  Hyrcanus  B.C.  129. 

64.  James  and  Joh7i\  "What  wonder  that  the  Sons  of  Thunder 
wished  to  flash  lightning?"  St  Ambrose.  But  one  of  these  very  disciples 
afterwards  went  to  Samaria  on  a  message  of  love  (Acts  viii.  14 — 25). 

fire  to  come  down  fro!?i  heaven'\  To  avenge  their  helplessness  under 
this  gross  and  open  insult  of  the  Messiah.  "Christ  wrought  miracles 
in  every  element  except  fire.  Fire  is  reserved  for  the  consummation  of 
the  age."     Bengel. 

even  as  Elias  did]  These  words  are  omitted  by  N,  B,  L.  But  (i) 
they  are  singularly  appropriate,  since  the  incident  referred  to  also 
occurred  in  Samaria  (2  K.  i.  5 — 14);  and  (ii)  while  it  would  be  difficult 
to  account  for  their  insertion,  it  is  quite  easy  to  account  for  their  omission 
either  by  an  accidental  error  of  the  copyists,  or  on  dogmatic  grounds, 
especially  from  the  use  made  of  this  passage  by  the  heretic  Marcion 
(Tert.  adv.  Marc.  iv.  23)  to  disparage  the  Old  Testament,  (iii)  They 
are  found  in  very  ancient  MSS.,  versions,  and  Fathers,  (iv)  The  words 
seem  to  be  absolutely  required  to  defend  the  crude  spirit  of  vengeance, 
and  might  have  seemed  all  the  more  natural  to  the  still  half-trained 
Apostles  because  they  had  so  recently  seen  Moses  and  Elias  speaking 
with  Jesus  on  the  Mount  of  Transfiguration.  They  needed,  as  it  were, 
a  Scriptural  precedent,  to  conceal  from  themselves  the  personal  impulse 
which  really  actuated  them. 

55.  Ye  know  not  what  manner  of  spirit  ye  are  of]  The  whole  of  this 
passage  down  to  "save  them"  is  omitted  in  X,  A,  B,  C,  and  other 
manuscripts;  but  it  is  impossible  to  doubt  its  genuineness,  because 
it  breathes  a  spirit  far  purer,  loftier,  and  rarer  than  is  ever  discernible  in 
ecclesiastical  interpolations.  It  was  omitted  on  the  same  grounds  as  the 
words  in  the  last  verse,  because  it  was  regarded  as  'dangerous'  to  the 
authority  of  the  O.  T.  It  is  quite  impossible  to  believe  that  the  narrative 
abruptly  ended  with  the  unexplained  "He  rebuked  them."  Ecclesias- 
tical censurers  have  failed  to  see  that  "religionis  non  est  religionem 
cogere"  (Tert.  ad Scap.  1),  and  that,  as  Bp  Andrewes  says,  "The  times 
require  sometimes  one  spirit,  sometimes  another,  Elias'  time  Elias' 
spirit."  The  Apostles  learnt  these  truths  better  when  they  had  received 
the  Holy  Ghost  (Rom.  xii.  19;  Jas.  i.  19,  20,  iii.  r6,  17;  John  iii.  17, 


197 


w.  56— 59-1  ST    LUKE,   IX. 

ye  are  of.    For  the  Son  of  man  is  not  come  to  destroy  men's  56 
lives,  but  to  save  them.     And  they  went  to  another  village. 

57 — 62.     The  Three  Aspirants. 
And  it  came  to  pass  that,  as  they  went  in  the  way,  a  cer-  57 
tain  ?nan  said  unto  him,  Lord,  I  will  follow  thee  whitherso- 
ever thou  goest.     And  Jesus  said  unto   him,   Foxes  have  58 
holes,  and  birds  of  the  air  have  nests  ;  but  the  Son  of  man 
hath  not  where  to  lay  his  head.     And  he  said  unto  another,  59 

xii.  47).  They  learnt  that  the  spirit  of  Jesus  was  the  spirit  of  the  dove; 
and  that  there  is  a  difference  between  Carmel  and  Hermon,  between 
Sinai  and  Kurn  Hattin.  It  is  possible  that  the  words  may  be  a  question 
—  Know  ye  not  that  yours  (emphatically  placed  last)  is  the  spirit  of 
Elijah,  not  of  Christl  Our  Lord  quoted  Psalms  xxii.  and  xxxi.  on  the 
Cross,  and  yet  pi^ayed  for  His  enemies.     Bengel. 

56.  For  the  Son  of  man  is  not  come,  &c.  This  clause  is  omitted  by 
the  majoi-ity  of  uncials,  and  some  editors  therefore  regard  it  as  a 
repetition  of  xix.  10  or  Matt,  xviii.  11.  However  that  may  be,  we  have 
the  same  sentiment  in  John  iii.  17,  xii.  47;  i  Tim.  i.  15.  The  Sons  of 
Thunder  were  shewing  the  spirit  of  the  Talmud  (which  says,  "Let  not 
the  Samaritans  have  part  in  the  Resurrection")  rather  than  that  of  the 
Gospel  (x.  33,  xvii.  18;  Acts  i.  8). 

they  went  to  another  village\  The  word  heteran  (not  alien)  perhaps 
implies  that  it  was  a  yewish,  not  a  Samaritan  village.  Numb.  xx.  21; 
Matt.  ii.  12. 

57 — 62.    Thk  Three  Aspirants. 

57.  as  they  went  in  the  way]  St  Matthew  (viii.  19 — 12)  places  these 
incidents  before  the  embarkation  for  Gergesa.  Lange's  conjecture  that 
the  three  aspirants  were  Judas  Iscariot,  Thomas,  and  Matthew  is 
singularly  baseless. 

a  certain  man']  a  Scribe  (Matt.  viii.  19).  The  dignity  of  his  rank  was 
nothing  to  Him  who  had  chosen  among  His  Twelve  a  zealot  and  a 
publican. 

whithersoever  thou  goest]  There  was  too  little  of  'the  modesty  of 
fearful  duty'  in  the  Scribe's  professions. 

58.  Jesus  said  unto  him]  "In  the  man's  flaring  enthusiasm  He 
saw  the  smoke  of  egotistical  self-deceit"  (Langc),  and  therefore  He 
coldly  checked  a  proffered  devotion  which  would  not  have  stood  the 
test. 

nests]  Rather,  habitations,  shelters.  Birds  do  not  live  in  nests.  In 
this  verse  more  than  in  any  other  we  see  the  poverty  and  homclessncss 
of  the  latter  part  of  the  Lord's  ministry  (2  Cor.  viii.  9).  Perhaps  St 
Luke  placed  the  incident  here  as  appropriate  to  the  rejection  of  our 
Lord's  wish  to  rest  for  the  night  at  En  Gannim.  Was  this  Scribe  pre- 
pared to  follow  Jesus  for  His  own  sake  alone? 


198  ST    LU  KE,  IX.  X.  [w.  60—62 ;  i. 

Follow  me.  But  he  said,  Lord,  suffer  me  first  to  go  and 
60  bury  my  father.     Jesus  said  unto  him,  Let  the  dead  bury 

their  dead  :  but  go  thou  and  preach  the  kingdom  of  God. 
6i  And  another  also  said.  Lord,  I  will  follow  thee ;  but  let  me 

first  go  bid  them  farewell,  which  are  at  home  in  my  house. 
62  And  Jesus  said  unto  him,  No  man  having  put  his  hand  to  the 

plough,  and  looking  back,  is  fit  for  the  kingdom  of  God. 

Ch.  X.   I — 24.     The  Mission  of  the  Seventy. 
10      After  these  things  the  Lord  appointed  other  seventy  also, 

69.  Lord,  suffer  me  first  to  go  and  bury  my  father']  An  ancient,  but 
groundless  tradition  (Clem.  Alex.  Strom.  III.  4,  §  25),  says  that  this  was 
Philip.  This  man  was  already  a  disciple  (Matt.  viii.  21).  The  request 
could  hardly  mean  'let  me  live  at  home  till  my  father's  death,'  which 
would  be  too  indefinite  an  offer ;  nor  can  it  well  mean  that  his  father  was 
lying  unburied,  for  in  that  case  the  disciple  would  hardly  have  been 
among  the  crowd.  Perhaps  it  meant  'let  me  go  and  give  a  farewell  funeral 
feast,  and  put  everything  in  order.'  The  man  was  bidden  to  be  Christ's 
Nazarite  (Num.  vi.  6,  7). 

60.  Let  the  dead  bury  their  dead]  i.e.  let  the  spiritually  dead  (Eph. 
ii.  I ;  John  v.  24,  25)  bury  their  physically  dead.  "Amandus  est 
generator,  sed  praeponendus  est  Creator,"  Aug.  The  general  lesson  is 
that  of  xiv.  26. 

61.  let  me  first  go  bid  them  farewell]  The  incident  and  the  allu- 
sion closely  resemble  the  call  of  Elisha  (i  K.  xix.  20).  But  the  call 
of  Jesus  is  more  pressing  and  momentous  than  that  of  Elijah.  "The 
East  is  calling  thee,  thou  art  looking  to  the  West,"  Aug.  Neither  Elijah 
nor  Elisha  is  an  adequate  example  for  the  duties  of  the  Kingdom  of 
Heaven,  of  which  the  least  partaker  is,  in  knowledge  and  in  privileges, 
greater  than  they. 

62.  No  man  having  ptit  his  hattd  to  the  plough]  He  who  would  make 
straight  furrows  must  not  look  about  him  (Hesiod,  Works  and  Days,  11. 
60).  The  light  ploughs  of  the  East,  easily  overturned,  require  constant 
attention. 

fit]  Rather,  well-adapted.  By  way  of  comment  see  xvii.  32; 
Ps.  Ixxviii.  g ;  Heb.  x.  38,  39.  The  general  lesson  of  the  section  is. 
Give  yourself  wholly  to  your  duty,  and  count  the  cost,  xiv.  25 — 33.  Christ 
cannot  accept  'a  conditional  service.'  Neither  hardship,  nor  bereave- 
ment, nor  home  ties  must  delay  us  from  following  Him.  Is  it  more  than 
a  curious  accident  that  the  last  four  incidents  illustrate  the  peculiarities 
of  the  four  marked  human  temperaments — the  Choleric  (51 — 56)  ; 
the  Sanguine  (57,  58);  the  Melancholic  (59,  60);  the  Phlegmatic 
61,  62)? 

Ch.  X.    1 — 24.    The  Mission  of  the  Seventy. 

1.  After  these  things]  i.  e.  after  finally  leaving  Galilee,  and  starting  on 
His  great  Peraean  progress. 


w-  2—6.] ST   LUKE,   X.  199 

and  sent  them  two  and  two  before  his  face  into  every  city 
and  place,  whither  he  himself  would  come.     Therefore  said  2 
he  unto  them,  The  harvest  truly  is  great,  but  the  labourers 
are  few  :  pray  ye  therefore  the  Lord  of  the  harvest,  that  he 
would  send  forth  labourers  into  his  harvest.     Go  your  ways  :  3 
behold,  I  send  you  forth  as  lambs  among  wolves.     Carry  4 
neither  purse,  nor  scrip,  nor  shoes  :   and  salute  no  f?ian  by 
the  way.     And  into  whatsoever  house  ye   enter,  first  say,  5 
Peace   be  to   this   house.     And   if  the   son   of  peace   be  6 
there,  your  peace   shall  rest  upon  it :  if  not,  it  shall  turn 

other  seventy  also)  Rather,  also  others  (besides  the  Twelve)  seventy 
In  number.  Some  MSS.  read  seventy-two  (B,  D,  M,  &c.).  The  num- 
ber had  evident  reference  to  the  Elders  of  Moses  (Num.  xi.  16),  where 
there  is  the  same  variation;  the  Sanhedrin;  and  the  Jewish  belief 
(derived  from  Gen.  x.)  as  to  the  number  of  the  nations  of  the  world. 
The  references  to  Elim  with  its  12  wells  and  70  palm-trees  are  mere 
plays  of  allegoric  fancy. 

two  and  i'cvo]  The  same  merciful  provision  that  we  see  in  the  brother- 
pairs  of  the  Twelve. 

into  every  city,  &c.]  Clearly  with  the  same  object  as  in  ix.  52.  It 
may  have  been  all  the  more  necessary  because  hitherto  He  had  worked 
less  in  the  Transjordanic  regions. 

2.  The  harvest  truly  is  great'\     Compare  Matt.  ix.  37  ;  John  iv.  35. 
send  forth']     The  word  literally  means  'drive  forth,'  and  though  it  has 

lost  its  full  force  implies  urgency  and  haste.    See  similar  uses  of  the 
word  in  John  x.  4,  Matt.  ix.  38,  Mk.  i.  12. 

3.  as  latfibs']  *as  sheep,'  Matt.  x.  16  (of  the  Twelve).  The  slight 
variation  must  not  be  pressed.  The  impression  meant  to  be  conveyed 
is  merely  that  of  simplicity  and  defencelessness.  A  tradition,  as  old  as 
Clemens  Romanus,  tells  us  that  St  Peter  had  asked  (on  t!ie  previous 
occasion),  'But  how  then  if  the  wolves  should  tear  the  lambs?'  and  that 
Jesus  replied,  'Let  not  the  lambs  fear  the  wolves  when  the  lambs  are 
once  dead,'  and  added  the  words  in  Matt.  x.  28.  There  is  no  reason  to 
doubt  this  interesting  tradition,  which  may  rank  as  one  of  the  most 
certain  of  the  'unwritten  sayings  '  [agrapha  dogmata)  of  our  Lord. 

4.  neither  purse]  Compare  ix.  i — 6,  and  notes  ;  Matt.  x.  i — 42.  St 
Luke  uses  the  Greek  balantion  ;  St  Mark  the  Oriental  zonen  'girtUe.' 

salute  no  man  by  the  way]  A  common  direction  in  cases  of  urgency 
(2  K.  iv.  29),  and  partly  explicable  by  the  length  and  loitering 
elaborateness  of  Eastern  greetings  (Thomson,  Land  and  Boo/:,  11.  xxiv.). 

5.  Peace  be  to  this  house]  Adopted  in  our  service  for  the  Visitation  of 
the  Sick.  God's  messengers  should  begin  first  with  prayers  for  peace, 
not  with  objurgations.    Bengel. 

6.  the  son  of  peace]  Rather,  a  son  of  peace,  i.e.  «  man  of  peaceful 
heart.  Comp.  for  the  phrase  xvi.  8,  xx.  56;  John  xvii.  12;  Lph. 
V.  6,  8. 


200  ST   LUKE,  X.  [vv.  7—14. 

7  to  you  again.     And  in  the  same  house  remain,  eating  and 
drinking   such    things  as   they   give:    for   the   labourer   is 

8  worthy  of  his  hire.      Go  not  from  house  to  house.     And 
into  whatsoever  city  ye  enter,  and  they  receive  you,  eat  such 

9  things  as  are  set  before  you  :  and  heal  the  sick  that  are 
therein,  and  say  unto  them.  The  kingdom  of  God  is  come 

10  nigh  unto  you.  But  into  whatsoever  city  ye  enter,  and  they 
receive  you  not,  go  your  ways  out  into  the  streets  of  the 

11  same,  and  say.  Even  the  very  dust  of  your  city,  which 
cleaveth  on  us,  we  do  wipe  off  against  you :  notwithstanding 
be  ye  sure  of  this,  that  the  kingdom  of  God  is  come  nigh 

12  unto  you.  But  I  say  unto  you,  that  it  shall  be  more  tolera- 
ble in  that  day  for  Sodom,  than  for  that  city. 

13  Woe  unto  thee,  Chorazin,  woe  unto  thee,  Bethsaida :  for 
if  the  mighty  works  had  been  done  in  Tyre  and  Sidon,  which 
have  been  done  in  you,  they  had  a  great  while  ago  repented, 

14  sitting  in  sackcloth  and  ashes.     But  it  shall  be  more  tolerar 

it  shall  turn  to  you  again]  Matt.  x.  13.  «'My  prayer  returned  into 
mine  own  bosom,"  Ps.  xxxv.  13. 

7.  eating  and  drinking  such  things  as  they  give]  As  a  plain  right. 
I  Cor.  ix.  4,  7 — n. 

the  labourer  is  worthy  of  his  hire]  Referred  to  by  St  Paul,  i  Tim. 
V.  18.  Doubtless  he  may  have  been  aware  that  our  Lord  had  used  it, 
but  the  saying  was  probably  proverbial. 

9.  The  kingdom  of  God  is  cofne  nigh  unto  you]  So  that  our  Lord's 
last  messages  resembled  His  first  preaching,  Matt.  iv.  17. 

11.  Even  the  very  dust]     Acts  xiii.  49—51,  xviii.  5 — 7. 

12.  more  tolerable  in  that  day  for  Sodom]  The  great  principle  which 
explains  these  words  may  be  found  in  xii.  47,  48  (compare  Heb.  ii.  2,  3, 
X.  28,  29). 

13.  I^P^oe  unto  thee,  Chorazin]  The  mention  of  this  town  is  very 
interesting  because  this  is  the  only  occasion  (Matt.  xi.  21)  on  which  the 
name  occurs,  and  we  are  thus  furnished  with  a  very  striking  proof  of 
the  fragmentariness  of  the  Gospels.  The  very  site  of  Chorazin  was 
long  unknown.  It  has  now  been  discovered  at  Keraseh,  the  ruins 
of  an  old  town  on  a  wady,  two  miles  inland  from  Tel  Hum  (Caper- 
naum). At  a  Httle  distance  these  ruins  look  like  mere  rude  heaps  of 
basaltic  stones. 

Bethsaida]     See  on  ix.  10. 

mighty  works]    Literally,  ^^ powers." 

they  had  a  great  while  ago  repented]  like  Nineveh  (Jon.  iii.  5 — 10), 
"  Surely  had  I  sent  thee  unto  them  they  would  have  hearkened  unto 
thee,"  Ezek.  iii.  6 ;  comp.  James  iv.  17. 


vv.  IS— 19-1  ST   LUKE,  X. 


20I 


17 


19 


ble  for  Tyre  and  Sidon  at  the  judgment,  than  for  you.    And  is 
thou,  Capernaum,  which  art   exalted  to  heaven,  shalt  be 
thrust  down  to  hell.     He  that  heareth  you  heareth  me;  and  16 
he  that  despiseth  you  despiseth  me ;  and  he  that  despiseth 
me  despiseth  him  that  sent  me. 

And  the  seventy  returned  again  with  joy,  saying,  Lord, 
even  the  devils  are  subject  unto  us  through  thy  name.  And 
he  said  unto  them,  I  beheld  Satan  as  lightning  fall  from 
heaven.  Behold,  I  give  unto  you  power  to  tread  on  ser- 
pents and  scorpions,  and  over  all  the  power  of  the  enemy  : 

14.  more  tolerable... at  the  judgment']  A  very  important  verse  as 
proving  the  '  intermediate  state '  (Hades)  of  human  souls.  The  guilty 
inhabitants  of  these  cities  had  received  their  temporal  punishment 
(Gen.  xix.  24,  25);  but  the  final  judgment  was  yet  to  come. 

15.  And  thou,  Capernati7n]   Christ's  "own  city." 

exalted  to  heaven]  by  inestimable  spiritual  privileges.  "Admitted 
into  a  holier  sanctuary,  they  were  guilty  of  a  deeper  sacrilege."  A  better 
reading  is  (for  i}...v\pwe€?(Ta)  i/.T]...v\pu>dria-rj;  "Shalt  thou  be  exalted 
to  heaven?     Thou  shalt  be  thrust  down...!" 

shalt  be  thrust  doivn  to  helf]  Rather,  as  far  as  Hades.  When  our 
Lord  uttered  this  woe  these  cities  on  the  shores  of  Gennesareth  were 
bright  and  populous  and  prospering;  now  they  are  desolate  heaps  of 
ruins  in  a  miserable  land.  The  inhabitants  who  lived  thirty  years 
longer  may  have  recalled  these  woes  in  the  unspeakable  horrors  of 
slaughter  and  conflagration  which  the  Romans  then  inflicted  on  them. 
It  is  immediately  after  the  celebrated  description  of  the  loveliness  of  the 
Plain  of  Gennesareth  that  Josephus  goes  on  to  tell  of  the  shore  strewn 
with  wrecks  and  putrescent  bodies,  "insomuch  that  the  misery  luas  not 
only  an  object  of  co7)imiseration  to  the  ytivs,  but  even  to  those  that  haled 
them  and  had  been  the  authors  of  that  misery,"  Jos.  B.  J.  ill.  10,  §  8. 
For  fuller  details  see  my  Life  of  Christ,  li.  loi  sq. 

16.  despiseth]  Literally,  "setting  at  nought."  For  comment  on  the 
verse  see  i  Thess.  iv.  8;  Matt,  xviii.  5;  John  xii.  44. 

17.  retjtrned  again  with  joy]  The  success  of  their  mission  is  more 
fully  recorded  than  that  of  the  Twelve. 

the  devils]    Rather,  the  demons.     They  had  been  bidden  (vs.  9)  to 
"heal  the  sick;"  but  these  are  the  only  healings  that  they  mention. 
are  subject]    Rather,  are  being  subjected. 

18.  /  beheld  Satan  as  lightning  fall  from  heaven]  Rather,  I  was 
Observing  Satan  as  lightning  fallen  from  heaven,  Is.  xiv.  9—15.  We 
find  similar  thoughts  in  John  xvi.  11,  xii.  31,  "  now  shall  the  prince  of 
this  world  be  cast  out;"  i  John  iii.  8  ;  Ileb.  ii.  14. 

19.  I  give]    Read,  I  have  given,  with  N,  15,  C,  L,  &c. 
power]    Rather,  the  authority. 

to  tread  on  serpents  and  scorpions]  Compare  Mk.  xvi.  17,  18.  S<1  fnr 
as  the  promise  was  literal,  the  only  fact  of  the  kind  referred  to  in  ihe 


202  ST   LUKE,  X.  [vv.  20—22. 

20  and  nothing  shall  by  any  means  hurt  you.  Notwithstanding 
in  this  rejoice  not,  that  the  spirits  are  subject  unto  you;  but 
rather  rejoice,  because  your  names  are  written  in  heaven. 

21  In  that  hour  Jesus  rejoiced  in  spirit,  and  said,  I  thank 
thee,  O  Father,  Lord  of  heaven  and  earth,  that  thou  hast 
hid  these  things  from  the  wise  and  prudent,  and  hast  re- 
vealed them  unto  babes  :  even  so,  Father ;  for  so  it  seemed 

22  good  in  thy  sight.  All  things  are  delivered  to  me  of  my 
Father:   and  no  man  knoweth  who  the  Son  is,   but   the 

N.  T.  is  Acts  xxviii.  3—5.  In  legend  we  have  the  story  of  St  John 
saved  from  poison,  which  is  represented  in  Christian  art  as  a  viper  escaping 
from  the  cup  (Jameson,  Sacred  and  Legettdary  Art,  i.  159).  But  it  may 
be  doubted  vi^hether  the  meaning  was  not  predominantly  spiritual  as  in 
Gen.  iii.  15;  Rom.  xvi.  20;  Ps.  xci.  13;  Is.  xi.  8. 

nothing  shall  by  any  7neans  hurt yoti\    Rom.  viii.  28,  39. 

20.  are  written  in  heaven^  Rather,  have  been  recorded  In  the 
heavens  (reading  ey-^i-^painaC).  On  this  'Boole  of  God,'  or  'Book  of 
Life,'  see  Ex.  xxxii.  32 ;  Ps.  Ixix.  28;  Dan.  xii.  i  ;  Phil.  iv.  3;  Heb. 
xii.  23;  Rev.  xiii.  8,  xx.  12,  xxi.  27.  It  is  the  opposite  to  being 
"written  in  the  earth,"  Jer.  xvii.  13. 

21.  rejoiced]  Rather,  exulted,  a  much  stronger  word,  and  most 
valuable  as  recording  one  element  — the  element  of  exultant  joy — in 
the  life  of  our  Lord,  on  which  the  Evangelists  so  rarely  touch  as  to 
have  originated  the  legend,  preserved  in  the  spurious  letter  of  P. 
Lentulus  to  the  Senate,  that  He  wept  often,  but  that  no  one  had  ever 
seen  Him  smile. 

I  thank  thee,  0  Father\  Literally,  "/  make  grateful  acknowledgment 
to  Thee." 

fro?n  the  wise  and  prudent... unto  babes']  Here  we  have  the  contrast 
between  the  '  wisdom  of  the  world,'  which  is  '  foolishness  with  God,'  and 
the  '  foolishness  of  the  world, 'which  is  'wisdom  with  God  '  on  which  St 
Paul  also  was  fond  of  dwelling,  i  Cor.  i.  21,  26;  2  Cor.  iv.'3,  4  ;  Rom.  i. 
22.  For  similar  passages  in  the  Gospels  see  Matt.  xvi.  17,  xviii. 
3.  4- 

tinto  babes']  i.  e.  to  all  who  have  "the  young  lamb's  heart  amid  the  full- 
grown  flocks" — to  all  innocent  childlike  souls,  such  as  are  often  those 
of  the  truly  wise.  Genius  itself  has  been  defined  as  "  the  heart  of  child- 
hood taken  up  and  matured  into  the  power  of  manhood." 

22.  All  things  are  delivered  to  me  of  my  Father]  Rather,  were 
delivered  to  me  by,  cf.  xx.  14.  This  entire  verse  is  one  of  those  in 
which  the  teaching  of  the  Synoptists  (Matt,  xxviii.  18)  comes  into  nearest 
resemblance  to  that  of  St  John,  which  abounds  in  such  passages  (John 
i.  18,  iii.  35,  v.  26,  27,  vi.  44,  46,  xiv.  6—9,  xvii.  i,  2  ;  i  John  v.  20). 
In  the  same  way  we  find  this  view  assumed  in  St  Paul's  earlier  Epistles 
(e.g.  I  Cor.  XV.  24,  27),  and  magnificently  developed  in  the  Epistles  of 
the  Captivity  (Phil.  ii.  9 ;  Eph.  i.  21,  22). 


203 


w.  23—27.]  ST   LUKE,  X. 

Father;  and  who  the  Father  is,  but  the  Son,  and  he  to 
whom  the  Son  will  reveal  him.  And  he  turned  him  unto  23 
his  disciples,  and  said  privately,  Blessed  are  the  eyes  which 
see  the  things  that  ye  see  :  for  I  tell  you,  that  many  prophets  24 
and  kings  have  desired  to  see  those  things  which  ye  see,  and 
have  not  seen  the7n;  and  to  hear  those  things  which  ye  hear, 
and  have  not  heard  them. 

25 — 37,     The  Parable  of  the  Good  Samaritan. 

And   behold,   a   certain   lawyer   stood  up,  and  tempted  ^s 
him,  saying,   Master,  what   shall   I    do   to   inherit   eternal 
life  ?      He  said   unto  him,   What   is  written   in  the  law  ?  26 
how    readest    thou?      And     he    answering    said.     Thou  27 
shalt   love   the  Lord   thy  God  with    all   thy  heart, 
and   with    all    thy   soul,    and  with  all  thy  strength, 
and  with  all  thy  mind;  and  thy  neighbour  as  thyself. 

23.  Blessed  are  the  eyes']    Comp.  Matt.  xiii.  16. 

24.  prophets  and  kings']  e.g.  Abraham,  Gen.  xx.  7,  xxiii.  6;  Jacob, 
Gen.  xlix.  18;  Balaam,  Num.  xxiv.  17;  David,  1  Sam.  xxiii.  i — 5. 

and  have  not  seen  them]    John  viii.  56;  Eph,  iii.  5,  6;  Heb.  xi.  13. 

"Save  that  each  little  voice  in  turn 

Some  glorious  truth  proclaims; 
What  sages  would  have  died  to  learn. 

Now  taught  by  cottage  dames." 

Keble. 

25 — 37.     The  Parable  of  the  Good  Samaritan. 

25.  a  certain  lawyer]    A  teacher  of  the  Mosaic  Law— differing  little 
from  a  scribe,  as  the  man  is  called  in  Mk.  xii.  28.     The  same  person     ^ 
may  have  had  both  functions— that  of  preserving  and  that  of  expound- 
ing the  Law. 

tettipted  him]  Literally,  ''putting  Him  fully  to  the  test  (iv.  1-2);  but 
the  purpose  does  not  seem  to  have  been  so  deliberately  hostile  as  in 
xi.  54. 

what  shall  I  do  to  inherit  eternal  life?]  See  xviii.  18,  and  the  answer 
there  also  given.  It  is  interesting  to  compare  it  with  the  answer  given 
by  St  Paul  after  the  Ascension,  Acts  xvi.  30,  31. 

26.  hotv  readest  thou?]  The  phrase  resembled  one  in  constant  use 
among  the  Rabbis,  and  the  lawyer  deserved  to  get  no  other  answer 
because  his  question  was  not  sincere.  The  very  meaning  and  mission 
of  his  life  was  to  teach  this  answer. 

27.  Thou  Shalt  love  the  Lord  thy  God]  This  was  the  summary  ol 
the  Law  in  Dent.  vi.  5,  x.  12;  Lev.  xix.  iS.  ...  ,   ,, 

and  thy  neighbour  as  thyself]     Ilillcl  had  given  this  part  of   ihc 


204  ST   LUKE,   X.  [vv.  28—31. 

28  And   he  said  unto  him,   Thou   hast  answered  right :   this 

29  do,  and  thou  shalt  live.     But   he,   wiUing   to   justify  him- 

30  self,  said  unto  Jesus,  And  who  is  my  neighbour  ?  And 
Jesus  answering  said,  A  certain  man  went  down  from  Jeru- 
salem to  Jericho,  and  fell  among  thieves,  which  stripped 
him  of  his  raiment,  and  wounded  him,  and  departed,  leaving 

31  ///;;/  half  dead.     And  by  chance  there  came  down  a  certain 

answer  to  an  enquirer  who  similarly  came  to  put  him  to  the  test,  and 
as  far  as  it  went,  it  was  a  right  answer  (Rom.  xiii.  9;  Gal.  v.  13,  14; 
Jas.  ii.  8) ;  but  it  became  futile  if  left  to  stand  alone,  without  the  first 
Commandment. 

28.  Thou  hast  answered  right"]  "  If  thou  doest  well,  shalt  thou  not 
be  accepted?"  Gen.  iv.  7;  "which  if  a  man  do,  he  shall  live  in  them," 
Lev.  xviii.  5;  Rom.  x.  5;  but  see  Gal.  iii.  21,  12. 

this  do]  As  the  passage  from  Deuteronomy  was  one  of  those  inscribed 
in  the  phylacteries  (little  leather  boxes  containing  four  texts  in  their 
compartments),  which  the  scribe  wore  on  his  forehead  and  wrist,  it  is  an 
ingenious  conjecture  that  our  Lord,  as  He  spoke,  pointed  to  one  of  these. 

29.  ivillitig  to  jtistify  himself]  "before  men" — a  thing  which  the 
Pharisees  were  ever  prone  to  do,  xvi.  15. 

who  is  my  neighbour?]  He  wants  his  moral  duties  to  be  labelled 
and  defined  with  the  Talmudic  precision  to  which  ceremonial  duties 
had  been  reduced. 

30.  A  certain  man]  Clearly,  as  the  tenor  of  the  Parable  implies, 
a  Jew. 

went  down  from  Jerusalem  to  Jericho]  A  rocky,  dangerous  gorge 
(Jos.  B.  J.  IV.  8,  §  3),  haunted  by  marauding  Bedawin,  and  known 
as  'the  bloody  way'  {AJominim,  Jerome,  De  loc.  Hebr.  and  on  Jer. 
iii.  2).  The  "went  down"  is  strictly  accurate,  for  the  road  descends 
very  rapidly  from  Jerusalem  to  the  Jordan  valley.  The  distance  is 
about  21  miles.     For  Jericho,  see  xix.  i. 

thieves]  Rather,  "roW^r^,"  '■^brigands."  Palestine  was  notorious  for 
these  plundering  Arabs.  Herod  the  Great  had  rendered  real  service  to 
the  country  in  extirpating  them  from  their  haunts,  but  they  constantly 
sprung  up  again,  and  even  the  Romans  could  not  effectually  put  them 
down  (Jos.  Antt.  XX.  6,%\\  B.  J.  XI.  12,  §  5).  On  this  very  road  an 
English  baronet — Sir  Frederic  Henniker — was  stripped  and  murdered  by 
Arab  robbers  in  1820.  "He  was  probably  thinking  of  the  Parable  of 
the  Samaritan  when  the  assassin's  stroke  laid  him  low,"  Porter's  Pales- 
tine, I.  151. 

wounded  him]    Rather,  laying  blows  on  him. 

half  dead]  Some  MSS.  omit  the  7v^x<>-vovTa.,  'chancing  to  be  still 
alive.'  So  far  as  the  robbers  were  concerned,  it  was  a  mere  accident 
that  any  life  was  left  in  him. 

31.  by  chance]  Rather,  Ijy  coincidence,  i.  e.  at  the  same  time.  The 
word  'chance'  {rvxh)  does  not  occur  in  Scripture.  The  nearest  ap- 
proach to  it  is  the  participle  rvx^v  in  i  Cor.  xv.  37  (if  tvyhp-vovto.  be 


vv.  32,  33.]  ST   LUKE,   X.  205 

priest  that  way :  and  when  he  saw  him,  he  passed  by  on  the 
other  side.     And  likewise  a  Levite,  when  he  was  at  the  32 
place,  came  and  looked  on  hitn,  and  passed  by  on  the  other 
side.    But  a  certain  Samaritan,  as  he  journeyed,  came  where  33 
he  was  :  and  when  he  saw  him,  he  had  compassion  on  him, 

omitted  in  vs.  30).  Chance,  to  the  sacred  writers,  as  to  the  most 
thoughtful  of  the  Greeks,  is  '  the  daughter  of  Forethought :'  it  is  "  God's 
unseen  Providence,  by  men  nicknamed  Chance"  (Fuller).  "Many 
good  opportunities  work  under  things  which  seem  fortuitous."     Bengal. 

a  certain  priest\  His  official  duties  at  Jerusalem  were  over,  and  he 
was  on  his  way  back  to  his  home  in  the  priestly  city  of  Jericho.  Per- 
haps the  uselessness  of  his  external  service  is  implied.  In  superstitious 
attention  to  the  letter,  he  was  wholly  blind  to  the  spirit,  Deut.  xxii. 
I — 4.  See  I  John  iii.  17.  He  was  selfishly  afraid  of  risk,  trouble, 
and  ceremonial  defilement,  and,  since  no  one  was  there  to  know  of  his 
conduct,  he  was  thus  led  to  neglect  the  traditional  kindness  of  Jews 
towards  their  own  countrymen  (Tac.  Hist.  v.  5,  Juv.  Xiv.  103,  104),  as 
well  as  the  positive  rules  of  the  Law  (Deut.  xxii.  4)  and  the  Prophets 
(Is.  Iviii.  7). 

that  way\  Rather,  on  that  road.  It  is  emphatically  mentioned, 
because  there  was  another  road  to  Jericho  which  was  safer,  and  there- 
fore more  frequently  used. 

32.  came  and  looked  on  hini\  This  vivid  touch  shews  us  the  cold 
curiosity  of  the  Levite,  which  was  even  baser  than  the  dainty  neglect  of 
the  Priest.  Perhaps  the  Priest  had  been  aware  that  a  Levite  was 
behind  him,  and  left  the  trouble  to  him :  and  perhaps  the  Levite  said  to 
himself  that  he  need  not  do  what  the  priest  had  not  thought  fit  to  do. 
By  choosing  Gal.  iii.  16 — 23  as  the  Epistle  to  be  read  with  this  Gospel 
(13th  Sunday  after  Trinity)  the  Church  indicates  her  view  that  this 
Parable  implies  the  failure  of  the  Jewish  Priesthood  and  Law  to  pity  or 
remove  the  misery  and  sin  of  man. 

33.  a  certain  Samaritan^  A  Samaritan  is  thus  selected  for  high 
eulogy — though  the  Samaritans  had  so  ignominiously  rejected  Jesus 

(ix.  53)- 

as  he  jotirneyed]  He  was  not  'coming  down'  as  the  Priest  and 
Levite  were  from  the  Floly  City  and  the  Temple,  but  from  the 
unauthorised  worship  of  alien  Gerizim. 

had  compassion  on  hint]  Thereby  shewing  himself,  in  spite  of  his 
heresy  and  ignorance,  a  better  man  than  the  orthodox  Priest  and 
Levite;  and  all  the  more  so  because  he  was  an  'alien'  (see  on  xvii.  18), 
and  "the  Jews  have  no  dealings  with  the  Samaritans"  (John  iv.  9),  and 
this  very  wounded  man  would,  under  other  circumstances,  have  shrunk 
from  the  touch  of  the  Samaritan  as  from  pollution.  Yet  this  'Cuthaean' 
— this  'worshipper  of  the  pigeon' — tliis  man  of  a  race  which  was  ac- 
cused of  misleading  the  Jews  by  false  fire-signals,  and  of  defiling  the 
Temple  with  human  bones — whose  testimony  would  not  have  been 
admitted  in  a  Jewish  court  of  law — with  whom  no  Jew  would  so  much 


2o6  ST   LUKE,   X. [vv.  34—37- 

34  and  went  to  him,  and  bound  up  his  wounds,  pouring  in  oil 
and  wine,  and  set  him  on  his  own  beast,  and  brought  him  to 

35  an  inn,  and  took  care  of  him.  And  on  the  morrow  when  he 
departed,  he  took  out  two  pence,  and  gave  thevi  to  the  host, 
and  said  unto  him.  Take  care  of  him ;  and  whatsoever  thou 

36  spendest  more,  when  I  come  again,  I  will  repay  thee.  Which 
now  of  these  three,  thinkest  thou,  was  neighbour  unto  him 

37  that  fell  among  the  thieves  ?  And  he  said,  He  that  shewed 
mercy  on  him.  Then  said  Jesus  unto  him,  Go,  and  do  thou 
likewise. 

as  eat  (Jos.  Antt.  xx.  6,  §  i,  xviii.  i,li;  B.J.  11.  12,  §  3)— shews  a 
spontaneous  and  perfect  pity  of  which  neither  Priest  nor  Levite  had 
been  remotely  capable.  The  fact  that  the  Jews  had  applied  to  our  Lord 
Himself  the  opprobrious  name  of  "Samaritan"  (John  viii.  48)  is  one  of 
the  indications  that  a  deeper  meaning  lies  under  the  beautiful  obvious 
significance  of  the  Parable. 

34.  pouring  in  oil  and  wine]  The  ordinary  remedies  of  the  day. 
Is.  i.  6;  Mk.  vi.  13;  Jas.  v.  14.     See  Excursus  VIL 

set  Aim  on  his  cnvn  beast]  The  word  implies  the  labour  of  'lifting 
him  up, '  and  then  the  good  Samaritan  walked  by  his  side. 

brought  him  to  an  inn]  Pajidocheion.  See  on  ii.  7.  There  the  word 
is  kataluma,  a  mere  khan  or  caravanserai.  Perhaps  this  inn  was  at 
Bahurim.  In  this  and  the  next  verse  a  word  or  two  suffices  to  shew 
the  Samaritan's  sympathy,  helpfulness,  self-denial,  generosity,  and  per- 
severance in  kindliness. 

35.  took  out]     Literally,  "///r^jTMW^  (?///"  of  his  girdle. 

two  pence]  i.  e.  two  denarii;  enough  to  pay  for  the  man  for  some 
days.  The  Parable  lends  itself  to  the  broader  meaning  which  sees  the 
state  of  mankind  wounded  by  evil  passions  and  spiritual  enemies ;  left 
unhelped  by  systems  of  sacrifice  and  ceremonial  (Gal.  iii.  21);  pitied 
and  redeemed  by  Christ  (Is.  Ixi.  i),  and  left  to  be  provided  for  until 
His  return  by  spiritual  ministrations  in  the  Church.  But  to  see  in  the 
"two  pence"  any  specific  allusion  to  the  Old  and  New  Testaments,  or 
to  'the  two  sacraments,'  is  to  push  to  extravagance  the  elaboration  of 
details. 

to  the  host]  The  word  occurs  here  only  in  the  N.  T.,  and  the 
fact  that  in  the  Talmud  the  Greek  word  for  '  an  inn  with  a  host '  is 
adopted,  seems  to  shew  that  the  institution  had  come  in  with  Greek 
customs.  In  earlier  and  simpler  days  the  open  hospitality  of  the  East 
excluded  the  necessity  for  anything  but  ordinary  khans. 

37.  He  that  shewed  mercy  on  him]  Rather,  the  pity.  By  this  poor 
periphrasis  the  lawyer  avoids  the  shock  to  his  own  prejudices,  which 
would  have  been  involved  in  the  hated  word,  'the  Samaritan.'  "He 
will  not  name  the  Samaritan  by  name,  the  haughty  hypocrite."    Luther. 

Go,  and  do  thou  likewise]  The  general  lesson  is  that  of  the  Sermon 
on  the  Mount,  Matt.  v.  44. 


w.  38—40-]  ST   LUKE,   X.  207 

38 — 42.     The  Sisters  of  Bethatiy, 

Now  it  came  to  pass,  as  they  went,  that  he  entered  into  33 
a  certain  village :  and  a  certain  woman  named  Martha  re- 
ceived him  into  her  house.     And  she  had  a  sister  called  39 
Mary,  which  also  sat  at  Jesus'  feet,  and  heard  his  word.  But  40 
Martha  was  cumbered  about  much  serving,  and  came  to 
hhn,  and  said,  Lord,  dost  thou  not  care  that  my  sister  hath 
left  me  to  serve  alone  ?  bid  her  therefore  that  she  help  me. 

38 — 42.    The  Sisters  of  Bethany. 

38.  into  a  certain  village\  Undoubtedly  Bethany,  John  xi.  i.  Both 
this  and  the  expression  "a  certain  womatt"  are  obvious  traces  of  a 
tendency  to  reticence  about  the  family  of  Bethany  which  we  find  in 
the  Synoptists  (Matt.  xxvi.  6;  Mk.  xiv.  3).  It  was  doubtless  due  to 
the  danger  which  the  family  incurred  from  their  residing  in  the  close 
vicinity  of  Jerusalem,  and  therefore  of  "the  Jews,"  as  St  John  always 
calls  the  Pharisees,  Priests,  and  ruling  classes  who  opposed  our  Lord. 
By  the  time  that  St  John  wrote,  after  the  destruction  of  Jerusalem,  all 
need  for  such  reticence  was  over.  It  is  mere  matter  of  conjecture 
whether  "Simon  the  leper'  was  the  father  of  the  family,  or  whether 
Martha  was  his  widow ;  nor  can  Lazarus  be  identified  with  the  gentle 
and  holy  Rabbi  Eliezer  of  the  Talmud.  This  narrative  clearly  belongs 
to  a  period  just  before  the  winter  Feast  of  Dedication,  because  Bethany 
is  close  to  Jerusalem.  Its  introduction  at  this  point  by  St  Luke  (who 
alone  preserves  it,  see  Introd.  p.  27)  is  due  to  subjective  grouping,  and 
probably  to  the  question  "what  shall  I  do?"  vs.  25. 

39.  which  also  sat  at  Jesus'  feet]  The  "also"  shews  that  Mary  too, 
in  her  way,  was  no  less  anxious  to  give  Jesus  a  fitting  reception.  Here, 
in  one  or  two  lines,  we  have  a  most  clear  sketch  of  the  contrasted 
character  of  the  two  sisters,  far  too  subtly  and  indirectly  accordant  with 
what  we  learn  of  them  in  St  John  to  be  due  to  anything  but  the  har- 
mony of  truth.  This  is  one  of  the  incidents  in  which  the  Evangelist 
shews  such  consummate  psychologic  skill  and  insight  that  he  is  enabled 
by  a  few  touches  to  set  before  us  the  most  distinct  types  of  character. 

and  heard  his  word]     Rather,  was  listening  to  His  discourse. 

40.  cumbered  about  much  serving]  The  word  for  "cumbered"  lite- 
rally means  'was  being  dragged  in  different  directions,'  i.e.  was  dis- 
tracted (i  Cor.  vii.  35).  She  was  anxious  to  give  her  Lord  a  most 
hospitable  reception,  and  was  vexed  at  the  contemplative  humility 
which  she  regarded  as  slothfulness. 

came  to  him]  Rather,  but  suddenly  coming  up  (xx.  i ;  Actsxxiii.  27). 
We  see  in  this  inimitable  touch  the  little  petulant  outburst  of  jealousy 
in  the  loving,  busy  matron,  as  she  hurried  in  with  the  words,  "Why  is 
Mary  sitting  there  doing  nothing?" 

left  me]  The  Greek  word  means  '  left  me  alone  in  the  middle  of  my 
work '  to  come  and  listen  to  you. 

bid  her  therefore  that  she  help  me]    We  almost  seem  to  hear  the 


2o8  ST   LUKE,   X.  XL  [vv.  41, 42;  I. 

41  And  Jesus  answered   and  said  unto  her,  Martha,  Martha, 

42  thou  art  careful  and  troubled  about  many  things:  but  one 
thi?jg  is  needful :  and  Mary  hath  chosen  that  good  part, 
which  shall  not  be  taken  away  from  her. 

Ch.  XI.   I — 13.     The  Lord's  Prayer.     Persistence  in 

Prayer. 

11      And  it  came  to  pass  that,  as  he  was  praying  in  a  certain 

undertone  of  'It  is  no  use  for  me  to  tell  her.'  Doubtless,  had  she  been 
less  'fretted'  (Tup/Sa^Tj),  she  would  have  felt  that  to  leave  her  alone 
and  withdraw  into  the  background  while  this  eager  hospitality  was 
going  on  was  the  kindest  and  most  unselfish  thing  which  Mary  could 
do. 

41.  Martha,  Martha']  The  repeated  name  adds  additional  tender- 
ness to  the  rebuke,  as  in  xxii.  31 ;  Acts  ix.  4. 

thoti  art  careful  and  troicbled  about  many  things]  "  I  would  have 
you  without  carefulness,"  i  Cor.  vii.  32  ;  Matt.  vi.  25.  The  words 
literally  mean,  'Thou  art  anxious  and  bustling.'  Her  inward  solicitude 
was  shewing  itself  in  outward  hastiness. 

but  07ie  thing  is  needful]  The  context  should  sufficiently  have  ex- 
cluded the  very  bald,  commonplace,  and  unspiritual  meaning  which  has 
been  attached  to  this  verse, — that  only  one  dish  was  requisite.  Clearly 
the  lesson  conveyed  is  the  same  as  in  Matt.  vi.  33,  xvi.  26,  even  if  our 
Lord's  first  reference  was  the  lower  one.  The  various  readings  'but 
there  is  need  of  few  things,'  or  'of  few  things  or  of  one'  (N,  B,  various 
versions,  &c.)  seem  to  have  risen  from  the  notion  that  even  for  the 
simplest  meal  more  than  one  dish  would  be  required.  This,  however, 
is  not  the  case  in  the  simple  meals  of  the  East. 

that  good  part]  Rather,  portion  (as  of  a  banquet,  Gen.  xliii.  34,  LXX. ; 
John  vi.  27)  or  inheritance,  Ps.  Ixxiii.  26.  riTi.s  =  qtiifJ'e  quae.  The 
nature  of  the  portion  is  such  that,  &c. 

which  shall  not  be  taken  awayf-om  her]  To  speak  of  such  theologi- 
cal questions  as  'indefectible  grace'  here,  is  to  use  the  narrative 
otherwise  than  was  intended.  The  general  meaning  is  that  of  Phil.  i.  6; 
I  Pet.  i.  5.  It  has  been  usual  with  Roman  Catholic  and  other  writers 
to  see  in  Martha  the  type  of  the  active,  and  in  Mary  of  the  contemplative 
disposition,  and  to  exalt  one  above  the  other.  This  is  not  the  point  of 
the  narrative,  for  both  may  and  ought  to  be  combined  as  in  St  Paul  and 
in  St  John.  The  gentle  reproof  to  Martha  is  aimed  not  at  her  hospitable 
activity,  but  at  the  'fret  and  fuss,'  the  absence  of  repose  and  calm,  by 
which  it  was  accompanied ;  and  above  all,  at  the  tendency  to  reprobate 
and  interfere  with  excellence  of  a  different  kind. 

Ch.  XI.    1 — 13.    The  Lord's  Prayer.    Persistence  in  Prayer. 

1.  And  it  came  to  pass  that,  as  he  was  praying  in  a  certain  place]  The 
better  order  is  'as  he  was  in  a  certain  place,  praying.'     The  extreme 


V.  2.]  ST   LUKE,   XI. 


209 


place,  when  he  ceased,  one  of  his  disciples  said  unto  him, 
Lord,  teach  us  to  pray,  as  John  also  taught  his  disciples! 
And  he  said  unto  them,  When  ye  pray,  say. 

Our  Father  which  art  in  heaven.  Hallowed  be  thy  name. 

vagueness  of  these  expressions  shews  that  St  Luke  did  not  possess  a 
more  definite  note  of  place  or  of  time ;  but  if  we  carefully  compare 
the  parallel  passages  of  Matt.  xii.  22—50,  xv.  1—20;  Mk.  iii.  22—35, 
it  becomes  probable  that  this  and  the  next  chapter  are  entirely  oc- 
cupied with  the  incidents  and  teachings  of  one  great  day  of  open  and 
decisive  rupture  with  the  Pharisees  shortly  before  our  Lord  ceased  to 
work  in  Galilee,  and  that  they  do  not  belong  to  the  period  of  the 
journey  through  Peraea.  This  great  day  of  conflict  was  marked  (1)  by 
the  prayer  of  Jesus  and  His  teaching  the  disciples  what  and  how  to 
pray;  (2)  by  the  healing  of  the  dumb  demoniac;  (3)  by  the  invitation  to 
the  Pharisee's  house,  the  deadly  dispute  which  the  Pharisees  there 
originated,  and  the  terrible  denunciation  consequently  evoked;  (4)  by 
the  sudden  gathering  of  a  multitude,  and  the  discourses  and  incidents 
of  chapter  xii.  For  further  details  and  elucidations  I  must  refer  to 
the  Life  of  Christ. 

prayitigl  Probably  at  early  dawn,  and  in  the  standing  attitude 
adopted  by  Orientals. 

as  John  also  taught  his  disciples']  The  form  of  prayer  taught  by  St 
John  has  perished.  Terrena  caelestibus  cedimt^T^xX..;  John  iii.  30.  It 
was  common  for  Jewish  Rabbis  to  deliver  such  forms  to  their  disciples, 
and  a  comparison  of  them  (e.g.  of  "the  18  Benedictions")  with  the 
Lord's  Prayer  is  deeply  instructive. 

2.  When  ye  pray,  say.  Our  Father]  'The  Lord's  Prayer'  had 
already  been  enshrined  in  the  Sermon  on  the  Mount  (Matt.  vi.  9 — 13), 
but  it  was  now  more  formally  delivered  as  a  model.  Various  parallels  for 
the  different  petitions  of  the  Lord's  Prayer  have  been  adduced  from  the 
Talmud,  nor  would  there  be  anything  strange  in  our  Lord  thus  stamping 
with  His  sanction  whatever  was  holiest  in  the  petitions  which  His 
countrymen  had  learnt  from  the  Spirit  of  God.  But  note  that  (i)  the 
parallels  are  only  to  some  of  the  clauses  (e.g.  not  to  the  fourth  and 
fifth);  (2)  they  are  mostly  distant  and  imperfect;  (3)  there  can  be  no 
certainty  as  to  their  priority,  since  even  the  earliest  portion  of  the  Talmud 
(the  Mishna)  was  not  committed  to  writing  till  the  second  century  after 
Christ ;  (4)  they  are  nowhere  blended  into  one  incomparable  petition. 
The  transcendent  beauty  and  value  of  the  lessons  in  the  Lord's  Prayer 
arise  from  (i)  the  tofie  of  holy  confidence: — it  teaches  us  to  approach 
God  as  our  F'ather  (Rom.  viii.  15),  in  love  as  well  as  holy  fear;  (ii)  its 
absolute  unselfishness:— it  is  offcrctl  in  the  plural,  not  for  ourselves  only, 
but  for  all  the  brotherhood  of  man;  (iii)  its  entire  spirituality:— oi  its 
seven  petitions,  one  only  is  for  any  earthly  boon,  and  that  only  for  the 
simplest;  (iv)  its  breinty  and  absence  of  all  vain  repetitions  (Keel.  v.  2); 
(v)  its  simplicity,  which  requires  not  learning,  but  only  holiness  and 
sincerity  for  its  universal  comprehension.  For  these  reasons  the  Fathers 
called  it  'the  Epitome  of  the  Gospel'  and  'the  pe.irl  of  prayers.' 

ST  LUKE  14 


2IO  ST   LUKE,  XI.  [w.  3, 4. 

Thy  kingdom  come.  Thy  will  be  done,  as  in  heaven,  so  in 
3  earth.  Give  us  day  by  day  our  daily  bread.  And  forgive 
us  our  sins ;  for  we  also  forgive  every  one  ^/laf  is  indebted 
to  us.  And  lead  us  not  into  temptation;  but  deliver  us 
from  evil. 

■which  art  in  heaven]  Ps.  xi.  4.  This  clause,  as  well  as  "Thy  will  be 
done,  as  in  heaven,  so  also  upon  the  earth,"  and  "but  deliver  us  from  the 
evil,"  are  wanting  in  some  MSS.,  and  may  be  additions  from  the  text  of 
St  Matthew.  If  so,  the  prayer  would  stand  thus :  0  Father!  Hallowed 
be  Thy  name.  Thy  kingdom  come.  Give  tis  day  by  day  oiir  daily  bread. 
And  forgive  us  our  sins  for  we  also  forgive  every  one  that  is  indebted  to 
us.     And  lead  us  not  into  temptation. 

Hallowed  be  thy  jia?ne'\  i.e.  sanctified,  treated  as  holy.  ''Holy,  Holy, 
Holy"  is  the  worship  of  the  Seraphim  (Is.  vi.  3).  The  'natne'  of  God  is 
used  for  all  the  attributes  of  His  Being. 

Thy  kingdom  come]  There  seems  to  have  been  an  early  gloss,  or 
reading,  "Thy  Holy  Spirit  come  upon  us,  and  purify  us"  (mentioned  by 
St  Gregory  of  Nazianzus). 

Thy  will  be  done]  This  was  the  one  rule  of  the  life  of  Christ,  John 
V.  30,  vi.  38. 

as  in  heaven]  "Bless  the  Lord,  ye  his  angels,  that  excel  in  strength, 
that  do  his  commandments,  hearkening  unto  the  voice  of  his  word, "  Ps. 
ciii.  20. 

3.  Give  us  day  by  day  our  daily  bread]  The  prayer  (i)  acknowledges 
that  we  are  indebted  to  God  for  our  simplest  boons;  (ii)  asks  them  for 
all;  (iii)  asks  them  only  day  by  day ;  and  (iv)  asks  for  no  more,  Prov. 
XXX.  8;  John  vi.  ■27.  St  Luke's  version  brings  out  the  continuity  of  the 
gift  (Be  giving  day  by  day);  St  Matthew's  its  immediate  need  (Give 
to-day).  The  word  rendered  'daily'  is  epiousion,  of  which  the  meaning 
is  much  disputed.  For  a  brief  discussion  of  its  meaning,  see  Excursus 
IV. ;  but  that  this  prayer  is  primarily  a  prayer  for  needful  earthly  sus- 
tenance has  been  rightly  understood  by  the  heart  of  mankind. 

our  sins]  'Trespasses'  is  not  in  our  Bible,  but  comes,  as  Dr 
Plumptre  notices,  from  Tyndale's  version.  St  Matthew  uses  the  word 
'debts,'  which  is  implied  in  the  following  words  of  St  Luke:  "For  in- 
deed we  ourselves  ret}iit  to  every  one  who  otueth  to  us."  Unforgiving, 
unforgiven.  Matt,  xviii.  34,  35;  Eph.  iv.  32;  Col.  iii.  13.  The  absence 
of  any  mention  here  of  the  Atonement  or  of  Justification  is,  as  Godet 
observes,  a  striking  proof  of  the  authenti  city  of  the  prayer.  The  variations 
are,  further,  a  striking  proof  that  the  Gospels  are  entirely  independent 
of  each  other. 

lead  us  not  into  teniptation]  God  permits  us  to  be  tempted  (John  xvii. 
15;  Rev.  iii.  10),  but  we  only  yield  to  our  temptations  when  we  are 
"drawn  away  of  our  own  lust  and  enticed"  (James  i.  14).  But  the  temp- 
tations which  God  permits  us  are  only  htiman  (dvOpLOTrivos),  not  abnormal 
or  irresistible  temptations,  and  with  each  temptation  He  makes  also  the 
way  to  escape  (kuI  ti]v  ^Kfiaaiv,  i  Cor.  x.  13).     We  pray,  therefore,  that 


w.  5-8.]  ST   LUKE,   XI.  211 

And  he  said  unto  them,  Which  of  you  shall  have  a  friend,  5 
and  shall  go  unto  him  at  midnight,    and   say   unto   him, 
Friend,   lend  me  three  loaves ;  for  a  friend  of  mine  in  his  6 
journey  is  come  to  me,  and  I  have  nothing  to  set  before 
him  :  and  he  from  within  shall  answer  and  say,  Trouble  me  7 
not :  the  door  is  now  shut,  and  my  children  are  with  me  in 
bed;  I  cannot  rise  and  give  thee?     I  say  unto  you.  Though  8 
he  will  not  rise  and  give  him,  because  he  is  his  friend,  yet 
because  of  his  importunity  he  will  rise  and  give  him  as  many 

we  may  not  be  tried  above  what  we  are  able,  and  this  is  defined  by  the 
following  words:  Our  prayer  is,  Let  not  the  tempting  opportunity 
meet  the  too  susceptible  disposition.  If  the  temptation  comes,  quench 
the  desire;  if  the  desire,  spare  us  the  temptation.     See  on  iv.  1. 

but  deliver  us  from  evil'\  Rather,  from  the  Evil  One.  The  article, 
it  is  true,  would  not  necessitate  this  translation,  but  it  seems  to  be 
rendered  probable  by  the  analogy  of  similar  prayers  among  the  Jews. 
The  last  three  clauses  for  daily  bread,  forgiveness,  and  deliverance,  cover 
the  past,  present,  and  future.  "  All  the  tones  of  the  human  breast  which 
go  from  earth  to  heaven,  sound  here  in  their  key-notes"  (Stier).  There 
is  no  doxology  added.  Even  in  St  Matthew  it  is  (almost  certainly)  a 
liturgical  addition,  and  no  real  part  of  the  Lord's  Prayer. 

5.  shall  go  unto  hifti  at  midnight^  Orientals  often  travel  at  night  to 
avoid  the  heat.  Although  idle  repetitions  in  prayer  are  forbidden, 
persistency  and  importunity  in  prayer — wrestling  with  God,  and  not 
letting  Him  go  until  He  has  blessed  us — are  here  distinctly  taught  (see 
xviii.  I — 8),  as  they  also  were  in  the  acted  parable  of  our  Lord's  apparent 
repulse  of  the  Syro-Phoenician  woman.  Matt.  xv.  27,  28. 

6.  /  have  nothing  to  set  before  hittiX  Even  the  deepest  poverty  was 
not  held  to  excuse  any  lack  of  the  primary  Eastern  virtue  of  hospitality. 
Allegorically  we  may  see  here  the  unsatisfied  hunger  of  the  soul,  which 
wakens  in  the  midnight  of  a  sinful  life. 

7.  Trouble  me  not]  The  answer  is  rough  and  discouraging.  He 
does  not  say  'friend.'  His  phrase  implies  irritation.  The  details  are  of 
course   not   to   be   pressed.     The  parable   is  merely  an   illustration  a 

fortiori. 

is  now  shut]  Literally,  '■^has  been  already  shut"  with  the  implication 
'shut  for  the  night,  and  I  do  not  mean  to  open  it.' 

I  cannot]     Only  a  modified  form  for  '  I  will  not.' 

8.  yet  because  of  his  importunity]  Literally,  '■'■  shamelessness''''  {^\x\g. 
improbitas),  'impudence,'  i.e.  unblushing  persistence,  which  is  not  how- 
ever selfish,  but  that  he  may  do  his  duty  towards  another.  Is.  Ixii.  6, 
"Ye  that  make  mention  of  the  Lord,  keep  not  silence,  and  give  him  no 
rest,  till  he  establish,  &c."  Abraham  furnishes  a  grand  example  of  this 
fearless  persistence  (Gen.  xviii.  23 — 33).  Archbishop  Trench  quotes  the 
beautiful  passage  in  Dante's  Paradiso: 

"  Regnum  caelorum  violenzia  pate  X 

Da  caldo  amore  e  da  viva  speranza,  &c." 

14 2 


212  ST   LUKE,   XI.  [vv.  9—15. 

9  as  he  needeth.     And  I  say  unto  you,  Ask,  and  it  shall  be 
given  you ;  seek,  and  ye  shall  find ;  knock,  and  it  shall  be 

10  opened  unto  you.  For  every  one  that  asketh  receiveth;  and 
he  that  seeketh  findeth  ;  and  to  him  that  knocketh  it  shall 

11  be  opened.  If  z.  son  shall  ask  bread  of  any  of  you  that  is  a 
father,  will  he  give  him  a  stone  ?  or  if  he  ask  a  fish,  will  he 

12  for  a  fish  give  him  a  serpent  ?    Or  if  he  shall  ask  an  egg,  will 

13  he  offer  him  a  scorpion?  If  ye  then,  being  evil,  know  how 
to  give  good  gifts  unto  your  children :  how  much  more  shall 
your  heavenly  Father  give  the  Holy  Spirit  to  them  that  ask 
him  ? 

14 — 26     The  dumb  Devil.     Blasphemy  of  the  Pharisees, 

14  And  he  was  casting  out  a  devil,  and  it  was  dumb.  And 
it  came  to  pass,  when  the  devil  was  gone  out,  the  dumb 

15  spake ;  and  the  people  wondered.     But  some  of  them  said, 


he  will  rise\  not  merely  half  raise  himself,  or  get  out  of  bed,  as  in 
vs.  7  {anaslas),  but  '■thoroughly  aroused  and  getting  up'  {egertheis). 

as  many  as  he  needeth'\  More  than  the  three  which  he  had  asked  for 
the  bare  supply  of  his  wants. 

9.  Ask,  atid  it  shall  be  given  yotf\  Matt.  vii.  7 — 11,  xxi.  22;  Mk. 
xi.  24;  John  xvi.  23.  Doubtless  these  teachings  were  repeated  more 
than  once  to  different  listeners.  God's  umvillingness  to  grant  is  never 
more  than  in  semblance,  and  for  our  good  (Matt.  xv.  28 ;  Gen.  xxxii. 
28). 

13.  give  the  Holy  Spirit\  St  Matthew  has  the  much  more  general 
expression  "good  things"  (vii.  11).  The  Good  Father  will  give  to  His 
children  neither  what  is  deadly,  nor  what  is  unfit  for  food. 

14 — 26.     The  dumb  Devil.     Blasphemy  of  the  Pharisees. 

14.  it  was  duniUX  i.  e.,  of  course,  the  possession  by  the  spirit  caused 
dumbness  in  the  man.  If  this  incident  be  the  same  as  in  Matt.  xii.  22, 
the  wretched  sufferer  seems  to  have  been  both  dumb,  and  blind,  and 
mad. 

the  people  wondered^  Exorcisms,  and  attempted  exorcisms  (Acts  xix, 
14),  were  indeed  common  among  the  Jews  (see  on  ix.  49.  Gfrorer, 
yahrh.  d.  Heils,  I.  413),  but  apparently  only  in  the  simplest  cases,  and 
w^z'^r  when  the  possession  was  complicated  with  blindness  and  dumbness. 

15.  sotne  of  them  said^  We  learn  from  St  Matthew  (xii.  24)  that 
this  notable  suggestion  emanated  from  "the  Pharisees"  and,  as  St  Mark 
(iii.  20)  adds,  from  "the  scribes  which  came  from  Jerusalem,"  i.e.  the 
spies  who  had  been  expressly  sent  down  by  the  ruling  hierarchs  to  dog 
the  footsteps  of  Jesus,  and  counteract  His  influence.     The  explanation 


vv.  16—19.]  ST   LUKE,  XI.  213 

He  casteth  out  devils  through  Beelzebub  the  chief  of  the 
devils.    And  other,  tempting  hhti,  sought  of  him  a  sign  from  16 
heaven.     But  he,  knowing  their  thoughts,  said  unto  them,  17 
Every  kingdom  divided  against  itself  is  brought  to  desola- 
tion ;  and  a  house  divided  against  a  house  falleth.    If  Satan  18 
also  be  divided   against   himself,  how  shall   his   kingdom 
stand?   because  ye  say  that  I  cast  out  devils  through  Beel- 
zebub.    And  if  I  by  Beelzebub  cast  out  devils,  by  whom  do  19 
your  sons  cast  them  out?  therefore  shall  they  be  your  judges. 

was  too  ingeniously  wicked  and  cleverly  plausible  to  come  from  the  more 
unsophisticated  Pharisees  of  Gahlee. 

Beelzebub']  The  name  and  reading  are  involved  in  obscurity.  In 
2  Kings  i.  3  we  are  told  that  Beelzebub  was  god  of  Ekron ;  and 
the  LXX.  and  Josephus  (Antt.  IX.  2,§  i)  understood  the  name  to  mean 
'lord  of  flies.''  He  may  have  been  a  god  worshipped  to  avert  the 
plagues  of  flies  on  the  low  sea-coast  like  Zeus  Apomuios  ( Averter  of  flies) 
and  Apollo  Ipuktonos  (Slayer  of  vermin).  But  others  interpret  the 
name  to  mean  '  lord  of  dung,'  and  regard  it  as  one  of  the  insulting  nick- 
names which  the  Jews  from  a  literal  rendering  of  Ex.  xxiii.  13  felt 
bound  to  apply  to  heathen  deities.  In  this  place  perhaps  Beelzebub  is 
the  true  reading,  and  that  means  'lord  of  the  (celestial)  habitation,'  i.e. 
prince  of  the  air,  Eph.  ii.  3.  Possibly  the  oiKodecrwdTris  of  Matt.  x.  25 
is  an  allusion  to  this  meaning.  In  any  case  the  charge  was  the  same 
as  that  in  the  Talmud  that  Jesus  wrought  His  miracles  (which  the  Jews 
did  not  pretend  to  deny)  by  magic. 

16.  tetnpting  hini]  i.e.  wanting  to  try  Him,  to  put  Him  to  the  test. 
The  temptation  was  precisely  analogous  to  that  in  the  wilderness — a 
temptation  to  put  forth  a  self-willed  or  arbitrary  exertion  of  power  for 
personal  ends,  see  iv.  3,  12. 

a  sig7i  from  heaven]  They  persuaded  the  people  that  His  miracles 
were  wrought  by  unhallowed  arts,  and  that  sucli  arts  would  be  impossible 
in  a  sign  from  heaven  like  the  Pillar  of  Cloud,  the  Fire  of  Elijah,  &c. 
But  our  Lord  refused  their  demand.  Miracles  were  not  to  be  granted 
to  insolent  unbelief;  nor  were  they  of  the  nature  of  mere  prodigies. 
Besides  it  was  His  will  to  win  conviction,  not  to  enforce  acceptance. 
This  seems  therefore  to  have  been  the  one  weapon  of  attack  which  the 
Pharisees  found  most  effective  against  Him, — the  one  which  most  deeply 
wounded  His  spirit  and  finally  drove  Him  away  from  the  plain  of  Gen- 
nesareth  (Mk.  viii.  11,  12). 

17.  their  thoughts]    Rather,  their  machinations. 

Every  kingdom  divided  against  itself  &c.]  More  briefly  and  graphic- 
ally in  St  Mark  "How  can  Satan  cast  out  Satan?" 

and  a  house  divided  against  a  house  falleth']  The  words  may  also  be 
rendered  'and  (in  that  case)  house  falleth  against  house.' 

19.  by  whom  do  your  sons  cast  them  out?]  The  "pupils  of  the  wise" 
might  be  called  the 'sons  of  the  Pharisees'  just  as  the  youths  in  the 


214  ST    LUKE,   XI.  [w.  20—26. 

2o  But  if  I  with  the  finger  of  God  cast  out  devils,  no  doubt  the 
2.  kingdom  of  God  is  come  upon  you.     When  a  strong  man 

22  armed  keepeth  his  palace,  his  goods  are  in  peace :  but  when 
a  stronger  than  he  shall  come  upon  hi7n,  and  overcome  him, 
he  taketh  fro7n  him  all  his  armour  wherein  he  trusted,  and 

23  divideth  his  spoils.     He  that  is  not  with  me  is  against  me  : 

24  and  he  that  gathereth  not  with  me  scattereth.  When  the 
unclean  spirit  is  gone  out  of  a  man,  he  walketh  through  dry- 
places,   seeking  rest;    and  finding   none,   he  saith,   I  will 

25  return  unto  my  house  whence  I  came  out.     And  when  he 

26  Cometh,  he  findeth  //  swept  and  garnished.  Then  goeth  he, 
and  taketh  to  hitn  seven  other  spirits  more  wicked  than  him- 
self; and  they  enter  in,  and  dwell  there  :  and  the  last  state 
of  that  man  is  worse  than  the  first. 

Prophetic  schools  were  called  'sons  of  the  Prophets.'  The  reality  of  the 
Jewish  exorcisms  is  not  here  necessarily  admitted  (Acts  xix.  13).  It  was 
enough  that  the  admitted  pretensions  to  such  powers  among  the  Pharisees 
justified  this  incontrovertible  argitmentu7n  ad  hominem. 

20.  with  the  finger  of  God\  "Then  the  magicians  said  unto  Pharaoh, 
This  is  the  finger  of  God"  Ex.  viii.  19. 

is  cofne  tipon  yoti\  The  word  and  tense  imply  suddenness  and  surprise. 

21.  When  a  strong  man  armed  keepeth  his  palace']  The  same  meta- 
phor is  used  of  the  Christian  opposing  Satan,  as  here  of  Satan  opposing 
Christ,  Eph.  vi.  13.  The  world  is  here  Satan's  palace  (John  xii.  31, 
xvi.  11)  and  men  his  possessions  (2  Tim.  ii.  26). 

22.  a  stronger  than  he]  Christ,  "having  spoiled  principalities  and 
powers,  made  a  shew  of  them  openly,  triumphing  over  them  in  His 
Cross,"  Col.  ii.  15. 

his  spoils]  The  spoils  which  Satan  had  won  from  the  race  of  man. — 
Bengel. 

23.  He  that  is  not  with  me  is  against  me]  Neutrality  is  sometimes 
opposition,  see  on  ix.  51  (where  we  have  the  complementary  truth). 

24.  he  walketh  through  dry  places]  The  unclean  spirits  were  thought 
to  frequent  ruins  {Berachoth,  f.  3a)  and  the  waterless  desert,  Tobit  viii.  3 ; 
see  on  iv.  i. 

seeking  rest]  Not  to  be  in  possession  of  some  human  soul,  is  (for 
them)  to  be  in  torment. 

25.  swept  and  garnished]  The  mischief  and  danger  of  the  emanci- 
pated soul  is  that  it  is  not  occupied  by  a  New  Indweller.  It  has  not 
tested  the  expulsive  power  of  holy  affections.  It  is  'lying  idle'  (crxoXct- 
^ovra.  Matt.  xii.  44),  i.e.  'to  let.' 

26.  seven  other  spirits]  Compare  viii,  1,  30.  The  number  is  figura- 
tive of  complete  wickedness  and  (in  this  case)  final  possession. 

the  last  state  of  that  man  is  worse  than  the  first]  The  most  striking 
comment  on  the  verse  is   furnished   by   Heb.    vi.    4 — 6,    x.    26 — 29, 


vv.  27—31.]  ST    LUKE,   XI.  215 

27 — 32-    The  Wo?nanly  Exclamation.    The  Peril  of  Privileges 

abused. 

And  it  came  to  pass,  as  he  spake  these  things,  a  certain  27 
woman  of  the  company  lift  up  her  voice,  and  said  unto  him, 
Blessed  is  the  womb  that  bare  thee,  and  the  paps  which 
thou  hast  sucked.    But  he  said.  Yea  rather,  blessed  are  they  28 
that  hear  the  word  of  God,  and  keep  it. 

And  when  the  people  were  gathered  thick  together,  he  29 
began  to  say.  This  is  an  evil  generation :  they  seek  a  sign  ; 
and  there  shall  no  sign  be  given  it,  but  the  sign  of  Jonas  the 
prophet.     For  as  Jonas  was  a  sign  unto  the  Ninevites,  so  30 
shall  also  the  Son  of  man  be  to  this  generation.     The  queen  31 
of  the  south  shall  rise  up  in  the  judgment  with  the  men  of 

and  especially  1  Pet.  ii.  20,  21.  "Sin  no  more,"  said  our  Lord  to  the 
Impotent  Man,  "■lest  a  worse  thing  come  unto  thee,"  John  v.  14.  The 
Parable  was  an  allegory,  not  only  of  the  awful  peril  of  relapse  after 
partial  conversion,  but  also  of  the  History  of  the  Jews.  The  demon  of 
idolatry  had  been  expelled  by  the  Exile;  'but  had  returned  in  the 
sevenfold  virulence  of  letter-worship,  formalism,  exclusiveness,  ambition, 
greed,  hypocrisy  and  hate;'  and  on  the  testimony  of  Josephus  himself 
the  Jews  of  that  age  were  so  bad  that  their  destruction  seemed  an  inevi- 
table retribution. 

27—32.  The  Womanly  Exclamation.    The  Peril  of  Privileges 

ABUSED. 

27.  Blessed  is  the  womb  that  bare  thee"]  See  i.  28,  48.  "How  many 
women  have  blessed  the  Holy  Virgin,  and  desired  to  be  such  a  mother 
as  she  was !  What  hinders  them?  Christ  has  made  for  us  a  wide  way 
to  this  happiness,  and  not  only  women,  but  men  may  tread  it — the  way 
of  obedience ;  this  it  is  which  makes  such  a  mother,  and  not  the  throes 
of  parturition."  St  Chrysostom.  It  is  a  curious  undesigned  coincidence 
that  (as  we  see  from  Matt.  xii.  46)  the  Virgin  had  just  arrived  upon  the 
scene. 

28.  Yea  rather,  blessed  are  they  that  hear  the  word  of  God,  and  keep 
?V]  See  viii.  21.  Our  Lord  invariably  and  systematically  discouraged 
all  attempt  to  exalt  the  merely  human  relationship  or  intercourse  with 
Him,  and  taught  that  the  Presence  of  His  Spirit  was  to  be  a  nearer 
and  more  blessed  thing  than  knowledge  of  Him  "after  the  flesh"  (John 
xiv.  i6;  2  Cor.  v.  16). 

and  keep  ?V]  Hearing  without  obedience  was  more  than  valueless, 
Matt.  vii.  21,  xii.  jo;  Rom.  ii.  13. 

29.  were  gathered]    Rather,  were  densely  gathering. 

30.  a  sign  unto  the  Ninevites']    Jonah  i.  17. 

31.  The  queen  of  the  south]  The  queen  of  Sheba  (i  K.  x.  i — 13; 
1  Chron.  ix.  i — 12).     The  visit  of  this  queen  of  Yemen  made  a  deep 


2i6  ST    LUKE,   XI.  [vv.  32—36. 

this  generation,  and  condemn  them  :  for  she  came  from  the 
utmost  parts  of  the  earth  to  hear  the  wisdom  of  Solomon; 

32  and  behold,  a  greater  than  Solomon  is  here.  The  men  of 
Nineveh  shall  rise  up  in  the  judgment  with  this  generation, 
and  shall  condemn  it :  for  they  repented  at  the  preaching  of 
Jonas ;  and  behold,  a  greater  than  Jonas  is  here. 

33 — 36.     The  Inward  Light. 

33  No  man,  when  he  hath  lighted  a  candle,  putteth  it  in 
a  secret  place,  neither  under  a  bushel,  but  on  a  candlestick, 

34  that  they  which  come  in  may  see  the  light.  The  light  of  the 
body  is  the  eye :  therefore  when  thine  eye  is  single,  thy 
whole  body  also  is  full  of  light ;  but  when  thi?te  eye  is  evil, 

35  thy  body  also  is  full  of  darkness.     Take  heed  therefore  that 

36  the  light  which  is  in  thee  be  not  darkness.     If  thy  whole 

impression  on  Oriental  imagination,  and  is  found  in  the  Koran  (xxyii., 
"&c. )  "dilated  with  nonsense  and  encumbered  with  fables." 

to  hear  the  wisdom  of  Solof}ioit'\  and  also  "to  prove  him  with  hard 
questions,"  i  Kings  x.  i. 

a  greater]     Rather,  something  more. 

32.  they  repented  at  the  preaching  of  Jonas]  "  The  people  of  Nineveh 
believed  God,  and  proclaimed  a  fast,  and  put  on  sackcloth,  from  the 
greatest  of  them  even  to  the  least  of  them,"  Jonah  iii.  5. 

33 — 36.     The  Inward  Light. 

33.  in  a  secret  place]     Rather,  in  a  crypt  or  cellar. 

under  a  InisheF]  Rather,  'under  tlie  bushel';  i.e.  the  one  in  use  in  the 
house;  and  similarly  '  the  candlestick,'  or  rather,  'lamp-stand.' 

that  they  which  come  in  may  see  the  light]  The  comparison  is  the  same 
as  in  Matt.  v.  14,  Mk.  iv.  21 ;  but  the  application  in  the  next  verse  is 
different.  The  light  is  here  used  for  inward  enlightenment,  not  to  be  seen 
afar. 

34.  The  light  of  the  body  is  the  eye]  Rather,  The  eye  is  the  candle  of 
the  iDOdy,  since  the  word  is  the  same  as  in  the  last  verse. 

therefore  ivhen  thine  eye  is  single]  The  eye  in  this  clause  is  the  'inward 
eye'  of  conscience;  the  'illuminated  eye  of  the  heart,'  Eph.  i.  17,  18. 
'Single,'  i.e.  unsophisticated;  in  its  normal  condition. 

when  thine  eye  is  evil]  The  'evil  eye'  is  especially  one  of  hate,  Rom. 
xii.  8;  Ecclus.  xiv.  8 — 10.  The  inward  eye  should  he  spirit /ml ;  when 
it  becomes  carnal  the  man  can  no  longer  sea  that  which  is  only  spiritually 
discerned,  and  he  takes  God's  wisdom  for  foolishness,  i  Cor.  ii.  14,  iii. 
18 — 20. 

35.  that  the  light  which  is  in  thee  be  not  darkness]  It  becomes  so 
v^hen  we  are  '  wise  in  our  own  conceit'  (Prov.  xvi.  12)  which  makes  us 


w.  37— 39-1  ST   LUKE,  XI.  217 

body  therefore  be  full  of  light,  having  no  part  dark,  the 
whole  shall  be  full  of  light,  as  when  the  bright  shining  of  a 
candle  doth  give  thee  light. 

37 — 54-      The  Invitation  of  the  Pharisee  and  the  open 

Rupture. 

And  as  he  spake,  a  certain  Pharisee  besought  him  to  dine  37 
with  him  :  and  he  went  in,  and  sat  down  to  meat.     And  38 
when  the  Pharisee  saw  it,  he  marvelled  that  he  had  not  first 
washed  before  dinner.     And  the  Lord  said  unto  him.  Now  39 

think  a  way  right  when  it  is  the  way  of  death  (Prov.  xvi.  ■zs),  and  makes 
us  call  evil  good,  and  good  evil,  put  darkness  for  light,  and  light  for 
darkness,  Is.  v.  20,  11. 

36.  doth  give  thee  light'\  The  spirit  of  man  is  the  candle  of  the  Lord. 
"  God  will  light  my  candle,"  Fs.  xviii.  28.  "Thy  word  is  a  lantern 
unto  my  feet."  In  these  words  we  catch  an  echo  of  those  thoughts 
on  tlie  diffusiveness  and  divineness  of  light  which  are  so  fully  developed 
in  St  John's  Gospel  (viii.  12). 

"War  nicht  das  Auge  sonnenhaft, 
Wie  konnten  wir  das  Licht  erblicken?" 

Goethe. 

37 — 54.     The  Invitation  of  the  Pharisee  and  the 
OPEN  Rupture. 

37.  besought']     Rather,  asked. 

to  dine  with  him]  The  meal  was  not  dinner  {deipnon),  but  an  earlier, 
lighter,  and  more  informal  meal  {ariston). 

he  went  in,  and  sat  do7un  to  meat]  The  words  imply  that  immediately 
He  entered  He  sat  down  to  table. .  The  meal  was  merely  some  slight 
refreshment  in  the  middle  of  the  day,  and  probably  our  Lord  was  both 
suffering  from  hunger  after  His  long  hours  of  teaching,  and  was  also 
anxious  to  save  time. 

38.  he  marvelled  that  he  had  not  first  zvasked]  Literally,  ''bathed."  No 
washing  was  necessary  to  eat  a  few  dates  or  figs.  At  the  chief  meal  of 
the  day,  where  all  dipped  their  hands  into  a  common  dish,  it  was  a 
matter  of  cleanliness.  But  the  duty  of  cleanliness  had  been  turned  by 
the  Oral  Law  into  a  rigorous  set  of  cumbersome  and  needless  ablutions, 
each  performed  with  certain  elaborate  methods  and  gesticulations  (Mk. 
vii.  2,  3)  which  had  nothing  to  do  with  religion  or  even  with  the 
Levitical  Law,  but  only  with  Pharisaic  tradition  and  the  Oral  Law.  In 
the  Shulchan  Artik,  a  book  of  Jewish  Ritual,  no  less  than  twenty-six 
prayers  are  given  with  which  their  washings  are  accompanied.  But  all 
this  was  not  only  devoid  of  divine  sanction,  but  had  become  supersti- 
tious, tyrannous,  and  futile.  The  Pharisee  '  marvelled  '  because  he  and 
his  party  tried  to  enforce  the  Oral  Law  on  the  people  as  even  more 
sacred  than  the  "Written  Law.     The  subject  of  ablutions  was  one  which 


2i8  ST   LUKE,   XI.  [w.  40—42. 

do  ye  Pharisees  make  clean  the  outside  of  the  cup  and  the 
platter ;  but  your  inward  part  is  full  of  ravening  and  wicked- 

40  ness.      Ve  fools,  did  not  he  that  made  that  w/i/c/i  is  without 

41  make  that  which  is  within  also  ?     But  rather  give  alms  of 
such  things  as  you  have ;  and  behold,  all  things  are  clean 

42  unto  you.     But  woe  unto  you,  Pharisees  !  for  ye  tithe  mint 

caused  several  of  these  disputes  with  Christ,  Matt.  xv.  19,  20.  The 
Rabbi  Akhibha  would  have  preferred  to  die  of  thirst  rather  tlian  neglect 
his  ablutions,  and  the  Talmud  thought  that  a  demon — called  Schibta — 
sat  on  unwashen  hands.  Our  Lord  astonished  the  conventionalism  of 
these  religious  teachers  and  their  followers  by  shewing  that  what  truly 
defiles  a  man  is  that  which  covaQth.  from  within — from  the  heart. 

39.  Now  do  ye  Pharisees\  Doubtless  other  circumstances  besides 
the  mere  supercilious  astonishment  of  the  Pharisee  led  to  the  vehement 
rebuke.  Tlie  eightfold  woe  in  Matt,  xxiii.  is  fuller  than  here.  Jesus 
denounces  their  frivolous  scrupulosity  (39),  combined  with  gross  in- 
sincerity (42),  their  pride  (43),  and  their  corruption  (44). 

viake  clean  the  outside  of  the  cup  and  the  plattei-]  Mk.  vii.  4,  "washing 
of  cups,  and  pots,  brazen  vessels,  and  of  tables."  On  one  occasion  the 
Sadducees  seeing  them  busied  in  washing  the  great  Golden  Candelabrum 
sneeringly  observed  that  they  would  wash  the  Sun  itself  if  they  could 
get  the  opportunity. 

yotir  iinuai-d  part  is  full  of  ravening  and  wickedness']  i.  e.  of  greed, 
and  of  the  depravity  which  causes  it.  A  slightly  different  turn  of  ex- 
pression is  given  in  Matt,  xxiii.  25,  26.  See  Excursus  VI.  on  Sects  of 
the  Jews;  and  compare  these  denunciations  with  those  delivered  in  the 
Temple  on  the  last  day  (Tuesday  in  Passion  Week)  of  the  Lord's  public 
ministry,  Matt,  xxiii.  25 — 28.  The  early  Christian  heretics  reflected 
the  character  of  these  Pharisees  in  their  mixture  of  elaborate  profession 
with  real  godlessness,  Tit.  i.  15,  16. 

40.  that  which  is  within  also'\  See  Mk.  vii.  18,  19,  which  con- 
tains our  Lord's  distinctest  utterance  in  abrogation  of  the  Levitic  Law — 
"  This  He  ?,^\di... making  all  tneats  clean." 

41.  give  alms']  See  xii.  33,  xvi.  14 ;  Matt.  vl.  3.  Almsgiving  is  only 
mentioned  as  one  typical  form  of  Charity,  v/hich  was  in  that  state  of 
society  preeminently  necessary.  Indeed  '  alms '  is  the  same  word  as 
eleemosune,  which  involves  the  idea  of  Mercy.  The  general  lesson — 
that  God  does  not  care  for  ceremonies,  in  themselves,  and  only  cares  for 
them  at  all  when  they  are  accompanied  by  sincere  goodness — is  again 
and  again  taught  in  Scripture,  i  Sam.  xv.  22  ;  Is.  Iviii.  6 — 8  ;  Mic.  vi. 
8;  Dan.  iv.  27;  Jas.  iv.  8. 

of  such  things  as  you  have\  Perhaps,  "  as  for  that  which  is  within  you, 
give  altns.'"  But  the  entire  meaning  of  the  clause  is  much  disputed. 
Some  explain  it.  Give  as  alms  Uhe  contents^  of  cup  and  platter,  and 
then  they  will  be  all  clean  without  washing.  '  It  is  Love  which  purifies, 
not  lustrations.' 

42.  ye  tithe  mint  and  rue\   Deut.  xiv.  22.     In  the  Talmud  there  are 


vv.  43— 46.]  ST   LUKE,   XI.  219 

and  rue  and  all  manner  of  \vtx\is,  and  pass  over  judgment 
and  the  love  of  God :  these  ought  ^/^  to  have  done,  and  not 
to  leave  the  other  undone. 

Woe  unto  you,   Pharisees  !    for  ye  love  the   uppermost  43 
seats  in  the  synagogues,  and  greetings  in  the  markets. 

Woe  unto  you,  scribes  and  Pharisees,  hypocrites  !  for  ye  44 
are  as  graves  which  appear  not,  and  the  men  that  walk  over 
them  are  not  aware  of  them. 

Then  answered  one  of  the  lawyers,  and  said  unto  him,  45 
Master,  thus  saying  thou  reproachest  us  also.    And  he  said,  46 

elaborate  discussions  whether  in  tithing  the  seeds  of  potherbs  one  oueht 
also  to  tithe  the  stalk,  &c. 

pass  over  judgment  attd  the  love  of  God]  Because  the  love  of  God  is  best 
shewn  by  love  to  men,  and  the  Pharisees  were  filled  with  immoral  con- 
tempt for  those  whom  they  regarded  as  less  learned  or  less  attentive  to 
scrupulosities  than  themselves.  The  Pharisees  still  exist  as  a  party 
among  Eastern  Jews,  and  are  called  Pertishim.  So  bad  is  their  character 
that  the  bitterest  term  of  reproach  in  Jerusalem  is  '  You  are  a  Parish !' 
How  little  they  have  changed  from  their  character,  as  Christ  depicted 
it,  may  be  seen  from  the  testimony  of  a  Jewish  writer.     "  They  proudly 

separate  themselves  from  the  rest  of  their  co-religionists Fanatical, 

bigoted,  intolerant,  qiiarrelsotne,  and  in  truth  irreligious,  with  them  the 
outward  observance  of  the  ceremonial  law  is  ever)'thing  ;  the  moral  law 
little  binding,  morality  itself  of  no  itnfortance"  (See  Frankl.,  yews  in 
the  East,  11.  27). 

43.  uppermost  seats]  These  were  places  in  the  synagogue  in  a  con- 
spicuous semicircle  facing  the  congregation,  and  round  the  dema  of  the 
reader,  xiv.  7 — 11;  Matt,  xxiii.  6. 

greetings  in  the  markets]  in  which  they  addressed  one  another  by 
extravagant  titles,  and  required  from  their  followers  an  exaggerated 
reverence. 

44.  hypocrites]    The  first  meaning  of  the  word  is  '  actors. ' 

as  graves  which  appear  not]  Any  contact  with  sepulchres  involved 
Levitical  uncleanness.  Hence  graves  and  tombs  were  whitewashed  that 
none  might  touch  them  unawares.  Perhaps  our  Lord  was  alluding  to 
Tiberias,  which  when  it  was  being  built  was  discovered  to  be  partly  on 
the  site  of  an  old  unsuspected  cemetery;  so  that  every  true  Jew  re- 
garded it  as  pollution  to  live  there,  and  Herod  could  only  get  it 
inhabited  partly  by  bribes,  partly  by  threats.  In  St  Matthew — seveial 
of  whose  particulars  are  differently  applied — they  are  called  '■'whitcd 
sepulchres,  fair  outside,  polluted  within.  Here  they  are  unsuspected 
graves. 

45.  one  of  the  lawyers]  See  on  vii.  30,  x.  25.  This  Scribe  thouglit 
that  Jesus  could  not  possibly  mean  to  reflect  on  the  honoured  class  who 
copied  and  expounded  the  Law. 

reproachest]    Literally,  ^^insultest"    There  was  a  difference  between 


220  ST   LUKE,   XI.  [vv.  47— 51. 

Woe  unto  you  also,  ye  lawyers  !  for  ye  lade  men  with  bur- 
dens grievous  to  be  borne,  and  ye  yourselves  touch  not  the 
burdens  with  one  of  your  fingers, 

47  Woe  unto  you  !  for  ye  build  the  sepulchres  of  the  pro- 

48  phets,  and  your  fathers  killed  them.  Truly  ye  bear  witness 
that  ye  allow  the  deeds  of  your  fathers  :  for  they  indeed 

49  killed  them,  and  ye  build  their  sepulchres.  Therefore  also 
said  the  wisdom  of  God,  I  will  send  them  prophets  and 
apostles,  and  some  of  them  they  shall  slay  and  persecute : 

50  that  the  blood  of  all  the  prophets,  which  was  shed  from  the 
foundation  of  the  world,  may  be  required  of  this  generation  ; 

51  from  the  blood  of  Abel  unto  the  blood  of  Zacharias,  which 

Pharisees  and  lawyers ;  the  position  of  the  latter  involved  more  culture 
and  distinction.  They  were  the  'divines,'  the  'theologians'  of  that 
day.  Hence  the  man's  reproach.  'Lawyer'  and  '  Scribe'  seem  to  be 
more  or  less  convertible  terms  (vs.  52,  53;  Matt,  xxiii.  13).  Jesus  here 
charges  them  with  tyrannical  insincerity  (46),  persecuting  rancour 
(47 — 51),  and  theological  arrogance  and  exclusiveness  (52). 

46.  bm-dens  grievous  to  be  boriie\  These  burdens  of  the  Oral  Law 
became  yearly  more  and  more  grievous,  till  they  were  enshrined  in  the 
boundless  pedantry  of  ceremonialism  which  tills  the  Talmud.  But  even 
at  this  period  they  were  an  intolerable  yoke  (Acts  xv.  lo),  and  the  lawyers 
had  deserved  the  Woe  pronounced  by  Isaiah  on  them  "that  decree  un- 
righteous decrees,  and  write  grievousness  which  they  have  prescribed," 
Is.  X.  I.  "Gradus:  digito  uno  attingere,  digitis  tangere,  digito  movere, 
manu  tollere,  humero  imponere.  Hoc  cogebant  populumj  illud  ipsi 
refugiebant. "    Bengal. 

47.  your  fathers  killed  the?>i\  This  is  holy  sarcasm.  They  boasted 
that  they  would  not  have  done  as  their  fathers  had  done  to  the  Prophets 
(Matt,  xxiii.  30),  yet  they  rejected  John,  the  greatest  of  the  Prophets,  and 
crucified  the  Just  One,  Acts  vii.  51,  52. 

48.  bear  7vitness...allozu\  We  find  the  same  two  words  used  of  St 
Paul  in  Acts  vii.  58,  viii.  i.  Allow  means  'approve  after  trial,'  and  is 
derived  from  allaudare.  "  The  Lord  alloweth  the  righteous,"  Ps.  xi.  6 
(Prayer- Book  Version). 

49.  the  wisdom  of  God'\  There  is  an  allusion  to  2  Chr.  xxiv.  20 — 22 
(comp.  xxxvi.  14 — 21),  but  as  the  exact  passage  nowhere  occurs  in  the 
O.  T.  some  suppose  that  our  Lord  quotes  (i)  from  a  lost  book  called 
'The  Wisdom  of  God'  (Ewald,  Bleek,  &c.) ;  or  (2),  from  previous  words 
of  His  own ;  or  (3)  from  the  Gospel  of  St  Matthew  (see  Matt,  xxiii.  34) ; 
or  (4)  from  the  Book  of  Proverbs  (i.  20 — 31).  It  is  a  general  paraphrase 
of  the  tenor  of  several  O.  T.  passages. 

some  of  them  they  shall  slay  and  persecute']    See  on  vi.  23. 
61.     unto   the   blood   of  Zacharias]     His   murder    by  Joash   is   de- 
scribed in  2  Chr.  xxiv.  20,  21,  and  also  filled  a  large  place  in  Jewish 


vv.  52—54.]  ST    LUKE,  XI.  221 

perished  between  the  altar  and  the  temple :   verily  I  say 
unto  you,  It  shall  be  required  of  this  generation. 

Woe  unto  you,  lawyers  !  for  ye  have  taken  away  the  key  s^ 
of  knowledge  ;  ye  entered  not  in  yourselves,  and  them  that 
were  entering  in  ye  hindered. 

And  as  he  said  these  things  unto  them,  the  scribes  and  S3 
the  Pharisees  began  to  urge  hi7n  vehemently,  and  to  provoke 
him  to  speak  of  many  thijigs  :  laying  wait  for  him,  and  seek-  S4 
ing  to  catch  something  out  of  his  mouth,  that  they  might 
accuse  him. 


legends.  The  words  "  the  son  of  Barachiah,"  in  Matt,  xxiii.  35,  are 
probably  an  erroneous  gloss  which  has  crept  from  the  margin  into 
the  text.  The  murdered  Zacharias  was  the  son  of  the  High  Priest 
Jehoiada;  the  Prophet  Zechariah  was  a  son  of  Barachiah,  but  died,  so 
far  as  we  know,  a  natural  death  ;  and  the  Zechariah  son  of  Barachiali, 
who  was  murdered  by  the  Zealots,  did  not  die  till  forty  years  later  than 
this  time.  The  allusions  are  all  the  more  striking  from  the  direct  refer- 
ences to  retribution  in  these  two  instances,  and  from  the  fact  that  they 
are  drawn  from  the  first  and  last  historical  books  of  the  O.  T.  (Gen.  iv. 
10;  2  Chr.  xxiv.  22). 

52.  ye  have  taken  away  the  key  of  kno'ivledge\  A  key  was  the 
regular  symbol  of  the  function  of  a  scribe  (Matt.  xiii.  52,  xvi.  19), 
which  was  to  open  the  meaning  of  the  Holy  Books.  The  crime  charged 
against  them  here  is  their  selfish  exclusiveness.  They  declared  that 
only  rich  and  well-born  people  could  be  scribes ;  and  while  they 
refused  to  teach  the  mass  of  the  people,  they  at  the  same  time  called 
them  '  accursed '  for  not  knowing  the  law,  and  spoke  about  them  in 
terms  of  the  bitterest  scorn  and  detestation.  "Ye  have  caused  many  to 
stumble  at  the  law,"  Mai.  ii.  8. 

53.  And  as  he  said  these  things']  Rather  (with  N,  B,  C,  L),  when 
He  had  gone  forth  from  thence.  The  Pharisees  in  their  anger  fol- 
lowed Him. 

to  urge  him  vehemently']  It  is  clear  from  this  and  the  following 
verse  that  the  Pharisee's  feast  had  been  a  base  plot  to  entrap  Jesus. 
None  of  His  disciples  seem  to  have  been  with  Him,  nor  any  of  the 
people  ;  and  after  these  stern  rebukes  the  Pharisees  surrounded  Him  in 
a  most  threatening  and  irritating  manner,  in  "a  scene  of  violence 
perhaps  unique  in  the  Life  of  Jesus. 

to  provoke  him  to  speak  of  many  things]  Perhaps  "  to  cross-question 
Him,"  or  to  catch  words  from  His  mouth  about  very  many  things. 
The  classical  sense  of  the  verb  apostomatizcin  is  '  to  dictale.' 

54.  to  catch]  Literally,  ' 'to  hunt. "  They  were  meml  )crs  of  a  body  of 
a  sort  of  'commission  of  enquiry'  which  had  been  sent  from  Jerusalem 
for  this  express  purpose,  Mk.  xii.  13. 


222 ST   LUKE,   XII.  [w.  1—4. 

Ch.  XII.      I — 12.      The  Duty  of  bold  Sincerity  and  Trust 

in  God. 

12  _    In  the  mean  time,  when  there  were  gathered  together  an 

innumerable  multitude  of  people,  insomuch  that  t)iey  trode 

one  upon  another,  he  began  to  say  unto  his  disciples  first  of 

all,  Beware  ye  of  the  leaven  of  the  Pharisees,  which   is 

2  hypocrisy.     For  there  is  nothing  covered,  that  shall  not  be 

3  revealed  ;  neither  hid,  that  shall  not  be  known.  Therefore 
whatsoever  ye  have  spoken  in  darkness  shall  be  heard  in 
the  light;    and  that  which  ye  have  spoken  in  the  ear  in 

4  closets  shall  be  proclaimed  upon  the  housetops.     And  I  say 

Ch.  XII.      1—12.      The  Duty  of  bold  Sincerity  and  Trust 

IN  God. 

1.  when  there  were  gathered  together  an  innumerable  multitude  of 
people]  Rather,  when  the  myriads  of  the  mtiltitude  had  suddenly 
assembled.  It  is  evident  that  the  noise  of  this  disgraceful  attack 
on  our  Lord  had  been  heard.  This  scene  was  as  it  were  the  watershed 
of  our  Lord's  ministry  in  Galilee.  At  this  period  He  had  excited  intense 
opposition  among  the  religious  authorities,  but  was  still  beloved  and 
revered  by  the  people.  They  therefore  flocked  together  for  His  pro- 
tection, and  their  arrival  hushed  the  unseemly  and  hostile  vehemence 
of  the  Pharisees. 

they  trode  one  upon  another']     Literally,  ^' trod  one  another  down." 

he  began  to  say\  The  words  seem  to  imply  a  specially  solemn  and 
important  discourse. 

unto  his  disciples  first  of  all,  Beware]  Rather,  to  His  disciples,  Be- 
ware first  of  all  of,  <S:c. 

the  leaven  of  the  Pharisees]  See  for  comment  Matt.  xvi.  12;  Mark 
viii.  15. 

2.  For  there  is  nothing  covei'ed,  that  shall  not  be  revealed]  Rather, 
But  (unless  with  N  we  omit  the  5e  altogether).  This  whole  discourse, 
in  its  vividness  and  compression,  and  the  apparent  abruptness  of  some 
of  its  causal  connexions,  indicates  the  tumult  of  emotion  through  which 
our  Lord  had  been  passing  in  the  last  trying  scene.  The  line  of  thought 
is— '  Hypocrisy  aims  at  concealment ;  but,  &c.'  Hypocrisy  is  not  only 
sinful  but  useless. 

covered— revealed]  Literally,  *'  veiled  over— unveiled."  You  will  be 
made  responsible  for  any  part  of  my  teaching  which  you  conceal  or  keep 
back. 

3.  whatsoever  ye  have  spoken  in  darkness]  The  application  of  the 
similar  language  in  Matt.  x.  26,  Mark  iv.  22,  is  different.  See 
viii.  17. 

in  closets]  Literally,  "z«  the  treasuries  or  storehoi*ses,"  i.e.  in  closed, 
secret  places. 


5]  ST   LUKE,   XII.  223 


unto  you  my  friends,  Be  not  afraid  of  them  that  kill  the 
body,  and  after  that  have  no  more  that  they  can  do.     But  I  5 
will  >r<?warn  you  whom  you  shall  fear:  Fear  him,  which 
after  he  hath  killed  hath  power  to  cast  into  hell ;  yea,  I  say 

upon  the  housetops]  i.e.  in  the  most  public  places  of  resort,  so  as  to 
be  heard  in  the  streets  below. 

4.  my  friends]  ^  John  xv.  14,  15,  "Henceforth  I  call  you  not  ser- 
vants but  friends.'''  The  term  comes  the  more  naturally  and  patheti- 
cally because  Jesus  had  just  been  in  the  thick  of  enemies. 

Be  not  afraid  of]  fiij  (po^y^driTe  airb,  i.e.  afraid  of  anything  which 
can  come /row  them.  This  construction  is  only  found  in  the  LXX.  and 
N.T.,  and  is  a  Hebraism  (v.  Schleusner  s.  v.).  For  similar  thoughts 
see  Jer.  i.  8;  Is.  li.  12,  13. 

after  that  have  no  more  that  they  can  do]  The  same  truth  was  an 
encouragement  to  the  partially  illuminated  fortitude  of  Stoicism.  Hence 
it  constantly  occurs  in  the  Manual  of  Epictetus. 

6.  Fear  him,  which  after  he  hath  killed]  Many  commentators  have 
understood  this  expression  of  the  Devil,  and  one  of  the  Fathers  goes  so 
far  as  to  say  that  it  is  the  only  passage  in  the  Bible  in  which  we  cannot 
be  certain  whether  God  or  Satan  is  intended.  There  can,  however,  be 
no  doubt  that  the  reference  is  to  God.  If  "fear"  ever  meant  'be  on 
your  guard  against, '  the  other  view  might  be  tenable,  but  there  is  no 
instance  of  such  a  meaning,  and  we  are  bidden  to  defy  and  resist  the 
Devil,  but  never  to  fear  him ;  nor  are  we  ever  told  that  he  has  any 
power  to  cast  into  Gehenna. 

to  cast  into  hell]  Rather,  Into  Gehenna.  It  is  a  deep  misfortune 
that  our  English  Version  has  made  no  consistent  difference  of  rendering 
between  '  the  place  of  the  dead,'  '  the  intermediate  state  between  death 
and  resurrection '  {Hades,  Sheol),  and  Gehenna,  which  is  sometimes 
metaphorically  used  (as  here)  for  a  place  of  punishment  after  death. 
Gehenna  was  a  purely  Hebrew  word,  and  corresponded  primarily  to 
purely  Hebrew  conceptions.  Our  Lord  (if  He  spoke  Greek)  did  not 
attempt  to  represent  it  by  any  analogous,  but  imperfectly  equivalent, 
Greek  term  like  Tartarus  (see  1  Pet.  ii.  4),  and  certainly  tiie  Apostles 
and  Evangelists  did  not.  They  simply  transliterated  the  Hebrew  term 
(□On  ''J,  Gt  Hinnom,  Valley  of  Hinnom)  into  Greek  letters.  It  is  surely 
a  plain  positive  duty  to  follow  so  clear  an  example,  and  not  to  render 
Gehenna  by  English  terms  which  cannot  connote  exactly  the  same  con- 
ceptions. The  Valley  of  Hinnom,  or  of  the  Sons  of  Hinnom  (Josh.  xv. 
8,  xviii.  16;  2  K.  xxiii.  10;  Jer.  vii.  31),  was  a  pleasant  valley  outside 
Jerusalem,  which  had  first  been  rendered  infamous  by  Moloch  worship; 
then  defiled  by  Josiah  with  corpses ;  and  lastly  kept  from  putrefaction 
by  large  fires  to  consume  the  corpses  and  prevent  pestilence.  Milton 
describes  it  with  his  usual  learned  accuracy  : 

"First  Moloch,  horrid  king,   besmeared  with  blood 
Of  human  sacrifice,  and  parents'  tears ; 
Though  for  the  noise  of  drums  and  timbrels  loud 


lO 


224  ST   LUKE,   XII.  [w.  6— II. 

6  unto  you,  P'ear  him.     Are  not  five  sparrows  sold  for  two  far- 

7  tilings,"^ and  not  one  of  them  is  forgotten  before  God?  But 
even  the  very  hairs  of  your  head  are  all  numbered.  Fear 
not  therefore :  ye  are  of  more  value  than  many  sparrows. 

8  Also  I  say  unto  you,  Whosoever  shall  confess  me  before 
men,  him  shall  the  Son  of  man    also  confess  before  the 

9  angels  of  God  :  but  he  that  denieth  me  before  men  shall  be 
denied  before  the  angels  of  God.  And  whosoever  shall 
speak  a  word  against  the  Son  of  man,  it  shall  be  forgiven 
him  :    but  unto   him  that  blasphemeth   against  the  Holy 

II  Ghost  it  shall  not  be  forgiven.     And  when  they  bring  you 

Their  children's  cries  unheard  that  passed  through  fire' 

To  his  grim  idol 

and  made  his  grove 
The  pleasant  Valley  of  Hinnom,  Tophet  thence 
And  black  Gehenna  called,  the  type  of  Hell." 

Par.  Lost,  i.  392. 

Tophet  is  derived  from  the  word  Toph  '  a  drum '  (compare  t^tttw,  dtib, 
thump,  &c.). 

6.  Are  not  five  sparrows  sold  for  two  farthings^  St  Matthew  says 
'■two  sparrows  for  one  farthing.'  The  little  birds  were  sold  in  the  markets 
strung  together,  or  on  skewers.  The  varying  expressions  of  St  Matthew 
and  St  Luke  lead  us  to  the  interesting  fact  that  if  five  were  bought  one 
was  thrown  {71,  which  still  more  forcibly  proves  how  insignificant  was 
the  value  of  the  sparrows;  yet  even  that  unvalued  odd  one  was  not 
"forgotten  before  God."  The  word  for  "farthings"  is  assaria;  St 
Mark  uses  KoSpavriji  {quadrans),  xii.  42. 

7.  even  the  very  hairs  of  your  headi  See  xxi.  18;  Acts  xxvii.  34; 
and  in  the  O.  T.  i  Sam.  xiv.  45;  i  K.  i.  52. 

8.  before  the  angels  of  God]  Compare  ix.  26.  "Before  my  Father 
which  is  in  heaven,"  Matt.  x.  32. 

10.  it  shall  be  forgiven  hititl  Thus  our  Lord  prayed  even  for  His 
murderers  This  large  rich  promise  is  even  further  amplified  in  Matt, 
xii.  31.  It  is  the  sign  of  a  dispensation  different  from  that  of  Moses, 
Lev.  xxiv.  16. 

unto  him  that  blasphemeth  against  the  Holy  Ghost]  The  other  pas- 
sages in  which  mention  is  made  of  this  awful  'unpardonable  sin'  and 
of  the  "blasphemy  against  the  Holy  Ghost"  are  Matt.  xii.  31,  32; 
Mark  iii.  29,  30;  i  John  v.  16.  The  latter  sin  is  expressly  declared  to 
be  closely  connected  with  the  attributing  of  Christ's  miracles  to  Beel- 
zebub On  the  exact  nature  of  the  'unpardonable  sin'  theologians  have 
speculated  in  vain,  and  all  that  we  can  see  is  that  it  must  be  the  most 
flagrant  degree  of  sin  against  the  fullest  light  and  knowledge. 

it  shall  not  be  forgiven]  St  Matthew  adds  "neither  in  this  age  (or 
'this  dispensation'),  nor  in  the  age  to  come  (the  'future  dispensation,' 
i,e.  the  dispensation  of  the  Messianic  kingdom)."  The  two  terms  'this 


vv.  12—15.]  ST   LUKE,   XII. 


22  C 


unto  the  synagogues,  and  unto  magistrates,  and  powers, 
take  ye  no  thought  how  or  what  thing  ye  shall  answer,  or 
what  ye  shall  say :  for  the  Holy  Ghost  shall  teach  you  in 
the  same  hour  what  ye  ought  to  say. 

13 — 21.     Egotism  rebuked.     The  Rich  Fool. 

And  one  of  the  company  said  unto  him,  Master,  speak  to 
my  brother,  that  he  divide  the  inheritance  with  me.  And 
he  said  unto  him,  Man,  who  made  me  a  judge  or  a  divider 
over  you  ?  And  he  said  unto  them,  Take  heed,  and  beware 
of  covetousness :    for  a  man's   life  consisteth   not   in   the 

aeon'  and  'the  future  aeon'  are  oi constant  occurrence  in  Rabbinic  lite- 
rature. The  passage — if  it  means  more  than  '  in  either  dispensation ' — 
proves,  as  St  Augustine  says,  that  some  would  be  forgiven  if  not  in  this 
life  yet  in  the  next  (De  Civ.  Dei,  xxi.  24). 

11.  unto  the  synagogues,  and  unto  magistrates,  and  poivers\  The 
'synagogues'  were  the  small  Jewish  tribunals  of  synagogue  officials  in 
every  town,  which  had  the  power  of  inflicting  scourging  for  minor  reli- 
gious offences.  'Magistrates'  and  'powers'  would  be  the  superior 
authorities  Jewish  or  Gentile. 

take  ye  no  thought']     Rather,  be  not  anxiously  careful. 
how  or  what  thing\   i.e.  about  either  the  manner  and  line,  or  the 
phraseology  of  your  defence. 

12.  the  Holy  Ghost  shall  teach  you]  A  similar  promise  had  been 
given  to  Moses,  Ex.  iv.  12 — 15;  see  xxi.  15.  For  fulfilments  of  the 
promise,  see  Acts  vi.  8,  10  (St  Stephen);  2  Tim.  iv.  17  (St  Paul),  &c. 

13—21.    Egotism  rebuked.    The  Rich  Fool. 

13.  Master,  speak  to  my  brother]  This  was  the  most  foolish  and 
unwarrantable  interpellation  ever  made  to  our  Lord.  The  few  words 
at  once  reveal  to  us  an  egotist  incapable  of  caring  for  anything  but 
his  own  selfishness. 

that  ke  divide  the  inheritance  with  me]     Deut.  xxi.  15 — 17. 

14.  Man]     The  word  is  sternly  repressive.     Comp.  Rom.  ii.  I. 
■who  fnade  me  a  judge]     "My  kingdom  is  not  of  this  world,"  John 

xviii.  36. 

or  a  divider]  i.e.  umpire,  arbitrator.  There  is  an  evident  allusion  to 
Ex.  ii.  14. 

16.  bervare  of  covetousness]  The  better  reading  is  "of  all  covetous- 
ness," i.e.  not  only  beware  of  avarice,  but  also  of  selfish  possession.  Ikith 
the  O.  and  N.  T.  abound  with  repetitions  of  this  warning.  Balaam, 
Achan,  Gehazi  are  awful  examples  of  this  sin  in  the  O.  T.;  Judas  I  sea- 
riot,  the  Pharisees  and  Ananias  in  the  New.     See  i  Tim.  vi.  10 — 17. 

a  man's  life  consisteth  not]  i.e.  a  man's  true  life— his  zoc:  his  earthly 
natural  life— his  bios,  is  supported  by  what  he  has,  but  his  zoe  is  what 

ST  LUKE  1 5 


226  ST   LUKE,  XII.  [vv.  16—19. 

16  abundance  of  the  things  which  he  possesseth.  And  he  spake 
a  parable  unto  them,  saying,  The  ground  of  a  certain  rich 

37  man  brought  forth  plentifully :  and  he  thought  within  him- 
self, saying,  What  shall  I  do,  because  I  have  no  room  where 

i8  to  bestow  my  fruits  ?  And  he  said,  This  will  I  do :  I  will 
pull  down  my  barns,  and  build  greater;  and  there  will  I 

19  bestow  all  my  fruits  and  my  goods.  And  I  will  say  to  my 
soul,  Soul,  thou  hast  much  goods  laid  up  for  many  years ; 


he  is.  Such  phrases  as  that  a  man  'is  ■worth'  so  many  thousands  a 
year,  revealing  the  current  of  worldly  thought,  shew  how  much  this 
warning  is  needed.  The  order  of  words  in  this  paragraph  is  curious. 
It  is  literally,  "  For  not  in  any  man's  abundatice  is  his  life  (deiived) 
from  his  possessions''  or  (as  De  Wette  takes  it)  "is  his  life  a  part  o/"his 
possessions."  The  English  Version  well  represents  the  sense.  Comp. 
Sen.  ad Helv.  ix.  9,  "  Corporis  exigua  desideria  sunt....  Quicquid  extra 
concupiscitur,  vitiis  non  usibus  laboratur." 

16.  The  ground^  Rather,  The  estate.  In  this  parable  (peculiar  to 
St  Luke)  our  Lord  evidently  referred  mentally  to  the  story  of  Nabal, 
whose  name  means  'Fool'  or  'Churl'  (i  Sam.  xxv.).  Observe  that 
his  riches,  like  those  of  Nabal,  were  acquired,  not  by  fraud  or  oppres- 
sion, but  in  the  most  innocent  way.  His  crime  was  his  greedy  and 
callous  selfishness.  He  cared  not  for  generous  use,  but  for  self-admiring 
acquisition.  Being  "a  fool"  his  "prosperity  destroyed  him."  Pro  v. 
i.   32. 

17.  What  shall  I  do"]  "He  that  loveth  silver  shall  not  be  satisfied 
with  silver,  nor  he  that  loveth  abundance  with  increase,"  Eccl.  v.  10. 

my  fruit  si  So  "  wy  barns,"  "wj/ fruits  and  w^y  goods,"  and  ^' my 
soul."  This  touch  is  evidently  intended  and  is  most  vividly  natural. 
So  Nabal  says,  "Shall  I  then  take  my  bread,  and  my  water,  and  my 
flesh  that  I  have  killed  for  my  shearers,"  &c.,  i  Sam.  xxv.  11.     So 

"Their  child."    " (9«<r  child !"    "Cz^r  heiress!"    " 0/^rj./"  for  still 
Like  echoes  from  beyond  a  hollow,  came 
Her  sicklier  iteration."     Aybner's  Field. 

18.  my  barns']  Rather,  storehouses  (apothekas — not  only  for  corn)'. 
He  never  thought  of  the  admonition  of  the  Son  of  Sirach,  "Shut  up 
alms  in  thy  storehouses,"  Ecclus.  xxix.  12. 

my  fi'iiits']     Not  the  same  word  as  before.     Rather,  my  produce. 
my  goods]     Such   'good  things'  as  he  was  alone  capable  of  recog- 
nising, xvi.  25.     And  "all  tny  goods,"  with  no  mention  of  the  poor. 

19.  I  will  say  to  my  soul,  Soul]  "What  folly!  Had  thy  soul  been 
a  sty,  what  else  couldst  thou  have  promised  ^o  it?  Art  thou  so  bestial, 
so  ignorant  of  the  soul's  goods,  that  thou  pledgest  it  the  foods  of  the 
flesh?  And  dost  thou  convey  to  thy  soul,  the  things  which  the  draught 
receiveth?"     St  Basil. 

for  many  years]     "Boast  not  thyself  of  tomorrow,"  Prov,  xxvii.  1. 


w.  20—22.]  ST   LUKE,  XII. 


take  thine  ease,  eat,  drink,  and  be  merry.     But  God  said  ao 
unto  him,  Thou  fool,  this  night  thy  soul  shall  be  required  of 
thee :  then  whose  shall  those  things  be,  which  thou  hast  pro- 
vided?    So  zs  he  that  layeth  up  treasure  for  himself,  and  is  2. 
not  rich  towards  God. 

22—53.  Lessons  of  Trustfulness  (22—32),  Almsiriving  {t,2>, 
34),  and  Faithful  Watchftdness  (35—48).  The  search- 
ing Effect  of  Chrisfs  Work  (49—53). 

And  he  said  unto  his  disciples,  Therefore  I  say  unto  you,  22 
Take  no  thought  for  your  Hfe,  what  ye  shall  eat ;  ncitlicr 

take  thine  ease,  eat,  drink,  and  be  merrji]  More  energetically  in  the 
four  words  of  the  original,  rest,  eat,  drink,  enjoy.  His  moiivc  is  the 
same  as  that  of  the  selfish  and  cynical  Epicureans,  who  say,  "Let  us 
eat  and  drink;"  but  the  reason  he  assigns  is  different.  They  snatch 
pleasure,  "for  to  morrow  we  die"  (i  Cor.  xv.  32);  he  because  he  hopes 
to  be  "happy"  for  "many  years."  For  similar  warnings  see  Jas.  iv. 
13—17.  V.  1—3;  Eccl.  xi.  9. 

20.  Thou  fool]     "LiiQmWy,  '"Setiseless!"     i  Cor.  xv.  36. 
this  night]     Compare  the  death  of  Nabal,   i  Sam.  xxv.  36. 

thy  soul  shall  be  required  of  thee]  Rather,  they  demand  thy  soul  of 
thee.  Who  are  'they'?  Some  say  God  (Job  xxvii.  8),  or  His  death- 
angels  (Job  xxxiii.  22),  or  robbers  whom  they  suppose  to  nttnck  the  rich 
man  on  the  night  that  his  wealth  has  flowed  in.  There  is  however  no 
definite  pronoun,  the  phrase  is  impersonal,  as  often  in  Hebrew. 

then  whose  shall  those  things  be]  "He  heapeth  up  riches  and  knoweth 
not  who  shall  gather  them,"  Ps.  xxxix.  6,  xlix.  16,  17;  comp.  lii.  7  and 
James  iv.  13 — 15.  St  James  seems  to  have  been  deeply  impressed  with 
this  teaching. 

21.  is  not  rich  towards  God]  Rather,  if  he  is  not.  Weare  often  taught 
elsewhere  in  Scripture  in  what  way  we  can  be  rich  toward  God.  Malt, 
vi.  19 — 21;  I  Tim.  vi.  17 — 19;  Jas.  ii.  5.  There  is  a  close  parallel  to 
this  passage  in  Ecclus.  xi.  18,  19,  "There  is  that  waxeth  rich  by  his 
wariness  and  pinching,  and  this  is  the  portion  of  his  reward.  I. ike- 
wise  he  saith,  I  have  found  rest,  and  now  will  eat  continually  of  my 
goods,  and  yet  he  knoweth  not  what  time  shall  come  ujjon  him,  and 
that  he  must  leave  those  things  to  others,  and  die."  This  would  seem 
to  shew  that  our  Lord  was  not  unfamiliar  with  some  of  the  Apocryphal 
writings. 

22 — 53.  Lessons  of  Trustfulness  (22 — 32),  Almsgiving  (33,  34), 
AND  Faithful  Watchfulness  (35 — 48).  The  searchi.ng 
Effect  of  Christ's  Work  (49 — 53). 

22.  Take  no  thought]  This  rendering  is  7tow  unfortunate,  since  it 
might  be  abused  to  encourage  an  immoral  carelessness  (i  Tim.  v.  8). 

1^—2 


228  ST    LUKE,   XII.  [vv.  23—32. 

23  for  the  body,  what  ye  shall  put  on.     The  life  is  more  than 

24  meat,  and  the  body  is  more  than  raiment.  Consider  the 
ravens  :  for  they  neither  sow  nor  reap  ;  which  neither  have 
storehouse  nor  barn ;  and  God  feedeth  them :  how  much 

25  more  are  ye  better  than  the  fowls  ?     And  which  of  you  with 

26  taking  thought  can  add  to  his  stature  one  cubit  ?  If  ye  then 
be  not  able  to  do  that  thi?ig  which   is  least,  why  take  ye 

27  thought  for  the  rest  ?  Consider  the  lilies  how  they  grow  : 
they  toil  not,  they  spin  not ;  and  yet  I  say  unto  you,  that 
Solomon  in  all  his  glory  was  not  arrayed  like  one  of  these. 

28  If  then  God  so  clothe  the  grass,  which  is  to  day  in  the  field, 
and  to  morrow  is  cast  into  the  oven ;  how  much  more  will 

29  he  clothe  you,  O  ye  of  little  faith  ?  And  seek  not  ye  what  ye 
shall  eat,  or  what  ye  shall  drink,  neither  be  ye  of  doubtful 

30  mind.  For  all  these  things  do  the  nations  of  the  world  seek 
after :  and  your  Father  knoweth  that  ye  have  need  of  these 

31  things.     But  rather  seek  ye  the  kingdom  of  God  ;  and  all 

32  these  things  shall  be  added  unto  you.    Fear  not,  little  flock; 

But  in  the  17th  century  thought  was  used  for  care  (r  Sam.  ix.  5).  See 
The  Bible  Word-Book,  s.v.  Rather,  Be  not  anxious  about.  "Cast 
thy  burden  upon  the  Lord  and  He  shall  sustain  thee,"  Ps.  Iv.  22  ; 
I  Pet.  V.  7. 

23.  The  life  is  more  than  meat,  &c.]  and  the  spirit  is  more  than 
either  the  body,  or  the  natural  life. 

24.  the  ravens']  More  specific,  and  therefore  more  poetic,  than  "the 
fowls"  in  St  Matthew.  Perhaps  there  is  a  reference  to  Job  xxxviii.  41; 
Ps.  cxlv.  15. 

25.  to  his  stature'\  Some  would  here  render  the  word  rfKuda, 
'age'  (comp.  Ps.  xxxix.  5);  but   'stature'  is  probably  right. 

27.  the  lilies']  The  term  is  perfectly  general.  The  scarlet  3.nt- 
raonts  [atiemone  coroiiaria),  or  the  'Huleh  lilies'  growing  around  may 
have  given  point  to  the  lesson.     (Thomson,  Land  and  Book,  p.  256.) 

Solomon  in  all  his  glory]  i  K.  iii.  13,  x.  i — 29,  and  for  a  splendid 
description  of  his  progresses  in  the  royal  chariot  Cant.  iii.  6 — 11. 

28.  the  grass... in  the  field]  The  common  Scripture  symbol  for 
evanescence,  Is.  xl.  6 ;   i  Pet.  i.  24;  Jas.  i.  10,  11. 

is  cast  into  the  oven]  In  the  absence  of  wood  this  is  the  usual  me- 
thod of  heating  ovens  in  the  East. 

29.  neither  be  ye  of  doubtful  i7iind]  Literally,  "Do  not  toss  about 
like  boats  in  the  offing," — a  metaphor  for  suspense.  Cicero  says,  "  So 
I  am  in  suspense  {fier^wpos)  and  entangled  in  great  perplexities."  Ad 
Att.  XV.  14. 

30.  the  nations  of  the  world]  But  you  have  not  the  same  excuse 
that  the  heathen  have  for  over-anxiety  about  transient  needs. 


w.  33-38-]  ST   LUKE,   XII. 


229 


for  it  is  your  Father's  good  pleasure  to  give  you  the  king- 
dom.    Sell  that  ye  have,  and  give  alms ;  provide  yourselves  33 
bags  which  wax  not  old,  a  treasure  in  the  heavens  that  faileth 
not,  where  no  thief  approacheth,  neither  moth  corrupteth. 
For  where  your  treasure  is,  there  will  your  heart  be  also.        34 
Let  your  loins  be  girded  about,  and  your  lights  burning ;  35 
and  ye  yourselves  like  unto  men  that  wait  for  their  lord,  36 
when  he  will  return  from  the  wedding;  that  when  he  cometh 
and  knocketh,  they  may  open  unto  him  immediately.  Blessed  37 
are  those  servants,  whom  the  lord  when  he  cometh  shall  find 
watching :  verily  I  say  unto  you,  that  he  shall  gird  himself, 
and  make  them  to  sit  down  to  meat,  and  will  come  forth 
and  serve  them.     And  if  he  shall  come  in  the  second  watch,  38 
or  come  in  the  third  watch,  and  find  them  so,  blessed  are 


32.  little  flock^  The  address  was  primarily  to  disciples,  vs.  i.  For 
the  metaphor,  see  Ps.  xxiii.  i;  Is.  xl.  11;  Matt.  xxvi.  31;  John  x. 
12 — 16. 

the  kingdoni\     How  much  more  shall  He  give  you  bread. 

33.  Sell  that  ye  have]  This  command  was  taken  very  literally  by 
the  early  Church,  Acts  ii.  44,  45.     Comp.  xvi.  9;  Matt.  xix.  21. 

35.  Let  your  loins  be  girded]  Witliout  which  active  service  is  im- 
possible in  the  loose  flowing  dress  of  the  East  (Ex.  xii.  11 ;  i  K.  xviii. 
46) ;  and  spiritually,  for  the  Christian  amid  worldly  entanglements, 
I  Pet.  i.  13;  Eph.  vi.  14. 

your  lights  btD-ning]  The  germ  of  the  Parable  of  the  Ten  Virgins,  Matt. 

XXV.   I. 

36.  when  he  will  return  from  the  wedding]  The  word  here  used 
{pote  analusei)  is  very  rare,  occurring  only  in  Phil.  i.  23 ;  2  Tim.  iv.  6. 
Here  there  is  a  variation  from  the  commoner  metaphor  of  going  to  the 
wedding  feast. 

37.  he  shall  gird  himself ,  and  tnake  them  to  sit  doivnto  meat]  Doubt- 
less some  of  the  Apostles  must  have  recalled  these  words  when  Jesus 
washed  their  feet.  To  Roman  readers  the  words  would  recall  the 
customs  of  their  Saturnalia  when  slaves  were  waited  on  by  their  masters. 

38.  come  in  the  second  watch,  or  come  in  the  third  tuatch]  It  is  not 
clear,  nor  very  important,  whether  St  Luke  here  alludes  to  the  three 
watches  of  the  Jews  and  Greeks  (Lam.  ii.  19  ;  Judg.  vii.  19;  Ex.  xiv.  24) 
or  to  'Ca^four  of  the  Romans  (Jerome,  Ep.  CXL.).  But  it  is  very  impor- 
tant to  observe  that  often  as  our  Lord  bade  His  disciples  to  be  ready 
for  His  return.  He  as  often  indicates  that  His  return  might  be  long 
delayed,  Matt.  xxv.  5 — 19.  He  always  implied  that  He  should  come 
suddenly  (xxi.  34 — 36;  i  Thess.  v.  2 — 6;  Rev.  iii.  3)  but  not  necessarily 
soon,  vs.  46;  2  Pet.  iii.  8,  9.  "The  Parousia  does  not  come  so  quickly 
as  impatience,  nor  yet  so  late  as  carelessness,  supposes."  Van  Oosterzee. 


230  ST    LUKE,    XII.  [w.  39—46. 

39  those  servants.  And  this  know,  that  if  the  goodman  of  the 
house  had  known  what  hour  the  thief  would  come,  he  would 
have  watched,  and  not  have  suffered  his  house  to  be  broken 

40  through.  Be  ye  therefore  ready  also  :  for  the  Son  of  man 
cometh  at  an  hour  when  ye  think  not. 

41  Then  Peter  said  unto  him,  Lord,  speakest  thou  this  para- 

42  ble  unto  us,  or  even  to  all  ?     And  the  Lord  said, 

Who  then  is  that  faithful  and  wise  steward,  whom  his  lord 
shall  make  ruler  over  his  household,  to  give  them  their  por- 

43  tion  of  meat  in  due  season  ?     Blessed  is  that  servant,  whom 

44  his  lord  when  he  cometh  shall  find  so  doing.  Of  a  truth 
I  say  unto  you,  that  he  will  make  him  ruler  over  all  that  he 

45  hath.  But  and  if  that  servant  say  in  his  heart.  My  lord 
delayeth  his  coming;  and  shall  begin  to  beat  the  men- 
servants  and  maidens,  and  to  eat   and  drink,  and  to  be 

46  drunken  ;  the  lord  of  that  servant  will  come  in  a  day  when 
he  looketh  not  for  hitn,  and  at  an  hour  when  he  is  not  ware, 
and  will  cut  him  in  sunder,  and  will  appoint  him  his  por- 

39.     this  kno%v\    Rather,  this  ye  know. 

the  goodman  of  the  house\  An  archaic  expression  for  the  master  of 
the  house,  the  paterfamilias.  It  is  said  to  be  a  corruption  of  the  Saxon 
giimman  'a  vciz.n,''  good  wife  being  formed  from  it  by  false  analogy. 

to  be  broken  through^  Literally,  '  Vc?  be  dug  through,''^  the  houses  being 
often  of  mud. 

41.  Then  Peter  said  unto  hipn]  Peter's  intercourse  with  his  Lord 
seems  to  have  been  peculiarly  frank  and  fearless,  in  accordance  with  his 
character.  In  the  immaturity  of  the  disciples  we  may  suppose  that  the 
blessing  on  the  faithful  servants  mainly  prompted  his  question.  But  if 
so  the  lesson  of  our  Lord  was  by  no  means  lost  on  him,  i  Pet.  v.  3, 
and  passim. 

42.  IVho  then  is  that  faithfid  and  wise  steward]  Our  Lord,  in 
the  deeply  instructive  method  which  He  often  adopted,  did  not  answer 
the  question,  but  taught  the  only  lesson  which  was  needful  for  the  ques- 
tioner.  St  Paul  perhaps  refers  to  these  words  of  Christ  in  i  Cor.  iv.  i,  1. 

their  portion  of  meat  in  due  season]  "Take  heed  therefore  unto 
yourselves,  and  to  all  the  flock  over  which  the  Holy  Ghost  hath  made 
you  overseers,  to  feed  the  church  of  God,"  Acts  xx.  28. 

44.  ruler  over  all  that  he  hath]     See  xxii.  29,  30. 

45.  say  in  his  heai-t,  My  lord  delayeth  his  coining]  Eccl.  viii.  n. 
It  was  not  long  before  the  temptation  to  use  this  language  arose  with  fatal 
results,  2  Pet.  iii.  8,  9. 

46.  will  cut  him  in  sunder]  This  was  literally  a  punishment  prevalent 
among  some  ancient  nations,  2  Sam.  xii.  31;  i  Chr.  xx.  3;  Dan.  ii.  5; 
Herod,  vii.  39.    Comp.  Hebr.  xi.  37  (the  legendary  martyrdom  of  Isaiah) 


w.  47— 5°]  ST   LUKE,   XII.  231 

tion  with  the  unbelievers.  And  that  servant,  which  knew  47 
his  lord's  will,  and  prepared  not  himself,  neither  did  accord- 
ing to  his  will,  shall  be  beaten  with  many  stripes.  But  he  48 
that  knew  not,  and  did  commit  things  worthy  of  stripes,  shall 
be  beaten  with  few  stripes.  For  unto  whomsoever  much  is 
given,  of  him  shall  be  much  required :  and  to  whom  men 
have  committed  much,  of  him  they  will  ask  the  more. 

I  am  come  to  send  fire  on  the  earth ;  and  what  will  I,  49 
if  it  be  already  kindled  ?  But  I  have  a  baptism  to  be  bap-  y> 
tized  with;  and  how  am  I  straitened  till  it  be  accomplished! 

and  Susannah  55 — 59.  Hence  Bengal  says  "Qui  cor  divisum  habet, 
dividetur."  But  because  of  the  following  clause,  which  evidently  refers 
to  a  living  person,  it  is  thought  that  dichotomesei  must  here  be  used  in 
the  sense  of  "shall  scourge^''  (compare  the  next  verse),  although  there  is 
no  other  instance  of  such  a  sense. 

with  the  unbelievers]  Rather,  witli  the  faitMess.  (See  vs.  42,  and 
Matt.  xxiv.  51.) 

47.  shall  be  beaten  with  many  stripes']  Exceptional  privileges  if 
rejected  involve  exceptional  guilt  and  punishment,  x.  13;  Jas.  iv.  17; 
2  Pet.  ii.  21. 

48.  that  knew  not]  i.e.  that  knew  not  fully  (Jon.  iv.  11;  i  Tim.  i.  13), 
for  there  is  no  such  thing  as  absolute  moral  ignorance  (Rom.  i.  20,  ii. 

14.  15)- 

shall  be  beaten  with  few  stripes']  A  most  important  passage  as  alone 
clearly  stating  that  punishment  shall  be  only  proportional  to  sin,  and 
that  there  shall  be  a  righteous  relation  between  the  amount  of  the  two. 
They  who  knew  not  will  not  of  course  be  punished  for  any  involuntary 
ignorance,  but  only  for  actual  misdoing. 

49.  I  am  cotne  to  send  fire  on  the  earth]  St  John  had  preached 
"He  shall  baptize  you  with  the  Holy  Ghost  and  with  fire"  and  that  "He 
should  burn  up  the  chaff  with  unquenchable  fire."  The  metaphor  is 
probably  to  be  taken  in  all  its  meanings;  fire  as  a  spiritual  baptism;  the 
refining  fire  to  purge  gold  from  dross,  and  bum  up  the  chaff  of  all  evil 
in  every  imperfect  character ;  and  the  fire  of  retributive  justice.  There 
is  a  remarkable  'unwritten  saying'  of  Christ,  ^^ He  who  is  near  me  is 
near  the  fire"  which  is  preserved  in  Ignatius,  Origen,  and  Didymus. 

what  ivill  I,  if  it  be  already  kindled?]  Rather,  how  I  •would  that  it 
had  been  already  kindled !  (as  in  Ecclus.  xxiii.  14).  It  may  also  be 
punctuated  'what  will  IPO  that  it  were  already  kindled! '  For  the  fire 
is  salutary  as  well  as  retributive;  it  warms  and  purifies  as  well  as  con- 
sumes. 

50.  a  baptism  to  be  baptized  with]     Matt.  xx.  22. 

how  am  I  straitened]  i.e.  How  heavy  is  the  burden  that  rests  upon 
me;  how  vast  are  the  obstacles  through  which  I  have  to  press  onwards. 
It  is  the  same  spirit  that  spoke  in  "What  thou  doest,  do  quickly."  The 
word  is  found  in  a  Cor.  v.  14;  Phil.  i.  23. 


232  ST   LUKE,   XII.  [vv.  51— 56. 

51  Suppose  ye  that  I  am  come  to  give  peace  on  earth  ?     I  tell 

52  you,  Nay ;  but  rather  division :  for  from  henceforth  there 
shall  be  five  in  one  house  divided,  three  against  two,  and 

53  two  against  three.  The  father  shall  be  divided  against  the 
son,  and  the  son  against  the  father;  the  mother 
against  the  daughter,  and  the  daughter  against  the 
mother;  the  mother  in  law  against  her  daughter  in  law, 
and  the  daughter  in  law  against  her  mother  in 
law. 

54 — 59.     The  Signs  of  the  Times,  aiid  resultant  Duty. 

54  And  he  said  also  to  the  people,  When  ye  see  a  cloud  rise 
out  of  the  west,  straightway  ye  say,  There  cometh  a  shower; 

55  and  so  it  is.     And  when  ye  see  the  south  wind  blow,  ye  say, 

56  There  will  be  heat ;  and  it  cometh  to  pass.     Ye  hypocrites, 

till  it  be  accomplished\    John  xix.  28,  30. 

51.     Suppose ye\  as  they  were  far  too  much  inclined  to  suppose,  xix.  t  i. 

that  I  am  come  to  give  peace  on  eart/i]  It  is  only  in  His  ultimate 
kingdom  that  Christ  will  be  fully  the  Prince  of  Peace,  as  was  understood 
even  by  Simeon,  ii.  34,    35  ;   see  too  John  ix.  39. 

Nay;  but  rather  division\  "I  came  not  to  send  peace  but  a  sword," 
Matt.  X.  34.  "Near  me,  near  the  sword"  (unwritten  saying  of  Christ). 
"There  was  a  division  among  the  people  because  of  him, "  John  vii.  43. 

53.  77^1?  father  shall  be  divided  against  the  son}  The  verse  seems 
to  be  a  distinct  allusion  to  Mic.  vii.  6.  There  is  in  the  Greek  a  delicate 
change  of  phrase  which  can  hardly  be  reproduced  in  English.  It  is 
'  father  against  son '  (e0'  vlif),  where  the  preposition  takes  the  dative;  but 
in  'mother-in-law  against  her  daughter-in-law'  (eTri  ri]v  v{)ii<f)7}v  avTrjs) 
the  preposition  takes  the  accusative; — perhaps  to  indicate  the  difference 
in  the  relationships,  the  one  natural,  the  other  legal. 

54 — 59.    The  Signs  of  the  Times,  and  resultant  Duty.    - 

54.  to  the  people\  Rather,  to  the  multitudes,  whom  He  now  ad- 
dresses, having  finished  the  lessons  which  were  most  necessary  for  His 
timid  and-  discouraged  disciples. 

a  cloud'X     Rather,  the  cloud,  comp.  Matt.  xvi.  1,  3. 

7-ise  out  of  the  west}  In  Hebrew  the  same  word  is  used  for  '  west ' 
and  'sea.'  A  cloud  rising  from  the  Mediterranean  indicated  heavy 
rain,  i  K.  xviii.  44,  45. 

55.  heat'\  Rather,  a  Simoom  or  scorching  vnnd,  because  'the 
South  wind'  in  Palestine  would  blow  from  the  desert. 

56.  Ye  hypocrites'}  The  insincerity  consisted  in  the  fact  that  though 
the  signs  of  the  Kingdom  were  equally  plain  they  would  not  see  them, 
and  pretended  not  to  see  them.     The  Prophets  had  long  ago  pointed 


w-57— 59-]  ST   LUKE,   XII.  233 

ye  can  discern  the  face  of  the  sky  and  of  the  earth ;  but 
how  is  it  that  ye  do  not  discern  this  time  ?     Yea,  and  why  57 
even  of  yourselves  judge  ye  not  what  is  right  ?     When  thou  58 
goest  with  thine  adversary  to  the  magistrate,  as  thou  art  in 
the  way,  give  diligence  that  thou  mayest  be  delivered  from 
him ;  lest  he  hale  thee  to  the  judge,  and  the  judge  deliver 
thee  to  the  officer,  and  the  officer  cast  thee  into  prison.     I  59 
tell  thee,  thou  shalt  not  depart  thence,  till  thou  hast  paid 
the  very  last  mite. 

them  out.     Among  them  were,  miracles  (Is.  xxxv.  4 — 6) ;  the  political 
condition  (Gen.  xlix.  10);  the  preaching  of  the  Baptist  (Matt.  iii.). 
discern]     Rather,  test  or  prove. 

57.  even  of  yourselves]  i.e.  without  the  necessity  for  my  thus  pointing 
out  to  you  facts  which  are  so  plain. 

what  is  right]  what  is  your  duty  to  do  under  circumstances  so  immi- 
nent. 

58.  When  thou  goest]  Rather,  For  as  thou  goest.  Our  translators 
omitted  the  "for"  probably  because  they  could  not  see  the  connexion. 
It  seems  however  to  be  this.  '  For  this  is  your  clear  duty, — to  reconcile 
yourselves  with  God,  as  you  would  with  one  whom  you  had  alienated, 
before  the  otherwise  inevitable  consequences  ensue.' 

■with  thine  adversaryi]  This  is  a  parable.  If  you  had  wronged  a 
man  it  would  be  obviously  wise  to  avert  the  consequences  of  your 
wrongdoing  before  it  became  too  late.  Even  so  must  you  act  towards 
God.  To  press  the  details  is  obviously  false  theology.  ' '  Theologia 
parabolica  non  est  argumentativa. "  Here  again  St  Matthew  quotes  the 
parable  in  a  slightly  different  connexion  (v.  25,  26)  to  teach  that  love 
and  forgiveness  to  man  are  an  indispensable  condition  of  forgiveness 
from  God. 

give  diligence]     A  curious  Latinism,  da  operant. 

to  the  officer]  i.e.  the  jailor,  literally  the  exactor  (vpaKTopL).  "God 
is  here  shadowed  forth  as  at  once  the  adversary,  the  judge,  and  the 
officer ;  the  first  by  His  holiness,  the  second  by  His  justice,  the  third 
by  His  power."     Godet. 

69.  till  thou  hast  paid  the  very  last  mite]  Mite  is  lepton  [minutum), 
the  smallest  of  all  coins,  Mk.  xii.  42.  If  it  be  asked,  '  can  this  ever 
be  paid  ?'  the  answer  of  course  is,  as  far  as  the  parable  is  concerned, 
'it  depends  entirely  on  whether  the  debt  be  great  or  small.'  As  far 
as  the  application  of  the  parable  is  concerned,  the  answer  lies  out  of 
the  contemplated  horizon  of  the  illustration,  nor  is  there  any  formal 
answer  to  it.  But  if  it  be  asserted  that  no  man's  debt  to  God,  which 
he  has  incurred  by  his  sins,  however  '  common  to  man,'  can  ever  be 
paid  by  him,  we  are  at  least  permitted  to  find  hope  in  the  thought 
that  Christ  has  paid  our  debt  for  us  (Matt.  xx.  28;  i  Tim.  ii.  6).  The 
general  lesson  is  that  of  which  Scripture  is  full,  "Seek  ye  the  Lord 
while  He  may  be  found,"  Is.  Iv.  6;  Ps.  xxxii.  6;  Ilcb.  iv.  7. 


234  ST   LUKE,   XIII.  [w.  i,  2. 

Ch.  XIII.     I — 9.     Accidents  and  J^udg7tients.     The  Barren 

Fig-  Tree. 

13      There  were  present  at  that  season  some  that  told  him  of 

the  Galileans,  whose  blood  Pilate  had  mingled  with  their 

2  sacrifices.     And  Jesus  answering  said  unto  them,  Suppose 

ye  that  these  Galileans  were  sinners  above  all  the  Galileans, 


Ch.  XIII.  1 — 9.    Accidents  and  Judgments.    The  Barren 

Fig-Tree. 

1.  There  were  present  at  that  season\  Rather,  There  arrived  at 
that  very  season.  The  curious  phrase  seems  to  imply  that  they  had 
come  on  purpose  to  announce  this  catastrophe.  Hence  some  have 
supposed  that  they  wished  to  kindle  in  the  mind  of  Jesus  as  a 
Galilaean  (xxiii.  5)  a  spirit  of  Messianic  retribution  (Jos.  Antt. 
XVII.  9,  §  3).  But  Christ's  answer  rather  proves  that  they  were 
connecting  the  sad  death  of  these  Galilaeans  with  their  imaginary 
crimes.  They  were  not  calling  His  attention  to  them  as  ma}-tyrs,  but 
as  supposed  victims  of  divine  anger.  Their  report  indicates  a  sort 
of  pleasure  in  recounting  the  misfortunes  of  others  (iirixaipeKaKia). 

of  the  Galileans^  who  regularly  attended  the  Jewish  feasts  at  Je- 
rusalem, John  iv.  45. 

tvhose  blood  Pilate  had  mingled  with  their  sacrifices\  Probably  at 
some  Passover  outbreak,  on  which  the  Roman  soldiers  had  hurried 
down  from  Fort  Antonia.  This  incident,  which  was  peculiarly  horrible 
to  Jewish  imaginations,  often  occurred  during  the  turbulent  adminis- 
tration of  Pilate  and  the  Romans  ;  see  on  xxiii.  i ;  Acts  xxi.  34.  At 
one  Passover,  "during  the  sacrifices,"  3000  Jews  had  been  massacred 
"like  victims,"  and  "the  Temple  courts  filled  with  dead  bodies" 
(Jos.  Antt.  XVII.  9,  §  3) ;  and  at  another  Passover,  no  less  than  20000 
(id.  XX.  5,  §  3;  see  also  B.  J.  11.  5,  v.  i).  Early  in  his  administration 
Pilate  had  sent  disguised  soldiers  with  daggers  among  the  crowd 
(id.  XVIII.  3,  §  I ;  ^.  y.  II.  9,  §  4).  The  special  incidents  here  alluded 
to  were  far  too  common  to  be  specially  recorded  by  Josephus  ;  but 
in  the  fact  that  the  victims  in  this  instance  were  Galilaeans,  we  may 
perhaps  see  a  reason  for  the  "enmity"  between  Pilate  and  Herod 
Antipas  (xxiii.  12). 

2.  were  sinners  above  all  the  Galileans']  The  '  were '  is  literally, 
'became,'  i.e.  'stamped  themselves  as,'  'proved  themselves  to  be.' 
We  trace  a  similar  mistaken  '  supposition '  in  the  question  of  the 
disciples  about  the  blind  man  (John  ix.  2).  It  was  indeed  deeply 
engrained  in  the  Jewish  mind,  although  the  Book  of  Job  had  been 
expressly  levelled  at  the  uncharitable  error  of  assuming  that  individual 
misfortune  could  only  be  the  consequence  of  individual  crime.  Such 
is  sometimes  the  case  (Gen.  xlii.  21;  Judg.  i.  7),  but  although  all 
human  sorrow  has  its  ultimate  cause  in  human  sin,  it  is  wrong  to 
assume  in  individual  cases  the  connexion  of  calamity  with  crime. 


w.  3—7.]  ST   LUKE,  XIII. 


235 


because  they  suffered  such  things  ?     I  tell  you,  Nay :  but,  3 
except  ye  repent,  ye  shall  all  likewise   perish.     Or  those  4 
eighteen,  upon  whom  the  tower   in   Siloam  fell,  and  slew 
them,  think  ye  that  they  were  sinners  above  all  men  that 
dwelt  in  Jerusalem  ?     I  tell  you,  Nay :  but  except  ye  repent,  s 
ye  shall  all  likewise  perish.  He  spake  also  this  parable ;  6 

A  certain  man  had  a  fig  tree  planted  in  his  vineyard ;  and 
he  came  and  sought  fruit  thereon,  and  found  none.     Then  7 
said  he  unto  the  dresser  of  his  vineyard,  Behold,  these  three 

suffered  such  things']     Rather,  have  suffered  these  things. 

3.  except  ye  repent,  ye  shall  all  likewise  perish]  The  first  meaning 
of  the  words  was  doubtless  prophetia  As  a  matter  of  historic  fact, 
the  Jewish  nation  did  not  repent,  and  myriads  of  them  in  the  siege 
of  Jerusalem  perished  by  a  doom  closely  analogous  to  that  of  these 
unhappy  Galilaeans  (see  Jos.  B.  y.  v.  i,  3,  7,  11,  12,  and  especially 
13  ;  VI.  passim,  vil.  3).  And  since  all  life  and  all  history  are  governed 
by  the  same  divine  laws,  the  warning  is  applicable  to  men  and  to 
nations  at  all  periods. 

4.  those  eighteen,  upon  zvhom  the  toiver  in  Siloam  fell]  It  is  an 
ingenious,  but  of  course  uncertain  conjecture  of  Ewald,  that  the  death 
of  these  workmen  was  connected  with  the  notion  of  retribution  be- 
cause they  were  engaged  in  building  part  of  the  aqueduct  to  the  Pool  of 
Siloam,  for  the  construction  of  which  Pilate  had  seized  some  of  the 
sacred  Corban-money  (Mk.  vii.  11 ;  Jos.  B.  y.  Ii.  9,  §  4). 

Siloam]  The  pool  (John  ix.  7;  Is.  viii.  6),  near  the  village  of 
Silwd7t,  at  the  entrance  of  the  Tyropoeon  valley,  which  runs  into  the 
valley  of  Jehoshaphat  between  Sion  and  Moriah. 

that  they  were  simiers]     Rather,  that  they  themselves  were  debtors. 

5.  ye  shall  all  likewise  perish]  The  readings  of  the  word  '  likewise  ' 
vary  between  ^homoios'  and  "■  hosautos ;'  but  no  distinct  difference 
of  meaning  between  the  two  words  can  be  established,  unless  the 
latter  be  rather  stronger,  '  in  the  very  same  way.'  Here  again  the  actual 
incidents  of  the  siege  of  Jerusalem — the  deaths  of  many  under  the 
falling  ruins  of  the  city  (Jos.  B.  J.  vi.  9,  vii.  i)— are  the  directest 
comment  on  our  Lord's  words  which  yet  l)car  the  wider  significance 
of  the  warning  in  Rom.  ii.  i — 11. 

6.  a  Jig  tree  planted  in  his  vineyard]  The  corners  of  vineyards 
were  often  utilised  in  this  way,  as  they  still  are  (Tristram,  Nat.  Hist. 
Bib.  p.  352).  Here  the  Jewish  nation  is  compared  to  the  fig-tree 
(ITos.  ix!  10;  Jer.  xxiv.  3),  as  in  the  acted  parable  of  the  Barren  Fig- 
tree  (Matt.  xxi.  19);  more  often  Israel  is  compared  to  the  Vine  or 
the  Vineyard  (Ps.  Ixxx.  8 — 11 ;  Is.  v.  1). 

7.  unto  the  dresser  of  his  vineyard]  It  seems  clear  that  m  the 
truth  which  the  parable  shadows  forth,  Christ  corresponds  to  the 
vine-dresser,  and  Jehovah  to  the  owner  (Is.  v.  7).  Some  however 
prefer  to  see  in  the  vine-drcsser  the  Holy  Spirit  as  Intercessor. 


236  ST   LUKE,  XIII.  [vv.  8—13. 

years  I  come  seeking  fruit  on  this  fig  tree,  and  find  none : 

8  cut  it  down ;  why  cumbereth  it  the  ground  ?     And  he  an- 
swering said  unto  him,  Lord,  let  it  alone  this  year  also,  till 

9  I  shall  dig  about  it,  and  dung  it :  and  if  it  bear  fruit,  we/I: 
and  if  not,  t/ieu  after  that  thou  shalt  cut  it  down. 

10 — 17.    T/ie  Sabbatical  Hypocrite  and  the  Suffering  Wo?fian. 

10  And  he  was  teaching  in  one  of  the  synagogues  on  the 

11  sabbath.  And  behold,  there  was  a  woman  which  had  a  spirit 
of  infirmity  eighteen  years,  and  was  bowed  together,  and 

12  could  in  no  wise  lift  up  herself.     And  when  Jesus  saw  her, 
he  called  her  to  him,  and  said  unto  her.  Woman,  thou  art 

13  loosed  from  thy  infirmity.     And  he  laid  his  hands  on  her : 

Behold,  these  three  years]  Many  suppose  an  allusion  to  the  length 
up  to  this  time  of  our  Lord's  ministry.  Others  explain  it  of  the  periods 
of  the  Judges,  Kings,  and  High  Priests.  It  is  very  doubtful  how  far 
these  lesser  details — which  are  essential  to  the  colouring  of  the 
parable — are  intended  to  be  pressed. 

cut  it  dotmi]  at  once — as  the  tense  implies  (Matt.  iii.  10;  John  xv.  •2). 
It  was  fulfilled  in  the  rejection  of  Israel  (Rom.  xi.  11). 

why  cumbereth  it  the  ground?]  Rather,  why  doth  it  also  sterilise 
the  ground?  i.e.  it  is  not  only  useless,  but  positively  mischievous  by 
preventing  other  growth. 

8.  Lord]     Rather,  Sir,  as  far  as  the  parable  is  concerned. 

this  year  also]  "The  Lord. ..is  longsuffering  to  usward,  not  willing 
that  any  should  perish,  but  that  all  should  come  to  repentance,"  2  Pet. 
iii.  9.  In  "this  year  also"  it  is  better  to  see  generally  the  respite  of  forty 
years  between  the  crucifixion  and  the  destruction  of  Jerusalem,  than 
merely  the  yet  remaining  period  of  our  Lord's  ministry.  God  never 
strikes  without  warning,  because  He  desires  to  save. 

9.  if  it  bear  f7-idt,  well]  The  ''welV  is  not  in  the  original,  the  idiom 
being  a  common  but  striking  aposiopesis:  i.  e.  the  conclusion  of  the 
sentence  is  left  to  the  speaker's  imagination.  The  phrase  implies,  Tf, 
as  is  at  least  possible,  it  bears  fruit  j  but  if  not,  as  thou  supposest, 
then,  &c. 

10 — 17.    The  Sabbatical  Hypocrite  and  the  Suffering 

Woman. 

10.  in  one  of  the  synagogues]  The  mention  of  synagogue- teaching 
becomes  much  rarer  at  this  later  stage  of  Christ's  ministry.  It  is  most 
probable  that  from  some  at  least  of  the  synagogues  of  Galilee  he  was 
excluded  by  the  '  lesser  excommunication. '     See  John  xvi.  2. 

11.  a  spirit  of  infirmity]  Her  curvature  is  thus  directly  attributed 
to  Satanic  agency.     Job  ii.  6,  7  ;  Acts  x.  38. 

12.  thou  art  loosed]     Here,  as  elsewhere,  the  delicacy  and  force  of 


237 


vv.  14—16.]  ST   LUKE,   XIII. 

and  immediately  she  was  made  straight,  and  glorified  God. 
And  the  ruler  of  the  synagogue  answered  with  indignation,  14 
because  that  Jesus  had  healed  on  the  sabbath  day,  and  said 
unto  the  people,  There  are  six  days  in  which  men  ought  to 
work  :  in  them  therefore  come  and  be  healed,  and  not  on 
the  sabbath  day.  The  Lord  then  answered  him,  and  said,  15 
Thou  hypocrite,  doth  not  each  one  of  you  on  the  sabbath 
loose  his  ox  or  his  ass  from  the  stall,  and  lead  Jiim  away  to 
watering  ?     And  ought  not  this  woman,  being  a  daughter  of  16 

the  Greek  tense  implying  the  immediateness  and  the  permanence  of  the 
cure  can  only  be  expressed  in  English  by  a  periphrasis. 

14.  ruler  of  the  synagogtie'\     See  viii.  41. 

with  indignation\  The  same  strong  word — implying  a  personal 
resentment — is  used  in  Matt.  xx.  24,  xxvi.  8. 

on  the  sabbath  day\     See  on  vi.  2. 

in  which  men  ought  to  work]     Ex.  xx.  9. 

in  them  there/ore  come  and  be  healed]  As  though  the  reception  of 
divine  grace  were  Sabbath-breaking  toil !  Few  remarks  of  the  op- 
ponents of  our  Lord  were  so  transparently  illogical  and  hypocritical  as 
this.  It  was  meanly  indirect  because  it  was  aimed  at  Jesus,  though  the 
man  is  too  much  in  awe  to  address  it  to  Him,  and  the  implied  notion 
that  it  was  a  critne  to  allow  oneself  to  be  healed  on  the  Sabbath  day 
springs  from  an  abyss  of  Pharisaic  falsity  which  could  hardly  have  been 
conceived.  It  was  the  underhand  ignorance  and  insolence,  as  well  as 
the  gross  insincerity  of  the  remark,  which  called  forth  a  reproof  excep- 
tionally severe. 

15.  Thoit  hypocrite]  Rather  (with  the  best  uncials).  Hypocrites ! 
(N,  A,  B),  classing  the  man  with  the  whole  sect  to  which  he  belonged, 
and  whose  shibboleths  he  used.  They  were  hypocrites  (i.e.  they  were 
acting  a  part)  because  they  were  disguising  secret  enmity  under  a 
pretence  of  sabbatical  zeal. 

on  the  sabbath  loose  his  ox]  Our  Lord  varied  from  time  to  time  the 
arguments  with  which  He  abolished  the  fanatical  formalism  of  the 
Pharisees  respecting  the  Sabbath.  Sometimes  lie  appealed  to  His  own 
inherent  authority  (John  v.  17 — 47) ;  sometimes  to  Scripture  precedents 
(vi.  3 — 5);  or  to  common  sense  and  eternal  principles  (vi.  9).  Here,  as 
in  xiv.  5,  He  uses  an  argianentiim  ad  hominem,  refuting  their  traditional 
rules  by  the  selfish  insincerity  with  which  they  applied  them.  They 
allowed  men  to  unloose  and  lead  to  water  their  cattle  on  the  sabbath, 
and  thus  to  break  their  own  Sabbatic  rules  to  save  themselves  the 
trouble  of  providing  water  overnight,  or,  at  the  best,  to  abridge  a  few 
hours'  thirst ;  was  then  this  suffering  woman  not  to  be  touched,  not  to 
be  spokett  to,  to  end  18  years  of  suffering? 

16.  ought  7tot]  Our  Saviour  gives  him  back  his  own  wonl  ''ought;" — 
but  the  man's  ought  had  been  one  of  ceremonial  obligation,  and  the 
ought  of  Jesus  was  founded  on  the  divine  necessity  of  love. 


238  ST    LUKE,   XIII.  [vv.  17—21. 

Abraham,  whom  Satan  hath  bound,  lo  these  eighteen  years, 

17  be  loosed  from  this  bond  on  the  sabbath  day  ?  And  when 
he  had  said  these  things,  all  his  adversaries  were  ashamed  : 
and  all  the  people  rejoiced  for  all  the  glorious  things  that 
were  done  by  him. 

18 — 21.     The  Mustard  Seed  and  the  Leaven. 

18  Then  said  he.  Unto  what  is  the  kingdom  of  God  like  ? 

19  and  whereunto  shall  I  resemble  it  ?  It  is  like  a  grain  of 
mustard  seed,  which  a  man  took,  and  cast  into  his  garden ; 
and  it  grew,  and  waxed  a  great  tree ;  and  the  fowls  of  the 

20  air  lodged  in  the  branches  of  it.    And  again  he  said,  Where- 

21  unto  shall  I  liken  the  kingdom  of  God  ?  It  is  like  leaven, 
which  a  woman  took  and  hid  in  three  measures  of  meal, 
till  the  whole  was  leavened. 


being  a  daughter  of  Abraham"]     See  xix.  9. 
whom  Satan  hath  bound]     Compare  2  Cor.  xii.  7. 

17.  when  he  had  said  these  things']  Rather,  while  He  was  saying 
these  things. 

were  ashafued]     See  Is.  xlv.  16  (LXX.). 

18 — 21.  The  Mustard  Seed  and  the  Leaven. 

18.  Unto  what  is  the  kingdom  of  God  like?]  For  this  solemn  intro- 
duction see  Is.  xl.  18. 

19.  waxed  a  great  tree]  Omit  great  with  X,  B,  D,  L,  &c.  The  points 
of  comparison  are  the  sudden,  secret  growth,  and  the  immense  develop- 
ment of  the  kingdom  of  God.  The  mustard  seed  was  colloquially 
spoken  of  by  the  Jews  as  'the  smallest  of  all  seeds,'  and  it  grew 
into  a  herbaceous  plant,  as  tall  as  a  horse  and  his  rider  (Thomson,  Land 
and  Book). 

the  fowls  of  the  air  lodged  in  the  branches  of  it]  The  substantive 
corresponding  to  the  verb  ^lodged'  is  found  in  ix.  58  ('nests,'  rather 
shelters).  Finches,  and  other  small  birds,  throng  the  mustard  beds  to 
live  on  the  seed  (Tristram,  Nat.  Hist.  Bib.  473). 

21.  It  is  like  leaven]  Except  in  this  parable,  leaven  in  Scripture 
(being  connected  with  corruption  and  fermentation)  is  used  as  the  type 
of  sin.  See  xii.  i;  Ex.  xii.  i,  15 — 20;  i  Cor.  v.  6 — 8;  Gal.  v-  9. 
Here,  however,  the  only  point  considered  is  its  rapid,  and  unseen,  and 
effectual  working. 

in  three  ineasures  of  meal]  The  verisimilitude,  simplicity,  and  vivid- 
ness of  the  parables  arise  from  the  natural  and  specific  details  intro- 
duced into  them.  To  press  these  into  separate  lessons  only  leads  to 
arbitrary  exegesis  and  false  theology.  Probably  the  'three  measures' 
are  only  mentioned  because  they  are  the  ordinary  amount  which  a 


w.  22—24.]  ST   LUKE,  XIII.  239 

22 — 30.     The  Narrow  Door. 

And  he  went  through  the  cities  and  villages,  teaching,  and  2a 
journeying  towards  Jerusalem.  Then  said  one  unto  him,  23 
Lord,  are  there  few  that  be  saved?  And  he  said  unto  them,  24 
Strive  to  enter  in  at  the  strait  gate  :  for  many,  I  say  unto 

woman  would  leaven  at  one  time.  If  any  one  likes  to  improve  the 
detail  by  applying  it  to  (i)  body,  soul,  and  spirit  (i  Thess.  v.  23);  or 
(■2)  to  Jews,  Samaritans,  and  Galilaeans;  or  (3)  to  tlie  three  sons  of 
Noah  (!),  as  representing  Semites,  Aryans,  and  Allophylians,  —  it 
should  be  understood  that  these  are  pious  applications,  and  interesting 
plays  of  fancy,  not  comments  on  our  Lord's  words. 

till  the  whole  was  leavened^  The  whole  heart  of  each  man  (2  Cor. 
X.  5),  and  the  whole  world  (xxiv.  47). 

22—30.    The  Narrow  Door. 

22.  he  went  ihroicgh  the  cities  and  villages']  Some  see  in  this  the 
starting-point  of  a  separate  journey.  The  expression  is  too  vague  on 
which  to  build.  It  may  imply  a  fresh  progress  after  some  brief  period  of 
rest. 

23.  are  there  few  that  be  saved?]  The  question  may  naturally  have 
arisen  from  the  last  teachings  respecting  the  small  beginnings  of  the 
Kingdom  of  God.  There  is  nothing  to  shew  whether  it  was  suggested 
by  speculative  curiosity,  or  by  despondent  pity.  But  without  directly 
rebuking  such  questions,  our  Lord,  as  in  other  instances,  strove  to  place 
the  questioners  in  a  wiser  frame  of  mind  (Deut.  xxix.  29).  The 
answer  is  a  direct  discouragement  to  all  pitiless,  and  especially  to  all 
self-righteous,  eschatologies.  It  is  a  solemn  assertion  of  the  necessity 
for  earnest,  personal  endeavour.  Thus  to  all  idle  attempts  to  define  the 
certainties  of  the  future,  our  Lord  says,  Consider  the  question  with 
reference  to  yourself,  not  with  reference  to  others.  Look  at  it  in  the 
spirit  of  the  publican,  not  in  the  spirit  of  the  Pharisee.  The  wisdom  and 
necessity  of  the  answer  may  be  seen  from  2  Esdras  viii.,  where  the  question 
is  discussed,  and  where  it  is  assumed  \h.'i.\.  few  only  will  be  saved,  "Tlie 
most  High  hath  made  this  world  for  many,  but  the  world  to  come  for 
few"  (viii.  i).  "There  are  many  more  of  them  which  perish  than  of 
them  which  shall  be  saved;  like  as  a  wave  is  greater  than  a  drop" 
(ix.  15,  16).  "Let  the  multitude  perish  then"  (id.  22).  Part,  at  least, 
of  the  Book  of  Esdras  is  probably  post-Christian. 

that  be  saved]  Literally,  ''who  are  being  saved,''  i.  e.  who  are  in  the 
way  of  salvation.  The  same  word  occurs  in  Acts  ii.  47,  and  is  the 
opposite  to  apollicmenoi,  'those  that  are  perishing,'  i  Cor.  i.  18;  1  Cor. 
ii.  15. 

24.  Strive]  The  word  imphes  the  strong  efforts  of  a  contest. 
1  Tim.  vi.  12. 

at  the  strait  gate]  Rather,  tlirougli  the  narrow  door;  reading 
■thuras  (X,  B,  D,  L)  iox pules.     Matt.  vii.  13. 


240  ST    LUKE,  XIII.  [vv.  25—30. 

25  you,  will  seek  to  enter  in,  and  shall  not  be  able.  When 
once  the  master  of  the  house  is  risen  up,  and  hath  shut  to 
the  door,  and  ye  begin  to  stand  without,  and  to  knock  at  the 
door,  saying,  Lord,  Lord,  open  unto  us ;  and  he  shall  answer 

26  and  say  unto  you,  I  know  you  not  whence  you  are:  then  shall 
ye  begin  to  say,  We  have  eaten  and  drunk  in  thy  presence, 

27  and  thou  hast  taught  in  our  streets.  But  he  shall  say,  I  tell 
you,  I  know  you  not  whence  you  are ;  depart  from  me,  all 

2sye  workers  of  iniquity.  There  shall  be  weeping  and  gnash- 
ing of  teeth,  when  ye  shall  see  Abraham,  and  Isaac,  and 
Jacob,  and  all  the  prophets,  in  the  kingdom  of  God,  and 

29  you  yourselves  thrust  out.  And  they  shall  come  from  the  east, 
a.nd  from  the  west,  and  from  the  north,  and  from  the  south, 

30  and  shall  sit  down  in  the  kingdom  of  God.     And  behold, 

win  seek  to  enter  in,  and  shall  not  be  able']  because  they  only  seek, 
and  do  not  strive ;  they  wish  for  heaven,  but  will  not  abandon  earth. 
Sometimes  also  because  they  seek  too  late  (Prov.  i.  28,  29;  Is.  i.  15; 
John  vii.  34;  Heb.  xii.  17),  but  mainly  because  they  seek  to  enter 
through  other  ways  by  which  there  is  no  entrance,  since  Christ  is  the 
only  door  (John  x.  7,  xiv.  6). 

25.  to  stand  wifho7if,  and  to  knock  at  the  door]  Matt.  xxv.  10.  That 
the  first  application  of  the  warning  was  to  Jews  who  relied  on  their 
privileges  appears  from  the  fact  that  the  excluded  class  are  not  poor 
sinners,  but  self-righteous  Pharisees  who  claim  entrance  as  their  right. 

Lord,  Lord^  open  unto  tts]  Matt.  vii.  22,  23. 

26.  t?ien  shall  ye  begin  to  say]  All  excuse  shall  be  cut  short  at 
once,  iii.  8. 

thou  hast  taught  in  our  streets]  Here  again  (see  xiii.  28)  we  see 
how  our  Lord  discouraged  all  notions  of  any  privilege  derived  from 
fleshly  privileges,  or  even  proximity  to  Himself.     Rom.  ii.  17 — 20. 

27.  I  know  you  not depart  from  me,  all  ye  ivo^-kers  of  iniquity] 

2  Tim.  ii.  19,  "The  foundation  of  God  standeth  sure,  having  this  seal, 
The  Lord  knoweth  them  that  are  His.  And,  Let  every  one  that  nameta 
the  name  of  Christ  depart  from  iniquity." 

28.  weeping  and  gnashiftg  of  teeth]  The  signs  respectively  of  anguish 
and  of  rage  (Acts  vii.  54). 

Abraham,  and  Isaac,  and  Jacob]  Marcion,  always  anxious  to  disown 
the  Old  Testament,  altered  this  into  "  all  the  just." 

29.  they  shall  come  from  the  east,  and  from  the  tvesi]  There  is  an 
obvious  reference  to  Is.  xlix.  12,  xlv.  6.  Nothing  more  furiously  ex- 
cited the  envy  of  the  Jews  than  the  free  admission  of  the  Gentiles  to 
those  privileges  of  the  Kingdom  of  Heaven  (Eph.  iii.  6)  which  they 
rejected.     Rom.  xi.  i — 36;  Acts  xiii.  44 — 52. 

shall  sit  down]  Rather,  shall  recline  at  banquet,  xi.  37,  xiv.  8, 
&c. ;  Mark  vi.  39. 


vv.  31, 32.]  ST   LUKE,   XIII.  241 

there  are  last  which  shall  be  first,  and  there  are  first  which 
shall  be  last. 

31 — 35.     A  Message  to  Herod  Antipas. 

The  same  day  there  came  certain  of  the  Pharisees,  saying  31 
unto  him.  Get  thee  out,  and  depart  hence:  for  Herod  will 
kill  thee.     And  he  said  unto  them,  Go  ye,  and  tell  that  fox,  32 

30.  And  beholdr\  The  phrase  sometimes  implies  'strange  as  you 
may  think  it.'  It  occurs  23  times  in  St  Matthew,  16  in  St  Luke  ;  but 
not  in  St  Mark. 

the7-e  are  last  which  shall  he  first\  Our  Lord  used  this  proverbial 
expression  more  than  once.  Matt.  xix.  30.  It  had,  besides  its  uni- 
versal truthfulness,  a  special  bearing  on  His  own  time.  "  The  publicans 
and  the  harlots  go  into  the  Kingdom  of  God  before  you,"  Matt.  xxi.  31. 
"  The  Gentiles,  which  followed  not  after  righteousness,  have  attained  to 
righteousness,"  Rom.  ix.  30. 

"  There  above  (on  earth) 
How  many  hold  themselves  for  mighty  kings, 
Who  here  like  swine  shall  wallow  in  the  mire, 
Leaving  behind  them  horrible  dispraise." 

Dante,  Inferno. 

31 — 35.    A  Message  to  Herod  Antipas. 

31.  The  same  day\  Or,  In  that  very  hour  (X,  A,  D,  L,  &c.). 

Get  thee  out,  and  depart  hence'\  These  Pharisees  were  as  eager  as  the 
Gadarenes  to  get  rid  of  Jesus ;  but  whether  this  was  their  sole  motive 
or  whether  they  further  wished  to  separate  Him  from  the  multitudes 
who  as  yet  protected  His  life,  and  to  put  Him  in  the  power  of  the  Sad- 
ducean  hierarchy,  is  not  clear.  That  any  solicitude  for  His  safety  was 
purely  hypocritical  appears  in  the  tone  of  our  Lord's  answer,  which  is 
yet  far  more  merciful  than  that  in  which  the  prophet  Amos  had 
answered  a  similar  message  from  an  analogous  quarter.  Amos  vii. 
12 — 17. 

for  Herod  will  kill  thee]  Rather,  wills  to  kill  thee.  The  assertion 
was  probably  quite  untrue.  Herod  had  not  even  wished  to  kill  John, 
but  had  done  so  with  great  reluctance,  and  had  been  deeply  troubled  in 
conscience  ever  since.  He  did  indeed  wish  to  see  Christ,  but  it  was 
with  the  very  different  desire  of  "seeing  some  miracle  done  by  Him" 
(xxiii.  8). 

32.  that  fox]  Rather,  this  she-fox,  as  though  Christ  saw  him  actually 
present,  or  identified  his  fox-like  nature  with  that  which  the  rharisces 
were  now  displaying.  The  fact  that  the  word  is  feminine  may  be  only 
due  to  its  being  generic.  The  fox  was  among  the  ancients,  as  well  as 
among  the  moderns,  the  type  of  knavish  craftiness  and  covert  attack. 
This  is  the  only  word  of  unmitigated  contempt  (as  distinguished  from 
rebuke  and  scorn)  recorded  among  the  utterances  of  Christ,  and  it  was 

ST  LUKE  1 6 


242  ST   LUKE,   XIII.  [vv.  33,  34. 

Behold,   I  cast  out  devils,   and  I  do  cures  to  day  and  to 

33  morrow,  and  the  third  day  I  shall  be  perfected.  Neverthe- 
less I  must  walk  to  day,  and  to  morrow,  and  the  day  fol- 
lowing :  for  it  cannot  be  that  a  prophet  perish  out  of  Jeru- 

34  salem.  O  Jerusalem,  Jerusalem,  which  killest  the  prophets, 
and  stonest  them  that  are  sent  unto  thee;  how  often  would 
I  have  gathered  thy  children  together,  as  a  hen  doth  gather 

more  than  justified  by  the  mingled  tyranny  and  timidity,  insolence  and 
baseness  of  Herod  Antipas — a  half-Samaritan,  half-Idumaean  tetrarch, 
who,  professing  Judaism,  lived  in  heathen  practices,  and  governed  by 
the  grace  of  Caesar  and  the  help  of  alien  mercenaries  ;  who  had  mur- 
dered the  greatest  of  the  Prophets  to  gratify  a  dancing  wanton ;  and 
who  was  living  at  that  moment  in  an  adultery  doubly-incestuous  with 
a  woman  of  whom  he  had  treacherously  robbed  his  brother  while  he 
was  his  guest. 

to  day  and  to  morrow\  It  is  probable  that  these  expressions  are 
general  (as  in  Hos.  vi.  2).  They  mean  'I  shall  stay  in  Herod's  dominions 
with  perfect  security  for  a  brief  while  longer  till  my  work  is  done.'  It 
must  be  remembered  that  Peraea  was  in  the  tetrarchate  of  Herod,  so 
that  this  incident  may  have  occurred  during  the  slow  and  solemn  pro- 
gress towards  Jerusalem. 

///('  third  day  I  shall  be  perfect ed^  The  word  telciotunai  has  been 
variously  rendered  and  explained.  Bleek  makes  it  mean  '  I  shall  end' 
(my  work  in  Galilee);  Godet,  ^  I  am  being  perfected,'  in  the  sense  of 
'I  shall  arrive  at  the  destined  end  of  my  work;'  Resch,  '/  complete 
my  work'  by  one  crowning  miracle  (John  xi.  40 — 44).  This  solemn 
meaning  best  accords  with  other  usages  of  the  word,  e.g.  in  the  cry  from 
the  Cross  tetelestai,  'It  is  finished'  (John  xix.  30).  See  too  Heb.  v. 
9,  xi.  40.     Tcleiosis  became  an  ecclesiastical  term  for  'martyrdom.' 

33.  /  must  walk'\  Rather,  I  must  journey ;  the  same  word  as  in 
vs.  31,  "depart."  It  seems  to  imply,  'I  will  not  leave  Herod's  domi- 
nion, but  I  shall  journey  on  at  my  own  leisure  through  them.' 

it  cannot  be]  i.  e.  there  is  a  moral  unfitness  in  the  murder  of  a  Prophet 
anywhere  but  in  Jerusalem.  The  words  are  those  of  terrible  irony ; 
and  yet,  even  amid  the  irony,  the  voice  of  the  Speaker  seemed  to  break 
with  tears  as  He  uttered  the  tender  appeal  of  the  next  verse. 

34.  0  yei-usalem,  y enisalem\  The  words  were  perhaps  spoken 
again  in  the  Great  Denunciation  of  the  Tuesday  in  Passion  Week,  Matt, 
xxiii.  37. 

•which  killest  the  prophets']  "It  was  full  of  judgment;  righteousness 
lodged  in  it;  but  now  murderers"  (Is.  i.  21).  See  xi.  47,  xx.  14;  Matt, 
xxiii.  34;  1  Esdr.  i.  32,  "I  sent  unto  you  my  servants  the  prophets 
whom  ye  have  taken  and  slain,  and  torn  their  bodies  in  pieces,  whose 
blood  I  will  require  of  your  hands,  saith  the  Lord." 

how  often]  This,  like  other  passages  in  the  Synoptists,  implies  more 
frequent  visits  to  Jerusalem  than  they  actually  record. 

as  a  hen  doth  gather  her  brood  under  her  wings]     A  metaphor  still 


v-v.  35;  I-]  ■'^T    LUKE,   XIII.  XIV.  243 

her  brood  under  her  wings,   and  ye  would  not?   Behold,  35 
your  house  is  left  unto  you  desolate :  and  verily  I  say  unto 
you,  Ye  shall  not  see  me,  until  the  time  come  when  ye  shall 
say.  Blessed  is  he  that  cometh  in  the  name  of  the 
Lord. 

Ch.  XIV.      The  various  Discourses  of  Jestis  at  a  Banquet. 
"  The  Son  of  Man  eating  and  drinking." 

I — 6.     Sabbath  healing  of  a  Man  with  the  Dropsy. 

And  it  came  to  pass,  as  he  went  into  the  house  of  one  of  14 

more  tender  and  appealing  than  that  of  the  eagle  which  *'  stirreth  up 
her  nest,  fluttereth  over  her  young,  spreadeth  abroad  her  wings,  taketh 
them,  beareth  them  on  her  wings  "  of  Deut.  xxxii.  11,  12. 

ye  woiild  nof]  In  contrast  with  the  "would  I  "  of  vs.  34;  it  indicates 
"the  sad  privilege  which  man  possesses  of  resisting  the  most  serious 
influences  of  grace." 

35.  Behold,  your  house  is  left  unto  you  desolate^  The  authenticity  of 
the  word  '  desolate '  is  very  doubtful,  as  it  is  omitted  in  N,  A,  B,  K,  L, 
&c.  The  words  therefore  mean  '  The  Shechinah  has  vanished  from  you 
now  (Ezek.  x.  19,  xi.  23).  The  house  is  now  yours,  not  God's;  and 
because  yours  therefore  a  cave  of  brigands.'  If  the  word  '  desolate '  be 
genuine,  it  may  allude  to  Dan.  ix.  27  and  "the  desolating  wing  of 
abomination,"  as  well  as  to  other  prophecies,  Lev.  xxvi.  31  ;  Mic.  iii.  12  ; 
Is.  V.  5,  6.  There  is  a  remarkable  parallel  in  2  Esdras  i.  30 — 33,  "I 
gathered  you  together  as  a  hen  gathereth  her  chickens  under  her  wings : 
but  now,  what  shall  I  do  unto  you  ?  I  will  cast  you  out  from  my  face. 
...Thus  saith  the  Almighty  Lord,  your  house  is  desolate,  I  will  cast  you 
out  as  the  wind  doth  stubble." 

Ye  shall  not  see  me^  "Their  senses  are  still  blinded.  The  veil  of 
the  Talmud  that  hangs  over  their  eyes  is  twice  as  heavy  as  the  veil  of 
Moses."     Van  Oosterzee. 

until  the  time  cotne  when  ye  shall  say]  It  is  a  most  frivolous  interpre- 
tation of  these  words  to  make  them  merely  refer  to  the  Hosannas  of 
Palm  Sunday  (xix.  38)  as  though  they  meant,  '  I  shall  not  visit  Jerusa- 
lem till  the  day  of  my  humble  triumph.'  They  clearly  refer  to  the 
future  and  final  penitence  of  Israel.  The  'perfecting'  of  Jesus  would  be 
His  death,  and  then  once  again  He  would  return  as  "the  Coming  One." 
Hos.  iii.  4,  5  ;  Ps.  cxviii.  26.  Here,  as  in  so  many  other  stern  pas- 
sages of  Scripture,  in  the  Valley  of  Achor  is  opened  a  door  of  Hope, 
for  the  phrase  impHes  *  till  the  time  comes  as  come  it  will '  (Zech.  xii. ; 
Rom.  xi.). 

Ch.  XIV.    The  various  Discourses  of  Jesus  at  a  Banquet. 
"The  Son  of  Man  eating  and  drinking  " 

1—6.    Sabbath  healing  of  a  Man  with  the  Dropsy. 

1.     0/  one  of  the  chief  Pharisees']      Rather,    of  the   Rulers  of  the 

t6 — 2 


244  ST   LUKE,   XIV.  [w.  2,  3. 


the  chief  Pharisees  to  eat  bread  on  the  sabbath  day,  that 

2  they  watched  him.     And  behold,  there  was  a  certain  man 

3  before  him,  which  had  the  dropsy.     And  Jesus  answering 

Pliarlsees.  The  rendering  of  our  version  gives  the  general  sense  but 
is  inadmissible.  It  is  perhaps  due  to  the  translators  being  aware  that 
the  Pharisees  had  (strictly  speaking)  no  Rulers.  There  were  no  grades 
of  distinction  between  Pharisees  as  such.  But  obviously  the  expression 
would  be  popularly  used  of  a  Pharisee  who  was  an  eminent  Rabbi  like 
Hillel  or  Shammai,  or  of  one  who  was  also  a  Sanhedrist. 

to  eat  bread  on  the  sabbath  day\  Sabbath  entertainments  of  a 
luxurious  and  joyous  character  were  the  rule  among  the  Jews,  and 
were  even  regarded  as  a  religious  duty  (Nehem.  viii.  9 — 12).  All 
the  food  was  however  cooked  on  the  previous  day  (Ex.  xvi.  23). 
That  our  Lord  accepted  the  invitation,  tliough  He  was  well  aware  of 
the  implacable  hostility  of  the  Pharisaic  party  towards  Him,  was  due  to 
His  gracious  spirit  of  forgiving  friendliness ;  and  to  this  we  owe  the 
beautiful  picture  of  His  discourse  and  bearing  throughout  the  feast 
which  this  chapter  preserves  for  us.  Every  incident  and  remark  of  the 
banquet  was  turned  to  good.  We  have  first  the  scene  in  the  house 
(i — 6);  then  the  manoeuvres  to  secure  precedence  at  tlie  meal  (7 — it); 
then  the  lesson  to  the  host  about  the  choice  of  guests  (12 — 14);  then  the 
Parable  of  the  King's  Feast  suggested  by  the  vapid  exclamation  of  one 
of  the  company  (15 — 24). 

that  they  watched  hint]  More  emphatically  in  the  original  '  atrd  they 
themselves  we7-e  ca7-efiilly  watching  Hi?)t,^  comp.  vi.  7.  The  invitation 
in  fact  even  more  than  those  in  vii.  36,  xi.  37  was  a  mere  plot ; — part 
of  that  elaborate  espionage,  and  malignant  heresy-hunting  (xi.  53,  54, 
XX.  20;  Mk.  xii.  13),  which  is  the  mark  of  a  decadent  religion,  and 
which  the  Pharisees  performed  with  exemplary  diligence.  The  Phari- 
sees regarded  it  as  their  great  object  in  life  to  exalt  their  sacred  books; 
had  they  never  read  so  much  as  this  ?  ' '  the  wicked  watcheth  the 
righteous  and  seeketh  occasion  to  slay  him,"  Ps.  xxxvii.  32  ;  "all  that 
watch  for  iniquity  are  cut  off,  that  make  a  man  an  offender  for  a  word, 
and  lay  a  snare  for  him  that  reproveth  in  the  gate"  Is.  xxix.  20,  21. 

2.  And  behold,  there  was  a  certain  man  before  him,  which  had  the 
dropsy']  The  verse  represents  with  inimitable  vividness  the  flash  of 
recognition  with  which  the  Lord  at  once  grasped  the  whole  meaning 
of  the  scene.  The  dropsical  man  was  not  one  of  the  guests  ;  he  stood 
as  though  by  accident  in  the  promiscuous  throng  which  may  always 
enter  an  (Oriental  house  during  a  meal.  But  his  presence  was  no 
accident.  The  dropsy  is  an  unsightly,  and  was  regarded  as  an  incurable, 
disease.  The  Pharisaic  plot  had  therefore  been  concocted  with  that 
complex  astuteness  which  marks  in  other  instances  (xx.  19 — 38;  John 
viii.  5)  also  the  deadliness  of  their  purpose.  They  argued  (i)  that  He 
could  not  ignore  the  presence  of  a  man  consj)icuously  placed  in  front 
of  Him;  (ii)  that  perhaps  He  might  fail  in  the  cure  of  a  disease  excep- 
tionally inveterate ;  (iii)  that  if  He  did  heal  the  man  on  the  Sabbath  day 
,     there  would  be  room  for  another  charge  before  the  synagogue  or  the 


245 


vv.  4,  5.]  ST   LUKE,    XIV. 

spake  unto  the  lawyers  and  Pharisees,  saying,  Is  it  lawful  to 
heal  on  the  sabbath  day?    And  they  held  their  peace.    And  4 
he  took  /«■;«,  and  healed  him,  and  let  hi7ji  go;  and  answered  s 
them,  saying,  Which  of  you  shall  have  an  ass  or  an  ox  fallen 
into  a  pit,  and  will  not  straightway  pull  him  out  on  the 

Sanhedrin.  One  element  which  kindled  our  Lord's  indignation  against 
the  Pharisees  for  these  crafty  schemes  was  the  way  in  which  they  made 
a  mere  tool  of  human  misery  and  human  shame. 

3.  answering  spake  unto  the  lawyers  aiid  Pharisees^  See  on  v.  22. 
He  took  the  initiative,  and  answered  their  unspoken  thoughts. 

Is  it  laivful  to  heal  on  the  sabbath  day?\  We  have  ah'eady  seen 
(vi.  I — II,  xiii.  11—17;  comp.  John  v.  11,  ix.  14),  that  these  Sabbath 
disputes  lay  at  the  very  centre  of  the  Pharisaic  hatred  to  him,  because 
around  the  ordinance  of  the  Sabbath  they  had  concentrated  the  worst 
puerihties  and  formalisms  of  the  Oral  Law;  and  because  the  Sabbath 
had  sunk  from  a  religious  ordinance  into  a  national  institution,  the  badge 
of  their  exclusiveness  and  pride.  But  this  perfectly  simple  and  transpa- 
rent question  at  once  defeated  their  views.  If  they  said  '  It  is  not 
lawful '  they  exposed  themselves  before  the  people  to  those  varied  and 
overwhelming  refutations  which  they  had  already  undergone  (see  on 
xiii.  15).  If  they  said  '  It  is  lawful '  then  cecidit  quaestio,  and  their  plot 
had  come  to  nothing. 

4.  they  held  their  peace']  It  was  the  silence  of  a  splenetic  pride  and 
obstinacy  which  while  secretly  convinced  determined  to  remain  un- 
convinced. But  such  silence  was  His  complete  public  justif^ation. 
If  the  contemplated  miracle  was  imlawful  why  did  not  they — the  great 
religious  authorities  of  Judaism — forbid  it  ? 

he  took  him]  Rather,  taking  hold  of  him,  i.e.  laying  his  hand  upon 
him. 

5.  an  ass  or  an  ox\  The  unquestionable  reading  if  we  are  to  follow 
the  MSS.  is  'a  son  or  an  ox.'  The  strangeness  of  the  collocation  (which 
however  may  be  taken  to  imply  '  a  son — nay  even  an  ox ')  has  led  to 
the  conjectural  emendation  of  huios  into  o'is  'a  sheep '  (whence  the  reading 
probaton  'a  sheep'  in  D)  or  onos  'an  ass'  which  was  suggested  by 
Deut.  xxii.  4.  When  however  it  is  a  question  Ijctween  two  readings 
it  is  an  almost  invariable  rule  that  the  more  difficult  is  to  be  preferred 
as  the  more  likely  to  have  been  tampered  with.  Further  (i)  Scripture 
never  has  "ass  and  ox"  but  always  "ox  and  ass;"  and  (ii)  "son"  is 
a  probable  allusion  to  Ex.  xxiii.  12,  "thine  ox  and  thine  ass  and  the 
son  of  thine  handmaid  shall  rest  on  the  sabl)ath,"  and  (iii)  the  collocation 
'son  and  ox'  is  actually  found  in  some  Rabbinic  parallels.  If  it  be 
said  that  'a  son  falling  into  a  well'  is  an  unusual  incident,  the  answer 
seems  to  be  that  it  may  be  an  allusion  to  the  man's  disease  (dropsy  =  the 
watery  disease) ;  also  that  pits  and  wells  are  so  common  and  often  so 
unprotected  in  Palestine  that  the  incident  must  have  been  less  rare 
than  it  is  among  us. 

straightway p7i II  him  otit]  although  the  Salibath  labour  thus  involved 
would  be  considerable.     And  why  would  they  do  this?  because  llicy 


246 


ST   LUKE,    XIV. 


[vv.  6—8- 


6  sabbath  day?     And  they  could  not  answer  him  again  to 
these  things. 

7 — II.     Humility;  a  Lesson  for  the  Guests. 

7  And  he  put  forth  a  parable  to  those  which  were  bidden, 
when  he  marked  how  they  chose  out  the  chief  rooms;  say- 

8  ing  unto  them,  When  thou  art  bidden  of  any  mmi  to  a  wed- 

had  been  taught,  and  in  their  better  mind  distinctly  felt,  that  mercy 
was  above  the  ceremonial  law  (Deut.  xxii.  4).  An  instance  which  had 
happened  not  many  years  before  shews  how  completely  they  were 
blinding  and  stultifying  their  own  better  instincts  in  their  Sabbath 
quibblings  against  our  Lord.  When  Hillel — then  a  poor  porter — -had 
been  found  half-frozen  under  masses  of  snow  in  the  window  of  the 
lecture-room  of  Shemaiah  and  Abtalion  where  he  had  hidden  himself 
to  profit  by  their  wisdom  because  he  had  been  unable  to  earn  the  small 
fee  for  entrance,  they  had  rubbed  and  resuscitated  him  thoicgh  it  was 
the  Sabbath  day,  and  had  said  that  he  was  one  for  whose  sake  it  was 
well  worth  while  to  break  the  Sabbath. 

6.  they  could  not  answer  hhn  again  to  these  things']  A  fact  which 
never  makes  any  difference  to  the  convictions  of  ignorant  hatred  and 
superstitious  narrowness. 

7—11.    Humility;  a  Lesson  for  the  Guests. 

7.  he  pnt  forth  a  parable]     See  on  iv.  23. 

to  those  -which  were  bidden]  to  the  invited  guests,  as  distinguished  from 
the  onlookers. 

they  chose  out]  Rather,  they  were  picking  out  for  themselves.  The 
selfish  struggle  for  precedence  as  they  were  taking  their  places — a  small 
ambition  so  universal  that  it  even  affected  the  Apostles  (Mk.  ix.  34) — gave 
Him  the  opportunity  for  a  lesson  of  Humility. 

the  chief  rooms]  i.e.  the  chief  places  at  table.  These  at  each  of  the 
various  triclinia  would  be  those  numbered  2,  5,  and  8.  The  host 
usually  sat  at  9. 


6        5 

4 

7 

medius 

3 

.1 

3 
S 

e 

3 

(A 

3 

8 

2 

9 

I 

8.  to  a  wedding]  The  term  is  used  generally  for  any  great  feast ; 
but  perhaps  our  Lord  here  adopted  it  to  make  His  lesson  less  imme- 
diately personal. 


vv.  9—12.]  ST    LUKE,   XIV.  247 

ding,  sit  not  down  in  the  highest  room;  lest  a  moie  honour- 
able man  than  thou  be  bidden  of  him;  and  he  that  bade  9 
thee  and  him  come  and  say  to  thee,  Give  this  ma?i  place; 
and  thou  begin  with  shame  to  take  the  lowest  room.     But  10 
when  thou  art  bidden,  go  and  sit  down  in  the  lowest  room; 
that  when  he  that  bade  thee  cometh,  he  may  say  unto  thee, 
Friend,  go  up  higher:  then  shalt  thou  have  worship  in  the 
presence  of  them  that  sit  at  meat  with  thee.     For  whoso-  n 
ever  exalteth  himself  shall  be  abased;  and  he  that  humbleth 
himself  shall  be  exalted. 

12 — 14.      Whom  to  invite;  a  Lesson  to  the  Host. 

Then  said  he  also  to  him  that  bade  him,  When  thou  12 
makest  a  dinner  or  a  supper,  call  not  thy  friends,  nor  thy 

a  more  honourable  man  than  thoii]  Phil.  ii.  3,  "in  lowliness  of  mind 
let  each  esteem  other  better  than  themselves." 

9.  thou  begin  with  shame  to  take  the  lowest  room]  If,  by  the  time 
that  the  guests  are  seated,  it  be  found  that  some  one  has  thrust  himself 
into  too  high  a  position  for  his  rank,  when  he  is  removed  he  will  find  all 
the  other  good  places  occupied.  There  is  an  obvious  reference  to  Prov. 
XXV.  6,  7.  How  much  the  lesson  was  needed  to  check  the  arrogant 
pretensions  of  the  Jewish  theologians,  is  shewn  again  and  again  in  the  \ 
Talmud,  where  they  assert  no  reward  to  be  too  good  or  too  exalted  for 
their  merits.  Thus  at  a  banquet  of  King  Alexander  Jannaeus,  the  Rabbi 
Simeon  Ben  Shetach,  in  spite  of  the  presence  of  some  great  Persian 
Satraps,  had  thrust  himself  at  table  between  the  King  and  Queen,  and 
when  rebuked  for  his  intrusion,  quoted  in  his  defence  Ecclus.  xv.  5, 
"Exalt  wisdom,  and  she... shall  make  thee  sit  among  princes." 

10.  then  shalt  thou  have  worship]  Rather,  glory.  It  need,  however, 
hardly  be  said  that  nothing  is  farther  from  our  Lord's  intentions  than  to 
teach  mere  calculating  worldly  politeness.  From  the  simple  facts  of  life 
that  an  intrusive  person  rentiers  himself  liable  to  just  rebuffs,  he  draws 
the  great  spiritual  lesson  so  much  needed  by  the  haughty  religious  pro- 
fessors by  whom  He  was  surrounded,  that  , 

"Humble  we  must  be  if  to  heaven  we  go; 
High  is  the  roof  there,   but  the  door  is  low." 

11.  ivhosoever  exalteth  himself  shall  be  abased]  Rather,  humbled. 
See  on  i.  52,  xiii.  30,  and  Matt,  xxiii.  1  2.  A  similar  lesson  is  prominent 
in  the  Book  of  Proverbs  (xv.  33,  xvi.  18,  19,  xxix.  23),  and  is  strongly 
enforced  by  St  Peter  (i  Pet.  v.  5). 

12—14.     Whom  to  invite;  a  Lesson  to  the  Host. 

12.  call  not  thy  friends,  nor  thy  brethren]  In  this,  as  many  of  our 
Lord's  utterances,  we  must  take  into  account  (i)  the  idioms  of  Oriental 


248  ST   LUKE,   XIV.  [vv.  13—16. 

brethren,  neither  thy  kinsmen,  nor  thy  ricli  neighbours;  lest 
they  also  bid  thee  again,  and  a  recompence  be  made  thee. 

13  But  when  thou  makest  a  feast,  call  the  poor,  the  maimed, 

14  the  lame,  the  blind:  and  thou  shalt  be  blessed;  for  they 
cannot  recompense  thee:  for  thou  shalt  be  recompensed  at 
the  resurrection  of  the  just. 

15 — 24.     The  Refused  Banquet ;  a  Lesson  to  a  Guest. 

15  And  when  one  of  them  that  sat  at  meat  with  him  heard 
these  things,  he  said  unto  him,  Blessed  is  he  that  shall  eat 

16  bread  in  the  kingdom  of  God.     Then  said  he  unto  him,  A 

speech;  (2)  the  rules  of  common  sense,  which  teach  us  to  distinguish 
between  the  letter  and  the  spirit.  It  is  obvious  that  our  Lord  did  not 
mean  Vo  forbid  the  common  hospitalities  between  kinsmen  and  equals, 
but  only,  as  the  context  shews,  (1)  to  discourage  a  mere  interested  hos- 
pitality intended  to  secure  a  return;  and  (2)  to  assert  that  unselfish  gene- 
rosity is  superior  to  the  common  civilities  of  friendliness.  The  "'not''' 
therefore  means,  as  often  elsewhere  in  Scripture,  "not  only,  but  also,' 
or  "not  so  much. ..as,"  as  in  Prov.  viii.  10;  John  vi.  27;  i  Cor.  i.  17, 
XV.  10;  I  Tim.  ii.  9,  &c.  In  other  words,  "not"  sometimes  denies 
"not  absolutely  but  conditionally  (Gal.  v.  21)  and  comparatively  (i  Cor. 
i.  17)."     See  Matt.  ix.  13;  Jer.  vii.  22;  Joel  ii.  13;  Heb.  viii.  11. 

and  a  recojupence  be  made  thee\  In  a  similar  case  Martial  says,  "You 
are  asking  for  gifts,  Sextus,  not  for  friends."  There  is  a  remarkable 
parallel  in  Plato's  Fhaedrus. 

13.  call  the  poor^  Matt.  xxv.  35.  The  duty  is  recognised  in  another 
form  by  Nehemiah.  "Eat  the  fat,  and  drink  the  sweet,  and  send 
portions  unto  them  for  whom  nothing  is  prepared,"  Nehem.  viii.  10. 

14.  at  the  restirrection  of  the  jnst]  The  same  duty  is  enforced  with 
the  same  motive  by  St  Paul,  i  Tim.  vi.  17 — 19.  By  the  phrase  '^the 
resurrection  of  the  Just,''  our  Lord  possibly  referred  to  the  twofold 
resurrection,  xx.  35;  i  Cor.  xv.  23;  i  Thess.  iv.  16,  &c.  But  the  allu- 
sion may  be  more  general,  Acts  xxiv.  15. 

15 — 24.    The  Refused  Banquet;  a  Lesson  to  a  Guest. 

15.  when  one  of  them  that  sat  at  meat  tvith  him  heard  these  things'] 
He  may  have  wanted  to  diminish  the  force  of  the  rebukes  implied  in  the 

'  previous  lessons  by  a  vapid  general  remark.  At  any  rate,  he  seems  to 
have  assumed  that  he  would  be  one  of  those  who  would  sit  at  the 
heavenly  feast  which  should  inaugurate  the  new  aeon,  and  from  which, 
like  all  Jews,  he  held  it  to  be  almost  inconceivable  that  any  circumcised 
son  of  Abraham  should  be  excluded.  Hence  the  warning  involved  in  this 
parable  which  was  meant  to  prove  how  small  was  the  real  anxiety  to 
accept  the  divine  invitation. 

shall  eat  bread  in  the  kingdo7n  of  God]  Almost  the  same  words  occur 
in  Rev.   xix.  9.      The  Jews   connected   the   advent  of  the  Messianic 


vv.  17—21.]  ST    LUKE,   XIV.  249 

certain  man  made  a  great  supper,  and  bade  many:  and  sent  17 
his  servant  at  supper  time  to  say  to  them  that  were  bidden, 
Come;  for  all  things  are  now  ready.     And  they  all  with  one  iS 
consefit  began  to  make  excuse.     The  first  said  unto  him,  I 
have  bought  a  piece  of  ground,  and  I  must  needs  go  and 
see  it :  I  pray  thee  have  me  excused.     And  another  said,  I  19 
have  bought  five  yoke  of  oxen,  and  I  go  to  prove  them :  I 
pray  thee  have  me  excused.     And  another  said,    I  have  20 
married  a  wife,  and  therefore  I  cannot  come.     So  that  ser-  21 


Kingdom  with  banquets  of  food  more  delicious  than  manna,  the  flesh  of 
Leviathan,  and  the  bird  Bar  Juchne. 

16.  A  certain  man  7iiade  a  great  supper"]  The  difference  between 
this  parable  and  that  of  the  King's  Supper  will  be  clear  to  any  one  who 
will  read  it  side  by  side  with  Matt.  xxii.  i — 10.  He  who  gives  the 
invitation  is  God.     Ps.  xxv.  6. 

and  bade  many]  The  breadth  and  ultimate  universality  of  the  Gospel 
message.  But  as  yet  the  "  many,"  are  the  Jews,  who  (in  the  first  appli- 
tion)  are  indicated  by  those  who  refuse. 

17.  sent  his  sei"vant  at  supper  time]  This  is  still  a  custom  in  the 
East,  Prov.  ix.  i — 5 ;  Thomson,  Land  attd  Book,  i.  ch.  ix.  The 
message  of  the  servant  corresponds  to  the  ministry  of  John  the  Baptist 
and  of  Jesus  Himself 

Come ;  for  all  things  are  now  ready]  "Repent  ye;  for  the  kingdom 
of  heaven  is  at  hand,"  x.  1,9;  Matt.  iii.  i,  2. 

18.  with  otie  consent]  i.e.  apo  niias  gnomes;  or  'with  one  voice,' 
if  we  understand  phones. 

to  make  excuse]  The  Greek  word  is  the  exact  equivalent  of  our  '/<? 
beg  off.^  The  same  fact  is  indicated  in  John  i.  11,  v.  40,  and  in  the  "ye 
would  not"  of  xiii.  34;  and  the  reason  is  the  antipathy  of  the  natural  or 
carnal  man  (6  ^vxi-^bs)  to  God,  John  xv.  24. 

have  me  excused]  The  original  is  consider  me  as  having  been 
excused.  The  very  form  of  the  expression  involves  the  consciousness  that 
his  excuse  of  necessity  {a,v6.yKr\v  ^x'^)  was  merely  an  excuse.  There  is,  too, 
an  emphasis  on  the  J7ie — "excusatum  me  habeas" — it  may  be  the  duty 
of  others  to  go ;  /  am  an  exception. 

19.  /  go  to  prove  them]  The  second  has  not  even  the  decency  to 
plead  any  necessity.  He  merely  says  '  I  am  going  to  test  my  oxen,' 
and  implies  '  my  will  is  sufficient  reason.' 

20.  I ca7inot  come]  The  'I  cannot,'  as  in  xi.  7,  is  only  an  euphemism 
for  '  I  will  not.'  He  thinks  his  reason  so  strong  that  there  can  be  no 
question  about  it.  He  relies  doubtless  on  the  principle  of  the  exemption 
from  war,  granted  to  newly-married  bridegrooms  in  Dcut.  xxiv.  5.  Perhaps 
St  Paul  is  alluding  to  this  parable  in  1  Cor.  vii.  29 — 33,  "The  time  is 
short :  it  remaineth,  that  both  they  that  have  wives  be  as  though  they 
had  none;... and  they  that  buy,  as  tliough  they  possessed  not;  and  they 
that  use  this  world,  as  not  using  it  to  the  full."  Thus  the  three  hindrances 


250  ST   LUKE,   XIV.  [vv.  22—24. 

vant  came,  and  shewed  his  lord  these  things.  Then  the 
master  of  the  house  being  angry  said  to  his  servant.  Go  out 
quickly  into  the  streets  and  lanes  of  the  city,  and  bring  in 
hither  the  poor,  and  the  maimed,  and  the  halt,   and  the 

22  blind.     And  the  servant  said.  Lord,  it  is  done  as  thou  hast 

23  commanded,  and  yet  there  is  room.  And  the  lord  said 
unto  the  servant,  Go  out  into  the  htghwdiys  and  hedges,  and 

24  compel  them  to  come  in,  that  my  house  may  be  filled.     For 

are  possessions,  wealth,  pleasures.  But,  as  Bengel  says,  neither  the  field 
(Matt.  xiii.  44),  nor  the  plowing  (ix.  62),  nor  the  wedding  (2  Cor.  xi.  2)  need 
have  been  any  real  hindrance.  The  *  sacred  hate '  of  vs.  26  would  have 
cured  all  these  excuses. 

21.  thai  servant  came,  and  shewed  his  lord  these  things']  We  have 
here  a  shadow  of  the  complaints  and  lamentations  of  our  Lord  over 
the  stiffnecked  obstinacy  of  the  Jews  in  rejecting  Him. 

Then  the  master  of  the  house  being  angry\ 

"  God,  when  He's  angry  here  with  any  one 
His  wrath  is  free  from  perturbation; 
And  when  we  think  His  looks  are  sour  and  grim 
The  alteration  is  in  us,  not  Him." 

Herrick. 

the  streets  and  lanes  of  the  city]  This  corresponds  to  the  call  of  the 
publicans,  sinners,  and  harlots — the  lost  sheep  of  the  House  of  Israel, iv. 
18;  Mk.  xii.  37;  Matt.  xxi.  32;  James  ii.  5. 

22.  and  yet  there  is  room]  '  Grace,  no  less  than  Nature,  abhors  a 
vacuum.'    Bengel. 

1/       23.     into  the  highways  and  hedges]    i.e.  outside  the  city;  intimating 

I    the  ultimate  call  of  the  Gentiles. 

!  compel  them  to  come  in]  By  such  moral  suasion  as  that  described  in 
2  Tim.  iv.  2.  The  compulsion  wanted  is  that  used  by  Paul  the  Apostle, 
not  by  Saul  the  Inquisitor.  The  abuse  of  the  word  "Compel"  in  the 
cause  of  intolerance  is  one  of  the  many  instances  which  prove  the  dead- 
liness  of  that  mechanical  letter-worship  which  attributes  infallibdity  not 
only  to  Scripture,  but  even  to  its  own  ignorant  misinterpretations.  The 
compulsion  is  merciful,  not  sanguinary;  it  is  a  compulsion  to  inward 
acceptance,  not  to  outward  conformity;  it  is  employed  to  overcome  the 
humble  despair  of  the  penitent,  not  the  proud  resistance  of  the  heretic. 
Otherwise  it  would  have  been  applied,  not  to  the  poor  suffering  out- 
casts, but  to  the  haughty  and  privileged  persons  who  had  refused  the 

1   first  invitation.     Yet  even  Augustine  shews  some  tendency  to  this  im- 

1  moral  perversion  of  the  words  in  his  "J<oris  itiveniatnr  necessitas, 
nascitur  intus  voluntas."  Others  apply  it  to  threats  of  eternal  punish- 
ment, and  a  ministry  which  dwells  on  lessons  of  wrath. 

24.  For  I  say  unto  you]  Since  the  ''you  '  is  plural  this  verse  is  pro- 
bably the  language  of  our  Lord,  indirectly  assuming  that  His  hearers 
would  see  the  bearing  of  this  parable. 


vv.  25,  26.]  ST    LUKE,    XIV.  251 

I  say  unto  you,  That  none  of  those  men  which  were  bidden 
shall  taste  of  my  supper. 

25 — 35.  Lessons  of.  Whole-heartedness,  and  of  Counting  the 
Cost;  the  Tower-builder ;  the  warring  King;  the  savour- 
less Salt. 

And  there  went  great  multitudes  with  him:  and  he  turned,  25 
and  said  unto  them,  If  any  niafi  come  to  me,  and  hate  not  26 
his  father,   and  mother,  and  wife,  and  children,  and  bre- 
thren, and  sisters,  yea,  and  his  own  life  also,  he  cannot  be 

none  of  those  men  which  were  bidden  shall  taste  of  my  S7tpper\  It  must 
be  remembered  that  Jesus  had  now  been  distinctly  and  deliberately  re- 
jected at  Nazareth  (iv.  29)  and  Jerusalem  (John  viii.  59) ;  in  Judaea, 
Samaria  (ix.  53),  Galilee  (x.  13),  and  Peraea  (viii.  37).  "Seeing  ye  put  it 
from  you,  and  judge  yourselves  unworthy  of  everlasting  life,  lo,  we  turn 
to  the  Gentiles,"  Acts  xiii.  46;  Heb.  xii.  25;  Matt.  xxi.  43,  xxii.  8, 

25—35.      Lessons   of   Whole-heartedness,   and  of  Counting 
THE  Cost;  the  Tower-builder;  the  warring  King;  the 

SAVOURLESS    SaLT. 

25.  And  there  went  great  multittides  with  him"]  This  is  evidently 
a  scene  of  the  journey,  when  multitudes  of  the  Galilaean  pilgrims  were 
accompanying  Him  on  their  way  to  one  of  the  great  Jewish  feasts.  The 
warning  might  have  prevented  them  from  following  Him  now,  and 
shouting  'Crucify  Him'  afterwards. 

26.  and  hate  not  his  father  and  mother"]  It  is  not  so  much  the  true 
explanation  to  say  that  hate  here  means  love  less  (Gen.  xxix.  31),  as  to 
say  that  when  our  nearest  and  dearest  relationships  prove  to  be  positive 
obstacles  in  coming  to  Christ,  then  all  natural  affections  must  be  flung 
aside;  comp.  Deut.  xiii.  6 — 9,  xxi.  19 — 21,  xxxiii.  8,  9.  A  reference  to 
Matt.  X.  37  will  shew  that  '  hate '  means  hate  by  comparison.  Our  Lord 
purposely  stated  great  principles  in  their  boldest  and  even  most  para- 
doxical form  by  which  He  alone  has  succeeded  in  impressing  them  for 
ever  as  principles  on  the  hearts  of  His  disciples.  The  '  love  of  love ' 
involves  a  necessity  for  the  possible  '  hate  of  hate,'  as  even  worldly 
poets  have  understood. 

"Va,  je  t'aimais  trop  pour  ne  pas  te  hair." 
"I  could  not  love  thee,   dear,  so  much 
Loved  I  not  honour  more." 

Lovelace. 

yea,  and  his  own  life  also]  This  further  explains  the  meaning  of  the 
word  'hate.'  The  psuche  ' %o\i\^  or  'animal  life'  is  the  seat  of  the 
passions  and  temptations  which  naturally  alienate  the  spirit  from  Christ. 
These  must  be  hated,  mortified,  crucified  if  they  cannot  be  controlled; 
and  life  itself  must  be  cheerfully  sacrificed,  Rev.  xii.  11;  Acts  xx.  24. 


252  ST    LUKE,    XIV.  [vv.  27— 32. 

27  my  disciple.     And  whosoever  doth  not  bear  his  cross,  and 

23  come  after  me,  cannot  be  my  disciple.     For  which  of  you, 

intending   to   build   a   tower,    sitteth   not  down  first,    and 

counteth  the  cost,  whether  he  have  sufficient  to  finish  it  ? 

29  Lest  haply,  after  he  hath  laid  the  foundation,  and  is  not 

30  able  to  finish  //,  all  that  behold  //  begin  to  mock  him,  saying, 

31  This  man  began  to  build,  and  was  not  able  to  finish.  Or 
what  king,  going  to  make  war  against  another  king,  sitteth 
not  down  first,  and  consulteth  whether  he  be  able  with  ten 
thousand  to  meet  him  that  cometh  against  him  with  twenty 

32  thousand?  Or  else,  while  the  other  is  yet  a  great  way  off, 
he  sendeth  an  ambassage,  and  desireth  conditions  of  peace. 


"II  faut  vivre  dans  ce  monde,"  says  St  Francis  de  Sales,  "comme  si 
nous  avions  I'esprit  au  ciel,  et  le  corps  au  tombeau." 

27.  doth  not  bear  his  cross\  Not  only  must  self  be  mortified,  but 
even  the  worst  sufferings  endured,  i  Thess.  iii.  4,  5.  The  alkision  to  the 
cross  must  still  have  been  mysterious  to  the  hearers  (Matt.  x.  38),  the 
more  so  since  they  were  dreaming  of  Messianic  triumphs  and  fes- 
tivities. 

28.  intendhtg  to  bitild  a  tower\  This  and  the  next  similitude  are 
meant,  like  the  previous  teachings,  to  warn  the  expectant  multitudes 
that  to  follow  Christ  in  the  true  sense  might  be  a  far  more  serious 
matter  than  they  imagined.  They  are  significant  lessons  on  the  duty  of 
deliberate  choice  which  will  not  shrink  from  the  ultimate  consequences — 
the  duty  of  counting  the  cost  (see  Matt.  xx.  22).  Thus  they  involve  that 
lesson  of  "patient  continuance  in  well-doing,"  which  is  so  often  in- 
culcated in  the  New  Testament. 

29.  all  that  behold  it  begin  to  mock  hini]  Very  possilily  this  might 
have  actually  happened  in  some  well-known  instance,  since  the  Herodian 
family  had  a  passion  for  great  buildings  and  probably  found  many 
imitators.  First  failure,  then  shame  awaits  renegade  professions  and 
extinguished  enthusiasms. 

31.  what  king,  going  to  make  war  against  another  king'\  Rather,  to 
meet  another  king  in  battle.  There  may  be  an  historical  allusion 
here  to  the  disturbed  relations  between  Herod  Antipas  and  his  injured 
father-in-law  Hareth,  king  of  Arabia,  which  (after  this  time)  ended  in  the 
total  defeat  of  the  former  (Jos.  Antt.  xviii.  5,  §  3). 

32.  desireth  conditions  of  peace'\  This  is  sufficient  to  overthrow  the 
interpretation  which  sees  Man  and  Satan  in  the  warring  kings.  Another 
view  is  that  it  implies  the  hostility  of  man  to  God,  and  the  urgent 
need  of  being  reconciled  to  Him  (e.g.  Bengel  says  on  the  word  'king,' 
"Christiana  militia  regale  quiddam").  That  however  is  never  a  cal- 
culated hostility  which  deliberately  sits  down  and  expects  to  win  the 
victory;  otherwise  it  would  be  a  good  inference  that  "a  Christian's 
weakness  is  his  strength."    It  is  a  mistake,  and  one  which  often  leads  to 


vv. 


33-35;  !•]        ST   LUKE,   XIV.  XV.  253 


So  likewise,  whosoever  he  be  of  you  that  forsaketh  not  all  33 
that  he  hath,  he  cannot  be  my  disciple.     Salt  is  good:  but  34 
if  the  salt  have  lost  his  savour,  wherewith  shall  it  be  sea- 
soned ?     It  is  neither  fit  for  the  land,  nor  yet  for  the  dung-  3s 
hill;  hit  men  cast  it  out.     He  that  hath  ears  to  hear,   let 
him  hear. 

Ch.  XV.    Parables  for  Picblicans  and  Sinners.     The  Love 
and  free  Forgiveness  of  God. 

I — 10.     The  Lost  Sheep. 

Then  drew  near  unto  him  all  the  publicans  and  sinners  15 

serious   errors,  to   press  unduly  the  details  of  parables;  as  when  for 
instance  some  would  see  in  the  10,000  soldiers  a  reference  to  the  Ten    i 
Commandments.     The  general  lesson  is — Do  not  undertake  what  you    | 
have  neither  the  strength  nor  will  to  achieve,  nor  that  in  which  you  are    ' 
not  prepared,  if  need  be,  to  sacrifice  life  itself. 

33.  forsaketh  not  all  that  he  kathl  i.  e.  every  affection,  gift  or  posses- 
sion that  interferes  with  true  discipleship.  We  must  be  ready  'to  count 
all  things  but  loss  for  Christ,'  Phil.  iii.  7,  8. 

34.  Salt  is  good]  The  true  reading  is  Salt  therefore  is  good,  con- 
necting this  verse  with  what  has  gone  before.  This  similitude  was 
thrice  used  by  Christ  with  different  applications.  "Ye  are  the  salt  of 
the  earth,"  Matt.  v.  13.  "Have  salt  in  yourselves,"  Mk.  ix.  50.  Here 
the  salt  is  the  inward  energy  of  holiness  and  devotion,  and  in  the  fate 
of  salt  which  has  lost  its  savour  we  see  the  peril  which  ensues  from 
neglect  of  the  previous  lessons. 

35.  meti  cast  it  out]  There  is  nothing  stronger  than  salt  which  can 
restore  to  it  its  lost  pungency.  Hence,  if  it  have  been  spoilt  by  rain  or 
exposure,  it  is  only  fit  to  be  used  for  paths.  The  peril  of  backsliding, 
the  worthlessness  of  the  state  produced  by  apostasy,  is  represented  in 
St  John  (xv.  6)  by  the  cutting  off  and  burning  of  the  dead  and  withered 
branch.  The  main  lesson  of  these  three  similitudes  is  expressed  with 
its  full  force  in  Heb.  vi.  4—12,  x.  ■26 — 39;  and  the  importance  of  it  is 
emphasized  by  the  proverbial  expression,  "He  that  hath  ears  to  hear," 
&c.  (Matt.  xi.  15;  Deut.  xxix,  4;  Is.  vi.  9,  10). 

Ch.  XV.    Parables  for  Publicans  and  Sinners.    The  Love 
and  free  forgiveness  of  god. 

1 — 10.    The  Lost  Sheep. 

1.  Then  drew  near  unto  him]  Rather,  And  there  were  drawings 
near  to  Him  all  the  tax-gatherers  and  the  sinners  to  listen  to  Him. 
St  Chrysostom  says  that  their  very  life  was  legalised  sin  and  specious 
greed.  On  the  pul)licans,  see  iii.  ii,  v.  27.  'The  sinners'  mean  in 
general  the  degraded  and  outcast  classes.  See  Introd.  and  Wordsworth, 
ad  loc. 


254  ST   LUKE,    XV.  [w.  2—6. 

2  for  to  hear  him.  And  the  Pharisees  and  scribes  murmured, 
saying,  This  man  receiveth  sinners,  and  eateth  with  them. 

\  And  he  spake  this  parable  unto  them,  saying,  What  man  of 
you,  having  an  hundred  sheep,  if  he  lose  one  of  them,  doth 
not  leave  the  ninety  and  nine  in  the  wilderness,  and  go  after 

s  that  which  is  lost,   until  he  find  it?     And  when  he  hath 

6  found  //,  he  layeth  //  on  his  shoulders,  rejoicing.  And  when 
he  cometh  home,  he  calleth  together  his  friends  and  neigh- 
bours, saying  unto  them,  Rejoice  with  me;  for  I  have  found 

2.  the  Pharisees  and  scribes^     See  Excursus  VI. 

murmtcredl  Rather,  were  loudly  murmuring  (xix.  7;  Josh.  ix.  18). 
"With  arid  heart  they  blame  the  very  Fount  of  Mercy,"  Gregory  the 
Great.  In  all  ages  it  had  been  their  sin  that  they  'sought  not  the  lost.' 
Ezek.  xxxiv.  4. 

and  eateth  with  thent]  Even  their  ioitch  was  regarded  as  unclean  by 
the  Pharisees.  But  our  Lord,  who  read  the  heart,  knew  that  the 
religious  professors  were  often  the  worse  sinners  before  God,  and  He 
associated  with  sinners  that  He  might  save  them.  "Ideo  secutus  est... 
usque  ad  mensam,  ubi  maxime  peccatur."  Bengel.  It  is  this  yearning 
of  redemptive  love  which  finds  its  richest  illustration  in  these  three 
parables.  They  contain  the  very  essence  of  the  Glad  Tidings,  and  two 
of  them  are  peculiar  to  St  Luke. 

3.  he  spake  this  parable]  Matt,  xviii.  12 — 14.  In  these  three 
parables  we  have  pictures  of  the  bewildered  sinner  (3 — 7) ;  the  uncon- 
scious sinner  (8 — 10) ;  the  voluntary  sinner  (11 — 32). 

4.  an  hundred  sheep]  And  yet  out  of  this  large  flock  the  good 
shepherd  grieves  for  one  which  strays.  There  is  an  Arab  saying  that 
God  has  divided  pity  into  a  hundred  parts,  and  kept  ninety-nine  for 
Llimself. 

in  the  wilderness]  i.  e.  the  Midbar,  or  pastures ;  see  ii.  8.  The 
sheep  are  left  of  course  under  minor  shepherds,  not  uncared  for.  Some 
see  in  the  Lost  Sheep  the  whole  human  race,  and  in  the  ninety-nine 
the  Angels:  as  though  mankind  were  but  a  hundredth  part  of  God's 
flock. 

until  he  find  it]  Strange  that  utterances  so  gracious  as  this  should 
be  utterly  passed  over,  when  so  many  darker  details  are  rigidly  pressed ! 

6.  he  layeth  it  on  his  shoulders,  rejoicing]  Literally,  ^  his  own 
shoulders^  All  anger  against  the  folly  of  the  wanderer  is  swallowed  up 
in  love,  and  joy  at  its  recovery.  "He  bare  our  sins  in  His  own  body," 
I  Pet.  ii.  24.  We  have  the  same  metaphor  in  the  Psalm  of  the  shepherd 
king  (Ps.  cxix.  176;  comp.  Is.  liii.  6;  John  x.  11),  and  in  the  letter  of 
the  Apostle,  to  whom  had  been  addressed  the  words,  "  Feed  my  sheep," 
I  Pet.  ii.  25.  This  verse  supplied  a  favourite  subject  for  the  simple 
and  joyous  art  of  the  catacombs.  Tert.  De  Pudic.  7.  See  Lundy, 
Monumental  Christianity,  pp.  150  sqq. 

6.     calleth  together  his  friends  and  neighbours]     See  on  .xiv.  12. 


vv.  7—9.]  ST   LUKE,   XV.  255 

my  sheep  which  was  lost.     I  say  unto  you,  that  hkewise  joy  7 
shall  be  in  heaven  over  one  sinner  that  repenteth,  juore 
than    over   ninety  and  nine  just  persons   which   need   no 
repentance. 

Either  what  woman  having  ten  pieces  of  silver,  if  she  8 
lose  one  piece,  doth  not  light  a  candle,    and   sweep   the 
house,  and  seek  dihgently  till  she  find  it  7     And  when  she  g 
hath  found  it,  she  calleth  her  friends  and  her  neighbours 
together,  saying.  Rejoice  with  me;   for  I  have  found  the 

Rejoice  with  me]  "For  the  joy  set  before  Him,  He  endured  the 
cross,"  Heb.  xii.  2;  comp.  Is.  liii.  11. 

7.  /say  unto  you]    I — who  know  (John  i.  51). 
in  heaven]     See  vs.  10;  Matt,  xviii.  13. 

just  persons,  which  need  no  repentance]  See  v.  32.  The  '  Pharisees 
and  scribes'  in  an  external  sense  were  'just  persons,'  for  as  a  class  their 
lives  were  regular,  though  we  learn  from  Josephus  and  the  Talmud  that 
many  individuals  among  them  were  guilty  of  flagrant  sins.  But  that 
our  Lord  uses  the  description  with  a  holy  irony  is  clear  from  the  parable 
of  the  Pharisee  and  the  publican  (see  xviii.  9).  They  trusted  in  them- 
selves that  they  were  righteous,  and  despised  others.  They  did  need 
repentance  (carebant),  but  did  not  wa7it  it  (non  egebant).  It  was  a  fixed 
notion  of  the  Jews  that  God  had  '■^not  appointed  repentance  to  the  just, 
and  to  Abraham,  and  Isaac,  and  Jacob,  which  have  7iot  sinned  against 
thee"  (Prayer  of  Manasses). 

8.  having  ten  pieces  of  silver]  Ten  drachmas.  This  parable  is 
peculiar  to  St  Luke,  The  Greek  drachma  (about  \od.)  corresponds 
to  the  Latin  denarius.  Each  represented  a  day's  wages,  and  may  be 
roughly  rendered  shilling.  Tob.  v.  14;  Thuc.  ill.  17;  Tac.  Ann.  I.  17. 
These  small  silver  coins  were  worn  by  women  as  a  sort  of  ornamental 
fringe  round  the  forehead  (the  semedi).  The  loss  might  therefore  seem 
less  trying  than  that  of  a  sheep,  but  (i)  in  this  case  it  is  a  tenth  (not  a 
hundredth)  part  of  what  the  woman  possesses;  and  (2)  the  coin  has  on 
it  the  image  and  superscription  of  a  king  (Gen.  i.  27;  Matt.  xxii.  20). 
"We  are  God's  drachma" — "I  feel  more  strongly  every  day  that  every- 
thing is  vanity;  I  cannot  leave  my  soul  in  this  heap  of  mud."  Lacordaire 
(Chocarne,  p.  42,  E.  Tr.). 

light  a  candle,  and  sweep  the  honse,  and  seek  diligently]  We  should 
notice  the  thorough  and  deliberate  method  of  the  search.  Some  see  in 
the  woman  a  picture  of  the  Church,  and  give  a  separate  meaning  to 
each  particular;  but  "if  we  should  attribute  to  every  single  word  a  deeper 
significance  than  appears,  we  should  not  seldom  incur  the  danger  of 
bringing  much  into  Scripture  which  is  not  at  all  contained  in  it." 
Zimmermann. 

till  she  jind  it]  If  it  be  admissible  to  build  theological  conclusions 
on  the  incidental  expressions  of  parables,  there  should  be,  in  these 
words,  a  deep  source  of  hope. 


256  ST   LUKE,   XV.  [vv.  10—13. 

1°  piece  which  I  had  lost.  Likewise,  I  say  unto  you,  there  is 
joy  in  the  presence  of  the  angels  of  God  over  one  sinner 
that  repenteth. 

II — 32.     The  Son  lost  and  found. 

\\  And  he  said,  A  certain  man  had  two  sons :  and  the 
younger  of  them  said  to  his  father,  Father,  give  me  the 
portion  of  goods  that  falleth  to  me.     And  he  divided  unto 

13  them  his  living.     And  not  many  days  after  the  younger  son 

9.  /  have  found  the  piece  which  I  had  losi\  She  does  not  say  'my 
piece.'  If  the  woman  be  intended  to  represent  the  Church,  the  loss  of 
the  '  piece  '  entrusted  to  her  may  be  in  part,  at  least,  her  own  fault. 

10.  joy  in  the  preseizce  of  the  angels  of  God]  The  same  as  the  'joy  in 
heaven'  of  vs.  7;  the  Te  Deums  of  heaven  over  the  victories  of  grace. 

over  one  sinner  that  repenteth]  "  I  have  no  pleasure  in  the  death  of 
the  wicked;  but  that  the  wicked  turn  from  his  way  and  live."  Ezek. 
xxxiii.  II. 

11 — 32.    The  Son  lost  and  found. 

11.  had  two  sons]  The  primary  applications  of  this  divine  parable, — 
which  is  peculiar  to  St  Luke,  and  would  alone  have  added  inestimable 
value  to  his  Gospel — are  (i)  to  the  Pharisees  and  the  'sinners' — i.e.  to 
the  professedly  religious,  and  the  openly  irreligious  classes ;  and  (2)  to 
the  Jews  and  Gentiles.  This  latter  application  however  only  lies 
indirectly  in  the  parable,  and  it  is  doubtful  whether  it  would  have 
occurred  consciously  to  those  who  heard  it.  This  is  the  Evangelism 
in  Evangelio.  How  much  it  soars  above  the  conceptions  of  Christians, 
even  after  hundreds  of  years  of  Christianity,  is  shewn  by  the  'elder- 
Ijrotherly  spirit'  which  has  so  often  been  manifested  (e.g.  i)y  Tertullian 
and  all  like  him)  in  narrowing  its  interpretation. 

12.  the  portion  of  goods  that  falleth  to  fne]  This  would  be  one  third 
(Deut.  xxi.  17).  The  granting  of  this  portion  corresponds  to  the  natural 
gifts  and  blessings  which  God  bestows  on  all  alike,  together  with  the 
light  of  conscience,  and  the  rich  elements  of  natural  religion.  Here 
we  have  the  history  of  a  sinful  soul.  Its  sin  {12,  13)  ;  its  misery 
(14 — 16);  its  penitence  (17 — 20);  its  forgiveness  {20 — 24). 

he  divided  nnto  them  his  living]  See  vi.  35.  "The  Lord  is  good  to 
a//,"  Ps.  cxlv.  9.  "God  is  no  respecter  of  persons,"  Acts  X.  34.  "He 
maketh  His  sun  to  rise  on  the  evil,  and  on  the  good,  and  sendeth 
rain  on  the  just  and  on  the  unjust,"  Matt.  v.  45. 

"God  answers  sharp  and  sudden  on  some  prayers; 
And  flings  the  thing  we  have  asked  for  in  our  face, 
A  gauntlet — with  a  gift  in  it." 

E.  B.  Browning. 

13.  not  many  days  after]  This  shadows  forth  the  rapidity  (i)  of 
national,  and  {2)  of  individual  degeneracy.     "In  some  children,"  says 


vv.  14,  15.]  ST   LUKE,   XV.  257 

gathered  all  together,  and  took  his  journey  into  a  far  coun- 
try,   and   there    wasted   his    substance   with  riotous   living. 
And  when  he  Ijad  spent  all,  there  arose  a  mighty  famine  in  14 
that  land;  and  he  began  to  be  in  want.     And  he  went  and  is 

Sir  Thomas  Elyot  in  The  Goveriiour,  "nature  is  more  prone  to  vice 
than  to  vertue,  and  in  the  tender  wittes  be  sparkes  of  vohiptuositie, 
whiche  norished  by  any  occasion  or  objecte,  encrease  oftentymes  into 
so  terrible  a  fire,  that  therwithall  vertue  and  reason  is  consumed."  The 
first  sign  of  going  wrong  is  a  yearning  for  spurious  Hberty. 

took  his  journey  into  a  far  countryl  The  Gentiles  soon  became  'afar 
off'  from  God  (Acts  ii.  39;  Eph.  ii.  17),  "aliens  from  the  commonwealth 
of  Israel,  and  strangers  from  tiae  covenants  of  promise,  having  no  hope, 
and  without  God  in  the  world." — So  too  the  individual  soul,  in  its 
temptations  and  its  guiltiness,  ever  tries  in  vain  to  escape  from  God  (Ps. 
cxxxix.  7 — 10)  into  the  'far  country'  of  sin,  which  involves  foro-et/uluess 
of  Him.  Jer.  £j>.  146.  Thus  the  younger  son  becomes  "Lord  of 
himself,  that  heritage  of  woe." 

with  riotous  liviitg\  Literally,  "living  ruinously" — asotos.  The 
adverb  occurs  here  only,  and  is  derived  from  a  '  not,'  and  crafw  'I  save.' 
The  substantive  occurs  in  i  Pet.  iv.  4;  Eph.  v.  18.  Aristotle  defines 
asotia  as  a  mixture  of  intemperance  and  prodigality.  For  the  historical 
fact  indicated,  see  Rom.  i.  19 — 32.  The /«c//z'/(/;/rt/ fact  needs,  alas!  no 
illustration.  One  phrase — two  words — is  enough.  Our  loving  Saviour 
does  not  dwell  upon,  or  darken  the  details,  of  our  sinfulness. 

14.     And  when  he  had  spent  aH\     Historically, 

"On  that  hard  Roman  world,  disgust 
And  secret  loathing  fell; 
Deep  weariness  and  sated  lust 
Made  human  life  a  hell." 

M.  Arnold. 

Individually,  "The  limits  are  narrow  within  which,  by  wasting  his 
capital,  a  man  obtains  a  supply  of  pocket-money."     G.  Macdonald. 

there  arose  a  mighty  famine  in  that  land\  God  has  given  him  his 
heart's  desire  and  sent  leanness  withal  into  his  bones.  The  worst  famine 
of  all  is  "not  a  famine  of  bread  or  a  thirst  of  water,  but  of  hearing  the 
words  of  the  Lord"  (Amos  viii.  11);  and  in  such  a  famine  even  "the 
fair  virgins  and  young  men  faint  for  thirst"  (id.  vs.  13).  "They  have 
forsaken  me  the  fountain  of  living  waters,  and  hewed  them  out  cisterns; 
broken  cisterns,  that  can  hold  no  water,"  Jer.  ii.  13. 

he  began  to  be  in  want]  The  whole  heathen  world  at  this  time  was 
saying,  "Who  will  shew  us  any  good?"  Weariness,  despair,  and  sui- 
cide were  universal.  Individually  this  is  the  retributive  anguish  of 
those  who  have  wasted  the  gifts  of  life. 

"My  days  are  in  the  yellow  leaf, 

The  flowers  and  fruits  of  love  are  gone, 
The  worm,   the  anguish,  and  the  grief 
Are  mine  alone. 

ST  LUKE  17 


2S8  ST   LUKE,  XV.  [vv.  i6,  17. 

joined  himself  to  a  citizen  of  that  country  j  and  he  sent  him 

16  into  his  fields  to  feed  swine.     And  he  would  fain  have  filled 
his  belly  with  the  husks  that  the  swine  did  eat:  and  no  man 

17  gave  unto  him.     And  when  he  came  to  himself,   he  said, 

The  fire  that  on  my  bosom  preys 

Is  lone  as  some  volcanic  isle ; 
No  torch  is  kindled  at  its  blaze — 

A  funeral  pile." 

Byron. 

15.  joined  himself  to  a  citizen  of  that  country']  Rather,  one  of  the 
citizens.  Even  in  its  vi^orst  and  most  willing  exile  the  soul  cannot 
cease  to  be  by  right  a  citizen  of  God's  kingdom — a  fellow-citizen  with 
the  saints,  Eph.  ii.  19.  Its  true  citizenship  (TroX^reu/xa)  is  still  in  heaven 
(Phil.  iii.  20).  By  'the  citizen  of  the  far  country'  is  indicated  either 
men  hopelessly  corrupt  and  worldly ;  or  perhaps  the  powers  of  evil. 
We  observe  that  in  this  far-off  land,  the  Prodigal,  with  all  his  banquets 
and  his  lavishness,  has  not  gained  a  single  friend.  Sin  never  forms  a 
real  bond  of  pity  and  sympathy.  The  cry  of  tempters  and  accomplices 
ever  is,  "What  is  that  to  us?  see  thou  to  that." 

he  sent  hini\     'Freedom'  from  righteousness  is  slavery  to  sin. 

to  feed  swine]  The  intensity  of  this  climax  could  only  be  duly  felt  by 
Jews,  who  had  such  a  loathing  and  abhorrence  for  swine  that  they 
would  not  even  name  them,  but  spoke  of  a  pig  as  dabhar  acheer,  'the 
other  thing.' 

16.  he  %vould fain]     Literally,  " he  tvas  longing." 

filled  his  belly  with]  The  plain  expression — purposely  adopted  to 
add  the  last  touch  to  the  youth's  degradation— gave  offence  to  some 
copyists,  who  substituted  for  it  the  verb  'to  be  fed.'  The  reading 
adopted  in  our  text  is,  however,  certainly  the  true  one,  and  perhaps 
implies  that  from  such  food  nothing  could  be  hoped  for  but  to  allay  the 
pangs  of  famine.  He  only  hopes  to  'fill  his  belly,'  not  to  sate  his 
hunger.  Even  the  world's  utmost  gorgeousness  and  most  unchecked 
sensuality  could  not  avail  to  raise  the  soul  of  men  or  of  nations  out 
of  utter  misery. 

the  husks  that  the  swine  did  eat]  Literally,  '''■the  carob-pods  of  v>hich 
the  sxvine  were  eatijig."  The  word  rendered  'husks'  means  'little  horns,' 
i.  e.  the  long,  coarse,  sweetish,  bean-shaped  pods  of  the  carob  tree 
{ceratonia  siliqua,  St  John's  bread  tree),  which  were  only  used  by  the 
poorest  of  the  population.  Some  (incorrectly)  give  the  same  meaning 
to  the  a/cptSej  ('  locusts')  which  formed  the  food  of  St  John  the  Baptist. 

and  no  man  gave  unto  him]  No  one  'was  giving,'  or  'chose  to  give' 
him  either  the  husks  or  anything  else.  Satan  has  no  desire  for,  and  no 
interest  in,  even  the  smallest  alleviation  of  the  anguish  and  degradation 
of  his  victims.  Even  the  vile  earthly  gifts,  and  base  sensual  pleasures, 
are  withheld  or  become  impossible.  "  Who /^//^wj  pleasure,  pleasure 
slays." 

17.  And  when  he  came  to  himself]     His  previous  state  was  that  of 


w.  i8— 21.]  ST    LUKE,   XV.  259 

How  many  hired  servants  of  my  father's  have  bread  enough 
and  to  spare,   and  I  perish  with  hunger?     I  will  arise  and  i8 
go   to  my   father,   and  will  say  unto  him,   Father,   I  have 
sinned  against  heaven,  and  before  thee,  and  am  no  more  19 
worthy  to  be  called  thy  son:  make  me  as  one  of  thy  hired 
servants.     And  he  arose,  and  came  to  his  father.     But  when  20 
he  was  yet  a  great  way  off,    his  father  saw  him,  and  had 
compassion,  and  ran,  and  fell  on  his  neck,  and  kissed  him. 
And  the  son  said  unto  him,  Father,  I  have  sinned  against  21 

his  false  self — a  brief  delusion  and  madness — 'the  old  man  with  his 
affections  and  lusts.'  Now  he  was  once  more  beginning  to  be  "in  his 
riglit  mind."  "The  heart  of  the  sons  of  men  is  full  of  evil,  and  madness 
is  in  their  heart  while  they  live,"  Eccl.  ix.  3. 

Ho%v  many  hii-cd  servants  of  my  fat  her"  s\  The  hired  servants  corre- 
spond to  any  beings  who  stand  in  a  lower  or  more  distant  relation  to 
God,  yet  for  whom  His  love  provides. 

18.  I  will  ai-ise  and  go  to  7ny  father]  The  youth  in  the  parable  had 
loved  his  father,  and  would  not  doubt  about  his  father's  love ;  and  in 
the  region  which  the  parable  shadows  forth,  the  mercy  of  God  to  the 
returning  penitent  has  always  been  abundantly  promised.  Is.  Iv.  7  ;  Jer. 
iii.  12  ;  Hos.  xiv.  i,  2,  &c.  ;  and  throughout  the  whole  New  Testament. 

Father,  I  have  sinned]  "Repentance  is  the  younger  brother  of 
innocence  itself."     Fuller,  Holy  War. 

20.  And  he  arose  and  came  to  his  father]  A  mere  flash  of  remorse 
is  not  enough ;  a  journey  must  be  taken :  the  back  must  be  at  once  and 
finally  turned  on  the  far  land;  and  all  the  shame  of  abandoned  duties 
and  forsaken  friends  be  faced.  "The  course  to  the  unific  rectitude  of  a 
manly  life"  always  appears  to  the  sinner  to  be,  and  sometimes  really 
is,  "in  the  face  of  a  scorching  past  and  a  dark  future." 

But  when  he  was  yet  a  great  way  off]  "  Now  in  Christ  Jesus  ye  who 
sometimes  were  far  off,  are  made  nigh  by  the  blood  of  Christ."  Eph, 
ii.  13. 

had  compassion,  and  ran,  and  fell  on  his  neck]  On  this  full,  frank, 
absolute  forgiveness,  see  Ps.  ciii.  8 — 10,  12.  On  the  tender  Fatherly 
love  of  God  see  Is.  xlix.  15;  Matt.  vii.  11,  &c. 

and  kissed  him]  Literally,  "kissed  him  warmly  or  closely,"  Gen. 
xxxiii.  4. 

21.  And  the  son  said  unto  him.  Father,  I  have  sinned]  Rather,  I 
sinned.  Like  a  true  penitent  he  grieves  not  for  what  he  has  lost,  but 
for  what  he  has  done.  Here  again  the  language  of  Davil  furnishes  the 
truest  and  most  touching  comment,  "I  acknowledged  my  sin  unto  Thee, 
and  mine  iniquity  have  I  not  hid.  I  said,  I  will  confess  my  transgres- 
sions unto  the  Lord,  and  thou  forgavest  the  iniquity  of  my  .sin,"  Ps. 
xxxii.  5.  "There  is  forgiveness  with  Thee,  that  Thou  mayest  be  feared," 
Ps.  cxxx.  4.  The  Prodigal's  penitence  is  not  mere  remorse  or  sorrow 
for  punishment. 

sinned  against  heaven]  This  includes  and  surpasses  all  the  other  guilt, 

17  —  2 


26o  ST    LUKE,    XV.  [vv.  22—25. 

heaven,  and  in   thy  sight,  and  am  no  more  worthy  to  be 

22  called  thy  son.      But  the  father  said  to  his  servants,   Bring 
forth  the  best  robe,  and  put  it  on  him;  and  put  a  ring  on 

23  his  hand,  and  shoes  on  his  feet :  and  bring  hither  the  fatted 

24  calf,  and  kill  ///  and  let  us  eat,  and  be  merry:  for  this  my 
son  was  dead,  and  is  alive  again;  he  was  lost,  and  is  found. 

25  And  they  began  to  be  merry.     Now  his  elder  son  was  in 

which  is  the  reason  why  David,  though  he  had  sinned  so  deeply  against 
man,  says  "against  Thee,  Thee  only  have  I  sinned,  and  done  this  evil 
in  Thy  sight,"  Ps.  li.  4. 

22.  But  the  father  said  to  his  servants^  It  is  as  though  he  had 
purposely  cut  short  the  humble  self-reproaching  words  of  shame  which 
would  have  entreated  him  to  make  his  lost  son  like  one  of  his  hired 
servants.      "While  they  are  yet  speaking,  I  will  hear,"  Is.  Ixv.  24. 

Bring  fort]i\  The  true  reading  is  probably  '  Bring  forth  quickly^ 
N,  B,  L,  &c. 

the  best  robe\  The  talar  or  stoli poderes,  xx.  46;  John  xix.  23  ;  Is.  Ixi. 
10;  Rev.  iii.  r8.  Compare  the  remarkable  scene  of  taking  away  the 
filthy  rags  from  the  High  Priest  Joshua,  and  clothing  him  with  change 
of  raiment,  in  Zech.  iii.  i — 10.  It  is  literally  '  the  yfrj^  robe '  and  some 
have  explained  it  of  the  robe  he  itsed  to  wear  at  home — the  former  robe. 

shoes  on  his  feetl  Another  sign  that  he  is  to  be  regarded  as  a  son, 
and  not  as  a  mere  sandalled  or  unsandalled  slave  (see  on  x.  4).  Some 
have  given  special  and  separate  significance  to  the  best  robe,  as  corre- 
sponding to  the  'wedding  garment,'  the  robe  of  Christ's  righteousness 
(Phil.  iii.  9) ;  and  have  identified  the  seal-ring  with  Baptism  (Eph. 
i.  13,  14);  and  the  shoes  with  the  preparation  of  the  Gospel  of  peace 
(Eph.  vi.  15;  Zech.  x.  12);  and  in  the  next  verse  have  seen  in  the 
'fatted  calf  an  allusion  to  the  Sacrifice  of  Christ,  or  the  Eucharist. 
Such  applications  are  pious  and  instructive  afterthoughts,  though  the 
latter  is  as  old  as  Irehaeus;  but  it  is  doubtful  whether  the  elaboration 
of  them  does  not  weaken  the  impressive  grandeur  and  unity  of  the 
parable,  as  revealing  the  love  of  God  even  to  His  erring  children.  We 
must  not  confuse  Parable  with  Allegory.  The  one  dominant  meaning 
of  the  parable  is  that  God  loved  us  even  while  we  were  dead  in  sins, 
Eph.  ii.  I,  5. 

kill  it]  Rather,  sacrifice  it  (comp.  Herod.  I.  118  where  there  is  a 
sacrifice  and  supper  for  a  son's  safety).  Hence  perhaps  one  reason  for 
assigning  to  St  Luke  the  Cherubic  symbol  of  the  calf  (Introd.  p.  13). 

24.  was  dead,  and  is  alive  again]  The  metaphor  of  'death'  to  ex- 
press the  condition  of  impenitent  sin  is  universal  in  the  Bible.  "Thou 
hast  a  name  that  thou  livest  and  art  dead,"  Rev.  iii.  i.  "Awake  thou 
that  sleepest,  and  arise  from  the  dead,"  Eph.  v.  14.  "You  hath  He 
quickened  who  were  dead  in  trespasses  and  sins,"  Eph.  ii.  i.  "Yield 
yourselves  unto  God  as  those  that  are  alive  from  the  dead,''''  Rom.  vi.  13. 

■was  lost]  This  poor  youth  had  been  in  the  exact  Roman  sense  per- 
ditus — a  'lost,'  an  'abandoned'  character. 


w.  26—29.]  ST   LUKE,   XV.  261 


the  field:  and  as  he  came  and  drew  nigh  to  the  house,  he 
heard  musick  and  dancing.     And  he  called  one  of  the  ser-  26 
vants,  and  asked  what  these  things  meant.     And  he  said  27 
unto  him,  Thy  brother  is  come;  and  thy  father  hath  killed 
the  fatted  calf,   because   he   hath   received  him   safe  a/id 
sound.     And  he  was  angr)'-,  and  would  not  go  in :  therefore  28 
came  his  father  out  and  intreated  him.     And  he  answering  29 
said  to   /lis  father,  Lo,  these  many  years  do  I  serve  thee, 
neither  transgressed  I  at  any  time  thy  commandment :  and 

25.  N'oiv  his  elder  son  ivas  in  ike  field']  Many  have  felt  a  wish  that 
the  parable  had  ended  with  the  moving  and  exquisite  scene  called 
up  by  the  last  words ;  or  have  regarded  the  remaining  verses  as 
practically  a  separate  parable.  Such  a  judgment — not  to  speak  of  its 
presumption — shews  a  narrow  spirit.  We  must  not  forget  that  the  Jews, 
however  guilty,  were  God's  children  no  less  than  the  Gentiles,  and 
Pharisees  no  less  than  publicans  from  the  moment  that  Pharisees  had 
learnt  that  they  too  had  need  of  repentance.  The  elder  son  is  still  a  son, 
nor  are  his  faults  intrinsically  more  heinous, — though  more  perilous 
because  more  likely  to  lead  to  self-deception — than  those  of  the  younger. 
Self-righteousness  is  sin  as  well  as  unrighteousness,  and  may  be  even  a 
worse  sin,  Matt.  xxi.  31,  32  ;  but  God  has  provided  for  both  sins  a  full 
Sacrifice  and  a  free  forgiveness. 

musick  and  dancing]     Literally,  "a  symphony  and  chorus." 

28.  he  was  angry]  The  feelings  of  the  Jews  towards  the  Gentiles 
(i  Thess.  ii.  14 — 16)  when  they  were  embracing  the  offers  of  the  Gospel 
— ("The  Jews... were  filled  with  envy  and  spake  against  those  things 
which  were  spoken  by  Paul,  contradicting  and  blaspheming,"  Acts  xiii. 
45)— and  the  feelings  of  the  Pharisees  towards  our  Lord,  when  He 
ate  with  publicans  and  sinners,  are  the  earliest  historical  illustrations 
of  this  phase  of  the  parable.  It  illustrates  feelings  which  refer  more 
directly  to  such  historical  phenomena ;  the  earlier  part  is  of  more  uni- 
versal application.  Yet  envy  and  lovelessness  are  too  marked  charac- 
teristics of  modern  religionism  to  render  the  warning  needless. 

would  not  go  in]  '■'■  Foris  stat  Israel,"  sed  "  For  is  stat  non  excbiditur." 
Ambrose. 

therefore  came  his  father  out  and  intreated  him]  "How  often  would 
I  have  gathered  thy  children  together... but  ye  would  not,"  xiii.  34;  see 
Acts  xvii.  5,  I,',,  xxii.  21,  xxviii.  27.  The  yearning  chapters  addressed 
to  the  obstinacy  of  Israel  by  St  Paul  (Rom.  x.  xi.)  furnish  another 
illustration  of  this  picture. 

29.  do  I  serve  thee]  Rather,  I  am  thy  slave.  He  does  not  say  '  Father : ' 
and  evidently  regards  the  yoke  not  as  perfect  freedom  but  as  dis- 
tasteful bondage.  The  slave  is  ever  dissatisfied;  and  this  son  worked  in 
the  spirit  of  a  'hired-servant.' 

neither  transgressed  I  at  any  time  thy  commandment]  This  is  tlie  very 
spirit  of  the  Pharisee  and  the  Rabbi,  xviii.   11,  12.      "All  these  things 


262  ST    LUKE,    XV.  [vv.  30,  31. 

yet  thou  never  gavest  me  a  kid,  that  I  might  make  merry 

30  with  my  friends :    but  as  soon   as  this  thy  son  was  come, 
which    hath    devoured  thy  Uving    with    harlots,    thou    hast 

31  killed  for  him  the  fatted  calf.     And  he  said  unto  him,  Son, 

32  thou  art  ever  with  me,  and  all  that  I  have  is  thine.     It  was 
meet  that  we  should  make  merry,  and  be  glad:  for  this  thy 

have  I  kept  from  my  youth  up."  Such  self-satisfaction  can  only  spring 
from  an  ignorance  of  the  breadth  and  spirituality  of  God's  command- 
ments. The  respectable  Jews,  sunk  in  the  complacency  of  formalism 
and  letter-worshipping  orthodoxy,  had  lost  all  conception  that  they 
were,  at  the  best,  but  unprofitable  servants.  Like  this  elder  son  they 
"went  about  to  establish  their  own  righteousness"  (Rom.  ix.  14);  and 
though  they  kept  many  formal  commandments  they  'transgressed'  the 
love  of  God  (xi.  42).  Observe  that  while  the  younger  son  confesses 
with  no  excuse,  the  elder  son  boasts  with  no  confession.  This  at 
once  proves  his  hollowness,  for  the  confessions  of  the  holiest  are  ever 
the  most  bitter.  The  antitheses  in  the  verse  are  striking,  'You  never 
gave  me  a  kid,  much  less  sacrificed  a  fatted  calf; — not  even  for  my 
friends,  much  less  for  harlots.^ 

tkoii  never  gavest  jne  a  kid~\  The  reward  of  a  life  near  his  father's 
presence,  and  in  the  safety  of  the  old  home,  was  nothing  to  him.  He 
is  like  the  rescued  Israelites  still  yearning  for  the  flesh-pots  of  Egypt. 

30.  this  thy  son... which  hath  devotired  thy  living  with  harlot s'\ 
Every  syllable  breathes  rancour.  He  disowns  all  brotherhood ;  and 
says  'came'  not  ^ retin-ned,''  and  tries  to  wake  his  father's  anger  by  say- 
ing 'thy  living,'  and  malignantly  represents  the  conduct  of  his  erring 
brother  in  the  blackest  light. 

31.  Son'l     Rather,  Cliud. 

thou  art  ever  with  me,  and  all  that  I  have  is  thine^  Literally, 
'■'all  t?iine  are  thi7ie."  "Who  are  Israelites;  to  whom  pertaineth  the 
adoption,  and  the  glory,  and  the  Shechinah,  and  the  covenants,  and  the 
giving  of  the  Law,  and  the  service  of  God,  and  the  promises ;  whose  are 
the  fathers,  and  of  whom  after  the  flesh  Christ  came  who  is  God  over 
all,  blessed  for  ever,"  Rom.  ix.  4,  5.  Religionists  of  the  Elder-brother 
type  cannot  realize  the  truth  that  they  are  not  impoverished  by  the 
extension  to  others  of  God's  riches  (Matt.  xx.  14).  Let  us  hope  that 
after  this  appeal  the  elder  son  also  went  in. 

32.  It  was  meet  that  we  should  make  merry,  and  be  glad\  "They 
glorified  God... saying.  Then  hath  God  also  to  the  Gentiles  granted 
repentance  unto  life,"  Acts  xi.  18.  It  would  be  impossible  to  mark 
more  emphatically  God's  displeasure  at  the  narrow,  exclusive,  denun- 
ciatory spirit  which  would  claim  for  ourselves  only,  or  our  party,  or  our 
Church,  a  monopoly  of  heaven.  The  hard  dogmatism  and  specu- 
lative theories  of  a  self-asserting  Theology  "vanish  like  oppressive 
nightmares  before  this  single  parable  in  which  Jesus  reveals  the 
heavenly  secrets  of  human  redemption,  not  according  to  a  mystical 
or  criminal    theoiy  of  punishment,   but  anthropologically,  psychologi- 


vv.  1—4.]  ST   LUKE,   XVI.  263 

brother  was  dead,  and  is  alive  again;  and  was  lost,  and  is 
found. 

Ch.  XVI.   I— 13.     The  Unjust  Steward. 

_  And  he  said  also  unto  his  disciples,  There  was  a  certain  16 
rich  man,  which  had  a  steward;  and  the  same  was  accused 
unto  him  that  he  had  wasted  his  goods.     And  he  called  2 
him,  and  said  unto  him.  How  is  it  that  I  hear  this  of  thee? 
give  an  account  of  thy  stewardship;  for  thou  mayest  be  no 
longer   steward.     Then    the   steward   said   within   himself,  3 
What  shall  I  do?   for  my  lord  taketh   away  from  me  the 
stewardship:  I  cannot  dig;  to  beg  I  am  ashamed.     I  am  4 

cally,  and  theologically  to  every  pure  eye  that  looks  into  the  perfect  law 
of  liberty."    Von  Ammon,  Leb.  Jesti,  in.  50. 

this  thy  brother}  For  he  is  thy  brother,  and  I  thy  Father,  though 
thou  wouldest  refuse  this  name  to  him,  and  didst  not  address  that  title 
to  me. 

Ch.  XVI.    1—13.     The  Unjust  Steward. 

1.  And  he  said  also  unto  his  disciples']  In  interpreting  the  two  follow- 
ing parables  it  is  specially  necessary  to  bear  in  mind  the  tertiicm  compara- 
tionis,  i.e.  the  one  special  point  which  our  Lord  had  in  view.  To  press 
each  detail  into  a  separate  dogmatic  truth  is  a  course  which  has  led  to 
flagrant  errors  in  theology  and  even  in  morals. 

a  certain  rich  man,  -which  had  a  steivard]  The  rich  man  and  the 
steward  are  both  men  of  the  world.  It  is  only  in  one  general  aspect 
that  they  correspond  to  God  and  to  ourselves  as  His  stewards  (Tit.  i.  7) 
who  are  'required  to  be  faithful,'  i  Cor.  iv.  1  —  5.  No  parable  has 
been  more  diversely  and  multitudinously  explained' than  this.  For 
instance  in  the  steward  some  have  seen  the  Pharisees,  or  the  publicans, 
or  Judas  Iscariot,  or  Christ,  or  Satan,  &c.  To  enter  into  and  refute 
these  explanations  would  take  up  much  space  and  would  be  quite  fruit- 
less. We  cannot  be  wrong  if  we  seize  as  the  main  lesson  of  the  parable 
the  one  which  Christ  Himself  attached  to  it  (8 — 12),  namely,  the  use  of 
earthly  gifts  of  wealth  and  opportunity  for  heavenly  and  not  for  earthly 
aims. 

■was  accused]  In  Classic  Greek  the  word  means  'was  slandered.' 
Here  it  has  the  more  general  sense,  but  perhaps  involves  the  notion  of 
a  secret  accusation. 

that  he  had  wasted]     i.e.,  had  squandered  upon  himself. 

2.  give  an  account]     Rath-^r,  render  the  account. 

thou  mavest  be  no  longer  steward]  Rather,  thou  canst  not  be  any 
longer  steward. 

3.  /  cannot  dig]     Rather,  to  dig  I  am  not  strong  enough. 
to  beg  I  am  ashamed]     Ecclus.  xl.  28,  "better  die  than  beg." 


264  ST   LUKE,   XVI.  [w.  5—8. 

resolved  what  to  do,  that,  when  I  am  put  out  of  the  stew- 

5  ardship,  they  may  receive  me  into  their  houses.  So  he 
called  every  one  of  his  lord's  debtors  unto  him,  and  said 

6  unto  the  first.  How  much  owest  thou  unto  my  lord?  And 
he  said,  An  hundred  measures  of  oil.  And  he  said  unto 
him,  Take  thy  bill,  and  sit  down  quickly,  and  write  fifty. 

7  Then  said  he  to  another.  And  how  much  owest  thou?  And 
he  said,  An  hundred  measures  of  wheat.     And  he  said  unto 

8  him,  Take  thy  bill,  and  write  fourscore.  And  the  lord 
commended    the   unjust   steward,    because   he   had    done 

4.  /  am  resolved  what  to  do\  The  original  graphically  represents 
the  sudden  flash  of  discovery  'I  have  it !  I  know  now  what  to  do.' 

into  their  houses\  Literally,  '^  itito  their  own  houses."  I  will  confer  on 
them  such  a  boon  that  they  will  not  leave  me  houseless.  This  eating 
the  bread  of  dependence,  which  was  all  the  steward  hoped  to  gain  after 
his  life  of  dishonesty,  was  after  all  a  miserable  prospect,  Ecclus.  xxix. 
22 — 28.  If  different  parts  of  the  parable  shadow  forth  different  truths, 
we  may  notice  that  the  steward  has  not  enriched  himself;  what  he  has 
had  he  has  spent.  So  at  death,  when  we  have  to  render  the  account  of  our 
stewardship  to  God,  we  cannot  take  with  us  one  grain  of  earthly  riches. 

5.  So  he  called  every  one  of  his  lord's  debtors  unto  him}  In  the  East 
rents  are  paid  in  kind,  and  a  responsible  steward,  if  left  quite  uncontrolled, 
has  the  amplest  opportunity  to  defraud  his  lord,  because  the  produce 
necessai-ily  varies  from  year  to  year.  The  unjust  steward  would  naturally 
receive  from  the  tenants  much  more  than  he  acknowledged  in  his  accounts. 

6.  measures]  The  Hebrew  6ath  and  the  Greek  metretes;  rather  less 
than,  but  roughly  corresponding  to,  the  firkin  =  g  gallons.  This  remis- 
sion would  represent  a  large  sum  of  money. 

Take  thy  bill]  Rather,  Receive  thy  till.  The  steward  hands  the  bill 
back  to  the  tenant  to  be  altered. 

7vrite  Jiffy]  Since  Hebrew  numerals  were  letters,  and  since  Hebrew 
letters  differed  very  slightly  from  each  other,  a  very  slight  forgery  would 
represent  a  large  difference. 

7.  measures  of  ivheat]  Not  the  same  word  as  before,  but  cors.  The 
cor  is  believed  to  be  about  an  English  'quarter,'  i.e.  8  bushels,  but  from 
Jos.  Antt.  XV.  9,  §  92,  it  seems  to  have  been  nearly  12  bushels.  The 
steward  knows  what  he  is  about,  and  makes  his  remissions  according  to 
the  probabilities  of  the  case  and  the  temperament  of  the  debtor. 

8.  the  lord  commended  the  unjust  ste^vard,  because  he  had  done 
•wisely]  The  lord  is  of  course  only  the  landlord  of  the  parable.  The 
word  phronimos  does  not  mean  'wisely'  (a  word  which  is  used  in  a 
higher  sense),  but  prudently.  The  tricky  cleverness,  by  which  the 
steward  had  endeavoured  at  once  to  escape  detection,  and  to  secure 
friends  who  would  help  him  in  his  need,  was  exactly  what  an  Oriental 
landlord  would  admire  as  clever,  even  though  he  saw  through  it.  And 
the  last  act  of  the  steward  had  been  so  far  honest  that  for  the  first  timp 


w.  9,  lo.]  ST    LUKE,    XVI.  265 

wisely:  for  the  children  of  this  world  are  in  their  generation 
wiser   than    the    children   of  light.     And   I   say  unto  you,  9 
Make  to  yourselves  friends  of  the  mammon  of  unrighteous- 
ness; that,  when   ye  fail,   they  may  receive  you  into  ever- 
lasting  habitations.     He   that  is   faithful  in  that  which   is  10 

he  charged  to  the  debtors  the  correct  amount,  while  he  doubtless  repre- 
sented the  diminution  as  due  to  his  kindly  intluence  with  his  lord. 
The  lesson  to  us  is  analogous  skill  and  prudence,  but  spiritually  em- 
ployed. This  is  the  sole  point  which  the  parable  is  meant  to  illustrate. 
The  childish  criticism  of  the  Emperor  Julian  that  it  taught  cheating  (!) 
is  refuted  by  the  intention  of  parables  to  teach  lessons  of  heavenly 
wisdom  by  even  the  'imperfections'  of  earth.  There  is  then  no  greater 
difficulty  in  the  Parable  of  the  Unjust  Steward  than  in  that  of  the 
Unjust  Judge,  or  the  Importunate  Friend.  The  fraud  of  this  "steward 
of  injustice"  is  neither  excused  nor  palliated;  the  lesson  is  drawn  from 
his  worldly  prudence  in  supplying  himself  with  friends  for  the  day  of 
need, — which  we  are  to  do  by  wise  and  holy  use  of  earthly  gifts. 

in  their  generation  wiser  than  the  children  of  light]  Rather,  the 
sons  Of  this  age  are  more  prudent  than  the  sons  of  the  light  to- 
wards or  as  regards  their  own  generation;  i.e.  they  make  better  use 
of  their  earthly  opportunities  for  their  own  lifetime  than  the  sons  of  the 
light  (John  xii.  36;  Eph.  v.  8;  1  Thess.  v.  5)  do  for  their  lifetime;  or 
even  than  the  sons  of  light  do  of  their  heavervly  opportunities  for  eter- 
nity. The  zeal  and  alacrity  of  the  "devil's  martyrs"  may  be  imitated 
even  by  God's  servants. 

9.  jMake  to  yourselves  f9-iends  of  the  matnmon  of  tinrighteousness'] 
The  Greek  may  mean  either  Make  the  unrighteous  mavunon  your 
friend ;  or  make  youiselves  friends  by  your  use  of  the  utnighteotis  mam- 
mon.  There  is  no  proof  that  Mammon  is  the  Hebrew  equivalent  to 
Plutus,  the  Greek  god  of  wealth  (Matt.  vi.  24).  Mammon  simply  means 
wealth  and  is  called  'unrighteous'  by  metonymy  (i.e.  the  etlncal  cha- 
racter of  the  use  is  represented  as  cleaving  to  the  thing  itself)  because 
the  abuse  of  riches  is  more  common  than  their  right  use  (i  Tim.  vi.  10). 
It  is  not  therefore  necessary  to  give  to  the  word  'unrighteous'  the 
sense  of  'false'  or  'unreal,'  though  sometimes  in  the  LXX.  it  has 
almost  that  meaning.  We  turn  mammon  into  a  friend,  and  make 
ourselves  friends  by  its  means,  when  we  use  riches  not  as  our  own  to 
squander,  but  as  God's  to  employ  in  deeds  of  usefulness  and  mercy. 

7i>hen  ye  fail]  i.e.  when  ye  die;  but  some  good  M.SS.  read  "when  it 
(mammon)  fails,"  which  the  true  riches  never  do  (xii.  33). 

they  may  receive  you]  The  ''they''  are  either  the  poor  who  have  been 
made  friends  by  the  right  use  of  wealth;  or  the  word  is  impersonal,  as 
in  xii.  11,20,  xxiii.  31.  The  latter  sense  seems  to  be  the  best,  for  it  is  only 
by  a  very  secondary  and  subordinate  analogy  that  those  whom  we  aid 
by  a  right  use  of  riches  can  be  said  ('by  their  prayers  on  earth,  or  their 
testimony  in  heaven')  to  'receive'  us. 

into  everlasting  habitations]     Rather,  Into  the  eternal  tents,  John 


266  ST   LUKE,   XVI.  {vv.  n— 15, 

least  is  faithful  also  in  much:  and  he  that  is  unjust  in  the 

11  least  is  unjust  also  in  much.  If  therefore  ye  have  not  been 
faithful  in  the  unrighteous  mammon,   who  will  commit  to 

12  your  trust  the  true  ric/ies  ?  And  if  ye  have  not  been  faithful 
in   that  which   is   another   man's,  who  shall  give  you  that 

13  which  is  your  own?  No  servant  can  serve  two  masters :  for 
either  he  will  hate  the  one,  and  love  the  otlier;  or  else  he 
will  hold  to  the  one,  and  despise  the  other.  Ye  cannot 
serve  God  and  mammon. 

1 4 — 3 1 .     Dwes  and  Lazarus, — a  Parable  to  the  Covetous, 
preceded  by  Rebukes  to  the  Pharisees. 

14  And  the  Pharisees  also,   who  were  covetous,    heard   all 

15  these  things:   and   they  derided  him.     And  he  said  unto 

xiv.  2.  "And  give  these  the  everlasting  tabernacles  which  I  had  pre- 
pared for  them,"  2  Esdr.  ii.  11.  (Conip.  2  Cor.  v.  i;  Is.  xxxiii.  20, 
and  see  p.  384).  The  general  duty  inculcated  is  that  of  "laying  up 
treasure  in  heaven"  (Matt.  vi.  20;  comp.  1  Tim.  vi.  17 — 19).  There 
is  no  Ebionite  reprobation  of  riches  as  riches  here;  only  a  w^arning 
not  to  trust  in  them.  (Mk.  x.  24.) 

10.  faithful  in  that  which  is  leasi\  Comp.  xix.  17.  The  most  which  we 
can  have  in  this  world  is  'least'  compared  to  the  smallest  gift  of  heaven. 

11.  the  tj-ue  riches^  Literally,  '■'■that  which  is  true,^'  i.e.  real  and 
not  evanescent.      Earthly  riches  are  neither  true,  nor  ours. 

12.  that  which  is  another  man^s]  The  lesson  of  the  verse  is  that 
nothing  which  we  possess  on  earth  is  our  own;  it  is  entrusted  to  us  for 
temporary  use  (i  Chron.  xxix.  14),  which  shall  be  rewarded  by  real  and 
eternal  possessions  (i  Pet.  i.  4).  "  Vitaque  tnancipio  nuUi  datur, 
omnibus  tisu,"  Lucr.  in.  985. 

13.  No  sei-i'ant  can  sei-ve  two  masters']  God  requires  a  whole  heart 
and  an  undivided  service.  "  If  I  yet  pleased  men,  I  should  not  be  the 
servant  of  Christ,"  Gal.  i.  10.  "  Whosoever. ..will  be  the  friend  of 
the  world  is  the  enemy  of  God,"  Jas.  iv.  4.  "  Covetousness...is  idolatry,'\ 
Col.  iii.  5. 

14—31.  Dives  and  Lazarus, —a  Parable  to  the  Covetous, 

PRECEDED    BY    ReBUKES   TO   THE    PHARISEES. 

14.  who  were  coi'ctous]  Rather,  lovers  of  money,  2  Tim.  iii.  2. 
The  charge  is  amply  borne  out  by  the  references  in  the  Talmud  to 
the  rapacity  shewn  by  the  Rabbis  and  Priests  of  the  period.  See  Matt, 
xxiii.  13. 

they  derided  him]  The  word  is  one  expressive  of  the  strongest  and 
most  open  insolence,  xxiii.  35.  There  is  a  weaker  form  of  the  word  in 
Gal.  vi.  7.  Here  the  jeering  was  doubtless  aimed  by  these  haughty 
and  respected  plutocrats  at  the  deep  poverty  of  Jesus  and  His  humble 
followers.     It  marks  however  the  phase  of  daring  opposition  which  was 


vv.  i6— 18.]  ST    LUKE,    XVI.  267 

them,  Ye  are  they  which  justify  yourselves  before  men;  but 
God  knoweth  your  hearts :  for  that  which  is  highly  esteemed 
amongst  men  is  abomination  in  the  sight  of  God.  The  law  16 
and  the  prophets  were  until  John :  since  that  time  the  king- 
dom of  God  is  preached,  and  every  fjian  presseth  into  it. 
And  it  is  easier  for  heaven  and  earth  to  pass,  than  one  tittle  17 
of  the  law  to  fail.     Whosoever  putteth  away  his  wife,  and  is 

not  kindled  till  the  close  of  His  ministry.  They  thought  it  most  ridicu- 
lous to  suppose  that  riches  hindered  religion — for  were  not  they  rich 
and  religious  ? 

15.  Ye  are  they  which  justify  yourselves  before  men]  vii.  39,  xv.  29; 
Matt,  xxiii.  25,  &c. 

God  knoweth  your  hearts']  Hence  God  is  called  "a  heart-knower" 
in  Acts  XV.  8;  and  "in  thy  sight  shall  no  man  living  be  justified," 
Ps.  cxliii.  2.  There  is  perhaps  a  reference  to  i  Sam.  xvi.  7;  i  Chron. 
xxviii.  9. 

highly  esteemed]     Rather,  lofty. 

abomination]  Their  '  derision '  might  terribly  rebound  on  themselves. 
Ps.  ii.  4. 

16.  The  law  a7id  the  prophets  were  until  John]  This  is  one  of  our 
Lord's  clearest  intimations  that  the  aeon  of  the  Law  and  the  Prophets 
was  now  merging  into  a  new  dispensation,  since  they  were  only  "a 
shadow  of  things  to  come,"  Col.  ii.  17. 

every  man  presseth  itito  it]  The  word  implies  '  is  making  forcible 
entrance  into  it,'  Matt.  xi.  12,  13.  The  allusion  is  to  the  eagerness 
with  which  the  message  of  the  kingdom  was  accepted  by  the  publicans 
and  the  people  generally,  vii.  20;  John  xii.  19.  The  other  rendering, 
'every  man  useth  violence  against  it,'  does  not  agree  so  well  with  the 
parallel  passage  in  St  Matthew. 

17.  than  one  tittle  of  the  law]  The  word  for  'tittle'  is  keraia,  the 
tip  or  horn  of  a  letter,  such  as  that  which  distinguishes  1  from  3  or 
n  from  n.  Thus  the  Jews  said  that  the  letter  Yod  prostrated  itself 
before  God,  because  Solomon  had  taken  it  from  the  law  (in  the  word 
A^ashim)  by  marrying  many  wives  and  God  made  this  same  answer  to 
them.  Similarly  they  said  that  when  God  took  the  Yod  (the  "jot"  of 
Matt.  V.  18)  from  the  name  Sara?,  He  divided  it  between  Sara>4  and 
Abra/^am,  since  Yod  =10,  and  H  =  5. 

to  fail]  Rather,  to  fall.  See  Matt.  v.  18.  The  law  did  not  fall  to 
the  ground;  its  abrogation  was  only  its  absolute  fulfilment  in  all  its 
eternal  principles.  The  best  comment  on  the  verse  is  Matt.  v.  27—48. 
The  bearing  of  these  remarks  on  the  previous  ones  seems  to  be  that  our 
Lord  charges  the  Pharisees  with  hypocrisy  and  men-pleasing,  because 
while  they  professed  the  most  scrupulous  reverence  to  the  Law,  they 
lived  in  absolute  violation  of  its  spirit,  which  was  alone  valuable  in 
God's  sight. 

18.  Whosoever  putteth  away  his  rvife]  At  first  sight  this  verse 
(which  also  occurs  with  an  important  limitation  in  Matt,  v.  32)  appears 


268  ST    LUKE,    XVI.  [v v.  19,  20. 

marrieth  another,  committeth  adultery :  and  whosoever  mar- 
rieth  her  that  is  put  away  from  her  husband  committeth 
adultery. 

19  There  was  a  certain  rich  man,  which  was  clothed  in  purple 

20  and  fine  linen,  and  fared  sumptuously  every  day :  and  there 

so  loosely  connected  with  the  former  as  to  lead  the  Dutch  theologian 
Van  der  Pahn  to  suppose  that  St  Luke  was  merely  utilising  a  spare 
fragment  on  the  page  by  inserting  isolated  words  of  Christ.  But  com- 
pressed as  the  discourse  is,  we  see  that  this  verse  illustrates,  no  less 
than  the  others,  the  spirit  of  the  Pharisees.  They  professed  to  reve- 
rence the  Law  and  the  Prophets,  yet  divorce  (so  alien  to  the  primitive 
institution  of  marriage)  was  so  shamefully  lax  among  them  that  great 
Rabbis  in  the  Talmud  practically  abolished  all  the  sacredness  of  marriage 
in  direct  contradiction  to  Mai.  ii.  15,  16.  Even  Hillel  said  a  man 
might  divorce  his  wife  if  she  over-salted  his  soup.  They  made  the 
whole  discussion  turn,  not  on  eternal  truths,  but  on  a  mere  narrow 
verbal  disquisition  about  the  meaning  of  two  words  e>~vath  dahhar, 
'some  uncleanness'  (lit.  'matter  of  nakedness'),  in  Deut.  xxiv.  i,  2. 
Not  only  Ilillel,  but  even  the  son  of  Sirach  (Ecclus.  xxv.  16)  and  Jose- 
phus  (Anil.  IV.  8,  §  23),  interpreted  this  to  mean  'for  any  or  every 
cause.'  (Matt.  xix.  3 — 12;  Mark  x.  2 — i^.)  Besides  this  shameful 
laxity  the  Pharisees  had  never  had  the  courage  to  denounce  the  adul- 
terous marriage  and  disgraceful  divorce  of  which  Herod  Antipas  had 
been  guilty. 

19.  There  was  a  certain  rich  mati]  He  is  left  nameless,  perhaps  to 
imply  that  /its  name  was  not  "written  in  heaven"  (x.  20).  Legend  gives 
him  the  name  Nimeusis.  Dives  is  simply  the  Latin  for  'a  rich  man.' 
Our  Lord  in  the  parable  continues  the  subject  of  his  discourse  against 
the  Pharisees,  by  shewing  that  wealth  and  respectability  are  very  differ- 
ently estimated  011  earth  and  in  the  world  beyond.  The  parable  illus- 
trates each  step  of  the  previous  discourse : — Dives  regards  all  he  has 
as  his  very  own ;  uses  it  selfishly,  which  even  Moses  and  the  Pro- 
phets might  have  taught  him  not  to  do ;  and  however  lofty  in  his  own 
eyes  is  an  abomination  before  God. 

in  purple  and  fine  litieri]  The  two  words  express  extreme  luxury. 
Robes  dyed  in  the  blood  of  the  mic?-ex purpurarius  were  very  costly  and 
were  only  worn  by  the  greatest  men — 

"Over  his  lucent  arms 

A  military  vest  of  purple  flowed 

Livelier  than   IVIelibaean  or  the  grain 

Of  Sarra  (Tyre)  worn  by  kings  and  heroes  old 

In  time  of  truce." 
Byssus  is  the  fine  linen  of  Egypt  (Gen.  xli.  42;  Esth.  viii.  15;  Prov. 
xxxi.  22;  Ezek.  xxvii.  7;  Rev.  xviii.  12),   a  robe  of  which  was  worth 
twice  its  own  weight  in  gold. 

and farcil  sumptuously  every  day]  Literally,  "  making  merry  {\\\.  ig) 
every  day,   splendidly."     Luther,   ledte  hcrrlich   mid  in  Freuden.      It 


vv.  21—23.]  ST   LUKE,   XVI.  269 

was  a  certain  beggar  named  Lazarus,  which  was  laid  at  liis 
gate,  full  of  sores,  and  desiring  to  be  fed  with  the  crumbs  21 
which  fell  from  the  rich   inan'%  table:   moreover  the  dogs 
came  and  licked  his  sores.     And  it  came  to  pass  that  the  22 
beggar  died,  and  was  carried  by  the  angels  into  Abraham's 
bosom:  the  rich  man  also  died,  and  was  buried;  and  in  hell  23 

indicates   a  life  of  banquets.     The  description    generally    might    well 
apply  to  Merod  Antipas,  vii.  25;   Marli  vi.  14,  i\. 

20.  7iamed  Lazarns\  Lazarus  is  not  from  lo  ezer,  'no  help,'  i.e. 
'forsaken,'  but  from  Eli  ezer,  'helped  of  God,'  Gotthilf.  It  is  con- 
tracted from  the  commoner  Eleazar.  This  is  the  only  parable  in  which 
a  proper  name  occurs;  and  the  only  miracles  of  which  the  recipients  are 
named  are  Mary  Magdalene,  Jairus,  Malchus,  and  IJartimaeus.  Whether 
in  the  name  there  be  some  allusive  contrast  to  the  young  and  perhaps 
wealthy  Lazarus,  brother  of  Martha  and  Mary,  as  Prof  Plumptre  has 
conjectured,  is  uncertain.  From  this  parable  come  the  words — laza- 
retto, lazzarini,  a  lazar,  &c. 

at  his  gate\     Not  a  mere  pule  but  a  piilon — a  stately  portal. 

21.  with  the  crumbs']  The  same  word  as  in  Matt,  -w,  27.  It  is  not 
said  that  such  fragments  were  refused  him. 

the  dogs']  The  only  dogs  in  the  East  are  the  wild  and  neglected  Pariah 
dogs,  which  run  about  masterless  and  are  the  common  scavengers. 

came  and  licked  his  sores]  The  incident  is  only  added  to  give  in  one 
touch  the  abjectness  of  his  misery,  and  therefore  to  enhance  the  rich 
man's  neglect.     The  fault  of  Dives  was  callous  selfishness. 

22.  into  Abraham'' s  bosom]  Comp.  xiii.  28.  This  expression  is  used 
as  a  picture  for  the  banquet  of  Paradise  (comp.  Numb.  xi.  12;  John  i. 
18,  xiii.  23,  and  Josephus,  De  Maccab.  13). 

the  nch  ?fia7i  also  died]  "They  spend  their  days  in  wealth,  and  in 
a  moment  go  down  to  the  grave,"  Job  xxi.  13. 

and  was  biincd]  Nothing  is  said  of  the  pauper-funeral  of  Lazarus. 
In  one  touch  our  Lord  shews  how  little  splendid  obsequies  can  avail 
to  alter  the  judgment  of  heaven. 

"One  second,   and  the  angels  alter  that." 

23.  in  hell]  Rather,  in  Hades.  Hades,  which  is  represented  as 
containing  both  Paradise  and  Gehenna,  and  is  merely  the  Greek  equiva- 
lent of  the  Hebrew  Sheol,  'the  grave,'  is  the  intennediate  condition  of 
the  dead  bettveen  death  and  the  Jinal Judgment.  The  scene  on  earth  is 
contrasted  with  the  reversed  conditions  of  the  other  world.  The  entire 
sceneiy  and  phraseology  are  Jewish,  and  are  borrowed  from  those  which 
were  current  among  the  Rabins  of  Christ's  day.  Beyond  the  awful  truth 
that  death  brings  no  necessary  forgiveness,  and  therefore  that  the  retribu- 
tion must  continue  beyond  the  grave,  we  are  not  warranted  in  pressing  the 
details  of  the  imagery  which  was  used  as  part  of  the  vivid  picture.  And 
since  the  scene  is  in  Hades,  we  cannot  draw  from  it  any  safe  inferences 
as  to  the  Jinal  condition  of  the  lost.      The  state  of  Dives  may  be,  as 


270  ST   LUKE,   XVI.  [vv.  24—26. 

he  lift  up  his  eyes,  being  in  torments,  and  seeth  Abraham 

24  afar  off,  and  Lazarus  in  his  bosom.  And  he  cried  and  said. 
Father  Abraham,  have  mercy  on  me,  and  send  Lazarus,  that 
he  may  dip  the  tip   of  his  finger  in  water,  and  cool  my 

25  tongue;  for  I  am  tormented  in  this  flame.  But  Abraham 
said,  Son,  remember  that  thou  in  thy  lifetime  receivedst  thy 
good  things,  and  likewise  La/arus  evil  things  :  but  now  he  is 

26  comforted,  and  thou  art  tormented.  And  besides  all  this, 
between  us  and  you  there  is  a  great  gulf  fixed:  so  that  they 

TertuUian  says,  a  praelibatio  sentcntiae,  but  it  is  not  as  yet  the  absolute 
sentence. 

24.  /  am  tormented]  Rather,  I  am  suffering  pain.  The  verb  is 
not  basanizomai  but  odundfiiai,  as  in  ii.  48,  where  it  is  rendered  'sorrow- 
ing-' 

in  this  Jlame]  Perhaps  meant  to  indicate  the  agony  of  remorseful 
memories.     In  Hades  no 

"Lethe  the  river  of  oblivion  rolls: 
Her  watery  labyrinth,   whereof  who  drinlcs 
Forthwith  his  former  state  and  being  forgets. 
Forgets  both  joy  and  grief,   pleasure  and  pain." 

As  for  the  material  flame  and  the  burning  tongue,  "we  may,"  says 
Archbishop  Trench,  "safely  say  that  the  form  in  which  the  sense  of 
pain,  with  the  desire  after  alleviation,  embodies  itself,  is  figurative." 
Even  the  fierce  and  gloomy  TertuUian  says  that  how  to  understand  what 
is  meant  by  these  details  "is  scarcely  perhaps  discovered  by  those  who 
enquire  with  gentleness,  but  by  contentious  controversialists  never." 

25.  Son]  Rather,  Child.  Even  in  the  punishment  of  Hades  he  is 
addressed  by  a  word  of  tenderness  (xv.  31,  xix.  9). 

receivedst]     Rather,  receivedst  to  the  full. 

thy  good  things... evil  things]  The  'good  things'  of  Dives  were  such 
as  he  had  accounted  to  be  absolutely  his  own,  and  to  be  really  good 
(Matt.  vi.  ■2);  the  'evil  things'  of  Lazarus  were  not  'his,'  but  part  of 
God's  merciful  discipline  to  him,  Rev.  vii.  14.  The  parable  gives  n,o 
ground  for  the  interpretation  that  the  temporal  felicity  of  Dives  was  a 
reward  for  any  good  things  he  had  done,  or  the  misery  of  Lazarus  a 
punishment  for  his  temporal  sins. 

bnt  now]     Add  'here,'  with  the  best  MSS. 

thoic  art  torjnented]  'Pained,'  as  before.  The  parable  is  practically 
an  expansion  of  the  beatitudes  and  woes  of  vi.  22 — 25. 

26.  there  is  a  great  gulf  fixed]  Change  of  place  is  not  a  possible  way 
of  producing  change  of  soul.  Dives  while  he  still  had  the  heart  of 
Dives  would  have  been  in  agony  even  in  Abraham's  bosom.  But 
I  Pet.  iii.  19,  20  throws  a  gleam  of  hope  athwart  this  gulf.  It  may 
be  (for  we  can  pretend  to  no  certainty)  no  longer  impassable,  since 
Christ  died  and  went  to  preach  to  spirits  in  prison.     With  this  "great 


w.  27— 3i;  I.]       ST   LUKE,   XVI.  XVII.  271 

which  would  pass  from  hence  to  you  cannot  j  neither  can 
they  pass  to  us,  that  would  come  from  thence.     Then  he  27 
said,  I  pray  thee  therefore,  father,  that  thou  wouldest  send 
him  to  my  father's  house:  for  I  have  five  brethren;  that  he  28 
may  testify  unto  them,  lest  they  also  come  into  this  place  of 
torment.     Abraham  saith  unto  him,  They  have  Moses  and  29 
the   prophets;   let  them   hear   them.     And  he  said,    Nay,  30 
father  Abraham :  but  if  one  went  unto  them  from  the  dead, 
they  will  repent.     And  he  said  unto  him,   If  they  hear  not  31 
Moses  and  the  prophets,  neither  will  they  be  persuaded, 
though  one  rose  from  the  dead. 

Ch.  XVII.   I — 4.      The  Peril  of  causing  Men  to  Stumble. 

Then  said   he  unto  the   disciples,  It  is  impossible  but  17 
that  offences  will  come :  but  woe  unto  him,  through  whom 

gulf"  compare  the  interesting  passage  of  Plato  on  the  vain  attempts 
of  great  criminals  to  climb  out  of  their  prisons.     Rep.  x.  14. 

27.  that  thou  wouldest  send  hi?n  to  my  father' s  house']  It  is  difficult 
not  to  see  in  this  request  the  dawn  of  a  less  selfish  spirit  in  the  rich  man's 
heart. 

28.  /  have  five  brethren]  If  there  be  any  special  meaning  in  this 
detail,  the  clue  to  it  is  now  lost.  Some  have  seen  in  it  a  reference  to 
the  five  sons  of  the  High  Priest  Annas,  all  of  whom  succeeded  to  the 
Priesthood, — Eleazar,  Jonathan,  Theophilus,  Matthias,  and  the  younger 
Annas,  besides  his  son-in-law  Caiaphas.  But  this  seems  to  be  very 
unlikely.  An  allusion  to  Antipas  and  his  brethren  is  less  improbable, 
but  our  Lord  would  hardly  have  admitted  into  a  parable  an  oblique 
personal  reflexion. 

29.  They  have  Moses  and  the  prophets']     See  John  i.  45,  v.  39,  46. 
31.     neither  will  they  be  persuaded,  though  one  rose  from  the  dead  ] 

"We  are  saved  by  faithful  hearing,  not  by  apparitions,"  Bengel. 
This  was  most  remarkably  exemplified  in  the  results  which  followed  the 
raising  of  another  Lazarus  (John  xii.  10)  and  the  resurrection  of  our 
Lord  Himself  (Matt,  xxviii.  11 — 13).  Observe  that  the  reply  of  Abra- 
ham ('be  persuaded,'  'arose,  'from  among'  \_iK  not  d7r6]  the  dead)  is 
much  stronger  than  the  words  used  by  Dives.  "A  far  mightier  miracle 
...would  be  inetfectual  for  producing  a  far  slighter  effect,"  Trench. 

Ch.  XVII.  1—4.     The  Peril  of  causing  Men  to  Stumble. 

1.  It  is  impossible]  i.e.  in  the  present  condition  of  the  workl  it  is 
morally  impossible. 

offences]  See  on  vii.  23.  While  the  world  remains  what  it  is,  some 
will  always  set  snares  and  stumblingblocks  in  the  path  of  their 
brethren,  and  some  will  always  fall  over  them,  and  some  will  make  them 
for  themselves  (i  Cor.  xi.  19;   i  Pet.  ii.  S). 


272  ST   LUKE,   XVII.  [w.  2—5. 

2  they  come.  It  were  better  for  him  that  a  millstone  were 
hanged  about  his  neck,  and  he  cast  into  the  sea,  than  that 

3  he  should  offend  one  of  these  little  ones.  Take  heed  to 
yourselves:  If  thy  brother  trespass  against  thee,  rebuke  him; 

4  and  if  he  repent,  forgive  him.  And  if  he  trespass  against 
thee  seven  times  in  a  day,  and  seven  times  in  a  day  turn 
again  to  thee,  saying,  I  repent;  thou  shalt  forgive  him. 

5 — 10.      The  Power  of  Faith.      The  Insiifficieficy  of  Works. 

5  And  the  apostles  said  unto  the  Lord,  Increase  our  faith. 

woe  unto  him,  through  whom  they  come"]  No  moral  necessity,  no  pre- 
destined certainty,  removes  the  responsibility  for  individual  guilt. 

2.  //  were  better  for  him,  &c.]  The  literal  rendering  of  the  verse  is 
"  It  is  for  his  advantage  if  a  millstone  is  hanging  round  his  neck,  and  he 
has  been  Jliing  mio  the  sea,  rather  than  that,  &c."  In  other  words,  the 
fate  of  a  man  who  is  lying  drowned  at  the  bottom  of  the  sea  is  better 
than  if  his  continuance  in  life  would  have  led  to  causing  "one  of  these 
little  ones"  to  stumble.  The  general  thought  is  like  that  of  Queen 
Blanche,  who  used  to  say  of  her  son  St  Louis  when  he  was  a  boy,  that 
she  would  raJier  see  him  dead  at  her  feet  than  know  that  he  had  fallen 
into  a  deadly  sin. 

a  7nillsto7ie\  The  true  reading  here  is  lithos  miilikos,  not  miiJos 
onikos,  a.  millstone  so  large  as  to  require  an  ass  to  work  it.  This  is 
introduced  from  Matt,  xviii.  6. 

one  of  these  little  ones']  St  Mark  adds  "that  believe  in  me"  (ix.  42). 
The  reference  is  not  to  children,  or  the  young,  though  of  course  the 
warning  applies  no  less  to  their  case;  but  primarily  to  publicans  and 
weak  believers.  Christ  calls  even  the  Apostles  'children,'  John  xiii.  33 
(cf.  I  John  ii.  12,  13). 

3.  Take  heed  to  yourselves]  The  following  lesson  of  forgiveness  is 
added  because  the  liard  repellent  spirit  of  aggressive  Pharisaism  and 
spiritual  pride  was  of  all  others  the  most  likely  to  cause  offences.  It 
broke  up  the  bruised  reed,  and  stamped  on  the  smoking  flax. 

If  thy  brother  trespass  against  thee]  Rather,  If  lie  sin,  omitting 
''^  against  thee."     Comp.  Matt,  xviii.  15 — 17,  21,  22. 

rebuke  him.,  forgive  him]  The  former  duty  had  been  fully  recognised 
in  the  old  dispensation  (Lev.  xix.  17;  Prov.  xvii.  10);  the  latter  far  more 
distinctly  and  emphatically  in  the  new  (Matt,  xviii.  15).  The  former  is 
only  intended  as  a  help  to  the  latter,  i  Thess.  v.  14. 

4.  seven  times  in  a  day]  A  purely  general  expression,  which  as  little 
involves  the  quantitative  limitation  of  forgiveness  upon  repentance  as  the 
"seventy  times  seven"  of  Matt,  xviii.  22.  Some  of  the  Rabbis  had 
limited  the  duty  of  forgiveness  to  a  thrice-repeated  offence;  but 

"Who  with  repentance  is  not  satisfied, 
Is  not  of  heaven  or  earth." 


vv.  6-8.]  ST   LUKE,   XVII.  273 

And  the  Lord  said,  If  ye  had  faith  as  a  grain  of  mustard  6 
seed,  ye  might  say  unto  this  sycamine  tree,  Be  thou  plucked 
up  by  the  root,   and  be  thou  planted  in  the  sea;   and   it 
should  obey  you.     But  which  of  you,  having  a  servant  plow-  7 
ing  or  feeding  cattle,  will  say  unto  hitn  by  and  by,  when  he 
is  come  from  the  field,  Go  and  sit  down  to  meat  ?  and  will  8 


6 — 10.    The  Power  of  Faith.    The  Insufficiency  of  Works. 

5.  the  apostles  said  tinto  the  Lord]  The  high  title  given,  and  the 
spontaneous  united  request,  shew  how  deeply  they  had  felt  the  previous 
lessons. 

Increase  our  faith']  Literally  '^  Add  to  us  faith  "  without  which  we 
can  never  fulfil  these  great  moral  requirements. 

6.  as  a  grain  of  mustard  seed]  "which  is  the  least  of  all  seeds, "  Matt. 
xiii.  32. 

unto  this  sycamine  tree]  The  '  this  is  interesting  because  it  shews 
that  our  Lord  was  teaching  in  the  open  air,  and  pointed  to  the  tree  as 
He  spoke.  The  sycamine  (Hebr.  shikniah,  i  Chr.  xxvii.  -28)  seems  to  be 
a  generic  name  for  various  kinds  of  mulberries  (e.g.  the  Mortis  alba  and 
nigra),  which  were  freely  cultivated  in  the  East.  The  black  mulberry  is 
still  called  jy/fawf^fa  in  Greece  (see  xix.  4).  In  Matt.  xvii.  20  we  have 
a  similar  passage  with  the  variation  of  "this  mountain, "  which  our  Lord 
doubtless  spoke  pointing  to  Mount  Hermon.  The  Jews  gave  to  a 
great  Rabbi  the  title  of  'uprooter  of  mountains,'  in  the  sense  of 
'remover  of  difficulties;'  and  our  Lord  here  most  appropriately  ex- 
presses the  truth  that  Faith  can  remove  all  difficulties  and  obstacles,  Mk. 
IX.  23,  xi.  23.  Perhaps  the  warning  never  to  be  spiritually  elated  springs 
from  the  magnificence  of  this  promise. 

Be  thou  plucked  up  by  the  root]  Literally,  "Be  instantly  uprooted;" 
and  yet  it  is  a  tree  with  very  deep  roots.     See  p.  384. 

7.  having  a  servant  plowing]  The  Parable  of  the  Ploughing  Slave  is 
simply  an  illustration  from  daily  life.  The  slave  is  working  in  the  fields, 
at  ploughing  or  pasturing,  and  when  he  comes  back  the  master  orders 
him  to  prepare  his  dinner,  nor  does  he  give  him  any  special  daily  thanks 
for  his  ordinary  daily  duties,  even  if  they  be  duly  performed.  So  even  the 
best  of  us  do  not  do  more  than  our  commonest  and  barest  duty,  even  if 
we  attain  to  that.  Perhaps  the  "which  of  you,'"  as  addressed  to  the 
poor  Apostles,  may  be  surprising ;  but  the  sons  of  Zebedee  at  least  had 
once  had  hired  servants,  Mk.  i.  20. 

feeding  cattle]  Rather,  tending  sheep.  So  that  here  we  have  two  great 
branches  of  pastoral  work. 

will  say  unto  him  by  and  by,  when  he  is  come  from  the  field.  Go 
and  sit  dowtt  to  meat]  'By  and  by'  is  an  old  English  phrase  for  'im- 
mediately,' and  the  verse  should  be  punctuated  'will  say  to  him,  when 
he  enters  from  the  field.  Come  forward  immediately,  and  recline  at  table.' 
There  is  none  of  the  harshness  which  some  have  imagined.  The  master 
merely  says,  Get  me  my  dinner,  and  then  take  your  own. 

ST  LUKE  18 


274  ST   LUKE,   XVII.  [w.  9— ii. 

not  rather  say  unto  him,  Make  ready  wherewith  I  may  sup, 

and  gird  thyself,  and  serve  me,  till  I  have  eaten  and  drunk- 

9  en;  and  afterward  thou  shalt  eat  and  drink?    Doth  he  thank 

that  servant  because  he  did  the  thiiigs  that  were  commanded 

10  him?  I  trow  not.  So  likewise  ye,  when  ye  shall  have  done 
all  those  things  which  are  commanded  you,  say.  We  are  un- 
profitable servants:  we  have  done  that  which  was  our  duty 
to  do. 

II — 19.      The  Cleansed  Ten;  the  Thankless  Nine. 

11  And  it  came  to  pass,  as  he  went  to  Jerusalem,  that  he 

9.  Doth  he  thank  that  servattt...?']  i.e.  does  he  feel  or  express  any 
special  gratitude  to  him  (^x^'  X°'P"')'  -^s  a  matter  of  fact,  men  are  not 
in  the  habit  of  acknowledging  the  daily  services  of  their  dependents. 
Our  Lord  draws  from  this  common  circumstance  of  life  a  rebuke  of 
the  spirit  which  would  spin  out  to  eternity  a  selfish  desire  for  personal 
rewards  (Matt.  xix.  27,  xx.  21). 

/  t7-07v  not]  The  words  are  probably  genuine,  though  omitted  in 
N,  B,  L,  &c.  There  is  a  touch  of  irony  in  them,  and  doubtless  they  ex- 
press a  passing  shade  of  disapproval  at  the  thanklessness  and  discourtesy 
with  which  dependents  are  too  often  treated.  The  other  side  of  the 
picture  — God's  approval  of  our  efforts — is  given  in  xii.  37;  Rev.  iii.  20. 

10.  7i'he>t  ye  shall  have  done  all]  and  this  can  never  be,  Ps.  cxliii.  2. 
Even  if  it  could  "non  est  bencficium  sed  officiutn  facere  quod  debetis," 
Sen.  Controv. 

We  are  unprofitable  servants]  The  same  word  for  unprofitable  occurs 
in  Matt.  xxv.  30;  Rom.  iii.  12.  This  verse,  like  many  others  (Is.  Ixiv. 
6;  Rom.  iii.  27),  cuts  at  the  root  of  tlie  whole  Romish  notion  as  to  the 
possibility  of  'works  of  supererogation,'  see  Article  Xiv.  "  Servi 
inutiles  sunt,  insufficientes  quia  nemo  tantum  timet,  tantum  diligit 
Deum,  tantum  credit  Deo  quantum  oportuit,"  Augsb.  Conf.  "  We  sleep 
half  our  lives  ;  we  give  God  a  tenth  of  our  time  ;  and  yet  we  think  that 
with  our  good  works  we  can  merit  Heaven.  What  have  I  been  doing 
to  day?  I  have  talked  for  two  hours.  I  have  been  at  meals  three 
hours.  I  have  been  idle  four  hours.  Ah !  enter  not  into  judgment 
with  thy  servant,  O  Lord  ! "  Luther.  Yet  in  a  lower  sense — though 
'  insufficient,' though  'uiimeritorious  ' — it  is  possible  for  us  to  be  'good 
and  faithful  servants,'  Matt.  xxv.  21,  23. 

11 — 19.     The  Cleansed  Ten  ;  the  Thankless  Nine. 

11.  as  he  went  to  Jerusalem]  Rather,  as  they  were  on  their  way. 
The  most  natural  place  chronologically,  for  this  incident  would  have 
been  after  ix.  56.  St  Luke  places  it  here  to  contrast  man's  thankless- 
ness to  God  with  the  sort  of  claim  to  thanks yr^^w  God  which  is  asserted 
by  spiritual  pride. 


vv.  12-17]  ST   LUKE,   XVII.  275 

passed  through  the  midst  of  Samaria  and  GaUlee.     And  as  12 
he  entered  into  a  certain  village,  there  met  him  ten  men 
that  were  lepers,  which  stood  afar  off:  and  they  lifted  up  13 
their  voices,  and  said,  Jesus,   Master,  have  mercy  on  us. 
And  when  he  saw  them^  he  said  unto  them,  Go  shew  your-  14 
selves  unto  the  priests.     And  it  came  to  pass  that,  as  they 
went,  they  were  cleansed.     And  one  of  them,  when  he  saw  15 
that  he  was  healed,  turned  back,  and  with  a  loud  voice  glo- 
rified God,  and  fell  down  on  his  face  at  his  feet,  giving  him  16 
thanks:    and  he  was  a  Samaritan.     And  Jesus   answering  17 
said.  Were  there  not  ten  cleansed?  but  where  are  the  nine? 


he  passed  through  the  midst  of  Saf?taria  and  Galilee']  The  most 
natural  meaning  of  these  words  is  that  our  Lord,  when  rejected  at  the 
frontier  village  of  EnGannim  (see  on  ix.  52,  56),  altered  His  route,  and 
determined  to  pass  towards  Jerusalem  through  Peraea.  In  order  to 
reach  Peraea  He  would  have  to  pass  down  the  Wady  of  Bethsliean, 
—  which  lies  between  the  borders  of  Galilee  and  Samaria, — and  there  to 
cross  the  bridge  over  Jordan. 

12.  ten  mcTi  that  tvere  lepers]  So  in  2  K.  vii.  3  we  find  four  lepers 
together.  The  one  Samaritan  would  not  have  been  allowed  to  asso- 
ciate with  the  nine  Jews  had  not  leprosy  obliterated  religious  distinc- 
tions, as  it  still  sadly  does  in  the  leper-houses  (Biut  el  Masakin, 
'  Abodes  of  the  Unfortunate ')  at  Jerusalem,  where  alone  Jews  and 
Mahometans  will  live  together. 

zvhich  stood  afar  off]  as  the  Law  required,  Lev.  xiii.  45,  46.  See  on 
V.  11.  Usually  they  stood  at  the  roadside,  as  they  still  do,  clamorously 
demanding  alms,  but  they  had  heard  the  fame  of  Jesus,  and  asked  from 
Him  a  vaster  benefit. 

14.  7vhen  he  saw  them]  Jesus  always  listened  instantly  to  the 
appeal  of  the  leper,  whose  disease  was  the  type  of  that  worse  moral 
leprosy  which  He  specially  came  to  cleanse.     See  on  v.  13. 

he  said]     Apparently  he  called  out  this  answer  to  them  while  they 
were  still  at  the  required  legal  distance  of  100  paces. 
unto  the  priests]     See  on  v.  14. 

15.  one  of  them,  when  he  saw  that  he  was  healed,  turned  back]  The 
healing  took  place  when  they  had  shewn,  by  starting  on  their  way  to 
fulfil  the  command  of  Jesus,  that  they  had  faith.  The  Samaritan  was 
on  his  way  to  his  own  priests  at  Gerizim. 

7vith  a  loud  voice]  Some  see  in  this  an  implied  contrast  to  the  harsh, 
husky  voice  of  his  leprous  condition  ;  but  this  is  unlikely. 

16.  he  was  a  Samaritan]     See  on  x.  33. 

17.  Were  there  not  ten  cleansed?  but  where  are  the  nine  ?]  Literally, 
*'' Were  not  the  ten  cleansed?  but  the  nine — where?"  What  worse 
leprosy  of  superstition,  ignorance,  eager  selfishness,  or  more  glaring 
ingratitude  had  kept  back  the  others  ?     We  do  not  know. 

18—2 


276  ST   LUKE,   XVII.  [vv.  18—22. 

18  There  are  not  found  that  returned  to  give  glory  to  God, 

19  save   this  stranger.     And  he  said  unto  him,  Arise,  go  thy 
way:  thy  faith  hath  made  thee  whole. 

20 — 37.     The  '  When  V  and  '  Where  V  of  the  Kingdom  of 

God. 

20  And  when  he  was  demanded  of  the  Pharisees,  when  the 
kingdom  of  God  should  come,  he  answered  them  and  said, 

21  The  kingdom  of  God  cometh  not  with  observation:  neither 
shall  they  say,  Lo  here:  or,  lo  there:  for  behold,  the  king- 

22  dom  of  God  is  within  you.     And  he  said  unto  the  disciples, 

18.  There  are  not  foiind^  Ingratitude  is  one  of  the  most  universal 
and  deeply  seated  of  human  vices,  and  our  Lord  was  perfectly  familiar 
with  it.  But  in  this  instance  He  was  moved  by  the  depth  of  this 
thanklessness  in  so  many  recipients  of  so  blessed  a  favour.  Hence  His 
sorrowful  amazement.  He  felt  as  if  all  His  benefits  "  were  falling  into 
a  deep  silent  grave." 

"  Blow,  blow,  thou  winter  wind ; 
Thou  art  not  so  unkind 
As  man's  ingratitude." 

save  this  stranger']  Rather,  alien,  1  K.  xvii.  ■24.  See  on  x.  33. 
Josephus  says  that  the  Samaritans  eagerly  called  themselves  aXkoedveis 
when  they  wanted  to  disclaim  a  consanguinity  which  might  be  perilous 
(Antt.  IX.  14,  §  3,  XI.  8,  §  6):  but  it  is  almost  impossible  to  suppose  that 
Samaria  was  swept  clean  of  every  inhabitant,  and  the  ethnographical 
and  other  affinities  of  tlie  Samaritans  to  the  Jews  seem  to  shew  some 
mixture  of  blood,  which  they  themselves  claimed  at  other  times  (Jos. 
Antt.  XI.  8,  §  6;  John  iv.  12). 

19.  hath  made  thee  wholel     Rather,  liatli  saved  thee. 

20—37.    The   'When?'   and    'Where?'   of  the  Kingdom  of 

God, 

20.  And  when  he  was  demar^ded  of  the  Pharisees]  Literally,  ''''But 
being  further  questioned  by  the  Pharisees." 

should  come]  Literally,  "w  coftiing."  They  seem  to  have  asked 
■with  impatient  irony,  '  When  is  all  this  preparation  and  preaching  to 
end,  and  the  New  Kingdom  to  begin?' 

with  observation]  i.e.  by  narrow,  curious  watching.  See  xiv.  i.  He 
implies  that  their  entire  point  of  view  is  mistaken  ;  they  were  peering 
about  for  great  external  signs,  and  overlooking  the  slow  and  spiritual 
processes  which  were  at  work  before  their  eyes. 

21.  for  behold,  the  kingdom  of  God  is  within  you]  intra  vos  est,  Vulg. 
As  far  as  the  Greek  is  concerned,  this  rendering  of  ^a;/(7j  is  defensible  (comp. 
Matt,  xxiii.  26),  and  the  spiritual  truth  expressed  by  such  a  renderings 
which  implies  that  "the  Kingdom  of  God  is... righteousness  and  peace, 


w.  23-28.]  ST   LUKE,   XVII.  277 

I'he  days  will  come,  when  ye  shall  desire  to  see  one  of  the 
days  of  the  Son  of  man,  and  ye  shall  not  see  //.     And  they  23 
shall  say  to  you,  See  here;  or,  see  there:  go  not  after  them, 
nor  follow  them.     For  as  the  lightning,  that  lighteneth  out  ■^^ 
of  the  one  part  under  heaven,  shineth  unto  the  other  part 
under  heaven;  so  shall  also  the  Son  of  man  be  in  his  day. 
But  first  must  he  suffer  many  things,  and  be  rejected  of  this  25 
generation.     And  as  it  was  in  the  days  of  Noe,  so  shall  it  2t 
be  also  in  the  days  of  the  Son  of  man.     They  did  eat,  they  27 
drank,   they  married  wives,   they  were  given   in  marriage, 
until  the  day  that  Noe  entered  into  the  ark,  and  the  flood 
came,  and  destroyed  them  all.     Likewise  also  as  it  was  in  28 

and  joy  in  the  Holy  Ghost  "(Rom. xiv.  17)— is  most  important.  SeeDeut 
XXX.  14.  So  that  Meyer  is  hardly  justified  in  saying  that  the  conception 
of  the  Kingdom  of  God  as  an  ethical  condition  of  the  soul  is  modem 
not  historico-biblical.  But  entos  hiimon  may  also  undoubtedly  mean 
among  you  (marg.),  'in  the  midst  of  your  ranks,'  as  in  Xen.  Anab.  i. 
10,  §  3;  and  this  rendering  is  more  in  accordance  (i)  with  the  context — as 
to  the  sudden  coming  of  the  Son  of  Man  ;  and  (ii)  with  the  fact, — for  it 
certainly  could  not  be  said  that  the  Kingdom  of  God  was  in  the  hearts 
of  the  Pharisees.  The  meaning  then  is  the  same  as  in  John  i.  26  ; 
Matt.  xii.  28.  But  in  either  case  our  Lord  implied  that  His  Kingdom 
had  already  come  while  they  were  straining  their  eyes  forward  in 
curious  observation,  vii.  16,  xi.  20. 

22.  The  days  will  co?ne,  when  ye  shall  desire,  &c.]  Compare  Matt, 
ix.  15,  "The  days  will  come,  when  the  bridegroom  shall  be  taken  from 
them,  and  then  shall  they  fast,  in  those  days."  See,  too,  John  xii.  35, 
xiii.  33,  xvii.  12.  They  were  looVvn^  forivnrds  with  no  realization  of 
that  rich  present  blessedness  for  which  they  would  one  day  yearn. 
Rev.  vi.  10. 

23.  See  here ;  or,  see  thcre^  A  vivid  description  of  the  perpetual 
Messianic  excitements,  which  finally  ceased  in  the  days  of  Barcochba 
and  the  Rabbi  Akibha.  We  find  a  similar  warning  in  xxi.  8.  .See 
Jos.  Antt.  XX.  8;  B.  J.  II.  13,  VI.  5;  Ta.c.  Hist.  v.  13.  With  the 
whole  passage  compare  Matt.  xxiv.  23 — 41. 

24.  as  the  lightning,  that  lightendh'X  bright,  swift,  sudden,  uni- 
versal, irresistible. 

25.  But  first  vitist  he  stiffer  many  things']  It  was  essential  to  our 
Lord's  training  of  the  Twelve  at  this  period  of  His  ministry,  that  He 
should  again  and  again — as  in  solemn  refrain  to  all  His  teaching — warn 
them  of  this  coming  end.     See  xviii.  31. 

26.  as  it  was  in  the  days  of  Noel  as  described  in  Gen.  vii.  ii — 23. 
The  Second  Advent  should  flame  upon  a  sensual  and  unexpectant 
world. 

27.  They  did  eat,  they  drank]  Rather,  They  were  eating,  they 
were  drinking — retaining  the  imperfects  of  the  original. 


278  ST   LUKE,  XVII.  [vv.  29— 36. 

the  days  of  Lot;  they  did  eat,  they  drank,  they  bought,  they 

29  sold,  they  planted,  they  builded;  but  the  same  day  that  Lot 
went  out  of  Sodom  it  rained  fire  and  brimstone  from  heaven, 

30  and  destroyed  them  all.     Even  thus  shall  it  be  in  the  day 

31  when  the  Son  of  man  is  revealed.  In  that  day,  he  which 
shall  be  upon  the  housetop,  and  his  stuff  in  the  house,  let 
him  not  come  down  to  take  it  away :  and  he  that  is  in  the 

32  field,  let  him  likewise  not  return  back.     Remember  Lot's 

33  wife.     Whosoever  shall  seek  to  save  his  life  shall  lose  it; 

34  and  whosoever  shall  lose  his  life  shall  preserve  it.  I  tell 
you,  in  that  night  there  shall  be  two  men  in  one  bed;  the 

35  one  shall  be  taken,  and  the  other  shall  be  left.  Two  wome7i 
shall  be  grinding  together;  the  one  shall  be  taken,  and  tlie 

36  other  left.     Two  men  shall  be  in  the  field;  the  one  shall  be 

28.  in  the  days  of  Lot]  See  Gen.  xix.  15 — 25;  Jude  7;  Ezek.  xvi. 
46 — 56;  Am.  iv.  II  ;  Is.  xiii.  19. 

30.  Evefi  thus  shall  it  be\  St  Paul,  no  less  than  St  Luke,  had 
caught  the  echo  of  these  solemn  warnings.     2  Thess.  i.  6 — 10. 

31.  upon  the  housetop]  the  common  Oriental  place  for  cool  and 
quiet  resort.     See  on  xii.  3,   v.  19. 

his  stuff]     i.  e.  his  furniture  or  goods  ; 

"Therefore  away  to  get  our  stuff  aboard." 

Shaksp.  Com.  of  r.rro7-s. 

let  him  not  come  down  to  take  it  a%vay\  let  him  escape  at  once  by  the 
outer  steps,  Matt.  xxiv.  16 — 18.  It  is  clear  that  in  these  warnings,  as 
in  Matt,  xxiv.,  our  Lord  has  distinctly  in  view  the  Destruction  of  Jeru- 
salem, and  the  awful  troubles  and  judgments  which  it  brought,  as  being 
the  first  fulfilment  of  the  Prophecy  of  His  Advent. 

32.  Remember  Lofs  ivfe]  Gen.  xix.  26;  Wisd.  x.  7,  "and  a  stand- 
ing pillar  of  salt  is  a  monument  of  an  unbelieving  soul."  The  warning 
is  the  same  as  in  ix.  62.  Turn  no  regretful  gaze  on  a  guilty  and  for- 
saken world. 

33.  Whosoever  shall  seek  to  save  his  life]  See  the  same  utterance, 
with  slight  verbal  alterations,  in  ix.  24;  John  xii.  25.  St  Paul's  high 
confidence  as  to  the  issue  of  his  own  apparently  ruined  and  defeated 
life,  furnishes  us  with  a  beautiful  comment,  2  Tim.  iv.  6 — 8.  For  '  to 
save'  (sosai)  some  MSS.  read  to  '  make  his  own,'  '  to  purchase  '  (peri- 
poiesasthai). 

34.  two  men  in  one  bed]  Not  necessarily  men  ;  but  human  beings, 
e.g.  man  and  wife.  The  numerals  are  of  course  masculine,  because  the 
man  might  be  either  the  one  '  taken '  or  the  one  '  left.' 

35.  grinding  together]  as  to  this  day  in  the  use  of  the  common  hand- 
mills  of  the  East. 

36.  Two  men  shall  be  in  the  f  eld]      This   verse   is   of  more   than 


w.  37;  1,2.]         ST   LUKE,   XVII.  XVIII.  279 

taken,  and  the  other  left.    And  they  answered  and  said  unto  37 
him,  Where,  Lord?     And  he  said  unto  them.  Wheresoever 
the  body  is,  thither  will  the  eagles  be  gathered  together. 

Ch.  XVIII.     1—8.     The  Duty  of  Urgent  Prayer,      The 
Unjust  y^udge. 

And  he  spake  a  parable  unto  them  to  this  end,  that  men  18 
ought  always  to  pray,  and  not  to  faint ;  saying,  There  was  in  2 

doubtful  authenticity  in  this  place,  being  omitted  by  nearly  all  the  im- 
portant MSS.     It  is  probably  interpolated  from  Matt.  xxiv.  40. 

37.  Where,  Lord?'\  This  question  also  our  Lord  declines  to  an- 
swer. The  Coming  of  God's  Kingdom  is  not  to  be  limited  either  by 
chronological  or  by  geographical  conditions. 

Wheresoever  the  body  is]  Rather,  the  carcass,  although  here  the 
specific  word  for  carcass  {ptoma)  is  not  used  as  in  Matt.  xxiv.  28. 

thither  will  the  eagles  be  gathered  together]  Rather,  the  vulttires. 
The  same  generic  word  is  indeed  used  for  both  genera  of  birds,  but  the 
eagle  does  not  feed  on  carcasses.  Some  commentators  both  ancient 
and  modern  have  interpreted  'the  body'  to  mean  Christ,  and  'the 
eagles  '  His  gathering  Saints.  Scriptural  usage  seems  to  make  such  an 
interpretation  impossible,  especially  as  there  is  probably  a  direct  allu- 
sion to  Job  xxxix.  30,  "Her  young  ones  also  suck  up  blood:  and 
where  the  slain  are,  there  is  she^  See  too  Hab.  i.  8;  Hos.  viii.  i ;  Rev. 
xix.  17 — 2 1.  Sometimes  a  reference  is  supposed  to  the  eagle-standards 
of  Rome.  (Comp.  Deut.  xxviii.  49 — 52  ;  John  xi.  48.)  This  is  very  possi- 
ble especially  as  the  Jews  were  very  familiar  with  the  Roman  eagle,  and 
so  strongly  detested  it  that  the  mere  erection  of  the  symbol  in  Jeru- 
salem was  sufficient  to  lash  them  into  insurrection  (Jos.  Antt.  XVII.  6,  §  3). 
But  the  proverb  has  a  far  wider  significance,  and  is  illustrated  by  the 
rush  of  avenging  forces  whenever  the  life  of  a  nation  has  fallen  into 
dissolution  and  decay.  See  the  vision  of  the  eagle  in  1  Esdras  xi.  45, 
"And  therefore  appear  no  more,  O  eagle,  nor  thy  horrible  wings,  nor 
thy  wicked  feathers,  nor  thy  malicious  heads,  nor  thy  hurtful  claws, 
nor  all  thy  vain  body." 

Ch.  XVIII.  1—8.     The  Duty  of  Urgent  Prayer.     The  Unjust 

Judge. 

1.  that  men  ought  always  to  pray]  Rather,  that  they  ought  always 
to  pray,  since  the  true  reading  adds  airovs.  It  is  only  here  and  in 
vs.  9  that  the  explanation  or  point  of  a  parable  is  given  before  the 
parable  itself.  Both  parables  are  peculiar  to  St  Luke.  The  duty 
inculcated  is  rather  urgent  prayer  (as  in  xi.  5 — 13)  than  that  spirit  of 
unflagging  prayer  which  is  elsewhere  enforced,  xxi.  36  ;  i  Thcss.  v.  17  ; 
Eph.  vi.  18.  "  Prayer  is  the  soul's  sincere  desire 

Uttered,  or  unexpressed.'''' 

and  not  to  faint]  The  word  used  is  a  late  word  meaning  to  give  in 
through  cowardice,  or  g'lve  up  from  faint-heartedness.  It  is  a  Pauline 
word,  1  Cor.  iv.  i,  16  ;  Gal.  vi.  9. 


28o  ST   LUKE,   XVIII.  [w.  3— 6. 

a  city  a  judge,  which  feared  not  God,  neither  regarded  man: 

3  and  there  was  a  widow  in  that  city;  and  she  came  unto  him, 

4  saying,  Avenge  me  of  mine  adversary.     And  he  would  not 
for  a  while :  but  afterward  he  said  within  himself,  Though 

s  I  fear  not  God,  nor  regard  man;  yet  because  this  widow 

troubleth    me,    I   will   avenge    her,    lest   by   her   continual 

6  coming  she  weary  me.     And  the  Lord  said,  Hear  what  the 

2.  a  judge]  Rather,  a  certain  judge.  The  little  story  is  not 
improbably  taken  from  life,  and  doubtless  the  inferior  judges  under 
such  a  sovereignty  as  that  of  the  Herods  might  afford  many  instances 
of  carelessness  and  venality. 

which  feared  not  God,  neither  regarded  man}  The  description  of  a 
character  perfectly  abandoned.  He  is  living  in  violation  of  both  of  the 
two  great  commandments ;  in  contradiction  to  the  spirit  of  both  Tables 
of  the  Decalogue.  His  conduct  is  the  reverse  of  the  noble  advice  of 
Jehoshaphat  to  his  judges,  2  Chr.  xix.  6,  7  ;  (2  Cor.  viii.  21). 

a  widow]  See  Ex.  xxii.  22;  Deut.  x.  18;  Is.  i.  17,  23;  Mai.  iii.  5; 
2  Sam.  xiv.  2,  5.  The  necessity  for  special  justice  and  kindness  to 
them  rose  from  the  fact  that  in  the  East  they  were  of  all  classes  the 
most  defenceless  and  oppressed.  Hence  the  prominent  place  which 
they  occupy  in  the  arrangements  of  the  early  Church  (Acts  vi.  i,  ix.  41; 
I  Tim.  v.  3,  &c. ). 

3.  she  came  unto  hint]  Rather,  she  kept  coming  to  him.  The 
widow  woman  is  a  representative  alike  of  the  Christian  Church  and  of 
the  Christian  soul. 

Avenge  me  of  mine  adversary]  Rather,  Do  me  justice.  The  word 
*  avenge''  is  a  little  too  strong.  The  technical  term  ekdikeson  implies 
'settle  my  case  (so  as  to  free  me)  from  my  adversary.'  The  same  word 
is  found  in  Rom.  xii.  19;  Rev.  vi.  10.  There  is  again  a  curious  parallel 
in  Ecclus.  xxxv.  14 — 17,  "  He  will  not  despise  ...  the  widow  when  she 
poureth  out  her  complaint.  Do  not  the  tears  run  down  the  widow's 
cheeks?  and  is  not  her  cry  against  him  that  causeth  them  to  fall?. ..The 
prayer  of  the  humble  pierceth  the  clouds,  and  ...  he  will  not  depart  till 
the  Most  High  shall  behold  to  judge  righteously  and  execute  jttdgment." 

4.  he  said  withiit  himself]  The  shamelessness  with  which  he 
acknowledges  his  own  sin  renders  it  still  more  aggravated. 

Though  I  fear  not  God,  tior  regard  man]  'The  creed  of  a  powerful 
atheist.'     Bengel. 

5.  troubleth  7ne]     Rather,  gives  me  trouble. 

lest  by  her  continual  coming]  Literally,  "  coming  to  the  end,"  ' '  coming 
for  ever" — another  colloquialism. 

she  weary  me]  The  original  has  the  curious  word  hiipopiaze ; 
literally,  ''^should  blackcfi  me  under  the  eyes."  Some  have  supposed 
that  he  is  afraid  lest  the  widow  should  be  driven  by  desperation  to 
make  an  assault  on  him  {ne  sugillet  me,  Vulg. ;  ne  obtundat  me,  Beza) ; 
but  undoubtedly  the  word  is  a  colloquialism  (Ar.  Pax,  519)  retained 
in  Hellenistic  Greek,  and  found  also  in  St  Paul  in  i  Cor.  ix.  27,  where 


w.  7— 9-1  ST    LUKE,   XVIII.  281 

unjust  judge   saith.     And   shall   not  God  avenge  his  own  7 
elect,  which  cry  day  and  night  unto  him,  though  he  bear 
long   with    them  ?     I    tell   you    that    he  will  avenge    them  8 
speedily.  ^  Nevertheless  when  the  Son  of  man  cometh,  shall 
he  find  faith  on  the  earth  ? 

9 — 14-     The  Duty  of  Humble  Prayer.     The  Pharisee  and  the 

Tax-gatherer. 

And  he  spake  this  parable  unto  certain  which  trusted  in  9 

it  is  rendered,  "I  keep  under  my  body."     It  is  like  the  English  collo- 
quialism '^  to  plague  z. -pttrzon."     Comp.  Matt.  xv.  ■23. 

6.  the  unjust  judge']     \Aitxz\\y,"- the  judge  of  injustice.'''    Cp.  xvi.  8. 

7.  And  shall  not  God]  The  argument  is  ^\m^\y  a  fortiori.  Even 
an  unjust  and  abandoned  judge  grants  a  just  petition  at  last  out  of  base 
motives  when  it  is  often  urged,  to  a  defenceless  person  for  whom  he 
cares  nothing ;  how  much  more  shall  a  just  and  merciful  God  hear  the 
cry  and  avenge  the  cause  of  those  whom  He  loves  ? 

ave-nge  his  oivn  elect,  which  cry  day  and  night  U7ito  hitn]  The  best 
comment  is  furnished  by  Rev.  vi.  9 — 11.  But  the  'avenging'  is  rather 
the  '  vindication,'  i.e.  the  deliverance  from  the  oppressor. 

7uhich  cry]  Literally,  shout.  It  is  "strong  crying,"  comp.  Jas.  v,  4, 
'  the  shouts  of  the  reapers  of  your  fields.' 

though  he  bear  long  with  them]  Literally,  "■though  being  longsuffering 
in  their  case."  Here  the  longsuffering  of  God  is  shewn  not  to  His  elect 
(though  they  too  need  and  receive  it,  1  Pet.  iii.  9),  but  to  their  enemies. 
See  Ecclus.  xxxv.  17,  18 — another  close  parallel,  probably  an  inter- 
polated plagiarism  from  this  Gospel.  The  elect  are  far  more  eager 
not  only  for  deliverance,  but  even  for  vengeance,  than  God  is.  They 
shew  too  much  of  the  spirit  which  God  reproves  in  Jonah.  But  God 
knows  man's  weakness  and  "therefore  is  He  patient  with  them  and 
poureth  His  mercy  upon  them."  Ecclus.  xviii.  ri.  But  the  best  sup- 
ported reading  is  koX  /jiaKpo8vfj.€i  iv'  avrov?.  This  would  denote  that 
the  longsuffering  is  shewn  toward  the  elect.  He  is  pitiful  to  them,  in 
the  midst  of  their  impatience. 

8.  he  will  avenge  them]  Is.  Ixiii.  4;  Ps.  ix.  12,  "When  He 
maketh  inquisition  for  blood.  He  remembereth  them,  He  forgetteth 
not  the  cry  of  the  humble."  "  Yet  a  little  while,"  Heb.  x.  37  ;  2  Pet. 
iii.  8,  9.  The  best  comment  on  the  Paral)le  and  our  Lord's  explanation 
of  it  may  be  found  in  His  own  Discourses,  John  xiv.,  xv. 

speedily]  in  reality  (2  Pet.  iii.  8)  though  not  in  semblance. 

shall  he  find  faith  on  the  earth  ?]  Rather,  shall  He  find  this  faith 
on  the  earth  ?  So  St  Peter  tells  of  scoffers  in  the  last  days  who  shall 
say  "Where  is  the  promise  of  His  coming?"  2  Pet.  iii.  3,  4;  and  before 
that  day  "the  love  of  many  shall  wax  cold,"  Matt,  xx'iv.  12;  2  Thess. 
ii.  3.  Even  the  faith  of  God's  elect  will  in  the  last  days  be  sorely  tried 
(Matt.  xxiv.  22). 


282  ST   LUKE,   XVIII.  [w.  lo,  ii. 

themselves  that  they  were  righteous,  and  despised  other  : 
Two  men  went  up  into  the  temple  to  pray ;  the  one  a  Pha- 
risee, and  the  other  a  publican.  The  Pharisee  stood  and 
prayed  thus  with  himself,  God,  I  thank  thee,  that  I  am  not 

9 — 14.    The  Duty  of  Humble  Prayer.    The  Pharisee  and  the 

Tax-gatherer. 

9.  which  trusted  in  themselves  that  they  tvere  righteous'\  See  xvi.  15  ; 
Phil.  iii.  4;  2  Cor.  i.  9.  The  Jewish  words  ^Jashar,'  'the  upright 
man,'  and  '  Tsaddik,^  'just,'  expressed  their  highest  moral  ideal  ;  but 
they  made  their  uprightness  and  justice  consist  so  much  in  attention  to 
the  ceremonial  minutiae  of  the  Levitic  Law,  and  rigid  externalism 
so  engrossed  their  thoughts,  that  they  had  lost  sight  of  those  loftier  and 
truer  ideals  of  charity  which  the  Propliets  had  continually  set  before 
them.  This  fetish-worship  of  the  letter,  this  scrupulosity  about  trifles, 
tended  only  to  self-confidence  and  pride.  It  had  long  been  denounced 
in  Scripture.  "There  is  a  generation  that  are  pure  in  their  own  eyes, 
and  yet  is  not  washed  from  their  filthiness,"  Prov.  xxx.  12  ;  "which  say, 
Stand  by  thyself,  come  not  near  to  me ;  for  I  am  holier  than  thou.  These 
are  a  smoke  in  my  nose,  a  fire  that  burneth  all  the  day,"  Is.  Ixv.  5. 
This  is  the  sort  of  '  faith '  which  the  Son  of  Man  shall  find  on  the  earth, 
— men's  faith  in  themselves  ! 

and  despised  other\  Rather,  the  rest.  The  word  '  despise '  means 
'treat  as  nothing,'  'regard  as  mere  cyphers,'  Rom.  xiv.  3,  10.  The 
Rabbis  invented  the  most  highflown  designations  for  each  other,  such 
as  '  Light  of  Israel,'  '  Uprooter  of  Mountains,'  '  The  Glory  of  the  Law,' 
'  The  Holy,'  &c. ;  but  they  described  the  vast  mass  of  their  fellow- 
countrymen  as  "  accursed "  for  not  knowing  the  law  (John  vii.  49), 
and  spoke  of  them  as  ^ empty  cisterns,''  ^people  of  the  earth,''  &c.  See 
on  V.  32,  vii.  34,  &c.  This  Pharisee  regards  with  perfect  self-com- 
placency the  assumed  ruin  and  degradation  of  all  the  rest  of  mankind. 
In  one  sense  the  Parable  represents  the  mutual  relations  of  Jew  and 
Gentile. 

10.  went  up  into  the  tej/iple']  The  Temple  stood  on  Mount  Moriah, 
and  was  always  called  the  '  Hill  of  the  House  '  {Har  ha-Bcit). 

to  pray}  The  Temple  had  long  become  naturally,  and  most  fitly,  a 
"House  of  Prayer"  (xix.  46),  though  this  was  not  its  main  original 
function. 

11.  stood  and  prayed  thus  with  himself]  Standing  was  the  ordinary 
Jewish  attitude  of  prayer  (i  K.  viii.  22  ;  Mk.  xi.  25),  but  the  word  statheis 
(which  is  not  used  of  the  Tax-gatherer)  seems  to  imply  that  he  stood  by 
himself  to  avoid  the  contaminating  contact  of  the  '  people  of  the  earth, ' 
and  posed  himself  in  a  conspicuous  attitude  (Matt.  vi.  5),  as  well  as 
'prayed  with  himself  as  the  words  are  perhaps  rightly  rendered.  He 
was  "a  separatist  in  spirit  as  in  name,"  Trench.  (Pharisee  from 
Pharash  '  to  separate.') 

God,  I  thank  thee']  Rather,  0  God.  His  prayer  is  no  prayer  at 
all;  not  even  a  thanksgiving,  only  a  boast.  See  the  strong  denun- 
ciation of  such  insolent  self-sufficiency  in  Rev.  iii.  17,  18. 


V.  12.]  ST    LUKE,    XVIII.  283 

as  other  men  are^  extortioners,  unjust,  adulterers,  or  even  as 
this  pubhcan.     I  fast  twice  in  the  week,  I  give  tithes  of  all  12 

as  other  me7i\     Rather,  as  the  rest  of  mankind. 

extortioners,  tinjiist,  adulterers^  Could  he,  in  any  real  sense,  have 
made  out  even  this  claim  to  be  free  from  glaring  crimes  ?  His  class  at 
any  rate  are  charged  by  Christ  with  being  "  full  of  extortion  "  (Matt, 
xxiii.  ^s);  and  they  were  unjust,  seeing  that  they  'omitted  judgment' 
(id.  23).  They  are  not  indeed  charged  by  Jesus  with  adultery  either 
in  the  metaphorical  or  literal  sense,  but  they  are  spoken  of  as 
being  prominent  members  of  an  adulterous  generation,  and  on  several 
occasions  our  Lord  sternly  rebuked  their  shameful  laxity  in  the 
matter  of  divorce  (Matt.  xix.  3 — 9).  And  not  only  does  Josephus 
charge  them  with  this  crime  also,  but  their  Talmud,  with  perfect 
self-complacency,  shews  how  the  flagrant  immorality  of  even  their 
most  eminent  Rabbis  found  a  way  to  shelter  itself,  with  barefaced 
and  cynical  casuistry,  under  legal  forms.  See  John  viii.  i — 11,  and 
Lightfoot,  Hor.  Hebr.  ad  loc.  ;  Life  of  Christ,  li.  152.  It  appears 
from  the  tract  Sotah  in  the  Mishnah,  that  the  ordeal  of  the  '  water  of 
jealousy'  had  been  abolished  by  Jochanan  Ben  Zakkai,  the  greatest 
Rabbi  of  this  age,  because  the  crime  had  grown  so  common. 

or  even  as  this  publican^  He  thus  makes  the  Publican  a  foil  to 
his  own  virtues.  "This,"  says  St  Augustine,  "is  no  longer  to  exult, 
but  to  insult." 

12.  I  fast  twice  in  the  weeh]  This  practice  had  no  divine  sanction. 
The  Law  appointed  only  a  single  fast-day  in  the  year,  the  Day  of 
Atonement  (Lev.  xvi.  29).  By  the  time  of  Zechariah  there  seem 
to  have  been  four  yearly  fasts  (Zech.  viii.  19).  The  bi-weekly  fast 
of  the  Pharisees  was  a  mere  burden  imposed  by  the  oral  Law.  The 
days  chosen  were  Thursday  and  Monday,  because  on  those  days 
Moses  was  believed  to  have  ascended  and  descended  from  Sinai, 
Babha  Katita,  f.  82,  i.     The  man  boasts  of  his  empty  ceremonialism. 

/  give  tithes  of  all  that  I  possess\  Rather,  of  all  that  I  acquire. 
As  though  he  were  another  Jacob  !  (Gen.  xxviii.  22;  comp.  Tob.  i.  7,  S). 
Here  too  he  exceeds  the  Written  Law,  which  only  commanded  tithes 
of  corn,  wine,  oil,  and  cattle  (Deut.  xiv.  22,  23),  and  not  of  mint, 
anise,  and  cummin  (Matt,  xxiii.  23).  The  fact  that  he  does  not  say 
a  word  about  his  sins  shews  how  low  was  his  standard.  "  He  that 
covereth  his  sins  shall  not  prosper,"  Prov.  xxviii.  13.  He  was 
clothed  with  phylacteries  and  fringes,  not  with  humility,  i  Pet.  v.  5. 
A  Talmudic  treatise,  the  Berachdth  (Schwab,  p.  336),  furnishes  us 
with  a  close  analogy  to  the  prayer  of  the  Pharisee  in  that  of  Rabbi 
Nechounia  Ben  Hakana,  who  on  leaving  his  school  used  to  say, 
'  I  thank  thee,  O  Eternal,  my  God,  for  having  given  me  part  with 
those  who  attend  this  school  instead  of  running  through  the  shops. 
I  rise  early  like  them,  but  it  is  to  study  the  Law,  not  for  futile  ends. 
I  take  trouble  as  they  do,  but  I  shall  be  rewarded,  and  they  will  not ; 
we  run  alike,  but  I  for  the  future  life,  while  they  will  only  arrive  at 
the  pit  of  destruction.' 


284  ST   LUKE,    XVIII.  [vv.  13,  14. 

13  that  I  possess.  And  the  publican,  standing  afar  off,  would 
not  lift  up  so  much  as  his  eyes  unto  heaven,  but  smote  upon 

14  his  breast,  saying,  God  be  merciful  to  me  a  sinner.  I  tell 
you,  this  man  went  down  to  his  house  justified  rather  than 
the  other :  for  every  one  that  exalteth  himself  shall  be 
abased ;  and  he  that  humbleth  himself  shall  be  exalted. 

13.  standing  afar  off\  The  word  for  standing  is  not  statheis 
as  in  the  case  of  the  Pharisee,  but  merely  hestos.  It  is  not  certain 
whether  the  "afar  off "  means  'afar  off  from  the  Pharisee,'  or  (as  is 
more  probable)  afar  off  from  the  Holy  Place  to  which  the  Pharisee 
would  thrust  himself,  as  of  right,  into  closest  proximity. 

would  not  lift  up  so  much  as  his  eyes']  The  Jew  usually  stood  with 
arms  outspread,  the  palms  turned  upwards,  as  though  to  receive  the 
gifts  of  heaven,  and  the  eyes  raised.  "Unto  Thee  lift  I  up  mine 
eyes,"  Ps.  cxxiii.  i,  2;  but  on  the  other  hand,  "Mine  iniquities  have 
taken  such  hold  upon  me  that  I  am  not  able  to  look  up,"  Ps.  xl.  12; 
"O  my  God,  I  am  ashamed  and  blush  to  lift  up  my  face  to  thee,  my 
God:  for  our  iniquities  are  increased  over  our  head,  and  our  trespass 
is  grown  up  unto  the  heavens,"  Ezra  ix.  6. 

s77iote  upon  his  breast]  For  this  custom  of  expressing  grief,  see 
xxiii.  48;  Nahumii.  7;  Jer.  xxxi.  19.  "Pectus,  conscientiae  sedem," 
Bengel. 

God  be  merciful  to  me  a  sinner]  Rather,  0  God,  be  merciful  to  me 
tlie  sinner.  The  word  for  '  be  merciful '  means  '  be  propitiated '  as  in 
Heb.  ii.  17.    He  speaks  of  himself  as  the  chief  of  sinners,  i  Tim.  i.  15. 

14.  went  down  to  his  house  justified  rather  than  the  other]  Of  the 
Pharisee  it  might  be  said,  "  His  soul  which  is  lifted  up  is  not  upright 
in  him  ;"  but  of  the  Tax-gatherer,  "  the  just  shall  live  by  his  faith," 
Hab.  ii.  4.  But  the  day  had  not  yet  come  in  which  the  words  'be 
merciful '  [hilaskoti),  and  'justified  '  (dediJzaiomenos),  possessed  the  deep 
full  meaning  which  they  were  soon  to  acquire  (Heb.  ii.  17;  Rom. 
iii.  20).  The  phrase  was  not  unknown  to  the  Talmud,  which  says 
that  while  the  Temple  stood,  when  every  Israelite  had  offered  sacrifice, 
'his  sin  was  pardoned  and  he  departed  justified.'  The  reading  of 
our  Greek  text  17  iKeivos  is  untenable,  though  it  correctly  gives  the 
meaning.  The  best  supported  reading  is  ^  yap  iKelfos,  but  it  seems 
to  have  originated  by  mistake  from  trap^  iKeivov.  Abp  Trench  quotes 
Crashaw's  striking  epigram : 

"Two  went   to  pray:  or  rather  say 
One  went  to  brag,   the  other  to  pray ; 
One  stands   up  close,   and   treads   on  high, 
Wliere  th'  other  dares  not  send  his  eye. 
One  nearer  to  the  altar  trod, 
The  other  to  the  altar's  God." 
every  07te  that  exalteth  hitnself]  See  xiv.  11.     In  this  Parable,  as  in 
that  of  the  Prodigal  son,  we  have  the  contrast  between  unrighteousness 
and  self-righteousness. 


w.  15—18.]  ST    LUKE,    XVIII.  285 

15 — 17.     'jFesus  and  the  Children.    A  Lesson  of  Humility. 

And  they  brought  unto  him  also  infants,  that  he  would  is 
touch  them:  but  when  his  disciples  saw  it,  they  rebuked 
them.      But  Jesus  called  them  unto  him,  and  said,  Sufifer  16 
little  children  to  come  unto  me,  and  forbid  them  not :   for 
of  such  is  the  kingdom  of  God.     Verily  I  say  unto  you,  >7 
Whosoever  sliall  not  receive  the  kingdom  of  God  as  a  little 
child  shall  in  no  wise  enter  therein. 

18 — 30.      The  Great  Refusal.      The  Young  Ruler  who  loved 
Riches  more  than  Christ. 

And  a  certain  ruler  asked  him,  saying,  Good  Master,  what  18 

15—17.     Jesus  and  the  Children.     A  Lesson  of  Humility. 

15.  they  brought  unto  him  also  infants\  Rather,  their  babes.  It 
seems  to  have  been  a  custom  of  Jewish  mothers  to  carry  their  babes 
to  eminent  Rabbis  for  their  blessing;  naturally  therefore  these  mothers 
would  bring  their  children  and  babes  to  Jesus.  See  Matt.  xix.  13 — 15  ; 
Mk.  X.  13. 

16.  called  them]  St  Mark  adds  that  Jesus  was  much  displeased 
with  the  officious  interference  of  the  disciples  who  so  little  understood 
His  tenderness. 

Suffer  little  childrefi]     Rather,  the  little  children. 

for  of  such  is  the  kingdom  of  God]  Because  children  are  meek, 
humble,  trustful,  guileless,  unsophisticated,  pure.  It  was  a  lesson 
which  Jesus  often  taught.  Matt.  v.  3,  xi.  -25,  xvii.  10,  r4  ;  i  Cor. 
xiv.  20;   I  Pet.  ii.  i,  2. 

receive  the  kingdom  of  God  as  a  little  child}  See  Matt.  xi.  25. 
Hence  the  Psalmist  says,  "My  soul  is  even  as  a  weaned  child," 
Ps.  cxxxi.  2.  Tradition  (erroneously)  supposed  that  St  Ignatius  was 
one  of  these  children. 

18—30.     The  Great  Refusal.    The  Young  Ruler  who  loved 
Riches  more  than  Christ. 

18.  a  certain  ruler"]  St  Matthew  (xix.  20)  only  calls  him  "a 
young  man."  He  was  probably  the  young  and  wealthy  ruler  of  a 
synagogue.  The  touch  added  by  St  Mark  (x.  17),  that  he  suddenly 
ran  up  and  fell  on  his  knees  before  Him,  seems  to  imply  that  he  was 
eager  to  catch  the  opportunity  of  speaking  to  Jesus  before  He  started 
on  a  journey,  probably  the  journey  from  the  Peraean  Bethany,  beyond 
Jordan  (John  x.  41,  42),  to  the  Bethany  near  Jerusalem,  to  raise 
Lazarus. 

Good  Master]  This  title  was  an  impropriety,  almost  an  imper- 
tinence ;  for  the  title  '  good '  was  never  addressed  to  Rabbis  by  their 


286  ST   LUKE,   XVIII.  [vv.  19—22. 

19  shall  I  do  to  inherit  eternal  life  ?  And  Jesus  said  unto  him, 
Why  callest  thou  me  good  ?  none  is  good,  save  one,  that  is, 

20  God.  Thou  knowest  the  commandments,  Do  not  commit 
adultery,  Do  not  kill.  Do  not  steal,  Do  not  bear 
false  witness,   Honour  thy  father  and  thy  mother. 

\l  And  he  said.  All  these  have  I  kept  from  my  youth  up.  Now 
when  Jesus  heard  these  thi?igs,  he  said  unto  him,  Yet  lackest 

pupils.  Therefore  to  address  Jesus  thus  was  to  assume  a  tone  almost 
of  patronage.  Moreover,  as  the  young  Ruler  did  not  look  on  Jesus 
as  divine,  it  was  to  assume  a  false  standpoint  altogether. 

what  shall  I  do  to  inherit  eternal  life?^  In  St  Matthew  the  question 
runs,  'what  good  thing  shall  I  do?'  Here,  again,  the  young  ruler 
betrays  a  false  standpoint,  as  though  'eternal  life'  were  to  be  won  by 
quantitative  works,  or  by  some  single  act  of  goodness, — by  doing  and 
not  by  being.  It  was  indeed  the  fundamental  error  of  his  whole  class. 
Rom.  ix.  32. 

19.  Why  callest  thou  me  goodly  According  to  St  Matthew  the  question 
also  ran,  '  Why  askest  thou  me  about  the  good?'  The  emphasis  is  not 
on  the  me  (for  the  form  used  in  the  original  is  the  enclitic  ytte  not  tiik) 
but  on  good.  Why  do  you  give  me  this  strange  title  which  from  your 
point  of  view  is  unwarrantable  ?  Comp.  Plato  Fhaed.  27,  "  to  be  a  good 
man  is  impossible... God  alone  could  have  this  honour." 

none  is  good,  save  one,  that  is,  God]  i  John  iii.  5. 

20.  Thote  knowest  the  cotiimandmcnts]  St  Matthew  says  that  our 
Lord  first  answered,  'Keep  the  commandments,'  and  when  the  young 
man  asked,  '  What  kind  of  commandments?'  expecting  probably  some 
recondite  points  of  casuistry — minute  rules  [Halachoth)  out  of  the  oral 
Law — our  Lord  to  his  surprise  mentions  the  broadest  and  most  obvious 
commandments  of  the  Decalogue. 

Do  not  kill,  &c.]  Our  Lord  seems  purposely  to  have  mentioned  only 
the  plainest  commandments  of  the  Second  Table,  to  shew  the  young 
man  that  he  had  fallen  short  even  of  these  in  their  true  interpretation ; 
much  more  of  that  love  to  God  which  is  the  epitome  of  the  first  Table. 
Thus  does  Christ  'send  the  proud  to  the  Law,  and  invite  the  humble  to 
the  Gospel.' 

21.  All  these  have  I  kept]  There  seems  to  have  been  an  accent  of 
extreme  surprise  in  his  reply.  '  You  bid  me  not  be  a  thief,  adulterer, 
murderer !  For  whom  do  you  take  me?  I  am  no  criminal.  These  I 
kept  since  I  was  a  child.'  And  then  he  added,  'what  lack  I  yet?' 
(Matt.  xix.  20). — Here,  again,  the  Gospel  is  true  to  the  letter  in  its 
picture  of  a  Pharisaic  Rabbi.  Thus  the  Talmud  describes  one  of  the 
classes  of  Pharisees  as  the  tell-me-something-more-to-do-and-I-will-do-it 
Pharisee;  and  when  R.  Chaninah  was  dying  he  said  to  the  Angel  of 
Death,  "Go  and  fetch  me  the  Book  of  the  Law,  and  see  whether  there 
is  anything  in  it  which  I  have  not  kept." 

22.  when  Jes'ds  heard  these  things]  St  Mark  says  that  'looking  on 
him,  he  loved  him,'  or  rather,    'was  pleased  with  him.'     Some  have 


w.  23—25.]  ST    LUKE,    XVIII.  287 

thou  one  thing:  sell  all  that  thou  hast,  and  distribute  unto 
the  poor,  and  thou  shalt  have  treasure  in  heaven:  and  come, 
follow  me.    And  when  he  heard  this,  he  was  very  sorrowful :  23 
for  he  was  very  rich.    And  when  Jesus  saw  that  he  was  very  24 
sorrowful,  he  said.  How  hardly  shall  they  that  have  riches 
enter  into  the  kingdom  of  God  !    For  it  is  easier  for  a  camel 


25 


rendered  the  words  '  He  kissed  him,'  since  Rabbis  in  token  of  approval 
sometimes  kissed  a  good  scholar  on  the  head  ;  this,  however,  would 
require  not  cgapesen,  but  ephilesen.  There  was  something  gracious  and 
sincere  in  the  youth's  eagerness,  and  therefore  Jesus  gave  him  that  test 
of  something  more  high  and  heroical  in  religion  which  he  seemed  to 
desire,  but  to  which  he  failed  to  rise. 

Yet  lackest  thou  one  thing]  This  command  to  sell  all  and  give  to  the 
poor  was  special,  not  general.  The  youth  had  asked  for  some  great  thing 
to  do,  and  Jesus,  by  thus  revealing  to  him  his  own  self-deception,  shews 
hini  that  in  spite  of  his  spiritual  pride  and  profession  of  magnanimity 
he  is  but  trying  to  serve  two  masters.  The  disciples  had  already  ac- 
cepted the  test,  xii.  33,  xvi.  9.  To  the  world  in  general  the  command 
is  not  to  sell  all,  but  'not  to  trust  in  uncertain  riches,  but  to  be  rich 
in  good  works,  ready  to  distribute,  willing  to  communicate,'  i  Tim. 
vi.  17 — 19. 

23._  he  was  very  sorrowful']  St  Matthew  says,  'he  went  away 
grieving;'  St  Mark  adds  that  'his  brow  grew  gloomy  and  cloudy  at 
the  command'  {aT\)-^va:!a%  iiri  rep  Xoycii).  And  thus  at  the  time  he  made, 
through  cowardice  or  meanness  of  mind,  what  Dante  {/fi/.  x.  27)  calls 
'  il  gran  ri/iuto,' '  the  great  refusal, '  and  the  poet  sees  his  shade  among  the 
whirling  throng  of  the  useless  and  the  facing-both-ways  on  the  confines 
of  the  Inferno.  Nothing,  however,  forbids  us  to  hope  that  the  words 
of  Jesus  who  '  loved  him '  sank  into  his  soul,  and  brought  him  to  a 
humbler  and  holier  frame  of  mind.  But  meanwhile  he  lost  for  his 
earthly  dross  that  eternal  blessedness  of  self-sacrifice  which  Christ  had 
offered  him.  The  day  came  when  Saul  of  Tarsus  was  like  this  youth 
'touching  the  righteousness  which  is  in  the  law  blameless;'  but  he  had 
grace  to  count  all  things  but  loss  for  Christ.     Phil.  iii.  6 — 9. 

24.  saw  that  he  was  very  sorrowful]  Several  good  uncials  read 
merely  'when  Jesus  saw  him.' 

shall  they^  that  have  riches]  Rather,  do  they.  The  striking  reading 
of  some  MSS.  (X,  B,  &c.)  in  Mk.x.  24,  is  that  Christ,  seeing  the  pained 
astonisliinent  of  the  disciples,  said,  "Children!  how  hard  it  is  to  enter 
into  the  kingdom  of  God""— hard  for  all  ;  above  all,  hard  for  the  rich. 
Other  MSS.  have  "ior  iYiose.  that  trust  in  riches  "(comp.  Prov.  xi.  28)— but 
that  would  be  a  truism ;  and,  indeed,  while  they  trust  in  riches,  it  would 
be  not  only  hard,  but  impossible.  The  point  that  Jesus  wished  to 
teach  was  that  riches  are  always  a  temptation  and  a  snare,  i  Tim. 
vi.  9,  10.  Let  us  not  forget  that  Judas  heard  these  words  only  a  few 
days  or_ weeks  before  he  sold  his  Lord.  It  was  almost  a  proverb  among 
the  ancients  that  "the  very  rich  are  not  good."    Stobaeus,  xciii.  27. 


288  ST   LUKE,   XVIII.  [w.  26—30. 

to  go  through  a  needle's  eye,  than  for  a  rich  man  to  enter 

26  into  the  kingdom  of  God,     And  they  that  heard  it  said, 

27  Who  then  can  be  saved  ?  And  he  said,  The  tilings  which 
are  unpossible  with  men  are  possible  with  God. 

28  Then  Peter  said,  Lo,  we  have  left  all,  and  followed  thee. 

29  And  he  said  unto  them.  Verily  1  say  unto  you,  There  is  no 
man  that  hath  left  house,  or  parents,  or  brethren,  or  wife, 

30  or  children,  for  the  kingdom  of  God's  sake,  who  shall  not 
receive  manifold  more  in  this  present  time,  and  in  the  world 
to  come  life  everlasting. 


25.  for  a  camel  to  go  through  a  needless  eye\  To  soften  the  apparent 
harshness  of  this  expression,  some  have  conjectured  Kaniilon,  'a  rope;' 
and  some  have  explained  '  the  needle's  eye '  of  the  small  side  gate  for 
passengers  (at  the  side  of  the  large  city  gates) ,  through  which  a  camel 
might  press  its  way,  if  it  were  first  unladen.  But  (i)  the  conjecture 
Kamilon  is  wholly  without  authority,  (ii)  The  name  of  'the  needle's 
eye'  applied  to  small  gates  is  probably  a  modern  one  which  has  actually 
originated  from  an  attempt  to  soften  this  verse : — at  any  rate  there  is 
no  ancient  trace  of  it.  (iii)  The  Rabbinic  parallels  are  decisive  to 
prove  that  a  camel  is  meant  because  the  Babylonian  Jews  using  the 
same  proverb  substitute  'an  elephant'  for  'a  camel.'  (iv)  It  is  the 
object  of  the  proverb  to  express  Imman  impossibility.  In  the  human 
sphere — apart  from  the  special  grace  of  God — it  would  be  certain  that 
those  who  have  riches  would  be  led  to  tmst  in  them,  and  so  would  fail 
to  enter  into  the  kingdom  of  God,  which  requires  absolute  humility, 
ungrudging  liberality,  and  constant  self-denial. 

26.  Who  then  can  be  saved?']  Here  once  more  we  catch  the  echo  of 
the  sighing  despair  caused  in  the  minds  of  the  still  immature  Apostles 
by  some  of  our  Lord's  harder  sayings. 

27.  a7'e  possible  with  God]  See  on  i.  37.  "  There  is  nothing 
too  hard  for  thee,"  Jer.  xxxii.  17;  comp.  Job  xlii.  2;  Zech.  viii.  6. 

28.  Then  Peter  said]  The  feeling  which  dictated  his  remark  is 
uncertain  ;  perhaps  it  was  a  passing  touch  of  self-congratulation ;  per- 
haps a  plea  for  pity  in  the  hard  task  of  salvation. 

we  have  left  all]     Rather,  we  left  all,  alluding  to  a  particular  crisis, 

V.   II. 

29.  There  is  no  man  that  hath  left  house]  Compare  the  sacrifice 
and  reward  of  the  sons  of  Levi,  Deut  xxxiii.  8 — 1 1. 

for  the  kifigdom  of  God's  sake]  Unless  the  motive  be  pure,  the  sacri- 
fice is  unavailing. 

30.  via7iifold  more]  St  Matthew  and  St  Mark  say  'a  hundredfold,' 
and  St  Matthew  adds  that  in  the  Palingenesia— the  New  Birthday  of 
the  World,  the  Restoration  of  all  things — they  shall  sit  on  twelve 
thrones,  judging  the  twelve  tribes  of  Israel.  St  Luke  naturally  omits 
the  more  purely  Hebraic  conceptions.     St  Mark  adds  the  two  striking 


vv.  31,  32.]  ST   LUKE,   XVIII.  289 

31 — 34.     y^esus  prophesies  that  He  should  be  crucified. 

Then  he  took  unto  him  the  twelve,  and  said  unto  them,  31 
Behold,  we  go  up  to  Jerusalem,  and  all  things  that  are  writ- 
ten by  the  prophets  concerning  the  Son  of  man  shall  be 
accomplished.     For  he  shall  be  delivered  unto  the  Gentiles,  3' 

words,  ^^with  Jiersecutio7is."     Of  course,  the  promise  of  "  the  hundred- 
fold "  is  neither  literal  nor  quantitative,  but  qualitative  and  spiritual. 

in  this  present  tiviel  Kairo — not  only  in  this  present  aeon,  but  at 
this  very  season. 

31 — 34.    Jesus  prophesies  that  He  should  be  crucified. 

Between  these  verses  and  the  last  should  probably  be  inserted  the 
journey  from  the  Peraean  Bethany  to  the  Judaean  Bethany,  and  the 
Raising  of  Lazarus  (John  xi.  i — 46).  This  signal  miracle  was  omitted  by 
the  Synoptists  for  the  same  reasons  as  those  which  led  them  to  a  marked 
reticence  about  the  family  of  Lazarus  (see  on  x.  38  and  my  Life  of  Christ, 
II.  173).  This  miracle  led  to  a  meeting  of  the  Sanhedrin,  at  which  it 
was  decided— mainly  on  the  authority  of  Caiaphas^that  Jesus  must  be 
put  to  death  though  not  during  the  ensuing  Passover, — with  such  pre- 
cautions as  were  possible.  The  terrible  decision  became  known.  Indeed, 
it  led  to  attempts  to  murder  Lazarus  and  seize  Jesus,  which  compelled 
Him  to  retire  secretly  to  the  obscure  village  of  Ephraim  (John  xi.  54) — 
probably  Et-Taiyibeh,  not  far  from  Bethel  (Beitin),  and  about  -20  miles 
from  Jerusalem.  Here  our  Lord  spent,  in  undisturbed  and  unrecorded 
calm,  the  last  few  weeks  of  His  life,  occupied  in  training  the  Apostles 
who  were  to  convert  the  world.  Towards  the  close  of  the  time  He 
would  see,  from  the  hill  of  Ephraim,  the  crowds  of  Galilaean  pilgrims 
streaming  down  the  Jordan  valley  to  keep  the  Passover  at  Jerusalem  ; 
and,  secure  under  their  protection  till  His  brief  days  of  destined  work 
were  done,  He  left  His  place  of  retreat  to  join  their  caravans  for  His 
last  solemn  progress  to  Jerusalem. 

31.  Then  he  took  unto  him  the  twelve^  apart,  and  on  the  road,  as 
we  learn  from  Matt.  xx.  1 7.  St  Mark,  with  one  of  his  graphic  touches 
of  detail,  describes  Jesus  walking  before  them,  and  (as  we  infer  from 
the  expression  of  the  Evangelist)  in  such  awful  majesty  of  sorrow 
that  those  nearest  Him  were  filled  with  deep  amazement,  and  those  who 
were  following  at  a  greater  distance  felt  a  hush  of  fear  (Mark  x.  32). 
Then  it  was  that  He  beckoned  them  to  Him,  and  revealed  the  crown- 
ing circumstances  of  horror  respecting  His  death. 

all  things  that  are  written  by  the  prophets  concerning  the  Son  of  man 
shall  be  accomplished^  Rather,  all  the  things  that  have  heen  writteu 
through  the  prophets  for  the  Son  of  Man  shall  he  accomplished  ;  or, 
perhaps,  shall  be  accomplished  to  the  Son  of  Man. 

32.  unto  the  Gentiles']  This  was  the  third,  and  by  far  the  clearest 
'  and  most  circumstantial  prophecy  respecting  His  death.  Hitherto, 
I  except  for  scattered  hints  which  they  could  not  understand  (ix.  22,  45), 
j  the  Apostles  might  have  supposed  that  Jesus  would  be  put  to  death  by 

I  ST  LUKE  IQ 


290  ST    LUKE,   XVIII.  [vv.  33—35. 

and  shall  be  mocked,  and  spitefully  entreated,  and  spitted 

33  on :  and  they  shall  scourge  hiin,  and  put  him  to  death :  and 

34  the  third  day  he  shall  rise  again.  And  they  understood  none 
of  these  thi7igs :  and  this  saying  was  hid  from  them,  neither 
knew  they  the  tJmigs  which  were  spoken. 

35 — 43.     Bartiviaeus  healed  at  Jericho. 

35  And  it  came  to  pass,  that  as  he  was  come  nigh  unto 
Jericho,  a  certain  blind  man  sat  by  the  way  side  begging  : 

the  Jewish  authorities.  Now  He  tells  them  that  He  shall  be  delivered 
to  the  Gentiles,  which  involved  the  fact  that  He  should  be  crucified,  as 
indeed  now  for  the  first  time  He  plainly  told  them  (Matt.  xx.  19).  It 
was  necessary  thus  to  check  all  blind  material  Messianic  hopes,  the 
ineradicable  prevalence  of  which  was  proved  immediately  afterwards 
by  the  ambitious  request  of  Salome  and  her  sons  (Mark  x.  35 — 45  ; 
Matt.  XX.  20 — 28).  But  while  the  magnificent  promises  which  they  had 
just  heard,  and  the  magnificent  miracle  which  they  would  immediately 
witness,  together  with  the  shouting  multitudes  who  would  soon  be 
attending  our  Lord,  made  it  necessary  thus  to  extinguish  all  worldly  hopes 
in  their  minds,  yet  to  prevent  them  from  being  crushed  with  sorrow. 
He  now  adds,  without  any  ambiguity,  the  prophecy  of  His  resurrection 
on  the  third  day. 

34.  they  tinderstood  none  of  these  things]  as  had  been  the  case  before, 
ix.  43 — 45 ;  and  St  Mark  tells  us  (ix.  32)  that  'they  were  afraid  to  ask  Him.' 
It  was  only  at  a  later  period  that  the  full  significance  of  all  these  words 
dawned  on  them  (John  xii.  16).  We  must  learn,  as  Pascal  says,  to 
love  divine  truths  before  we  can  understand  them.  The  Apostles 
refused  to  admit  the  plain  meaning  of  these  clear  statements  (Matt, 
xvi.  22). 

35 — 43.    Bartimaeus  healed  at  Jericho. 

35.  as  he  was  come  nigh  u7tto  yericho]  This  would  be  a  week 
before  our  Lord's  death — on  the  evening  of  Thursday,  Nisan  7,  or  the 
morning  of  Friday,  Nisan  8.  St  Mark  (x.  46)  and  St  Matthew  (xx.  29) 
say  that  this  miracle  took  place  as  He  was  leaving  Jericho.  With 
simple  and  truthful  writers  like  the  Evangelists,  we  may  feel  sure  that 
some  good  reason  underlies  the  obvious  apparent  discrepancy  which 
would  however  in  any  case  be  unimportant.  Possibly  it  may  arise  from 
the  two  Jerichos — the  old  town  on  the  ancient  site,  and  the  new  semi- 
Herodian  town  which  had  sprung  up  at  a  little  distance  from  it.  And, 
as  Chrysostom  says,  such  discrepancies  have  their  own  value  as  a 
marked  proof  of  the  mutual  independence  of  the  Evangelists. 

a  certain  blind  man]  St  Matthew  (xx.  30),  as  in  the  case  of  the 
Gadarene  demoniac,  mentions  two  blind  men  ;  and  in  any  case  a  blind 
man  would  hardly  have  been  sitting  quite  alone.  The  name  of  Bar- 
timaeus is  only  preserved  by  St  Mark. 


vv.  36— 43;  1,2.]     ST    LUKE,   XVIII.  XIX.  291 

and  hearing  the  multitude  pass  by,  he  asked  what  it  meant.  36 
And  they  told  him,  that  Jesus  of  Nazareth  passeth  by.  And  ^| 
he  cried,  saying,  Jesus,  thou  Son  of  David,  have  mercy  on 
me.     And  they  which  went  before   rebuked    him,  that  he  39 
should  hold  his  peace:  but  he  cried  so  much  the  more.  Thou 
Son  of  David,   have  mercy  on  me.     And  Jesus  stood,  and  4° 
commanded  him  to  be  brought  unto  him  :  and  when  he  was 
come  near,   he  asked  him,    saying,   What  wilt  thou  that  I  41 
shall  do  unto  thee  ?     And  he  said,  Lord,  that  I  may  receive 
my  sight.     And  Jesus  said  unto  him,  Receive  thy  sight :  thy  42 
faith  hath  saved  thee.     And  immediately  he  received   his  43 
sight,  and  followed  him,  glorifying  God:  and  all  the  people, 
when  they  saw  //,  gave  praise  unto  God. 

Ch.  XIX.    I — 10.     Zacchaeus  the  Tax-gatherer. 
And  Jesus  entered  and  passed  through  Jericho.     And  be-  ■'•^ 

38.  yesus,  tkoti  Son  of  David'\  The  use  of  this  Messianic  title  im- 
plies a  strong  faith  in  Bartimaeus. 

have  mercy  on  me]  "The  Kyrie  Eleison  of  the  soul  which  precedes 
its  Hosanna."     Van  Oosterzee. 

39.  rebuked  him,  that  he  should  hold  his  peace\  Compare  xviii.  15; 
Matt.  xix.  13. 

40.  atid  when  he  2vas  come  near]  The  narrative  of  St  Mark,  which 
is  evidently  derived  from  an  immediate  eye-witness,  describes  Barti- 
maeus as  '  springing  to  his  feet  and  flinging  away  his  outer  robe,'  when 
he  was  told  that  Jesus  had  called  him. 

41.  Lord]  In  St  Mark  the  title  given  is  Rabboni,  the  highest  form 
of  the  title  Rabbi. 

42.  thy  faith  hath  saved  thee]  The  brief  sentences  of  the  narrative 
have  been  beautifully  woven  by  Mr  Longfellow  into  his  little  poem  of 
Blind  Bartimaeus: 

"  Those  mighty  voices  three 

'iTJffoO    i\i7]abv    fl€. 

,  6dp(X€i,  lyfipe,  (puvei  (re. 

'H  ttIctti^  (tov  aicruiKi  ae." 

43.  followed  him,  glorifying  God]  The  time  for  any  reticence  re- 
specting miracles  was  long  past.  St  Luke  is  specially  fond  of  record- 
ing doxologies.     See  v.  ^B,  vii.  16,  xiii.  17,  xvii.  15,  xxiii.  47. 

Ch.  xix.     1 — 10.    Zacchaeus  the  Tax-gatherer. 

1.  entered  and  passed  through]  lAtetzWy,  *' having  entered  f eric  ho 
•was  passing  through  it." 

Jericho]  Jericho  (the  City  of  Palm  trees,  Deut.  xxxiv.  3 ;  Judg.  i. 
16)  is  about  6  miles  from  the  Jordan,  and  15  from  Jerusalem.     It  was 

H) — 2 


292  ST    LUKE,    XIX.  [vv.  3—7. 

hold,  there  was  a  man  named  Zaccheus,  which  was  the  chief 

3  among  the  pubHcans,  and  he  was  rich.    And  he  sought  to  see 
Jesus  who  he  was ;  and  could  not  for  the  press,  because  he 

4  was  little  of  stature.     And  he  ran  before,  and  climbed  up 
into  a  sycomore  tree  to  see  him  :  for  he  was  to  pass  that  way. 

s  And  when  Jesus   came  to  the   place,   he  looked  up,  and 
saw  him,    and  said  unto  him,  Zaccheus,  make  haste,  and 

6  come  down;  for  to  day  I  must  abide  at  thy  house.    And  he 
made  haste,   and  came  down,   and  received  him  joyfully. 

7  And  when  they  saw  //,  they  all  murmured,  saying,  That  he 

from  a  point  opposite  to  it  that  Moses  had  viewed  Canaan,  Deut.  xxxiv. 
I.  When  taken  by  Joshua  the  site  had  been  cursed  (Josh.  vi.  26) :  but, 
in  the  reign  of  Ahab,  Hiel  of  Bethel  defied  and  underwent  the  curse 
(i  Kings  xvi.  34).  In  later  times  Jericho  became  a  great  and  wealthy 
town,  being  fertilised  by  its  abundant  spring  (2  K.  ii.  21)  and  enriched  by 
its  palms  and  balsams,  Jos.  Aiitt.  iv.  6;  B.  y.  IV.  8;  Ecclus.  xxiv.  14, 
' '  I  was  exalted  like  a  palm  tree  in  Engaddi  and  like  a  rose  plant  in 
yericko."  The  plant  however  usually  called  the  rose  of  Jericho  is  the 
Anastatica  Hierochuntia  of  Linnaeus.  A  mediaeval  Itinerary  says  that 
the  site — 00  which  now  stands  the  miserable  and  degraded  village  of 
Riha — was  'most  rich  in  flowers  and  odoriferous  shrubs.' 

2.  behold^  The  style  of  this  chapter  shews  that  St  Luke  is  using  a 
document  of  Aramaic  origin. 

a  man  tianied  Zacchcus\  Zakkai  rasAXi^  'pure.'  Ezr.  ii.  9;  Nehem.  vii. 
14;  Jos.  Vit.  46.  There  is  a  Zakkai  in  the  Talmud,  father  of  the 
famous  Rabbi  Jochanan,  and  he  also  lived  at  Jericho. 

the  chief  among  the  publicans]  Rather,  a  chief  tax-gatherer.  He 
may  even  have  risen  as  some  Jews  did,  from  the  subordinate  rank  of 
the  portitores  to  that  oi publicanns  (Jos.  B.  J.  II.  14,  §  9).  Priests  (see 
on  X.  31)  and  publicans — the  latter  employed  to  regulate  the  balsam- 
duties,  and  the  exports  and  imports  between  the  domains  of  the  Romans 
and  of  Antipas — were  the  chief  classes  at  Jericho  (Jos.  Antt.  xiv.  4, 
§  I,  XV.  4,  §  2;  Justin //«/.  VI.  3). 

3.  he  sought  to  see  yesus']  Doubtless  his  riches  increased  the  odium 
of  his  position,  and  being  accustomed  to  contempt  and  hatred,  he  wished 
to  see  One  who  was  not  only  a  great  prophet,  but  also  kind  to  tax- 
gatherers  and  sinners. 

4.  into  a  sycomore  tree]  Not  the  same  as  the  sycamine  {mulberry)  of 
xvii.  6,  or  with  our  sycamore  (or  pseudo-platanus)  but  the  Egyptian  fig, 
of  which  the  low  spreading  branches  are  very  easy  to  climb. 

5.  Zaccheus,  make  haste]  Zacchaeus  was  so  prominent  a  person 
in  Jericho  that  we  can  see  no  difficulty  in  his  being  known  to  Jesus  by 
name. 

6.  joyfully]  This  public  honour  done  by  the  Messiah  to  one  so 
despised  by  all  classes  of  his  countrymen,  ennobled  him  with  a  new  feel- 
ing of  happiness  and  self-respect. 


vv.  8— II.]  ST   LUKE,   XIX.  293 

was  gone  to  be  guest  with  a  man  that  is  a  sinner.    And  Zac-  8 
cheus  stood,  and  said  unto  the  Lord;  Behold,  Lord,  the 
half  of  my  goods  I  give  to  the  poor ;  and  if  I  have  taken 
any  thing  from  any  man  by  false  accusation,  I  restore  /«>« 
fourfold.     And  Jesus  said  unto  him,  This  day  is  salvation  9 
come  to  this  house,  forsomuch  as  he  also  is  a  son  of  Abra- 
ham.    For  the  Son  of  man  is  come  to  seek  and  to  save  that  ^o 
which  was  lost. 

II — 27.     The  Parable  of  the  Pounds, 

And  as  they  heard  these  things,  he  added  and  spake  a  n 
parable,  because  he  was  nigh  to  Jerusalem,  and  because  they 
thought  that  the  kingdom  of  God  should  immediately  ap- 

7.  they  all  mtirmured']    Rather,  they  all  began  to  murmur  aloud. 

The  'alP  is  very  significant  as  shewing  how  deep-seated  was  the  na- 
tional feeling  which,  because  it  was  unworthy,  our  Lord  at  the  very 
zenith  of  His  earthly  popularity  thus  unflinchingly  braved.  Many  of 
them  may  not  have  heard  His  previous  vindication  of  His  object  (Matt. 
ix.  II— 13). 

to  be  gziesti  Literally,  *' to  put  up"  as  though  at  a  guest-chamber 
(kataluma),  ii.  7;  Mk.  xiv.  14. 

8.  stood'\  The  word  means  '  taking  his  position '  in  sight  of  all  the 
crowd;  see  xviii.  11. 

unto  the  Lord}  Not  to  the  crowd  who  had  nothing  but  contempt  and 
hatred  for  him,  but  to  Him  who  loved  the  nobler  self  which  He  saw  in 
him,  and  of  whose  notice  he  desired  to  be  more  worthy. 

the  half  of  my  goods]  A  vast  sacrifice  for  one  whose  very  position 
shewed  that  he  had  not  been  indifferent  to  wealth. 

/  gtvel  i.  e.  I  now  propose  to  give;  z. purpose  not  a. past  habit. 

by  false  accusation]     On  the  word  ^wX'(7//^a«/t".rrt,  see  iii.  14- 

j'ourfold]  far  more  therefore  than  was  required  by  the  Mosaic  Law, 
which  only  demanded  the  restitution  of  ayT/'M/ar/ beyond  the  principal. 
Num.  v.  7.  The  words  neither  deny  nor  affirm  that  any  part  of  his 
wealth  had  been  thus  dishonestly  gained. 

9.  a  son  of  Abraham]  Used  here  in  the  high  spiritual  sense  (Rom. 
iv.  II,  12,  16;  Gal.  iii.  7)  though  also  true  (as  the  name  slicws)  in  the 
literal  sense.     See  i.  55,  iii.  8. 

10.  that  which  was" lost]  See  xv.  1—32;  Matt,  xviii.  11;  i  Tim.  u 
15;  Ezek.  xxxiv.  11 — 16. 

11 — 27.    The  Parable  of  the  Pounds. 

11.  because  he  was  nigh  to  Jerusalem]  Probably  therefore  the 
parable  was  spoken  on  the  journey.  ^      ^_ 

should  ifumediatcly  appear]  Literally,  "be  manifested  to  vte^v.  The 
disciples  had  the  same  excited  anticipation  after  the  Resurrection,  Acts 


294  ST    LUKE,   XIX.  [vv.  12—14. 

12  pear.     He  said  therefore,  A  certain  nobleman  went  into  a 
far  country  to  receive  for  himself  a  kingdom,  and  to  return. 

13  And  he  called  his  ten   servants,   and  delivered   them   ten 

14  pounds,  and  said  unto  them.  Occupy  till  I  come.     But  his 
citizens  hated  him,  and  sent  a  message  after  him,  saying, 

i.  6,  7.  Our  Lord  was  always  careful  to  lead  them  away  from  false 
material  hopes.  The  lessons  of  the  parable  are  patient  waiting  and 
active  work. 

12.  A  certain  nobleman,  &c.]  This  would  seem  a  most  unintelli- 
gible incident  if  we  did  not  know  what  suggested  it.  The  Evangelists 
throw  no  gleam  of  light  upon  it,  and  the  fact  that  we  can  from  con- 
temporary secular  history  not  only  explain  it,  but  even  trace  (without 
the  slightest  aid  from  any  of  the  Gospels)  the  exact  circumstances 
which  suggested  it  at  this  very  place  and  time,  is  one  of  the  many  invalu- 
able independent  circumstances  which  enable  us  to  prove  from  history  the 
absolute  truthfulness  of  these  records.  Two  'nobles' — Herod  the  Great 
and  his  son  Archelaus — had  actually  gone  from  Jericho  to  a  far  country, 
even  to  Rome,  for  the  express  purpose  of  'receiving  a  kingdom'  from 
the  all-powerful  Caesar  (Jos.  Antt.  xiv.  14,  xvii.  9,  §4:  comp.  i Mace, 
viii.  13),  and  the  same  thing  was  subsequently  done  by  Antipas  (id. 
Antt.  xviii.  5,  §  i).  It  is  deeply  interesting  to  see  how  Jesus  thus  utilises 
any  incident — social  or  political — as  a  vehicle  for  spiritual  instruction. 
Probably  if  we  knew  the  events  of  His  day  more  miniitely,  we  should 
see  the  origin  of  many  others  of  the  parables.  The  facts  here  alluded 
to  would  naturally  be  brought  both  to  His  mind,  and  to  those  of  the 
Galilaeans,  by  the  sight  of  the  magnificent  palace  at  Jericho  which 
Archelaus  had  rebuilt.  (Jos.  Antt.  xvil.  13,  §  i.)  How  little  the  inci- 
dental machinery  of  parables  should  be  theologically  pressed,  we  may 
see  from  the  fact  that  here  our  Lord  takes  the  movements  and  the 
actions  of  a  cruel  and  bad  prince  like  Archelaus,  to  shadow  forth  cer- 
tain truths  of  His  own  ministry  (compare  the  Parables  of  the  Unjust 
Steward  and  the  Unjust  Judge). 

13.  Ais  ten  servants}  Rather,  ten  servants  of  Ms  own ;  for  such  a 
noble  would  count  his  servants  by  liundreds. 

ten  pounds]  The  mi/ta  was  100  drachmas  (xv.  8),  and  was  worth 
;^3.  6s.  Sd.  in  nominal  value.  The  word  is  a  corruption  of  the  Hebrew 
manek.  (2  Chr.  ix.  16.)  A  comparison  of  this  parable  with  that  of 
the  Talents  (Matt.  xxv.  14 — 30)  will  shew  the  wide  diversities  between 
the  two.  Archelaus  did  actually  leave  money  in  the  charge  of  some  of 
his  servants,  especially  entrusting  Philippus  to  look  after  his  pecuniary 
interests  in  his  absence. 

Occupy]  Rather,  Trade,  negotiamini.  Ps.  cvii.  23,  "\}aaX.... occupy 
their  business  in  great  waters  "  (Prayer-Book).  For  the  command  see 
I  Pet.  iv.  10. 

till  I  come]  Another  reading  {iv  y,  t<,  A,  B,  D,  &c. )  would  mean 
'while  I  am  on  my  journey,'  but  would  involve  a  very  dubious  sense  of 
erchomai. 


vv.  15—22.]  ST    LUKE,   XIX,  295 

We  will  not  have  this  inan  to  reign  over  us.      And  it  came  15 
to  pass,  that  when  he  was  returned,  having  received   the 
kingdom,  then  he  commanded  these  servants  to  be  called 
unto  him,  to  whom  he  had  given  the  money,  that  he  might 
know  how  much  every  mati  had  gained  by  trading.     Then  16 
came  the  first,   saying,   Lord,  thy  pound  hath  gained  ten 
pounds.     And  he  said  unto  him,  Well,  thou  good  servant :  17 
because  thou  hast  been  faithful  in  a  very  little,   have  thou 
authority  over  ten  cities.     And  the   second  came,  saying,  18 
Lord,  thy  pound   hath  gained  five  pounds.     And  he  said  19 
likewise  to  him.  Be  thou  also  over  five  cities.     And  another  20 
came,  saying.  Lord,  behold,  here  is  thy  pound,  which  I  have 
kept  laid  up  in  a  napkin :  for  I  feared  thee,  because  thou  21 
art  an  austere  man  :    thou  takest  up  that  thou  layedst  not 
down,  and  reapest  that  thou  didst  not  sow.     And  he  saith  22 

14.  hated  hini\  And  this  was  not  strange,  seeing  that  the  very  be- 
ginning of  his  reign  had  been  signalised  by  a  hideous  massacre  of  his 
subjects.    (Jos.  Antt.  xvii.  9,  §  3.) 

and  sent  a  message  after  hii)i\  Rather,  an  embassy  to  follow  him 
(xiv.  32).  Here  again  the  incident  would  be  entirely  obscure,  if  we  did 
not  know  from  Josephus  that  the  Jews  did  send  an  embassy  of  50  to 
Augustus — who  were  met  on  their  arrival  at  Rome  by  8000  Jews — to 
recount  the  cruelties  of  Archelaus,  and  plead  for  deliverance  from  him 
and  the  Herods  generally.  (Jos.  Antt.  xvii.  1 1,  §  r,  &c.)  Although  not 
immediately  successful,  the  embassy  was  one  of  the  circumstances  which 
led  to  his  ultimate  deposition. 

this  man]  The  'this'  is  supremely  contemptuous.  For  the  fact 
shadowed  forth  see  John  xv.  18,  xix.  14,  15,  21. 

15.  having  received  the  Inngdom]  Not  however  the  coveted  title  of 
king,  which  was  refused  him. 

had  gained  by  trading]  diepragmateusato,  a  compound  form  of  the 
pragmatenesthai  in  vs.  13.  The  calling  of  the  servants  corresponds  to 
the  "Give  an  account  of  thy  stewardship"  of  xvi.  2. 

16.  thy  pound  hath  gained]  Literally,  ''earned  in  addition."  As 
though  there  were  no  merit  of  his  own  in  the  matter. 

17.  in  a  very  little]     See  xii.  48,  xvi.  10. 

have  thou  authority  over  ten  cities]  Another  strange  touch  explained 
by  the  history  of  the  times.  Archelaus  had  actually  assigned  the 
government  of  cities  to  his  adherents  who  had  proved  faithful,  and  this 
was  not  an  uncommon  plan  among  the  Herodian  princes.  "We  shall 
also  reign  with  Him,"  2  Tim.  ii.  12. 

21.     I  feared  thee]     A  sure  sign  that  he  did  not  love  him,  r  John  iv. 

18. 

takest  up  that  thou  layedst  not  down]  A  typical  description  of  injustice 
forbidden  alike  by  Jewish  and  Greek  laws  (Jos.  c.  Ap.  it.   r.^o). 


296  ST   LUKE,   XIX.  [vv.  23— 28. 

unto  him,  Out  of  thine  own  mouth  will  I  judge  thee,  thou 
wicked  servant.  Thou  knewest  that  I  was  an  austere  man, 
taking  up  that  I  laid  not  down,  and  reaping  that  I  did  not 

23  sow :  wherefore  then  gavest  not  thou  my  money  into  the 
bank,  that  at  my  coming  I  might  have  required  mine  own 

24  with  usury?  And  he  said  unto  them  that  stood  by.  Take 
from  him  the  pound,  and  give   it  to   him    that   hath   ten 

25  pounds.     (And   they   said    unto   him.    Lord,    he   hath    ten 

26  pounds.)  For  I  say  unto  you,  That  unto  every  one  which 
hath  shall  be  given  \  and  from  him  that  liath  not,  even  that 

27  he  hath  shall  be  taken  away  from  him.  But  those  mine  ene- 
mies, which  would  not  that  I  should  reign  over  them,  bring 
hither,  and  slay  tJmn  before  me. 

28  And  when  he  had  thus  spoken,  he  went  before,  ascending 
up  to  Jerusalem. 


22.  Out  of  thine  onm  mo^cth}  "A  powerful  instance  of  the  argu- 
tnentum  ex  concessis."    Lange. 

23.  into  the  bank]  Rather,  into  a  bank.  The  Greek  word  for 
'bank'  is  ti-apeza  ('a  table');  hence  a  banker  is  trapezites.  This  touch 
contains  the  germ  of  the  unrecorded  saying  (agraphon  dogma)  of  our 
Lord,  which  is  one  of  the  most  certainly  genuine  of  those  which  are 
preserved  by  tradition — "Shew  yourselves  approved  money-changers" 
(ylveade  TpaTre^irat  odKifJ-oi). 

I  might  have  required  mine  own  with  usury\  Rather,  I  might  have 
exacted  it  with  interest  (on  epraxa,  see  iii.  13). 

24.  Take  from  him  the  pound]  Here  our  Lord  leaves  the  historical 
groundwork.  Compare  Ivlatt.  xxi.  43,  "The  kingdom  of  God  shall  be 
taken  from  you,  and  given  to  a  nation  bringing  forth  the  fruits  thereof." 
viii.  18. 

25.  they  said  unto  him]  Perhaps  the  officials  round  the  king ;  but 
as  this  verse  is  purely  parenthetical,  it  may  not  impossibly  be  an  inter- 
pellation of  the  crowd,  expressive  of  their  vivid  interest  in  the  narrative. 

26.  even  that  he  hath]  Comp.  viii.  18,  "even  that  which  he  seenieth 
to  hai'e." 

27.  mine  enemies]     They  had  once  been  'citizens,'  vs.  14. 

slay  them  before  me]  Archelaus  had  similarly  put  some  of  his  political 
opponents  to  death.  This,  too,  corresponds  to  ulterior  truths — the  ruin 
and  massacre  of  the  unbelieving  Jews.     Comp.  i  Cor.  xv.  25. 

28.  he  went  before]  Literally, "  he  began  tojourttey  in  front  of  them  ;  " 
as  though,  for  the  delivery  of  the  parable.  He  had  paused  to  let  the 
crowd  gather  round  Him. 

ascending]  The  road  from  Jericho  to  Jerusalem  is  a  continual  ascent. 
See  X.  30,  31. 


vv.  29—35.]  ST    LUKE,   XIX. 


297 


29 — 40.      The  Triumphal  Entry  into  yerusalem. 
And  it  came  to  pass,  when  he  was  come  nigh  to  Beth-  29 
phage   and   Bethany,    at   the   mount   called  the  mount  of 
Olives,  he   sent   two   of  his  disciples,   saying,  Go   ye  into  30 
the  village  over  against  you;  in  the  which  at  your  entering 
ye  shall  find  a  colt  tied,  whereon  yet  never  man  sat :  loose 
him,   and    bring   him   hither.      And    if  any  vian  ask  you,  31 
Why  do  ye  loose  himl  thus  shall  ye  say  unto  him,  Because 
the_  Lord  hath  need  of  him.     And  they  that  were  sent  went  32 
their  way,  and  found  even  as  he  had  said  unto  them.     And  33 
as  they  were  loosing  the  colt,  the  owners  thereof  said  unto 
them.  Why  loose  ye  the  colt  ?     And  they  said,  The  Lord  34 
hath  need  of  him.     And  they  brought  him  to  Jesus :  and  35 
they  cast  their  garments  upon  the  colt,  and  they  set  Jesus 

29—40.     The  Triumphal  Entry  into  Jerusalem. 

29.  Bethphage\   The  site  is  not  identified,  but  it  seems  to  have  been  re- 
garded as  a  suburb  of  Jerusalem.    The  name  means  House  ofifinripe)  Figs. 

and  Bcthany\  Perhaps  the  House  of  Dates,  but  this  is  very  un- 
certain. The  mention  of  Bethany  after  Bethphage  is  surprising. 
Here,  however,  St  Luke  omits  the  supper  in  the  house  of  'Simon  the 
leper'  (Matt.  xxvi.  6 — 13;  Mk.  xiv.  3 — 9;  John  xii.  i — 19)  and  the 
anointing  of  Jesus  by  Mary  of  Bethany.  Jesus  arrived  at  Bethany  before 
sunset  on  Friday,  Nisan  8  (March  31,  A.  D.  30),  and  therefore  before  the 
Sabbath  began.  Here  the  throng  of  Galilaean  pilgrims  would  leave  Him 
to  go  to  their  friends  in  Jerusalem,  or  to  make  booths  for  themselves  in 
the  valley  of  the  Kidron  and  on  the  slopes  of  Olivet.  The  Sabbath  was 
spent  in  quiet.  The  supper  was  in  the  evening,  otherwise  the  Jews 
could  not  have  come  from  Jerusalem,  as  the  distance  exceeded  a 
Sabbath  day's  journey.  It  was  on  the  next  morning  (Palm  Sunday)  that 
our  Lord  started  for  Jerusalem.  His  stay  at  Bethany  may  have  been 
due  to  friendship,  or  may  have  been  dictated  by  prudence.  It  was  the 
brooding  over  the  imagined  loss  of  the  value  of  the  precious  ointment 
— an  assault  of  Satan  at  the  weakest  point — which  first  drove  Judas  to 
his  secret  interview  with  the  Sadducean  priests. 

two  of  his  discip!es\  The  minute  touch  of  description  in  Mk.  xi.  4  has 
led  to  the  conjecture  that  Peter  was  one  of  these  two. 

30.  a  colt  tied]  St  Luke  is  here  less  circumstantial  than  the  other 
Evangelists,  and  does  not  refer  to  the  prophecy  of  Zech.  ix.  9. 

whereon  yet  never  man  sat'\  and  therefore  adapted  for  a  sacred  use. 
See  Num.  xix.  2  ;  Deut.  xxi.  3  ;   i  Sam.  vi.  7. 

35.  cast  their  garments  upon  the  colt]  to  do  Jesus  royal  honour. 
Comp.  2  K.  ix.  13. 

they  set  Jesus  thereon]  It  is  clear  that  He  rode  upon  the  unused  foal, 
which  was  probably  led  by  the   bridle,  while  it   is  possible  that   the 


298  ST   LUKE,    XIX.  [vv.  36—40. 

36  thereon.     And  as  he  went,  they  spread  their  clothes  in  the 

37  way.  And  when  he  was  come  nigh,  even  now  at  the  descent 
of  the  mount  of  OHves,  the  whole  multitude  of  the  disciples 
began  to  rejoice  and  praise  God  with  a  loud  voice  for  all  the 

38  mighty  works  that  they  had  seen ;  saying,  Blessed  be  the 
King  that  cometh  in  the  name  of  the  Lord :    peace   in 

39  heaven,  and  glory  in  the  highest.  And  some  of  the  Pha- 
risees from  among   the   multitude  said  unto  him,  Master, 

40  rebuke  thy  disciples.  And  he  answered  and  said  unto  them, 
I  tell  you  that,  if  these  should  hold  their  peace,  the  stones 
would  immediately  cry  out. 

mother  went  by  its  side.  St  Matthew,  however,  alone  (apparently) 
mentions  two  animals  (xxi.  2,  7),  and  possibly  this  may  have  been  due 
to  some  confusion  arising  out  of  the  Hebrew  parallelism  (Zech.  ix.  9, 
"riding  upon  an  ass,  even  upon  a  colt,  son  of  she-asses")  in  the  transla- 
tion into  Greek  from  an  Aramaic  document.  The  ass  in  the  East  is  not 
a  despised  animal  (Gen.  xlix.  14,  xxii.  3;  Judg.  v.  10),  and  it  is  only 
because  it  was  despised  by  Gentiles  that  Josephus  substitutes  for  it 
'horse'  or  'beast  of  burden,'  and  the  Seventy  (LXX.)  soften  it  down 
into  'foal,'  &c.  The  Gentile  world  abounded  in  sneers  against  this 
narrative,  and  had  all  sorts  of  absurd  stories  about  the  Jews  and  the  ass, 
or  ass's  head,  which  they  were  supposed  to  worship  (Jos.  c.  Ap.  il.  10; 
Tac.  Hist.  V.  3.  4).  The  Christians  were  also  called  ass- worshippers 
(Tert.  Apol.  16;  Minuc.  Pel.  Oct.  9),  and  this  calumny  is  alluded  to  in 
one  of  the  hideously  blasphemous  wall  caricatures  (Graffiti).  (See  how- 
ever King's  Gnostics,  p.  90 ;  Lundy,  Afonuineiital  Christianity,  p.  60.) 

36.  spread  their  clothes  in  the  way]  as  well  as  leaves  of  trees  and 
branches  of  the  palms,  which  they  tore  off  and  kept  strewing  as  they 
went  along  (Matt.  xxi.  8),  as  in  the  reception  of  Mordecai  (Targum  on 
Esther  x.  15)  and  of  the  Maccabees  (2  Mace.  x.  7).  The  very  same 
mode  of  shewing  honour  was  adopted  when  Mr  Farran,  the  consul  at 
Damascus,  visited  Jerusalem  in  1834,  at  a  time  of  great  distress. 

37.  even  nozv  at  the  descent  of  the  mount  of  Olives]  at  the  spot  where 
the  main  road  from  Bethany  sweeps  round  the  shoulder  of  the  hill,  and 
the  city  first  bursts  full  on  the  view.  At  this  point  the  palm-bearing 
procession  from  the  city  seems  to  have  met  the  rejoicing  crowd  of  the 
Galilaean  pilgrims  who  had  started  with  Jesus  from  Bethany. 

38.  Blessed  be  the  King]  The  various  cries  recorded  by  the  three 
Evangelists  all  come  from  the  Great  Hallel  (Pss.cxiii. — cxviii).  St  John 
alone  (xii.  17  reading  on)  points  out  that  the  Messianic  enthusiasm  had 
been  mainly  kindled  by  the  raising  of  Lazarus. 

39.  Master,  rebuke  thy  disciples]  St  Matthew  puts  into  the  mouth  of 
"the  Chief  Priests  and  scribes"  the  ruder  interpellation,  "Hearest  thou 
what  these  say?" 

40.  the  stones  would  immediately  cry  out]  There  seems  to  be  an 
allusion  to  the  passage  "For  the  stone  shall  cry  out  of  the  wall,"  which 


vv.  41— 44-]  ST   LUKE,   XIX. 


299 


41 — 44.     y^esus  weeping  over  Jerusalem. 

And  when  he  was  come  near,  he  beheld  the  city,  and  41 
wept  over  it,  saying,  If  thou  hadst   known,  even  thou,  at  4^ 
least  in  this  thy  day,    the   things  which    belong   unto    thy 
peace  !  but  now  they  are  hid  from  thine  eyes.    For  the  days  43 
shall  come  upon  thee,  that  thine  enemies  shall  cast  a  trench 
about  thee,  and  compass  thee  round,  and  keep  thee  in  on 
every  side,  and  shall  lay  thee  even  with  the  ground,  and  thy  44 

occurs  amid  denunciations  of  destruction  on  covetousness  and  cruelty  in 
Hab.  ii.  11. 

41 — 44.    Jesus  weeping  over  Jerusalem. 

41.  he  beheld  the  city]  The  Temple  was  at  that  time  magnificent  with 
gilding  and  white  marble,  which  Hashed  resplendently  in  the  spring 
sunlight  (Jos.  B.y.  V.  5,  §6),  and  the  city  was  very  unlike  the  crumbling 
and  squalid  city  of  to-day.  But  that  "mass  of  gold  and  snow"  woke 
no  pride  in  the  Saviour's  heart.  Few  scenes  are  more  striking  than 
this  burst  of  anguish  in  the  very  midst  of  the  exulting  procession. 

wept  over  if]  Not  merely  edakrusen  'shed  silent  tears'  as  at  the  grave 
of  Lazarus  (John  xi.  35)  but  eklaiisen  'wept  aloud;'  and  that  although 
not  all  the  agonies  and  insults  of  four  days  later  could  wring  from  Him 
one  tear  or  sigh. 

42.  at  least  in  this  thy  day]     Is.  Iv.  6;  2  Cor.  vi.  2. 

■which  belong  unto  thy  peace]  Perhaps  with  a  paronomasia  on  the 
name  of  Salem  or  '  Peace,'  and  on  the  sound  though  not  the  derivation  of 
Jerusalem  {Yeroo  Shalom  'they  shall  see  peace,'  comp.  Ps.  cxxii.  6,  7). 
Such  plays  on  words  often  spring  from  deep  emotion.  (See  my  Chapters 
on  Language,  Y>^.  26g — 276.)  Is.  xlviii.  18,  "  O  that  thou  hadst  hearkened 
to  my  commandments !  then  had  thy  peace  been  as  a  river." 

43.  the  days]  often  used  of  troublous  times,  like  the  Latin  tempora. 
shall  cast  a  trench  about  thee]     Rather,  shaU  surround  thee  with  a 

palisade,  Is.  xxix.  3,  4,  xxxvii.  33,  LXX.  Literally  fulhlled  forty 
years  afterwards  at  the  siege  of  Jerusalem,  when  Titus  surrounded  the 
city  first  with  a  palisaded  mound  {vallum  and  agger),  and  then  with  a 
wall  of  masonry. 

keep  thee  in  on  every  side]  The  blockade  established  was  so  terribly 
rigid  that  myriads  of  the  Jews  perished  of  starvation. 

44.  shall  lay  thee  even  with  the  ground]  Titus,  if  we  may  trust 
Josephus,  accomplished  this  prophecy  wholly  against  his  will,  being 
driven  to  the  utter  subversion  and  destruction  of  the  city,  by  the 
desperate  obstinacy  of  the  Jews.  Sulpicius  Severus  (//;>/.  11.),^  who  is 
supposed  to  be  here  incorporating  a  fragment  of  Tacitus,  says,  "alii  et 
Titus  ipse  evertendum  templum  in  primis  censebant  quo  plcnius  Judaeo- 
rum  et  Christianorum  religio  tolleretur."  Josephus  says  that  it  was  so 
frightfully  desolated  by  the  siege,  that  any  Jew  coming  suddenly  upon 
it  would  have  asked  what  place  it  was  (Jos.  />.  J.  vi.  i,  §  1).  It  was 
again  laid  waste  in  the  rebellion  under  Barcochba. 


300  ST   LUKE,   XIX.  [vv.  45— 48. 

children  within  thee :  and  they  shall  not  leave  in  thee  one 
stone  upon  another;  because  thou  knewest  not  the  time 
of  thy  visitation. 

45,  46.     Final  Cleansiiig  of  the  Temple. 

45  And  he  went  into  the  temple,  and  began  to  cast  out  them 

46  that  sold  therein,  and  them  that  bought ;  saying  unto  them. 
It  is  written,  My  house  is  the  house  of  prayer:  but 
ye  have  made  it  a  den  of  thieves, 

47,  48.     Eagerness  of  the  People  to  hear. 

47  And  he  taught  daily  in  the  temple.  But  the  chief  priests 
and  the  scribes  and  the    chief  of  the   people   sought  to 

48  destroy  him,  and  could  not  find  what  they  might  do  :  for 
all  the  people  were  very  attentive  to  hear  him. 

and  thy  children  within  thee\  The  siege  began  at  the  Passover,  and 
hence  it  is  said  that  nearly  3,000,000  Jews  were  crowded  into  the  city. 

shall  not  leave  in  thee  one  stone  upon  anot/ier\  The  subsequent 
attempt  of  the  Jews  to  rebuild  the  Temple  was  frustrated  by  the  out- 
burst of  subterranean  fires.  See  Gibbon,  ch.  xxiii.  II.  309  (ed.  Milman). 
Comp.  Mic.  iii.  12. 

of  thy  visitation'\  See  Is.  xxix.  2 — 4;  Hos.  x.  14,  15.  For  the  word 
'visitation'  see  i  Pet.  ii.  12;  Ecclus.  xviii.  20.  The  'visitation'  which 
they  had  neglected  was  one  of  mercy,  i.  68. 

45,  46.     Final  Cleansing  of  the  Temple. 

45.  he  went  into  the  te7nple\  The  procession  of  Galilaean  pilgrims 
would  leave  Jesus  at  the  foot  of  Mount  Moriah — (the  '  Mountain  of  the 
House,'  Is.  ii.  2),  beyond  which  none  might  advance  with  dusty  feet  or 
stained  by  travel.     Jesus  would  enter  by  the  Shushan  gate. 

began  to  cast  out,  &c.]  As  He  had  also  done  at  the  beginning  of 
His  ministry,  John  ii.  15.  The  needs  of  the  pilgrims — the  money  which 
had  to  be  changed — the  purchase  of  cattle  for  sacrifice,  &c. — had  made 
the  cloisters,  precincts,  and  even  the  outer  court  of  the  Temple  a  scene  of 
noisy  and  greedy  barter,  as  the  nave  of  St  Paul's  used  to  be  a  few  genera; 
tions  ago.     For  further  details,  see  Matt.  xxi.  12,  13;  Mk.  xi.  15 — 17. 

46.  My  hoicse  is  the  house  0/ prayer']    Is.  Ivi.  7.    See  on  i.  10,  xviii.  10. 
a  den  of  thieves]     Rather,  a  brigands'  cave.     Our  Lord  had  seen 

many  of  these  brigands'  caves  on  the  steep  rocky  sides  of  the  Wady 
Hamam  and  elsewhere.  Comp.  Jer.  vii.  11,  "Is  this  house  which  is 
called  by  my  name  become  a  den  of  robbers  in  your  eyes?"  It  became 
still  more  a  murderers'  cave  when  the  sicarii  made  its  pavement  swim 
with  blood  (Jos.  B.  J.  iv.  3,  §§  7,  10). 

47,  48.    Eagerness  of  the  People  to  hear. 

48.  were  very  attentive  to  hear  hini]  Literally,  *^  were  hanging  from 
hi»i,"  i.e.  hung  on  His  lips;   "pmdebrrf  ab  ore,"  Verg.  Aeii.  iv.  79. 


I.]  ST    LUKE,    XX.  301 


Ch.  XX.  I — 8.    Sudden  Question  of  the  Priests  and  Scribes. 

And  it  came  to  pass,  that  on  one  of  those  days,  as  he  20 
taught  the  people  in  the  temple,  and  preached  the  gospel, 
the  chief  priests  and  the  scribes  came  upon  him  with  the 

"On  thee  the  loyal-hearted  hung." 

Tennyson. 

"Hanged  on  him,  as  the  bee  doth  on  the  flower,  the  babe  on  the 
breast,  the  little  bird  on  the  bill  of  her  dam.  Christ  drew  the  people 
after  Him  by  the  golden  chain  of  His  heavenly  eloquence."    J.  Trapp. 

Ch.  XX.  1 — 8.     Sudden  Question  of  the  Priests  and  Scribes. 

1.  071  one  of  those  days\  'Those'  is  omitted  in  N,  B,  D,  L,  Q. 
By  careful  comparison  of  the  Evangelists  we  find  that  after  the 
Triumphal  Entry  into  Jerusalem  on  Palm  Sunday,  our  Lord  was 
received  in  the  Temple  by  the  children^probably  those  engaged  in  the 
ChoralService  of  the  Temple — with  shouts  of  Hosanna,  which  again  called 
forth  the  embittered  rebuke  of  the  priests.  These  rebukes  He  silenced 
by  a  reference  to  Ps.  viii.  2.  Then  came  the  message  brought  to  Him  by 
Andrew  and  Philip  from  the  Greek  enquirers  (supposed  by  some  to  have 
been  sent  by  Abgarus  V. ,  King  of  Edessa),  and  the  Voice  from  Heaven. 
After  this  he  retired  privately  from  the  Temple,  and  bivouacked 
(rjuXlcxdij)  for  the  night  on  the  Mount  of  Olives  (John  xii.  20 — 5 ;  Matt. 
xxi.  17).  Next  morning — Monday  in  Passion  Week — occurred  the 
incident  of  the  Fruitless  Figtree  (Matt.  xxi.  18,  19),  and  it  was  after 
this  that  our  Lord  entered  the  Temple.  This  Monday  in  Passion  week 
may  be  called  a  Day  of  Parables,  since  on  it  were  uttered  the  Parables 
of  the  Two  Sons  (Matt.  xxi.  28—32);  the  Rebellious  Husbandmen 
(9 — 16);  the  Rejected  Cornerstone  (17,  18);  and  the  Marriage  of  the 
King's  Son  (Matt.  xxii.  i — 14). 

preached  the  gospclXeuangelizomenoti,  iii.  18,  iv.  43,  &c.  This  beautiful 
word  is  almost  confined  to  St  Luke,  who  uses  it  twenty-five  times,  and 
St  Paul,  who  uses  it  twenty  times. 

the  chief  priests  and  the  serines]  The  chief  priests  were  the  heads  of 
the  twenty-four  courses.  It  was  probably  the  humble  triumph  of  Palm 
Sunday,  and  the  intense  excitement  produced  in  the  city  {iffdadrf)  by 
the  arrival  of  Jesus  (Matt.  xxi.  10),  which  first  awoke  the  active 
jealousy  of  the  chief  priests  of  Jerusalem,  who  were  wealthy  Sadducees 
in  alliance  with  the  Herodians,  and  who  had  hitherto  despised  Jesus  as 
only  a  '  Prophet  of  Nazareth.'  From  this  period  of  the  narrative,  the 
hostility  of  the  Pharisees,  as  such,  is  much  less  marked.  Indeed  they 
would  have  sympathised  with  the  cleansing  of  the  Temple,  which 
involved  a  terrible  reflexion  on  the  greed  and  neglect  of  the  hierarchic 
party. 

came  upon  him]  The  word  implies  a  sudden  and  hostile  demonstra- 
tion (Acts  xxiii.  27,  iv.  i,  vi.  12).  They  thus  surrounded  Him  while 
He  was  walking  in  the  Temple  (Mark  xi.  27). 


302  ST    LUKE,    XX.  [vv.  2—8. 

2  elders,  and  spake  unto  him,  saying,  Tell  us,  by  what  au- 
thority doest  thou  these  things  ?  or  who  is  he  that  gave  thee 

3  this  authority  ?     And  he  answered  and  said  unto  them,  I 

4  will  also  ask  you  one  thing  ;  and  answer  me  :   The  baptism 

5  of  John,  was  it  from  heaven,  or  of  men  ?     And  they  rea- 
soned with  themselves,  saying,  If  we  shall  say,  From  heaven; 

6  he  will  say.  Why  then  believed  ye  him  not  ?     But  and  if  we 
say.  Of  men  ;  all  the  people  will  stone  us  :  for  they  be  per- 

7  suaded  that  John  was  a  propliet.     And  they  answered,  that 

8  they  could  not  tell  whence  it  was.      And  Jesus  said  unto 

with  the  elders']  There  were  probably  three  great  sections  of  the 
Sanhedrin:  i,  Priests;  2,  Scribes  and  Rabbis  (Sopherim,  Tanaim,&c.); 
and  3,  Levites.     Derenbourg,  Pal.  eh.  vi. 

2.  by  what  authority]  Rather,  by  what  kind  of  authority.  The 
implication  is  'you  are  only  called  a  Rabbi  by  courtesy  ;'  you  are  not  a 
'pupil  of  the  wise  ;'  you  are  not  a  priest,  or  a  scribe,  or  a  political  func- 
tionary. Yet  you  usurp  functions  which  rather  belong  to  Caiaphas,  or 
the  President  of  the  Sanhedrin,  or  the  Romans,  or  Herod.  If  you  act 
as  a  Prophet  shew  us  a  sign.  Practically  it  was  the  old  taunt  by  which 
he  had  been  grieved  in  Galilee  (Matt.  xii.  39,  xvi.  4). 

who  is  he  that  gave  thee  this  authority?]  Every  recognised  Rabbi  had 
received  his  diploma;  every  Priest  his  ordination. 

3.  I  will  also  ask  you  one  thing]  Rather,  a  question.  The  divine 
readiness  and  (if  we  may  be  allowed  the  expression)  presence  of  mind 
of  Jesus  was  most  conspicuously  shewn  on  this  perilous  day  and  the 
next  day. 

and  answer  me\  We  see  from  St  Mark  (xi.  30)  that  this  emphatic 
expression  came  after  His  question — as  though  to  hasten  their  delay, 
and  break  up  a  whispered  colloquy  of  perplexity. 

4.  was  it  from  heaven,  or  of  men?]  Rather,  from  men.  This  was 
equivalent  to  the  question — with  which  surely  the  teachers  of  Israel 
should  at  ottce  have  been  provided  with  an  answer — was  the  Baptist  a 
prophet  or  a  seducer  ?  If  they  could  not  answer  this  question  they  were 
obviously  incompetent  to  decide  as  to  the  authority  by  which  He  worked. 

5.  they  reasoned  with  themselves]  They  went  aside  to  discuss  together 
what  answer  they  should  give.  This  deliberation  rendered  their  con- 
fession of  ignorance  more  glaring  and  more  fatal  to  their  claims. 

Why  then  believed  ye  him  not?]  See  vii.  30.  It  never  occurred  to  them 
to  speak  with  the  courage  of  their  convictions. 

6.  all  the  people  will  stone  us]  The  word  is  a  strong  compound — 
katalithasei — used  here  only — 'will  stone  us  to  death.'  Herod  had 
been  daunted  by  the  same  dread,  Matt.  xiv.  5;  Jos.  Antt.  xviii.  5,  §  2. 
It  illustrates  the  furious  bursts  of  fanaticism  to  which  the  Jews  were  liable 
(John  viii.  59,  x.  31,  &c.). 

persuaded]  Rather,  firmly  convinced.  The  tense  implies  an  un- 
alterable conclusion. 


vv.  9— ir-]  ST    LUKE,   XX.  303 

them,    Neither    tell   I   you  by   what  authority    I  do  these 
things. 

9 — 19.      The  Parable  of  the  Labourers  in  the  Vineyard. 

Then  began  he  to  speak  to  the  people  this  parable ;  A  9 
certain  man  planted  a  vineyard,  and  let  it  forth  to  husband- 
men, and  went  into  a  far  country  for  a  long  time.     And  at  ic 
the  season  he  sent  a  servant  to  the  husbandmen,  that  they 
should  give  him  of  the  fruit  of  the  vineyard :  but  the  hus- 
bandmen beat  him,  and  sent  him  away  empty.     And  again  u 
he  sent  another  servant :  and  they  beat  him  also,  and  en- 

7.  they  could  not  tell]  Rather,  did  not  know.  A  wise  answer  in 
cases  of  real  uncertainty,  as  the  Hebrew  proverb  taught — "Learn  to 
say  I  do  not  knoiv ;"  but  a  base  answer  when  they  had  an  opinion  but 
did  not  dare  to  avow  it ;  and  doubly  base  in  the  matter  of  a  question  on 
which  it  was  their  plain  duty  to  have  arrived  at  a  judgment.  To  be 
reduced  to  this  ignominious  necessity  of  confessing  ignorance  (though 
'''we  know"  was  one  of  their  favourite  phrases,  John  ix.  24,  &c.)  was  a 
public  humiliation  which  they  had  brought  upon  themselves. 

8.  Neither  tell  I  yott\  If  they  were  incompetent  to  decide  as  to  the 
authority  of  the  Prophet  who  had  saluted  Jesus  as  the  Messiah,  they 
were  obviously  incompetent  to  decide  as  to  His  authority. 

9 — 19.  The  Parable  of  the  Labourers  in  the  Vineyard. 

9.  to  the  people]  but  still  in  the  hearing  of  the  priests  and  scribes  who 
had  only  withdrawn  a  little  into  the  background  (vs.  19;  Matt.  xxi.  32, 
45).  St  Luke  here  omits  the  Parable  of  the  Two  Sons  (Matt.  xxi.  28 — 
32),  in  which,  as  in  this  Parable,  the  hidden  meaning — applicable  in 
the  first  instance  to  Pharisees  and  the  people,  and  in  the  second  to  Jews 
and  Gentiles — was  hardly  veiled. 

a  vineyard]  As  in  Is.  v.  i — 7;  Ps.  Ixxx.;  Ezek.  xv.  i — 6;  Jer.  ii.  21. 
St  Luke  omits  the  special  isolation,  &c.  of  the  vineyard.  Vines, 
grapes,  and  vineleaves  were  symbols  of  Palestine,  on  the  coins  of  the 
Maccabees. 

to  husbandmen]  namely,  (i)  the  Jewish  nation;  (2)  their  rulers  and 
teachers. 

for  a  long  time]  The  nearly  two  thousand  years  of  Jewish  History. 
Comp.  Matt.  xxv.  19.  In  this  long  time  they  learnt  to  say  "the  Lord 
hath  forsaken  the  earth,"  Ezek.  viii.  12;   Ps.  x.  5. 

10.  he  sent  a  servant]  The  various  'servants'  are  the  Judges,  the 
better  Priests,  and  the  Prophets. 

that  they  should  give  him  of  the  fruit]  The  payment  is  in  kind,  on  the 
metayer  system. 

11.  And  again  he  sent  another]  Jer.  xliv.  4.  Literally,  "And  he 
added  to  send  another" — a  Hebraism,  xix.  11;  Acts  xii.  3;  Gen. 
iv.  3. 


304  ST    LUKE,    XX.  [vv.  12—17. 


12  treated  him  shamefully,  and  sent  him  away  empty.  And 
again  he  sent  a  third  :  and  they  wounded  him  also,  and  cast 

•3  him  out.  Then  said  the  lord  of  the  vineyard,  What  shall  I 
do  ?     I  will  send  my  beloved  son :    it  may  be   they  will 

14  reverence  hijn  when  they  see  him.  But  when  the  husband- 
men saw  him,  they  reasoned  among  themselves,  saying,  This 
is  the  heir :  come,  let  us  kill  him,  that  the  inheritance  may 

15  be  ours.  So  they  cast  him  out  of  the  vineyard,  and  killed 
him.     What  therefore  shall  the  lord  of  the  vineyard  do  unto 

16  them  ?  He  shall  come  and  destroy  these  husbandmen,  and 
shall  give  the  vineyard  to  others.     And  when  they  heard  //, 

'7  they  said,  God  forbid.     And  he  beheld  them,   and  said, 

entreated  him  shamefully^  There  is  a  gradation  in  their  impious 
audacity.  In  St  Matthew  (xxi.  35)  it  is  (i)  beat,  (2)  killed,  (3) 
stoned.  In  St  Mark  (xii.  3 — 5)  it  is  (i)  beat,  and  sent  away  empty; 
(2)  wounded  in  the  head,  and  insulted;  (3)  killed.  And  when  more 
servants  are  sent  they  beat  some  and  kill  some. 

12.  cast  him  out]  On  this  treatment  of  God's  messengers  see  on  xiii. 
33,  34  and  Neh.  ix.  26;  i  K.  xxii.  24 — 27;  2  Chr.  xxiv.  19 — 22;  Acts 
vii.  52;  I  Thess.  ii.  15;  Heb.  xi.  36,  37,  where  the  same  charge  is 
reiterated. 

13.  IVhat  shall  /do?]  Gen.  i.  26,  vi.  7. 

I  will  send  my  beloved  son]  who  "took  on  Him  the  form  of  a  servant." 
Our  Lord's  teaching  respecting  His  own  divine  dignity  advanced  in  dis- 
tinctness as  the  end  was  approaching. 

it  may  be]  Literally,  '■'■perhaps.''^  It  occurs  here  alone  in  the  N.  T.  and 
once  only  in  the  LXX.,  i  Sam.  xxv.  21  (Heb.  "jX,  E.  V.  'surely'). 
This  'perhaps'  belongs  of  course  only  to  the  parable,  but  it  (i)  indicates 
their  free  will,  and  (ii)  enhances  their  awful  crime  to  represent  it  as 
having  seemed  all  but  inconceivable. 

when  they  see  him]    Omitted  in  ^<,  B,  C,  D,  L,  Q. 

14.  that  the  inheritance  may  be  ours]  "His  Son,  whom  he  hath 
appointed  heir  of  all  things,"  Heb.  i.  2.  Comp.  John  xi.  47 — 53. 
"They  killed  that  they  might  possess,  and  because  they  killed  they  lost." 
Aug. 

15.  cast  him  out  of  the  vineyard]  This  may  involve  an  allusion  to 
Christ  suffering  "without  the  gate,"  Heb.  xiii.  12,  13;  John  xix.  17. 
The  prophecy  was  meant  if  possible  at  the  last  hour  to  prevent  the 
guilt  of  its  own  fulfilment  (2  K.  viii.  12,  13). 

16.  He  shall  come  and  destroy]  In  Matt.  xxi.  41  this  is  the  answer 
of  the  people  themselves  to  our  Lord's  question. 

shall  give  the  vineyard  to  others]  "Lo,  we  turn  to  the  Gentiles,"  Acts 
xiii.  46. 

God  forbid]  l^iitrsWy,  '' Might  it  not  be!"  Heh.  Ckalilah.  In  this 
utterance  we  hear  the  groan  ol  the  Jewish  people  when  the  truth  that  they 


vv.  18—20.]  ST   LUKE,   XX.  305 

What  is  this  then  that  is  written,  The  stone  which  the 
builders  rejected,  the  same  is  become  the  head 
of  the  corner?  Whosoever  shall  fall  upon  that  stone  18 
shall  be  broken;  but  on  whomsoever  it  shall  fall,  it  will 
grind  him  to  powder.  And  the  chief  priests  and  the  scribes  19 
the  same  hour  sought  to  lay  hands  on  him ;  and  they  feared 
the  people:  for  they  perceived  that  he  had  spoken  this 
parable  against  them. 

20  —  26.      Question  about  the  Tribute  Money. 
And  they  watched  him,  and  sent  forth  spies,  which  should  20 

were  indeed  to  be  rejected  burst  upon  them.  It  woke  an  echo  even  in 
the  heart  of  the  Apostle  of  the  Gentiles.  For  the  Hebrew  expression 
Chalilah  see  Gen.  xliv.  7,  1 7  ;  Josh.  xxii.  29.  It  occurs  ten  times  in  the 
Epistle  to  the  Romans  alone.  See  Life  of  St  Paid,  11.  206.  It  is  the 
opposite  of  Amen,  but  occurs  here  alone  in  the  Gospels. 

17.  he  beheld  the/n']  Rather,  looking  fixedly  on  them,  to  add  solem- 
nity to  His  reference  to  their  own  Scriptures. 

that  is  written']  He  here  refers  them  to  the  very  Psalm  from  which 
the  Hosanna  of  the  multitude  had  been  taken. 

The  stone  zvhich  the,  builders  rejected]  This  is  a  quotation  from  Ps. 
cxviii.  22,  comp.  Is.  xxviii.  16.  The  stone  is  regarded  both  as  a  founda- 
tion-stone, and  a  stone  at  the  angle  of  the  building,  binding  the  two 
walls  together.  These  words  made  a  deep  impression  on  St  Peter 
(I  Pet.  ii.  7,  8). 

18.  shall  fall  upon  that  stone]  as  the  Jews  did  from  the  first,  i  Cor. 
i.  23.     See  Is.  viii.   14,  15. 

shall  be  broken]     Literally,  "  shall  be  sorely  bruised." 
it  shall  fall]   as  it  did  on  the  finally  impenitent  Jews  after  Christ's 
Ascension. 

it  will  grind  him  to  po~wder]  Literally,  "  it  shall  %v{nno7v  him"  (]t:r. 
xxxi.  10),  with  obvious  reference  to  the  great  Image  which  'the  stone 
cut  without  hands'  smote  and  broke  to  pieces,  so  that  its  fragments  be- 
came "like  the  chaff  of  the  summer  threshingfloor,  and  the  wind  carried 
them  away,"  Dan.  ii.  35. 

19.  against  them]  This  decidedly  shews  the  primary  sense  of  the 
Parable.  As  yet  they  hardly  realized  its  wider  significance.  So  when  the 
priests  and  rulers  saw  that  Jeremiah  spoke  against  them,  "Come,"  said 
they,  "and  let  us  devise  devices  against  Jeremiah... come,  and  let  us  smite 
him  with  the  tongue,"  Jer.  xviii.  18. 

After  this  parable  our  Lord  added  the  Parable  of  the  Marriage  of  the 
King's  Son.  Thus  in  three  continuous  {'arables  He  convicted  the  Priests 
and  Scribes  (i)  of  false  professions ;  (2)  of  cruel  faithlessness;  (3)  of  blind 
presumption.  This  with  their  puljlic  humiliation  about  John's  baptism 
made  them  thirst  for  speedy  vengeance. 

ST  LUKE  20 


3o6  ST   LUKE,   XX.  [v.  21. 

feign  themselves  just  men,  that  they  might  take  hold  of  his 
words,  that  so  they  might  deliver  him  unto  the  power  and 
:  authority  of  the  governor.  And  they  asked  him,  saying, 
Master,  we  know  that  thou  sayest  and  teachest  rightly,  nei- 
ther acceptest  thou  the  person  of  any,  but  teachest  the  way 

20 — 26.    Question  about  the  Tribute  Money. 

20.  And  they  watched  him\  For  the  word  used  see  vi.  7,  xiv.  i, 
xvii.  20.  The  incident  now  related  took  place  on  the  Tuesday  in  Pas- 
sion-week— the  Day  of  Temptations,  or  insidious  questions — the  last  and 
greatest  day  of  the  public  ministry  of  Jesus.  On  the  previous  evening 
He  had  again  retired  to  the  Mount  of  Olives,  and  in  the  morning  the 
disciples  remarked  that  the  Fig-tree  had  withered.  He  had  scarcely 
arrived  in  the  Temple  when  the  plot  of  the  Jewish  rulers  on  the  pre- 
vious evening  began  to  be  carried  out. 

spies\  Literally,  '■Hie?'s  in  wait"  {enkathetons,  Josh.  viii.  14;  Job  xxxi.  9). 

just  me n"]  Rather,  righteous;  ingenuous  and  scrupulous  'disciples  of 
the  wise,'  honestly  seeking  for  instruction.  They  pretend  to  be  strict 
legalists  who  revive  the  scruples  of  Judas  the  Gaulonite. 

theyl     i.e.  the  priests. 

take  hold  of  his  words]  Comp.  Ecclus.  viii.  11,  "Rise  not  up  in  anger 
at  the  presence  of  an  injurious  person,  lest  he  lie  in  wait  to  entrap  thee 
in  thy  words"  The  words  might  be  rendered  '  take  hold  of  Him  by  His 
speech.'' 

unto  the  power  and  authority  of  the  governor^  Rather,  to  the  (Ro- 
man) magistracy  and  to  the  jurisdiction  of  the  procurator.  Comp. 
xii.  II.  They  had  not  the  power  or  the  courage  to  put  Christ  to 
death  themselves.  We  see  from  Matt.  xxii.  15;  Mark  xii.  16  that  this 
plot  sprang  from  an  unholy  alliance  of  Pharisees  with  Herodians — 
i.e.  of  scrupulosity  with  indifferentism — of  devotees  with  sycophants; — 
not  the  first  or  last  instance  of  the  ill-omened  conjunction  of  Priests 
and  Statesmen — 

"Statesmen  bloodstained  and  Priests  idolatrous 
With  dark  lies  maddening  the  blind  multitude — " 

who  mutually  hate  each  other,  but  unite  in  common  hatred  "to  crush 
a  reformer  whose  zeal  might  be  inimical  to  both."     (Neander.) 

21.  Master,  we  know,  &c.]  There  is  something  in  this  fawning 
malice,  and  treacherous  flattery,  almost  as  repulsive  as  the  kiss  of 
Judas. 

neither  acceptest  thou  the  person  of  any]  Gal.  ii.  6.  The  word  for 
'  person '  is  prosopon,  '  a  mask ;'  it  is  as  though  they  would  imply  that 
Jesus  was  not  only  an  Impartial  Judge,  too  true  for  sycophancy,  but 
also  too  keen-sighted  to  be  deceived  by  hypocrisy.  And  the  one  blighting 
word  'Ye  hypocrites  1'  shewed  them  that  their  words  were  truer  than 
they  had  intended.  From  the  phrase  lambaneis  prosopon  are  formed 
the  words  prosopolemptes  and  prosopolempsia  ;  see  Eph.  vi.  9 ;  Col.  iii. 
25;  Acts  x.  34,  &c.     It  is  a  Hebrew  phrase,  Lev.  xix.  15;  Mai.  i.  8. 


w.  22—26.]  ST   LUKE,   XX.  307 

of  God  truly :  is  it  lawful  for  us  to  give  tribute  unto  Cesar,  22 
or  no  ?     But  he  perceived   their  craftiness,  and  said  unto  23 
them,   Why  tempt   ye  me  ?     Shew   me   a   penny.     Whose  24 
image  and  superscription  hath  it  ?  They  answered  and  said, 
Cesar's.      And  he  said  unto  them,   Render  therefore  unto  25 
Cesar  the  things  which  be  Cesar's,  and  unto  God  the  things 
which  be  God's.    And  they  could  not  take  hold  of  his  words  26 
before  the  people  :  and  they  marvelled  at  his  answer,  and 
held  their  peace. 

22.  is  it  lawful  for  us  to  give  tribute  tinto  Cesar,  or  no .?]  The 
question  was  devised  with  so  superlative  a  craft  that  it  seemed  impos- 
sible for  our  Lord  to  escape.  If  He  said  'It  is  lawful,'  the  Pharisees 
hoped  at  once  to  undermine  His  popularity  with  the  multitude.  If 
He  said  'It  is  not  lawful'  (Deut.  xvii.  15),  the  Herodians  could  at 
Dnce  hand  Him  over,  as  a  traitor,  to  the  secular  power.  For  '  tri- 
bute' each  Evangelist  uses  a  different  word — epikephalaion,  'poll-tax' 
(Mark  in  D);  the  Latin  kenson  'census'  (Matt.);  and  the  classical 
t>horo7i  here  and  xxiii.  2.  It  was  a  capitation-tax,  the  legality  of  which 
was  indignantly  disputed  by  scrupulous  legalists. 

craftiness^  panourgian,  a  classical  word  only  found  in  St  Paul  and 
St  Luke,  2  Cor.  iv.  2,  xi.  3,  &c. 

23.  Why  tempt  ye  me,  &c.]  Our  Lord  saw  at  once  that  it  was  a 
running  test-question  meant  only  to  entrap  Him.  Not  for  a  moment 
:lid  these  fawning  spies  deceive  him  though 

"Neither  man  nor  angel  can  discern 

Hypocrisy,   the  only  evil  that  walks 

Invisible,  except  to  God  alone." 
These  Pharisees  were  illustrating  the  truth  that  "  no  form  of  self-deceit 
IS  more  hateful  than  that  which  veils  spite  and  falsehood  under  the  guise 
3f  frankness,  and  behind  the  profession  of  religion." 

24.  Shew  me  a  penny'\  A  denarius.  See  on  vii.  41.  We  see 
from  Mk.  xii.  15,  16  that  they  were  obliged  to  borrow  the  heathen  coin 
from  one  of  the  tables  of  the  money-changers.  They  would  only  carry 
[ewish  money  in  their  own  girdles. 

Whose  image  and  superscription  hath  it?'\  On  one  side  would  be  the 
Dnce  beautiful  but  now  depraved  features  of  Tiberius  ;  the  title  Pontifex 
Maximus  was  probably  inscribed  on  the  obverse. 

25.  unto  Cesar  the  things  which  be  Cesar  s'\  St  Paul  very  clearly 
enforces  the  same  duty  in  Rom.  xiii.  6,  7.  The  'tribute'  in  Matt.  xvii. 
24  was  quite  different  ;  it  was  the  Temple  diilrachma. 

and  unto  God  the  things  which  be  God's'\  To  Caesar  you  owe  what  he 
demands  of  his  own  coinage;  to  the  Temple  the  tribute  which  you  ca7i 
anly  pay  in  the  shekel  of  the  sanctuary  ;  to  God  you  owe  yourselves.  Pay 
:o  Caesar  the  coins  which  bear  his  stamp,  to  God  the  duties  of  your  own 
souls  which  bear  His  image. 

26.  they  marvelled  at  his  answer^     Comp.  ii.  47.     They  thought  that 

20 —  2 


3o8  ST    LUKE,    XX.  [w.  27,  28. 

27 — 40.     Discomfiture  of  the  Sadducees. 

'2?      Then  came  to  hwi  certain  of  the  Sadducees,  which  deny 

2S  that  there  is  any  resurrection ;  and  they  asked  him,  saying, 

Master,  Moses  wrote  unto  us.  If  any  w««'s  brother  die, 

having  a  wife,    and   he   die   without   children,    that 

escape  was  impossible  for  Him;  and  yet  He  instantly  shatters  their 
deeply-laid  plot  to  pieces  by  shewing  that  they — Pharisees  and 
Herodians  alike — had  absolutely  decided  the  question  already  (according 
to  their  own  rule  "He  whose  coin  is  current  is  king  of  the  land"),  so 
that  there  is  no  need  for  Him  to  give  any  opinion  whatever  about  it. 
The  point  was  this, — their  national  acceptance  of  Caesar's  coinage  was 
an  unanswerable  admission  of  Caesar's  right.  Tribute  to  them  was  no 
longer  a  cheerful  offering,  but  a  legal  due;  not  a  voluntary  gift,  but  a 
political  necessity.  The  very  word  He  used  was  decisive.  They  had 
asked  "Is  it  lawful  to  give  (dot/nai)7"  He  answers,  'Give  back' 
{apodote).  By  using  these  coins  they  all  alike  admitted  that  'they  had  no 
king  but  Caesar.'  The  Christians  understood  the  principle  perfectly 
(i  Pet.  ii.  13,  14)  as  the  ancient  Jews  had  done  (Jer.  xxvii.  4 — 8).  Yet 
these  hypocrites  dared  to  shout  three  days  afterwards  that  Jesus  'had 
forbidden  to  give  tribute  to  Caesar ! ' 

27 — 40.     Discomfiture  of  the  Sadducees. 

27.  certain  of  tJie  Sadditcees]  Matt.  iii.  7.  On  the  Sadducees  see  the 
Excursus  on  Jewish  Sects.  They  were  undeterred  by  the  discomfiture  of 
the  Pharisees  and  Herodians,  and  perhaps  their  plot  had  been  so 
arranged  as  coincidently  to  humiliate  our  Lord,  if  they  could,  by  a 
difficult  question,  and  so  to  shake  His  credit  with  the  people.  Some  have 
supposed  that  the  memorable  incident  of  the  Woman  talien  in  Adultery 
(John  viii.  i — 1 1)  also  took  place  on  this  day;  in  which  case  there  would 
have  been  three  temptations  of  Christ,  one  political,  one  doctrinal,  and 
one  speculative.  But  that  incident  rose  spontaneously,  whereas  these 
had  been  pre-arranged. 

wtiich  deny  that  there  is  any  resurrection']  Jos.  Anft.  XVIII.  i,  §  4; 
B.  y.  II.  8,  §  14.  They  refused  to  see  any  proof  of  it  in  the  Books 
of  Moses ;  and  to  the  Prophets  and  the  other  books  (the  Ket'u- 
bhiin  or  Hagiographa)  they  only  attached  a  subordinate  importance. 
Their  question  was  inspired  less  by  deadly  hatred  than  by  supercilious 
scorn.  Wealthy  and  powerful,  they  only  professed  to  despise  Jesus,  up 
to  this  time,  as  a  'Prophet  of  Nazareth,'  though  now  they  became  His 
main  murderers.  They  are  not  so  much  as  mentioned  by  St  John,  and 
very  slightly  by  St  Mark  and  St  Luke,  nor  did  Christ  utter  against 
them  the  same  denunciations  as  against  the  Pharisees,  who  were  Mis 
daily  opponents.  All  the  leading  families  of  high  priests  at  this  peirod 
were  Sadducees,  and — except  where  it  comes  into  direct  collision  with 
religion — Epicurean  worldliness  is  more  tolerant  than  interested  fana- 
ticism. 

28.  Moses  wrote  unto  us]  The  law  of  levirate  marriage.  Deut. 
xxiii.  4.     See  on  iii.  23. 


w.  29—36.]  ST    LUKE,    XX. 


309 


his  brother   should   take  his  wife,  and  raise  up  seed 
unto  his  brother.    There  were  therefore  seven  brethren:  and  29 
the  first  took  a  wife,  and  died  without  children.     And  the  30 
second  took  her  to  wife,  and  he  died  childless.     And  the  31 
third  took  her  ;  and  in  Hke  manner  the  seven  also :    and 
they  left  no  children,  and  died.    Last  of  all  the  woman  died  32 
also.     Therefore  in  the  resurrection  whose  wife  of  them  is  33 
she  ?  for  seven  had  her  to  wife.     And  Jesus  answering  said  34 
unto  them,  The  children  of  this  world  marry,  and  are  given 
in  marriage :  but  they  which  shall  be  accounted  worthy  to  3s 
obtain  that  world,  and  the  resurrection  from  the  dead,  nei- 
ther marry,  nor  are  given  in  marriage :  neither  can  they  die  36 

29.  There  were  therefore  seven  brethren^  In  INTatt.  xxii.  1^  \\.  nins 
"  there  were  with  us,"  as  though  they  were  alluding  to  an  actual  case. 

30.  And  the  second  took  her]  This  question  about  the  husband  of 
the  "Sevenfold  widow"  was  one  of  the  materialistic  objections  to  the 
Resurrection,  which  as  an  insipid  '  difficulty  '  had  often  been  discussed 
in  Jewish  schools.  It  was  excessively  commonplace,  and  even  if  Jesus 
had  given  the  answer  which  contented  the  most  eminent  Rabbis  of  the 
Pharisaic  schools — that  the  woman  would  be  the  wife  of  the  Jirst 
husband — it  is  hard  to  see  what  triumph  these  shallow  Epicureans 
(as  the  Talmud  calls  them)  would  have  gained  by  their  question. 

33.  whose  wife .?]  The  forcible  order  of  B,  L  is  "  the  woman, 
therefore,  in  the  resurrection^  whose  wife  does  she  become  of  the  seven  ?" 

for  seven]     Rather,  for  the  seven. 

34.  The  children  of  this  world]  i.  e.  all  who  live  in  the  present  dis- 
pensation. Here,  as  often  elsewhere,  the  word  rendered  '  world  '  is 
aeon,  which  properly  means  '  age.'  It  is  not  the  kosmos  or  material 
Universe,  but  the  Universe  regarded  subjectively,  i.e.  the  Time-world. 

35.  accounted  worthy]  Comp.  xxi.  36;  Rev.  iii.  4 ;  2  Thess.  i.  5. 
Sane  magna  dignatio.     Bengel. 

to  obtain  that  world]  i.e.  the  genuine  inheritors  of  the  future  aeon 
beyond  the  grave,  xiv.  14;  Phil.  iii.  11.  The  answer  of  Jesus  is  not 
only  full  of  tolerant  condescension,  but  also  of  a  divine  wisdom  which 
at  once  dwarfs  into  insignificance  the  most  taunted  insight  of  the 
Rabbinic  Hillels  and  Shammais.  It  is  further  most  important,  as  being 
one  of  the  very  few  passages  which  give  us  a  clear  glimpse  into  the 
actual  conditions  of  f^iture  blessedness.  These  Sadducccs  erred  because, 
in  their  ignorance  of  the  Scriptures  and  the  power  of  God  (Mark  xii.  24), 
they  were  imagining  a  kingdom  which  could  be  inherited  by  "  flesh  and 
blood." 

36.  neither  can  they  die  any  more]  Rather,  for  neither,  &c.  Then' 
is  no  marriage  and  no  more  birth.  "There  shall  be  no  more  death," 
Rev.  xxi.  4.  "The  dead  shall  be  raised  incoiriifiiblf,"  1  Cor. 
XV.  52. 


3IO  ST    LUKE,   XX.  [w.  37—39. 

any  more :   for  they  are  equal  unto  the  angels  ;  and  are  the 

37  children  of  God,  being  the  children  of  the  resurrection.  Now 
that  the  dead  are  raised,  even  Moses  shewed  at  the  bush, 
when  he  calleth   the  Lord   the  God  of  Abraham,   and 

38  the  God  of  Isaac,  and  the  God  of  Jacob.  For  he  is 
not  a  God  of  the  dead,  but  of  the  living :  for  all  live  unto 
him. 

39  Then  certain  of  the  scribes  answering  said,  Master,  thou 


equal  unto  the  angels]  Like  the  angels  in  being  immortal,  but  supe- 
rior to  them  in  privileges  (Heb.  i.  4;  ii.  5 — 8).  "When  He  shall 
appear,  we  shall  be  like  Him  ;  for  we  shall  see  Him  as  He  is,"  i  John 
iii.  2.  In  this  one  word  our  Lord  refutes  the  Sadducean  denial  of  the 
existence  of  angels,  Acts  xxiii.  8 ;  and  incidentally  those  material 
notions  of  future  bliss  (xiv.  15)  which  all  the  Jews  held. 

the  children  of  God,  being  the  children  of  the  resurrectio}i\  "/am 
the  resurrection,  and  the  life,"  John  xi.  25. 

37.  are  raised]  Literally,  "<zr^  being  raised" — the  present  of  eternal 
certainty. 

even  Moses]  The  argument  is  b,  fortiori,  as  though  our  Lord  would 
say,  "  the  Prophets  prove  it  abundantly,  but  I  will  not  quote  them 
since  you  attach  higher  importance  to  the  Law.  You  quote  Moses  to 
throw  doubt  on  the  Resurrection ;  but  cvc^i  Jlloses,  &c." 

shewed]     Rather,  disclosod,   or  revealed. 

at  the  bush]  Rather,  in  the  Bush,  i.e.  in  that  section  of  Exodus  (Ex. 
iii.)  which  they  called  by  that  name,  just  as  they  called  2  Sam.  i.  'the 
Bow'  and  Ezek.  i.  '  the  Chariot.'  Comp.  "in  Elias,"  Rom.  xi.  2  (marg.). 

38.  he  is  not  a  God  of  the  dead,  bnt  of  the  living]  Rather,  of  dead 
beings,  but  of  living  beings.  The  Pharisees  had  endeavoured  to  draw 
proofs  of  immortality  from  the  Law,  i.e.  from  Numb.  xv.  31.  In  later 
times  they  borrowed  this  proof  from  Christ, — lighting  their  torches  at 
the  sun  though  they  hated  its  beams.  But  they  had,  up  to  this  time, 
offered  no  proof  so  deep  and  true  as  this.  The  argument  is  that  God 
would  never  have  called  Himself  "the  God  of  Abraham,  of  Isaac,  and 
of  Jacob,"  if  these  Patriarchs,  after  brief  and  sad  lives,  had  become 
mere  heaps  of  crumbling  dust.  Would  He  have  given  confidence  by 
calling  Himself  the  God  of  dust  and  ashes?  So  Josephus  (?)  says, 
4  Mace.  xvi.  24,  "they  who  die  for  God's  sake,  live  unto  God  as 
Abraham,  Isaac,  and  Jacob,  and  all  the  Patriarchs."     Acts  xvii.  28. 

for  all  live  nnto  him]  Rom.  xiv.  8,  9.  Our  Lord  added,  "Ye 
therefore  do  greatly  err."  But  how  incomparably  less  severe  is  the 
condemnation  of  religious  and  intellectual  error,  than  the  burning  re- 
buke against  Pharisaic  lovelessness  ! 

39.  Then  certain  of  the  scribes]  Even  the  Pharisees  could  not  fail 
to  see  the  luminous  wisdom  and  spiritual  depth  of  our  Lord's  reply,  and 
while  all  of  them  would  rejoice  at  this  unanswerable  confutation  of  their 
hereditary  opponents,  some  of  them  would  have  the  candour  to  express 


vv.  40—44]  ST   LUKE,   XX. 


311 


hast  well  said.     And  after  that  they  durst  not  ask  him  any  40 
question  at  all. 

41 — 47-      The  Scribes,  Sadducees,  and  Pharisees  reduced  to 
a  Confession  of  Ignorance. 
And  he  said  unto  them,  How  say  they  that    Christ  is  .u 
David's   son?     And  David   himself  saith   in  the  book  of 42 
Psalms,    The   Lord   said   to   my   Lord,    Sit   thou  on 
my  right  hand,  till  I  make  thine  enemies  thy  foot- 43 
stool.     David  therefore  calleth  him  Lord,  how  is  he  then  4., 
his  son  ? 

their  approval.  Truth  will  always  offend  some,  but  others  will  value 
it.  After  this  grateful  acknowledgment,  however,  one  of  them  could 
not  refrain  from  gratifying  the  insatiable  spirit  of  casuistry  by  asking 
Christ  'which  is  the  great  commandment  of  the  Law?'  (Matt.  xxii. 
34—40;  Mk.  xii.  28—34.)  This  incident  is  omitted  by  St  Luke,  be- 
cause he  has  given  similar  ones  before. 

40.  they  durst  ?tot  ask  him  any  question']  The  total  collapse  of  their 
stratagems  enhanced  our  Lord's  peril,  by  shewing  how  impossible  it 
was  for  these  rich  and  learned  "pupils  of  the  wise"  to  pose  themselves 
as  superiors  to  Christ  in  wisdom  and  knowledge.  Assumed  contempt 
was  deepened  into  real  hatred,  and  all  the  more  after  the  next  incident. 

41—47.    The  Scribes,  Sadducees,  and  Pharisees  reduced  to 
A  Confession  of  Ignorance. 

41.  How  say  they  that  Christ  is  David's  son  ?]  Rather,  the  Christ. 
See  John  vii.  42  ;  Ps.  cxxxii.  11  ;  Jer.  xxiii.  5  ;  Mic.  v.  2. 

42.  in  the  book  of  Psalms']  Ps.  ex.  I.  The  Jews  universally  regarded 
it  as  a  Messianic  Psalm,  and  in  vs.  3  the  LXX.  renders,  "From  the 
womb,  before  the  morning  star,  did  I  beget  thee." 

The  Lord  said  to  my  Lord]  In  the  Hebrew  it  is  "Jehovah  said 
to  my  Lord  (Adonai)." 

Sit  than  on  my  right  hand]     Comp.  Matt.  xxvi.  64. 

43.  till  L  make  thine  enemies  thy  footstool]  "lie  must  reign  till 
He  hath  put  all  enemies  under  His  feet,"  i  Cor.  xv.  25. 

44.  how  is  he  then  his  son  ?]  To  a  Jew  it  was  inconceivable  that  a 
father,  or  ancestor,  should  call  his  son  "Lord."  The  only  possible 
solulion — that  the  Messiah  was  only  "made  of  the  seed  of  David  after 
the  flesh"  (Rom.  i.  3)  was  one  whicli  they  had  never  chosen  to  accept. 
They,  like  the  Ebionites,  expected  for  their  Messiah  a  mere  'beloved 
man.'  And  thus,  for  the  second  time  on  tliis  day,  they  iiad  drawn  on 
their  own  heads,  by  their  hypocritic  craft,  the  humiliating  necessity 
of  publicly  confessing  their  ignorance  respecting  matters  of  primary 
importance  before  the  people,  whose  absolute  reverence  they  claimed. 
They  'did  not  know'  whether  the  Baptist  was  an  Impostor  or  a  Prophet  ; 
they  'could  not  answer  a  word'  to  a  most  obvious  question  as  to  the 


312  ST    LUKE,   XX.  XXI.         [w.  45—47  ;  i. 

45  Then  in  the  audience  of  all  the  people  he  said  unto  his 

46  disciples,  Beware  of  the  scribes,  which  desire  to  walk  in  long 
robes,  and  love  greetings  in  the  markets,  and  the  highest 
seats  in  the  synagogues,  and  the  chief  rooms  at   feasts  ; 

47  which  devour  widows'  houses,  and  for  a  shew  make  long 
prayers  :  the  same  shall  receive  greater  damnation. 

Ch.  XXI.  1—4.     The  Widow's  Mite. 
21      And  he  looked  up,  and  saw  the  rich  men  casting  their 

Messianic  hope  which  they  put  forward  as  the  very  centre  of  their 
religion  !     Comp.  xiv.  6. 

45.  in  the  audience  of  all  the  people"]  Rather,  While  all  the  people 
were  listening'.  Here  followed  the  final  rupture  of  Jesus  with  the 
authorities— political,  social,  and  religious — of  His  nation.  They  had 
now  made  their  own  condemnation  inevitable,  and  had  justly  provoked 
that  great  Denunciation  on  which  (as  less  intelligible  to  Gentiles)  St 
Luke  here  only  touches.  But  he  has  given  it  in  part  before  (xi.  39 — 52) 
in  his  account  of  the  hostile  banquet  at  the  house  of  a  Pharisee.  In 
St  Matthew  it  occupies,  with  its  rhythmic  grandeur  and  awfully  solemn 
condemnation,  the  whole  of  the  twenty-third  chapter. 

46.  to  walk  in  long  robes]  with  special  conspicuousness  of  fringes, 
Numb.  XV.  38 — 40.  "  The  supreme  tribunal,"  said  R.  Nachman,  "will 
duly  punish  hypocrites  who  wrap  their  talliths  round  them  to  appear, 
what  they  are  not,  true  Pharisees." 

greetings  in  the  markets]  See  on  xi.  43  ;  Videri  quani  esse  was  their 
secret  rule. 

47.  which  devour  widows''  houses]  Josephus  expressly  tells  us  that 
the  Pharisees  had  large  female  followings,  and  an  absolute  sway  in  the 
Gynaekonitis  or  women's  apartments,  Jos.  Antt.  XVIII.  1,  §  4, 

for  a  shew]  Rather,  in  pretence.  Their  hypocrisy  was  so  notorious 
that  even  the  Talmud  records  the  warning  given  by  Alexander  Jannaeus 
to  his  wife  on  his  deathbed  against  painted  Pharisees.  And  in  their 
seven  classes  of  Pharisees  the  Talmudic  writers  place  " Shechernites'" — 
Pharisees  from  self-interest ;  Stiimblers — so  mock-humble  that  they  will 
not  raise  their  feet  from  the  ground  ;  Bleeders — so  mock-modest,  that 
because  they  will  not  raise  their  eyes,  they  run  against  walls,  &c.  Thus 
the  Jewish  writers  themselves  depict  the  Pharisees  as  the  Tartuffes  of 
antiquity. 

long  prayers]  Such  as  the  twenty-six  forms  of  prayer  at  ablution ; 
the  Eighteen  Benedictions  (Shemoneh  Esreh),  &c. 

damnation]  Rather,  judgment.  The  word  is  not  even  katahima, 
or  'condemnation.'  Their  'judgment'  shall  be  more  severe  than  that 
of  those  who  practised  none  of  these  religious  ordinances.  It  should  be 
"  more  tolerable  for  Tyre  and  Sidon  at  the  judgment "  than  for  these, 
x.   14. 

Ch.  XXI.  1—4.    The  Widow's  Mite. 

1.     he  looked  tip]     The  expression  seems  to  shew  that  He  was  sitting 


vv.  2— 5-]  ST   LUKE,    XXI.  313 

gifts  into  the  treasury.     And   he   saw  also  a  certain  poor  a 
widow  casting  in  thither  two  mites.     And  he  said    Of  a  3 
truth  I  say  unto  you,  that  this  poor  widow  hath  cast  in  more 
than  they  all:  for  all  these  have  of  their  abundance  cast  in  4 
unto  the  offerings  of  God:  but  she  of  her  penury  hath  cast 
in  all  the  living  that  she  had. 

5—7-     The  Doo7n  of  the  Tetnple,  and  the  Question  about 

the  E?id. 

And  as  some  spake  of  the  temple,  how  it  was  adorned  s 

with  doMTicast  eyes,  saddened,  perhaps,  in  His  human  spirit  and 
agitated  by  the  great  Denunciation  ;  but  this  last  little  incident  is  'like 
a  rose  amid  a  field  of  thistles,'— an  act  genuinely  beautiful  in  the  desert 
of '  official  devotion.' 

the  rich  meni  More  literally,  "He  saw  those  -ivho  were  casting  their 
gifts  ijito  the  treasury— rich  men.'"  St  Mark  tells  us  that  the  gifts  were 
large  (Mk.  xii.  41). 

itito  the  treasury]  See  John  viii.  20.  This  was  in  the  Court  of  the 
Women.  The  High  Priest  Jehoiada  had  put  a  chest  for  this  purpose 
at  the  entrance  of  the  House,  1  K.  xii.  o ;  see  Neh.  x.  38  ;  Jos.  D.  J. 
VI.  5  ;  Atitt.  XIX.  6,  §  r,  and  2  xMacc.  iii.  6— 12.  It  contained  the  Corban', 
Matt,  xxvii.  6.  But  in  our  Lord's  day  there  were  thirteen  chests  called 
Shopheroth,  from  their  trumpet-shaped  openings,  adorned  with  various 
inscriptions.  These  rich  men  do  not  seem  to  have  been  observing  the 
injunctions  both  sacred  and  Talmudic  to  give  secretly,  Matt.  vi.  4,  18. 

2.  alsd\  If  the  kai  be  genuine,  it  should  periiaps  follow  the  tina — 
"some  one — even  a  widow." 

two  mites']  "which  make  a  farthing,"  Mk.  xii.  42.  The  kpton  or 
prntah  was  the  smallest  of  coins,  and  the  Rabbis  did  not  allow  any  one 
to  give  less  than  two. 

3.  more  than  they  alt\  because  "one  coin  out  of  a  little  is  belter 
than  a  treasure  out  of  much,  and  it  is  not  considered  how  much  is 
given,  but  how  much  remains  behind."  S.  Ambrose.  See  2  Cor.  viii. 
12.  In  the  Talmud  a  High  Priest  is  similarly  taught  by  a  vision  not  to 
despise  a  poor  woman's  offering  of  meal.  The  true  estimate  of  human 
actions,  as  Godet  well  observes,  is  according  to  their  quality,  not 
according  to  their  quantity. 

4.  of  their  abundance]  Rather,  out  of  their  overplus.  The  essence 
of  charity  is  self-denial.  But  in  these  days  most  people  give  'mites'  out 
of  their  vast  superfluity, — which  is  no  charity  at  all  ;  and  they  talk  of 
these  offerings  as  'mites,'  as  though  that  word  excused  and  even 
consecrated  an  offering  miserably  inadequate. 

5—7.     The  Doom  of  the  Temple,  and  the  Question  about 

THE  End. 

6.     as  sorne  spake]     We  learn  from  the  other  Evangelists  that  those 


314  ST    LUKE,   XXI.  [vv.  6—8. 

6  with  goodly  stones  and  gifts,  he  said,  As  for  these  things 
which  ye  behold,  the  days  will  come,  in  the  which  there 
shall  not  be  left  one  stone  upon  another,  that  shall  not  be 

7  thrown  down.  And  they  asked  him,  saying.  Master,  but 
when  shall  these  things  be  ?  and  what  sign  will  there  be 
when  these  things  shall  come  to  pass  ? 

8 — 27.     Signs  of  the  End. 

8  And  he  said.  Take  heed  that  ye  be  not  deceived:    for 

who  spoke  were  the  Apostles,  and  that  the  question  was  asked  as  Jesus 
sat  on  the  Mount  of  Olives  opposite  to  the  Temple,  perhaps  gazing  on 
it  as  it  shone  in  the  last  rays  of  sunset. 

rvith  goodly  stones\  bevelled  blocks  of  stone,  of  which  some  are 
described  as  having  been  forty  cubits  long  and  ten  high ;  double  clois- 
ters; monolithic  columns;  alternate  slabs  of  red  and  white  marble,  &c. 
See  Jos.  B.  y.  v.  5  and  Bab.  Siicca,  f.  51,  i. 

and  gifts]  Rather,  sacred  offerings  (Ps.  Ixii.),  such  as  the  golden 
chain  of  Agrippa;  gifts  of  Ptolemy  Philadelphus,  Augustus,  Helen  of 
Adiabene,  and  crowns,  shields,  goblets,  &c. ;  the  golden  vine  with  its 
vast  clusters  given  by  Herod.  (Jos.  B.  J.  V.  5,  §  4.  See  1  Mace.  v.  16; 
and  Jos.  Aiitt.  xill.  3,  XV.  1 1,  §  3.)  Hence  Tacitus  calls  it  "  a  temple  of 
immense  opulence,"  Hist.  V.  8. 

6.  As  for  these  things  which  ye  behold"]  Rather,  these  things 
wliich  ye  are  gazing  on  (it  is  what  is  called  the  '  pendent  nomina- 
tive'). 

there  shall  not  be  left  one  stone  iipon  another]  See  on  xix.  44  and 
the  remarkable  passage  in  2  Esdras  x.  54,  "in  the  place  where  the 
Highest  beginneth  to  shew  His  city,  there  can  no  man's  building  be 
able  to  stand."  This  was  fulfilled  in  spite  of  the  strong  wish  of  Titus 
to  spare  the  Temple,  Jos.  B.  y .  vi.  4,  §  5  ;  but  see  on  xix.  44.  He 
was  himself  so  amazed  at  the  massive  substructures  that  he  could  only 
see  in  his  conquest  the  hand  of  God  (id.  vi.  9,  §  i).  This  prophecy  was 
in  reality  that  "  Let  us  depart  hence"  which  Josephus  {B.  y.  vi.  5,  §  3) 
and  Tacitus  {Hist.  V.  13)  tell  us  was  uttered  by  a  mysterious  Voice 
before  the  destruction  of  Jerusalem. 

7.  they  asked  him]  The  questioners  were  Peter  and  James  and 
John  and  Andrew,  Mark  xiii.  3. 

when. ..and  what  sign]  Our  Lord  leaves  the  former  question  un- 
answered (see  on  xvii.  20)  and  only  deals  with  the  latter.  This  was 
His  gentle  method  of  discoujaging  irrelevant  or  inadmissible  questions 
(comp.  xiii.  23,  24). 

8 — 27.     Signs  of  the  End. 

8.  Take  heed  that  ye  be  not  deceived]  A  danger  incurred  even  by 
the  elect.  Matt.  xxiv.  24.  The  moral  key-notes  of  this  great  Dis- 
course of  the  Last  Things  (Eschatology)  are  Beware!  Watch  !  Endure! 
I'ray ! 


vv.  9— II.]  ST    LUKE,    XXI. 


315 


many  shall  come  in  my  name,  saying,  I  am  Christ;  and  the 
time  draweth  near :  go  ye  not  therefore  after  them.     But  < 
when  ye  shall  hear  of  wars  and  commotions,  be  not  ter- 
rified :  for  these  things  must  first  come  to  pass ;  but  the  end 
is  not  by  and  by. 

Then  said  he  unto  them,  Nation  shall  rise  against  nation, 
and  kingdom  against  kingdom  :  and  great  earthquakes  shall 

for  many  shall  come  in  my  name'\     *'  Even  now  are  there  many  anti- 
christs," I  John  ii.  18. 

the  time  draiveth  near\     Rather,  the  crisis  has  approached. 

9.  wars  and  commotions^  The  best  comment  on  ihe  primary  fulfil- 
ment of  this  Discourse  is  the  Jewish  War  of  Josephus,  and  the  Annals 
and  History  of  Tacitus  {Ann.  xil.  38,  xv.  11,  xvi.  13),  whose  narra- 
tive is  full  of  earthquakes,  wars,  crimes,  violences  and  pollutions,  and 
who  describes  the  period  which  he  is  narrating  as  one  which  was  "rich 
in  calamities,  horrible  with  battles,  rent  with  seditions,  savage  even 
in  peace  itself."  The  main  difficulties  of  our  Lord's  Prophecy  vanish 
when  we  bear  in  mind  (i)  that  Prophecy  is  like  a  landscape  in  which 
time  and  space  are  subordinated  to  eternal  relations,  and  in  which 
events  look  like  hills  seen  chain  behind  chain  which  to  the  distant 
spectator  appear  as  one;  and  (ii)  that  in  the  necessarily  condensed  and 
varying  reports  of  the  Evangelists,  sometimes  the  primary  fulfilment 
(which  is  shewn  most  decisively  and  irrefragably  by  vs.  32  to  be  the 
Fall  of  Jerusalem),  sometimes  the  ultimate  fulfilment  is  predominant. 
The  Fall  of  Jerusalem  was  the  Close  of  that  Aeon  and  a  symbol  of 
the  Final  End  (felos).  This  appears  most  clearly  in  the  report  of  St 
Luke. 

commotions']  akatastasias,  conditions  of  instability  and  rottenness,  the 
opposite  io  peace.  1  Cor.  xiv.  33;  Jas.  iii.  16.  Such  commotions  were 
the  massacre  of  20,000  Jews  in  their  fight  with  the  Gentiles  at  Caesarea ; 
the  assassinations  or  suicides  of  Nero,  Galba,  Otho,  and  Vilellius;  the 
civil  wars,  &c. 

be  not  terrified]  The  Greek  word  is  the  exact  equivalent  of  our  Eng- 
lish word  'be  not  scared'  xxiv.  37;   i  Pet.  iii.  6;   Prov.  iii.  25. 

but  the  end  is  not  by  and  by]  Rather,  hut  not  immediately  is  the 
end.  For  'by  and  by'  see  xvii.  7;  Matt.  xiii.  21;  Mk.  vi.  25.  The 
words  are  most  important  as  a  warning  against  the  same  eschatological 
excitement  which  St  Paul  discourages  in  2  Thess.  ("  The  end  is  not 
yet,"  Matt.  xxiv.  6;  Mk.  xiii.  7.)  The  things  which  'must  first  come 
to  pass'  before  the  /inal  end  were  (1)  physical  disturbances— which  so 
often  synchronise  with  historic  crises,  as  Nicl)ulir  has  observed;  (2)  per 
secutions  ;  (3)  apostasy  ;  (4)  wide  evangelisation  ;  (5)  universal  troui)lc^ 
of  war,  &c.  They  were  the  "beginning  of  birth-throes"  (Matt.  xxiv. 
8)  ;  what  the  Jews  called  the  "birth-pangs  of  the  Messiah." 

11.  earthquakes]  Tac.  Hist.  I.  2.  For  such  physical  portents  nl 
great  crises  see  Thuc.  i.  23;  Tac.  Ann.  xii.  43,  ^4,  Hist.  I.  5^;  Liv. 
XLlil.  13,  &c. 


3i6  ST    LUKE,    XXI.  Tw.  12—16. 

be  in  divers  places,  and  famines,  and  pestilences ;  and  fear- 

12  ful  sights  and  great  signs  shall  there  be  from  heaven.  But 
before  all  these,  they  shall  lay  their  hands  on  you,  and  per- 
secute you,  delivering  yoti  up  to  the  synagogues,  and  into 
prisons,  being  brought  before  kings  and  rulers  for  my  name's 

13  sake.  And  it  shall  turn  to  you  for  a  testimony.  Settle  it 
^^  therefore  in  your  hearts,  not  to  meditate  before  what  ye  shall 
IS  answer  :  for  I  will  give  you  a  mouth  and  wisdom,  which  all 
■  6  your  adversaries  shall  not  be  able  to  gainsay  nor  resist.  And 


famines]  Acts  xi.  28.  The  original  gives  the  common  paronomasia 
(play  on  words)  lit?!oi  kai  loimoi. 

pestilences]  Josephus  {B.  J.  vi.  9,  §  3)  mentions  both  pestilence  and 
famine  as  the  immediate  preludes  of  the  storming  of  Jerusalem.  They 
were  due,  like  the  plague  at  Athens,  to  the  vast  masses  of  people — 
Passover  pilgi-ims— who  were  at  the  time  crowded  in  the  city. 

fearful  sights]  See  Wisdom  xvii.  i — 1^.  'Y\y&  \iqxA  phobetra,  'terrors,' 
occurs  here  alone.  Among  these  would  be  the  "Abomination  of 
Desolation,"  or  "desolating  wing  of  Abomination,"  which  seems  best  to 
correspond  with  the  foul  and  murderous  orgies  of  the  Zealots  which 
drove  all  worshippers  in  horror  from  the  Temple  (Jos.  B.  "J.  IV.  3,  §  7, 

V.  6,  §  I,  &c.).    Such  too  would  be  the  rumour  of  monstrous  births  (id. 

VI.  5,  §  3);  the  cry  'woe,  woe'  for  seven  and  a  half  years  of  the  peasant 
Jesus,  son  of  Hanan ;  the  voice  and  sound  of  departing  guardian-angels 
(Tac.  Hist.  V.  13),  and  the  sudden  opening  of  the  vast  brazen  Temple- 
gate  which  required  twenty  men  to  move  it  (Jos.  ib.). 

signs.,  from  heaven]  Josephus  mentions  a  sword-shaped  comet.  Both 
Tacitus  and  Josephus  mention  the  portent  that 

"  Fierce  fiety  warriors  fought  upon  the  clouds, 
In  rank,  and  squadron,   and  right  form  of  war ; " 
and  Tacitus  tells  us  how  the  blind  multitude  of  Jews  interpreted  these 
signs  in  their  own  favour  (Hist.  V.  13). 

12.  they  shall  lay  their  hands  on  you,  &c.]  The  best  comment 
on  the  whole  verse  is  found  in  Acts  iv.  3,  v.  17 — 41,  vi.  11  — 13,  xii.  2, 
xvi.  19 — 39,   XXV.  23;  2  Tim.  iv.  16,  17.     Comp.  John  xv.  20,  xvi.  2,  3. 

13.  for  a  testimony]  See  Maik  xiii.  9.  "In  nothing  terrified  by 
your  adversaries,  which  is  to  them  an  evident  token  of  pejdition,  but  to 
you  of  salvation,''''  Phil.  i.  28.  "A  manifest  token  of  the  righteous 
judgment  of  God,"  2  Thess.  i.  5. 

14.  not  to  meditate  before]  xii.  11;  Matt.  x.  19,  20.  The  meaning 
is  that  they  were  neither  to  be  anxious  about  the  form  of  their  Apologia, 
not  to  make  it  skilfully  elaborate. 

15.  I  zvill  give  you  a  mouth]  as  in  Ex.  iv.  11,  12  ;  Jer,  i.  9;  Is.  vi.  6. 
God,  as  Milton  says,  'sendeth  forth  His  cherubim  with  the  hallowed 
fire  of  His  altar  to  touch  the  lips  of  whom  He  will.' 

shall  not  he  able  to  gainsay]  See  Acts  iv.  14,  vi.  ro. 


vv.  17—22.]  ST    LUKE,    XXI.  317 

ye   shall  be  betrayed  both  by  parents,  and  brethren,  and 
kinsfolks,  and  friends  ;  and  some  of  you  shall  they  cause  to 
be  put  to  death.     And  ye  shall  be  hated  of  all  men  for  my  17 
name's  sake.   But  there  shall  not  a  hair  of  your  head  perish.  18 
In  your  patience  possess  ye  your  souls.  19 

And  when  ye  shall  see  Jerusalem  compassed  with  armies,  20 
then  know  that  the  desolation  thereof  is  nigh.     Then  let  21 
them  which  are  in  Judea  flee  to  the  mountains ;  and  let 
them  which  are  in  the  midst  of  it  depart  out ;  and  let  not 
them  that  are  in  the  countries  enter  thereinto.     For  these  22 


16.  ye  shall  be  betfayedl  In  consequence  of  the  disunions  prophe- 
sied in  i.  34,  xii.  53  ;  Matt.  x.  21. 

so»ie  of  yoii\  of  the  four  to  whom  He  was  immediately  speaking,  per- 
haps all,  and  certainly  two  were  martyred. 

17.  hated  of  all  fUc-n]  ii.  34,  vi.  22;  John  xvii.  14;  i  Pet.  iv.  14, 
16.  "As  concerning  this  sect  we  know  that  everywhere  it  is  spoken 
against,"  Acts  xxviii.  22.  "We  have  found  this  man  a  pestilent 
fellow,  and  a  mover  of  sedition,  and  a  ringleader  of  the  sect  of  the 
Nazarenes,"  id.  xxiv.  5.  "They  speak  against  you  as  evil  doers," 
I  Pet.  ii.  12.  "  Reproached  for  the  name  of  Christ,"  id.  iv.  14.  "A 
malefic,  an  excessive,  execrable  superstition"  (Tac,  Plin. ,  Suet.). 
'  Away  with  the  godless  ! '     '  The  Christians  to  the  lions  ! ' 

18.  not  a  hair  of  your  head]  for  they  are  "all  numbered,"  Matt. 
X.  30.  The  previous  verse  (16)  is  of  course  sufficient  to  shew  that  the 
meaning  is  spiritual  here,  not  literal  as  in  Acts  xxvii.  34. 

shall... perish]  i.e.  not  without  the  special  Providence  of  God,  nor 
without  reward,  nor  before  the  due  time.     Bengel. 

19.  In  your  patience  possess  ye  your  souls]  Rather,  with  the  better 
reading.  By  your  patience  ye  shall  gain  your  souls  or  lives.  Mk. 
xiii.  13.  The  need  of  patience  and  endurance  to  the  end  is  very  promi- 
nently inculcated  in  the  N.  T.,  Rom.  v.  3;  2  Thess.  vii.  4  ;  Heb.  x.  36; 
Jas.  i.  4,  &c.  Endurance,  not  violence,  is  the  Christian's  protection, 
and  shall  save  the  soul,  and  the  trtce  life,  even  if  it  loses  all  else. 

20.  Jerusaletti  compassed  with  armies]  See  on  xix.  43,  and  Jos.  B.f . 
V.  2,  §  6,  12.  Some  regard  this  as  the  "  abomination  that  maketh 
desolate." 

21.  them  ivhich  are  in  Juded]  This  expression  again  most  clearly 
proves  what  was  the  near  horizon  of  this  Prophecy. 

flee  to  the  mountains]  The  Christians,  in  consequence  of  "a  certain 
oracular  utterance "  (Euseb.  H.  E.  III.  5),  or  an  angel-warning  (Epi- 
phan.  Haer.  i.  123),  but  more  probably  in  consequence  o^  this  warning, 
fled,  before  the  siege,  out  of  Judaea,  to  the  little  Peraean  town  of  Pelhi, 
among  the  Transjordanic  hills. 

/;/  tlic  midst  of  it]     Rather,  her,  i.e.  Jerusalem. 

in  the  countries]     Rather,  in  the  fields. 


3i8  ST    LUKE,    XXI.  [w.  23—25. 

be  the  days  of  vengeance,  that  all  things  which  are  written 

23  may  be  fulfilled.  But  woe  unto  them  that  are  with  child, 
and  to  them  that  give  suck,  in  those  days,  for  there  shall  be 

24  great  distress  in  the  land,  and  wrath  upon  this  people.  And 
they  shall  fall  by  the  edge  of  the  sword,  and  shall  be  led 
away  captive  into  all  nations  :  and  Jerusalem  shall  be  trod- 
den down  of  the  Gentiles,  until  the  times  of  the  Gentiles  be 

25  fulfilled.  And  there  shall  be  signs  in  the  sun,  and  in  the 
moon,  and  in  the  stars;   and   upon  the  earth   distress  of 

22.  the  days  of  vengeance\  See  Dan.  ix.  ■26,  27.  Josephus  again  and 
again  calls  attention  to  the  abnormal  wickedness  of  the  Jews  as  the 
cause  of  the  divine  retribution  which  overtook  them.  In  his  Wars 
of  the  yeius  he  declares  that  no  generation  and  no  city  was  "so  plunged 
in  misery  since  the  foundation  of  the  world."     B.  y.  V.  10,  §  5. 

a//  things  which  are  writtenl  See  xix.  42;  Is.  xxix.  2 — 4;  Hos.  x.  14, 
15;  Deut.  xxviii.  49 — 57;  i  K.  ix.  6 — 9;  Ps.  Ixxix.  i — 13;  Mic.  iii. 
8—12. 

23.  woe  unto  them  that  are  ivith  child'\  The  'woe'  is  only  an  ex- 
pression of  pity  for  them  because  their  flight  would  be  retarded  or 
rendered  impossible. 

great  distress. .. ajid  wrath^  i  Thess.  ii.  16,  "Wrath  is  come  upon  them 
to  the  uttermost."  Josephus  says  that,  when  there  were  no  more  to 
plunder  or  slay,  after  "  incredible  slaughter  and  miseries,"  Titus  ordered 
the  city  to  be  razed  so  completely  as  to  look  like  a  spot  which  had 
been  never  inhabited.     B.  y.  vi.  10,  vii.  i. 

24.  fall  by  the  edge  of  the  sword'\  Literally,  '■' mouth  of  the  sword" 
Gen.  xxxiv.  26.  1,100,000  Jews  are  said  to  have  perished  in  the  war 
and  siege.  "It  seems  as  though  the  whole  race  had  appointed  a  ren- 
dezvous for  extermination."     Renan. 

led  away  captive  into  all  natumsl  Josephus  speaks  of  97,000  Jews 
sent  to  various  provinces  and  to  the  Egyptian  mines.     B.  y.  vi.  9. 

shall  be  trodden  do7un  of  the  Gentiles\  So  that  the  very  thing  hap- 
pened which  the  Maccabees  had  tried  to  avert  by  their  fortifications 
(i  Mace.  iv.  60).  All  sorts  of  Gentiles — Romans,  Saracens,  Persians, 
Franks,  Norsemen,  Turks — have  '  trodden  down  '  Jerusalem  since  then. 
The  estai  patonmene  of  the  original  implies  a  more  permanent  result 
than  the  simple  future.    Comp.  Rev.  xi.  ■!. 

until  the  times  of  the  Ge?itiles  be  fidfilled^  By  the  times — '  seasons  ' 
or  '  opportunities '  of  the  Gentiles — is  meant  the  period  allotted  for 
their  full  evangelisation.  Rom.  xi.  25,  "Blindness  in  part  is  happened 
to  Israel,  U7itil  the  fulness  of  the  Gentiles  be  come  in." 

25.  signs  in  the  sun,  a?id  in  the  moon,  and  i}i  the  starsi  The  articles 
should  be  omitted.  These  signs  are  mainly  metaphorical — the  eclipse 
of  nations  and  the  downfall  of  potentates — though  there  may  be  literal 
fulfilments  also.  The  language  is  that  of  the  ancient  prophets,  Amos 
viii.  9;  Joel  ii.  30,  31 ;  Ezek.  xxxii.  7,  8,  as  in  Rev.  vi.  12 — 14. 


vv.  26—32.]  ST    LUKE,   XXI.  319 

nations,  with  perplexity j    the  sea  and  the  waves  roaring; 
men's  hearts  failing  them  for  fear,  and  for  looking   after  26 
those  things  which  are  coming  on  the  earth  :   for  the  powers 
of  heaven  shall  be  shaken.  And  then  shall  they  see  the  Son  of  27 
man  coming  in  a  cloud  with  power  and  great  glory. 

28.     Hope  for  the  Faithful. 

And  when  these  things  begin  to  come  to  pass,  the7i  look  28 
up,  and  lift  up  your  heads ;  for  your  redemption  draweth 
nigh. 


'&* 


29 — 36      Parable  of  the  Fig-tree.     Duty  of  Watchfulness. 

And  he  spake  to  them  a  parable;  Behold  the  fig  tree,  and  29 
all  the  trees  ;  when  they  now  shoot  forth,  ye  see  and  know  30 
of  your  own  selves  that  summer  is  now  nigh  at  hand.  So  31 
likewise  ye,  when  ye  see  these  things  come  to  pass,  know 
ye  that  the  kingdom  of  God  is  nigh  at  hand.  Verily  I  say  32 
unto  you,  This  generation  shall  not  pass  away,  till  all  be  ful- 


distress  of  nations]     Synocke,  xii.  50  and  2  Cor.  ii.  4. 

the  sea  and  the  waves  roaritig]  The  true  reading  is  probably  ^X""^^) 
and  the  translation,  ' '  in  perplexity  at  the  roar  of  the  sea  and  surge." 
Comp.  Ps.  xlvi.  4.  "  In  that  day  they  shall  roar  against  them  like  the 
roaring  of  the  sea,"  Is.  v.  30.  The  raging  sea  is  the  sea  of  nations,  Jude 
13  ;  Rev.  xvii.  15. 

26.  vten' s  hearts  failing  them\     Literally,  "men  fainting." 
on  the  earth]    Literally,  '■'■on  the  habitable  tiwr Id." 

the  powers  of  heaven]  i.e.  the  "bright  dynasts"  (Aesch.  Ag.  6) — the 
Hosts  of  the  Heavens. 

27.  cojfiing  in  a  cloud]  Metaphorically  in  great  world  crises  (Matt, 
xvi.  17,  28);  actually  at  the  Last  Coming.  Acts  i.  11  ;  Matt.  xxvi. 
€4;  Rev.  xiv.  14. 

28.    Hope  for  the  Faithful. 

28.  look  up]  The  '  earnest  expectation  '  {apokaradokia — '  watching 
■with  outstretched  neck')  of  the  creature,  Rom.  viii.  19,  23.  This  verb 
cnakuptein  only  occurs  in  xiii.  11.    Comp.  Matt.  xxiv.  31. 

29—36.    Parable  of  the  Fig-tree.    Duty  of  Watchfulness. 

29.  and  all  the  trees]  This  is  added  by  St  Luke  only.  The  fig-tree 
would  be  specially  significant  to  Jewish  readers. 

32.      This  generation  shall  not  pass  away,  till  all  be  fulfilled]     This 


320  ST   LUKE,   XXI.  [vv.  33—36. 

33  filled.  Heaven  and  earth  shall  pass  away :  but  my  words 
shall  not  pass  away. 

34  And  take  heed  to  yourselves,  lest  at  any  time  your  hearts 
be  overcharged  with  surfeiting,  and  drunkenness,  and  cares 

35  of  this  life,  and  so  that  day  come  upon  you  unawares.  For 
as  a  snare  shall  it  come  on  all  them  that  dwell  on  the  face 

36  of  the  whole  earth.  Watch  ye  therefore,  and  pray  always, 
that  ye  may  be  accounted  worthy  to  escape  all  these  things 
that  shall  come  to  pass,  and  to  stand  before  the  Son  of 
man. 

verse  has  a  nearer  and  a  farther  meaning.  That  very  generation  would 
not  have  passed  when,  40  years  later,  the  Jewish  nation  waj  crushed, 
and  the  Mosaic  dispensation  rendered  impossible.  But  getiea  also 
means  race,  and  the  Jewish  race  shall  last  till  the  end  of  all  things. 

33.  Heaven  and  earth  shall  pass  away\  2  Pet.  iii.  7 ;  Is.  li.  6 ;  Ps. 
cii.  ■26. 

but  tny  words  shall  not  pass  away]  Rather,  my  sayings,  my  utter- 
ances.   Is.  xl.  8. 

34.  sicrfeiting]    The  headache  after  drunkenness. — Lat.  crapula. 
drunkenness]    Comp.  Rom.  xiir.   13.      Hence  the  exhortation   "be 

sober,"  nepsate,  i  Pet.  iv.  7 ;  i  Thess.  v.  6. 

ca7-es  of  this  life]  Comp.  Matt.  xiii.  22.  The  surfeit  oi  yesterday ; 
drunkenness  oi  to-day ;  cares  for  to-mon-orv  (Van  Oosterzee). 

35.  as  a  snare]  Eccles.  ix.  12  "as  the  fishes  that  are  taken  in  an 
evil  net,  and  as  the  birds  that  are  caught  in  the  snare,  so  are  the  sons  of 
men  snared  in  an  evil  time."  There  is  the  same  metaphor  in  Is.  xxiv. 
17.  The  common  metaphor  is  "  as  a  thief,"  i  Thess.  vi.  3  ;  Rev.  iii.  3, 
xvi.  15;  but  St  Paul  uses  this  metaphor  also,  Rom.  xi.  9;  i  Tim. 
iii.  7. 

them  that  dwell]  Literally,  '■'■thei7i  that  sit."  A  Hebraism  (Gen.  xix. 
30,  &c.),  but  perhaps  with  the  collateral  notion  of  'sitting  at  ease,'  Jer. 
viii  14,  XXV.  29  (LXX.).  'Face  of  the  earth'  is  also  a  Hebraism,  2  Sam. 
xviii.  8. 

36.  pray  always]  xviii.  i ;  Eph.  vi.  18.  Render,  watch  ye  at  all 
times,  making  supplication. 

accounted  worthy]  See  on  xx.  35.  Another  reading  is  '^ye  may  prevail" 
(katischusetc). 

to  stand  before  the  Son  of  man]  "The  ungodly  shall  not  stand  in  the 
judgment,"  Ps.  i.  5.  "Who  shall  stand  when  He  appeareth,"  Mai. 
iii.  2. 

the  Son  of  man]  See  on  v.  24,  ix.  58.  On  this  day  our  Lord  also 
uttered  the  Parables  of  the  Ten  Virgins  and  of  the  Talents,  and  other 
warnings.  Matt.  xxv.  On  this  occasion  too  (as  Van  Oosterzee  con- 
jectures) our  Lord  may  have  used  His  agraphon  dogma  "in  that 
wherein  I  shall  find  you,  in  that  will  I  judge  you,"  Just.  Mart.  DiaL 

XLVII. 


w.  37,  38;  1,2.]     ST   LUKE,   XXI.  XXII.  321 

37,  38.     How  yesus  sj>ent  the  last  Public  Days  of  His 

Mijiistry. 

And  in  the  day  time  he  was  teaching  in  the  temple ;   and  37 
at  night  he  went  out,  and  abode  in  the  mount  that  is  called 
the  mou?it  of  Olives.     And  all  the  people  came  early  in  the  38 
morning  to  him  in  the  temple,  for  to  hear  him. 

Ch.  XXII.  I,  2.     Approach  of  the  Passover.     The  Purpose 

of  the  Priests. 

Now  the  feast  of  unleavened  bread  drew  nigh,  which  is  22 
called   the    Passover.     And    the  chief  priests   and  scribes  2 

37,  38.    How  Jesus  spent  the  last  Public  Days  of  His 

Ministry. 

37.  in  the  day  titne\  Rather,  diulng  tlie  days.  The  notice  is  retro- 
spective, applying  to  Palm  Sunday,  and  the  Monday  and  Tuesday 
in  Passion  Week.  After  Tuesday  evening  He  never  entered  the  Temple 
again.  Wednesday  and  Thursday  were  spent  in  absolute  and  unre- 
corded retirement,  perhaps  with  His  disciples  in  the  house  at  Bethany, 
until  Thursday  evening  when  He  went  into  Jerusalem  again  for  the  Last 
Supper. 

at  mghf]     Rather,  during  the  nights. 

attd  abode]  Literally,  '■^  used  to  bivouac;"  it  is  very  probable  that 
He  slept  in  the  open  air  with  His  disciples,  as  is  very  common  with 
Orientals.  He  would  be  safe  on  the  slopes  of  Olivet,  among  the 
booths  of  the  Galilaean  pilgrims;  see  xxii.  39  ;  John  xviii.  i,  2. 

in  the  7nouu-i]    Literally,  "  into  "  i.  e.  he  went  to,  and  stayed  upon. 

38.  came  early  in  the  fnorjiitig]  The  verb,  which  does  not  occur  else- 
where in  the  N.T.,  means  ^resorted  to  Him  at  early  dawn,'  Jer.  xxix. 
19,  'rising  up  early'  (LXX.). 

in  the  temple]  Comp.  xix.  47;  Acts  v.  21.  They  came  for  the  last 
time  on  Tuesday  morning.  On  the  Thursday  morning,  Nisan  13,  our 
Lord  woke  never  to  sleep  on  earth  again. 

A  few  cursive  MSS.  here  add  the  "Gospel  for  Penitents,"  John  vii. 
53 — viii.  II. 

Ch.  XXIL  1,   2.     Approach  of  the  Passover.     The  Purpose 

OF  THE  Priests. 

In  this  narrative  of  the  Last  Supper,  Passion,  Trial,  and  Ciiicifixion 
the  chief  points  peculiar  to  St  Luke  are  in  xxii.  8,  15,  -24,  28—30,  43, 
44,  61,  xxiii.  2,  5—16,  27—31,  34,  39— 4.3»  46,  5'- 

1.     drew  nii^h]     Rather,  was  drawing  near. 

■which  is  called  the  Passover]  This  little  explanation  shews  most 
clearly  that  St  Luke  is  writing  mainly  for  Gentiles.  Strictly  speaking 
the  Passover  was  not  co-extensive  with  the  Feast  of  Unleavened  Bread,  as 

ST  LUKE  2  I 


322  ST   LUKE,   XXII.  [v.  3. 

sought  how  they  might  kill  him;  for  they  feared  the 
people. 

3 — 6.     The  Traitor  and  the  Priests. 
3      Then  entered  Satan  into  Judas  surnamed  Iscariot,  being 

is  clearly  stated  in  Numb,  xxviii.  16,  17,  "In  iht fourteenth  day  of  the 
first  month  is  the  /!assover...a.nA  in  (hejifteenth  is  the  feast"  (Lev.  xxiii. 
5,  6).  Passover  is  the  translation  of  the  Hebrew  Pesach;  of  this  the 
Greek  pascha  is  a  transliteration  with  a  sort  of  alliterative  allusion 
to  the  Greek  pascho,  I  suffer.  See  on  the  Passover  Ex.  xii.  1 1 — 20. 
The  Jews  of  later  ages  had  gradually  assumed  that  a  wide  difference 
was  intended  between  the  "Egyptian  passover"  and  the  "permanent 
passover." 

2.  the  chief  priests  and  sci-ibes\  Their  humiliation  and  defeat  before 
the  people — the  immense  and  divine  superiority  of  the  wisdom  of  Jesus 
so  publicly  displayed — had  at  last  aroused  them  into  irreconcilable 
hostility.  It  is  very  noticeable  that  the  Pharisees,  as  a  distinct  party, 
now  vanish  entirely  into  the  background.  They  are  scarcely  mentioned 
again  except  in  Matt,  xxvii.  62. 

soughf]  Rather,  were  seeking.  The  word  involves  a  continuous 
effort,  and  probably  includes  the  memorable  meeting  in  the  Palace  of 
Caiaphas,  which  is  traditionally  placed  on  the  'Hill  of  Evil  Counsel,' 
but  was  probably  close  to  the  Temple  precincts.  They  seem  to  have 
come  on  that  occasion,  in  consequence  of  the  advice  of  Caiaphas,  to 
three  conclusions,  (i)  To  put  Jesus  to  death;  (2)  to  do  it  as  secretly  as 
possible ;  and  (3)  not  to  do  it  during  the  Feast,  so  as  to  avoid  the  chance 
of  tumults  on  the  part  of  the  Galilaean  pilgrims.  If  this  meeting  was 
on  Tuesday  evening,  at  the  very  time  that  they  were  deciding  not  to 
kill  Jesus  (Ps.  ii.  2)  for  more  than  eight  days — and  it  was  unusual  to 
put  to  death  during  the  Passover,  Acts  xii.  4 — He,  seated  on  the 
slopes  of  Olivet,  was  telling  His  disciples  that  before  the  Passover  He 
should  be  slain.  Matt.  xxvi.  i — 5. 

3 — 6.    The  Traitor  and  the  Priests. 

3.  77ien  entered  Satan  into  yt/das]  No  other  expression  seems 
adequately  to  explain  his  wickedness.  It  began  in  avarice,  disappoint- 
ment, and  jealousy  ;  and,  when  he  had  long  weakened  his  soul  by 
indulgence  in  these  dark,  besetting  sins,  the  imaginary  loss  of  the 
"  300  pence  "  of  which  he  would  have  had  the  disposal  (John  xii.  4,  5  ; 
Mk.  xiv.  10),  — the  now  undisguised  announcement  of  our  Lord  that  He 
should  be  not  only  rejected,  hut  erucifed  (Matt.  xx.  19) — the  consequent 
shattering  of  all  Messianic  hopes  —  the  growing  sense  that  he  was 
becoming  distasteful  to  his  Master  and  his  fellows — the  open  rebuke 
which  he  had  drawn  on  his  own  head  by  his  hypocritic  greed  at 
Bethany  (John  xii.  6) — the  rumoured  hostility  of  all  the  most  venerated 
.  authorities  of  the  nation — all  these  formed  the  climax  of  hia  tempta- 
tions:— and  then,'  at  last,  the  tempting  opportunity  met  the  susceptible 
disposition.     "  Instead  of  dominion — service  ;   instead  of  power — per- 


w.  4— 6.]  ST    LUKE,   XXII. 


323 


of  the  number  of  the  twelve.     And  he  went  his  way,  and  4 
communed  with    the  chief  priests   and   captains,   how   he 
might   betray  him  unto  them.     And  they  were  glad,  and  s 
covenanted  to  give  him  money.  And  he  promised,  and  sought  6 
opportunity  to  betray  him  unto  them  in  the  absence  of  the 
multitude. 

secution ;  instead  of  honour — shame  ;  this  was  all  that  was  left  of  his 
hopes  and  prospects  once  so  brilliant."  His  crime  was  but  the  epitome 
of  months — perhaps  years — of  secret  faithlessness.  "Dicitur  Satan  in 
reprobos  intrare,  cum  reverse  Dei  metu,  extincta  rationis  luce,  pudore 
etiam  excusso,  sensus  omnes  occupat."  Calvin. 
Iscariot\     See  on  vi.  16. 

4.  he  went  his  way]  We  infer  from  the  combined  accounts  that  he 
met  the  priests  on  two  occasions,  on  one  of  which  the  bargain  was 
proposed,  and  on  the  other  concluded. 

cortwiuned]     Spoke  with. 

captains]  Literally,  '■'■generals."  The  Z^z^/ftV  captains  of  the  Temple 
who  kept  order  during  the  Feasts.  There  was  strictly  only  one  who  bore 
the  title  of  "the  general  of  the  Temple" — "man  of  the  mountain  of 
the  House"  (see  Neh.  ii.  8,  vii.  2 ;  Jer.  xx.  i  ;  2  Mace.  iii.  4)  ;  but  he 
had  guards  under  him  (Jos.  B.  y.  VI.  5,  §  3),  and  the  name  might  be 
applied  to  the  whole  body.  One  of  the  bitter  complaints  against  the 
High  Priests  of  the  day  was  that  they  made  their  own  sons  "generals 
of  the  Temple."  St  Luke  was  aware  that  the  special  iSSlo.  applied  only 
to  one  person,  as  appears  from  Acts  iv.  i. 

how  he  might  betray  him]  Rather,  give  Him  up.  The  word  used  is 
not  prodo,  but  the  milder  parado. 

5.  they  were  glad]  This  spontaneous  offer — and  that  too  from  one 
of  Christ's  immediate  followers — seemed  to  solve  all  their  difficulties. 

covefianted]  Or,  'agreed;'  in  St  Mark,  'promised.'  In  Matt.  xxvi.  15 
it  is  said  that  they  'paid'  or  'weighed'  him  the  money,  with  a  reference 
to  Zech.  xi.  12,  13  (LXX.).  This  was  perhaps  done  at  a  second  meeting 
when  the  actual  plan  was  ripened. 

to  give  him  money]  The  proposal  came  from  the  wretched  man 
himself  (Matt.  xxvi.  15).  The  paltry  sum  given  (which  is  mentioned 
by  St  Matthew  only) — 30  shekels,  about  ^3.  \6s.,  the  price  given  for 
the  meanest  slave — shews  that  this  sum  was  either  regarded  as  earnest- 
money,  or  more  probably  that  the  Priests  felt  themselves  quite  able 
to  carry  out  their  plot,  though  less  conveniently,  without  any  aid  from 
Judas.  On  one  side  of  these  shekels  would  be  stamped  the  olive-branch, 
the  emblem  of  peace ;  on  the  obverse  the  censer,  the  type  of  prayer, 
with  the  inscription,  "Jerusalem  the  Holy"! 

6.  sought  opportunity]  Doubtless  he  was  baffled  at  first  by  the 
entire  and  unexpected  seclusion  which  Jesus  observed  on  the  Wednesday 
and  Thursday. 

in  the  absence  of  the  multitude]  Rather,  without  a  mob  ;  arep  is 
poetic,  and  only  occurs  here  and  in  vs.  35. 

21 — a 


324  ST    LUKE,   XXII.  [w.  7—12. 

7 — 13.     Preparation  for  the  Passover. 

7  Then  came  the  day  of  unleavened  bread,  when  the  pass- 

8  over  must  be  killed.     And  he  sent  Peter  and  John,  saying, 

9  Go  and  prepare  us  the  passover,  that  we  may  eat.    And 

10  they  said  unto  him,  Where  wilt  thou  that  we  prepare  ?  And 
he  said  unto  them,  Behold,  when  ye  are  entered  into  the 
city,  there  shall  a  man  meet  you,  bearing  a  pitcher  of  water; 

11  follow  him  into  the  house  where  he  entereth  in.  And  ye 
shall  say  unto  the  goodman  of  the  house,  The  Master  saith 
unto  thee,  Where  is  the  guestchamber,  where  I  shall  eat  the 

12  passover  with  my  disciples  ?     And  he  shall  shew  you  a  large 

7—13.    Preparation  for  the  Passover. 

7.  Then  came  the  day  of  unleavened  bread'\  All  leaven  was  most 
carefully  and  scrupulously  put  away  on  the  afternoon  of  Thursday, 
Nisan  13. 

when  the  passover  must  be  killed^  Rather,  be  sacrificed.  On  the 
difficult  question  whether  the  Last  Supper  was  the  actual  Paschal  meal, 
or  an  atiticipatory  Passover,  see  the  Excursus. 

8.  he  settt  Peter  and  yohti]  Apparently  our  Lord,  now  withdrawal 
from  His  active  work,  said  nothing  about  the  Passover  till  the  disciples 
questioned  Him  as  to  His  wishes.  The  old  law  that  the  Paschal  Lamb 
must  be  chosen  ten  days  beforehand  had  long  fallen  into  desuetude. 
Its  observance  would  have  been  impossible  for  the  myriads  of  pilgrims 
who  came  from  all  parts  of  the  world. 

10.  a  man ..  .hearing  a  pitcher  of  water'\  A  very  unusual  sight  in  the 
East,  where  the  water  is  drawn  by  women.  He  must  probably  have 
been  the  slave  of  one  who  was  an  open  or  secret  disciple;  imless  we 
have  here  a  reference  to  the  Jewish  custom  of  the  master  of  a  house 
himself  drawing  the  water  with  which  the  unleavened  bread  was 
kneaded  on  Nisan  13.  If  so  the  "man  bearing  a  pitcher  of  water"  may 
have  even  been  the  Evangelist  St  Mark,  in  the  house  of  whose  mother, 
and  probably  in  the  very  upper  room  where  the  Last  Sup})er  was  held, 
the  disciples  used  at  first  to  meet  (Acts  xii.  12).  The  mysteriousness 
of  the  sign  was  perhaps  intended  to  baflle,  as  long  as  was  needful,  the 
machinations  of  Judas. 

11.  goodman\     See  on  xii.  39. 
guestchamber^     Kataluma,  rendered  "inn''''  in  ii.  7. 

the  passover]  Although  reasons  will  be  given  in  Excursus  V.  for 
the  view  that  this  was  not  the  actual  Passover,  it  is  clear  that  our 
Lord  designedly  spoke  of  it  as  //is  Passover,  and  gave  it  a  paschal 
character.  It  is  possible  that  Jewish  customs  unknown  to  us  made  it 
allowable  for  individuals  on  special  occasions  to  anticipate  the  regular 
passover. 


32  5 


'7 


w.  13—17.]  ST   LUKE,   XXII. 

upper  room  furnished :   there  make  ready.     And  they  went,  ,3 
and  found  as  he  had  said  unto  them :  and  they  made  ready 
the  passover. 

14 — 38.     The  last  Supper. 

And  when  the  hour  was  come,   he  sat   down,   and   the  14 
twelve  apostles  with  him.     And  he  said  unto  them,  With  15 
desire  I  have  desired  to  eat  this  passover  with  you  before 
I  suffer :  for  I  say  unto  you,  I  will  not  any  more  eat  thereof,  16 
until  it  be  fulfilled  in  the  kingdom  of  God.     And  he  took 
the  cup,  and  gave  thanks,  and  said,  Take  this,  and  divide 

12.  upper  room]  The  usual  place  of  resort  for  large  gatherings  in  a 
Jewish  house ;  probably  the  very  room  which  also  witnessed  the  appear- 
ance of  the  Risen  Christ  to  the  Twelve,  and  the  Descent  of  the  Holy 
Ghost  at  Pentecost. 

furnished^  with  divans,  cushions,  &c.  Ezek.  xxiii.  41  (LXX.);  Acts 
ix.  34  (Greek). 

14 — 38.     The  last  Supper. 

14.  when  the  hour  was  come\  If  the  meal  was  intended  to  be 
directly  Paschal,  this  would  be  "between  the  two  evenings"  (Ex.  xii.  6); 
a  phrase  interpreted  by  the  Jews  to  mean  between  three  and  six,  and 
by  the  Samaritans  to  mean  between  twilight  and  sunset.  Probably 
Jesus  and  His  disciples,  anxious  to  avoid  dangerous  notice,  would  set 
forth  towards  dusk. 

he  sat  dow>i\  Rather,  reclined.  The  custom  of  eating  the  Passover 
standing  had  long  been  abandoned. 

15.  With  desire  I  have  desired~[  i.e.  I  earnestly  desired.  A  He- 
braism.    Matt.  xiii.  14,  «S:c. 

to  eat  this  passover']  The  expression  may  perhaps  point  to  the  fact 
that  this  was  not  the  actual  Jewish  Paschal  meal,  but  one  which  was 
intended  to  supersede  it  by  a  Passover  of  far  more  divine  significance. 

16.  /  will  not  any  more  eat  thereof]  The  true  reading  probably  is, 
I  will  not  eat  it.     The  'not  any  more'  however  is  a  correct  gloss. 

until  it  be  fulfilled  in  the  kingdom  of  God]  i.e.  until  the  true  Pass- 
over has  been  offered  by  my  death,  and  so  the  new  kingdom  esta- 
blished. 

17.  he  took  the  cup,  and  gave  thanks]  Literally,  "and  after  receiving 
the  cup,  and  giving  thanks."  From  eucharistein  comes  our  word 
Eucharist. 

The  main  customs  of  the  Jewish  Passover  are  as  follows  :— (i)  Each 
drinks  a  cup  of  wine— 'the  cup  of  consecration'— over  which  the  master 
of  the  house  pronounces  a  blessing.  (2)  Hands  are  washed,  and  a  table 
carried  in,  on  which  are  placed  bitter  herbs,  cakes  of  unleavened  bread, 
the  Charoseth  (a  dish  made  of  dates,  raisins,  and  vinegar),  the  paschal 
Iamb,  and  the  flesh  of  the  Chagigah  or  feast-offering.     (3)  Tiic  father 


326  ST   LUKE,   XXII.  [vv.  18—20. 

18  //  among  yourselves  :  for  I  say  unto  you,  I  will  not  drink  of 
the  fruit  of  the  vine,  until  the  kingdom  of  God  shall  come. 

19  And  he  took  bread,  and  gave  thanks,  and  brake  it,  and 
gave  unto  them,  saying.  This  is  my  body  which  is  given  for 

20  you  :  this  do  in  remembrance  of  me.  Likewise  also  the  cup 
after  supper,  saying,  This  cup  is  the  new  testament  in  my 
blood,  which  is  shed  for  you. 

dips  a  morsel  of  unleavened  bread  and  bitter  herbs,  about  the  size  of 
an  olive,  in  the  Charoselh,  eats  it  with  a  benediction,  and  distributer,  a 
similar  'sop'  to  all  present.  (4)  A  second  cup  of  wine  is  poured 
out,  and  the  youngest  present  asks  the  meaning  of  the  service,  to 
which  the  father  replies.  (5)  The  first  part  of  the  Hallel  (Ps.  cvii. — 
cxiv.)  is  sung.  (6)  Grace  is  said,  and  a  benediction  again  pro- 
nounced; after  which  the  father  distributes  bitter  herbs  and  unleavened 
bread  dipped  in  the  Charoseth.  (7)  The  Paschal  lamb  is  eaten,  and 
a  third  cup  of  wine  handed  round.  (8)  After  another  thanksgiving, 
a  fourth  cup — the  cup  of  joy — is  drunk.  (9)  The  rest  of  the  Hallel 
(Ps.  cxv. — cxviii.)  is  sung. 

The  cup  mentioned  in  this  verse  has  been  supposed  to  be  the  third 
cup  of  wine  in  the  Jewish  ceremonial  ;  and  the  actual  chalice  of  the 
Eucharist  (the  "cup  of  blessing,"  i  Cor.  x.  16,  Cos  ha-Berdchah)  is 
identified  with  the  fourth  cup.  We  also  see  in  the  Last  Supper  the 
benediction,  and  possibly  the  Hallel  (Matt.  xxvi.  30).  But  (i)  the 
identifications  are  somewhat  precarious.  (2)  There  is  no  certainty  that 
the  "  Sacrijidal  Passover"  tlius  observed  by  the  Jews  was  identical  in 
ceremonial  with  the  "  Mef/iorial  Passover^''  which  now  alone  they  are 
able  to  observe. 

18.  of  the  fruit  of  the  vine]  This  is  perhaps  a  reference  to  the 
Jewish  benediction  pronounced  over  the  first  cup,  'Blessed  be  Thou, 
O  Lord  our  God,  who  hast  created  the  fruit  of  the  vine.' 

19.  he  took  bread]  The  account  in  St  Luke  closely  agrees  with 
that  given  by  St  Paul  (i  Cor.  xi.  23 — 26),  which  he  'received  from  the 
Lord.' 

This  is  my  bodyi]  Corap.  "I  am  the  door,"  John  x.  7.  "  That  rock 
was  Christ,"  i  Cor.  x.  4.  "The  bread  which  we  break,  is  it  not  the 
co'mmunion  of  the  body  of  Christ?"  i  Cor.  x.  16.  All  the  fierce 
theological  debates  between  Roman  Catholics,  Lutherans,  Zuinglians, 
Calvinists,  &c.  might  have  been  avoided  if  men  had  borne  in  mind  the 
warning  of  Jesus,  "It  is  the  spirit  that  quickeneth;  the  flesh  profiteth 
nothing :  the  words  that  I  speak  unto  you,  they  are  spirit,  and  they  are 
life,"  John  vi.  63. 

in  remembrance  of  me]  The  emphasis  is  on  the  latter  words.  The 
Christian  Passover  was  no  more  to  be  in  remembrance  of  the  deli- 
verance from  Egypt,  but  of  that  far  greater  deliverance  wrought  by 
Christ. 

20.  the  nezv  testament]  Hence  the  name  of  the  New  Testament. 
The  word  Diatheke  (Heb.  Bcrith)  means  both  a  will,  and  an  agreement 


vv.  21— 26.]  ST    LUKE,    XXII.  327 

But  behold,  the  hand  of  him  that  betrayeth  me  is  with  " 
me  on  the  table.    And  truly  the  Son  of  man  goeth,  as  it  was  22 
determined:  but  woe  unto  that  man  by  whom  he  is  betrayed. 
And  they  began  to  inquire  among  themselves,  which  of  them  23 
it  was  that  should  do  this  thing. 

And  there  was  also  a  strife  among  them,  which  of  them  24 
should  be  accounted  the  greatest.     And  he  said  unto  them,  25 
The  kings  of  the  Gentiles  exercise  lordship  over  them ;  and 
they  that  exercise  authority  upon  them  are  called  benefac- 
tors.    But  ye  shall  not  be  so  :  but  he  that  is  greatest  among  26 

or  covenant,  see  Jar.  xxxi.  31.  "It  contains  all  the  absolute  elements  of 
the  one,  with  the  conditional  elements  of  the  other.  Hence  the  New 
Testament  {kainc  Diaiheke)  is  the  revelation  of  a  new  relation  on  God's 
part  with  the  conditions  necessary  to  its  realisation  on  man's  part." 
Fairbairn. 

in  my  bloody  i.e.  ratified  by  my  blood  shed  for  you.  The  best  com- 
ment is  Heb.  ix.  15,  18 — 22;  i  Cor.  xi.  25.  The  other  Synoptists  have 
'*  my  blood  of  the  New  Testament." 

21.  the  hand  of  him  that  betrayeth  me]  For  fuller  details  of  this  last 
awful  warning  to  Judas,  and  of  the  intimation  of  the  person  intended 
to  His  nearest  disciples,  see  Matt.  xxvi.  21 — 25;  Mk.  xiv.  18 — 21; 
John  xiii.  21—26.  Whether  Judas  actually  partook  of  the  Holy  Com- 
munion has  always  been  uncertain.  Bengal  quotas  the  language  of 
St  Ambrose  to  Theodosius,  "Will  you  hold  forth  those  hands  still 
dripping  with  the  blood  of  unjust  slaughter,  and  with  them  take  the 
most  holy  body  of  the  Lord?" 

22.  as  it  was  determined]  "being  delivered  by  the  determinate 
counsel  and  foreknowledge  of  God,"  Acts  ii.  23,  iv.  27,  28.  "The 
Lamb  s/ain  from  tlie  foundation  of  the  world"  Rev.  xiii.  8.  The 
type  of  Judas  was  Ahithophel,  Ps.  xli.  9. 

23.  to  inquire  among  themselves]  The  pathetic  details  are  given  by 
St  John.  It  is  characteristic  of  their  noble,  simple,  loving  natures  ihat 
they  seem  to  have  had  no  suspicions  of  Judas. 

24.  /hid  there  was  also  a  strife]  Philoneikia,  'an  ambitious  conten- 
tion,' occurs  here  only.  It  is  probable  that  this  dispute  arose  while 
they  were  taking  their  places  at  the  couches  (triclinia),  and  may  pos- 
sibly have  been  occasioned  by  some  claim  made  by  Judas  for  official 
precedence.  He  seems  to  have  reclined  on  the  left  of  our  Lord,  aiul 
John  on  the  right,  while  Peter  seems  to  have  been  at  the  top  of  the 
next  mat  or  couch,  at  the  left  of  Judas,  across  and  behind  whom  he 
stretched  forward  to  whisper  his  question  to  St  John  (John  xiii.  23,  24). 
For  previous  instances  of  this  worldly  ambition  see  ix.  4'>— 4^  I 
Matt.  XX.  20 — 24. 

25.  exercise  lordship]  Peter  learnt  this  lesson  well,    t  Pet.  v.  3. 

are  called  benefactors]  Energetai—7i  name  often  inscribed  on  coins. 
How  worthless  and  hollow  the  title  was  the  disciples  knew  from  the 


328  ST   LUKE,  XXII.  [vv.  27—33. 

you,  let  him  be  as  llie  younger ;  and  he  that  is  chief,  as  he 

27  that  doth  serve.     For  whether  is  greater,  he  that  sitteth  at 
meat,  or  he  that  serveth  ?  is  not  he  that  sitteth  at  meat  ? 

28  but  I  am  among  you  as  he  that  serveth.    Ye  are  they  which 

29  have  continued  with  me  in  my  temptations.    And  I  appoint 
unto  you  a  kingdom,  as  my  Father  hath  appointed  unto  me; 

30  that  ye  may  eat  and  drink  at  my  table  in  my  kingdom,  and 
sit  on  thrones  judging  the  twelve  tribes  of  Israel. 

31  And  the  Lord  said,  Simon,  Simon,  behold,  Satan  hath 

32  desired  to  have  you,  that  /le  may  sift  you  as  wheat :  but  I 
have  prayed  for  thee,  that  thy  faith  fail  not :  and  when  thou 

33  art  converted,  strengthen  thy  brethren.     And  he  said  unto 

instances  of  Ptolemy  Euergetes  and  other  Syrian  tyrants.     Onias  had 
been  more  deserving  of  the  name,  2  Mace.  iv.  2. 

26.  let  him  be]  Rather,  let  Mm  iDecome, — let  him  shew  himself  to 
be  in  reality. 

the  younger]  who  in  Eastern  families  often  fulfils  menial  duties.  Acts 
V.  6. 

27.  I  am  among  you  as  he  that  serveth]  The  true  Euergetes  is  the 
humble  brother,  not  the  subtle  tyrant.  See  Matt.  xx.  28.  "  Took  upon 
him  the  form  of  a  servant,"  Phil.  ii.  7.  St  Luke  here  omits  the  beauti- 
ful acted  parable  of  the  Lord  washing  the  disciples'  feet  (John  xiii.  i  — 
20),  as  also  the  words  to  Judas,  and  his  going  forth  into  the  night. 

28.  in  my  temptations]     See  on  iv.  13. 

29.  I  appoint  unto  you  a  kingdom]  See  xii.  32.  "  If  we  suffer 
we  shall  also  reign  with  Him,"  2  Tim.  ii.  12.  Diatithemai  is  'I  ap- 
point by  way  of  bequest,'  Ps.  Ixxxi.  4  (LXX.)- 

30.  sit  on  thj'ones]  Our  Lord  here  perhaps  designedly  omitted  the 
word  "twelve,"  Matt.  xix.  28  (Rev.  iii.  21). 

Judging]  "  The  saints  shall  judge  the  world,"  i  Cor.  vi.  2.  But  the 
clause  is  omitted  in  some  MSS. 

31.  Simon,  Simon]  The  repetition  of  the  name  gave  combined 
solemnity  and  tenderness  to  the  appeal  (x.  41). 

Satan  hath  desired  to  have  you]  Rather,  Satan  demanded  you  (plnr.), 
or  '  gained  you  by  asking.'     "  Not  content  with  Judas,"  vs.  3.    Bengel. 

that  he  may  sift  yoti]  The  word  siniasai,  from  sinion,  a  sieve, 
occurs  here  only.  Satan,  too,  has  his  winnowing  fan,  that  he  may  get 
his  chaff.  Judas  has  been  already  winnowed  away  from  the  Apostolic 
band,  and  now  Satan  demands  Peter  (comp.  Job  i.  9).  The  warning 
left  a  deep  impression  on  Peter's  mind,  i  Pet.  v.  8,  9.  For  the 
metaphor  see  Amos  ix.  9,  10. 

32.  I  have  prayed  for  thee]  Rather,  I  made  supplication  concerning 
thee,  shewing  that  Peter,  the  most  confident,  was  at  that  moment 
the  most  imperilled,  though  Jesus  had  prayed  for  them  all  (John  xvii. 
9,  11). 

that  thy  faith  fail  not]     The  word  means  'fail  not  utterly,  ox  finally. 


w.  34—37-]  ST   LUKE,  XXII. 


329 


him,  Lord,  I  am  ready  to  go  with  thee,  both  into  prison, 
and  to  death.    And  he  said,  I  tell  thee,  Peter,  the  cock  shall  34 
not  crow  this  day,  before  that  thou  shalt  thrice  deny  that 
thou  knowest  me.     And  he  said  unto  them,  When  I  sent  35 
you  without  purse,  and   scrip,   and   shoes,  lacked   ye  any 
thing  1     And  they  said.  Nothing.     Then  said  he  unto  them,  36 
But  now,  he  that  hath  a  purse,  let  him  take  //,  and  likewise 
his  scrip ;  and  he  that  hath  no  sword,  let  him  sell  his  gar- 
ment, and  buy  one.     For  I  say  unto  you,  that  this  that  is  37 
written  must  yet  be  accomplished   in   me,    And   he   was 
reckoned    among    the    transgressors:    for  the  things 


■when  thou  art  converted,  strengthe7i  thy  brethren']  Comp.  Ps.  li.  1 3. 
So,  after  the  Resurrection,  Jesus  said  to  him,  "  Feed  my  sheep"  (John 
xxi.  17).  The  very  word  for  'strengthen'  sank  into  his  heart,  and  is 
repeated  in  his  Epistle,  i  Pet.  v.  10.  'Converted'  has  not  here  its 
technical  meaning— but  '  when  thou  hast  turned  again.'  It  means  more, 
however,  than  merely  vicissim,  'in  turn.'  Comp.  1  Pet.  ii.  25 ; 
2  Pet.  ii.  11,  22;  Matt.  xiii.  15,  &c. 

33.  /am  ready  to  go  with  thee,  both  into  prison,  and  to  death]  Ra- 
ther, even  into  prison,  even  into  death,  and  the  order  and  emphasis 
should  be,  'Lord,  with  Thee  I  am  ready,'  &c.  This  'flaring  enthusiasm' 
is  always  to  be  suspected  of  weakness.     Prov.  xxviii.  26;   i  Cor.  x.  12. 

34.  Feter]  The  only  occasion  on  which  Jesus  is  recorded  to  have 
used  to  him  the  name  He  gave.  It  is  used  to  remind  him  of  his  strength 
as  well  as  his  weakness. 

the  cock  shall  not  crow  this  day]  It  was,  perhaps,  already  past  mid- 
night. St  Mark  says  more  exactly  (xiv.  30)  'shall  not  crow  twice.' 
But  St  Luke's  expression  merely  means,  '  that  part  of  the  dawn  which 
is  called  the  cock-crow  [alektorophonia,  galliciniutn)  shall  not  be  over 
before,  &c.' 

35.  without  purse,  &c.]     See  ix.  3,  x.  4. 

36.  But  now]  This  was  an  intimation  of  their  totally  changed  rela- 
tion to  the  world.  There  was  no  spontaneous  hosjiitality,  no  peaceful 
acceptance,  no  honoured  security,  to  be  looked  for  now. 

he  that  hath  no  stvord,  let  him  sell  his  garment,  and  buy  one]  Rather, 
lie  tbat  hath  not  (either  purse  or  scrip  to  buy  a  sword  with),  let  him, 
&c.  Of  course  the  expression  was  not  meant  to  be  taken  with  unin- 
telligent literalness.  It  was  in  accordance  with  that  kind  mclaijliorical 
method  of  expression  which  our  blessed  Lord  adopted  that  His  words 
might  never  be  forgotten.  It  was  to  warn  them  of  days  of  hatred  and 
opposition  in  which  self-defence  might  become  a  daily  necessity,  though 
not  aggression.  To  infer  that  the  latter  is  implied  has  been  one  of  the 
fatal  errors  which  arise  from  attributing  infallibility  to  wrong  inferences 
from  a  superstitious  letter-worship. 

37.  he  was  reckoned  among  the  transgressors]     A  quotation  from  Is. 


330  ST   LUKE,   XXII.  [vv.  38—40. 

38  concerning  me  have  an  end.     And  they  said,  Lord,  behold, 
here  are  two  swords.     And  he  said  unto  them.  It  is  enough. 

39 — 46.     The  Agony  in  the  Garden. 

39  And   he   came  out,  and  went,  as  he  was  wont,   to   the 

40  mount  of  Ohves ;  and  his  disciples  also  followed  him.    And 

liii.  12.     Hence  clearly  the  sword  could  not  be  for  His  defence,  as  they 
carelessly  assumed. 
for\     Rather,  for  indeed. 

have  an  end]  The  end  ((elos)  was  drawing  near ;  it  would  come  on 
the  following  day  {Tetelestai,  John  xix.  30). 

38.  here  are  two  siuords\  It  was  a  last  instance  of  the  stolid  literal- 
ism by  which  they  had  so  often  vexed  our  Lord  (Matt.  xvi.  6 — 12).  As 
though  He  could  have  been  thinking  of  two  miserable  swords,  such  as 
poor  Galilaean  pilgrims  took  to  defend  themselves  from  wild  beasts  or 
robbers ;  and  as  though  two  would  be  of  any  use  against  a  world  in 
arms  !  It  is  strange  that  St  Chrysostom  should  suppose  'knives'  to  be 
intended.  This  was  the  verse  quoted  by  Boniface  VIII.,  in  his  famous 
Bull  Unam  sanctam,  to  prove  his  possession  of  both  secular  and  spiri- 
tual power  1 

And  he  said  unto  them,  It  is  enotigh]  Not  of  course  meaning  that 
two  swords  were  enough,  but  sadly  declining  to  enter  into  the  matter 
any  further,  and  leaving  them  to  meditate  on  His  words.  The  formula 
was  one  sometimes  used  to  waive  a  suliject;  comp.  i  Mace.  ii.  33.  See 
p.  384.  "  It  is  a  sigh  of  the  God-man  over  all  violent  measures  meant 
to  further  His  cause. " 

39 — 46.  The  Agony  in  the  Garden. 

39.  And  he  came  out]  St  Luke  here  omits  all  the  touching  incidents 
which  St  John  alone  records — the  discourses  so  "rarely  mixed  of  sad- 
ness and  joys,  and  studded  with  mysteries  as  with  emeralds  ;"  Peter's 
question,  "Lord,  whither  goest  thou?";  the  melancholy  remark  of 
Thomas  about  the  way;  Philip's  "Lord,  shew  us  the  Father;"  the 
perplexed  enquiry  of  Judas  Lebliaeus;  the  rising  from  the  Table;  the 
Parable  of  the  Vine  and  the  Branches,  perhaps  suggested  by  the  trellised 
vine  under  which  they  passed  out  into  the  moonlight;  and  the  great 
High  Priest's  prayer. 

to  the  77ioimt  of  Olives]  down  the  valley  over  the  brook,  or,  rather, 
dry  wady  of  the  Kedron,  and  then  up  the  green  slope  beyond  it  to 
the  garden  or  small  farm  (x'^plov)  of  Gethsemane,  "the  oil  press," 
which  is  about  half  a  mile  from  the  city.  Probably  (John  xviii.  2)  it 
belonged  to  a  disciple ;  possibly  to  St  Mark.  Judas  knew  the  spot,  and 
had  ascertained  that  Jesus  was  going  there.  He  had  gone  out  to  get 
the  band  necessary  for  His  arrest. 

followed  him]  The  walk  would  be  under  the  full  Paschal  moon  amid 
the  deep  hush  that  falls  over  an  Oriental  city  at  night.  The  only  recorded 


vv.  41— 44-]  ST   LUKE,    XXII. 


33' 


when  he  was  at  the  place,  he  said  unto  them,  Pray  that  ye 
enter    not    into  temptation.     And  he  was  withdrawn  from  4. 
them  about  a  stone's  cast,  and  kneeled  down,  and  prayed, 
saying,  Father,  if  thou  be  wiUing,  remove  this  cup  from  me:  42 
nevertheless  not  my  will,  but  thine,  be  done.     And  there  43 
appeared  an  angel  unto  him  from    heaven,    strengthening 
him.     And  being  in  an  agony  he  prayed  more  earnestly:  44 
and  his  sweat  was  as  it  were  great  drops  of  blood  falling 

incident  of  the  walk  is  one  more  warning  to  the  disciples,  and  specially 
to  St  Peter.    Matt.  xxvi.  32 — 35. 

40.  ke  said  unto  them]  First  He  left  eight  of  them  to  sleep  under 
the  trees  while  He  withdrew  with  Peter  and  James  and  John,  whom  lie 
told  to  watch  and  pray. 

41.  he  was  wit/ulrawii]  Literally,  " He  was  taken  away,"  or  'He 
tore  Himself  away'  (comp.  xxi.  i),  shewing  the  reluctance  with  which 
He  parted  from  this  support  of  loving  sympathy  under  the  imperious 
necessity  of  passing  through  His  darkest  hour  alone.  Perhaps  He 
withdrew  deeper  into  the  shadow  of  the  ancient  olive-trees.  (In  esti- 
mating the  force  of  such  words  as  ekballo,  apospao,  &c.,  it  should 
however  be  borne  in  mind  that  in  Hellenistic  Greek  their  old  classical 
force  was  weakened  by  colloquialism.     See  1  Mace.  xii.  10.) 

and  kneeled  down]  "and  fell  on  His  face,"  Matt.  xxvi.  39. 

42.  if  thou  be  willing]  The  principle  of  His  whole  life  of  suffering 
obedience,  John  v.  30,  vi.  38. 

this  cup]  Matt.  xx.  22  ;  comp.  Ezek.  xxii.  31 ;  Ps.  Ixxv.  8.  This  prayer 
is  an  instance  of  the  "strong  crying  and  tears,"  amid  which  He  "learned 
obedience  by  the  things  which  He  suffered,"  Heb.  v.  7,  8. 

43.  there  appeared  an  angel]  As  after  His  temptation.  Matt.  iv.  11. 
This  and  the  next  verse  are  not  of  absolutely  certain  authenticity,  since 
they  are  omitted  in  A,  B,  and  by  the  first  corrector  of  M;  and  Jerome 
and  Hilary  say  that  they  were  omitted  in  "very  many"  Greek  and 
Latin  MSS.  Their  omission  may  have  been  due  to  mistaken  reverence; 
or  their  insertion  may  have  been  made  by  the  Evangelist  himself  in  a 
later  recension. 

44.  being  in  an  agony]  The  word  which  occurs  here  only  in  the  N.T. — 
though  we  often  have  the  verb  agonizoinai — means  intense  struggle  and 
pressure  of  spirit,  which  the  other  Evangelists  also  describe  in  the  strong 
words aa'i?W(7«mi  (Matt.  xxvi.  yi)'ax\Aektha7nbeisthai{Wi'i.  xiv.  33).  It  was 
an  awful  anguish  of  His  natural  life,  and  here  alone(Matt.  xxvi.  38;  John 
xii.  27)  does  He  use  the  word  ■^vxh  of  Himself.  It  was  not  of  course  a 
mere  shrinking  from  death  and  pain,  which  even  the  meanest  natures 
van  overcome,  but  the  mysterious  burden  of  the  world's  guilt  (2  Cor.  v. 
■li) — the  shrinking  of  a  sinless  being  from  the  depths  of  Satanic  hate 
and  horror  through  which  He  was  to  pass.  As  Luther  says  '  our  hard 
impure  flesh'  can  hardly  comprehend  the  sensitiveness  of  a  fresh  un- 
stained soul  coming  in  contact  with  horrible  antagonism. 

as  it  were  great  drops  of  blood]     Such  a  thing  as  a  '  bloody  sweat " 


332  ST    LUKE,   XXII.  [vv.  45— 48. 

45  down  to  the  ground.     And  when  he  rose  up  from  prayer, 
and  was  come  to  his  disciples,  he  found  them  sleeping  for 

46  sorrow,  and  said  unto  them,  Why  sleep  ye  ?  rise  and  pray, 
lest  ye  enter  into  temptation. 

47 — 53.     The  Traitor's  Kiss.     The  Arrest.     Malchus. 

47  And  while  he  yet  spake,  behold  a  multitude,  and  he  that 
was  called  Judas,  one  of  the  twelve,  went  before  them,  and 

48  drew  near  unto  Jesus  to  kiss  him.    But  Jesus  said  unto  him, 


seems  not  to  be  wholly  unknown  (Arist.  Hist.  Anim.  III.  19)  under 
abnormal  pathological  circumstances.  The  blood  of  Abel  'cried  from 
the  ground ;'  but  this  blood  '  spake  better  things  than  the  blood  of 
Abel'  (Gen.  iv.  10;  Heb.  xii.  24).  St  Luke  does  not  however  use 
the  term  'bloody  sweat,'  but  says  that  the  dense  sweat  of  agony  fell 
from  him  "  like  blood  gouts" — which  may  mean  as  drops  of  blood  do 
from  a  wound. 

45.  sleeping  for  sorrotv]  Ps.  Ixix.  20.  The  last  two  words  give 
rather  the  cause  than  the  excuse.  They  are  analogous  to  "  the  spirit 
indeed  is  willing,  but  the  flesh  is  weak"  of  Matt.  xxvi.  41.  St  Luke 
here  abbreviates  the  fuller  records  given  in  Matt,  xxvi.;  Mk.  xiv. ,from 
which  we  find  that  Jesus  l/irzce  came  to  His  Apostles,  and  thrice  found 
them  sleeping  (see  Is.  Ixiii.  3), — each  momentary  pause  of  prayer  mark- 
ing a  fresh  step  in  His  victorious  submission.  This  was  the  Temptation 
of  Jesus  by  every  element  of  anguish,  as  He  had  been  tempted  in  the 
wilderness  by  every  element  of  desire. 

46.  Why  sleep  ye  f]  "Simon,  sleepest  thou?  Were  ye  so  unable  to 
watch  with  me  a  single  hour?"  Matt.  xxvi.  40;  Mk.  xiv.  37.  The 
second  time  He  does  not  seem  to  have  spoken  to  them.  The  third  time 
He  knew  that  it  was  too  late.  The  object  of  their  watching  had  now 
ceased,  for  He  heard  the  tramp  of  men  in  the  distance,  and  saw  the 
glare  of  their  torches;  and  therefore  it  was  with  a  tender  irony  that  He 
said,  'Sleep  on  now  and  take  your  rest '  (as  far  as  any  help  which  you 
can  render  to  Me  is  concerned),  but  '  Rise,  let  us  be  going,'  for  now 
sleep  will  be  alike  impossible  to  us  all. 

47 — 53.    The  Traitor's  Kiss.     The  Arrest.    Malchus. 

47.  behold  a  midtitude\  Composed  of  Levitical  guards  under  their 
'general;'  a  Roman  chiliarch  ('tribune'),  with  some  soldiers,  part 
of  a  maniple  or  cohort  {a-wdpa)  from  the  Fort  of  Antonia  (John  xviii.  12); 
and  some  priests  and  elders. 

07ie  of  the  twelve]  It  seems  as  if  in  narrating  the  scene  the  Evangelists 
unconsciously  add  the  circumstance  w^hich  to  their  mind  branded  the 
deed  with  its  worst  horror.  For  the  terror  which  seized  the  multi- 
tude, the  precipitate  entrance  of  Judas  into  the  garden,  and  our  Lord's 
first  words  to  him,  see  John  xviii.  3 — 9. 


w.  49— S3-]  ST   LUKE,   XXII. 


333 


Judas,  betrayest  thou  the  Son  of  man  with  a  kiss  ?     When  49 
they  which  were  about  him  saw  what  would  follow,  they  said 
unto  him,  Lord,  shall  we  smite  with  the  sword  ?     And  one  50 
of  them  smote  the  servant  of  the  high  priest,  and  cut  off  his 
right  ear.     And  Jesus  answered  and  said,  Suffer  ye  thus  far.  51 
And  he  touched  his  ear,  and  healed  him.     Then  Jesus  said  52 
unto  the  chief  priests,  and  captains  of  the  temple,  and  the 
elders,  which  were  come  to  him,  Be  ye  come  out,  as  against 
a  thief,  with  swords  and  staves  ?  When  I  was  daily  with  you  ss 

48. _  wii/i  a  kiss']  He  exclaimed  'Rabbi,  Rabbi,  hail'C  Peace  to  thee, 
Rabbi'),  Mk.  xiv.  45;  but  received  no  '  Peace  to  thee'  in  reply.  Over- 
acting his  part,  he  not  only  kissed  His  Lord  (epkileseti),  but  kissed  Him 
fervently  {katephilescn,  deosculatiis  est). 

49.  they\  Specially  Peter,  but  the  Synoptists  suppress  his  name  from 
obviously  prudential  reasons  which  no  longer  existed  when  St  John 
wrote. 

Lord,  shall  we  smite  with  the  s^vordf]  Since  it  was  illegal  to  carry 
swords  on  a  feast-day,  we  have  here  another  sign  that  the  Last  Supper 
had  not  been  the  Passover.  The  bringing  of  the  sword  was  part  of  the 
misconception  which  Jesus  had  not  cared  further  to  remove  at  the 
supper ;  and  if  Judas  had  pressed  into  the  enclosure  they  may  have 
been  entirely  unaware  as  yet  of  the  number  of  the  captors.  Future 
years  would  teach  them  that  Christ's  cause  is  served  by  dying,  not  by 
killing.  The  full  reply  of  our  Lord  on  this  incident  must  be  found 
by  combining  Matt.  xxvi.  53,  John  xviii.  10,  ii. 

50.  the  servant  of  the  high  priest]     Malchus. 

right  ear]  A  specific  touch  not  found  in  the  other  Evangelists.  All 
three  use  the  diminutive — if  the  readings  can  be  relied  on.  {ihrlov.  Matt, 
xxvi.  51 ;  ih-dpLOf,  Mk.  xiv.  47  ;  thrlov,  John  xviii.  10.  In  this  passage  we 
have  both  o5s  and  ihrLov.)  No  stress  can  be  laid  on  this.  Languages  in 
their  later  stage  often  adopt  diminutives  to  avoid  the  trouble  of  genders. 
See  my  Language  and  Laftgnages,  p.  319. 

51.  Suffer  ye  thus  far]  Probably  addressed  to  the  captors,  and 
meaning  Excuse  thus  inuch  resistance;  or  'Allow  me  liberty  thus 
far' — free  my  arms  a  moment  that  I  may  heal  this  wounded  man. 
These  snatches  of  dialogue — often  of  uncertain  interpretation  from  their 
fragmentary  character  (e.g.  Mk.  ix.  23;  Matt.  xxvi.  50;  John  viii.  25), 
are  inimitable  marks  of  genuineness.  It  was  probably  during  this  pause 
that  'all  His  disciples' — even  Peter,  even  John — 'forsook  Him  and  fled.* 

52.  unto  the  chief  priests ..  .which  were  cotne  to  him]  The  expressif)n 
shews  that  these  venerable  persons  had  kept  safely  in  the  background  till 
all  possible  danger  was  over.  It  is  evident  that  the  whole  band  dreaded 
some  exertion  of  miraculous  power. 

as  against  a  thief]  Rather,  a  brlg-and  or  robber.  Am  I  one  of  the 
Sicarii,  or  bandits  ?  It  is  a  reproach  to  them  for  their  cowardice  and 
secrecy.  'If  I  had  really  done  wrong,  how  is  it  that  you  did  not  arrest 
me  in  the  Temple?' 


334  ST   LUKE,   XXII.  [w.  54,  55. 

in  the  temple,  ye  stretched  forth  no  hands  against  me :  but 
this  is  your  hour,  and  the  power  of  darkness. 

54 — 62.     Peter's  Denial. 

54  Then  took  they  him,  and  led  /«>«,  and  brought  him  into 

55  the  high  priest's  house.     And  Peter  followed  afar  off.     And 

63.  this  is  your  hour,  and  the  power  of  darkness]  A  reproach  to 
them  for  their  base,  illegal,  midnight  secrecy.  St  Luke  omits  the 
incident  of  the  young  man  with  the  sinddn  cast  round  his  naked  body, 
Mk.  xiv.  51,  52. 

the  po^uer  of  darkness]  Rather,  tlie  authority  (^jr^?<jm).  The  power 
is  not  independent,  but  delegated  or  permitted,  since  the  Death  of  Christ 
is  part  of  a  divine  plan  (Jolin  xviii.  4,  xix.  11,  &c.). 

54 — 62.    Peter's  Denial, 

54.     Then  took  they  him]     Rather,  seizing  Him. 

and  led  him]  with  His  hands  bound,  probably  behind  His  back,  John 
xviii.  12. 

into  the  high  priest's  house]  The  actual  High  Priest  was  Joseph 
Caiaphas  (another  form  of  Kephas),  son-in-law  of  Annas  (see  on  iii.  2). 
The  trial  of  our  Lord  by  the  Jews  was  in  three  phases — (i)  before  Annas 
(John  xviii.  12 — 18);  (2)  before  Caiaphas  (here  and  Matt.  xxvi.  59 — 68; 
Mk.  xiv.  55 — 65);  (3)  before  the  entire  Sanhedrin  at  dawn  (vs.  66; 
Matt,  xxvii.  i ;  Mk.  xv.  i).  Each  trial  might  be  regarded  as  supremely 
important.  Annas,  or  Hanan  son  of  Seth,  was  the  most  influential  of 
the  ex-High  Priests,  and  may,  as  Sagan  (Deputy)  or  Nasi  (President), 
have  virtually  wielded  the  sacerdotal  power.  The  result  therefore  of  a 
trial  before  him  would  involve  a  fatal  praejudiciimi,  since  the  utmost 
reverence  was  paid  to  his  age,  wealth,  power,  and  shrewdness. — The 
second  trial  was  before  the  most  important  committee  of  the  Sanhedrin, 
which  might  in  one  sense  be  called  'the  whole  Sanhedrin'  (Mk.  xiv.  55), 
and  though  it  could  have  no  legal  validity,  being  held  at  night,  it 
served  as  a  sort  of  anakrisis  or  preliminary  enquiry,  which  left  the 
final  decision  only  formal. — The  third  trial  was  held  at  dawn  before 
the  entire  Sanhedrin,  and  passed  the  final  decree  of  condemnation 
against  Jesus  for  blasphemy,  which  had  been  already  pre-determined. 
The  enmity  of  the  priests  may  have  partly  arisen  (as  I  have  given 
reasons  for  believing  in  the  Life  of  Christ,  II.  334)  from  the  fact 
that  the  cleansing  of  the  Temple  involved  an  interference  with  their 
illicit  gains.  After  the  first  trial — at  which  Jesus  was  first  smitten — 
He  was  sent  bound  to  Caiaphas,  who  perhaps  lived  in  the  same  house. 
These  three  Jewish  trials  were  illegal  in  almost  every  particular.  The 
Sanhedrin  was  generally  a  merciful  and  cautious  tribunal,  but  was  now 
a  mere  dependent  body  entirely  under  the  influence  of  the  Sadducees, 
who  were  the  most  ruthless  of  Jewish  sects. 

Peter  foil oxced  afar  off]  "to  see  the  end,"  Matt.  xxvi.  58.     It  was  a 


w.  56— 58.]  ST   LUKE,   XXII. 


335 


when  they  had  kindled  a  fire  in  the  midst  of  the  hall,  and 
were  set  down  together,  Peter  sat  down  among  them.     But  s6 
a  certain  maid  beheld  him  as  he  sat  by  the  fire,  and  ear- 
nestly looked  upon  him,  and  said,  This  ma7i  was  also  with 
him.    And  he  denied  him,  saying,  Woman,  I  know  him  not.  57 
And  after  a  little  while  another  saw  him,  and  said,  Thou  art  58 

most  unwise  exposure  of  himself  to  temptation.  His  admission  into  the 
courtyard  of  the  High  Priest's  house  was  due  to  the  influence  of  John, 
who  was  known  to  the  High  Priest,  and  spolce  to  the  portress  (John 
xviii.  15,  16). 

55.  they  had  kindled  a  fire\  The  spring  nights  at  Jerusalem,  which 
is  2610  feet  above  the  level  of  the  sea,  are  often  cold. 

hi  the  midst  of  the  hair\     Rather,  of  the  court. 

sat  down  anumg  them'\  i.e.  among  the  servants  of  the  High  Priest — 
sat  in  the  middle  (jnesos)  of  a  group  composed  of  the  very  men  who 
had  just  been  engaged  more  or  less  directly  in  the  arrest  of  His  Lord. 
It  was  like  the  impetuosity  of  his  character,  but  most  unwise  for  one  of 
his  temperament.  St  John  says  (xviii.  18)  that  '  he  stood,'  and  perhaps 
we  have  here  a  touch  of  restlessness. 

a  certain  niaid'\  Apparently  the  portress  (John  xviii.  17)  who 
had  been  meanwhile  relieved,  and  who,  after  a  fixed  gaze,  recognised 
Peter  as  the  man  whom  she  had  admitted.  She  therefore  exclaimed, 
"This  fellow  too  (as  well  as  John)  was  with  Him."  The  reports  of  the 
Evangelists  differ,  but  each  faithfully  preserves  the  kai. 

a  certain  maid  beheld  him~\  The  accounts  of  these  denials  by  the 
Evangelists  are  (as  St  Augustine  says  of  their  narratives  generally) 
"various,  but  not  contrary."  They  are  capable  of  perfectly  easy  and 
perfectly  natural  reconcilement,  and  are  a  valuable  proof  of  inde- 
pendence. 

56.  by  the  fire}  Rather,  to  the  light,  i.e.  with  the  light  of  the 
brazier  shining  full  on  him. 

earnestly  looked  upon  him}     See  iv.  10. 

57.  Woman,  I  know  him  not]  "  nor  do  I  understand  what  you 
mean,"  Mk.  xiv.  68.  The  'Woman!'  should  come  last.  Peter— who 
has  been  described  as  ' homalos  anomalon''  or  'consistently  incon- 
sistent'— shewed  just  the  same  kind  of  weakness  many  years  later. 
Gal.  ii.  12,  13. 

58.  after  a  little  while]  The  trial  before  the  Sacerdotal  Committee 
naturally  took  some  time,  and  they  were  awaiting  the  result. 

another  saw  him]  After  his  first  denial  "before  them  all"  (Matt, 
xxvi.  70)  he  probably  hoped  to  shake  off  this  dangerous  curiosity;  and, 
perhaps  as  his  guilt  was  brought  more  home  to  him  by  the  first  crowing  of 
the  cock  (Mk.  xiv.  68),  he  stole  back  out  of  the  light  of  the  brazier  where 
he  had  been  silting  with  the  servants,  to  the  gate  or  vestibule  {piilona. 
Matt  xxvi.  71,  proaiilion,  Mk.  xiv.  68).  Of  this  second  denial  Si  John 
says,  ''they  said  to  him"  (xviii.  25);  and  as  the  portress  was  sure  to 
have  gossipped  about  him  to  the  girl  who  relieved  her  at  !ui  post,  the 


336  ST    LUKE,   XXII.  [vv.  59—61. 

59  also  of  them.  And  Peter  said,  Man,  I  am  not.  And  about  the 
space  of  one  hour  after  another  confidently  affirmed,  saying, 
Of  a  truth  this  fellow  also  was  with  him :  for  he  is  a  Galilean. 

60  And  Peter  said,  Man,  I  know  not  what  thou  sayest.     And 

61  immediately,  while  he  yet  spake,  the  cock  crew.  And  the 
Lord  turned,  and  looked  upon  Peter.  And  Peter  remem- 
bered the  word  of  the  Lord,  how  he  had  said  unto  him. 


second  denial  was  due  to  his  being  pointed  out  by  the  second  maid  to 
the  group  of  idlers  who  were  hanging  about  the  door,  one  of  whom  was 
prominent  in  pressing  the  charge  against  him.  Matt.  xxvi.  71  {8Xkt)); 
Mk.  xiv.  69  (7?  TraLbiuK-q);  John  xviii.  25  (elwov);  here  irepoi.  What 
discrepancy  then  worth  speaking  of  is  there  here?  Doubtless  the 
second  and  third  charges  became  more  and  more  general  as  the  news 
spread  among  the  group.  It  is  much  more  important  to  notice  the 
moral  law  of  "linked  lies"  by  which  'once  denied'  always  has  a  ten- 
dency to  become  'thrice  denied.'  "Whom,"  asks  St  Augustine, 
"have  you  ever  seen  contented  with  a  single  sin?" 
Man\     A  mode  of  displeased  address,     xii.  14. 

59.  about  the  space  of  one  hour  after]  To  St  Peter  it  must  have 
been  one  of  the  most  terrible  hours  of  his  life. 

another]  Here  again  the  main  charge  was  prominently  made  by  one 
— a  kinsman  of  Malchus,  who  had  seen  Peter  in  the  garden,  and  was 
known  to  St  John  from  his  acquaintance  with  the  High  Priest's  house- 
hold (John  xviii.  26,  avyyevijs) ;  but  others  came  up  (wpoaeXdoi'Tes  ol 
€<TTU3Tes,  Matt.  xxvi.  73 ;  ol  wapeaTWTes,  Mk.  xiv.  70),  and  joined  in 
it,  and  this  is  implied  by  St  Mark's  "kept  saying  to  Peter"  (^Xeyov). 

for  he  is  a  Galilean]  This  they  could  at  once  tell  by  the  misplaced 
gutturals  of  the  provincial  dialect  which  'bewrayed  him'  (i.e.  pointed 
him  out). 

60.  Man,  I  know  not  what  thou  sayest]  St  Luke  drops  a  veil  over 
the  'cursing  and  swearing'  which  accompanied  this  last  denial  (Matt. 
xxvi.  74). 

the  cock  crew]  Rather,  a  cock.  It  crew  for  the  second  time.  Mi- 
nute critics  have  imagined  that  they  found  a  'difficulty'  here  because 
the  Talmud  says  that  cocks  and  hens,  from  their  scratching  in  the 
dung,  were  regarded  as  unclean.  But  as  to  this  the  Talmud  contra- 
dicts itself,  since  it  often  alludes  to  cocks  and  hens  at  Jerusalem  (e.  g. 
Berachdth,  p.  27,  i).  Moreover  the  cock  might  have  belonged  to  the 
Roman  soldiers  in  Fort  Antonia. 

61.  the  Lord  turned,  and  looked  upon  Peter]  St  Luke  alone  pre- 
serves this  most  touching  incident.  Jesus  must  have  looked  on  His 
erring  Apostle  either  from  the  chamber  in  which  He  was  being  tried,  if 
it  was  one  of  those  chambers  with  open  front  (called  in  the  East  tnuck 
'ad);  or  else  at  the  moment  when  the  trial  was  over,  and  He  was  being 
led  across  the  courtyard  amid  the  coarse  insults  of  the  servants.  If  so  the 
moment  would  have  been  one  of  awful  pathos  to  the  unhappy  Apostle. 


vv.  62—65.]  ST    LUKE,   XXTI.  337 

Before  the  cock  crow,  thou  shalt  deny  me  thrice.   And  Peter  62 
went  out,  and  wept  bitterly. 

^2, — 65.     The  First  Derision. 

And  the  men  that  held  Jesus  mocked  him,  and  smote  6^ 
him.     And  when  they  had  blindfolded  him,  they  stroke  him  64 
on  the  face,  and  asked  him,  saying,  Prophesy,  who  is  it  that 
smote  thee  ?     And  many  other  things  blasphemously  spake  65 
they  against  him. 


62.  went  out]  into  the  night,  but  "to  meet  the  morning  dawn." 
and  wepil  Not  only  edakruse,  '  shed  tears,'  but  eklause,  '  wept  aloud ;' 

and,  as  St  Mark  says  (xiv.  72),  eklaie,  'he  continued  weeping.'     It  was 
more  than  a  mere  burst  of  tears. 

bitterly]  St  Mark  says  epibaldn,-w\nch.  may  mean,  'when  he  thouglit 
thereon,'  or  'flinging  his  mantle  over  his  head.' 

63 — 65.    The  First  Derision. 

Hanan  had  simply  tried  to  entangle  Jesus  by  insidious  questions. 

The  course  of  the  trial  before  Caiaphas  was  different.  The  Priests 
on  that  occasion  "sought  false  witness,"  but  their  false  witnesses  con- 
tradicted each  other  in  their  attempt  to  prove  that  He  had  threatened 
to  destroy  the  Temple.  Since  Jesus  still  kept  silence,  Caiaphas  rose, 
walked  into  the  midst  of  the  hall,  and  adjured  Jesus  by  the  Living 
God  to  say  whether  He  was  "the  Christ,  the  Son  of  God."  So  adjured, 
Christ  answered  in  the  affirmative,  and  then  Caiaphas,  rending  his 
robes,  appealed  to  the  assembly,  who,  most  illegally  setting  aside  the 
need  of  any  further  witnesses,  shouted  aloud  that  He  was  'A  man  of 
Death'  [ish  maveth),  i.e.  deserving  of  capital  punishment.  From  this 
moment  He  would  be  regarded  by  the  dependents  of  the  Priests  as  a 
condemned  criminal. 

63.  smote  hi/>t]  No  less  than  five  forms  of  beating  are  referred  to 
by  the  Evangelists  in  describing  this  pathetic  scene — derontes  here  (a 
general  term);  etnpton,  'they  kept  smiting;'  paisas  in  the  next  verse, 
implying  violence;  ekolaphisan,  'slapped  with  the  open  palm,'  Matt, 
xxvi.  67;  errapisan,  'smote  with  sticks'  (id.);  and  rapismasin  ehallon, 
Mk.  xiv.  65.  See  the  prophecy  of  Is.  1.  6.  The  Priests  of  that  day,  and 
their  pampered  followers,  were  too  much  addicted  to  these  brutalities 
(Acts  xxi.  32,  xxiii.  2),  as  we  learn  also  from  the  Talmud. 

64.  blindfolded  him]  Probably  by  throwing  an  alilia  over  his  head 
and  face.  Mk.  xiv.  65.  The  Talmud  says  that  the  False  Messiah,  Uar 
Cochba,  was  similarly  insulted. 

65.  blasphemously]  This  term  now  bears  a  different  meaning.  Plere 
it  merely  means  '  reviling  Him.' 

ST  LUKE  2  2 


338  ST   LUKE,  XXII.  [vv.  66—70. 

66 — 71.     The  third  J eivish  Trial. 

66  And  as  soon  as  it  was  day,  the  elders  of  the  people  and 
the  chief  priests  and  the   scribes  came  together,  and   led 

67  him  into  their  council,  saying,  Art  thou  the  Christ  ?  tell  us. 
And  he  said  unto  them,  If  I  tell  you,  you  will  not  believe : 

68  and  if  I  also  ask  you,  you  will  not  answer  me,  nor  let  me 

69  go.     Hereafter  shall  the  Son  of  man  sit  on  the  right  hand 

70  of  the  power  of  God.     Then  said  they  all.  Art  thou  then 
the  Son  of  God?     And  he  said  unto  them,  Ye  say  that 

66 — 71.    The  third  Jewish  Trial. 

66.  as  soon  as  it  was  day]  The  Oral  Law  decided  that  the  Sanhedrin 
could  only  meet  by  daylight. 

e/ders  of  the  people]  Literally,  '■'•  the  presbytery  of  the  people,"  as  in  Acts 
xxii.  5. 

elders  ...chief priests  ...scribes]  See  Mk.  xv.  i.  The  three  constituent 
parts  of  the  Sanhedrin,  i  Mace.  xiv.  28.  The  Sanhedrin  was  the  suc- 
cessor of  the  Great  Synagogue,  which  ended  with  Simon  the  Just. 
Where  they  met  is  uncertain.  It  was  either  in  the  Paved  Hall,  or '  Hall 
of  Squares'  {Lischath  haggazzith) ;  or  in  the  Beth  Mid^-ash  (Temple 
Synagogue),  a  chamber  which  abutted  on  the  "middle  wall  of  partition" 
[Chel),  or  in  the  Cliaiiujoth  'shops'  or  'booths'  founded  by  the  house 
of  Hanan  to  sell  doves,  &c.  for  the  temple. 

their  council]  Syiiedrion,  from  which  the  word  Sanhedrin  (mistakenly 
spelt  Sanhedrim)  is  derived.  The  word  is  first  found  on  the  occasion 
when  they  summoned  before  them  Hyrcanus  II.,  son  of  Alexander 
Jannaeus.  It  gloried  in  being  a  mild  tribunal,  but  was  now  an  extremely 
degenerate  body,  and  unwortliy  of  its  earlier  traditions  (Jos.  Antt.  Xlll. 
10,  §  6;  B.  y.  II.  8,  §  14).  The  Jewish  authorities  had  lost  the  power 
of  inflicting  death ;  they  could  only  pass  sentence  of  excommunication, 
and  hand  over  to  the  secular  arm. 

67.  Art  thou  the  Ch'ist?]  The  object  of  the  Sanhedrin  was  some- 
what different  from  that  of  the  Priests  in  the  house  of  Caiaphas.  They 
had  only  succeeded  in  establishing  (by  a  most  illegal  personal  appeal)  a 
charge  of  constructive  blasphemy.  But  '  blasphemy '  was  not  a  charge 
on  which  a  Roman  could  pronounce  capital  sentence.  Hence,  in  order 
to  get  Christ  crucified,  they  needed  a  charge  of  treason,  which  might  be 
constructed  out  of  His  claim  to  be  the  Messiah. 

ye  will  not  believe]     As  they  had  shewn  already.    John  viii.  59,  x.  31. 

68.  if  I  also  ask  you,  you  will  not  answer]  This  is  our  Lord's  protest 
against  the  illegal  violence  of  the  whole  proceedings. 

69.  Hereafter  shall  the  Son  of  vtan  sit]  Rather,  But  from  hence- 
forth  (comp.  i.  48,  v.  10)  shall  the  Son  of  man  be  seated  at.  Our 
Lord  seems  at  last  to  have  broken  His  silence  in  these  words,  in  order 
to  end  a  miserable  and  useless  scene.  The  words  would  at  once  recall 
Dan.  vii.  13,  14;  seejohni.  51. 


vv.  7i;  1,2.]         ST   LUKE,   XXII.  XXIII. 


339 


I  am.     And  they  said,  What  need  we  any  further  witness  ?  71 
for  we  ourselves  have  heard  of  his  own  mouth. 

Ch.  XXIII.     I — 4.     First  phase  of  the  Trial  before  Pilate. 

And  the  whole   multitude  of  them   arose,  and  led  him  23 
unto  Pilate.     And  they  began  to  accuse  him,  saying.  We  = 

70.  Ye  say  that  I ai>i\  A  Hebrew  formula  (a«//' rtwart'a).  "Your 
words  verify  themselves."  See  some  striking  remarks  in  De  Quincey, 
Works,  III.  304.  But  the  formula  like  "  Thou  sayest"  in  John  xviii.  37 
seems  also  to  have  been  meant  to  waive  further  discussion.  See  p.  385. 
What  need  7ve  any  further  tvitness  ?'\  Cjiiaphas  had  made  the  same 
appeal  to  the  audience  at  the  night  trial.  Van  Oosterzee  mentions  that 
at  the  trial  of  the  Reformer  Farel,  the  Genevan  Priests  addressed  him 
in  these  very  words,  and  he  replied,  "Speak  the  words  of  God,  and  not 
those  of  Caiaphas." — This  trial  was  followed  by  the  second  derision,  in 
which  it  almost  seems  as  if  the  Sanhedrists  themselves  took  part.  Matt. 
xxvi.  67.  St  Lixke  here  omits  the  remorse  and  horrible  end  of  Juda.s, 
on  which  he  touches  in  Acts  i.  18. 

Ch.  XXIII.     1 — 4.     First  phase  of  the  Trial  before 

Pilate. 

1.  the  whole  muUittide'\  Rather,  the  whole  number  {pkthos,  not 
ocklos). 

unto  Pilate']  The  fact  that  our  Lord  "  suffered  under  Pontius  Pilate" 
is  also  mentioned  by  Tacitus  (Ann.  XV.  44).  Pontius  Pilalus  was  a 
Roman  Knight,  who  (a.d.  26)  had  been  appointed,  through  the  in- 
fluence of  Sejanus,  sixth  Procurator  of  Judaea.  His  very  first  act— the 
bringing  of  the  silver  eagles  and  other  insignia  of  the  Legions  from 
Caesarea  to  Jerusalem — a  step  which  he  was  obliged  to  retract — had 
caused  fierce  exasperation  between  him  and  the  Jews.  This  had  been 
increased  by  his  application  of  money  from  the  Corban  or  Sacred  Trea- 
sury to  the  secular  purpose  of  bringing  water  to  Jerusalem  from  the 
Pools  of  Solomon  (see  xiii.  4).  In  consequence  of  this  quarrel  Pilate 
sent  his  soldiers  among  the  mob  with  concealed  daggers — (a  fatal  pre- 
cedent for  the  Sicarii) — and  there  had  been  a  great  massacre.  A  third 
tumult  had  been  caused  by  his  placing  gilt  votive  shields  dedicated  to 
the  Emperor  Tiberius,  in  his  residence  at  Jerusalem.  The  Jews  re- 
garded these  as  idolatrous,  and  he  had  been  obliged  by  the  Emperor's 
orders  to  remove  them.  He  had  also  had  deadly  quarrels  with  the 
Samaritans,  whom  he  had  attacked  on  Mount  Gerizim  in  a  movement 
stirred  up  by  a  Messianic  impostor;  and  with  the  Galilacans  "whose 
blood  he  had  mingled  with  their  sacrifices"  (xiii.  i).  He  lellccted  the 
hatred  felt  towards  the  Jews  by  his  patron  Sejanus,  and  had  earned 
the  character  which  Philo  gives  him  of  being  a  savage,  infle.\ible,  and 
arbitrary  ruler.  The  Procurator,  when  at  Jerusalem  for  the  gre.at 
Festivals,  seems  to  have  occupied  an  old  palace  of  Herod's,  known  in 
consequence  as  Herod's  Praelorium  (Philo,  Leg.  ad  Caium,  p.  1034). 

22 — 2 


340  ST   LUKE,  XXIII.  [w.  3,  4. 

found  this  fellow  pen-erting  the  nation,  and  forbidding  to 
give  tribute  to  Cesar,  sa}-ing  that  he  himself  is  Christ  a 
King.  And  Pilate  asked  him,  saying.  Art  thou  the  King  of 
the  Je\vs  ?  And  he  answered  him  and  said,  Thou  sayest  //. 
Then  said  Pilate  to  the  chief  priests  and  to  the  people, 
I  find  no  fault  in  tliis  man. 


It  \vas  a  building  of  peculiar  splendour,  and  our  Lord  was  conducted  to  it 
from  the  Hall  of  Meeting,  across  the  bridge  which  spanned  tlie  Valley 
of  Tvropoeon.  It  is  however  fossibU  that  Pilate  may  have  occupied  a 
part  of  Fort  Antonia,  and  it  has  been  supposed  that  this  ^-iew  receives 
some  confirmation  from  the  discover}'  by  Capt.  Warren  of  a  subter- 
ranean chamber  with  a  pillar  in  it,  which  is  believed  to  be  not  later 
than  the  age  of  the  Herods,  and  is  on  the  suggested  site  of  Antonia.  Mr 
Fergujson  (Ti-m/Ies  of  t/u  jczcs,  p.  176)  inclines  to  the  \"iew  that  this 
newly-discovered  chamber  may  have  been  the  very  scene  of  our  Lord's 
flagellation.  Our  Lord  was  bound  (Matt,  xx^"ii.  1)  in  sign  that  He  was 
now  a  condemned  criminal.  This  narrative  of  the  Trial  should  be  com- 
pared throughout  with  John  x\-iii.,  xix. 

2.  IVejoutid]     A  word  intended  to  excite  prejudice. 

fen-crling  the  tiatiori^  The  technical  Jewish  name  for  an  offender  of 
this  sort  was  Mesith,  'seducer'  or  'impostor,'  Acts  xiii.  8 — 10.  This 
was  \heitjirst  head  of  indictment,  and  had  the  advantage  of  being  per- 
fectly vague. 

fortndaitig  to  give  tribute  to  Ccsar\  This  was  a  complete  falsehood  ; 
but  a  political  accusation  was  necessary  for  their  purpose,  since  a 
heathen  would  not  have  listened  to  any  religious  accusation.  The 
mixture  of  religion  with  politics  is  always  perilous  to  truth  and 
sinceritv.     This  was  their  secotid  charge. 

that  ht  himself  is  Christ  a  K'ifigl  The  word  '  King'  is  an  explanation 
to  bring  the  case  under  the  head  of  treason.  Yet  they  must  have  been 
well  aware  that  this  charge  was  all  the  more  false  in  spirit  from  being 
true  in  the  letter ; — for  Christ  had  alwa)-s  refused  and  prevented  every 
effort  to  make  Him  a  temporal  king  (John  \i.  15).  This  was  their  third 
chaise. 

3.  Art  ihcu  th^  King  of  the  yctcs  ?]  St  Luke  narrates  the  trial  very 
briefly.  The  Jewish  priests  had  expected  that  on  their  authority  Pilate 
would  at  once  order  Him  to  execution ;  but,  on  the  contrary,  he  meant 
first  to  hear  the  case,  and  asked  them  what  accusation  they  brought, 
refusing  to  accept  their  bare  assertion  that  He  was  "a  malefactor." 
Pilate  only  attends  to  the  ///tW  charge,  and  asks  Christ  this  question  on 
the  Roman  principle  that  it  was  alwaj-s  desirable  to  secure  the  confes- 
sion of  the  accused.  We  see  from  St  John  (x^•iii.  33)  tliat  Jesus  had 
been  led  into  the  Praetoriuin  while  His  accusers  stayed  without ;  that  He 
had  not  heard  their  accusations  (id.  vs.  34),  and  that  PUate  was  now 
questioning  Him  at  a  private  examination, 

Thcu  sayest  ;V]  For  a  fuller  account  of  the  scene  read  John  xviii. 
33 — 38.     it  is  alluded  to  in  i  Tim.  y\.  13. 


w-5— 7-1  ST   LUKE,   XXIII. 


341 


7 


5 — 24.  The  Trial  before  Herod.  Ftirther  endeavours  of 
Pilate  to  procure  His  acquittal.  The  Choice  of  Barabbas. 
The  conde7nnation  to  the  Cross. 

And  they  were  the  more  fierce,  saying.  He  stirreth  up  5 
the  people,  teaching  throughout  all  Jewry,  beginning  from 
Galilee  to  this  place.     When    Pilate  heard   of  Galilee,  he  6 
asked  whether  the  man  were  a  Galilean.     And  as  soon  as 
he  knew  that  he   belonged   unto    Herod's   jurisdiction,   he 
sent  him   to  Herod,  who   himself  also   was   at   Jerusalem 

4.  I  find  no  fault  in  this  man]  This  conclusion,  which  sounds  so 
abrupt  in  St  Luke,  was  the  result  of  the  conversation  with  Pilate  in 
which  Jesus  had  said  "My  Kingdom  is  not  of  this  world."  It  had  con- 
vinced Pilate  of  His  innocence,  and  he  expressed  his  conviction  in  this 
unhesitating  acquittal.  The  word  for  '  fault '  {aition)  occurs  in  Acts 
xix.  40. 

6 — 24.  The  Trial  before  Herod.  Further  endeavours  of 
Pilate  to  procure  His  acquittal.  The  Choice  of  Bar- 
abbas.   The  condemnation  to  the  Cross. 

5.  And  they  were  the  more  fierce]  Rather,  But  they  were  more 
urgent.  This  and  similar  expressions  hardly  convey  to  us  the  terrible 
violence  and  excitement  of  an  Oriental  mob. 

Jewry]  Rather,  Judaea  (comp.  Dan.  v.  13).  These  words  furnish 
one  of  the  traces  in  the  Synoptists  of  the  Judacan  ministry  which  they 
imply,  but  do  not  narrate.  Comp.  "throughout  the  whole  of  Judaea," 
Acts  X.  37. 

beginning  from  Galilee]  See  iv.  14.  This  is  probably  mentioned  to 
prejudice  Pilate  all  the  more  against  Him,  as  he  had  a  quarrel  with  the 
Galilaeans,  but  dum  rem  amplificant,  Pilaio  dant  rimam.    Bengel. 

7.  he  sent  him  to  Herod]  The  word  used  is  technical — anepempsen, 
the  Lat.  retnisit — and  means  the  remission  of  a  question  to  a  higher  court 
(Acts  XXV.  I  ;  comp.  Philem.  1 1 ;  Jos.  B.  J.  II.  20,  §  5).  St  Luke  alone 
preserves  this  interesting  incident.  He  seems  to  have  had  special 
in brmation  about  Herod's  court.  Pilate's  object  may  have  been  (i)  to 
get  rid  of  the  responsibility— or  at  least  to  divide  it— by  ascertaining 
Herod's  opinion  ;  (2)  to  do  a  cheap  act  of  courtesy  which  might  soothe 
the  irritation  which  Herod,  as  well  as  the  Jews,  felt  against  him.  Ves- 
pasian paid  a  similar  compliment  to  Agrippa.    Jos.  B.y.  III.  10,  §  lo. 

who  himself  also  was  at  Jerusalem]  ''also, "  i.e.  as  well  as  Pilate.  I  Icrod 
lived  at  Tiberias,  and  Pilate  at  Caesarea.  During  the  immense  assem- 
blages of  the  Jewish  feasts  the  two  rulers  had  come  to  Jerusalem,  Pilate 
to  maintain  order,  Herod  to  gain  popularity  among  his  subjects  by  a 
decent  semblance  of  conformity  to  the  national  religion.  At  Jerusalem 
Herod  occupied  the  old  palace  of  the  Asmonaean  princes  (Jos.  B.  J. 
II.  16;  Antt.  XX.  8,  §  II). 


342  ST   LUKE,   XXIII.  [vv.  8—12. 

8  at  that  time.  And  when  Herod  saw  Jesus,  he  was  ex- 
ceeding glad :  for  he  was  desirous  to  see  him  of  a  long 
season,  because  he  had  heard  many  things  of  him ;    and 

9  he  hoped  to  have  seen  some  miracle  done  by  him.  Then 
he  questioned  with  him  in  many  words ;  but  he  answered 

10  him  nothing.     And  the  chief  priests  and  scribes  stood  and 

11  vehemently  accused  him.  And  Herod  with  his  men  of  war 
set  him  at  nought,  and  mocked  him,  and  arrayed  him  in 

12  a  gorgeous  robe,  and  sent  him  again  to  Pilate.  And  the 
same  day  Pilate  and  Herod  were  made  friends  together:  for 
before  they  were  at  enmity  between  themselves. 


at  that  tiine\     Rather,  in  those  days  (of  the  Feast). 

8.  many  things]  These  words  should  be  omitted  (X,  B,  D,  K,  L,  M). 
and  he  hoped  to  have  seen  some  miracle  done  by  him]    ix.  7 — 9,  Herod 

seems  to  have  deteriorated.  He  had  encouraged  the  visits  of  the 
Baptist  on  less  frivolous  grounds  than  these.  It  must  have  been  a  deep 
aggravation  of  Christ's  sufferings  to  be  led  bound,  amid  coarse  attendants, 
through  the  densely  crowded  streets. 

9.  he  atisivei'cd  him  nothing]  Is.  liii.  7.  A  murderer  of  the  Prophets, 
who  was  living  in  open  and  flagrant  incest,  and  who  had  no  higher 
motive  than  mean  curiosity,  deserved  no  answer.  Our  Lord  used  of 
Antipas  the  only  purely  contemptuous  word  which  He  is  ever  recorded 
to  have  uttered  (xiii.  32). 

10.  and  vehemently  acctised  him]  They  were  now  bent  on  securing 
their  purpose,  and  perhaps  feared  that  Herod's  well-known  weakness 
and  superstition  might  rob  them  of  their  prey; — esiaecially  as  he  was 
much  less  afraid  of  them  than  Pilate  was,  having  strong  influence  in 
Rome. 

11.  with  his  men  of  war]  Literally,  '■^  with  his  armies,^''  \.&.vi\\!a.\i\% 
soldiers. 

set  him  at  nought]  treating  Him  not  as  a  criminal,  but  only  as  a 
person  worthy  of  contempt.  "He  is  despised  and  rejected  of  men;" 
"he  was  despised  and  we  esteemed  him  not,"  Is.  liii.  3. 

iti  a  gorgeous  robe]  Literally,  '■'blight  raiment"  Acts  x.  30.  Probably 
a  white  festal  garment. 

sent  him  agaitt]  anepempsen  as  before — remisit  in  forum  apprehen- 
siojtis.  This  involved  a  second  distinct  acquittal  of  our  Lord  from 
every  political  charge  brought  against  Him.  Had  He  in  any  way  been 
guilty  of  either  (i)  perverting  the  people,  (2)  forbidding  to  pay  tribute, 
or  (3)  claiming  to  be  a  king,  it  would  have  been  Herod's  duty,  and 
still  more  his  interest,  to  punish  Him.  His  dismissal  of  the  case  was  a 
deliberate  avowal  of  His  innocence. 

12.  were  made  frieiids  together]  Rather,  became  friends  witli  one 
another.     Ps.  ii.  i — 3. 

they  were  at  enmity]  perhaps  in  consequence  of  the  incident  mentioned 


w.  13—17.]  ST   LUKE,  XXIII.  343 

And  Pilate,  when  he  had  called  together  the  chief  priests  and  13 
the  rulers  and  the  people,  said  unto  them,  Ye  have  brought  14 
this  man  unto  me,  as  one  that  perverteth  the  people  :  and 
behold,  I,  having   examined  Jiiin  before  you,   have  found 
no  fault  in  this  man  touching  those  things  whereof  ye  accuse 
him :  no,  nor  yet  Herod :  for  I  sent  you  to  him ;  and  lo,  15 
nothing  worthy  of  death  is  done  unto  him.     I  will  therefore  16 
chastise  him,  and  release  him.     (For  of  necessity  he  must  17 

in  xiii.  i.     This  is  the  first  type  of  Judaism  and  Heathenism  leagued 
together  to  crush  Christianity. 

13.  called  together  the  chief  priests]  This  was  a  formal  speech  from 
a  be?na — perhaps  the  throne  of  Archelaus — set  on  the  tessellated  pave- 
ment called  by  the  Jews  Gabbatha  Qohn  xix.  13).  Now  was  the  golden 
opportunity  which  Pilate  should  have  seized  in  order  to  do  what  he  knew 
to  be  right;  and  he  was  really  anxious  to  do  it  because  the  meek  Ma- 
jesty of  the  Lord  had  made  a  deep  impression  upon  him,  and  because 
even  while  seated  on  the  bema,  he  was  shaken  by  a  presentiment  of 
warning  conveyed  to  him  by  the  dream  of  his  wife  (Matt,  xxvii.  19). 
But  men  live  under  the  coercion  of  their  own  past  acts,  and  Pilate  by 
his  cruelty  and  greed  had  so  bitterly  offended  the  inhabitants  of  every 
province  of  Judaea  that  he  dared  not  do  anything  more  to  provoke  the 
accusation  which  he  knew  to  be  hanging  over  his  head  (comp.  Jos. 
Antt.  XVIII.  3,  §  1.    B.  J.  II.  9,  §  4). 

14.  have  found  no  fault  in  this  tnan]  Thus  Pilate's  word  {heiiron) 
is  a  direct  contradiction  of  that  of  the  High  Priest's  {hcurovien,  vs.  1). 
The  /is  emphatic;  you  bring  a  charge,  /after  a  public  examination  find 
it  to  be  baseless. 

15.  for  I  sent  you  to  hini\  Ox  for  he  sent  Him  back  to  us,  (Ss,  B,  K, 
L,  M). 

is  done  unto  him]     Rather,  hath  Deen  done  by  Him. 

16.  /  will  therefore  chastise  him]  This  was  the  point  at  which 
Pilate  began  to  yield  to  the  fatal  vacillation  which  soon  passed  into  guilt 
and  made  it  afterwards  impossible  for  him  to  escape.  He  had  just 
declared  the  prisoner  absolutely  innocent.  To  subject  Him,  therefore, 
to  the  horrible  punishment  of  scourging  merely  to  gratify  the  pride  of 
the  Jews,  and  to  humble  Ilim  in  their  eyes  (Deut.  xxv.  3),  was  an  act 
of  disgraceful  illegality,  which  he  must  have  felt  to  be  most  unworthy 
of  the  high  Roman  sense  of  'Justice.'  The  guilty  drca.l  which  made 
Pilate  a  weak  man  is  well  illustrated  by  what  Philo  says  of  him  [Leg.  ad 
Caium,  38).  But  he  was  the  unconscious  fulfiller  of  prophecy  (Is.  liu. 
5).  The  restless  eagerness  of  his  various  attempts  to  secure  the  acquittal 
of  Jesus  is  brought  out  most  forcibly  by  St  John. 

17.  For  of  necessity,  &c.]  Rather,  But.  The  whole  verse,  how- 
ever, is  of  dubious  genuineness,  and  may  have  come  from  a  marginal 
gloss.  It  is  omitted  in  A,  B,  K,  L.  In  D  it  is  placed  after  vs.  19. 
The  Gospels  are  our  sole  authority  for  this  concession,  which  is,  how- 
ever, entirely  in  accordance  with  Roman  policy. 


344  ST   LUKE,   XXIII.  [vv.  18—22. 

18  release  one  unto  them  at  the  feast.)     And  they  cried  out  all 
at  once,  saying,  Away  with  this  man,  and  release  unto  us 

19  Barabbas  :  (who  for  a  certain  sedition  made  in  the  city,  and 
■zofor  murder,  was  cast  into  prison.)     Pilate  therefore,  willing 

21  to  release  Jesus,  spake  again  to  thetn.  But  they  cried,  saying, 

22  Crucify  /«'w,  crucify  him.     And  he  said  unto  them  the  third 
time,  Why,  what  evil  hath  he  done  ?    I  have  found  no  cause 


18.  all  at  once]  If  we  read  plethei  {or  pampleikei,  the  meaning  will 
be  that  '  they  (the  priests)  called  aloud  to  the  multitude,'  as  in  Matt, 
xxvii.  •20.  The  choice  of  Barabbas  by  the  mob  was  not  spontaneous ; 
it  was  instigated  by  these  priestly  murderers.  The  guilt  of  the  Cruci- 
fixion rests  mamly  with  the  Priests,  because  it  was  mainly  due  to  their 
personal  influence  (Mk.  xv.  11). 

release  tinto  us  Barabbas]  This  was  the  last  drop  in  the  cup  of 
Jewish  iniquity.     Rom.  xi.  30 — 33. 

Barabbas]  Rather,  Bar-Abbas,  'Son  of  a  (distinguished)  father,'  or 
Bar-Rabbas,  'Son  of  a  great  Rabbi.'  Origen  had  the  reading,  'Jesus 
Bar- Abbas,'  in  Matt,  xxvii.  17,  and  as  Jesus  was  a  common  name, 
and  Bar-Abbas  is  only  a  patronymic,  the  reading  is  not  impossible. 
At  this  stage  of  the  trial,  Barabbas  may  have  been  led  out,  and 
the  choice  offered  them  between  'Jesus  Bar-Abbas  and  Jesus  which 
is  called  Christ '  as  they  stood  on  the  pavement  side  by  side. 

19.  who]     The  word  implies  'a  man  of  such  a  kind,  that,  &c.' 
and  for  tnnrder]  "Ye  denied  the  Holy  One  and  the  Just,  and  desired 

a  ?>iurde7-er  to  be  granted  unto  you,"  Acts  iii.  14.  Nothing  is  known 
of  Bar- Abbas,  but  it  has  been  conjectured  from  his  name  that  he  or  his 
father  belonged  to  the  order  of  the  Sanhedrists,  who  therefore  desired 
his  release.  If  he  had  been  a  follower  of  Judas  of  Galilee,  or  engaged 
in  the  riot  against  Pilate  about  his  use  of  the  Corban,  he  would  enlist 
the  sympathies  of  the  people  also. 

20.  spake  again  to  thern]  Rather,  called  unto  them  again.  He 
did  not  make  them  a  second  speech,  but  simply  called  out  again  his 
question  as  to  their  choice. 

21.  they  cried]  The  word  implies  a  continuous  cry  of  increasing 
vehemence.     The  vox  populi  was  in  this  instance  vox  Diaboli. 

Crucify  him,  crucify  him]  This  wild  and  terrible  outcry  was  pro- 
voked by  Pilate's  unjust  question  to  them  how  he  should  deal  with 
Jesus.  After  this  it  was  quite  vain  to  say,  "Why,  what  evil  hath  he 
done  ?  "  Yet  even  in  yielding  he  cannot  refrain  from  irritating  them  with 
the  expression,  "your  king."  It  was  something  more  than  a  mere  taunt. 
It  was  due  to  a  flash  of  genuine  conviction  that  the  Prisoner  before  him 
was  greater  and  nobler  than  the  greatest  and  noblest  Jew  he  had  ever 
seen. 

22.  the^  third  time]  We  can  only  obtain  from  all  the  four  Evangelists, 
and  especially  from  St  John,  a  full  conception  of  the  earnestness  with 
which  Pilate  strove  to  escape  from  the  necessity  of  what  he  felt  to  be 


w.  23—25.]  ST   LUKE,   XXIII, 


345 


of  death  in  him  :  I  will  therefore  chastise  him,  and  let  him 
go.     And  they  were  instant  with  loud  voices,  requiring  that  23 
he  might  be  crucified.     And  the  voices  of  them  and  of  the 
chief  priests  prevailed.     And  Pilate  gave  sentence  that  it  24 
should  be  as  they  required.  And  he  released  unto  them  him  25 
that  for  sedition  and  murder  was  cast  into  prison,  whom 
they  had  desired ;  but  he  deUvered  Jesus  to  their  will. 


a  needless  crime.  If  he  was  not,  as  Tertullian  says,  ^'jam  pro  conscten- 
tiasiia  Ch)-istiatius,''  he  was  evidently  deeply  impressed;  and  the  impos- 
sibility of  doing  right  must  have  come  upon  him  as  a  terrible  Nemesis 
for  his  past  sins.  It  is  very  noteworthy  that  he  took  step  after  step  to 
secure  the  acquittal  of  Jesus.  i.  He  emphatically  and  publicly  an- 
nounced His  perfect  innocence.  1.  He  sent  Him  to  Herod.  3.  He 
made  an  offer  to  release  Him  as  a  boon.  4.  He  tried  to  make  scourging 
take  the  place  of  crucifixion.  5.  He  appealed  to  compassion.  St  John 
shews  still  more  clearly  how  in  successive  stages  of  the  trial  he  sets  aside, 
i.  the  vague  general  charge  of  being  "an  evil  doer"  (xviii.  30);  ii.  of 
being  in  any  seditious  sense  "a  king"  (xviii.  39);  iii.  of  any  guilt  in  His 
religious  claims  (xix.  12).  He  only  yields  at  last  through  fear  (xix.  12), 
which  makes  him  release  a  man  guilty  of  the  very  crime  for  which  he 
delivers  Jesus  to  a  slave's  death.  The  fact  that  Pilate's  patron  Sejanus 
had  probably  by  this  time  fallen,  and  that  Tiberius  was  executing  all 
connected  with  him,  may  have  enhanced  Pilate's  fears.  He  knew  th;it 
an  accusation  of  High  Treason  (under  the  Lex  Majestatis)  was  gene- 
rally fatal  (Tac.  Ann.  III.  38.  Suet.  Tib.  58).  All  this,  with  other 
phases  of  these  last  scenes,  will  be  found  fully  brought  out  in  my  Life 
of  Christ,  II.  pp.  360 — 391. 

23.  the  voices  of  them  and  of  the  chief  priests  prevai!ed'\  St  Luke 
here  omits  the  flagellation  (Matt,  xxvii.  26) ;  the  derision  and  mock 
homage  of  the  soldiery — the  scarlet  sagum  and  crown  of  thorns  ;  the 
awful  scene  of  the  Ecce  Homo;  the  fresh  terror  of  Pilate  on  hearing 
that  He  called  Himself  "the  Son  of  God,"  and  the  deepening  of  that 
terror  by  the  final  questioning  in  the  Praetorium;  the  "Behold  your 
King  ! " ;  the  introduction  of  the  name  of  Caesar  into  the  shouts  of  the 
multitude;  Pilate's  washing  his  hands;  the  last  awful  shout  "His  blood 
be  on  us  and  on  our  children;"  and  the  clothing  of  Jesus  again  in  His 
own  garments.  (See  Matt,  xxvii.;  Mk.  xv. ;  John  xviii.,  xix.)  To  sup- 
pose that  there  was  a  second  scourging  after  the  sentence  is  a  mistake. 
Matt,  xxvii.  26  is  retrospective. 

24.  gave  sentence']  Epekrine  (only  found  in  1  Mace.  iv.  47),  not  'fol- 
lowed their  praejudicium,'  but  gave  final  sentence.  The  two  technical 
formulae  for  the  sentence  of  death  would  be — to  the  Prisoner  '  Ibis  ad 
crucem'  ('Thou  shalt  go  to  the  Cross');  to  the  attendant  soldier,  'I  miles, 
expedi  crucem'  ('Go  soldier,  get  ready  the  Cross'). 

tvho7n  they  had  desired]  Rather,  wliom  they  were  demanding.  Comp. 
Acts  xiii.  18. 


346  ST    LUKE,   XXIII.  [w.  26—28. 

26 — 32.    Simon  the  Cyrenian.    The  Daughters  of  J^ erusalem. 

26  And  as  they  led  him  away,   they  laid  hold   upon  one 
Simon,  a  Cyrenian,  coming  out  of  the  country,  and  on  him 

27  they  laid  the  cross,  that  he  might  bear  it  after  Jesus.     And 
there   followed   him   a   great   company  of  people,  and  of 

28  women,  which  also  bewailed  and  lamented  him.     But  Jesus 

26 — 32.     Simon  the  Cyrenian.     The  Daughters  of  Jerusalem. 

26.  Simon,  a  Cyrenian]  There  was  a  large  colony  of  Jews  in  the 
powerful  African  city  of  Cyrene,  and  the  Cyi^enians  had  a  synagogue  at 
Jerusalem  (Acts  ii.  10,  vi.  9,  xi.  ■20).  Simon  may  have  come  to  keep  the 
feast.  St  Mark  calls  him  "the  father  of  Alexander  and  Rufus,"  />os- 
sibly  the  Christians  mentioned  in  Acts  xix.  33;  Rom.  xvi.  13. 

coming  out  of  the  country]  Not  necessarily  from  labouring  in  the 
fields :  still  the  notice  accords  with  the  many  other  incidental  signs 
that  this  was  not  the  Feast-Day,  but  the  day  preceding  it.  See 
Excursus  V.  The  Apocryphal  ■'Acts  of  Pilate'  says  that  the  sol- 
diers met  Simon  at  the  city  gate  (John  xix.  17).  There  is  no  historical 
authority  for  the  identification  of  the  Via  Dolorosa  or  for  the  'Stations' 
of  the  Via  Cruets,  The  latter  are  said  to  have  originated  among  the 
Franciscans. 

on  him  they  laid  the  cross]  Probably  because  our  Lord,  enfeebled  by 
the  terrible  scourging  and  by  the  long  hours  of  sleepless  agitation,  was 
too  feeble  to  bear  it.  This  seems  to  be  specially  implied  by  Mk.  xv.  i  r. 
It  is  not  certain  whether  they  made  Simon  carry  the  entire  cross  or 
merely  part  of  the  burden.  (Comp.  Gen.  xxii.  6;  Is.  ix.  6.)  The  Cross 
was  not  carried  in  the  manner  with  which  pictures  have  made  us 
familiar,  but  either  in  two  separate  pieces — the  body  of  the  cross 
(staticuht7n)  and  its  transom  {antenna);  or  by  tying  these  two  pieces 
together  in  the  shape  of  a  V  (fiirca).  The  Cross  was  certainly  not 
the  crux  decussata  (X)  or  St  Andrew's  Cross;  nor  the  crtix  cominissa 
(T  St  Anthony's  Cross) ;  but  the  ordinary  Roman  Cross  ( f  crux 
immissa.  See  Matt,  xxvii.  37).  The  Hebrew  word  for  Cross  is  the 
letter  Thau  (Ezek.  ix.  4),  which  gave  abundant  opportunities  for  the 
allegorising  tendency  of  the  Fathers.  On  the  body  of  the  Cross  was 
certainly  a  projecting  piece  of  wood  [irfp/iia,  sedile)  to  support  the 
sufferer,  but  there  was  no  stippedanenni  or  rest  for  the  feet ;  and  from 
xxiv.  39  it  seems  certain  that  one  nail  (if  not  two)  was  driven  through 
the  feet.  Nothing  could  exceed  the  agony  caused  by  this  "most  cruel 
and  horrible  punishment"  as  even  the  ancients  unanimously  call  it. 

that  he  might  bear  it  after  Jesus]  Hence  various  Gnostic  sects  (e.g. 
the  Basilidians)  devised  the  fable  that  Simon  was  executed  by  mistake 
for  Jesus,  a  fable  which,  through  Apocryphal  legends,  has  found  its 
way  into  the  Koran  (Koran,  Suras  3,  4).  St  Matthew  (xxvii.  32)  and 
St  Mark  use  the  technical  word  riy-)dpn)aav,  'impressed  for  service.' 
Perhaps  the  Jews  had  received  a  hint  that  Simon  was  a  disciple. 

27.  of  womcnl     Some  of  them   may  have  come  to  offer  the  ano 


w.  29—32.]  ST   LUKE,   XXIII. 


347 


turning  unto  them,  said,  Daughters  of  Jerusalem,  weep  not 
for  me,  but  weep  for  yourselves,  and  for  your  children.     For  29 
behold,  the  days  are  coming,   in  the  which  they  shall  say, 
Blessed  are  the  barren,  and  the  wombs  that  never  bare,  and 
the  paps  which  never  gave  suck.      Then  shall  they  be- 30 
gin  to  say  to  the  mountains.  Fall  on  us;  and  to  the 
hills.   Cover  us.     For  if  they  do  these  things  in  a  green  51 
tree,  what  shall  be  done  in  the  dry  ?     And  there  were  also  32 
two  other,  malefactors,  led  with  him  to  be  put  to  death. 

dynes  which  were  supposed  to  be  demanded  by  the  Rabbinic  interpre- 
tation of  Prov.  xxxi.  6.  This  is  the  only  other  recorded  incident  of  tiie 
procession  to  Calvaiy,  and  it  is  mentioned  by  St  Luke  alone.  It  is 
a  sad  fact  that  no  man — not  even  His  Apostles— seems  to  have  come 
forward  to  support  these  His  last  hours. 

be'wailed]  Rather,  were  beating  their  breasts  for  Him.  Comp. 
viii.  52,  xviii.  13. 

28.  turning  unto  them  said]  The  only  recorded  words  between 
His  condemnation  and  crucifixion.  Pity  wrung  from  Him  the  utter- 
ance which  anguish  and  violence  had  failed  to  extort. 

Datighters  ofjferusalem]  The  wailing  women  were  not  therefore  His 
former  Galilaean  followers,  viii.  2,  3. 

for  yourselves]  Some  of  them  at  least  would  survive  till  the  terrible 
days  of  the  Siege. 

and  for  your  children]  Comp.  Matt,  xxvii.  25,  "His  blood  be  on  us 
a7td  071  our  children." 

29.  Blessed  are  the  barren]  Comp.  xi.  27;  Hos.  ix.  12 — 16.  The 
words  received  their  most  painful  illustration  in  the  incident  of  the 
.Siege,  which  had  long  been  foretold  in  prophecy  (Deut.  xxviii.  53 — 57; 
Jer.  xix.  9),  that  women  were  driven  even  to  kill  and  eat  their  own 
children:  Jos.  B.  y.  V.  10,  vi.  3.  The  'Blessed'  shewed  an  awful 
reversal  of  the  proper  blessedness  of  motherhood. 

30.  to  the  moutttains,  Fall  on  us]  Comp.  Hos.  x.  8.  Hundreds  of 
the  Jews  at  the  end  of  the  siege  hid  themselves  in  subterranean  recesses, 
and  no  less  than  2000  were  killed  by  being  buried  under  the  ruins  of 
these  hiding-places  (Jos.  B.  y.  VI.  9,  §  4).  We  cannot  fail  to  see  in 
these  events  something  of  what  St  John  calls  "the  wrath  of  the  Lamb," 
Rev.  vi.  16.  Even  a  terror  is  entreated  as  a  relief  from  yet  more 
horrible  calamities. 

31.  For  if  they  do  these  things  in  a  green  tree,  what  shall  be  done  in 
the  dry?]  Rather,  what  must  happen  in  the  dry?  The  meaning  of 
this  proverb  is  not  clear,  and  hence  it  early  received  the  most  absurd 
explanations.  It  can  however  only  mean  either  (i)  'If  they  act  thus 
cruelly  and  shamefully  while  the  tree  of  their  natural  life  is  still  green, 
what  horrors  of  crime  shall  mark  the  period  of  its  blighting?'— in  which 
case  it  receives  direct  illustration  from  Ezck.  xx.  47;  comp.  xxi.  3,  4; 
or  {2)  'If  they  act  thus  to  Me  the  Innocent  and  the  Holy,  what  shall  be 
the  fate  of  these,  the  guilty  and  false?'— in  which  case  it  expresses  the 


348  ST    LUKE,   XXIII.  [w.  33,  34. 

$^ — 38.     The  Crucifixion  and  Mockery.     The  Title. 

33  And  when  they  were  come  to  the  place,  which  is  called 
Calvary,  there  they  crucified  him,  and  the  malefactors,  one 

34  on  the  right  hand,  and  the  other  on  the  left.     Then  said 
Jesus,  Father,  forgive  them ;  for  they  know  not  what  they 

same  thought  as  i  Pet.  iv.  17,  18.  (See  Prov.  xi.  31 ;  Ezek.  xx.  47,  xxi.  4; 
Matt.  iii.  10,  and  p.  385.)  For  the  historic  fulfihnent  in  the  horrors  of 
a  massacre  so  great  as  to  weary  the  very  soldiers,  see  Jos.  B.  y .  VI.  44. 

32.  two  other]  Perhaps  followers  of  the  released  Barabbas.  They 
were  not  'thieves,'  but  'robbers'  or  'brigands,'  and  this  name  was  not 
undeservedly  given  to  some  of  the  wild  bands  which  refused  Roman 
authority.     See  Is.  liii.  9. 

malefactors']  Kakonrgoi.  The  same  English  word  is  used  in  John 
xviii.  30,  where  it  is  literally  '^doing  evil." 

33 — 38.    The  Crucifixion  and  Mockery.     The  Title. 

33.  the  place,  which  is  called  Calvaiy]  It  is  nowhere  in  Scripture 
called  'a  hill,'  and  it  was  certainly  not  in  any  sense  a  steep  or  lofty  hill. 
The  only  grounds  for  speaking  of  it  as  a  hill  are  (i)  tradition;  and  (2) 
the  name.  Calvary  is  the  Latin  form  of  Golgotha,  and  means  'a  skull' 
(as  the  same  Greek  word  kranion  is  rendered  in  Matt,  xxvii.  33).  Like 
the  French  Chanmont,  this  name  might  describe  a  low  rounded  hill. 
Ewald  identifies  it  with  Gareb  (Jer.   xxxi.  39),  and  Kraft  accordingly 

derives  Golgotha  from  73,  'hill,' and  HyiJl,  'death.'  The  name  has  led 
to  the  legend  about  Adam's  skull  lying  at  the  foot  of  the  Cross,  which  is 
so  often  introduced  into  pictures. 

34.  Father,  forgive  t/iem]  Is.  liii.  i'2,  "He  bare  the  sins  of  many, 
and  made  intercession  for  the  transgressors."  These  words  were 
probably  uttered  at  the  terrible  moment  when  the  Sufferer  was  out- 
stretched upon  the  Cross  and  the  nails  were  being  driven  through  the 
palms  of  the  hands.  They  are  certainly  genuine,  though  strangely 
omitted  by  B,  D.  We  must  surely  suppose  that  the  prayer  was  uttered 
not  only  for  the  Roman  soldiers,  who  were  the  mere  instruments  of  the 
executors,  but  for  all  His  enemies.  It  was  in  accordance  with  His  own 
teaching  (Matt.  v.  44),  and  His  children  have  learnt  it  from  Him 
(Acts  vii.  59,  60;  Euseb. //.  ^.  II.  29).  They  were  the  first  of  the  seven 
words  from  the  Cross,  of  which  three  (vs.  34,  43,  46)  are  recorded  by  St 
Luke  only,  and  three  (John  xix.  27,  28,  30)  by  St  John  only.  The  last 
cry  also  began  with  the  word  "Father."     The  seven  words  are 

Luke  xxiii.  34.     The  Prayer  for  the  Murderers. 

Luke  xxiii.  43.     The  Promise  to  the  Penitent. 

John  xix.  26.     The  provision  for  the  Mother. 

Matt,  xxvii.  46;  Mk.  xv.  34.     Eli,  Eli,  lama  sabachthani  ? 

John  xix.  28.     The  sole  expression  of  human  agony. 

John  xix.  30.     "  It  is  finished." 

Luke  xxiii.  46.     "  Father,  into  Thy  hands  I  commend  My  spirit." 

Thus  they  refer  to  His  enemies,  to  penitents,  to  His  mother  and  disciple, 


w.  35— 38.]  ST   LUKE,  XXIII. 


349 


do.     And  they  parted  his  raiment,  and  cast  lots.     And  the  as 
people  stood  beholding.     And  the  rulers  also  with  them  de- 
rided him,  saying.  He  saved  others ;  let  him  save  himself,  if 
he  be  Christ,  the  chosen  of  God.     And  the  soldiers  also  36 
mocked  him,  coming  to  hi7n,  and  offering  him  vinegar,  and  37 
saying.  If  thou  be  the  King  of  the  Jews,  save  thyself.     And  38 

to  the  agony  of  His  soul,  to  the  anguish  of  His  body,  to  His  work,  and 
to  His  Heavenly  Father.  St  Luke  here  omits  our  Lord's  refusal  of 
the  sopor — the  medicated  draught,  or  myrrh-mingled  wine  (Mk.  xv.  23 ; 
Matt,  xxvii.  34),  which,  if  it  would  have  deadened  His  pains,  would 
also  have  beclouded  His  faculties. 

forgive  them']  aphes ;  Christ  died  "for  the  remission  [aphesin)  of  sins," 
Matt.  xxvi.  28. 

they  knozu  not  what  they  do]  Rather,  are  doing.  ' '  Through  ignorance 
ye  did  it,"  Acts  iii.  17;  i  Cor.  ii.  8.  "Judaei  clamant  Crucitige; 
Christus  clamat  Ignosce.  Magna  illorum  iniquitas  sed  major  tua,  O 
Domine,  pietas."     St  Bernard. 

they  parted  his  raiinent]     For  the  fuller  details  see  John  xix.  23,  24. 

35.  beholding]  The  w^ord  implies  that  they  gazed  as  at  a  solemn 
spectacle,  Ps.  xxii.  17;  Zech.  xii.  10.  They  seem  as  a  body  to  have 
been  far  less  active  in  insult  than  the  others. 

with  them]     These  words  are  omitted  in  K,  B,  C,  D,  L,  &c. 

derided]  The  same  strong  word  which  is  used  in  xvi.  14 ;  i  Esdr.  i.  5 1. 

He  saved  others]  They  said  this  in  the  same  spirit  as  the  Nazarenes, 
iv.  23. 

if  he  be  Christ,  the  chosen  of  God]  Literally,  '^\i  this  man  (con- 
temptuously) be  the  Christ  of  God,  the  chosen."  For  other  insults 
see  Matt,  xxvii.  40 — 43;  Mk.  xv.  29 — 32.  Observe  how  the  universal 
derision  of  what  appeared  to  be  such  abject  failure  and  humiliation 
enhances  our  estimate  of  the  faith  of  the  dying  robber. 

36.  the  soldiers  also  7nocked  him]  A  quaternion  of  soldiers  (John 
xix.  53)  with  a  centurion.  Similarly  Tacitus  says  of  the  Christian 
martyrs  who  perished  in  the  Neronian  persecution,  " perettntibus  addita 
hidibria"  {Ann.  XV.  44). 

offering  him  viriegar]  It  was  their  duty  to  watch  Him  (Matt,  xxvii. 
36),  for  sufferers  sometimes  lingered  alive  upon  the  cross  for  days.  It  is 
hardly  to  be  wondered  at  if,  with  such  a  vile  example  before  them  as  the 
derision  by  the  Priests  and  Elders,  these  provincial  or  Roman  soldiers 
— men  of  the  lowest  class,  and  "cruel  by  their  wars,  to  blood  inured" — 
beguiled  the  tedious  hours  by  the  mockery  of  the  Innocent.  By  the 
word  "mocked"  seems  to  be  meant  that  they  lifted  up  to  Ilis  lips  the 
vessels  containing  their  ordinary  drink — sour  wine  (posca,  John  xix.  29. 
Comp.  Num.  vi.  3;  Ruth  ii.  14) — and  then  snatched  them  away.  Probably 
a  large  earthen  jar  oi posca  for  the  use  of  these  soldiers  lay  near  the  foot  of 
the  Cross  (Ps.  Ixix.  21 ;  John  xix.  29).  All  these  insults  took  place  during 
the  earlier  part  of  the  Crucifixion,  and  before  the  awful  darkness  came  on. 

37.  If  thou  be  the  King  of  the  Jews]  as  the  title  over  Thy  Cross  asserts. 


3SO  ST   LUKE,  XXIII.  [v.  38. 

a  superscription  also  was  written  over  him  in  letters  of 
Greek,  and  Latin,  and  Hebrew,  THIS  IS  THE  KING 
OF  THE  JEWS. 

The  soldiers  would  delight  in  these  taunts,  because,  like  the  ancients 
generally,  they  detested  all  Jews.  Tumults  of  the  most  violent  kind 
often  arose  from  the  brutal  insolence  of  hatred  which  they  shewed  to  the 
conquered  nation. 

38.  a  superscriptiott]  A  tiitilus  written  in  black  letters  on  a  board 
smeared  with  white  gypsum,  and  therefore  very  conspicuous.  To  put 
such  a  board  over  the  head  of  a  crucified  person  was  the  ordinary 
custom.  The  jeers  of  the  soldiers  were  aimed  at  the  Jews  in  general 
quite  as  much  as  at  the  Divine  Sufferer;  and  these  jeers  probably 
first  opened  the  eyes  of  the  priests  to  the  way  in  which  Pilate  had 
managed  to  insult  them. 

in  letters  of  Greek,  and  Latin,  and  Hebrew^  This  is  omitted  in  N,  B, 
L,  and  some  ancient  versions,  though  the  fact  is  undoubted  from  John 
xix.  20.  Thus  the  three  great  languages  of  the  ancient  world — the  lan- 
guages of  Culture,  of  Empire,  and  of  Religion — bore  involuntary  witness 
to  Christ. 

This  is  the  King  of  the  Jews^  The  superscription  is  given  differently 
by  each  Evangelist.  St  Luke  perhaps  gives  the  peculiarly  scornful  Latin 
form.     "Jiex  Judaeorimi  hie  est."     The  other  Evangelists  give 

This  is  Jesus  the  King  of  the  Jews.     Matt,  xxvii.  37. 

The  King  of  the  Jews.     Mk.  xv.  26. 

Jesus  of  Nazareth  the  King  of  the  Jews.     John  xix.  19. 

Although  no  serious  and  sensible  writer  would  dream  of  talking  about 
'a  discrepancy'  here,  it  is  very  probable  that  the  differences  arise  from 
the  different  forms  assumed  by  the  Title  in  the  three  languages.  We  may 
then  assume  that  the  Title  over  the  Cross  was  as  follows : 


'0  jSacrtXeus  rwv  'JovSalup 
Rex  Judaeorum  hie  est. 


John. 
Mark. 
Luke. 


It  will  be  seen  that  St  Matthew's  is  an  accurate  combination  of  the 
three,  not  one  of  which  was  an  accusation. 

It  was  only  while  the  Priests  were  deriding  Christ  that  it  began  to 
dawn  on  them  that  Pilate,  even  in  angrily  yielding  to  their  violent 
persistence,  had  avenged  himself  in  a  way  which  they  could  not  resent, 
by  a  deadly  insult  against  them  and  their  nation.  This  was  their  King, 
and  this  was  how  they  had  treated  Him.  Thus  our  Lord  reigned  even 
on  His  Cross,  according  to  the  curious  old  reading  of  Ps.  xcvi.  10, 
i^acrtXevffev  airo  rod  ^ijXov  (LXX.),  Regnavit  a  ligno.  (See  Life  of  Christ, 
1.  12,  n.)  For  the  attempt  of  the  Priests  to  get  the  superscription  altered 


w.  39—41.]  ST   LUKE,   XXIII 


,   ^A.iii.  351 


39 — 43-      The  Penitent  Robber. 


_  And  one  of  the  malefactors  which  were  hanged  railed  on  39 
him,  saying,  If  thou  be  Christ,  save  thyself  and  us.     But  the  40 
other  answering  rebuked  him,  saying,   Dost  not  thou  fear 
God,  seeing  thou  art  in  the  same  condemnation  ?     And  we  41 

see  John  xix.  21,  -22.  Tn  refusing  it  Pilate  shewed  the  insolent  ob- 
stinacy which  Philo  attributes  to  him.  The  actual  title  was  a  glo- 
rious testimony  to  Jesus  and  an  awful  reproach  to  the  Jews.  Ps.  ii.  6. 
Thus  His  Cross  becomes,  as  St  Ambrose  says,  His  trophy ;  the  gibbet 
of  the  Malefactor  becomes  the  feretrum — the  spoil-bearing  sign  of 
triumph— of  the  Victor.  See  this  alluded  to  in  Col.  ii.  14,  15.  {Life 
of  St  Paul,  II.  461.) 

39 — 43.     The  Penitent  Robber. 

39.  one  of  the  malefactors\  In  St  Matthew  and  St  Mark  we  are  told 
that  both  the  robbers  "reviled"  Him.  Here  then  we  might  suppose  that 
there  was  an  irreconcilable  discrepancy.  But  though  the  Evangelists 
sometimes  seem  to  be  on  the  very  verge  of  mutual  contradiction,  no 
single  instance  of  a  positive  contradiction  can  be  adduced  from  their 
independent  pages.  The  reason  of  this  is  partly  that  they  wrote  the 
simple  truth,  and  partly  that  they  wrote  under  divine  guidance.  The 
explanation  of  the  apparent  contradiction  lies  in  the  Greek  words  used. 
The  two  first  Synoptists  tell  us  that  both  the  robbers  during  an  early 
part  of  the  hours  of  crucifixion  reproached  ]q5vls,  (wvelSi^ou),  but  we  learn 
from  St  Luke  that  only  one  of  them  used  injurious  and  insulting  language 
to  Him  {ipXa(r(prifX€i).  If  they  were  followers  of  Barabbas  or  Judas  of 
Galilee  they  would  recognise  no  Messiahship  but  that  of  the  sword,  and 
they  might,  in  their  very  despair  and  agony,  join  in  the  reproaches 
levelled  ijf  all  classes  alike  at  One  who  might  seem  to  them  to  have 
thrown  away  a  gnreat  opportunity.  It  was  quite  common  for  men  on 
the  cross  to  talk  to  the  multitude,  and  even  to  make  harangues  (for 
instances  see  my  Life  of  Christ,  II.  409,  n. ) ;  but  Jesus,  amid  this  universal 
roar  of  execration  or  reproach  from  mob,  priests,  soldiers,  and  even  these 
wretched  fellow-sufferers,  hung  on  the  Cross  in  meek  and  awful  silence. 

If  thou  be  Christ]  or.  Art  thou  not  the  Christ?    N,  B,  C,  L. 

40.  But  the  other]  The  'bonus  latro,'  or  'Penitent  Robber,' is  called 
by  various  traditional  names,  and  in  the  Arabic  'Gosjiel  of  the  Infancy' 
(an  Apocryphal  book)  he  is  called  Titus  and  Dysmas  in  Ev.  A^icodern.  X., 
and  a  story  is  told  that  he  had  saved  the  Virgin  and  her  Child  from  his 
comrades  during  their  flight  into  Egypt.  There  are  robber  caves  in  the 
Valley  of  Doves  which  leads  from  Gennesareth  to  Kurn  Hattin  (see  on 
vi.  12),  and  he  may  have  been  among  the  crowds  who  hung  on  the  lips 
of  Jesus  in  former  days.  "  Doubtless  the  Cross  aided  his  penitence. 
On  the  soft  couch  conversion  is  rare."     Bengel. 

Dost  not  thou  fear  God]    Rather,  Dost  not  tliou  even  feax  God  ? 


352  ST    LUKE,   XXIII.  [vv.  42—44. 

indeed  justly ;  for  we  receive  the  due  reward  of  our  deeds  : 

42  but  this  man  hath  done  nothing  amiss.     And  he  said  unto 
Jesus,  Lord,  remember  me  when  thou  comest  into  thy  king- 

43  dom.     And  Jesus  said  unto  him,  Verily  I  say  unto  thee,  To 
day  shalt  thou  be  with  me  in  paradise. 

44 — 49.    Darkness.    The  Veil  of  the  Temple  rent.    The  End. 
Remorse  of  the  Spectators. 

M      And  it  was  about  the  sixth  hour,  and  there  was  a  darkness 

41.  we  receive  the  due  rewai'd  0/  our  deeds]  Literally,  "we  receive 
back  things  worthy  of  the  crimes  we  did." 

hath  done  nothing  aniiss]  Literally,  "  did  nothing  otit  of  place"  (like 
our  "out  of  the  way,"  i.e.  nothing  unusual  or  wrong).  The  v^oxA prasso 
in  both  clauses  implies  grave  actions  (see  vs.  51),  and  this  testimony 
implies  entire  innocence.  It  is  the  broadest  possible  acquittal.  The 
word  atopos  occurs  in  2  Thess.  iii.  1. 

42.  Jesus,  Lord]  Rather,  Oil,  Jesus;  the  "Lord"  is  omitted  in 
t^,  B,  C,  L.  He  may  well  have  been  encouraged  by  having  heard  the 
prayer  of  Jesus  for  His  murderers,  vs.  34.  "  Oravit  misericordia  ut 
oraret  miseria."  Aug. 

Lord,  remember  me]  A  truly  humble  prayer  for  a  far-off  remem- 
brance. He  calls  Itim  Lord  whom  the  very  Apostles  had  left,  and 
recognises  Him  as  a  King  who  even  when  dead  could  benefit  the 
dead.     Even  Apostles  might  have  learnt  from  him.     (Bengel.) 

into  thy  kingdom]  Rather,  in  thy  kingdom.  We  must  not  lose 
sight  of  the  faith  which  can  alone  have  dictated  this  intense  appeal  to 
One  who  hung  mute  upon  the  Cross  amid  universal  derision. 

43.  To  day]  An  unexpected  boon, — for  the  crucified  often  lingered 
in  agony  for  more  than  two  days. 

To   day  shalt  thou    be   tvith   me  in  paradise]      Paradeisos   is    de- 
rived from   the   Persian  word   Pardes,    meaning   a   king's   garden    or 
pleasaunce.    Here  it  is  'a  garden '  in  which  are  more  blessed  trees  than 
those  in  the  garden  of  Golgotha.    (Bengel. )  It  is  used  ( i )  for  the  garden  of 
Eden  (Gen.  ii.  8,  &c.) ;  and  (2)  for  that  region  of  Hades  [Sheol)  in  which 
the  spirits  of  the  blest  await  the  general   Resurrection,   Acts   ii.   31; 
I  Cor.  XV.  55  ;  Rev.  ii.  7.    The  Sapphic  verse  on  the  tomb  of  the  great 
Copernicus  alludes  to  the  prayer  of  the  Penitent  Robber : 
"  Non  parem  Paulo  veniam  requiro 
Gratiam  Petri  neque  posco,  sed  quam 
In  crucis  ligno  dederis  latroni 
Sedulus  oro." 

44 — 49.  Darkness.    The  Veil  of  the  Temple  rent.   The  End. 
Remorse  of  the  Spectators. 

44.  it  was  about  the  sixth  hour]  i.  e.  mid-day.  This  seems  at  first  sight 
to  contradict  John  xix.  14,  but  there  is  fair  ground  to  conjecture  that 
'sixth'  (which  would  be  written  5"')  was  an  early  misreading  for  'third' 
(written  V).     For  other  proposed  solutions  of  the  discrepancy  see  Life 


vv.  45,  46.]  ST    LUKE,   XXIII.  353 

over  all  the  earth  until  the  ninth  hour.     And  the  sun  was  45 
darkened,  and  the  vail  of  the  temple  was  rent  in  the  midst. 
And  when   Jesus  had    cried   with   a  loud   voice,    he    said,  46 
Father,    into   thy  hands  I  commend   my  spirit:    and 
having  said  thus,  he  gave  up  the  ghost. 

of  Christ,  II.  385.  The  solution  which  asserts  that  St  John  used  a 
different  way  of  reckoning  time  is  very  precarious.  St  Luke  omits  the 
presence  of  the  Virgin  and  the  two  other  Marys  and  Salome  at  the 
Cross,  and  the  words  "  Woman,  behold  thy  son,"  "  Behold  thy  mother." 
During  the  three  hours'  darkness  no  incident  is  recorded,  but  we  trace 
a  deepening  sense  of  remorse  and  horror  in  the  crowd.  The  fact  that 
the  sun  was  thus  "turned  into  darkness"  was,  at  last,  that  'sign  from 
heaven'  for  which  the  Pharisees  had  mockingly  asked. 

ever  all  the  earthy  Rather,  over  all  the  land.  There  is  no  reason 
to  believe  that  the  darkness  was  over  all  the  world.  The  Fathers 
(Origen,  c.  Cels.  11.  33,  59,  and  Jerome,  Chron.)  indeed  appeal  to  two 
heathen  historians — Phlegon  and  Thallus — for  a  confirmation  of  it,  but 
the  testimony  is  too  vague  to  be  relied  on  either  as  to  time  or  circum- 
stance.    They  both  speak  of  an  eclipse. 

45.  And  the  sun  was  darkened^  Instead  of  these  words  some  MSS. 
(N,  B,  C,  &c.)  read  ^^  the  sun  eclipsing,''''  or  "failing.'"  The  reading  seems 
only  to  be  an  attempt,  and  that  a  very  unsuccessful  one,  to  account  for 
the  darkness.  That  it  could  not  have  been  due  to  an  eclipse  is  certain, 
for  the  Paschal  moon  was  at  the  full. 

the  vail  of  the  temple  was  rent  in  the  niidst\  The  veil  intended  must 
be  what  was  called  the  Parocheth,  or  inner  veil,  which  hung  between  the 
Holy  Place  and  the  Holy  of  Holies.  It  was  very  heavy,  and  splendid 
with  embroidery.  It  is  alluded  to  in  Heb.  vi.  19,  ix.  3,  x.  19,  20.  The 
obvious  significance  of  the  portent  was  the  departure  of  the  Shechinah 
or  Presence  of  God  from  His  now-deserted  Temple.  This  particular 
event  is  (naturally)  not  mentioned  by  the  Jews,  but  we  may  have  a 
reference  to  it  in  the  various  omens  of  coming  wrath  which  they  say 
occurred  "  forty  years  "  before  the  destruction  of  the  Temple,  and  in 
which  Jochanan  Ben  Zakkai  saw  the  fulfilment  of  Zech.  xi.  i.  For  a 
fuller  account  of  these  events  see  Matt,  xxvii.  51—53;  Mk.  xv.  33. 
Jerome  on  Matt,  xxvii.  51  says  that  a  great  lintel  over  the  gate  of  the 
Temple  fell  and  was  shattered. 

46.  And  whett  Jesus  had  cried  with  a  loud  voice,  he  said]  Rather, 
And,  crying  with  a  loud  voice,  Jesus  said.  St  Luke  here  omits  the 
Eli,  Eli,  lama  sabachthani,  and  the  effect  of  that  cry  on  the  multitude 
(Matt,  xxvii.  46— 50);  the  "I  thirst,"  which  was  the  sole  word  of  i)hysical 
suffering  wrung  from  Him  in  all  His  agonies;  and  the  one  word  {Tctc- 
lestai)  in  which  He  expressed  the  sense  that  His  work  was  finished. 

Father,  into  thy  hands  I  commend  my  spirit]  A  reference  to  I's.  xxxi. 
5  ;  comp.  Acts  vii.  59 ;  i  Pet.  ii.  ■23.  These  words  have  been  among 
the  dying  utterances  of  St  Polycarp,  St  Augustine,  St  Bernard,  John 
Huss,  Jerome  of  Prague,  Luther,  Melancthon  and  Columbus. 

he  gave  up  the  ghost]     None  of  the  Evangelists  use  the  word  "He 

ST  LUKE  23 


354  ST    LUKE,    XXIII.  [vv.  47— 50. 

47  Now  when  the  centurion  saw  what  was  done,   he  glorified 

48  God,  saying.  Certainly  this  was  a  righteous  man.  And  all 
the  people  that  came  together  to  that  sight,  beholding  the 
things  which  were  done,  smote  their  breasts,  and  returned. 

49  And  all  his  acquaintance,  and  the  women  that  followed  him 
from  Galilee,  stood  afar  off,  beholding  these  things. 


50 — 54.     Joseph  of  Arimathaea.      The  taking  down  from  the 
Cross.      The  Entombment. 

50  And  behold,  there  was  a  man  named  Joseph,  a  counsel- 
died  "  (ethanen),  but  exepnetisen  (literally,  '  He  breathed  forth,'  here 
and  Mk.  xv.  37),  and  '  He  sent  forth'  or  'gave  up  His  spirit'  (aphckcii, 
paredoken  to  pneunia,  Matt,  xxvii.  50;  John  xix.  30);  probably  because 
they  wish  to  indicate  the  truth  stated  in  John  x.  18,  that  He  gave  up 
His  life  "because  He  willed,  when  He  willed,  how  He  willed."  Aug. 
Comp.  Eph.  V.  i\  Gal.  ii.  20. 

47.  the  centurionl  who  commanded  the  quaternion  of  soldiers.  It  is 
remarkable  that  St  Luke  gives  us  several  instances  of  'good  cen- 
turions,' vii.  2,  xxiii.  47;  Acts  x.  i,  xxii.  26,  xxvii.  43. 

saw  what  was  done\     See  Mk.  xv.  39;  Matt,  xxvii.  54. 

he  glorified  God]  A  notice  characteristic  of  St  Luke  (ii.  20,  v.  25, 
vii.  16,  xiii.  13,  xvii.  15,  xviii.  43). 

this  was  a  righteous  man]  This  remark  might  have  been  drawn  forth 
by  the  silent  majesty  and  holiness  of  the  Sufferer.  After  the  earth- 
quake he  may  have  added,  "Truly  this  man  was  a  Son  of  God" 
(Matt,  xxvii.  54).  The  latter  phrase  sounds  at  first  incongruous  on  the 
lips  of  a  heathen,  though  'Son  of  God'  is  found  as  a  title  of  Augustus 
in  some  inscriptions.  But  the  centurion  had  twice  heard  our  Lord 
pray  to  'His  Father'  (vss.  34,  46),  and  even  Pilate  had  been  over- 
powered by  the  awful  dread  lest  He  should  be  something  more  than 
man  (John  xix.  7 — 9). 

48.  a//  the  people]     Rather,  all  the  crowds. 

smote  their  breasts,  and  returned]  Rather,  returned,  smiting  tbeir 
breasts.  It  nmst  be  remembered  that  the  People  had  not  acted  spon- 
taneously in  this  matter,  but  had  been  goaded  on  by  the  Priests. 

49.  And  all  his  acquaintance]  Rather,  But.  Peculiar  to  St  Luke. 
Comp.  ii.  44. 

stood  afar  off,  beholding  these  things]  The  word  used  is  not  thco- 
rountes,  as  in  vs.  35.  There  is,  perhaps,  in  the  "afar  off,"  a  sad  allusion 
to  Ps.  xxxviii.  II,  "My  lovers  and  my  friends  stand  aloof  from  my 
sore  ;  and  my  kinsmen  stand  afar  ofi."  St  Luke  omits  the  breaking  of 
the  legs  of  the  robbers,  and  the  piercing  of  the  side  of  Jesus  by  the 
soldiers,  which  are  narrated  in  John  xix.  31  —37. 


vv.  SI— 53]  ST    LUKE,    XXIII. 


355 


ler;  and  he  was  a  good  man,  and  a  just :  (the  same  had  not  s. 
consented  to  the  counsel  and  deed  of  them  ;)  he  was  of  Ari- 
niathea,  a  city  of  the  Jews  :  who  also  himself  waited  for  the 
kingdom  of  God.     This  77ian  went  unto  Pilate,  and  begged  s^ 
the  body  of  Jesus.     And  he  took  it  down,  and  wrapped  it  in  53 

50—54.    Joseph  of  Arimathaea.     The  taking  down  from  the 
Cross.     The  Entombment. 

50.  a  counseller]  i.e.  a  member  of  the  Sanhedrin,  and  therefore  {as 
one  of  the  70  most  distinguished  members  of  the  ruling  classes)  a  per- 
son of  great  distinction.  St  Mark  (xv.  43)  calls  him  '  an  honourable 
councillor.'  Godet  somewhat  fancifully  sees  in  St  Mark's  description 
of  him  the  Roman  ideal  ;  as  in  St  Luke's  'good  and  just,'  the  Greek 
ideal  (KaXos  Ka,yad6s) ;  and  in  St  Matthew's  '  a  ricA  man,'  the  Jewish 
ideal. 

a  good  mail,  and  a  jusi\  The  first  word  describes  his  moral  charac- 
ter, the  latter  his  strict  religious  life  as  an  orthodox  Jew.     Rom.  v.  7. 

51.  the  same  had  not  consented  to  the  counsel  and  deed  of  them'\  It 
is  remarkable  that  Joseph  is  the  only  Sanhedrist  of  whom  this  excep- 
tion is  recorded.  We  cannot,  however,  doubt  that  it  was  true  of  Nico- 
demus  also,  since  he  was  " //^^  teacher  of  Israel"  (John  iii.  10),  which 
may  possibly  mean  the  third  officer  of  the  Synagogue,  who  was  known 
by  the  name  of  the  Chakam  or  '  Wise  Man.'  The  word  '  deed '  might 
almost  be  rendered  'crime.' 

Arifnathea^  The  name  is  a  modification  of  the  later  Hebrew 
Ramtka,  'a  hill,'  and  is  the  same  name  as  Ramah,  Ramathaim,  &c. 
Hence  the  town  of  Joseph  has  been  variously  identified  with  Kanileh  in 
Dan,  Ramathaim  in  Ephraim  (i  Sam.  i.  i),  and  Ramah  in  Benjamin 
(Matt.  ii.  18). 

alsol  i.e.  as  well  as  Christ's  open  followers.  The  same  word  is  pre- 
served in  Matt,  xxvii.  57,  "who  also  himself  was  a  disciple,"  though  as 
St  John  (xix.  38)  adds,  "secretly  for  fear  of  the  Jews." 

waited  for  the  kingdom  of  God]     See  ii.  iS,  and  p.  382. 

62.  went  unto  Pilate,  attd  bsgged  the  body  of  Jesus']  This  was  a  bold, 
and  might  even  have  proved  to  be  a  perilous  reciucst.  Hence  the 
'  boldly  '  (tol/nesas)  of  Mk.  xv.  4.^  Pilate  seems  to  have  granted  the 
boon  without  a  bribe  because  the  Jewish  care  for  burial  was  well  known 
(Matt.  xiv.  12;  Acts  viii.  2;  Jos.  B.  J.  IV.  5,  §  2),  and  was  indeed  a 
part  of  their  Law  (Deut.  xxi.  23).  For  the  surprise  of  I'ilate  at  the  rajjid 
death  of  Jesus,  and  his  enquiry  about  it  from  the  centurion,  and  other 
details,  see  Mk.  xv.  44. 

53.  wrapped  it  in  linen]  in  a  sindSn,  or  piece  of  fine  white  linen. 
Comp.  Mk.  xiv.  51.  Two  other  words,  othonia  (John  xix.  40)  and 
soudarion  (John  xx.  7),  are  used  of  the  various  cerements  of  Jesus. 
That  Joseph  bought  this  sindon,  apparently  on  this  d.iy  (.Mk.  xv.  46).  is 
one  of  the  many  incidental  signs  furnished  even  by  the  Synoptisls  th.u 
the  true  Passover  did  not  begin  till  the  evening  of  the  Friday  on  which 
our  Lord  was  crucified.     On   the  part  taken  by  Nicodemns  in  the  En- 


23-2 


356  ST   LUKE,   XXIII.  [w.  54—56. 

linen,  and  laid  it  in  a  sepulchre  that  was  hewn  in  stone, 

54  wherein  never  man  before  was  laid.     And  that  day  was  the 
preparation,  and  the  sabbath  drew  on. 

55  And  the  women  also,  which  came  with  him  from  Galilee, 
followed  after,  and  beheld  the  sepulchre,  and  how  his  body 

56  was  laid.     And  they  returned,  and  prepared  spices  and  oint- 
ments ;  and  rested  the  sabbath  day  according  to  the  com- 

tombment,  and  the  spices  which  he  brought,  see  John  xix.  39,  40.  Both 
Joseph  and  Nicodemus  in  acting  thus  not  only  shewed  great  courage, 
but  also  great  self-sacrifice  ;  for  the  touching  of  a  corpse  made  them 
ceremonially  unclean,  and  thus  prevented  them  from  any  share  in  the 
Paschal  Feast. 

in  a  sepulchre  that  was  hewn  in  stone]  This  rock-hewn  tomb  (Matt., 
Mk.,  comp.  Is.  xxii.  16)  was  in  a  garden  (comp.  Jos.  Antt.  ix.  10,  §  4; 
X-  3i  §  "2)  adjoining  the  scene  of  the  crucifixion,  if  not  an  actual  part  of 
it.  John  xix.  41.  "He  made  His  grave  with  the  rich,"  Is.  liii.  9. 
The  mouth  of  these  rocky  tombs  was  closed  with  a  large  stone,  called 
by  the  Jews  Gdlal,  which  could  only  be  rolled  there  by  the  labour  of 
several  men  (John  xi.  39). 

64.  the  preparation]  This  word  parasketce  became  the  ordinary 
Greek  word  for  Friday,  because  on  Friday  the  Jews  diligently  prepared 
for  the  Sabbath,  which  began  at  sunset.  The  afternoon  is  called  pro- 
sabbaton  in  Mk.  xv.  4'2.  Jos.  Antt.  xvi.  6.  We  are  told  that  Sham- 
mai,  the  almost  contemporary  founder  of  the  most  rigid  school  of  legal- 
ists, used  to  spend  the  whole  week  in  meditating  how  he  could  best 
observe  the  Sabbath. 

drew  on]  Literally,  "  began  to  dawn."  This  expression  is  used, 
although  the  Sabbath  began  at  sunset  (Mk.  xv.  42),  because  the  whole 
period  of  darkness  was  regarded  as  anticipatory  of  the  dawn.  Hence 
the  Jews  sometimes  called  the  evening  of  Friday  '  the  daybreak.'  When 
St  John  (xix.  31)  calls  the  coming  Sabbath  "a  high  day,"  the  expres- 
sion seems  clearly  to  imply  that  it  was  both  the  Sabbath  and  the  day  of 
the  Passover. 

55.     the  women  also]     The  two  other  Synoptists  mention  specially 
Mary  of  Magdala  and  Mary  the  mother  of  James  and  Joses. 
followed  after]     Literally,  '^following  closely." 

66.  they  returned]  As  the  sunset  was  now  rapidly  approaching, 
they  must  have  hurried  home  to  complete  their  preparations  before  the 
Sabbath  began. 

prepared  spices  and  ointments]  The  spices  are  dry,  the  '  perfumes ' 
liquid.  They  wished  to  complete  the  imperfect  embalming  of  the 
body  which  Joseph  and  Nicodemus  had  hastily  begun.  Comp.  1  Chr. 
xvi.  14.  They  had  to  purchase  the  spices  (Mk.  xvi.  i).  St  Matthew 
alone  relates  the  circumstances  under  which  the  Jews  obtained  leave 
to  place  a  watch  over  the  sepulchre,  and  to  seal  the  stone,  xxvii. 
62—66. 

nnd  rested]     This  clause  is  closely  connected  with  the  next  chapter, 


vv.  1-3-1  ST    LUKE,   XXIV.  357 

mandment.     Now  upon  the  first  day  of  the  week,  very  early  24 
in  the  morning,  they  came  unto  the  sepulchre,  bringing  the 
spices  which  they  had   prepared,  and  certain  ^M^r/with 
them. 

2—12.      Vision  of  Ajigels  to  the  Women.     Peter  visits  the 

Tomb. 

And  they  found  the  stone  rolled  away  from  the  sepul-  > 
chre.      And  they  entered  in,  and  found  not  the  body  of  3 

"  And  during  the  Sabbath  day  they  rested. ..but  on  the  first  day  of  the 
week,  &c." 

Ch.  XXIV.     1.     Now]     Rather,  But. 

very  early  in  the  mornutg]  Literally,  at  deep  dawn,  i.e  at  the 
earhest  morning  twilight,  'while  it  was  yet  dark'  (John  xx.  i),  though 
the  sun  began  to  rise  before  they  reached  the  tomb  (Mk.  xvi.  2).  St  John 
mentions  only  Mary  of  Magdala  (xx.  i);  St  Matthew  adds  Mary,  mother 
of  James  (xxviii.  i);  St  Mark  adds  Salome  (xvi.  i);  and  St  Luke  Joanna, 
vs.  10.  They  may  have  gone  singly  or  in  small  groups,  the  Marys 
being  separate  from  the  others.  There  is  no  discrepancy  in  the  different 
•narratives,  although,  as  we  might  have  expected,  they  are  fragmentary 
and  seem  to  reflect  the  varied  and  tumultuous  emotions  of  those  who 
were  the  first  to  see  the  Lord.  The  Easter  music,  as  Lange  says,  is  not 
'a  monotonous  chorale'  but  an  impassioned  fugue. 

and  certain  others  with  them'\  These  words  are  probably  spurious,  not 
being  in  N,  B,  C,  L. 

2 — 12,    Vision  of  Angels  to  the  Women.    Peter  visits  the 

Tomb. 

2.  they  fowui  the  stone  rolled  away]  On  their  way  they  had  con- 
sidered how  they  should  get  over  this  difficulty,  since  the  stone  was 
"very  great"  (Mk.  xvi.  3).  From  St  Mark's  expression,  "looking  up," 
we  infer  that  the  tomb  was  slightly  elevated;  and  from  St  John's 
"lifted"  (ripixivov)  that  the  first  aperture  of  the  tomb  was  horizontal. 
St  Matthew  also  tells  us  of  the  Angel  and  the  Earthquake  (xxviii.  1 — 4). 

3.  found  not  the  body]  Even  advanced  sceptics  admit  this  circum- 
stance as  indisputable,  nor  has  one  of  them  been  able  to  invent  the  most 
remotely  plausible  explanation  of  the  fact  by  natural  causes.  For  the 
white-robed  angel  or  angels  in  the  tomb,  see  Mark  xvi.  5 ;  John  xx. 
II,  \i.  On  the  mention,  omission,  and  numbers  of  these  angels  Van 
Oosterzee  quotes  a  very  striking  remark  from  Lessing.  "Cold  dis- 
crepancy-mongers, do  ye  not  then  see  that  the  Evangelists  do  not  count 
the  angels?. ..There  were  not  only  two  angels,  there  were  millions  of 
them.  They  appeared  not  always  one  and  the  same,  not  always  the  same 
two;  sometimes  this  one  appeared,  sometimes  that;  sometimes  on  this 
place,  sometimes  on  that;  sometimes  alone,  sometimes  in  comp.iny  ; 
sometimes  they  said  this,  sometimes  they  said  that." 


358  ST    LUKE,   XXIV.  [vv.  4—12. 

4  the  Lord  Jesus.     And  it  came  to  pass,  as  they  were  much 
perplexed  thereabout,  behold,  two  men  stood  by  them  in 

5  shining  garments :  and  as  they  were  afraid,  and  bowed  down 
their  faces  to  the  earth,  they  said  unto  them,  Why  seek  ye 

6  the  living  among  the  dead  ?     He  is  not  here,  but  is  risen  : 
remember  how  he  spake  unto  you  when  he  was  yet  in  Gali- 

7  lee,   saying.   The  Son  of  man  must  be  delivered  into  the 
hands  of  sinful  men,  and  be  crucified,  and  the  third  day  rise 

g  again.    And  they  remembered  his  words,  and  returned  from 

the  sepulchre,  and  told  all  these  thifigs  unto  the  eleven,  and 
10  to  all  the  rest.     It  was  Mary  Magdalene,  and  Joanna,  and 

Mary  the  mother  of  James,  and  other  women  that  were  with 
ti  them,  which  told  these  things  unto  the  apostles.     And  their 

words  seemed  to  them  as  idle  tales,  and  they  believed  them 
12  not.     Then  arose  Peter,  and  ran  unto  the  sepulchre ;  and 

stooping  down,  he  beheld  the  linen  clothes  laid  by  them- 

ofthe  Lord yesus]  These  words  are  omitted  in  D.  The  combination 
'Lord  Jesus'  would  however  naturally  begin  at  this  point,  as  it  is  common 
in  the  Acts  and  Epistles,  where  'Lord  Jesus  Christ'  occurs  about  40 
times,  though  not  found  in  the  Gospels. 

4.  much  perplexed\    The  word  means  'utterly  at  a  loss.' 

in  shining  garments^  Literally,  ^^ flashing  as  with  lightning"  which 
recalls  the  expression  of  Matt,  xxviii.  3 ;  comp.  ix.  ig. 

5.  Why  seek  ye  the  living  among  the  dead?}  Comp.  Acts  i.  11. 
The  expression  "the  living"  is  probably  used  on  the  lips  of  the  angels 
with  something  of  its  true  mystic  depth.  John  i.  4,  v.  26,  xi.  25, 
XX.  31. 

6.  when  he  was  yet  in  Galilee\     Matt.  xvii.  22,  23. 

9.  returned  from  the  sepHlchre\  Comp.  Matt,  xxviii.  8.  From  John 
XX.  1  we  infer  that  Mary  of  Magdala  had,  in  the  first  instance,  run  from 
the  sepulchre  to  tell  Peter  and  John  of  the  removal  of  the  stone,  and 
had  therefore  not  seen  the  first  vision  of  angels.  The  apparent  contra- 
diction in  Mk.  xvi.  8  obviously  means  that  they  'said  not  one  word  on 
the  subject  to  any  one '  except  the  Apostles  to  whom  they  were  expressly 
told  to  announce  it  (Matt,  xxviii.  7). 

10.  and  other  wo/neti]     See  viii.  2,  3. 

11.  as  idle  tales'}  The  strong  word  used  [leros)  implies  mere  nonsensi- 
cal talk. 

believed  them  not]  The  imperfect  shews /trj'/j'/'t'w/ incredulity ;  'they 
disbelieved  them.' 

12.  77ien  arose  Peter]  For  the  fuller  details  see  John  xx.  2 — 9.  It 
should  be  simply  'dnt  Peter  arose.'  The  'but'  implies  his  readiness  to 
believe.  The  presence  of  John,  though  omitted  here,  is  implied  in 
vs.  24.     The  verse  is  probably  genuine,  though  omitted  in  U. 

th^  linen  clothes]  Othonia,  a  very  general  term,  and  perhaps  including 


vv.  13—15-]  ST    LUKE,   XXIV. 


359 


selves,  and  departed,  wondering  in  himself  at  that  which 
was  come  to  pass. 

1 3 — 3  5  •      The  Disciples  at  Eminmis. 
And  behold,  two  of  them  went  that  same  day  to  a  village  .3 
called  Emmaus,  which  was  from  Jerusalem  about  threescore 
furlongs.    And  they  talked  together  of  all  these  things  which  .4 
had  happened.     And  it  came  to  pass,  that  while  they  com-  15 

the  linen  bands  in  which  the  Body  had  been  swathed  in  spices.  Comp. 
John  XX.  6,  7. 

laid  by  themselves]  Important  as  incidentally  refuting  the  story  dis- 
seminated by  the  Jews  (Matt,  xxviii.  11— 15).  Such  a  stealing  of  the 
body  was  on  every  ground  impossible  under  the  conditions,  and  had  it 
been  even  possible  could  only  have  been  a  hurried  and  perilous  work. 
Yet  this  absurd  Jewish  fiction  was  repeated  and  amplified  twelve 
centuries  later  in  the  blasphemous  Toldoth  Jeshu. 

departed,  wondering  in  himself]  Rather,  departed  to  Ms  own  house, 
wondering  (comp.  John  xx.  10).  The  surprise,  the  alarm,  the  perplexed 
incredulity  of  the  Disciples,  admitted  by  all  the  Evangelists  alike,  add 
force  to  those  evidences  which  so  absolutely  convinced  them  of  the 
miracle  which  they  had  never  contemplated.  The  stunning  blow  of  the 
Crucifixion  had  made  them  forget  the  prophecies  of  Jesus,  which  even  at 
the  time  they  had  been  unable  to  receive  with  any  comprehension  or 
conviction.  (See  ix.  43 — 45;  John  ii.  18 — 22,  vi.  61 — 64,  x.  17,  18, 
xiii.  31 ;  Matt.  xii.  38 — 42,  xvi.  13 — 27,  xvii.  i — 9;  Mk.  x.  32 — 34,  lic.) 

13 — 35.     The  Disciples  at  Emmaus. 

13.  two  of  them]  It  is  expressly  implied  in  vs.  33  that  they  were 
not  Apostles.  One  was  Cleopas  (an  abbreviation  of  Cleopatros),  of 
whom  we  know  nothing,  for  the  name  is  not  the  same  as  Clopas  (  =  A1- 
phaeus  or  Chalpai,  John  xix.  25),  though  they  may  have  been  the  same 
person  (see  on  vi.  15).  The  other  is  unknown,  and  unconjecturable. 
There  is  no  shadow  of  probability  that  it  was  St  Luke  himself  (Thco- 
phylact).  This  exquisite  narrative  is  given  by  St  Luke  alone,  though 
mentioned  m  Mk.  xvi.  12,  [3. 

went]     Rather,  were  going. 

a  village  called  Emmaus,  which  was  from  Jerusalem  about  threescore 
furlongs]  Omit  ''about,"  which  has  nothing  to  sanction  it  in  the  text. 
The  distance  (6^  miles)  shews  that  Emmaus  could  not  have  been  the 
Emmaus  of  i  Mace.  iii.  40,  ix.  50,  &c.  (Amwas  or  Nicopolis),  which  is 
176  furlongs  (22  miles)  from  Jerusalem,  Jos.  B.  J.  11.  20,  §  4,  or  the 
Galilaean  Emmaus  or  "Hot  Springs"  (Jos.  B.J.  iv.  1,  §  3,  vii.  6, 
§  6).  It  may  be  the  Emmaus  of  Jos.  B.  J.  Vil.  6,  §  6  {Kulonich  Succah, 
IV.  5),  which  according  to  one  reading  was  60  furlongs  from  Jerusalem. 
Had  the  Emmaus  been  160  furlongs  distant  (as  in  the  reading  of  N,  I, 
K,  N,  &c.)  they  could  not  have  returned  the  same  evening  to  Jeru- 
salem. 


36o  ST    LUKE,    XXIV.  [vv.  16—21. 

muned  together  and  reasoned,  Jesus  himself  drew  near,  and 

16  went  with  them.     But  their  eyes    were   holden    that   they 

17  should  not  know  him.  And  he  said  unto  them.  What  manner 
^communications  are  these  that  ye  have  one  to  another,  as 

18  ye  walk,  and  are  sad  ?  And  the  one  of  them,  whose  name  was 
Cleopas,  answering  said  unto  him,  Art  thou  only  a  stranger 
in  Jerusalem,  and  hast   not   known  the  things  which  are 

19  come  to  pass  there  in  these  days  ?  And  he  said  unto  them, 
What  things  1  And  they  said  unto  him.  Concerning  Jesus 
of  Nazareth,  which  was  a  prophet  mighty  in  deed  and  word 

20  before  God  and  all  the  people :  and  how  the  chief  priests 
and  our  rulers  delivered  him  to  be  condemned  to  death, 

2  1  and  have  crucified  him.  But  we  trusted  that  it  had  been 
he  which  should  have  redeemed  Israel :  and  beside  all  this, 


15.  Jesus  hi7nself  drew  fzear]  A  beautiful  illustration  of  the  pro- 
mise in  Matt,  xviii.  ■20. 

16.  i/taf  they  should  not  knoiv  him'\  Rather,  recognise  Him.  There 
are  two  other  instances  of  the  same  remarkable  fact.  Mary  of  Mag- 
dala  did  not  recognise  Him  (John  xx.  14),  nor  the  disciples  on  the 
Lake  (John  xxi.  4).  The  same  thing  is  evidently  implied  in  vs.  37  and 
in  Matt,  xxviii.  17;  and  it  exactly  accords  with  the  clear  indications 
that  the  Resurrection  Body  of  our  Lord  was  a  Glorified  Body  of  which 
the  conditions  transcended  those  of  ordinary  mortality.  It  is  empha- 
sized in  Mk.  xvi.  12,  where  we  are  told  that  He  was  manifested  in  a 
different  form  from  that  which  He  had  worn  before. 

17.  that  ye  have  one  to  another\     Literally,  '^  cast  to  and  fro.'''' 

and  are  sad'\  The  true  reading  seems  to  be  and  they  stood  still 
{estathesan,  N,  A,  B,  and  some  ancient  versions ;  estesan,  L),  looking  sad. 
They  stopped  short,  displeased  at  the  unwelcome,  and  possibly  perilous, 
intrusion  of  a  stranger  into  their  conversation. 

18.  whose  name  was  Cleopas'\  See  on  vs.  13.  The  mention  of  so 
entirely  obscure  a  name  alone  proves  that  the  story  is  not  an  invention. 
Pii  non  sua  sed  aliorum  causa  memorantur.     Bengel. 

Art  thou  only  a  stranger  in  ferusalem']  Rather,  Dost  thou  live 
alone  as  a  stranger  in  Jerusalem ;  art  thou  some  lonely  sojourner  in 
Jerusalem,  come  from  a  distance? 

19.  a  prophet,  mighty  in  deed  and  word]  See  a  remarkable  parallel 
to  this  description  in  Acts  ii.  22. 

21.  we  trusted]  This  would  imply  that  now  their  hope  was  dimmed, 
if  not  quenched.  This  perhaps  led  to  the  reading  ''we  trust'  [elpizomen 
for  elpizomen)  in  i^  and  some  inferior  MSS.,  which  Alford  calls  a  "  C07'- 
rection  for  decoi'um." 

which  shotild  have  redeemed  Israel]  The  form  of  the  expected 
redemption  is  explained  in  Acts  i.  fi. 


vv.  22—27.]  ST   LUKE,   XXIV.  361 

to  day  is  the  third  day  since  these  things  were  done.     Yea,  m 
and  certain  women  also  of  our  company  made  us  astonished, 
which  were  early  at  the  sepulchre;  and  when  they  found  23 
not  his  body,  they  came,  saying,  that    they  had  also  seen 
a  vision  of  angels,  which  said  that  he  was  alive.  And  certain  m 
of  them  which   were  with  us  went    to  the  sepulchre,  and 
found  it  even  so  as  the  women  had  said  :  but  him  they  saw 
not.     Then  he  said  unto  them,  O  fools,  and  slow  of  heart  ^s 
to  believe  all    that  the  prophets  have  spoken  :    ought  not  26 
Christ  to  have  suffered  these  things,  and  to  enter  into  his 
glory  ?     And  beginning  at  Moses  and  all  the  prophets,  he  27 

to  day  is  the  third  day]  The  words  might  be  literally  rendered  '  He  is 
leading  this  third  day.'  The  expression  seems  to  imply,  'if  there  had 
been  any  hope  it  would  have  been  confirmed  before  now.' 

23.  ivhich  said]  Rather,  which  say.  This  mention  of  a  sort  of 
double  hearsay  ('women  Jrtjj'/wg- — of  angels  whojaj'')  shews  the  extreme 
hesitation  which  appears  throughout  the  narrative. 

24.  but  him  they  saiv  not]  This  phrase  most  naturally  and  ten- 
derly- expresses  their  incredulity  and  sorrow.  It  also  shews  how  im- 
possible is  the  sceptical  theory  that  the  Disciples  were  misled  by  hallu- 
cinations. "Z^5  halliicines,"  says  Bersier,  "  parlent  en  hallucinh  "  l)Ut 
against  any  blind  enthusiasms  we  see  that  the  Apostles  and  Disciples 
were  most  suspiciously  on  their  guard.  They  accepted  nothing  short  of 
most  rigid  proof. 

25.  O  fools]  The  expression  is  much  too  strong.  It  is  not  the 
word  aphrones  (see  xi.  40),  but  anoetoi,  'foolish,'  'unintelligent.'  (Gal. 
iii.  I.) 

26.  ought  not  Christ  to  have  suffered]  Rather,  the  Christ.  It  was 
a  divine  necessity  (ouchi  edei?),  Matt.  xxvi.  54  ;  John  xii.  24,  3?,  xi. 
49—5^;  Acts  xvii.  3;  I  Pet.  i.  10,  11.  Thus  St  Luke  mainly  dwells 
on  the  Resurrection  as  a  spiritual  necessity;  .St  Mark  as  a  great  fact; 
St  Matthew  as  a  glorious  and  majestic  manifestation  ;  and  St  John  in  its 
effects  on  the  minds  of  the  members  of  the  Church.     (Westcott.) 

27.  begiftning  at  Moses]  The  promise  to  Eve  (fJen.  iii.  15);  the 
promise  to  Abraham  (Gen.  xxii.  18);  the  Paschal  I-amb  (Ex.  xii.); 
the  Scapegoat  (Dev.  xvi.  1—34);  the  brazen  serpent  (Numb.  xxi.  9); 
the  greater  Prophet  (Deut.  xviii.  15);  and  the  star  and  sccjitre  (Numb, 
xxiv.  17);  the  smitten  rock  (Num.  xx.  11;   i  Cor.  x.  4),  &c. 

and  all  the  prophets]  Immanuel,  Is.  vii.  14.  "Unto  us  a  Child  i.- 
born,  &c."  Is.  ix.  6,  7.  The  Good  Shepherd,  Is.  xl.  10,  11.  The  Meek 
Sufferer,  Is.  L  6.  He  who  bore  our  griefs,  Is.  liii.  4,  5-  The  Branch, 
Jer.  xxiii.  5,  xxxiii,  14,  r«i.  The  heir  of  David,  Ezek.  xxxiv.  23.  The 
Ruler  from  Bethlehem,  Mic.  v.  1.  The  Branch,  Zech.  vi.  12.  1  he 
lowly  King,  Zech.  ix.  9.  The  pierced  Victim,  Zech.  xn.  10.  The 
smitten  Shepherd,  Zech.  xiii.  7.  The  Messenger  of  the  Coven.nnt, 
Mai.  iii.  i.  The  Sun  of  Righteousness,  Mai.  iv.  2;  and  mnny  nthci 
passages.     Dr  Davison,  in  his  admirable  and  standard  l)0()k  on  Pro 


362  ST    LUKE,   XXIV.  [vv.  28—33. 

expounded  unto  them  in  all  the  scriptures  the  things  con- 
28  cerning  himself.     And  they  drew  nigh  unto  the  village,  whi- 
ther they  went :  and  he  made  as  though  he  would  have  gone 
?9  further.     But  they  constrained  him,  saying,  Abide  with  us  : 
for  it  is  towards  evening,  and  the  day  is  far  spent.     And  he 

30  went  in  to  tarry  with  them.  And  it  came  to  pass,  as  he  sat 
at   meat  with    them,   he  took   bread,  and  blessed  //,  and 

31  brake,  and  gave  to  them.     And  their  eyes  were  opened,  and 

32  they  knew  him ;  and  he  vanished  out  of  their  sight.  And  they 
said  one  to  another,  Did  not  our  heart  burn  within  us,  while 
he  talked  with  us  by  the  way,  and  while  he  opened  to  us  the 

33  scriptures  ?  And  they  rose  up  the  same  hour,  and  returned 
to  Jerusalem,  and  found  the  eleven  gathered  together,  and 

phecy,  pp.  266 — 287,  shews  that  there  is  not  one  of  the  Prophets  with- 
out some  distinct  reference  to  Christ  except  Nahum,  Jonah  (who  was 
himseif  a  type  and  Prophetic  Sign),  and  Habakkuk,  who  however  uses 
the  memorable  words  quoted  in  Rom.  i.  17.  The  expression  is  im- 
portant, as  shewing  the  prevalently  Messianic  character  of  the  Old 
Testament ;  for  of  course  we  cannot  suppose  that  our  Lord  went 
through  each  prophet  separately,  but  only  that  He  pointed  out  "the 
tenor  of  the  Old  Testament  in  its  ethical  and  symbolical  character.^' 

in  all  the  scriptures]  fragmentarily  [poliifneros)  and  multifariously 
(polutro/os),  Heb.  i.  i,  e.g.  in  the  Psalms  passim,  and  in  the  types  of 
Joshua,  &c. 

28.  he  made  as  though  he  would  have  gone  further]  Rather,  would 
go.  It  is  of  course  implied  that  He  would  have  gone  further,  but  for 
the  strong  pressure  of  their  entreaty.  Comp.  Mk.  vi.  48.  We  learn 
from  these  passages  how  needful  it  is  to  win  Christ's  Presence  by 
praying  for  it. 

29.  Abide  with  us\  It  is  this  beautiful  verse  which  has  furnished 
the  idea  of  Lyte's  dying  hymn,  '  Abide  with  me,  fast  falls  the  even- 
tide.' 

he  went  in  to  tarry  with  the»i\  Comp.  Heb.  xiii.  1,  "thereby  sorne 
have  entertained  angels  unawares." 

30.  he  took  bread,  and  blessed  it,  and  braie,  and  gave  to  them]  Rather, 
the  bread.  Comp.  xxii.  19.  Our  Lord  seems,  by  a  kind  of  natural 
authority,  to  have  assumed  the  position  of  host ;  which  shews  that  they 
were  at  an  inn. 

31.  he  vanished]    See  on  vs.  16. 

32.  Did  not  our  heart  burn]     Rather.    Was  not  our  heart   biirn 
Ing? 

ivhile  hi  talked  with  tis]  Rather,  to  us.  "Never  man  spake  like 
this  man,"  John  vii.  46. 

33.  and  returned  to  Jerusalem]  "  They  fear  no  longer  the  night  journey 
from  which  they  had  dissuaded  their  unknown  companion."    Bengel. 


vv.  34—36.]  ST    LUKE,    XXIV.  363 

them  that  were  with  them,  saying,  The  Lord  is  risen  indeed,  3^ 
and  hath  appeared  to  Simon.     And  they  told  what  things  35 
were  done  in  the  way,  and  how  he  was  known  of  them  in 
breaking  of  bread. 

36 — 49.     Appearance  ofj^esus  to  the  Apostles. 
And  as  they  thus  spake,  Jesus  himself  stood  in  the  midst  36 

34.  hath  appeared  to  Simi>n\  The  same  appearance,  to  Simon  alone, 
is  mentioned  in  i  Cor.  xv.  5,  but  there  is  not  even  a  tradition  as  to 
the  details.  (The  passage  in  i  Cor.  xv.  4 — 8  is  the  earUest  written 
allusion  to  the  facts  of  the  Resurrection. ) 

35.  in  breaking  of  bread}  Rather,  in  the  breaMng  of  the  bread. 
The  alteration  is  important  as  giving  to  the  act  a  sacramental 
character.  It  has  been  objected  that  Cleopas  and  his  companion,  not 
being  Apostles,  had  not  been  present  at  the  institution  of  the  Lord's 
Supper ;  but  this  was  by  no  means  the  only  occasion  on  which  Christ 
had  solemnly  broken  bread  and  blessed  it  (see  ix.  16).  St  Mark  adds 
that  some  of  the  disciples  received  even  this  narrative  with  distrust 
(xvi.  13),  which  once  more  proves  that,  so  far  from  being  heated 
enthusiasts  ready  to  accept  any  halhicination,  they  shewed  on  the 
contrary  a  most  cautious  reluctance  in  accepting  even  the  most  cir- 
cumstantial evidence. 

The  young  reader  will  be  glad  to  see  a  part  of  the  beautiful  passage 
of  Cowper  on  this  scene: 

"It  happen'd  on  a  solemn  eventide 
Soon  after  He  who  was  our  surety  died, 
Two  bosom  friends,  each  pensively  inclined. 
The  scene  of  all  those  sorrows  left   behind. 
Sought  their  own  village,   busied  as  they  went 
In  musings  worthy  of  this  great  event. 
They  spake  of  Him   they  loved,  of  Him  whose  life, 
Though  blameless,   had  incurred  perpetual  strife. 
♦  »  »  • 

Ere  yet  they  brought  their  journey  to  an  end 
A  stranger  joined  them,   courteous  as  a  friend. 
And  asked  them  with  a  kind  engaging  air 
What  their  affliction  was,  and  begged  a  share. 
»  *  »  * 

He   blessed   the   bread,   but   vanished  at  the  word, 
And    left    them    both  exclaiming,   'Twas  the   Lord! 
Did  not  our   hearts  feel  all  He  deigned  to  ^  say. 
Did  not  they  bum  within  us  by  the  way?" 

Conversation. 

36—49.    Appearance  of  Jesus  to  the  Apostles. 

36.  stood  in  the  midst  of  them]  The  words  imply  a  sudden  appear- 
ance.  The  Eleven,  with  the  exception  of  Thomas  the  Twin,  were  sittmg 


364  ST    LUKE,    XXIV.  [vv.  37—42. 

37  of  them,  and  saith  unto  them,  Peace  be  unto  you.  But  they 
were  terrified  and  affrighted,  and  supposed    that  they  had 

38  seen  a  spirit.    And  he  said  unto  them,  Why  are  ye  troubled? 

39  and  why  do  thoughts  arise  in  your  hearts  ?  Behold  my 
hands  and  my  feet,  that  it  is  I  myself:  handle  me,  and  see; 
for  a  spirit  hath  not  flesh  and  bones,  as  ye  see  me  have. 

»o  And  when  he  had  thus  spoken,  he  shewed  them  his  hands 

41  and  his  feet.     And  while  they  yet  believed  not  for  joy,  and 

(2  wondered,  he  said  unto  them,  Have  ye  here  any  meat?    And 

they  gave  him  a  piece  of  a  broiled  fish,  and  of  a  honey- 

at  supper  with  the  doors  closed  through  their  fear  of  the  Jews  (John  xx. 
19).  This  is  one  of  the  most  lemarkable  appearances  of  the  Risen  Christ. 
His  intercourse  with  them  on  this  occasion  consisted  of  a  greeting  [id); 
a  reproach  and  consolation  (38;  Mk.  xvi.  14);  a  demonstration  of  the 
reality  of  His  person  (39 — 43;  John  xx.  20);  an  opening  of  their 
understandings  (44 — 46);  an  appointment  of  the  Apostles  to  the  mi- 
nistries of  remission  and  witness  (47,  48;  John  xix.  ii,  23);  a  promise 
of  the  Spirit,  for  the  fulfilment  of  which  they  were  to  wait  in  Jerusalem 
(49).  At  the  close  of  this  great  scene  He  once  more  pronounced  the 
benediction  of  Peace,  and  breathed  on  them  with  the  words  '  Receive 
the  Holy  Spirit '  Qohn  xx.  22).  It  is  doubtless  the  extreme  fulness  with 
which  St  Luke  has  narrated  this  appearance  which  led  him  in  accordance 
with  his  economy  of  method  to  omit  some  of  the  other  appearances. 

37.  terrified^    Literally,  "scared." 

that  they  had  seen  a  spirit^  Rather,  that  they  were  gazing  on  a 
spirit.     See  on  vs.  16. 

38.  thoughts]     Rather,  reasonings. 

39.  handle  me,  and  see]  Pselaphesate  ;  "  which  we  have  looked  upon 
and  our  hands  have  handled  (epselaphesan)  of  the  Word  of  Life,"  i  John 
i.  I  ;  comp.  John  xx.  20,  27.  For  other  uses  of  the  word  see  Acts  xvii. 
27  ;  Heb.  xii.  18. 

hath  not  flesh  and  bones]  "I  am  not  a  bodiless  spirit "  are  words 
attributed  to  Him  in  Ignatius  [ad  Sniyrn.  3).  Clemens  of  Alexandria 
has  preserved  a  curious,  but  utterly  baseless,  legend,  that  St  John, 
touching  the  body,  found  that  his  hands  passed  through  it.  From  the 
omission  of  "blood"  with  "flesh  and  bones"  very  precarious  infer- 
ences have  been  drawn. 

40.  a7id  his  feet]  which  must  therefore  have  been  pierced,  and  not 
merely  tied  to  the  Cross. 

41.  believed  not  for  joy]  One  of  the  psychological  touches  of  which 
St  Luke  is  fond,  and  profoundly  true  to  nature  (comp.  Liv.  xxxix.  49). 

any  meat]     Rather,  anything  to  eat;  see  on  iii.  ir,  viii.  55. 

42.  a  piece  of  a  broiled  fish]  A  meal  of  fish  at  Jerusalem  might 
surprise  us,  if  we  did  not  learn  from  the  Talmud  that  it  was  regularly 
supplied  from  the  inexhaustible  stores  of  the  Lake  of  Gennesareth  {Life 
of  Christ,  I.  142). 


vv.  43—47.]  ST   LUKE,  XXIV. 


3^>5 


comb.     And  he  took  tf,  and  did  eat  before  them.     And  lie  *^ 
said  unto  them,  These  are  the  words  which  I  spake  unto  ** 
you,  while  I  was  yet  with  you,  that  all  f/iings  must  be  ful- 
filled, which  were  written  in  the  law  of  Moses,  and  in  the 
prophets,  and  in  the  psalms,  concerning  me.     Then  opened  « 
he  their  understanding,  that  f/iey  might  understand  the  scrip- 
tures, and  said  unto  them,  Thus  it  is  written,  and  thus  it  46 
behoved  Christ  to  suffer,  and  to  rise  from  the  dead  the  third 
day:   and  that  repentance  and  remission  of  sins  should  be  47 
preached  in  his  name  among  all  nations,  beginning  at  Jeru- 

andofa  honeycomb^     Omitted  in  X,  A,  B,  D,  L,  &c. 

43.  a7td  did  eat  before  t/iem]  This  was  one  of  the  '  infallible  proofs  ' 
appealed  to  in  Acts  i.  3  ;  comp.  John  xxi.  12,  13;  "who  did  eat  and 
drink  with  Him  after  He  rose  from  the  dead,"  Acts  x.  41.  Jerome 
{adv.  Felag.n.)  mentions  a  strange  addition  in  some  M.SS.,  viz.  that  the 
disciples  said  that  '  the  wickedness  and  incredulity  of  the  age  is 
a  substance  which  does  not  permit  the  true  virtue  of  God  to  be  apjire- 
hended  through  impure  spirits;  therefore  even  now  reveal  Thy  justice.' 
A  few  MSS.  and  versions  here  add,  'and  gave  Ihcm  the  remains.' 

44.  These  are  the  words]  i.e.  this  .is  the  meaning  of  the  words. 
which  I  spake  tmto  yoic]  xviii.  31 ;  Matt.  xvi.  ^i. 

while  I  was  yet  with  you\  Important  as  shewing  that  the  forty  days 
between  the  Resurrection  and  the  Ascension  were  not  intended  to  be  a 
continuous  sojourn  with  the  Disciples,  or  an  integral  portion  of  the 
Lord's  human  life. 

which  were  written]     See  on  vss.  26,  27. 

the  law... the  prophets.,  the  psalms]  This  corresponds  with  the  (possibly 
later)  Jewish  division  of  the  Old  Testament  into  the  Pentateuch,  Prophets, 
and  Ketubhim  (Hagiographa). 

45.  opened  he  their  understanding]  Spiritual  things  can  only  be 
spiritually  discerned,  i  Cor.  ii.  10 — 13.  On  this  most  important  truth 
see  Matt.  xi.  27,  xiii.  11,  xvi.  17;  John  xvi.  13;  Acts  xvi.  14.  "Open 
thou  mine  eyes,  that  I  may  behold  wondrous  things  out  of  thy  law," 
Ps.  cxix.  18. 

that  they  might  understand  the  scriptures]  Hence  the  power  with 
which  they — till  this  time  so  dull  and  slow  of  heart — henceforth  explained 
them,  Acts  i.  16,  20,  ii.  16,  25,  &c. 

46.  and  thus  it  behoved  Christ  to  sujfer]  Read,  thus  it  is  written  that 
the  Christ  should  suffer,  X,  B,  C,  D,  L. 

47.  remission  of  sins]  See  on  i.  77.  "Your  sins  are  forgiven  you  for 
His  name's  sake,"  and  i  John  ii.  12. 

among  all  nations]  See  Gen.  xii.  3,  "all  families  of  the  earth."  Ps. 
xxii.  27,  "all  kindreds  of  the  nations."  Is.  xlix.  6,  "a  light  to  the 
Gentiles,"  &c.      See  on  ii.  32. 

beginning  at  Jerusalem]  "For  out  of  Zion  shall  go  forth  I  lie  law, 
and  the  word  of  the  Lord  from  Jerusalem,"  Is.  ii.  3  ;  Mic.  iv.  1 


366  ST    LUKE,    XXIV.  [w.  48,  49. 

t^  salem.  And  ye  are  witnesses  of  these  things.  And  behold, 
I  send  the  promise  of  my  Father  upon  you  :  but  tarry  ye  in 
the  city  of  Jerusalem,  until  ye  be  endued  with  power  from 
on  high. 

50 — 53.     The  Ascension. 
50      And  he  led  them  out  as  far  as  to  Bethany,  and  he  lift  up 

48.  ye  are  witnesses]  John  xv.  27.  How  prominent  in  the  minds  of 
the  Apostles  was  this  ministry  of  witness  may  be  seen  from  Acts  i.  8, 
ii.  32,  iii.  15,  iv.  33,  v.  30—32,  &c. 

49.  the  protnise  of  my  Father]  both  in  the  Prophecies  of  the  Old 
Testament  (Is.  xliv.  3;  Ezek.  xxxvi.  26;  Joel  ii.  28)  and  by  His  own 
mouth  (John  xiv.  16,  17,  20,  xv.  26,  xvi.  7).  Comp.  Acts  i.  4,  5,  8. 
It  is  difficult  not  to  see  in  this  expression  a  distinct  allusion  to  the 
discourses  which  are  recorded  by  St  John  alone. 

imtil  ye  be  endued]  Rather,  until  ye  put  on  the  garment  of.  For 
the  metaphor  see  Rom.  xiii.  14;  Eph.  iv.  24,  &c.  We  are  unclothed 
till  we  receive  heavenly  gifts.  "They  had  been  washed  (John  xv.  3),  now 
the  clothing  is  promised."     Bengel. 

There  are  ten  recorded  appearances  of  the  Risen  Christ  (including 
that  at  the  Ascension),  of  which  St  Luke  only  narrates  three  (the  4th, 
5th,  and  loth),  though  he  alludes  to  others  (e.g.  the  3rd).     They  are 

1.  To  Mary  of  Magdala.  John  xx.  11 — 17  {' N'oli  ine  tangere^); 
Mk.  xvi.   9. 

2.  To  otlier  women,  who  adore  Him.     Matt,  xxviii.  9,  10. 

3.  To  Peter.      Luke  xxiv.  34 ;   i  Cor.  xv.  5. 

4.  To  the  Disciples  on  the  way  to  Emmaus.  Luke  xxiv.  13 — 35; 
Mk.  xvi.  12,  13. 

5.  To  ten  Apostles  and  others.  Luke  xxiv.  36 — 49;  John  xx.  19 — 
23  ;  Mk.  xvi.  14. 

6.  To  the  Eleven  Apostles.  The  incredulity  of  Thomas  removed. 
John  XX.  26 — 29. 

7.  To  seven  Apostles  at  the  Lake  of  Galilee.     John  xxi.  i — 24. 

8.  To  five  hundred  on  a  hill  of  Galilee.  Matt,  xxviii.  16 — 20;  Mk. 
xvi.  15 — 18;   I  Cor.  XV.  6. 

9.  To  James,  the  Lord's  brother,     i  Cor.  xv.  7. 

10.  Before  the  Ascension.     Luke  xxiv.  50,  5 1 ;  Acts  i.  6 — 9. 

Since  more  Ajipearances  of  the  Risen  Christ  than  those  here  narrated 
were  well  known  to  St  Paul  (i  Cor.  xv.  5 — 7),  it  may  be  regarded  as 
certain  that  they  were  known  also  to  St  Luke.  If  he  here  omits  them 
it  must  be  borne  in  mind  (i)  that  neither  he  nor  any  of  the  Evangelists 
profess  to  furnish  a  complete  narrative ;  (2)  that  St  Luke  especially 
shews  a  certain  'economy'  (as  has  been  already  pointed  out)  in  only 
narrating  typical  incidents ;  (iii)  that  he  is  here  hastening  to  the  close  of 
his  Gospel ;  and  (iv)  that  he  has  other  particulars  to  add  in  the  Acts  of 
the  Apostles. 


vv.  50—53.]  ST    LUKE,    XXIV. 


367 


his  hands,  and  blessed  them.    And  it  came  to  pass,  while  he  5. 
blessed  them,  he  was  parted  from  them,  and  carried  up  into 
heaven.    And  they  worshipped  him,  and  returned  to  Jeru-  5, 
salem  with  great  joy :  and  were  continually  in  the  temple,  53 
praising  and  blessing  God.     Amen. 


60 — 53.    The  Ascension. 

60.  he  led  them  imt]  Not  of  course  at  the  conclusion  of  the  last 
scene,  but  at  the  end  of  the  forty  days,  Acts  i.  3. 

as  far  as  to  Bethany^  Rather,  as  far  as  towards  Bethany  {pros, 
N,  B,  C,  D,  &c.).  The  traditional  scene  of  the  Ascension  is  the  central 
summit  of  the  Mount  of  Olives  {Jebel  et-Tur);  but  it  is  far  more  probable 
that  it  took  place  in  one  of  the  secluded  uplands  which  lie  about  the 
village.  See  a  beautiful  passage  in  Dean  Stanley's  Sinai  and  Palestine, 
ch.  iii. 

51.  he  was  parted  from  them']  "A  cloud  received  Him  out  of  their 
sight,"  Acts  i.  9.  The  original  however  conveys  a  clearer  impression. 
He  stood  apart  f-oni  them  (aorist)  and  was  gradiuilly  borne  into  heaven. 
The  latter  words  are  not  found  in  X,  D. 

carried  up  into  heaven]  See  Eph.  iv.  8.  The  withdrawal  of  lli> 
Bodily  Presence  preceded  His  Spiritual  Omnipresence.  The  omission 
of  the  Ascension  by  St  Matthew  and  St  John  would  be  more  remark- 
able if  it  was  not  assumed  by  them  botli  (John  iii.  13,  vi.  62,  xx.  17; 
Matt.  xxiv.  30). 

62.      returned  to  Jerusalem]    For  fuller  details  see  Acts  i.  3 — 12. 

with  p-eat  joy]  as  Jesus  had  promised  (John  xvi.  10,  22).  It  is  re- 
markable that  they  shewed  great  joy  now  that  they  were  losing  for  ever 
the  earthly  presence  of  their  Lord.  It  shews  their  faith  in  the  promise 
that  His  spiritual  presence  should  be  even  nearer  and  more  precious 
(John  xiv.  28,  xvi.  7). 

53.  continually  in  the  temple]  This  expression  is  one  of  the  links 
between  the  Gospel  and  the  Acts  (see  Acts  ii.  46,  iii.  i,  &c. ). 

praising  and  blessing  God]  Acts  ii.  46,  v.  42.  'Praise  is  the  fniit 
of  joy.'  A  characteristic  close  in  accordance  with  the  usual  spirit 
of  St  Luke.  See  Introd.  p.  24,  and  ii.  20,  v.  25,  vii.  16,  xiii.  13,  xvii. 
15,  xviii.  43,  xxiii.  47. 

Amen]  Probably  a  liturgical  addition,  as  it  is  omitted  in  N,  C,  I),  L, 
&c.  "The  Ascension,"  says  Godet,  "  realises  in  the  person  of  the  Risen 
Son  of  Man  the  design  of  God  towards  Humanity."  That  divinely- 
foreordained  purpose  (prothesis)  was  to  make  of  sanctified  believers  a 
Family  of  God's  children  like  His  only  Son.  Rom.  viii.  28,  29;  Fph. 
ii.  6  ;  Heb.  ii.  10.  The  work  of  Christ  is  continued  by  the  Church, 
enlightened  by  the  Spirit  of  God  at  Pentecost,  and  awaiting  its  per- 
fection at  the  Second  Advent.  "Since  then  salvation  involves  tiiesc 
three  things —Grace,  Holiness,  Glory,  each  Gospel,  espi-cially  lliat  of 
St  Luke,  requires,  as  its  second  volume,  the  Acts  ;  as  its  third,  the 
Revelation  of  St  Tr>bn. " 


EXCURSUS   1. 


On  the  Meaning  of  iv  roh  tov  irarpos  /xov  in  Lk.  ii.  49  (the  first 

RECORDED  WORDS  OF  JeSUS). 


In  my  Life  of  Christ  (i.  78)  I  deliberately  adopted  the  rendering  of 
the  English  Version,  but  my  view  of  the  meaning  has  since  been  changed 
by  a  monograph  kindly  sent  me  by  the  Rev.  Dr  Field  of  Norwich, 
from  which  I  here  borrow  some  illustrations. 

It  might  seem  that  the  words  lose  something  of  their  force  and  beauty 
by  the  adoption  of  the  rendering  "/«  rny  Father's  house;''''  but  we  must 
remember  (i)  that  they  are  the  words  of  a  young  and  guileless  Boy  who 
was  "subject  unto  his  parents;"  (2)  that  they  must  be  interpreted  with 
reference  to  their  context.  Joseph  and  his  mother  might  have  known 
that  He  would  be  "about  His  Father's  business'"  without  knowing 
where  He  was.  The  answer  had  reference  to  His  mother's  gentle 
reproach  about  their  agonising  search  for  Him.  His  answer  is  "Why 
this  search?  might  you  not  have  conjectured  that  I  was  in  my  Father'' s 
House?"  The  other  meaning  would  therefore  be  less  appropriate.  It 
is  also  less  supported.  We  have  no  exact  instance  of  iv  toTs  tivos  elcat 
meaning  "to  be  about  a  person's  business,"  though  we  have  something 
like  it,  e.g.  i  Tim.  iv.  15  e**  tovtois  taOi,  and  the  Latin  ^Uotus  in  illis." 
This  idiom  seems  however  to  imply  an  absolute  absorption  which  is 
not  here  intended.  If  the  word  oXos  had  been  added  the  sense  and  the 
idiom  would  indeed  have  been  clear,  and  there  would  have  been  a 
distant  analogy  to  the  phrase  employed  in  the  story  that  when  the 
young  Alexander  talked  with  the  Persian  Ambassadors  he  did  not  ask 


EXCURSUS   I.  369 


about  the  Golden  Vine,  the  king's  dress,  &c.  but  "was  entirely  occupied 
with  the  most  important  matters  of  the  government "  (o\os  iv  tois 
Kvptwrdrois  fjv  rrjs  '^ye/xovias),  so  that  the  strangers  were  amazed  {iKwe- 
irXrjxdai.),  Plut.  II.  342.  But  had  our  Lord  meant  to  say  '  Know  ye  not 
that  I  must  be  adsorbed  in  my  Father's  tvork  ?'  He  would  have  expressed 
His  meaning  less  ambiguously,  and  if  He  spoke  in  Aramaic  those  who 
recorded  the  sentence  in  Greek  would  hardly  have  left  the  meaning 
doubtful. — On  the  other  hand  "in  my  Father's  House"  is  the  ordinary 
and  natural  meaning  of  the  words. — Oikemasi  or  domasi  might  be 
understood,  but  in  fact  the  article  alone — ta,  'the  things  or  belongings 
of — was  colloquially  used  in  this  sense ;  e.g.  q.  ra.  Ai/zcwz'os  (Theocr. 
II.  76),  'where  Lycon's  hotise  is;'  eis  ra.  tov  a.8eX4>ov,  'into  my  brother's' 
(Lysias  c.  Eratosth.  p.  195),  kv  tois  tov  be<nrbTov  eavrov  ehai  avrov  aviyK-q 
(Chrysost.  Horn.  Lii.  in  Gen.),  'wherever  he  may  chance  to  go  he  must 
be  in  his  Master's  house.'  Esther  vii.  9,  iv  roh  'Afxav,  'in  Haman's 
house;'  (LXX.)  Job  xviii.  20,  iv  roh  avrov  ^rjcrovrat  irepoi,  'others  shall 
live  in  his  house.'  See  too  Gen.  xli.  51,  LXX.  In  this  interpretation 
the  Vulgate,  Arabic,  Ethiopic,  and  Peshito  Syriac  concur,  as  do  Origen, 
Theophylact,  Euthymius,  Epiphanius,  and  Theodoret. 

But  it  may  be  asked  'may  we  not  admit  both  meanings,  one  as 
primary  and  one  as  secondary.?'  This  is  the  view  adopted  by  Alford 
and  others;  but  I  agree  with  Dr  Field  in  the  remark  that  "it  is  certain 
that  only  one  of  the  meanings  was  in  the  mind  of  the  artless  Child  from 
whose  lips  they  fell,  and  that  that  meaning"  (so  far  as  the  mere  signifi- 
cance of  the  words  was  concerned)  "was  rightly  apprehended  by  those 
who  heard  them." 


EXCURSUS  II. 
The  Double  Genealogies  of  Christ  as  the  Son  of  David. 

The  general  facts  are  these  : 

(i)  The  genealogy  of  our  Lord  in  St  Matthew  descends  from 
Abraham  to  Jesus,  in  accordance  with  his  object  in  writing  mainly 
for  the  Jews. 

The  genealogy  in  St  Luke  ascends  from  Jesus  to  Adam,  and  to  God, 
in  accordance  with  his  object  in  willing  for  the  world  in  general.  He 
spans  the  generations  of  mankind  from  the  first  Adam  to  the  Second 
Adam,  who  was  the  Lord  from  heaven  (i  Cor.  xv.  20,  45,  47). 

(ii)  The  generations  are  introduced  in  St  Matthew  by  the  word 
'"begat;"  in  St  Luke  by  the  genitive  with  the  ellipse  of  "son."  Ihus 
in  St  Matthew  we  have 

Abraham  begat  Isaac, 

And  Isaac  begat  Jacob,  tic; 

ST  LUKE  24 


370 


EXCURSUS   II. 


but  in  St  Luke 

Being  the  son  (as  was  reputed)  of  Joseph, 
(The  son)  of  Eli 

of  Matthat,  &c. 


St  Luke  (merely  reversing  the 
order)   traces  the  line  through 
David 

Nathan 

I 
Mattathah 

I 
Menna 

I 
Meleah 

.1    . 
Eliakim 

Jonan 

Joseph 

Judas 

Symeon 

Levi 

Matlhat 

I. 
Jorim 

Eliezer 

I 
Jesus 

Er 

I 
Elm.-idain 

I 
Kosam 

I. 
Adaiah 

I 
Melchi 

I 
Neriah 

I    .  . 

Shealtiel         (in  i   Chr.    iii.    19  we 

f  findPedaiah,  who  was 

Zerubbabel]  perhaps  the  actual  fa- 
ther ;  Shealtiel  may 
have  adopted  his  ne- 
phew i). 

Thus  St  Luke  gives  21  names  between  David  and  Zerubbal)el  where 
St  Matthew  only  gives  15,  and  all  the  names  except  that  of  Shealtiel 
(Salathiel)  are  different. 

'  Some  authorities  maintain  that  Zerubbabel  was  the  grandson  of  Shealtiel,  and 
that  we  have  six  sons  of  Shealtiel  in  1  Chron.  iii.  18. 


(iii)     St  Matthew  says  that 
David  begat  Solomon 

I 
Rehoboam 

Abijah 

I 

Asa 

Jehoshaphat 

Jehoram  [Ahaziah,  Joash, 

I  _         Amaziah  omitted] 
Uzziah 
I 

Jotham 

Ahaz 
Hezekiah 

Manasseh 

I 
Amos 

Josiah 

Jeconiah  and  his 
brethren 

I 
Shealtiel 

Zerubbabel 


EXCURSUS   II. 


(iv)     St  Matthew  says  that 
Zerubbabel  begat  Abihud 

I 
Eliakim 

I 
Asor 

I 
Zadok 

I 
Achim 

I 
Elihud 

J 
Eliezer 

Matthan 

I 
Jacob 

Joseph 


(Abihud  of  Matthew,   Ho- 
daiah  of  i  Chr.  iii.  24J. 


371 

St  Luke  traces  the  line  through 

Zerubbabel— [Rhesa] 

Johanan     (Hananiah,  i  Chr.  iii.  19). 

Judah 

Joseph 

Shimei 
Mattathiah 

Mahath 

Nogah 

I. 
Azaliah 

I 
Nahum 

I 
Amos 

Mattathiah 

I 
Joseph 

Jannai 

Melchi 

I  . 
Levi 

Matthat 

I 
Eli 

Joseph 

Thus  it  will  be  seen  that  St  Luke  gives  17  generations  between 
Zerubbabel  and  Joseph,  where  St  Matthew  only  gives  9,  and  all  the 
names  are  different. 

The  two  main  difficulties  then  which  we  have  to  meet  are 
(a)  The  difference  in  the  number  of  the  generations  ; 
(/3)     The  difficulties  in  the  dissimilarity  of  the  names. 

(a)  The  difficulty  as  to  the  number  of  the  getierations  is  not  serious, 
becauseji)  it  is  a  matter  of  daily  experience  that  the  number  of  gene- 
rations in  one  bne  often  increases  far  more  rapidly  than  that  in  another; 
but_  also  because  (2)  St  Matthew  has  arranged  his  genealogies  in  an 
arbitrary  numerical  division  of  tesseradecads  (for  the  manner  in  which 
these  tesseradecads  are  arranged  the  student  must  refer  to  commentaries 
on  St  Matthew),  and  because  nothing  was  more  common  among  the 
Jews  than  the  adoption  of  this  symmetrical  metliod,  at  which  they 
arrived  by  the  free  omission  of  generations,  provided  tliat  the/jc/ol 
the  succession  remained  undoubted.  Thus  in  2  Chron.  xxii.  9  "son" 
stands  for  "grandson,"  and  Ezra  (in  Ezra  vii.  i — 5)  omits  no  less  than 
seven  steps  in  his  own  pedigree,  and  among  them  his  own  father, — 
which  steps  are  preserved  in  r  Chron.  vi.  3 — 15. 

24  —  2 


372  EXCURSUS    II. 


(/3)  The  difficulty  as  to  the  dissimilarity  of  names  will  of  course  only 
affect  the  two  steps  of  the  genealogies  at  which  they  begin  to  diverge, 
before  they  again  coalesce  in  the  names  of  Shealtiel  and  of  Joseph. 

One  of  the  commonest  ways  of  meeting  the  difficulty  has  been  to 
suppose  that  St  Luke  is  giving  the  genealogy  not  of  Joseph  but  of 
Mary — the  genealogy  of  Christ  by  actual  birth,  not  by  legal  claim. 

This  solution  (first  suggested  by  Annius  of  Viterbo  at  the  close  of 
the  15th  century),  though  still  adopted  by  some  learned  men,  must 
be  rejected,  (i)  because  there  is  no  trace  that  the  Jews  recognised  the 
genealogies  of  women  as  constituting  a  legal  right  for  their  sons ; 
and  (2)  because  it  would  do  the  strongest  violence  to  the  language  of 
St  Luke  to  make  it  mean  '  Being,  as  was  reputed,  the  son  of  Joseph 
\but  really  the  son  of  Mary,  who  was  the  daughter']  of  Eli,  &c.' 

We  must  therefore  regard  it  as  certain  that  both  genealogies  are 
genealogies  of  Joseph  adduced  to  prove  that  in  the  eye  of  the  Jewish 
laiv  Jesus  was  of  the  House  of  David.  The  question  is  not  what  we 
should  have  expected  about  the  matter,  but  what  is  actually  the  case. 

A.  First  then,  how  can  Joseph  be  called  in  St  Matthew  the  son  of 
Jacob,  in  St  Luke  the  son  of  Eli? 

(a)  An  ancient  explanation  was  that  Matthan,  a  descendant  of  David 
in  the  line  of  Solomon  (as  given  by  St  Matthew)  was  the  husband  of  a 
woman  named  Estha,  and  became  the  father  of  Jacob ;  on  his  death 
his  widow  Estha  married  Melchi,  a  descendant  of  David  in  the  line  of 
Nathan  (as  given  by  St  Luke),  and  had  a  son  named  Eli.  Eli,  it  is 
said,  died  childless,  and  Jacob,  his  half-brother,  in  accordance  with  the 
law  of  levirate^  marriages  (Deut.  xxv.  5,  6;  Matt.  xxii.  23 — 27),  took 
his  widow  to  wife,  and  became  the  father  of  Joseph.     Thus 

David  David 

I  I 

Solomon  Nathan 

&c.  &c. 

I  I 

Matthan  =  Estha  =  Melchi 

I  I 

Jacob  Eli 

I     \       I 

Joseph    ^Joseph 

fby  levirate         (by  legal  ,' 

marriage  with        succession). 
the  widow  of  Eli). 

St  Luke  might  naturally  give  the  latter  genealogy  because  it  would 
be  the  one  recognised  by  Romans,  with  whom  the  notion  of  legal  as 
distinguished  from  natural  sonship  was  peculiarly  strong.  This  solution 
derives  very  great  authority  from  the  fact  that  it  is  preserved  for  us  by 
Eusebius  {H.  E.  I.  7)  from  a  letter  of  Julius  Africanus,  a  Christian 
writer  who  lived  in  Palestine  in  the  third  century,  and  who  professed  to 
derive  it  fi-om  private  fnetnoranda  preserved  by  ^the  DesposynV  or  kitidred 
of  the  Lord. 

1  So  called  from  the  Latin  word  levir,  'a  brother-in-law.' 


EXCURSUS    II.  373 


(;8)  But  the  difficulty  about  this  view— not  to  mention  the  strange 
omission  of  Levi  and  Matthat,  which  may  be  possibly  due  to  some  trans- 
position—is  that  St  Matthew's  genealogy  will  then  h&  partly  U^^al  (as  in 
calling  Shealtiel  the  son  of  Jeconiah)  and  partly  natural  (in  calling 
Joseph  the  son  of  Jacob|.  But  perhaps  (since  Jul.  Africanus  does  not 
vouch  for  the  exact  details)  there  was  so  far  a  confusion  that  it  was  Jacob 
who  was  childless,  and  Eli  who  became  by  a  levirate  marriage  the  father 
of  Joseph.  If  this  be  so,  then  St  Matthew's  is  throughout  the  legal,  and 
St  Luke's  throughout  the  natural  genealogy.  Even  without  tlie  sup- 
position of  a  levirate  marriage,  if  Jacob  were  childless  then  Joseph,  the 
son  of  his  younger  brother  Eli,  would  become  heir  to  his  claims.  The 
tradition  mentioned  m&y  point  in  the  direction  of  the  true  solution  even  if 
the  details  are  inexact. 

(7)  We  may  here  add  that  though  the  Virgin's  genealogy  is  not 
given  {oiiK  iyeveaXoy-qdr]  -q  irapdivos,  S.  Chrys.),  yet  her  Davidic  descent 
is  assumed  by  the  sacred  writers  (Lk.  i.  32;  Acts  ii.  30,  xiii.  23;  Rom. 
i.  3,  &c.),  and  was  in  all  probability  involved  in  that  of  her  husband. 
How  this  was  we  cannot  say  with  certainty,  but  if  we  accept  the  tradi- 
tion which  has  just  been  mentioned  it  is  not  impossible  that  Mary  may 
have  been  a  daughter  of  Eli  (as- is  staled  in  an  obscure  Jewish  legend, 
Lightfoot,  Hor.  Ikbr.  ad  loc.)  or  oi  Jacob,  and  may  have  married  her 
cousin  Joseph  jure  agnationis.  At  any  rate  we  have  decisive  and  inde- 
pendent proof  that  the  Davidic  descent  of  our  Lord  was  recognised  by  the 
yews.  They  never  attempted  to  avert  the  jealousy  of  the  Romans  about 
the  royal  descent  of  the  Desposyni  (Euseb.  H.  E.  I.  7),  and  Rabbi 
Ulla  (circ.  210)  says  that  "Jesus  was  exceptionally  treated  because  of 
royal  descent"  (T.  B.  Sanhedr.  43  a,  Amsterdam  ed.,  see  Derenbourg, 
Palest,  p.  349.  But  it  is  possible  that  the  words  mean  '  influential  with 
the  (Roman)  government'). 

B.  We  have  now  to  explain  why  St  Matthew  says  that  Shealtiel 
(Salathiel)  was  the  son  of  Jeconiah,  while  St  Luke  says  that  he  was  the 
sott  of  Neriah. 

The  old  suggestion  that  the  Zerubbabel  and  Shealtiel  of  St  Luke  are 
different  persons  from  those  of  St  Mattliew  may  be  set  aside  at  once. 
But  the  true  answer  seems  to  be  that  Jehoiachin  (Jeconiah)  was  either 
actually  childless,  as  was  so  emphatically  prophesied  by  Jerem.  xxii. 
24 — 30,  or  that,  at  any  rate,  his  children  (if  he  ever  had  any,  as  seems 
possible  from  vs.  28 ;  1  Chr.  iii.  17—19;  and  Jos.  Antt.  x.  1 1,  §  2)  died 
childless  in  Babylon.  It  is  true  that  the  word  rendered  'childless' 
C'T'^y)  ^'^y  mean  'forlorn'  or  'naked;'  but  the  other  is  the  more 
natural  meaning  of  the  word,  and  so  it  was  understood  by  the  Jews, 
who  however  supposed  that,  after  a  long  captivity,  he  repented  and  the 
curse  was  removed.  Setting  aside  this  mere  conjecture,  it  seems  prol)al)le 
that  Jeconiah  was,  or  became,  absolutely  childless,  and  that  therefore  in 
the  37th  year  of  his  captivity  he  adopted  a  son  to  preserve  his  race  from 
extinction.  His  choice  however  was  limited.  Daniel  and  others  of  the 
seed  royal  were  eunuchs  in  the  palace  of  the  King  of  Babylon  (Dan.  i. 
3;  2  Kings  XX.  16),  and  Ishmael  and  others  were  excluded  by  tluir 
murder  of  Gedaliah;  to  say  nothing  of  the  fact  that  tlie  royal  line  had 
been  remorselessly  mown  down  by  Jehu  and  by  Athaliah.   He  therefore 


374  EXCURSUS    II. 


adopted  the  seven  sons  of  Neri,  the  twentieth  from  David  in  the  line  of 
Nathan.  We  seem  to  have  an  actual  intimation  of  this  in  Zech.  xii.  12, 
where  ^^ the  family  of  Nathatt  apart"  is  commemorated  as  well  as  "the 
family  of  David  apart"  because  of  the  splendid  Messianic  prerogative 
which  they  thus  obtained.  And  this  is  remarkably  confirmed  by  Rabbi 
Shimeon  Ben  Jochai  in  the  Zohar,  where  he  speaks  of  Nathan,  the  son  of 
David,  as  the  father  of  Messiah  the  Co7nfo7-ter  (because  Menachem, 
'comforter,'  stands  numerically  for  138,  which  is  the  numerical  value  of 
the  letters  of  Tse7)iach,  'the  Branch').  Hence  too  Hephzibah,  the  wife 
of  Nathan,  is  called  the  mother  of  the  Messiah.  (See  Schottgen,  Hor. 
Hebr.  on  i.  31.) 

The  failure  of  the  Messianic  promise  in  the  direct  natural  line  of 
Solomon  is  no  difficulty  in  the  way  of  this  hypothesis,  since  while  the 
promise  to  David  was  absolute  (2  Sam.  vii.  12)  that  to  Solomon  was 
conditional  (i  Kings  ix.  4,  5). 

If  these  very  simple  and  probable  hypotheses  be  accepted  no  difficulty 
remains;  and  this  at  least  is  certain — that  no  error  can  be  demonstrated. 
A  single  adoption,  and  a  single  levirate  marriage,  account  for  the 
apparent  discrepancies.  St  Matthew  gives  the  legal  descent  through  a 
line  of  Kings  descended  from  Solomon — the/z/J  sticcessionis  ;  St  Luke  the 
natural  descent — the/zw  sanguinis.  St  Matthew's  is  a  royal,  St  Luke's 
a  natural  pedigree.  It  is  a  confirmation  of  this  view  that  in  Joseph's 
private  and  real  genealogy  we  find  the  names  Joseph  and  Nathan  recur- 
ring (with  slight  modifications  like  Matthat,  &c.)  no  less  than  seven 
times.  That  there  must  be  some  solution  of  this  kind  is  indeed  self- 
evident,  for  if  the  desire  had  been  to  invent  a  genealogy  no  one  would 
have  neglected  a  genealogy  deduced  through  a  line  of  Kings. 

C.  i.  We  need  only  further  notice  that  in  vs.  27  the  true  transla- 
tion probably  is  ^^tke  so?i  of  the  Rhesa  Zerubbabel."  Rhesa  is  not  a 
proper  name,  but  a  Chaldee  title  meaning  'Prince.'  Thus  the  head  of 
the  Captivity  is  always  known  by  Jewish  writers  as  the  Resh  Galootha. 

ii.  In  vs.  32  we  have  only  three  generations — Boaz,  Obed,  Jesse — 
between  Salmon  and  David ;  a  decisive  proof  that  the  common  chrono- 
logy is  wrong  in  supposing  that  more  than  four  hundred  years  elapsed 
between  the  conquest  of  Canaan  and  David. 

iii.  In  vs.  24  the  Matthat  is  perhaps  identical  with  the  Matthan  of 
Matt.  i.  15;  if  so  the  line  recorded  by  St  Matthew  may  have  failed  at 
Eliezer,  and  Matthan,  the  lineal  descendant  of  a  younger  branch,  would 
then  be  his  heir, 

iv.  In  vs.  36  the  Cainan  (who  must  be  distinguished  from  the 
Cainan  of  vs.  37)  is  possibly  introduced  by  mistake.  Tl>e  name,  though 
found  in  this  place  of  the  genealogy  in  the  LXX.,  is  not  found  in  any 
Hebrew  MS.  of  the  O.  T.,  nor  in  the  Samaritan,  Chaldee,  and  Syriac 
versions  (Gen.  xi.  12;  i  Chr.  i.  24).  It  is  omitted  in  the  Codex  Bezae 
(D),  and  there  is  some  evidence  that  it  was  unknown  to  Irenaeus. 

v.  The  difference  between  the  two  genealogies  thus  given  without  a 
word  of  explanation  constitutes  a  strong  probability  that  neither  Evan- 
gelist had  seen  the  work  of  the  other. 


EXCURSUS    II.  375 


The  conclusions  arrived  at  as  probable  may  be  thus  summarized. 

David's  line  through  Solomon  failed  in  Jeconiah,  who  therefore 
adopted  Shealtiel,  the  descendant  of  David's  line  through  Nathan. 

(Shealtiel  being  also  childless  adopted  Zerubbabel,  son  of  his  brother 
Pedaiah,  i  Chr.  iii.  17 — 19.) 

Zerubbabel's  grandson,  Abihud  (Matt.),  Judah  (Lk.),  or  Hodaiah 
(i  Chr.) — for  the  three  names  are  only  modifications  of  one  another— had 
two  sons,  Eliakim  (Matt.)  and  Joseph  (Lk.). 

Eliakim's  line  failed  in  Eliezer ;  and  thus  Matthan  or  Matthat  became 
his  legal  heir. 

This  Matthan  had  two  sons,  Jacob  the  father  of  Mary,  and  Eli  the 
father  of  Joseph;  and  Jacob  having  no  son  adopted  Joseph  his  heir  and 
nephew. 

It  is  true  that  these  suggestions  are  not  capable  of  rigid  demonstration, 
but  (a)  they  are  entirely  in  accordance  with  Jewish  customs ;  (/9)  there 
are  independent  reasons  which  shew  that  they  are  probable;  (7)  no 
other  hypotheses  are  adequate  to  account  for  the  early  existence  of  a 
double  genealogy  in  Christian  circles. 


EXCURSUS    [II. 
On  putting  New  [vtov)  Wine  into  Fresh  (Kdivohi)  Bottles. 

It  is  usually  considered  a  sufficient  explanation  of  this  passage  to  say 
that  the  'bottles  '  of  the  ancients  were  skins,  and  not  bottles  of  glass; 
and  that  whereas  fermenting  wine  would  burst  old,  worn,  and  sun- 
cracked  skins,  it  would  only  distend  new  skins. 

It  is  exceedingly  doubtful  whether  such  an  explanation  is  tenable. 

a.  It  is  quite  true  that  the  'bottles'  of  the  East  were  skins,  as  the 
Greek  word  askos  implies^  They  are  still  made  in  the  East  exactly  as 
they  used  to  be  made  thousands  of  years  ago,  by  skinning  an  animal 
from  the  neck,  cutting  off  the  head  and  legs,  and  drawing  olT  the  skin 
without  making  a  slit  in  the  belly.  The  legs  and  neck  are  then  tightly 
tied  and  sewn  up,  and  the  skin  with  the  hair  on  it  is  steeped  in  tannin 
and  pitched  at  the  sutures  (Tristram,  Nat.  Hist.  Bib.,  p.  92). 

j3.  It  is  also  quite  true  that  '  wine  '  must  here  mean  the  juice  of  the 
grape  which  has  not  yet  fermented,  'must,'  as  this  explanation  implies. 
For  '  still  wine' — wine  after  fermentation— may  be  put  in  any  bottles 
whether  old  or  new.  It  has  no  tendency  to  burst  the  bottles  that  con- 
tain it. 

7.  Rut  unfermented  wine  which  7vas  intended  to  fcmu-nt  certainly 
could  not  be  kept  in  any  kind  of  leather  bottle  whether  old  or  new.  Tho 
fermentation  would  split  open  the  sutures  of  the  leather,  however  new 
the  bottle  was. 

'  The  root  is  sk,  found  also  in  skin. 


376  EXCURSUS    III. 


S.  It  seems,  therefore,  to  be  a  very  probable  conclusion  that  our  Lord 
is  not  thinking  at  all  of  fermented,  intoxicating  wine,  but  of  '■niusV — the 
liquid  which  the  Greeks  called  a.d  yXevKos — tuns  of  which  are  kept  for 
years  in  France,  and  in  the  East ;  which  (as  is  here  stated)  improves  by 
age ;  which  is  a  rich  and  refreshing,  but  non-intoxicating  beverage  ; 
and  which  might  be  kept  with  perfect  safety  in  nav  leather  bottles. 

e.     Why,  then,  would  it  be  unsafe  to  put  the  must  in  old  bottles  ? 

Because  if  the  old  bottles  had  contained  '  wine  '  in  the  ordinary  sense — 
i.e.  the  fermented  juice  of  the  grape — or  other  materials,  "minute  por- 
tions of  albuminoid  matter  would  be  left  adhering  to  the  skin,  and 
receive  yeast  germs  from  the  air,  and  keep  them  in  readiness  to  set  up 

fermentation  in  the  new  unfermented  contents  of  the  skin As  soon 

as  the  unfermented  grape-juice  was  introduced,  the  yeast  germs  would 
begin  to  grow  in  the  sugar  and  to  develop  carbonic  dioxide.  If  the 
must  contained  one-fifth  sugar  it  would  develop  47  times  its  volume  of 
gas,  and  produce  an  enormous  pressure  which  no  bottle,  new  or  old, 
could  withstand." 

Unless,  therefore,  some  other  explanation  can  be  produced,  it  is  at 
least  possible — if  not  most  probable — that  our  Lord,  in  speaking  of 
'wine,'  here  means  must. 

Thus  much  is  at  any  rate  certain : — the  conditions  of  our  Lord's 
comparison  are  not  fulfilled  either  by  fermented  wine,  or  by  grape- 
juice  intended  for  fermentation.  Fermented  wine  could  be  kept  as 
well  in  old  bottles  as  in  new ;  and  grape-juice  intended  to  ferment 
would  burst  far  stronger  receptacles  than  the  newest  leathern  bottle. 
See  Job  xxxii.  19.  "The  rending  force  of  the  pent-up  gas  would  burst 
even  the  strongest  iron-bound  cask."  When  fermentation  is  intended, 
it  goes  on  in  the  wine- vat. 

Columella,  an  almost  contemporary  Latin  writer,  describing  the  then 
common  process  of  preserving  grape-juice  in  the  form  of  unfermented 
must,  lays  the  same  stress  on  its  being  put  into  a  nez^  amphora. 


EXCURSUS    IV. 
On  the  Meaning  of  EPIOUSION  in  Lk.  xi,  3. 

After  the  very  learned  and  elaborate  examination  to  which  the  word 
has  been  subjected  by  Bishop  Lightfoot,  On  Revision  195 — 234,  and 
Dr  M'=Clellan,  New  Testament  632 — 647,  it  will  be  sufficient  here  to 
touch  on  their  conclusions. 

This  word  was  so  rare  that  even  learned  Greek  Fathers  like  Origen 
considered  that  it  had  been  invented  by  the  Evangelists  and  were  un- 
certain as  to  its  meaning.  It  is  even  still  a  dispute  whether  it  has  a 
temporal  or  a  qualitative  meaning,  i.e.  whether  it  means 

i.  bread  for  the  day,  in  one  of  the  subordinate  senses  of  a.  continual 
or  p.  future: — or 


EXCURSUS    IV.  377 

ii.    for  our  subsistence,  whether  a.  physical,  or  /3.  spiritual: — 

or  again  (giving  to  epi  the  sense  of  'upon,'  i.e.  'in  addition  to')  whether 
it  meant 

iii.  beyond  other  substances,  implying  either  a.  ^  super  substantial,' 
i.e.  preeminent,  or  /3.  constibstantial. 

The  meanings  suggested  under  iii.  may  be  at  once  dismissed  as  the 
mere  artificial  'afterthoughts  of  theology.' 

The  decision  depends  partly  on  the  etymology.  It  has  been  thought 
that  the  word  may  be  derived  from  epi  and  ienai,  or  from  epi  and  ousia. 

It  seems  however  an  insuperable  objection  to  the  latter  etymology 
that  it  has  the  form  epiousios  not  epousios,  and  with  the  etymology  fall  the 
meanings  suggested  under  ii.,  i.e.  bread  for  our //i/j/i-a/,  ox  spiritual, 
subsistence. 

If  then  the  word  be  derived  from  epi  and  ienai  it  comes  either  from 
(ho)  epion  (chrouos)  or  [he)  epiousa  (hemera).  In  either  case  it  would 
mean  'bread  for  the  coming  day,'  i.e.  for  to-morrow,  or  for  to-day;  and 
Bishop  Lightfoot  brings  some  evidence  to  shew  that  this  was  the  sense 
accepted  by  the  Church  till  the  more  mystical  sense  was  supported  by 
Origen.  He  sums  up  his  essay  by  the  words  "Thus  the  familiar  ren- 
dering 'daily'  which  has  prevailed  uninterruptedly  in  the  Western 
Church  from  the  beginning  is  a  fairly  adequate  representation  of  the 
original;  nor  indeed  does  the  English  language  furnish  any  one  word 
which  would  answer  the  purpose  so  well"  (p.  234).  On  the  other  hand 
Dr  M'^Clellan,  as  the  result  of  another  exhaustive  criticism,  decides  on 
the  meaning  ^^  proper  to  the  future  world,"  axid  would  render  it  "need- 
ful," an  interpretation  which  he  argues  that  "etymology,  original  tra- 
dition, sense  and  context  unite  in  establishing"  (p.  646).  He  would 
therefore  take  it  in  the  sense  of  "Give  us  day  by  day  our  bread  of  Life 
Eternal." 

May  we  not  however  suppose  that  our  Lord  mentally  referred  to 
Prov.  XXX.  8,  "Feed  me  with  food  convenient  for  me,"  LXX.  avfra^ov 
U  /J.01  rd  ShvTa  Kal  to,  aiirapKr)?  If  so  the  simpler  and  more  obvious 
meaning  is  to  be  preferred. 

But  I  may  observe  in  conclusion  that  practically  the  difference  is 
nothing:  for— in  uttering  the  prayer— whichever  sense  the  Clirislian 
may  attach  to  the  adjective  he  will  certainly  include  the  spiritual  sense 
in  using  the  word  "bread"  (John  vi.  51). 


EXCURSUS   V.    On  xxii.  7. 
Was  the  Last  Supper  an  actual  Passover? 

The  question  whether,  before  the  institution  of  the  Lord's  Supper,  oui 
Lord  and  His  Disciples  ate  the  usual  Jewish  Passover— m  otlier  words, 
whether  in  the  year  of   the  Crucifixion    the  ordinary  Jewish  p.assovcr 


378  EXCURSUS    V. 


(Nisan  15)  began  on  the  evening  of  Thursday  or  on  the  evening  of 
Friday — is  a  question  which  has  been  ably  and  voluminously  debated, 
and  respecting  which  eminent  authorities  have  come  to  opposite  con- 
clusions. 

From  the  Synoptists  alone  we  should  no  doubt  infer  that  the  ordinary 
Paschal  Feast  was  eaten  by  our  Lord  and  His  Disciples,  as  by  all  the 
Jews,  on  the  evening  of  Thursday  (Matt.  xxvi.  1,  17,  18,  19;  Mk.  xiv. 
14 — 16;  Luke  xxii.  7,  11 — 13,  15). 

On  the  other  hand,  St  John  uses  language  which  seems  quite  as  dis- 
tinctly to  imply  that  the  Passover  was  not  eaten  till  the  next  day  (xiii.  i, 
"■before  the  Feast  of  the  Passover;"  29,  "those  things  that  we  have 
need  of  against  the  feast;"  xviii.  28,  "they  themselves  went  not  into 
the  judgment-hall  lest  they  should  be  defiled ;  but  that  they  might  eat 
the  passover").  He  also  calls  the  Sabbath  (Saturday)  a  high  day  (a 
name  given  by  the  Jews  to  the  first  and  last  days  of  the  octave  of  a  feast) 
apparently  because  it  was  both  a  Sabbath  and  the  first  day  of  the  Pass- 
over; and  says  (xix.  14)  that  Friday  was  "the  preparation  of  the  Pass- 
over." Here  the  word  used  is  Paraskcid  (as  in  Luke  xxiii.  54).  Now 
this  word  may  no  doubt  merely  mean  '  Friday,'  since  every  Friday  was 
a  preparation  for  the  Sabbath  ;  but  it  seems  very  difficult  to  believe  that 
the  expression  means  'Passover  Friday.' 

Now  since  the  language  of  St  John  seems  to  be  perfectly  explicit,  and 
since  it  is  impossible  to  explain  away  his  expressions  by  any  natural 
process— though  no  doubt  they  can  be  explained  away  by  a  certain 
amount  of  learned  ingenuity — it  seems  more  simple  to  accept  his  express 
statement,  and  to  interpret  thereby  the  less  definite  language  of  the 
Synoptists. 

We  may  set  aside  many  current  explanations  of  the  difficulty,  such  as 
that— 

a.  Two  different  days  may  have  been  observed  in  consequence  of 
different  astronomical  calculations  about  the  day. 

or  /3.  Some  laxity  as  to  the  day  may  have  been  introduced  by 
different  explanations  of  "between  the  two  evenings." 

or  7.  The  Jews  in  their  hatred  put  off  their  Passover  till  the  next 
evening. 

or  5.  St  John,  by  "eating  the  Passover,"  may  have  meant  no  more 
than  eating  the  Chagigah  or  festive  meal. 

or  e.  The  supper  described  by  St  John  is  not  the  same  as  that 
described  by  the  Synoptists. 

or  f.  The  Last  Supper  was  an  ordinary  Passover,  only  it  was  eaten 
by  anticipation. 

Setting  aside  these  and  many  other  untenable  views,  it  seems  proba- 
ble that  the  Last  Supper  was  not  the  ordinary  Jewish  Paschal  meal, 
but  was  eaten  the  evening  before  the  ordinary  Jewish  Passover ;  and 
that  the  language  of  the  Synoptists  is  perfectly  consistent  and  explicable 
on  the  view  that  our  Lord  gave  to  His  last  Supper  a  Paschal  character 
("to  eat  this  Passover,"  or  ''this  as  a  Passover,"  Lk.  xxii.  15),  and 
spoke  of  it  to  His  disciples  as  their  Passover.     Hence  had  arisen  in  the 


EXCURSUS  V.  379 


Church  the  view  that  it  actually  was  the  Paschal  meal— which  St  John 
silently  corrects.  The  spread  of  this  impression  in  the  Church  would 
be  hastened  by  the  fact  that  in  any  case  Thursday  was,  in  one  sense, 
'the  first  day  of  unleavened  bread,'  since  on  that  day  all  leaven  was 
carefully  searched  for  that  it  might  be  removed. 

When  we  adopt  this  conclusion — that  the  Last  Supper  was  not  the 

Paschal  Feast  itself,  but  intended  to  supersede  and  abrogate  it it  is 

supported  by  a  multitude  of  facts  and  allusions  in  the  Synoptists 
themselves  ;  e.g.  i.  The  occupations  of  the  Friday  on  which  Jesus  was 
crucified  shew  no  sign  whatever  of  its  having  been  a  very  solemn 
festival.  The  Jews  kept  their  chief  festival  days  with  a  scrupulosity 
almost  as  great  as  that  with  which  they  kept  their  Sabbaths.  Yet  on 
this  Friday  working,  buying,  selling,  holding  trials,  executing  criminals, 
bearing  burdens,  &c.  is  going  on  as  usual.  Everything  tends  to  shew 
that  the  day  was  a  common  Friday,  and  that  the  Passover  only  began 
at  sunset. 

ii.  The  Sanhedrin  had  distinctly  said  that  it  would  be  both  dan- 
gerous and  impolitic  to  put  Christ  to  death  on  the  Feast  day  (Mk.  xiv. 
1,  and  comp.  Acts  xii.  4). 

ill.  Not  a  word  is  said  in  any  of  the  Evangelists  about  the  Lamb — 
the  most  important  and  essential  element  of  the  Paschal  meal  ;  nor  of 
the  unleavened  bread  at  the  Supper ;  nor  of  the  bitter  herbs  ;  nor  of 
the  sauce  Charoseth ;  nor  of  the  account  given  by  the  Chief  Person 
present  of  the  Institution  of  the  Passover,  &c. 

Further  than  this,  many  arguments  tend  to  shew  that  this  Last  Sup- 
per was  not  a  Paschal  meal  ;  e.g. : 

a.  Early  Christian  tradition — apparently  down  to  the  time  of  Chrj-- 
sostom — distinguished  between  the  Last  Supper  and  the  Passover. 
Hence  the  Eastern  Church  always  uses  leavened  hxfx^  at  the  Eucharist, 
as  did  the  Western  Church  down  to  the  9th  century. 

/3.  Jewish  tradition — with  no  object  in  view — fixes  the  Death  of 
Christ  on  the  afternoon  before  the  Passover  {Erehh  Pesacli). 

7.  The  language  of  St  Paul  (i  Cor.  v.  7,  xi.  23)  seems  to  imply  that 
the  Lord's  Supper  was  not  the  Passover,  but  a  Feast  destined  to  super- 
sede it. 

3.  If  our  Lord  had  eaten  an  actual  Paschal  meal  the  very  evening 
before  His  death,  the  Jews  might  fairly  have  argued  that  lie  was  not 
Himself  the  Paschal  Lamb  ;  whereas 

£.  There  was  a  peculiar  symbolic  fitness  in  the  fact  that  He— the 
True  Lamb— vms  offered  at  the  very  time  when  the  Lamb  which  was 
but  a  type  was  being  sacrificed. 

For  these  and  other  reasons— more  fully  developed  in  the  Life  of  Christ, 
pp.  47i_483— I  still  hold  that  "the  Last  Supper  was  not  the  actual 
Jewish  Passover,  but  a  ^«<a^z- Passover,  a  new  and  Christian  Passwcr. 


38o  EXCURSUS   VI. 


EXCURSUS   VI. 
On  Sects  of  the  Jews. 

In  the  time  of  our  Lord  the  main  Jewish  sects  were — the  Essenes, 
the  Sadducees,  and  the  Pharisees. 

The  Herodians,  mentioned  in  Mk.  iii.  6,  xii.  13;  Matt.  xxii.  16,  were  not 
so  much  a  religious  sect  as  a  political  party  which  accepted  the  rule  of  the 
Herods.  Politically  they  were  descended  from  the  old  Grecising  apostates, 
for  whom  Jason  proposed  the  title  of  Antiochians  (2  Mace.  iv.  9).  They 
may  be  most  briefly  described  as  the  anti-national  party,  who  wished 
the  Jews  to  forget  as  much  as  possible  their  customs  and  aspirations, 
adopt  cordial  relations  with  Rome,  and  accept  'Greek  fashions  and 
heathenish  manners,'  2  Mace.  iv.  13,  14.  They  seem  to  have  been 
Sadducees  in  religion,  and  were  closely  connected  with  the  powerful 
families  which  Herod  the  Great  had  introduced  from  Babylon  and 
Egypt,  and  who  at  this  time  monopolised  the  High  Priesthood  among 
themselves.  The  Talmud  connects  them  with  the  Boethusim,  so  called 
from  Simon  son  of  Boethus,  whose  daughter  (named  Mariamne)  Herod 
the  Great  married.  They  had  gone  so  far  at  one  time  as  to  attempt 
to  represent  Herod  the  Great  to  the  Jews  as  the  promised  Messiah  ! 
(Tert.  Praesc.  45). 

The  Essenes  are  not  mentioned  in  thS  Gospels,  nor  is  there  any 
indication  that  Jesus  ever  came  into  contact  with  them.  They  were  a 
small,  exclusive,  ascetic,  isolated  community,  with  whose  discourage- 
ment of  marriage,  and  withdrawal  from  all  the  active  duties  of  life,  our 
Lord  could  have  had  no  sympathy.  Their  importance  as  a  sect  belongs 
to  a  somewhat  later  period  of  the  Gospel  History. 

The  Sadducees  were  the  priestly-aristocratic  party,  who  were  in 
close  alliance  with  the  ruling  powers.  The  name  is  probably  derived  from 
Tsedakah  'righteousness,'  and  was  originally  meant  to  distinguish  them 
from  the  Separatist  or  Pharisaic  party,  which  in  their  opinion  was  too 
narrow  and  exclusive.  The  names,  like  all  party  names,  soon  acquired 
an  insulting  force,  and  may  be  roughly  illustrated  by  saying  that  the 
Sadducees  were  regarded  as  Rationalists  and  the  Pharisees  as  Ritualists. 
In  the  time  of  our  Lord  the  Sadducees  had  much  political  power, 
derived  from  their  wealth,  their  offices,  and  their  political  connexions, 
but  they  had  no  popular  following.  Their  grasping  and  avaricious 
spirit  made  them  hateful  to  the  people,  and  this  hatred  was  specially 
felt  towards  their  chief  representatives — the  family  of  Annas. 

They  rightly  refused  to  recognise  the  extravagant  importance  attached 
by  the  Pharisees  to  the  Oral  Law ;  and  they  seem  to  have  unduly  depre- 
ciated the  authority  of  the  Hagiograpba  and  the  Prophets  in  comparison 
with  that  of  Moses.  It  was  this  which  led  to  their  scepticism  about  the 
immortality  of  the  soul  and  the  existence  of  angels  and  spirits.  Their 
worldliness  and  want  of  moral  earnestness  made  them  less  useful  than 
they  might  otherwise  have  been  in  counteracting  the  hypocritic  exter- 
nalism  and  frivolous  scrupulosity  of  the  Pharisees. 


EXCURSUS    VI.  381 


The  name  Pharisees  seems  to  have  been  derived  from  Pei-ishoot, 
'separation.'  They  were  the  national  party,  and  were  poHtically 
descended  from  the  Ckasidim,  mentioned  in  i  Mace  ii.  ,^1,  vii.  13.  No 
doubt  many  good  and  faithful  men,  like  Nicodemus  and  Joseph  of 
Arimathaea,  existed  in  their  body,  but  Jewish  writers  themselves  admit, 
and  the  Talmud  amply  and  in  many  passages  confirms,  the  terrible 
charges  brought  against  them  by  our  Lord  in  His  Great  Denunciation 
(Matt,  xxiii.;  see  notes  on  Luke  xi.  42—54).  Those  charges  were 
mainly  against  their  greed,  ambition,  tyranny,  and  sacrifice  of  things 
essential  to  unimportant  minutiae, — in  one  word,  their  arbitrary  and  ex- 
cessive ceremonialism,  which  had  led  them  to  sacrifice  the  spirit  and 
even  the  letter  of  the  Mosaic  Law  to  their  own  Oral  Law  or  Tradition  of 
the  Fathers.  "  Long  prayers,  and  devouring  of  widows'  houses  ;  flaming 
proselytism  and  subsequent  moral  neglect ;  rigorous  stickling  for  the 
letter,  boundless  levity  as  to  the  spirit ;  high-sounding  words  as  to  the 
sanctity  of  oaths,  and  cunning  reservations  of  casuistry ;  fidelity  in  trifles, 
gross  neglect  of  essential  principles  ;  the  mask  of  godliness  without  the 
reality  ;  petty  orthodoxy  and  artificial  morals — such  was  Pharisaism." 
"  It  was,"  says  Canon  Mozley,  "an  active  religion  founded  upon  egotism" 
— religion  allied  with  the  pride  of  life  in  its  most  childish  and  empty 
forms.  It  was  a  "false  goodness" — and  therefore  ^'■■iXi  unrepentant  type  of 
evil."  "The  Pharisaic  conscience  was  a  /a w^  conscience — with  a  potent 
sway  over  mint,  anise,  and  cumin,  but  no  power  over  the  heart."  And 
therefore  the  Pharisees  were  "  the  only  class  which  Jesus  cared  publicly 
to  expose."  See  '  Sermon  on  the  Pharisees  '  in  Mozley's  Univ.  Sermons, 
pp.  28—51. 

Josephus  {Antt.  xviii.  r,  §§  3,  4,  xiil.  5,  §  9,  B.  J.  11.  8,  §  14)  gives 
some  notices  of  these  sects,  but  his  account  of  tJiem  can  by  no  means  be 
exclusively  trusted. 


EXCURSUS  VII. 
Illustrations  of  St  Luke  derived  from  the  Talmud. 

A  few  only  of  the  following  illustrations — which  will  I  think  be 
found  both  curious  and  important — may  be  found  in  Schottgen's 
Horae  Hebraicae.  The  majority  of  them  are  entirely  new,  and  I  have 
chiefly  derived  them  from  the  yet  unpublished  Talmudic  collections  of 
Mr  P.  J.  Ilershon. 

I.  •21.  Marvelled  that  he  tarried  so  long  itt  the  Temple. 
The  Jews  believed  that  catastrophes  sometimes  occurred,  not  only 
(as  in  the  case  of  Heliodorus,  2  Mace  iii.  24)  for  intrusion  into  the 
Temple,  but  for  any  irregularity  in  it.  See  the  story  of  the  death  of  a 
(Sadducean)  High  Priest  in  Yoma,  f.  ig  b.  Comp.  Lev.  xvi.  13,  "that 
he  die  not." 


382  EXCURSUS  VII. 


II.  2  5.      Waiting /or  the  consolation  of  Israel. 
II.  38.      That  looked  for  redemption. 
"Ravah  said,  When  a  man  is  brought  up  for  judgment  (after  death) 
he  is  a.%k&d...Hast  thou  been  waiting  for  salvation?"  (i.e.  looking  for  the 
advent  of  the  Messiah).     Shabbath,  f.  31  a. 


II.  41.     His  parents  went  to  yerusalem  every  year  at  the  feast  of  the 

Passover. 
In  Mechilta  i.  \1  b  the  wife  of  Jonah  is  commended  for  going  to  the 
yearly  feasts. 

II.  46.  Both  hearing  them  and  asking  them  questions. 
I  have  shewn  that  this  was  entirely  in  accordance  with  Jewish  cus- 
tom: besides  the  self-attested  instance  of  the  young  Josephus  we  find 
that  "when  Rabbi  Shimon  Ben  Gamaliel  and  Rabbi  Jehoshua  Ben 
Korcha  were  seated  in  the  debating  room  upon  divans  Rabbi  Elazer 
Ben  Rabbi  Shimon  and  Rabbi  [i.e.  Judah  the  Holy]  sat  before  them  on 
the  ground  asking  questions  and  sta)-ting  objections.  The  other  Rabbis 
exclaimed  'We  drink  of  their  water'  (i.e.  of  their  wisdom)  'and  they 
sit  upon  the  ground ! '  Seats  were  therefore  brought  in,  and  the  two 
children  were  seated  upon  them."     Babha  Metsia,  f.  84  b. 


VI.  35.     Lend,  hoping  for  nothing  again. 

From  Ps.  xv.  5  the  Rabbis  said  that  he  who  lent  his  money  without 
usury  was  regarded  as  having  kept  the  whole  law.     Shemoth  Rabba, 

f-  i30>  3-  

VII.  50.     Go  in  peace. 

Lit.  ^into  peace'  {eh  elpyjvqv),  comp.  ii.  29,  "Now  lettest  thou  thy 
servant  depart  in  peace"  (^j*  dpiivig). 

"Rabh  Laive  Bar  Chaitha  said,  In  taking  leave  of  a  dying  man 
one  should  say  'Go  in  peace'  {beshalSm),  and  not  'into  peace'  [leska- 
I8m),  for  God  said  to  Abraham  'Thou  shalt  go  to  thy  fathers  in  peace.' 
Otherwise  one  should  not  say  'Goinpeiice'  but  ^unto  peace;'  for  David 
said  to  Absalom  'Go  in  peace'  {2  Sam.  xv.  9),  and  he  went  and  was 
hanged;  but  Jethro  said  to  Moses  (Ex.  iv.  18)  'Go  unto  peace,'  and  he 
went  and  prophesied."  Aloed  Katon,  f.  i(),  i.  The  same  rule  is  given 
with  the  same  reasons  in  Berachoth,  f.  64  a. 


X.  31.     He  passed  by  on  the  other  side. 
In  Midrash  Koheleth,  f.  91  b,  a  beautiful  story  is  told  of  the  blessing 
earned   by  Abba  Techama  for  carrying  a  sick  man  into  a  town,  and 
going  back  (in  spite  of  the  Sabbath)  to  fetch  his  bundle.  See  Schottgen, 
Hor.  Hebr.  ad  loc. 

X.  34.     Pouring  in  oil  and  wine. 
Speaking  of  circumcision,  and  the  method  adopted  to  heal  the  wound, 
we  find  the  rule   ^^  If  there  is  no  mixed  oil  and  wine  ready  each  may  be 
added  separately"  (Shabbath,  f.  133  a). 


EXCURSUS  VII. 


383 


As  an  additipnal  instance  of  the  extreme  Sab1)ath  scrupulosity  among 
the  Jews  we  may  add  the  rest  of  the  passage:  "No  dressing  is  to  be 
prepared  for  it  on  the  Sabbath,  but  a  rag  may  be  put  on"  (see  John  vii. 
22).  "If  the  latter  is  not  ready  on  the  spot  it  may  be  fetched  from 
other  premises  wrapped  on  the  finger. "  The  latter  rule  is  given  to  avoid 
the  appearance  of  breaking  the  Sabbath  by  carrying  the  raa: 

X.  4'2.      The  good  part. 
No  doubt  the  use  of  the  word  /xepis  is  a  reference  to  the  feast  which 
Martha  was  preparing.      The  phrase  and  the  metaphor  are   found   in 
Hebrew  literature.     See  Schottgen  ad  loc. 


XII.  19.     Soul. ..take  thine  ease,  eat,  drink,  and  be  merry. 
So  in   Taanith,   f    11  a,  "When  the  people  is  in  trouble  let  no  man 
say,  I  will  go  home,  and  eat,  and  drink,  and  peace  be  to  thee,  O  my 
soul." 


XII.  53.      The  daughter  in  law  against  her  mother  in  law. 
"In  the  generation  when  the  Son  of  David  will  come  daughters  will 
stand  up  against  their  mothers,  daughters  in  law  against  their  mothers 
in  law.'      Sanhedrin,  f.  97,  i. 


XIII .  1 4.   In  them  therefore  coine  and  be  healed,  and  not  on  the  Sabbath  day. 

Thus  we  are  told  that  thorough  bathing  was  permitted  on  the  Sabbath 
except  in  the  Mediterranean,  and  the  Dead  Sea,  because  the  waters  of 
these  seas  were  supposed  to  possess  medicinal  properties,  and  healing 
is  not  allowed  on  the  Sabbath  day.     Shabbath,  f.  109  a. 


XIII.  23.     Are  there  few  that  be  saved? 
Some  of  the  Rabbis  answered  this  question  in  the  affirmative,  and 
Rabbi  Shimeon  Ben  Jochai  was  so  satisfied  about  his  own  righteousness 
as  to  say  that  if  only  two  were  saved,  he  and  his  son  would  be  those 
two.     Succa,  i.  45  b. 

XIV.  8 — II.  On  taking  the  lowest  place. 
"Ben  Azai  said,  Descend  from  thy  place,  and  sit  down  two  or 
three  degrees  lower.  Let  them  rather  bid  thee  go  up  higher  than 
come  down  lower ;  as  it  is  said,  '  For  better  it  is  that  it  should  be  said 
unto  thee,  Come  up  hither,  than  that  thou  shouldcst  be  put  lower  in  the 
presence  of  the  prince  whom  thine  eyes  have  seen,'  I'rov.  xxv.  7." 
Abhoth  of  Rabbi  Nathan,  1. 

XIV.   1 1 .      Whosoever  exalteth  himself  shall  be  abased. 
"Greatness   flees  from  him    who  strives   for  it,   but   it    follows  him 
who  flees  fiom  it,"   Rnibhin,  f.   13  l>.     "Whoever  abases  himself,  thi 


384  EXCURSUS  VII. 

Holy  One,  blessed  be  He,  exalts  him,  and  whoever  exalts  himself,  the 
Holy  One,  blessed  be  He,  abases  him."     Id.  ib. 

The  latter  coincidence  compels  the  belief  either  that  our  Lord  was 
here  (as  elsewhere)  using  a  current  Jewish  proverb,  or  that  the  Tal- 
mudic  writer,  consciously  or  unconsciously,  borrows  from  Him. 


XV.  7.     Who  need  no  repentance. 
The  Jews  distinguished  between  two  classes  of  good   men  ;  those 
who,    like    David,   had    repented   after   sin ;    and   the   '  perfect  just.' 
Succa,  f.  45  b. 


XVI.  8.     The  children  of  this  world  {or  '  age''). 
'  The   children  of  this  age '   are  opposed  to   '  the   children   of  the 
age  to  come,'  who  in  Berachoth,  f.  4  b,  are  defined  to  be  "  those  who 
to  their  evening  prayers  add  prayers  about  (Israel's)  redemption." 


XVI.  9.     Into  everlasting  habitations  ('  into  the  eternal  tents '). 
"When  the  wicked  are  burnt  up,  God  makes  a  tent  in  which  He 
hides  the  just,  Ps.  xxvii.  5."     Siphra,  f.  187. 


XVI.  11.     Was  carried  by  the  angels  into  Abrahani's  bosom. 

"  'This  day,'  said  Rabbi  Qudah  the  Holy],  'he  sits  in  the  bosom 
of  Abraham,'  i.e.  he  died."     Kiddushin,  I.  72  b. 


XVII.  6.     Be  thou  plucked  up  by  the  root. 
In  the   famous  story  of  Babha    Metsia,    f.   59  b.   Rabbi   EHezer   is 
said  to  have  given  this  among  other  miraculous  proofs  that  his  rule 
(halacha)  was  right. 


XXI.  5.     How  it  was  adorned  with  goodly  stones  and  gifts. 
"  It  is  said,  Whoever  has  not  seen  Herod's  temple,  has  never  seen 
a  beautiful  structure  in  his  life.     How  did  he  build  it  ?     Ravah  replied, 
With  white  and  green  marble,  so  that  it  appeared  in  the  distance  like 
the  waves  of  the  sea. "     Babha  Bathra,  i.  ^b. 


XXI.  7.      When  shall  these  things  be? 

"Rabbis  Jochanan  and  Elazer  both  said.  The  present  generation 
(i.e.  after  the  destruction  of  Jerusalem),  whose  iniquities  are  hidden, 
have  not  been  informed  of  the  time  of  their  restoration.'  Yonia, 
f-  19.  2-  

XXII.  38.     It  is  enough. 

Schottgen  compares  this  with  the  very  frequent  Rabbinic  phrase 
->^'i'7,  used  generally  with  a  shade  of  indignation  to  stop  useless  remarks. 


EXCURSUS  VII.  3S5 


XXII.   70.     Art  thou  the  Son  of  God?     And  he  said  unto  them,  Vi  say 

that  I  am. 

In  the  description  of  the  death  of  Rabbi  (Judah  Hakkodesh,  or 
the  Holy,  the  compiler  of  the  Mishna),  we  are  told  that  Bar  Cappara 
was  commissioned  by  the  other  Rabbis  to  see  whether  he  was  dead 
or  alive.  He  returned  with  his  robe  rent  behind,  and  said,  "The  angels 
are  victorious,  and  the  holy  ark  is  taken  away."  "  Is  Kabln  dtiiJ?" 
asked  they.    "  You  have  said  it"  he  answered.     Kethubhoth,  f.  103  b. 


XXIII.  31.     For  if  they  do  these  things  in  a  green  tree,  what  shall  be 

done  in  the  dry  ? 

Although  this  exact  proverb  does  not  occur  (apparently)  in 
Jewish  literature,  there  are  others  exceedingly  like  it,  e.g.  "Rabbi 
Ashi  asked  Bar  Kippok  what  mourning  he  made  on  the  death  of 
Ravina.  He  replied,  '  If  the  flame  has  fallen  among  the  cedars,  what 
chance  is  there  for  the  hyssop  on  the  wall?  If  Leviathan  is  drawn 
up  with  a  hook,  what  hope  is  there  for  little  fish?  If  the  net  is  thrown 
in  flooding  streams,  what  chance  is  there  for  stagnant  pools?'  "  A/oed 
Katon,  f.  25  /'.     Comp.  Jer.  xli.  5. 

The  proverb  adduced  by  Schottgen  on  1  Cor.  xv.  33,  '  Two  dry 
logs  and  one  green  onej  the  dry  bum  up  the  green,'  seems  to  have  no 
connexion  with  it^ 


ST   LUKE  2!^ 


INDEX  I. 


Abia,  course  of,  45 

Abila,  its  position,  81 ;  capital  of  Abi- 
lene, 81 

Abilene,  Lysanias  tetrarch  of,  81 

Abraham's  seed,  Jews  supposed  privi- 
leges of,  85 

Ahithophel,    a   type   of  Judas   Iscariot, 

327. 

almsgiving,  218 

angel,  appearance  of,  to  Zacharias,  47 

angels,  ministry  of,  dwelt  on  by  St  Luke, 
46;  visit  to  shepherds,  67;  at  the  se- 
pulchre, 358 

Anna,  the  prophetess,  74 

Annas,  some  account  of,  82 

annunciation  of  the  birth  of  St  John  the 
Baptist,  44;  of  the  birth  of  Jesus,  51 

Apocryphal  Gospels,  account- of  annun- 
ciation in,  53;  on  the  questioning  of 
the  doctors  by  Christ,  77 

Apostles,  selection  of,  131 — 134;  lists  of, 
131  ;  some  account  of,  132 — 134;  mis- 
sion of,  179;  instructions  to,  180;  re- 
turn of,  after  mission,  182;  lesson  to, 
on  meekness,  192  ;  strife  among,  at  the 
Last  Supper,  327 

Archelaus,  294,  296 

Arnold  quoted,  257 

ascension  of  our  Lord,  367 

Aser,  the  tribe  of,  74 

Ave  Maria,  51 

baptism,  symbol  of  John  the  Baptist's, 

83  ;    by   the   Spirit,   90 ;    by   fire,  90 ; 

reasons  for  our  Lord's,  92 
Barabbas,  his  crime,  344 
Bartimaeus,  healing  of  blind,  291 
beatitudes,  135 — 137 
Beelzebub,  213 
Benedictus,  the,  59,  60 
Bethany,    meaning  of,  297  ;    the  sisters 

of,  207  ;  the  ascension  near,  367 
Bethlehem,  inn  at,  66  ;  meaning  of,  65 
Bethphage,  its  probable  situation,  297 
Bethsaida,  western,  182;  eastern  =  Beth- 

saida-Julias,  182 
blasphemy  against  the  Holy  Ghost,  224 
blind  leaders  of  the  blind,  142 
brethren  of  our  Lord,  168 


Browning,  quoted  256 
Byron,  quoted  257 

Caiaphas,  son-in-law  of  Annas,  81 
Calvary,  our  Lord's  crucifixion  on,  348 
Capernaum,  first  mention  of,  by  St  Luke, 

104 ;    some  account  of,   106 ;    Christ's 

woe  uttered  on,  201 
census  of  Caesar  Augustus,  62,  63 
centurion,   healing   of   servant  of,   144^ 

146;  probably  a  proselyte,  144 
chief    priests,    seek    to    slay    our    Lord, 

322 ;      clamour    for    His    crucifixion, 

345 
childlessness,   how   regarded    by  Jews, 

148 
children  brought  to  our  Lord,  285 
Chorazin,  200 
church,  woman  in  parable  of  ten  pieces 

of  silver  likened  to,  255,  256 
circumcision,   of  St    John    the   Baptist, 

57  ;  of  Jesus,  70 
Codex  Bezae,  a  reading  of,  128 
Coleridge   quoted   on    the  Nativity,    68, 

69 
colt,  297 

confession  of  St  Peter,  185 
corn,  plucking  ears  of,  125 
Cowper  quoted,  on  the  walk  to  Emmaus, 

363 
cross,   taking  up  of,  daily,  187;  form   of 

our  Lord's,  346  ;  our  Lord's  borne  by 

Simon  of  Cyrene,  346 
Cyrenius,  64 

darkness,  the,  at  the  Crucifixion,  352 
demoniac,   healing  of,   108 ;    Gergesene, 

healing  of,  171  ;  boy,  healing  of,  191 
demons,  Jews'  belief  in  power  of,  173 
denials,   the   three,  of  our  Lord   by   St 

Peter,  335,  336 
devil,   the  temptation  of  Christ  by  the, 

95 — 100;    power   delivered   to,    98;    a 

dumb,  cast  out,  212 
disciples  at  Emmaus,  359 — 363 
Dives  and  Lazarus,  parable  of,  268 
divorce,  laxity  of  the  law  of,  among  the 

Jews,  268 
dogs  of  the  East,  269 


INDEX. 


387 


door,  the  narrow,  239 

dropsy,  healing  of  man  with,  244 

el  Gh6r,  wilderness  of,  82 

Elias,  resemblance  between  St  John  and, 

48 
Elisabeth  visited  by  Mary,  53,  54 
Emmaus,  two  disciples  at,  359 
epiousion,  376,  377 
Essenes,  380 
evangelists,  compared   to  four  cherubim 

in  _  Ezekiel's  vision,  13;  silence  on  the 

childhood  of  Jesus,  76 
eye,  the  evil,  216 

faith  of  centurion,  146 

fasting,  Jewish  rules  concerning,  283 

fig-tree,  parable  of,  235 

five  thousand,  feeding  of,  184 

foundations,  false  and  true,  143 

fox,  likeness  of  Herod  Antipas  to  a,  241 

funeral  at  Nain,  147 

Gabriel,   appearance   to  Zacharias,    48 ; 

appearance  to  Mary,  31 
Gadara,  situation  of,  170 
Gadarenes,   rejection   of  our   Lord    by, 

174 
Galileans,  outbreak  of  Romans  on,  234 
Galilee,  situation  of,  51;  its  extent,  80; 

sea  of.  III 
genealogy  of  our  Lord,  93;  Excursus  on 

369—375 
Gennesaret,  lake  of,  iii;  storm  on,  169 
Gerasa,  situation  of,  171 
Gergesene   demoniac,  healing  of,  170 — 

gospels,  table  of  peculiarities  and  coinci- 
dences, 8 ;  written  in  Hellenistic  Greek, 
10;  compared  to  river  of  Eden,  12; 
prophetic  picture  of,  in  Ezekiel's  vision 
of  the  four  cherubim,  13;  summary 
of  differences  of,  17 

graves,  Pharisees  likened  to,  219 

head,  custom  of  anointing,  158 

Hermon,  probable  scene  of  the  trans- 
figuration, 188 

Herod  Antipas,  parents  of,  80 ;  his 
banishment,  80;  his  dominions,  80:  im- 
prisons John  the  Baptist,  91  ;  hisrdarm 
at  the  progress  of  Christ's  ministry, 
181  ;  is  likened  by  our  Lord  to  a  fox, 
241;  our  Lord  before,  342 

Herodians,  some  account  of,  380 

Herod  Philip,  parents  of,  80;  marriage 
with  Salome,  80;  extent  of  his  tetrarch- 
ate,  81 

Herods,  genealogy  of  the,  39 

Herod  the  Great,  kingdom  of,  44 

Hcrrick  quoted,  250 

high  priests,  order  of,  82 

Hillel,  246;  on  divorce,  268 

Hinnom,  valley  of,  223  ;  infamy  of,  223 


Holy  Ghost,  the  descent  of,  at  our  Lord's 

baptism,  92  :  blasphemy  against,  224 
horn  of  salvation,  59 
house  built  upon  a  rock,  143 

incense,  offering  of.  46 

Ituraea,   Herod   Philip  tetrarch  of,  80: 

position  of,  8i 
Ituraeans,  81 

Jairus,  daughter  of,  restored  to  life,  179 
James,  St.  call  of,   114;  presence  at  the 

raising  of  Jairus'  daughter.  178  ;  at  the 

transfiguration,    188;   rebuked  by  our 

Lord,  ig6 
Jericho,    road  to,  204;  blind  Bartimaeus 

healed  at,  290;  some  account  of,  291 
Jerusalem,  Christ's  lament  over,  242  ;  our 

Lord's  triumphal  entry  into,  297 ;  fall 

of,  foretold  by  our  Lord,  299,  317  ;  time 

of  the  siege  of,  300;  desolation  of,  317 
Jesus 

(i)     Nativity  and  Manifestation 

annunciation  of  His  birth,  52;  day 
of  birth  uncertain,  65;  His  birth,  66; 
His  circumcision,  70;  presentation  in 
the  temple,  70;  return  to  Nazareth, 
75 ;  goes  up  to  the  passover,  76; 
tarries  behind  in  the  temple,  77 ; 
returns  with  His  parents,  78;  is  bap- 
tized by  John,  92 ;  tempted  of  the 
devil,  94 — 100 

(ii)     Ministry  in  Galilee 

preaches  at  Nazareth,  loi ;  is  re- 
jected, 105;  heals  a  demoniac  at 
Capernaum,  108  ;  heals  Simon's  wife's 
mother,  109;  .iiid  the  sick  at  evening, 
110;  calls  four  disciples,  114:  heals  a 
leper,  116;  heals  a  paralytic,  117; 
reproves  Pharisees,  127 ;  heals  the 
man  with  a  withered  hand,  129; 
heals  the  centurion's  servant,  144 — 
146;  raises  the  widow's  son  at  Nain, 
147 ;  receives  John  the  Baptist's 
disciples,  14S;  eats  in  the  house  of 
Siiuuii  the  Pharisee,  154;  His  feet 
anointed  by  Mary  Magdalene,  156; 
stills  the  storm,  i6g ;  heals  the  Ger- 
gesene demoniac,  170 — 174;  heals 
the  woman  with  an  issue  of  blood, 
178;  restores  the  daughter  of  Jninis 
to  life,  179;  sends  forth  the  twelve, 
179;  feeds  the  five  thousand,  1S4; 
prophesies  His  death  and  resurrec- 
tion, 185  :  heals  demoniac  boy,  191 ; 
teaches  His  apostles  meekness,  192; 
tolerance,  193 

(iii)  Ministry  after  leaTinir  Galilee 
is  rejected  by  the  Samaritans,  1^4; 
sends  forth  the  seventy,  190;  is  en- 
tertained by  the  sisters  at  Belli.my, 
207;  teaches  His  disciples  to  pray, 
210;  casts  out  a  dumb  devil,  211; 
rebukes  the  blasphemous  Pharisees, 


388 


INDEX. 


213,  214;  rebukes  egotism,  225; 
teaches  trustfulness,  227  ;  almsgiving, 
228;  and  watchfulness,  229;  heals 
woman  on  sabbath,  236 ;  rebuked  by 
ruler  of  synagogue,  237 ;  is  enter- 
tained by  a  Pharisee,  243 ;  heals  a 
man  with  the  dropsy,  244 ;  teaches 
humility,  246;  and  that  the  poor  are 
to  be  invited  to  feasts,  247 ;  teaches 
whole-heartedness,  251;  rebukes  the 
covetous  Pharisees,  266 ;  shews  the 
peril  of  those  through  whom  offences 
come,  271  :  the  power  of  faith,  273; 
and  insufficiency  of  works,  274;  heals 
the  ten  lepers,  275 ;  tells  of  the 
kingdom  of  God,  276 ;  and  His  own 
coming,  278;  blesses  little  children, 
285 ;  puts  the  young  ruler  to  test,  286 ; 
reveals  the  danger  of  riches,  287 
(iv)  Last  yourney  to  yerusalein  and 
Passion 

predicts  His  crucifixion,  289;  heals 
blind  Hartimaeus,  291 ;  his  triumphal 
entry  into  Jerusalem,  297 ;  weeps 
over  Jerusalem,  and  foretells  its 
destruction,  299;  questions  the  priests 
and  scribes,  302  ;  replies  to  the 
Pharisees  respecting  tribute  money, 
307;  to  the  Sadducees  respecting 
resurrection,  308,  309,  310:  reduces 
the  scribes,  Pharisees,  and  Sadducees 
tea  confession  of  ignorance,  311,  312; 
predicts  destruction  of  the  temple, 
314;  the  end  of  the  world,  315; 
and  the  desolation  of  Jerusalem,  317; 
sends  St  Peter  and  St  John  to  pre- 
pare the  passover,  324;  institutes 
the  Holy  Eucharist,  326;  foretells 
Peter' s  denial  of  H  i  m,  329 ;  H  is  agony 
in  the  garden,  331;  prayer,  331; 
finds  His  disciples  asleep  and  re- 
proaches them,  332 ;  is  denied  by 
St  Peter,  335 ;  mocked  by  the  Jews, 
337 ;  is  tried  before  the  Sanhedrin, 
338;  and  before  Pilate  339;  sent  to 
Herod,  341 ;  sentenced  by  Pilate, 
345 ;  is  led  to  Calvary,  346 ;  and 
crucified,  348  ;  His  superscription, 
350;  forgives  the  penitent  robber, 
352;  dies,  353;  is  buried,  356 
(v)  Victory  over  the  Grave  and 
A  sceiision 

His  resurrection,  358 ;  and  walk  to 
Enimaus,   360;    His  appearance   to 
the  apostles,  363 — 366;    His  ascen- 
sion, 367  ^  .  J 
Jews,  hatred  between   Samaritans  and, 
195 ;   self-satisfaction  of,  compared  to 
elder  son  in  parable  of  the  prodigal, 
262 ;    parable    against    self-righteous, 
281 ;  sects  of,  380,  381 

Joanna  ministers  to  our  Lord,  161 
ohn,  St,  call  of,    114;    presence   at   the 
raising  of  Jairus'  daughter,  178;  at  the 


transfiguration,  188;  rebuked  by  our 
Lord,  196;  sent  to  prepare  the  pass- 
over,  324 

John's,  St,  gospel,  time  of  composition, 
9;  difference  between  this  and  the 
synoptic  gospels,  10,  11;  distinctive 
peculiarities  of,  16,  17 ;  records  pre- 
served in,  loi 

John,  St,  the  Baptist,  annunciation  of  his 
birth,  44;  is  to  be  a  Nazarite,  47  ;  his 
office  foretold,  48;  his  resemblance  to 
Elias,  48;  his  birth  and  circumcision, 
57;  his  preaching  and  baptism,  83; 
answers  to  the  multitude,  86 — 89;  an- 
nounces the  Messiah,  8g ;  imprisoned 
by  Herod  Antipas,  91 ;  sends  to  Jesus 
from  prison,  148 ;  account  of,  by  Jesus, 

'SI 

Joseph  of  Arimathsea,  begs  the  body  of 
Jesus,  355  ;  his  new  tomb,  356 

Joseph,  the  husband  of  the  Blessed  Vir- 
gin, his  lineage,  51  ;  journeys  to  Beth- 
lehem, 65 

Judas  Iscariot,  call  of,  133  ;  conspires 
with  the  chief  priests,  323  ;  his  betrayal 
of  our  Lord,  332 

jud'^e,  parable  of  the  unjust,  279 

judgment  of  others,  141 


Keble  quoted,  69,  203 

kingdom  of  God,  coming  of,  276;  to  be 

received  as  a  little  child,  285 
knowledge  of  salvation,  60 


labourers  in   the   vineyard,   parable   of, 

303.  3°4 

lawyers  rebuked  by  our  Lord,  220;  dif- 
ference between  Pharisees  and,  220 

Lazarus,  parable  of  Dives  and,  268 

lepers,  healing  of  the  ten,  275;  the 
thankless  nine,  275 

leprosy,  some  account  of,  115 

Levi,  identity  of,  with  St  Matthew,  120 

liberality,  principle  of,  140 

light,  the  inward,  216 

livelihood,  means  of,  possessed  by  Jesus 
and  the  twelve,  161 

Lord's  prayer,  the,  209;  explanation  of, 

210,    211 

Lot's  wife,  held  up  as  a  warning,  278 

love,  laws  of,  139 

Lovelace  quoted,  251 

Luke,  St,  mention  of  his  name  in  Scrip- 
ture, 18  ;  nationality,  19  ;  early  connec- 
tion with  St  Paul,  19;  his  stay  at 
Philippi,  19;  journey  to  Rome  with 
St  Paul,  20  I  traditions  as  to  his  death, 
20;  his  profession,  21 

Luke's,  St,  gospel;  time  of  composition,  9; 
distinctiie  peculiarities  of,  16;  a  void 
in  continuity  of,  184; 
(i)  authenticity  of,  22,  23 ; 


INDEX. 


(ii)  characteristics  of,  23 — 30;  hymno- 
logy,  23  —  24  ;  thanksgiving,  24  ; 
prayer,  24 ;  good  tidings,  25  ;  of  in- 
fancy, 26;  to  the  world,  26;  of 
womanhood,  26 ;  of  the  poor  and 
despised,  27;  of  the  outcast,  28;  of 
tolerance,  28 ;  miracles  peculiar  to, 
29;  parables  pecuUar  to,  29; 

(iii)  analysis  of,  30 — 36  ; 

(iv)  illustrations     derived     from     the 
Talmud,  381 — 385 
Lysanias,  tetrarch  of  Abilene,    81 ;    not 

mentioned  in  history,  8i 

Magnificat,  the,  compared  with  Judith's 
Song  and  that  of  Hannah,  55 

Malchus,  the  ear  of,  cut  off  by  St  Peter, 
333  ;  healed  by  our  Lord,  333 

malefactors,  the  two,  347,  351 

Maker,  fortress  of,  91 

Mark's,  St,  Gospel,  resemblance  with 
that  of  St  Luke,  8,  9;  time  of  compo- 
sition, 9;  written  on  the  testimony  of 
St  Peter,  10;  distinctive  peculiarities 
of,  15,  16 

marriage,  question  of  the  Sadducees  con- 
cerning, 30S 

Martha,  entertains  our  Lord,  207 ;  is 
reproved  by  Him,  20S 

Mary  Magdalene,  identity  of,  with  the 
woman  at  Simon's  house,  155,  i6i ; 
anoints  our  Lord's  feet,  156;  her  sins 
are  forgiven,  159;  ministers  to  our 
Lord,  i5i ;  at  sepulchre,  358 

Mary,  mother  of  James,  at  sepulchre, 
358 

Mary,  sister  of  Lazarus,  chooses  the 
better  part,  208 

Mary,  St,  the  Virgin,  her  early  residence 
at  Nazareth,  51  :  visited  by  Gabriel, 
ji;  her  ready  faith,  52;  visits  Eliza- 
beth, 53,  54;  returns  to  her  home,  57; 
purification  of,  71 

Matthew,  St,  call  of,  identity  with  Levi, 
120;  feast  at  the  house  iif,  121 

Matthew's,  St,  Gospel,  time  of  compo- 
sition,  9;    distinctive   peculiarities  of, 

14.  15 

mercy,  laws  of,  141 

Milton,  quoted  on  "  Angels  of  the 
Presence,"  49;  the  Nativity,  68;  the 
Circumcision,  70;  the  Holy  Spirit,  92, 
95:  evil  spirits,  173;  Moloch  worship, 
223 

miracles,  peculiar  to  St  Luke,  29 :  words 
used  to  express,  in  the  Gospels,  108 

mission  of  Apostles,  179;  object  of,  181 

mustard-seed,  parable  of,  238 

Naaman  the  Syrian,  105 

Nain,    raising   of  widow's   son   of,    147 ; 

situation  of,  147 
nature  of  Christ,  declaration  of  by  the 

Church,  75 


389 

Nazareth,  fitness  for  early  abode  of  J  esus, 
78;  its  situation  and  beauty,  79;  syna' 
gogue  of,  1 02 

Nazarite,  St  John  the  Baptist  a,  47 

Nunc  Dimittis,  71 

Olives,  Mount  of,  our  Lord's  abode  in, 

321 
oral    law,    instances    of,    set   aside    by 

Christ,  128 

parables  peculiar  to  St  Luke,  29:  of  the 
new  and  the  old,  124  :  houses  built  on 
good  and  bad  foundations,  143:  ilie 
children  in  the  market-place,  152;  the 
creditor  and  two  debtors,  157;  the 
sower,  162:  the  candle,  167:  the  good 
Samaritan,  204;  the  rich  fool,  226;  ser- 
vants waiting  for  their  lord.  229 : 
faithful  steward,  230;  the  barren  fig- 
tree.  235;  the  grain  of  mustard-seed 
and  leaven,  238 ;  the  wedding  supper, 
246;  the  great  supper,  249:  the  lost 
sheep,  254;  the  piece  of  silver,  255; 
the  prodigal  son,  256;  the  unjust  stew- 
ard, 263;  Dives  and  Lazarus,  268;  the 
ploughing  slave,  273  ;  the  unjust  judge, 
279 ;  the  Pharisee  and  the  publican, 282 ; 
the  pounds,  294;  the  labourers  in  the 
vineyard,  303,  304;  the  fig-tree,  319 

paralytic,  healing  of,  118 

Passover,  the  first  attended  by  our  Lord, 
76 ;  our  Lord's  preparation  for,  324 ; 
customs  of,  as  practised  by  the  Jews, 
325,  326:  "was  the  last  supper  an 
actual?"  377 — 379 

people,  eagerness  of,  to  hear  Jesus,  300 

Peter,  St,  first  mention  of  by  St  I.uke, 
109:  his  wife's  mother  is  healed,  109; 
callof,  114  :  presenceatraisingofJ;iirus' 
daughter,  178;  his  confession,  185;  at 
the  Transfiguration,  i83;  sent  to  pre- 
pare the  passover,  324 ;  his  denials  fore- 
told, 329:  his  fall,  335;  at  sepulchre, 

Pharisees,  righteousness  of,  122;  reject 
the  counsel  of  God,  1S2;  blasphemy  of, 
213 ;  our  Lord  rebukes  hypocrisy  of, 
218,  219;  modern  existence  of,  219; 
the  leaven  of,  222;  rebukes  to  the  covet- 
ous, 267  ;  Excursus  on,  381 

Philippi,  St  Luke's  stay  at,  19 

Pilate,  predecessors  and  successors  of,  89; 
some  account  of,  339:  our  Lord's  first 
appearance  before,  340;  His  second 
appearance  before,  343;  the  cfr.)rts  of, 
to  secure  our  Lord's  acquittal,  345; 
gives  the  irrevocable  sentence,  345 

pinnacle  of  temple,  99 

prayer  in  temple,  46;  our  Lord's,  lo;; 
persistence  in,  2n;  duty  of  urgent, 
279;  of  humble,  284:  of  publican,  284; 
posture  of  the  Jews  at,  JS4;  of  our 
Lord  for  His  nuirderers,  348 


390 


INDEX. 


prayers  of  our  Lord  mentioned  by  St 
Luke,  92 

preaching  of  John  the  Baptist,  86,  87 

presentation  in  temple,  71 

priests,  courses  of,  44,  45 ;  their  sudden 
question,  301 

prison  of  John  the  Baptist,  91 

privileges,  peril  of,  abused,  215 

procurator,  title  of  Pilate.  80 

prodigal  son,  parable  of,  256 ;  applica- 
tions of,    256;  explanations  of,    250 — 

prophecy  of  John  the  Baptist,  84,  85 : 
general  meaning  of,  84 

pounds,  parable  of  the,  294;  its  lesson, 
294 

poverty  of  Christ,  197 

publicans,  their  question  to  John  the  Bap- 
tist, 88;  the  office  of,  88,  292;  dislike 
of  by  Jews,  88 

punishment,  proportional  to  sin,  231 

purification,  offerings  at,  71 

Quarantania,  Mount,  95 

reed,  likeness  of  John  the  Baptist  to  a, 

reign  of  Christ  for  ever,  52 
relation  of  apostles  to  our  Lord,  134 
rents,  mode  of  payment  of,  in  the  East, 

264 
resurrection  of  the  widow's  son  at  Nain, 
147;  of  Jairus'  daughter,    179;  Christ 
foretells  his,  186,  and  answers  the  Sad- 
ducees  respecting,    309,    310;    of  our 
Lord,  3s8;  appearances  of   our  Lord 
after,  360,  363 
riches,  danger  of,  287 
righteousness  of  Pharisees,  122 
ruler,  question  of  the  young,  285 

sabbath,  plucking  of  corn  on,  127;  mira- 
cles wrought  on,  129,  236,  244;  argu- 
ment against  Jewish  formalism  of,  237, 
245  ;  Jewish  entertainments  on,  244 

Sadducees,  attempt  to  ensnare  our  Lord, 
308,  309  ;   Excnrsus  on,  380 

salt,  the  savourless,  253 

Samaritan,  Parable  of  Good,  204 ;  heal- 
ing of  the,  leper,  275 

Samaritans,  reject  Christ,  195;  hatred 
between  Jews  and,  195 

Sanhedrin,  338 ;  our  Lord  before  the, 
338 

Sarepta,  105 

Satan  tempts  our  Lord,  94 — 100  ;  com- 
pared to  a  strong  man,  214;  entered 
into  Judas,  322 

scribes,  teaching  of,  compared  with 
Christ's,  107;  some  account  of,  121 

sepulchre,  visit  of  women  to,  357  ;  stone 
of,  357 

sermon   on  the   Mount,  differences   be- 


tween St  Matthew  and  St  Luke's  re- 
cord of,  136 

seventy.  Mission  of  the,  198 ;  instruc- 
tions of  our  Lord  to,  199 

Shakespeare  quoted,  on  temptation,  96; 
on  the  devil's  use  of  Scripture,  09;  on 
mercy,  141 ;  on  ingratitude,  276 

Sheba,  the  queen  of,  215 

Shechinah,  67,  igo 

sheep,  parable  of  the  lost,  254 

signs  of  the  times,  232  ;  duty  resultant 
from,  232:  of  the  End,  314,  319 

silence  of  healed  leper  enjoined,  reasons 
for,  116 

Siloam,  Pool  of,  235;  tower  of,  235 

Simeon,  71 ;  his  song,  72  ;  called  Theo- 
dokos,  72  ;  prophesies  of  Jesus,  73 

Simon  of  Cyrene,  bears  the  cross,  346 

Simon  Peter,  see  Peter 

Simon  the  Pharisee  entertains  our  Lord, 

.154 

Simon  Zelotes,  133 

slave,  parable  of  the  ploughing,  273 

soldiers,  their  question  to  John  the  Bap- 
tist, 88;  special  temptations  of,  89; 
mockery  of,  at  crucifixion,  349 

Son  of  God,  53 

Son  of  Man,  meaning  and  use  of  the 
title,  119,  137;  the  coming  of,  277,  278, 
319 

sower,  parable  of  the,  162 ;  its  explana- 
tion, 165 

sparrows,  224 

steward,  parable  of  the  unjust,  263;  main 
lesson  of,  264,  265 

superscription,  on  the  Cross,  350 

supper,  the  last,  celebration  of,  325 ; 
our  Lord's  preparations  for,  324;  "was 
the,  an  actual  Passover?"  377 — 379 

Susanna,  ministers  to  our  Lord,  161 

synagogue,  officers  of,  102;  Christ  reads 
in,  102;  ruler  of,  176 

synoptic  Gospels,  8;  difference  between 
them  and  that  of  St  John,  10,  11; 
theory  of  resemblances  to  each  other, 
II,  12 

swine,  devils  enter  into,  173 

table,  Jews'  method  of  sitting  at,  155 
Talmud,  illustrations  of  St  Luke  derived' 

from,  381 — 385 
Tel  Hum,  ruins  of  synagogue  at,  145 
temple,  presentation  of  Jesus  in  the,  71; 

final  cleansing  of  the,  by  Jesus,  300; 

Christ  prophesies  destruction  of,  314; 

stones  and  gifts  of,  314 ;  veil  of,  rent 

in  twain,  353 
temptation,  the,  of  Christ,  95  ;  supposed 

scene  of,  95 ;  how  to  be  viewed,  96 ; 

order  of,  in  St  Matthew,  98 
tetrarch,    use   of    term   in   New  Testa- 
ment, 80 
Theophilus,    dedication    of    St    Luke's 

works  to,  21,  43 


INDEX. 


39' 


Tiberius  Caesar,  80,   307 
tolerance,  lesson  of,  by  our  Saviour,  193 
tombs,  demoniac  among  the,  171 
Trachonitis,  a  country  of  robbers,  81  ;  its 

position,  81 
transfiguration,  the,  1S8;  probable  scene 

of,  18S  ;  circumstances  attending,  189; 

time  of,  190 
treasure-chests  in  the  temple,  313 
trials  of  our  Lord,  the  three,  by  the  Jews, 

334 
tribute  to  Caesar,  Christ  questioned  re- 
specting, 307  ;   Christ  falsely  accused 
of  forbidding,  340 

uncial  manuscripts,  table  of,  37 

veil  of  temple  rent  in  twain  at  the  Cru- 
cifixion, 353 
vision  of  Ezekiel,  12 


vvfashing,  custom  of,  among  Jews,  217 


widow,  the  importunate,  280 ;  the  offer- 
ing of  the,  313 

wine,  new,  into  fresh  bottles,  124,  375,  376 

woes,  138 

woman  with  issue  of  blood  healed  by  our 
Lord,  178 ;  with  spirit  of  infirmity 
healed  by  our  Lord,  236 

women,  minister  to  our  Lord,  160 ;  follow 
our  Lord  to  Calvarj',  346;  at  Cruci- 
fixion, 354  ;  go  to  the  sepulchre,  357 

words  of  our  Lord,  the  first  recorded, 
368,  369 

Wordsworth  (Bp)  on  comparison  of  the 
Gospels  to  the  Four  Cherubim  of 
Ezekiel's  vision,  13 

world,  gain  of,  and  loss  of  soul,  187  ;  end 
of,  foretold,  315 

Zacchaeus,  the  tax-gatherer,  292 

Zacharias,  the  blood  of,  220 

Zacharias,  vision  of,  46  ;  is  struck  dumb, 

50  ;  recovers  his  speech,  57 
zealots,  some  account  of,  133 
Zebedee,  social  position  of,  115 


INDEX  II. 


WORDS  AND  PHRASES  EXPLAINED. 


Abh6th,  127 

Abila,  81 

acceptable  year,  103 

accused,  263 

after  three  days,  77 

alabaster,  155 

alms,  218 

altar  of  incense,  47 

apostles,  131 

ass  or  an  ox,  245 

assaria,  224 

attentive  to  hear  him,  300 

avenge,  280 

babes,  202 

Barabbas,  344 

baskets,  184 

beam,  142 

bed,  167 

Beelzebub,  213 

Bethany,  297 

Bethlehem,  65 

Bethphage,  297 

Bethsaida,  109 

best  robe,  260 

blasphemy,  119 

border  of  His  garment,  177 

bosom,  141 

Calvary,  348 

came  upon  them,  67 

camel,  288 

captains,  323 

centurion,  144 


chaff,  90 

chance,  204 

chief  rooms,  246 

Christ,  68 

closets,  222 

commandments,  45 

compel,  250 

couch,  118 

covered,  222 

cross,  346 

decree,  62 

denarius,  157,  206 

depart  from  me,  113 

divider,  225 

drachma,  255 

eagles  gathered  together,  279 

Elizabeth,  45 

En  Gannim,  195 

epiousion,  376,  377 

everlasting  habitations,  265 

faint,  279 

fan,  90 

farthing,  224 

fastings,  74 

five  hundred  pence,  157 

Gehenna,  223 

generation  of  vipers,  84 

Genne'iareth,  m 

glory  of  the  Lord,  67 

goodman,  230 

goodwill  toward  men,  (g 

gospel,  7 


392 


INDEX. 


guest,  to  be,  293 

guest-chamber,  324 

Hades,  269 

hate,  251 

highly  favoured,  51 

hold  thy  peace,  108 

housetop,  118,  278 

husks,  258 

hypocrites,  219 

importunitj',  211 

increased,  79 

in  order,  43 

inn,  66 

instantly,  144 

Iscariot,  133 

Jericho,  291 

Jesus,  52 

John,  47 

key  of  knowledge,  221 

kiss,  15S 

latchet,  89 

Lazarus,  269 

legion,  172 

leprosy, 115 

lilies,  228 

linen,  355 

loins  girded,  229 

Lord,  68,  145 

Lord's  Christ,  72,  186 

mammon  of  unrighteousness,  265 

man's  life,  225 

manger,  66 

master,  112 

Matthew,  120 

measures,  264  < 

measures  of  wheat,  264 

meat,  86 

millstone,  272 

mite,  233,  313 

most  excellent,  43 

mote,  142 

mystery,  164 

Nazareth,  51,  65 

needle's  eye.  288 

nets,  112 

Nunc  Dimittis,  72 

ordinances,  45 

parable,  163 

paradise,  352 

passover,  322 

perfected,  242 

Phanuel,  74 

phylacteries,  204 


pondered,  70 
proselyte,  144 
proseuchae,  131 
publicans,  88 
purification,  70 
purple  and  fine  linen,  268 
rejoiced,  202 
riotous  living,  257 
Salem,  299 
Satan,  95 
Saviour,  67 
scribe,  121 
scrip,  1 80 
servant,  144,  146 
shewbread,  127 
sixth  hour,  352 
stature,  79 
stone,  96 
stood,  293 
stuff,  278 

superscription,  350 
surfeiting,  320 
Susanna,  161 
swaddling-clothes,  66 
sword,  73 
sycamine  tree,  27^ 
sycomore  tree,  292 
synagogue,  102,  225 
synoptists,  8 
tabernacle,  189 
ten  pieces  of  silver,  255 
ten  pounds,  294 
tetrarch,  80 
Theodokos,  72 
Tlieophilus,  43 
thieves,  204 
tiling,  118 
tittle,  267 
Tolddth,  127 
Tophet,  224 
Trachonitis,  81 
tribute  money,  307 
twelve  years  old,  76 
two  coats,  86,  140,  1S8 
unloose,  90 
uppermost  seats,  219 
weary  me,  280 
wept  over  it,  299 
wisely,  264 
write  fifty,  264 
writing  table,  58 
Zacchaeus,  292 
Zacharias,  44 


CAMBRIDGE:    PRINTED   BY   C.    J.    CLAY,    M.A.    AND   SONS,    AT   THE    UNIVERSITY    PBESS. 


THE    CAMBRIDGE     BIBLE    FOR 

SCHOOLS    AND    COLLEGES. 

General  Editor,  The  Very  Rev.  J.  J.  S.  Perowne, 
Dean  of  Peterborough. 

"/i"  is  difficult  to  cot?imend too  highly  this  excellent  series." — Guardian. 

' '  The  modesty  of  the  general  title  of  this  series  has,  we  believe,  led 
many  to  misundei'stand  its  character  and  underrate  its  value.  The  books 
are  well  suited  for  study  in  the  tipper  for7ns  of  our  best  schools,  but  not 
the  less  are  they  adapted  to  the  wants  of  all  Bible  students  who  are  not 
specialists.  We  doubt,  indeed,  whether  any  of  the  numerous  popular 
commentaries  recently  issued  in  this  country  will  be  found  more  service- 
able for  general  use." — Academy. 

"  One  of  the  most  popular  and  useful  literary  ettterprises  of  the 
nineteenth  century." — Baptist  Magazine. 

"  Of  great  value.  The  whole  series  of  comments  for  schools  is  highly 
esteemed  by  students  capable  of  forming  a  judgment.  The  books  are 
scholarly  without  being  pretentious :  and  information  is  so  given  as  to  be 
easily  understood.'" — Sword  and  Trowel. 

"  The  value  of  the  work  as  an  aid  to  Biblical  study,  not  merely  in 
schools  but  among  people  of  all  classes  ivho  are  desirous  to  have  intellii^ent 
knowledge  of  the  Scriptures,  cannot  easily  be  over-estimated." — The 
Scotsman. 


The  Book  of  Judges.  J.  J.  Lias,  M.A.  "  His  introduction  is  clear 
and  concise,  full  of  the  information  which  young  students  require,  and 
indicating  the  lines  on  which  the  various  problems  suggested  by  the 
Book  of  Judges  may  be  solved." — Baptist  Magazine. 

1  Samuel,  by  A.  F.  Kirkpatrick.  "Remembering  the  interest 
with  which  we  read  ih&  Books  of  the  Kingdom  when  they  were  appointed 
as  a  subject  for  school  work  in  our  boyhood,  we  have  looked  with  some 
eagerness  into  Mr  Kirkpatrick's  volume,  which  contains  the  first  instal- 
ment of  them.  We  are  struck  with  the  great  improvement  in  character, 
and  variety  in  the  materials,  with  which  schools  are  now  supplied.  A 
clear  map  inserted  in  each  volume,  notes  suiting  the  convenience  of  the 
scholar  and  the  difficulty  of  the  passage,  and  not  merely  dictated  by  the 
fancy  of  the  commentator,  were  luxuries  which  a  quarter  of  a  century 
ago  the  Biblical  student  could  not  h\xy."— Church  Quarterly  Review. 

"  To  the  valuable  series  of  Scriptural  expositions  and  elementary 
commentaries  which  is  being  issued  at  the  Cambridge  University  Press, 
under  the  title  'The  Cambridge  I'-ible  for  Schools,'  has  been  added 
The  First  Book  of  Samuel  by  the  Rev.  A.  F.  Kirkpairick.  Like 
other  volumes  of  the  series,  it  contains  a  carefully  written  historical  and 
critical  introduction,  while  the  text  is  prolusely  illustrated  and  explained 
by  notes." — "J'he  Scotsman. 

lo.ooo 

23/10/90 


c      CAMBRIDGE  BIBLE  FOR  SCHOOLS  &  COLLEGES. 

II.  Samuel.  A.  F.  Kirkpatrick,  M.A.  "  Small  as  this  work  is 
in  mere  dimensions,  it  is  every  way  the  best  on  its  subject  and  for  its 
purpose  that  we  know  of.  The  opening  sections  at  once  prove  the 
thorough  competence  of  the  writer  for  dealing  with  questions  of  criti- 
cism in  an  earnest,  faithful  and  devout  spirit ;  and  the  appendices  discuss 
a  few  special  difficulties  with  a  full  knowledge  of  the  data,  and  a  judicial 
reserve,  which  contrast  most  favourably  with  the  superficial  dogmatism 
which  has  too  often  made  the  exegesis  of  the  Old  Testament  a  field  for 
the  play  of  unlimited  paradox  and  the  ostentation  of  personal  infalli- 
bility. The  notes  are  always  clear  and  suggestive;  never  trifling  or 
irrelevant ;  and  they  everywhere  demonstrate  the  great  difference  in 
value  between  the  work  of  a  commentator  who  is  also  a  Hebraist,  and 
that  of  one  who  has  to  depend  for  his  Hebrew  upon  secondhand 
sources." — Academy. 

"The  Rev.  A.  F.  Kirkpatrick  has  now  completed  his  commentary 
on  the  two  books  of  Samuel.  This  second  volume,  like  the  first,  is 
furnished  with  a  scholarly  and  carefully  prepared  critical  and  historical 
introduction,  and  the  notes  supply  everything  necessary  to  enable  the 
merely  English  scholar — so  far  as  is  possible  for  one  ignorant  of  the 
original  language — to  gather  up  the  precise  meaning  of  the  text.  Even 
Hebrew  scholars  may  consult  this  small  volume  with  profit." — Scotsman. 

I.  Kings  and  Ephesians.  "  With  great  heartiness  we  commend 
these  most  valuable  little  commentaries.  We  had  rather  purchase 
these  than  nine  out  of  ten  of  the  big  blown  up  expositions.  Quality  is 
far  better  than  quantity,  and  we  have  it  here." — Sword  and  Troiuel. 

I.  Kings.  "  This  is  really  admirably  well  done,  and  from  first  to 
last  there  is  nothing  but  commendation  to  give  to  such  honest  work." — 
Bookseller. 

II.  Kings.  "The  Introduction  is  scholarly  and  wholly  admirable, 
while  the  notes  must  be  of  incalculable  value  to  students." — Glasgow 
Herald. 

"It  is  equipped  with  a  valuable  introduction  and  commentary,  and 
makes  an  admirable  text  book  for  Bible-classes." — Scolsmati. 

"It  would  be  difficult  to  find  a  commentary  better  suited  for  general 
use. ' ' — Academy. 

The  Book  of  Job.  "  Able  and  scholarly  as  the  Introduction  is,  it  is 
far  surpassed  by  the  detailed  exegesis  of  the  book.  In  this  Dr  Davidson's 
strength  is  at  its  greatest.  His  linguistic  knowledge,  his  artistic  habit, 
his  scientific  insight,  and  his  literaiy  power  have  full  scope  when  he 
comes  to  exegesis.  ...The  book  is  worthy  of  the  reputation  of  Dr  Davidson ; 
it  represents  the  results  of  many  years  of  labour,  and  it  will  greatly  help 
to  the  right  understanding  of  one  of  the  greatest  works  in  the  literature 
of  the  world." — The  Spectator. 

"  In  the  course  of  a  long  introduction,  Dr  Davidson  has  presented 
us  with  a  very  able  and  very  interesting  criticism  of  this  wonderful 
book.  Its  contents,  the  nature  of  its  composition,  its  idea  and  purpose, 
its  integrity,  and  its  age  are  all  exhaustively  treated  of.. ..We  have  not 
space  to  examine  fully  the  text  and  notes  before  us,  but  we  can,  and  do 
heartily,  recommend  the  book,  not  only  for  the  upper  forms  in  schools, 
but  to  Bible  students  and  teachers  generally.  As  we  wrote  of  a  previous 
volume  in  the  same  series,  this  one  leaves  nothinfj  to  be  desired.     The 


OPINIONS  OF  THE  TRESS. 


notes  are  full  and  suggestive,  without  being  too  long,  and,  in  itself,  the 
introduction  forms  a  valuable  addition  to  modern  Bible  literature." — The 
Educational  Thnes. 

"Already  we  have  frequently  called  attention  to  this  exceedingly 
valuable  work  as  its  volumes  have  successively  appeared.  But  we  have 
never  done  so  with  greater  pleasure,  very  seldom  with  so  gi'eat  pleasure, 
as  we  now  refer  to  the  last  published  volume,  that  on  the  Book  of  Job, 
by  Dr  Davidson,  of  Edinburgh.. ..We  cordially  commend  the  volume  to 
all  our  readers.  The  least  instructed  will  understand  and  enjoy  it ; 
and  mature  scholars  will  learn  from  it." — Methodist  Recorder. 

Job — Hosea.  "  It  is  difficult  to  commend  too  highly  this  excellent 
series,  the  volumes  of  which  are  now  becoming  numerous.  The  two 
books  before  us,  small  as  they  are  in  size,  comprise  almost  everything 
that  the  young  student  can  reasonably  expect  to  find  in  the  way  of  helps 
towards  such  general  knowledge  of  their  subjects  as  may  be  gained 
without  an  attempt  to  grapple  with  the  Hebrew ;  and  even  the  learned 
scholar  can  hardly  read  without  interest  and  benefit  the  very  able  intro- 
ductory matter  which  both  these  commentators  have  prefixed  to  their 
volumes.  It  is  not  too  much  to  say  that  these  works  have  brought 
within  the  reach  of  the  ordinary  reader  resources  which  were  until 
lately  quite  unknown  for  understanding  some  of  the  most  difficult  and 
obscure  portions  of  Old  Testament  literature." — Guardian. 

Ecclesiastes ;  or,  the  Preacher. — "Of  the  Notes,  it  is  sufficient  to 
say  that  they  are  in  every  respect  worthy  of  Dr  Plumptre's  high  repu- 
tation as  a  scholar  and  a  critic,  being  at  once  learned,  sensible,  and 
practical.  ...  An  appendix,  in  M'hich  it  is  clearly  proved  that  the 
author  of  Ecclesiastes  anticipated  Shakspeare  and  Tennyson  in  some 
of  their  finest  thoughts  and  reflections,  will  be  read  with  interest  by 
students  both  of  Hebrew  and  of  English  literature.  Commentaries  are 
seldom  attractive  reading.  This  little  volume  is  a  notable  exception." — 
The  Scotsman. 

"In  short,  this  little  book  is  of  far  greater  value  than  most  of  the 
larger  and  more  elaborate  commentaries  on  this  Scripture.  Indispens- 
able to  the  scholar,  it  will  render  real  and  large  help  to  all  who  have  to 
expound  the  dramatic  utterances  of  The  Preacher  whether  in  the  Church 
or  in  the  School." — The  Expositor. 

"The  '■ideal  biography'  of  the  author  is  one  of  the  most  exquisite 
and  fascinating  pieces  of  writing  we  have  met  with,  and,  granting  its 
starting-point,  throws  wonderful  light  on  many  problems  connected  with 
the  book.  The  notes  illustrating  the  text  are  full  of  delicate  criticism, 
fine  glowing  insight,  and  apt  historical  allusion.  An  abler  volume 
than  Professor  Plumptre's  we  could  not  desire." — Baptist  Magazine. 

Jeremiah,  by  A.  W.  Streane.  "The  arrangement  of  the  book  is 
well  treated  on  pp.  xxx.,  396,  and  the  question  of  Baruch's  relations 
with  its  composition  on  pp.  xxvii.,  xxxiv. ,  317.  The  illustrations  from 
English  literature,  history,  monuments,  works  on  botany,  topography, 
etc.,  are  good  and  plentiful,  as  indeed  they  are  in  other  volumes  of  this 
series." — Chnrch  Quarterly  Rcvierv,  April,  1881. 

"Mr  Streane's  Jeremiah  consists  of  a  series  of  admirable  and  well- 
nigh  exhaustive  notes  on  the  text,  with  introduction  and  appendices, 
drawing  the  life,  times,  and  character  of  the  prophet,  the  style,  contents, 


4      CAMBRIDGE   BIBLE   FOR   SCHOOLS   &   COLLEGES. 

and  arrangement  of  his  prophecies,  the  traditions  relating  to  Jeremiah, 
meant  as  a  type  of  Christ  (a  most  remarkable  chapter),  and  other 
prophecies  relating  to  Jeremiah." — The  £nglish  Churchman  and  Clerical 
yoiirnal. 

Obadiah  and  Jonah.  "  This  number  of  the  admirable  series  of 
Scriptural  expositions  issued  by  the  Syndics  of  the  Cambridge  Uni- 
versity Press  is  well  up  to  the  mark.  The  numerous  notes  are 
excellent.  No  difficulty  is  shirked,  and  much  light  is  thrown  on  the 
contents  both  of  Obadiah  and  Jonah.  Scholars  and  students  of  to-day 
are  to  be  congratulated  on  having  so  large  an  amount  of  information  on 
Biblical  subjects,  so  clearly  and  ably  put  together,  placed  within  their 
reach  in  such  small  bulk.  To  all  Biblical  students  the  series  will  be 
acceptable,  and  for  the  use  of  Sabbath-school  teachers  will  prove 
invaluable." — North  British  Daily  Mail. 

"  It  is  a  very  useful  and  sensible  exposition  of  these  two  Minor 
Prophets,  and  deals  very  thorouglily  and  honestly  with  the  immense 
difficulties  of  the  later-named  of  the  two,  from  the  orthodox  point  of 
view." — Expositor. 

"  Haggai  and  Zechariali.  This  interesting  little  volume  is  of  great 
value.  It  is  one  of  the  best  books  in  that  well-known  series  of 
scholarly  and  popular  commentaries,  'the  Cambridge  Bible  for  Schools 
and  Colleges '  of  which  Dean  Perowne  is  the  General  Editor.  In  the 
expositions  of  Archdeacon  Perowne  we  are  always  sure  to  notice 
learning,  ability,  judgment  and  reverence  ....  The  notes  are  terse 
and  pointed,  but  full  and  reliable." — Chicrchman. 

"  The  Gospel  according  to  St  Matthew,  by  the  Rev.  A.  Carr.  The 
introduction  is  able,  scholarly,  and  eminently  practical,  as  it  bears 
on  the  authorship  and  contents  of  the  Gospel,  and  the  original  form 
in  which  it  is  supposed  to  have  been  written.  It  is  well  illustrated  by 
two  excellent  maps  of  the  Holy  Land  and  of  the  Sea  of  Galilee." — 
English  Church?nan. 

"St  Matthew,  edited  by  A.  Carr,  M.A.  The  Book  of  Joshua, 
edited  by  G.  F.  Maclear,  D.D.  The  General  Epistle  of  St  James, 
edited  by  E.  H.  Plumptre,  D.D.  The  introductions  and  notes  are 
scholarly,  and  generally  such  as  young  readers  need  and  can  appre- 
ciate. The  maps  in  both  Joshua  and  Matthew  are  very  good,  and  all 
matters  of  editing  are  faultless.  Professor  Plumptre's  notes  on  'The 
Epistle  of  St  James'  are  models  of  terse,  exact,  and  elegant  renderings 
of  the  original,  which  is  too  often  obscured  in  the  authorised  version." — 
Nonconfortnist. 

"St  Mark,  with  Notes  by  the  Rev.  G.  F.  Maclear,  D.D.  Into 
this  small  volume  Dr  Maclear,  besides  a  clear  and  able  Introduc- 
tion to  the  Gospel,  and  the  text  of  St  Mark,  has  compressed  many 
hundreds  of  valuable  and  helpful  notes.  In  short,  he  has  given  us 
a  capital  manual  of  the  kind  required— containing  all  that  is  needed  to 
illustrate  the  text,  i.  e.  all  that  can  be  drawn  from  the  history,  geography, 
customs,  and  manners  of  the  time.  But  as  a  handbook,  giving  in  a 
clear  and  succinct  form  the  information  which  a  lad  requires  in  order 

to  stand  an  examination  in  the  Gospel,  it  is  admirable I  can  very 

heartily  commend  it,  not  only  to  the  senior  boys  and  girls  in  our  High 
Schools,  but  also  to  Sunday-school  teachers,  who  may  get  from  it  the 
very  kind  of  knowledge  they  often  find  it  hardest  to  get. " — Expositor, 


OPINIONS   OF  THE  PRESS.  5 


"With  the  help  of  a  book  like  this,  an  intelligent  teacher  may  make 
'Divinity'  as  interesting  a  lesson  as  any  in  the  school  course.  The 
notes  are  of  a  kind  that  will  be,  for  the  most  part,  intelligible  to  boys 
of  the  lower  forms  of  our  public  schools;  but  they  may  be  read  with 
greater  profit  by  the  fifth  and  sixth,  in  conjunction  with  the  original 
text." — The  Academy. 

"St  Luke.  Canon  Farrar  has  supplied  students  of  the  Gospel 
with  an  admirable  manual  in  this  volume.  It  has  all  that  copious 
variety  of  illustration,  ingenuity  of  suggestion,  and  general  soundness  of 
interpretation  which  readers  are  accustomed  to  expect  from  the  learned 
and  eloquent  editor.  Any  one  who  has  been  accustomed  to  associate 
the  idea  of  'dryness'  with  a  commentary,  should  go  to  Canon  Farrar's 
St  Luke  for  a  more  correct  impression.  He  will  find  that  a  commen- 
tary may  be  made  interesting  in  the  highest  degree,  and  that  without 
losing  anything  of  its  solid  value.  .  .  .  But,  so  to  speak,  it  is  too  good 
for  some  of  the  readers  for  whom  it  is  intended." — The  Spectator, 

"Canon  Farrar's  contribution  to  The  Cambridge  School  Bible 
is  one  of  the  most  valuable  yet  made.  His  annotations  on  The  Gospel 
according'  to  St  Luke,  while  they  display  a  scholarship  at  least  as  sound, 
and  an  erudition  at  least  as  wide  and  varied  as  those  of  the  editors  of 
St  Matthew  and  St  Mark,  are  rendered  telling  and  attractive  by  a 
more  lively  imagination,  a  keener  intellectual  and  spiritual  insight,  a 
more  incisive  and  picturesque  style.  His  St  Luke  is  worthy  to  be  ranked 
with  Professor  Plumptre's  St  James,  than  which  no  higher  commend- 
ation can  well  be  given." — The  Expositor, 

"St  Luke.  Edited  by  Canon  Farrar,  D.D.  We  have  received  with 
pleasure  this  edition  of  the  Gospel  by  St  Luke,  by  Canon  Farrar.  It  is 
another  instalment  of  the  best  school  commentary  of  the  Bible  we  pos- 
sess. Of  the  expository  part  of  the  work  we  cannot  speak  too  highly. 
It  is  admirable  in  every  way,  and  contains  just  the  sort  of  informa- 
tion needed  for  Students  of  the  English  text  unable  to  make  use  of  the 
original  Greek  for  themselves." — The  N^onconformist  and  Independent. 

"As  a  handbook  to  the  third  gospel,  this  small  work  is  invaluable. 
The  author  has  compressed  into  little  space  a  vast  mass  of  scholarly  in- 
formation. .  .  The  notes  are  pithy,  vigorous,  and  suggestive,  abounding 
in  pertinent  illustrations  from  general  literature,  and  aiding  the  youngest 
reader  to  an  intelligent  appreciation  of  the  text.  A  finer  contribution  to 
♦The  Cambridge  Bible  for  Schools'  has  not  yet  been  mdnle."— Baptist 


Magazine. 


"We  were  quite  prepared  to  find  in  Canon  Farrar's  St  Luke  a 
masterpiece  of  Biblical  criticism  and  comment,  and  we  are  not  dis- 
appointed by  our  examination  of  the  volume  before  us.  It  reflects  very 
faithfully  the  learning  and  critical  insight  of  the  Canon's  greatest  works, 
his  'Life  of  Christ'  and  his  'Life  of  St  Paul',  but  dilters  widely  from 
both  in  the  terseness  and  condensation  of  its  style.  What  Canon  harrar 
has  evidently  aimed  at  is  to  place  before  students  as  much  mformation 
as  possible  within  the  limits  of  the  smallest  possible  space,  and 
in  this  airn  he  has  hit  the  mark  to  perfection."— 7y<«  Examiner. 


6     CAMBRIDGE  BIBLE   FOR   SCHOOLS  &   COLLEGES. 

The  Gospel  according  to  St  Jolm.  "Of  the  notes  we  can  say  with 
confidence  that  they  are  useful,  necessary,  learned,  and  brief.  To 
Divinity  students,  to  teachers,  and  for  private  use,  this  compact 
Commentary  will  be  found  a  valuable  aid  to  the  better  understanding 
of  the  Sacred  Text." — School  Guardian. 

"  The  new  volume  of  the  '  Cambridge  Bible  for  Schools ' — the 
Gospel  according  to  St  John,  by  the  Rev.  A.  Plummer — shows  as 
careful  and  thorough  work  as  either  of  its  predecessors.  The  intro- 
duction concisely  yet  fully  describes  the  life  of  St  John,  the  authenticity 
of  the  Gospel,  its  characteristics,  its  relation  to  the  Synoptic  Gospels, 
and  to  the  Apostle's  First  Epistle,  and  the  usual  subjects  referred  to  in 
an  'introduction'." — The  Christian  Church. 

"The  notes  are  extremely  scholarly  and  valuable,  and  in  most  cases 
exhaustive,  bringing  to  the  elucidation  of  the  text  all  that  is  best  in 
commentaries,  ancient  and  modern." — The  English  Churchman  and 
Clerical  yoiirnal. 

"(i)  The  Acts  of  the  Apostles.  By  J.  Rawson  Liimby,  D.D. 
(2)  The  Second  Epistle  of  the  Corinthians,  edited  by  Professor  Lias. 
The  introduction  is  pithy,  and  contains  a  mass  of  carefully-selected 
information  on  the  authorship  of  the  Acts,  its  designs,  and  its  sources. 

The  Second  Epistle  of  the  Corinthians  is  a  manual  beyond  all  praise, 

for  the  excellence  of  its  pithy  and  pointed  annotations,  its  analysis  of  the 
contents,  and  the  fulness  and  value  of  its  introduction." — Examiner. 

"The  concluding  portion  of  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles,  under  the  very 
competent  editorship  of  Dr  Lumby,  is  a  valuable  addition  to  our 
school-books  on  that  subject.  Detailed  criticism  is  impossible  within 
the  space  at  our  command,  but  we  may  say  that  the  ample  notes  touch 
with  much  exactness  the  very  points  on  which  most  readers  of  the  text 
desire  information.  Due  reference  is  made,  where  necessary,  to  the 
Revised  Version  ;  the  maps  are  excellent ;  and  we  do  not  know  of  any 
other  volume  where  so  much  help  is  given  to  the  complete  understand- 
ing of  one  of  the  most  important  and,  in  many  respects,  difficult  books 
of  the  New  Testament." — School  Guardian. 

"The  Rev.  H.  C.  G.  Moule,  M.A.,  has  made  a  valuable  addition 
to  The  Cambridge  Bible  for  Schools  in  his  brief  commentary  on 
the  Epistle  to  the  Romans.  The  'Notes'  are  very  good,  and  lean, 
as  the  notes  of  a  School  Bible  should,  to  the  most  commonly  ac- 
cepted and  orthodox  view  of  the  inspired  author's  meaning  ;  while  the 
Introduction,  and  especially  the  Sketch  of  the  Life  of  St  Paul,  is  a  model 
of  condensation.  It  is  as  lively  and  pleasant  to  read  as  if  two  or  three 
facts  had  not  been  crowded  into  well-nigh  every  %&ri\.&-az&'''— Expositor. 

"The  Epistle  to  the  Romans.  It  is  seldom  we  have  met  with  a 
work  so  remarkable  for  the  compression  and  condensation  of  all  that 
is  valuable  in  the  smallest  possible  space  as  in  the  volume  before  us.^ 
Within  its  limited  pages  we  have  '  a  sketch  of  the  Life  of  St  Paul,' 
we  have  further  a  critical  account  of  the  date  of  the  Epistle  to  the 
Romans,  of  its  language,  and  of  its  genuineness.  The  notes  are 
numerous,  full  of  matter,  to  the  point,  and  leave  no  real  difficulty 
or  obscurity  unexplained." — The  Examiner. 


OPINIONS   OF   THE   PRESS. 


"The  First  Epistle  to  the  Corinthians.  Edited  by  Professor  Lias. 
Every  fresh  instalment  of  this  annotated  edition  of  the  Bible  for  Schools 
confirms  the  favourable  opinion  we  formed  of  its  value  from  the  exami- 
nation of  its  first  number.  The  origin  and  plan  of  the  Epistle  are 
discussed  with  its  character  and  genuineness." — The  Nonconformist. 

"  The  Second  Epistle  to  the  Corinthians.  By  Professor  Lias.  The 
General  Epistles  of  St  Peter  and  St  Jude.  By  E.  H.  Plumptre,  D.D. 
We  welcome  these  additions  to  the  valuable  series  of  the  Cambridge 
Bible.  We  have  nothing  to  add  to  the  commendation  which  we 
have  from  the  first  publication  given  to  this  edition  of  the  Bible.  It  is 
enough  to  say  that  Professor  Lias  has  completed  his  work  on  the  two 
Epistles  to  the  Corinthians  in  the  same  admirable  manner  as  at  first. 
Dr  Plumptre  has  also  completed  the  Catholic  Epistles. " — Nonconformist. 

The  Epistle  to  the  Ephesians.  By  Rev.  H.  C.  G.  Moule,  M.A. 
"  It  seems  to  us  the  model  of  a  School  and  College  Commentary — ■ 
comprehensive,  but  not  cumbersome;  scholarly,  but  not  pedantic." — 
Baptist  Magazine. 

The  Epistle  to  the  Philippians.  "There  are  few  series  more  valued 
by  theological  students  than  '  The  Cambridge  Bible  for  Schools  and 
Colleges,'  and  there  will  be  no  number  of  it  more  esteemed  than  that 
by  Mr  H.  C.  G.  Moule  on  the  Epistle  to  the  Fhilippians."~Record. 

"  Another  capital  volume  of  'The  Cambridge  Bible  for  Schools  and 
Colleges.'  The  notes  are  a  model  of  scholarly,  lucid,  and  compact 
criticism." — Baptist  Magazine. 

Hebrews.  "  Like  his  (Canon  Farrar's)  commentary  on  Luke  it 
possesses  all  the  best  characteristics  of  his  writing.  It  is  a  work  not 
only  of  an  accomplished  scholar,  but  of  a  skilled  teacher." — Baptist 
Magazine. 

"  We  heartily  commend  this  volume  of  this  excellent  work." — 
Sunday  School  Chronicle. 

"The  General  Epistle  of  St  James,  by  Professor  Plumptre,  D.D. 
Nevertheless  it  is,  so  far  as  I  know,  by  far  the  best  exposition  of  the 
Epistle  of  St  James  in  the  English  language.  Not  Schoolboys  or 
Students  going  in  for  an  examination  alone,  but  Ministers  and  Preachers 
of  the  Word,  may  get  more  real  help  from  it  than  from  the  most  costly 
and  elaborate  commentaries." — Expositor, 

The  Epistles  of  St  John.  By  the  Rev.  A.  Plummer,  M.A.,  D.D. 
"This  forms  an  admirable  companion  to  the  'Commentary  on  the 
Gospel  according  to  St  John,'  which  was  reviewed  in  The  Church?nan 
as  soon  as  it  appeared.  Dr  Plummer  has  some  of  the  highest  qualifica- 
tions for  such  a  task  ;  and  these  two  volumes,  their  size  being  considered, 
will  bear  comparison  with  the  best  Commentaries  of  the  time." — The 
Churchman. 

"  Dr  Plummer's  edition  of  the  Epistles  of  St  John  is  worthy  of  its 
companions  in  the  'Cambridge  Bible  for  Schools'  Series.  The 
subject,  though  not  apparently  extensive,  is  really  one  not  easy  to 
treat,  and  requiring  to  be  treated  at  length,  owing  to  the  constant 
reference  to  obscure  heresies  in  the  Johannine  writings.  Dr  Plummer 
has  done  his  exegetical  task  well." — The  Saturday  Review. 


THE  CAMBRIDGE  GREEK  TESTAMENT 

FOR   SCHOOLS   AND   COLLEGES 

with  a  Eevlsed  Text,  based  on  the  most  recent  critical  authorities,  and 

English  Notes,  prepared  under  the  direction  of  the  General  Editor, 

The  Very  Reverend  J,  J.  S.  PEROWNE,  D.D. 
"  Has  achieved  an  excellence  which  puis  it  above  o-ilicism." — Expositor. 

St  Matthew.  "  Copious  illustrations,  gathered  from  a  great  variety 
of  sources,  make  his  notes  a  very  valuable  aid  to  the  student.  They 
are  indeed  remarkably  interesting,  while  all  explanations  on  meanings, 
applications,  and  the  like  are  distinguished  by  their  lucidity  and  good 
sense. " — Fall  Mall  Gazette. 

St  Mark.  ' '  The  Cambridge  Greek  Testament  of  which  Dr  Maclear's 
edition  of  the  Gospel  according  to  St  Mark  is  a  volume,  certainly 
supplies  a  want.  Without  pretending  to  compete  with  the  leading 
commentaries,  or  to  embody  very  much  original  research,  it  forms  a 
most  satisfactory  introduction  to  the  study  of  the  New  Testament  in 

the  original Dr  Maclear's  introduction  contains  all  that  is  known  of 

St  Mark's  life;  an  account  of  the  circumstances  in  which  the  Gospel 
was  composed,  with  an  estimate  of  the  influence  of  St  Peter's  teaching 
upon  St  Mark  ;  an  excellent  sketch  of  the  special  characteristics  of  this 
Gospel;  an  analysis,  and  a  chapter  on  the  text  of  the  New  Testament 
generally. " — Saturday  Review. 

St   Luke.      "Of   this   second   series  we  have   a  new  volume  by 

Archdeacon  Farrar  on  St  Luke,  completing  the  four   Gospels It 

gives  us  in  clear  and  beautiful  language  the  best  results  of  modern 
scholarship.  We  have  a  most  attractive  Introduction.  Then  follows 
a  sort  of  composite  Greek  text,  representing  fairly  and  in  very  beautiful 
type  the  consensus  of  modern  textual  critics.  At  the  beginning  of  the 
exposition  of  each  chapter  of  the  Gospel  are  a  few  short  critical  notes 
giving  the  manuscript  evidence  for  such  various  readings  as  seem  to 
deserve  mention.  The  expository  notes  are  short,  but  clear  and  helpful. 
For  young  students  and  those  who  are  not  disposed  to  buy  or  to  study 
the  much  more  costly  work  of  Godet,  this  seems  to  us  to  be  the  best 
book  on  the  Greek  Text  of  the  Third  Gospel." — Methodist  Recorder. 

St  John.  "We  take  this  opportunity  of  recommending  to  ministers 
on  probation,  the  very  excellent  volume  of  the  same  series  on  this  part 
of  the  New  Testament.  We  hope  that  most  or  all  of  our  young  ministers 
will  prefer  to  study  the  volume  in  the  Cambridge  Greek  Testament  for 
Schools." — Methodist  Reco7'der. 

The  Acts  of  the  Apostles.  "Professor  Lumby  has  performed  his 
laborious  task  well,  and  supplied  us  with  a  commentary  the  fulness  and 
freshness  of  which  Bible  students  will  not  be  slow  to  appreciate.  The 
volume  is  enriched  with  the  usual  copious  indexes  and  four  coloured 
maps." — Glasgow  Herald. 

I.  Corinthians.  "Mr  Lias  is  no  novice  in  New  Testament  exposi- 
tion, and  the  present  series  of  essays  and  notes  is  an  able  and  helpful 
addition  to  the  existing  books." — Guardian. 

The  Epistles  of  St  John.  "  In  the  very  useful  and  well  annotated 
series  of  the  Cambridge  Greek  Testament  the  volume  on  the  Epistles 
of  St  John  must  hold  a  high  position ...  The  notes  are  brief,  well 
informed  and  intelligent." — Scotsfnan. 

Cambridge:  printed  by  c.  j.  clay,  m.a.  and  sons,  at  the  university  press. 


CAMBRIDGE  UNIVERSITY  PRESS. 

♦ 

THE    PITT   PRESS  SERIES. 


,     Many  of  the  books  in  this  list  can  be  had  in  two  volumes.   Text 
and  Notes  sepai-ately. 

I.     GREEK. 

Aristophanes.    Aves— Plutus— Ranae.     By  W.    C.   Green, 

M.A.,  late  Assistant  Master  at  Rugby  School.     3J.  dd.  each. 

Aristotle.     Outlines   of  the   Philosophy  of.     By  Edwin 

Wallace,  M.A.,  LL.D.     Third  Edition,  Enlarged.     +r.  td. 

Euripides.    Heracleidae.    By  E.  A.  Beck,  M.A.    3^-.  dd. 

Hercules  Furens.    By  A.   Gray,  M.A.,  and  J,  T. 

Hutchinson,  M.A.     New  Edit.     2s. 

Hippolytus.    By  W.  S.  Hadley,  M.A.     is. 

Iphigeneia  in  Aulis.  By  C.  E.  S.  Headlam,  B.A.  is.  6d. 


Herodotus,  Book  V.    By  E.  S.  Shuckburgh,  M.A.    3^, 

Book  VI,     By  the  same  Editor.     4J. 

Book  VIII.,  Chaps.  1—90.    By  the  same  Editor.    3^-.  6d. 

Book  IX.,  Chaps.  1—89.     By  the  same  Editor,    y.  6d. 

Homer.    Odyssey,  Books  IX.,  X.    By  G.  M.  Edwards,  M.A. 

2j.  6d.  each. 

Book  XXI.     By  the  same  Editor.     2s. 

Iliad.     Books  XXII.,  XXIII.     By  the  same  Editor. 

[Nea  rly  ready. 

Lucian.   Somnium  Charon  Piscator  et  De  Luctu.    By  W.  E. 

Heitland,  M.A.,  Fellow  of  St  John's  College,  Cambridge.     3J.  dd. 

Menippus  and  Timon.    By  E.  C.  Mackie,  M.A. 

[Nearly  ready. 

Platonis  Apologia  Socratis.    By  J.  Adam,  M.A.    3^-.  bd. 

Crito.     By  the  same  Editor.    2s.  6d. 

Euthyphro.     By  the  same  Editor.     2s.  6d. 

Plutarch.    Lives  of  the  Gracchi.    By  Rev.  H.  A.  Holden, 

M.A.,  LL.D.     6.f. 

Life  of  Nicias.     By  the  same  Editor.     5^. 

Life  of  Sulla.     By  the  same  Editor.     6s. 

Life  of  Timoleon.    By  the  same  Editor.     6s. 

Sophocles.    Oedipus  Tyrannus.    School  Edition.     By  R.  C. 

Jebb,  Litt.D.,  LL.D.     ^s.  6d. 

Thucydides.    Book  VII.   By  Rev.  H.  A.  Holden,  M.A.,  LL.D. 

[Nearly  ready, 

Xenophon.    Agesilaus.    By  H.  Hailstone,  M.A.    zs.  6d. 

Anabasis.     By  A.  Pretor,  M.A.      Two  vols.     ^s.  6d. 

Books  I.  III.  IV.  and  V.     By  the  same.     2s.  each. 

Books  II.  VI.  and  VII.     By  the  same.     2s.  6d.  each. 

Xenophon.    Cyropaedeia.    Books  I.  II.    By  Rev.  H.  A.  Hol- 
den, M.A.,  LL.D.    2  vols.    6i-. 

Books  III.  IV.  and  V.    By  the  same  Editor.    5^. 

Books  VI.  VII.  VIII.    By  the  same  Editor. 

[Nearly  ready. 

London:    Cambridge   Warehouse,  Ave  Maria  Lane. 

20/10/90 


PUBLICATIONS  OF 


II.     LATIN. 

Beda's  Ecclesiastical  History,  Books  III.,  IV.    By  J.  E.  B. 

Mayor,  M.A.,  and  J.  R.  Lumby,  D.D.     Revised  Edition.     7^.  (>d. 

Books  I.  II.     By  the  same  Editors.  \In  the  Press. 

Caesar.    De  Bello  Gallico,  Comment.  I.    By  A.  G.  Peskett, 

M.A.,  Fellow  of  Magdalene  College,  Cambridge,  xs.  6d.  Comment.  II. 
III.  zs.  Comment.  I.  II.  III.  y.  Comment.  IV.  and  V.,  Comment. 
VII.    2s.  each.     Comment.  VI.  and  Comment.  VIII.     is.  6d.  each. 

De  Bello  Civili,  Comment.  I.    By  the  same  Editor. 

Cicero.    De  Amicitia.— De  Senectute.    By  J.  S.  Reid,  Litt.D., 

Fellow  of  Gonville  and  Caius  College,     y.  td.  each. 

In  Gaium  Verrem  Actio  Prima.     By  H.   Cowie, 

M.A.     IS.  ed. 

In  Q.  Caecilium  Divinatio  et  in  C.  Verrem  Actio. 


By  W.  E.  Heitland,  M.A.,  and  H.  Cowie,  M.A.    3^. 

Philippica  Secunda.   By  A.  G.  Peskett,  M.A.  y.  6d. 

Oratio  pro  Archia  Poeta.    By  J.  S.  Reid,  Litt.D.    2s. 

Pro  L.  Cornelio  Balbo  Oratio.    By  the  same.    i^.  6d. 

Oratio  pro  Tito  Annio  Milone.     By  John  Smyth 

PURTON,  B.D.    2s.  6d. 

Oratio  pro  L.  Murena.  By  W.  E.  Heitland,  M.A.  3^. 

Pro  Cn.  Plancio  Oratio, by  H. A.  Holden,LL.D.  /^s.bd. 

Pro  P.  Cornelio  Sulla.    By  J.  S.  Reid,  Litt.D.    3.^.  6d. 

Somnium  Scipionis.     By  W.  D.  Pearman,  M.A.  2s. 


Horace.    Epistles,  Book  I.    By  E.  S.  Shuckburgh,  M.A., 

late  Fellow  of  Emmanuel  College.     2^.  6d. 

Livy.    Book  IV.    By  H.  M.  Stephenson,  M.A.    2s.  6d. 

Book  V.    By  L.  Whibley,  M.A.     2s.  6d. 

Books  XXI.,  XXII.     By  M.  S.  Dimsdale,  M.A.,  Fel- 

low  of  King's  College.     2^.  M.  each. 

Book  XXVII.    By  Rev.  H.  M.  Stephenson,  M.A. 

[Nearly  ready. 

Lucan.    Pharsaliae  Liber  Primus.    By  W.   E.   Heitland, 

M.A.,  and  C.  E.  Haskins,  M.A.     u.  6d. 

Lucretius,  Book  V.    By  J.  D.  Duff,  M.A.    2s. 

Ovidii  Nasonis  Fastorum  Liber  VI.    By  A.  Sidgwick,  M.A., 

Tutor  of  Corpus  Christi  College,  Oxford,     is.  6d. 

Quintus  Curtius.   A  Portion  of  the  History  (Alexander  in  India). 

By  W.  E.  Heitland,  M.A.,  and  T.  E.  Raven,  B.A.    With  Two  Maps.    3^.  6d. 

Vergili  Maronis  Aeneidos  Libri  I.— XII.    By  A.  Sidgwick, 

M.A.    is.  6d.  each. 

Bucolica.     By  the  same  Editor,     is.  6d. 

Georgicon  Libri  I.  II.    By  the  same  Editor.    2s. 

Libri  III,  IV.     By  the  same  Editor.     2s. 

The  Complete  Works.     By  the  same  Editor.    Two  vols. 

Vol.  I.  containing  the  Introduction  and  Text.  3.T.  6d.    Vol.  II.  The  Notes.  4^.  6d. 


London:    Cambridge    Warehouse,  Ave  Maria  Lane. 


THE   CAMBRIDGE    UNTVERSTTY  PRESS. 


III.     FRENCH. 

Corneille.    La  Suite  du  Menteur.    A  Comedy  in  Five  Acts. 

By  the  late  G.  Masson,  B.A.    2S. 

De  Bonnechose.     Lazare  Hoche.     By   C.   Colbeck,  M.A. 

Revised  Edition.     Four  Maps.     2.?. 

D'Harleville.  Le  Vieux  C^libataire.  By  G.  Masson,  B.A.  2s. 
De    Lamartine.    Jeanne    D'Arc.     By  Rev.  A.  C.  C  la  pin, 

M.A.,  St  John's  College,  Cambridge.     2^. 

De   Vigny.     La   Canne  de  Jonc.    By  Rev.   H.  A.  Bull, 

M.A.,  late  Master  at  Wellington  College.     2.v. 

Erckmann-Chatrian.    La  Guerre.    By  Rev.  A.  C.  Claimn, 

M.A.    3^. 

La  Baronne  de  Stael-Holstein.  Le  Directoire.  (Considera- 
tions sur  la  Revolution  Frangaise.  Troisicme  et  iiuatrieme  parties.)  Revised 
and  enlarged.     By  G.  Masso.n,  B.A.,  and  G.  W.  Pkotheko.  ^LA.     2s. 

Dix  Annies  d'Exil.    Livre  IL   Chapitres  1-8. 

By  the  same  Editors.     New  Edition,  enlarged,     js. 

Lemercier.    Fredegonde  et  Brunehaut.    A  Tragedy  in  Five 

Acts.     By  GusTAVE  Masson,  B.A.     2s. 

Molidre.    Le    Bourgeois    Gentilhomme,  Coniddie-Ballet   en 

Cinq  Actes.     (1670.)     By  Rev.  A.  C.  Clahn,  M.A.     Revised  Edition.     js.6d. 

L'Ecole  des  Femmes.    By  G.  Saintsbury,  M.A.   2s.  (yd. 

Les  Pr^cieuses  Ridicules.   By  E.  G.  W.  Braunholtz, 

M.A.,  Ph.D.     2^. 

Abridged  Edition.    \s. 


Piron.    La  M^tromanie.  A  Comedy.  By  G.  Masson,  B.A.  2s. 
Eacine,    Les  Plaideurs.    By  E.  G.  W.  Braunholtz,  M.A.  2.c 

Abridged  Edition.     \s. 

Sainte-Beuve.     M.  Daru   (Causeries    du    Lundi,   Vol.    IX.). 

By  G.  Masson,  B.A.     2s. 

Saintine.    Picciola.    By  Rev.  A.  C.  Clapin,  M.A.    2s. 
Scribe  and  Legouv^.    Bataille  de  Dames.    By  Rev.  H.  A. 

Bull,  M.A.    2s. 

Scribe.    Le  Verre  d'Eau.    By  C.  Colbeck,  M.A.    2s. 
S^daine.     Le  Philosopbe  sans  le  savoir.     By  Rev.  H.  A. 

Bull,  M.A.     2s.  -,ttt       -o-itttt 

Thierry.    Lettres  sur  I'histoire  de  France  (XIIL— XXIV.). 

By  G.  Masson,  B.A.,  and  G.  W.  Puotheko,  ^LA.     2^.  6./. 

R6cits  des  Temps  M^rovingiens  I.— III.    P.y  Gu.s tave 

Masson,  B.A.  Univ.  Gallic,  and  A.  R.  Roies,  M.A.     With  Map.     v- 

Villemain.    Lascaris  ou  Les  Grecs  du  XVe  Si^cle,  NouveUe 

Historique.     By  G.  Masson,  B.A.     2^^.  „-„       «,  t 

Voltaire.    Histoire  du  Sidcle  de  Louis  XIV.    Chaps.  I.— 

XIIL     By  G.  Masson,  B.A.,  and  G.  W.  I'kotiikuh,  M  A.     -.'.v.  'i./.     I'aim_  M. 
Chai's.  XIV.— XXIV.     2s.b,i.     Part  III.    Ciiai  s.  XXV.  t..  end.     -■''"'■ 

Xavier  de  Maistre.    La  Jeune  Siberienne.    Le  Lepreux  de 

la  Cite  D'Aoste.     By  G.  Masson,  B.A.    u.  6rf. 

London:    Cambridge  Warehouse,  Ave  Maria  Lauc. 


PUBLICATIONS  OF 


IV.     GERMAN. 

Ballads  on  German  History.    By  W.  Wagner,  Ph.D.    2s. 
Benedix.    Doctor  Wespe.    Lustspiel  in  fiinf  Aufziigen.    By 

Karl  Hermann  Breul,  M.A.,  Ph.D.    3J. 

Fresrtag.    Der  Staat  Friedrichs  des  Grossen.    By  Wilhelm 

Wagner,  Ph.D.     7.s. 

German  Dactylic  Poetry.  By  Wilhelm  Wagner,  Ph.D.  3^. 
Goethe's  Knabenjahre.  (1749— i7S9-)  By  W.  Wagner,  Ph.D.  is. 
Hermann  und  Dorothea.    By   Wilhelm  Wagner, 

Ph.D.     Revised  edition  by  J.  W.  Cartmell,  M.A.     3^.  td. 

Gutzkow.     Zopf  und  Schwert.     Lustspiel  in  fiinf  Aufziigen. 

By  H.  J.  WoLSTENHOLME,  B.A.  (Lond.).     3^.  dd. 

Hauff.    Das  Bild  des  Kaisers.     By  Karl  Hermann  Breul, 

M.A.,  Ph.D.,  University  Lecturer  in  German.     3^. 

Das  Wirthshaus  im  Spessart.    By  A.  Schlottmann, 

Ph.D.    3-f-  6<^. 

Die  Karavane.    By  A.  Schlottmann,  Ph.D.    3^.  dd. 


Immermann.    Der  Oberhof.    A  Tale  of  Westphalian  Life,  by 

Wilhelm  Wagner,  Ph.D.     3^-. 

Kohlrausch.  DasJaliri8i3.  By  Wilhelm  Wagner,  Ph.D.  2  j. 
Lessing  and  Gellert.    Selected  Fables.    By  Karl  Hermann 

Breul,  M.A.,  Ph.D.     -^s. 

Mendelssohn's  Letters.  Selections  from.   By  J.  Sime,  M.A.  3J. 
Raumer.    Der  erste  Kreuzzug  (1095 — 1099).    By  Wilhelm 

Wagner,  Ph.D.     2i. 

Riehl.    Culturgeschichtliche  Novellen.    By  H.  J.  Wolsten- 

HOLME,  B.A.  (Lond.).     3^.  dd. 

Schiller.    Wilhelm  Tell.    By  Karl  Hermann  Breul,  M.A., 

Ph.D.     2J.  (>d. 

Abridged  Edition.     \s.  6d. 

Uhland.    Ernst,  Herzog  von  Schwaben.    By  H.  J.  Wolsten- 

HOLME,  B.A.      3.S.  td. 


V.     ENGLISH. 

Ancient  Philosophy  from  Thales  to  Cicero,  A  Sketch  of.    By 

Joseph  B.  Mayor,  M.A.     3.J.  6d. 

An  Apologie  for  Poetrie  by  Sir  Philip  Sidney.    By  E.  S. 

Shuckbukgh,  M.A.     The  Text  is  a  revision  of  that  of  the  first  edition  of  1595. 
I  [Nearly  ready. 

Bacon's  History  of  the  Reign  of  King  Henry  VII.     By 

the  Rev.  Professor  Lumbv,  D.D.     3^-. 

Cowley's  Essays.    By  the  Rev.  Professor  Lumby,  D.D.    /^. 


London ;    Cambrid^je    Warehouse,  Ave  Maria  Lane, 


THE   CAMBRIDGE    UNIVERSITY  PRESS. 


Milton's  Comus  and  Arcades.     By  A.  W.  Verity,  M.A. 

sometime  Scholar  of  Trinity  College.  [Nearly  naJy. 

More's  History  of  King  Richard  III.    By  J.  Rawson  Lumby' 

D.D.     ■},s.  dd. 

More's  Utopia.    By  Rev.  Prof.  Lumby,  D.D,    y.  (yd. 

The  Two  Noble  Kinsmen.     By  the   Rev.   Professor  Ske\t 

Litt.D.     -is.dii.  ' 


VI.     EDUCATIONAL  SCIENCE. 
Comenius,  John  Amos,  Bishop  of  the  Moravians.    His  Life 

and  Educational  Works,  by  S.   S.    Laurie,  A.M.,   F.R.S.E.     3^.  td. 

Education,  Three  Lectures  on  the  Practice  of.  L  On  Mark- 
ing, by  h.w.  eve,  ma.  II.  On  Stimulu.s,  by  A.  SiDtiwiCK,  M.A.  III.  On 
the  Teaching  of  Latin  Verse  Composition,  by  E.  A.  AuiiorT,  i).D.     is. 

Stimulus.     A   Lecture  delivered   for  the  Teachers'  Training 

Syndicate,  May,  1882,  by  A.  Sidgwick,  M.A.     \s. 

Locke  on  Education.   By  the  Rev.  R.  H.  Quick,  M.A.    3^.  6</. 
Milton's  Tractate  on  Education.    A  facsimile  reprint  from 

the  Edition  of  1673.     Ijy  O-  Browning,  M.A.     2.S. 

Modern  Languages,  Lectures  on  the  Teaching  of.    By  C. 

COLBECK,  M.A.      IS. 

Teacher,  General  Aims  of  the,  and  Form  Management.    Two 

Lectures  delivered  in  the  University  of  Cambridge  in  the  Lent  Term,  1883,  by 
F.  W.  Farrak,  D.D.,  and  R.  B.  Poole,  B.D.     \s.  6d. 

Teaching,  Theory  and  Practice  of.    By  the  Rev.  E.  Thring, 

M.  A.,  late  Head  Master  of  Uppingham  School.     New  Edition.    45.  6</. 


British  India,  a  Short  History  of.    By  E.  S.  Carlos,  M.A,, 

late  Head  Master  of  Exeter  Grammar  School,     is. 

Geography,  Elementary  Commercial.    A  Sketch  of  the  Com- 
modities and  the  Countries  of  the  World.    Hy  II.  R.  Mill,  D.Sc,  F.R.S.E.    i.f. 

Geography,  an  Atlas  of  Commercial.    (A  Companion  to  the 

above.)     By  J.  G.  Bartholomew,  F.R.G.S.     With  an  Intniducliun  by  High 
Robert  Mill,  D.Sc.     3.?. 


VII.     MATHEMATICS. 
Euclid's  Elements  of  Geometry.    Books  I.  and  II.    By  H.  ^L 

Taylor,  M.A.,  Fellow  and  late  Tutor  of  Trinity  College,  Cambridge,     is.  (xJ. 

Books  III.  and  IV.     By  the  same  Editor. 

[Nearly  ready. 

Elementary  Algebra  (with  Answers  to  the  E.vamplcs).     By 

W.  W.  Koi  sE  Ball,  M.A.    4^.  dd. 

Other  Volumes  are  in  preparation. 


Zofidon:    Cambridge  Warehouse,  Ave  Maria  Lane. 


PUBLICATIONS  OF 


%\}t  CamftrilTfle   33i6U  for 
)t!)oote  anil  Colleges^ 

General  Editor  :  J,  J.  S.  PEROWNE,  D.D., 
Dean  of  Peterborough. 

"//  is  difficult  to  commend  too  highly  this  excellent  series. — Guardian. 

"  The  modesty  of  the  general  title  of  this  series  has,  we  believe,  led 
many  to  misunderstand  its  character  and  underrate  its  value.  The  books 
are  well  suited  for  study  in  the  tipper  forms  of  our  best  schools,  but  not 
the  less  are  they  adapted  to  the  wants  of  all  Bible  students  who  are  not 
specialists.  We  doubt,  indeed,  luhether  ajiy  of  the  numerous  popular 
commentaries  recently  issued  in  this  country  will  be  found  tnore  ser- 
viceable for  general  use." — Academy. 

Noiu  Ready.     Cloth,  Extra  Fcap.  Zvo.     With  Maps. 

Book  of  Joshua.     By  Rev.  G.  F.  Maclear,  D.D.    is.  6d. 

Book  of  Judges.    By  Rev.  J.  J.  Lias,  M.A.     3^.  6d. 

First  Book  of  Samuel.  ByRev.Prof.  Kirkpatrick,B.D.  :^s.6d. 

Second  Book  of  Samuel.    By  Rev.  Prof.  Kirkpatrick,  B.D. 

3^.  61/. 

First  Book  of  Kings.     By  Rev.  Prof.  Lumby,  D.D.     3^.  6d. 
Second  Book  of  Kings.    By  Rev.  Prof.  Lumby,  D.D.    3^'.  6d. 
Book  of  Job.    By  Rev.  A.  B.  Davidson,  D.D.    5^. 
Book  of  Ecclesiastes.  By  Very  Rev.  E.  H.  Plumptre,  D.D.  5^. 
Book  of  Jeremiah.    By  Rev.  A.  W.  Streane,  M.A.    i\s.6d. 
Book  of  Hosea.     By  Rev.  T.  K.  Cheyne,  M.A.,  D.D.     y 
Books  of  Obadiah  &  Jonah.   By  Archdeacon  Perowne.  2s.  6d. 
Book  of  Micah.    By  Rev.  T.  K.  Cheyne,  M.A.,  D.D.     is.  6d. 
Haggai,  Zechariah  &  Malachi.   By  Arch.  Perowne.    3^.  6d. 
Book  of  Malachi.    By  Archdeacon  Perowne.     is. 
Gospel  according  to  St  Matthew.  EyRev.A.CARR,M.A.  zs.Sd. 
Gospel  according  to  St  Mark.    By  Rev.   G.   F.   Maclear, 

D.D.     2s.  6d. 

Gospel  according  to  St  Luke.  By  Arch.  Farrar,  D.  D.  4^-.  6d 
Gospel  according  to  St  John.  By  Rev.  A.  Plummer,  D.D.  a^s.  6d. 
Acts  of  the  Apostles.  By  Rev.  Prof.  Lumby,  D.D.  45-.  6d. 
Epistle  to  the  Romans.  By  Rev.  H.  C.  G.  Moule,  M.A.  3^.  6d. 
First  Corinthians.  By  Rev.  J.  J.  Lias,  M.A.  With  Map.  2s. 
Second  Corinthians.    By  Rev.  J.  J.  Lias,  M.A.    With  Map.    2s. 

London:    Cambridge   Warehouse,  Ave  Maria  Lane. 


THE  CAMBRIDGE   UNIVERSITY  PRESS. 


Epistle  to  the  Galatians.  By  Rev.  E.  H.  Perowne,  D.D.  u.  Gd. 
Epistle  to  the  Ephesians.  By  Rev.  H.  C.  G.  Moule,  M.  A.  zs.  dd. 
Epistle  to  the  Philippians,    By  Rev.  H.  C.  G.  Moule,  M  A 

■2S.  6ii.  ' 

Epistle  to  the  Hebrews.    By  Arch.  Farrar,  D.D.    2,^.  Gd. 
General  Epistle  of  St  James.    By  Very  Rev.  E.  H.  Plumpi  re 

Epistles  of  St  Peter  and  St  Jude.    By  Very  Rev   E.  U 

Plumptre,  D.D.     2s.  td. 

Epistles  of  St  John.  By  Rev.  A.  Plummer,  M.A.,  D.D.  y.  bd. 
Book  of  Revelation.    By  Rev.  W.  H.  Simcox,  M.A.    35. 

Preparing. 
Book  of  Genesis.     By  Very  Rev.  the  Dean  of  Peterborough. 
Books  of  Exodus,  Numbers  and  Deuteronomy.    By  Rev. 

C.  D.  GiNSBURG,  LL.D. 

Books  of  Ezra  and  Nehemiah.    By  Rev.  Prof.  Ryle,  M.A. 
Book  of  Psalms.     Part  I.     By  Rev.  Prof.  Kirkp.virick,  B.D. 
Book  of  Isaiah.    By  Prof.  W.  Robertson  Smith,  M.A. 
Book  of  Ezekiel.    By  Rev.  A.  B.  Davidson,  D.D. 
Epistles  to  the  Colossians  and  Philemon.    By  Rev.  H.  C.  G. 

Moule,  M.A. 

Epistles  to  the  Thessalonians,  By  Rev.  G.  G.  Findlav,  M.A. 
Epistles  to  Timothy  &  Titus.  By  Rev.  A.  E.  Humphreys,  M.A. 


Cl)£  Smaller  Cambritrge  Bible  for  ^rboolsf. 

The  Smaller  Cambridge  Bible  for  School8  will  form  an  entirely 
new  series  of  commentaries  on  some  selected  books  of  the  Bible.  It  is  expected 
that  they  zuill  be  prepared  for  the  tiiost  part  by  the  Editors  of  the  larger 
series  {The  Cambridge  Bible  for  Schools  and  Colleges).  The  volumes 
will  be  issued  at  a  low  price,  and  will  be  suitable  to  the  requirements  of 
preparatory  and  elementary  schools. 

Now  ready. 
First  and  Second  Books  of  Samuel.     By  Rev.  Prof.  Kikk- 

PATRICK,  B.D.     i^.  each. 

Gospel  according  to  St  Matthew.   By  Rev.  A.  Cark,  M.A.    \s. 
Gospel  according  to  St  Mark.  ByRev.G.F.MACi.EAR,D.D.  \s. 
Gospel  according  to  St  Luke.    By  Archdeacon  Farrar.    \s. 
Acts  of  the  Apostles.     By  Rev.  Prof  Lumbv,  D.D. 

{Nearly  ready. 

London :    Cambridge   Warehouse,  Ave  Maria  Ixiuc. 


8    PUBLICATIONS  OF  THE  UNIVERSITY  PRESS. 

Vi)t  Cambntrge  (Sreek  Ces^tamcut  for 
^rl)cicil£{  antr  Colleges;, 

with  a  Revised  Text,  based  on  the  most  recent  critical  authorities,  and 
English  Notes,  prepared  under  the  direction  of  the  General  Editor, 

The  Very  Reverend  J.  J.  S.  PEROWNE,  D.D., 
Dean  of  Peterborough. 

Gospel  according  to  St  Matthew.    By  Rev.  A.  Carr,  M.A. 

With  4  Maps.     4.?.  6rf. 

Gospel  according  to  St  Mark.    By  Rev.  G.  F.  Maclear,  D.D. 

With  3  Maps.     4^.  6rf. 

Gospel   according   to   St  Luke.    By  Archdeacon  Farrar 

With  4  Maps.     ts. 

Gospel  according  to  St  John.    By  Rev.  A.  Plummer,  D.D. 

With  4  Maps.     ts. 

Acts    of   the    Apostles.     By  Rev.    Professor   Lumby,   D.D. 

With  4  Maps.     6^. 

First  Epistle  to  the  Corinthians.   By  Rev.  J.  J.  Lias,  M.A.  y. 
Second  Epistle  to  the  Corinthians.     By  Rev.  J.  J.  Lias,  M.A. 

[/«  the  Press. 

^Epistle  to  the  Hebrews.  By  Archdeacon  Farrar,  D.  D.  ^s.  6d. 
.Epistle  of  St  James.     By  Very  Rev.  E.  H,  Plumptre,  D.D. 

[Preparing. 

Epistles  of  St  John.    By  Rev.  A.  Plummer,  M.A.,  D.D.    &,$. 


Sonton:    C.  J.  CLAY  and  SONS, 

CAMBRIDGE   WAREHOUSE,   AVE   MARIA  LANE., 

ffllagQoto:    263,  ARGYLE  STREET. 

CrambTiBfit:    DEIGHTON,   BELL  AND  CO. 

EeCjjjig:    F.  A.  BROCKHAUS. 


tZAMBRlD'C'B :   PRINTED  BY  C.   J.   CLAY,    M.A.   AND  SONS,    AT  THK   UNIVERSITY  PRESS. 


FL  !   "m--  U-C4 


UNIVERSITY  OF  TORONTO 

I 

LIBRARY 


Do    not 

remove 

the    card 

from    this 


Pocket. 


Acme  Library  Card  Cscket 

Under  Pat.  "Ref.  Index  Kile." 
Made  by  LIBEAfiY  BDEEAO,  Boiton 


6^-     ri